VIRGINIA LI O75 MW Wi MUN |LIBRARY OF THE UNIVERSITY OF VIRGINIA BEQUEATHED BY RosertT Lewis Harrison% oe aie if Pe A saeCHED-LOOKING WOMAN, EXCLAIM- INTO FOLKS’ HOUSES IN THIS GATE, AT IN FRONT WAS AN OLD WRET ING, ‘‘WHA COMES THIS TIME 0’ NIGHT ?”’i bd , i d i ri § aie SST eee eesWAVERLEY RR WOODSTOCK suthen PA prone ots BY SiR WALTER SCOTT, Bart. oe ¢ ge yell] ay Vw VW ZN), VS Es) a Nr tn FY a =) > og ten oe = oN =| aw wee > <4 =, ale HOOPER, CLARKE, & €Q. PUBLISHERSHear, Land o’ Cakes and brither Scots, Frae Maidenkirk to Johnny Groat’s, Tf there’s hole in a’ your coats, I rede ye tent 1. A chiel’s amang you takin’ notes, An? faith he’ll prent it! —BURNS. traedme, senor hu Ahora bien, dijo el Cura: los quiero ver. Que me place, re spondté el, sacé del una maletilla vieja cerrada con hallé en ella tres libros grandes y unos escritos de mano,—DON QUuIxOTE, Parte I, ¢ CAALHALIA, Anael = a7 ALAS DAPELES 114} Capitulo 32. er er aes eee eeTO MARY MONICA HOPE SCOTT OF ABBOTSFORD THIS: EDITEION OF THE NOVELS _.OF HER GREAT-GRANDFATHER WALTER SCOTT DEDICATED BY THE PUBLISHERS nr et eee rc ato triesC3 5 pe erETwO Trey TA sania aNADVERTISEMENT TO LAST ENGLISH EDITION. IN printing this New Edition of the Waverley Novels, the Pub- lishers have availed themselves of the opportunity to collate it carefully with the valuable interleaved copy in their possession, containing the Author’s latest manuscript corrections and notes ; zs and from this source they have obtained several annotations of hitherto published. As examples of considerable interest, not some of the more important of these, may be mentioned the notes on ‘* High Jinks” in ‘‘ Guy Mannering,” ‘‘ Pratorium” in the ** Antiquary,” and the ‘‘ Expulsion of the Scotch Bishops” in the Pe ‘Heart of Midlothian.” There has also been inserted (within brackets) some minor notes explanatory of references now rendered perhaps somewhat obscure by the lapse of time. For these, the Publishers have been chiefly indebted to David Laing, LL.D., Secretary of the Bannatyne Club and one of the few surviving friends of the Author. Fortunately, there is now little more required in the way of an- notation to the Waverley Novels; but in order to afford every facility of reference, a special glossary has been added to such of the novels as required it, and each volume contains a separate in- dex : while a General Index has also been appended to the con- cluding volume of the series. o EDINBURGH, August 15, 1871. Scoot) ‘ DT ten " A x rotten pera ttt Pi ance cree SS : i i H ] ;os Ake ae ov ~ tae oe es on Ee aIt has been the occasional occupation of the Author of Waver- ley, for several years past, to revise and correct the voluminous series of Novels which pass under that name, in order that, if they should ever appear as his avowed productions, he might. render them in some degree deserving of a continuance of the public favor with which they have been honored ever since their first ap- pearance. Fora long period, however, it seemed likely that the improved and illustrated edition which he meditated would be a posthumous publication. But the course of the events which occa- sioned the disclosure of the Author’s name having in a great meas- ure restored to him a sort of parental control over these Works, he is naturally induced to give them to the press ina corrected, and, he hopes, an improved form, while life and health permit the task of revising and illustrating them. Such being his purpose, it is necessary to say a few words on the plan of the proposed Edition. In stating it to be revised and corrected, it is not to be inferred that any attempt is made to alter the tenor of the stories, the character of the actors, or the spirit of the dialogue. There is no doubt ample room for emendation in all these points—but where the tree falls it must lie. Any attempt to obviate criticism, how- ever just, by altering a work already in the hands of the public, ly unsuccessful. In the most improbable fiction the reader still desires some air of vraisemblance, and does not relish that the incidents of a tale familiar to him should be altered to suit the taste of critics, or the caprice of the author himself. This process of feeling is so natural that it may be observed even in children, who cannot endure that a nursery story should be re- peated to them differently from the manner in which it was first told. But without altering in the slightest degree either the story or the mode of telling it, the Author has taken this opportunity to correct errors of the press and slips of the pen. Thatsuch should exist cannot be wondered at, when it is considered that the Pub- lishers found it their interest to hurry through the press a succes- sion of the early editions of the various Novels, and that the Author had not the usual opportunity of revision. It is hoped is general ry 7 j Rn ON ESS ro si a 5 ag ee ernel A ig i it A L oan de iv ADVERTISEMENT. that the present edition will be found free from errors of that ac- cidental kind. The Author has also ventured to make some emendations of a different character, which, without being such apparent deviations from the original stories as to disturb the reader’s old associations, will, he thinks, add something to the spirit of the dialogue, narra- tive, and description. These consist in occasional pruning where the language is redundant, compression where the style is loose, nfusion of vigor where it is languid, the exchange of less forcible for more appropriate epithets—slight alterations, in short, like the last touches of an artist, which contribute to heighten and finish the picture, though an inexperienced eye can hardly detect in what they consist. The General Preface to the new Edition, and the Introductory Notices to each separate work, will contain an account of such circumstances attending the first publication of the Novels and Tales as may appear interesting in themselves or proper to be communicated to the public. The Author also proposes to pub- lish on this occasion the various legends, family traditions, or ob- scure historical facts, which have formed the ground-work of these Novels, and to give some account of the places where the scenes are laid, when these are altogether or in part real; as well as a statement of particular incidents founded on fact ; together with a more copious Glossary, and Notes explanatory of the ancient cus- toms and popular superstitions referred to in the Romances. Upon the whole, it is hoped that the Waverley Novels, in their new dress, will not be found to have lost any part of their attrac- tions in consequence of receiving illustrations by the Author, and undergoing his careful revision. ABBOTSFORD, Yanuary, 1829.=e uw ot BD GTOBER, °F, To this slight attempt at a sketch of ancient Scottish manners the public have been more favorable than the Author durst have hoped or expected. He has heard, with a mixture of satisfaction and. humility, his work ascribed to more than one respectable name. Considerations, which seem weighty in his particular situ- ation, prevent his releasing those gentlemen from suspicion by placing his own name in the title-page ; so that for the present, at least, it must remain uncertain whether ‘‘ Waverley” be the work of a poet or a critic, a lawyer or aclergyman, or whether the writer, to use Mrs. Malaprop’s phrase, be ** like Cerberus—three gentlemen at once.” The Author, as he is unconscious of anything in the work itself (except, perhaps, its frivolity) which prevents its finding an acknowledged father, leaves it to the candor of the pub- lic to choose among the many circumstances peculiar to different } | situations in life, such as may induce him to suppress his name on the present occasion. He may be a writer new to publication, and unwilling to avow a ¢ haracter to which he is unaccustomed, or he may be a hackneyed author who is ashamed of too-frequent appear- ance, and employs this mystery, as the heroine of the old comedy used her mask to attract the attention of those to whom her face had become too familiar. He may be a man of a grave profession, to whom the reputation of being a novel-writer may be prejudicial ; or he may be a manof fashion, to whom writing of any kind might appear pedantic. He may be too young to assume the character of an author, or so old as to make it advisable to lay it aside. The Author of ‘‘ Waverley” has heard it objected to this novel, that in the character of Callum Beg, and in the account given by the Baron of Bradwardine, of the petty trespasses of the Highland- ers upon trifling articles of property, he has borne hard, and un- justly so, upon their national character. Nothing could be farther from his wish or intention. The character of Callum Beg is that of a spirit naturally turned to daring evil, and determined by the circumstances of his situation to a particular species of mischief. eT ee ~ *i Fi 4 ae F Vi SEKSSIBAN CIE, WO) MIEIE, HISHURIO. JOSOMTETHOINE Those who have perused the curious “ Letters from the Highlands,” published about 1726, will find instances of such atrocious charac- ters which fell under the writer’s own observation, thoughit would be most unjust to consider such villains as representatives of the Highlanders of that period, any more than the murderers of Marr and Williamson can be supposed to represent the English of the present day. As for the plunder supposed to have been picked up by some of the insurgents in 1745, it must be remembered that, although the way of that unfortunate little army was neither marked by devastation nor bloodshed, but, on the contrary, was orderly and quiet in a most wonderful degree, yet no army marches through a country in a hostile manner without commit- ting some depredations ; and several to the extent and of the nat- ure jocularly imputed to them by the Baron, were really laid to the charge of the Highland insurgents ; for which many traditions, and particularly one respecting the Knight of the Mirror, may be quoted as good evidence.* * See note, Author's address to all in general, Pp. 413.GENERAL PREFACE, 18209. — And must I ravel out My weaved-up follies >—RICHARD II. Act IV. HAVING undertaken to give an Introductory Account of the compositions which are here offered to the public with Notes and Illustrations, the Author, under whose name they are now for the first time collected, feels that he has the delicate task of speaking more of himself and his personal concerns, than may perhaps be either graceful or prudent. In this particular, he runs the risk of presenting himself to the public in the relation that the dumb wife in the jest-book held to her husband, when, having spent half of his fortune to obtain the cure of her imperfection, he was willing to have bestowed the other half to restore her to her former condi- tion. But this is a risk inseparable from the task which the Author has undertaken, and he can only promise to be as little of an ego- tist as the situation will permit. It is perhaps an indifferent sign of a disposition to keep his word, that having introduced himself in the third person singular, he proceeds in the second paragraph to make use of the first. But it appears to him that the seeming modesty connected with the former mode of writing is overbalanced by the inconvenience of stiffness and affectation which attends it during a narrative of some length, and which may be observed less Or more in every work in which the third person is used, from the Commentaries of Cesar, to the Autobiography of Alexander the Corrector.* I must refer to a very early period of my life, were I to point out my first achievements as a tale-teller—but I believe some of my old schoolfellows can still bear witness that I had a distinguished character for that talent, at a time when the applause of my com- panions was my recompense for the disgraces and punishments which the future romance-writer incurred for being idle himself, and keeping others idle, during hours that should have been em- ployed on our tasks. The chief enjoyment of my holidays was to escape with a chosen friend, who had the same taste with myself, and alternately to recite to each other such wild adventures as we were able to devise. We told, each in turn, interminable tales of * ALEXANDER THE CORRECTOR, aname assumed by Alexander Cruden, best known as the author of the Concordance. Among various other pamph- lets, he published in three parts ‘‘ The Adventures of Alexander the Correct- or,” 1754 and 1755—“‘ exhibiting,”” says Alexander Chalmers, ‘‘a species of insanity which is almost unique. ” S . “GBB recenarnes aoe Re cenecr stentees - yy Paine ee ee ae Viil GENERAL PREFACE, knight-errantry and battles and enchantments, which were con- tinued from one day to another as opportunity offered, without our ever thinking of bringing them to a conclusion. As we observeda strict secrecy on the subject of this intercourse, it acquired all the character of a concealed pleasure ; and we used to-select, for the scenes of our indulgence, long walks through the solitary and ro- mantic environs of Arthur’s Seat, Salisbury Crags, Braid Hills, and similar places in the vicinity of Edinburgh ; and the recollection of those holidays still forms an oaszs in the pilgrimage which I have tolook back upon. I have only to add that my friend ™ still lives, a prosperous gentleman, but too much occupied with graver busi- ness to thank me for indicating him more plainly as a confidant of my childish mystery. When boyhood advancing into youth required more serious studies and graver cares, a long illness threw me back on the king- dom of fiction as if it were by aspecies of fatality. My indisposition arose, in part at least, from my having broken a blood-vessel ; and motion and speech were for a long time pronounced positively dan- gerous. For several weeks I was confined strictly to my bed, during which time I was not allowed to speak above a whisper, to eat more than a spoonful or two of boiled rice, or to have more covering than one thin counterpane. When the reader is informed that I was at this time a growing youth, with the spirits, appetite, and impatience of fifteen, and suffered, of course, greatly under this severe regi- men, which the repeated return of my disorder rendered indispen- sable, he will not be surprised that I was abandoned to my own discretion, so far as reading (my almost sole amusement) was con- cerned, and still less so, that I abused the indulgence which left my time so much at my own disposal. There was at this time a circulating library in Edinburgh, founded, I believe, by the celebrated Allan Ramsay, which, be- sides containing a most respectable collection of books of every description, was, as might have been expected, peculiarly rich in works of fiction. It exhibited specimens of every kind, from the romances of chivalry and the ponderous folios of Cyrus and Cas- sandra, down to the most approved works of later times. I was plunged into this great ocean of reading without compass or pilot ; and unless when someone had the charity to play at chess with me, I was allowed to do nothing save read, from morning to night. I was, in kindness and pity, which was perhaps erroneous, however natural, permitted to select my subjects of study at my own pleasure, upon the same principle that the humors of chil- dren are indulged to keep them out of mischief. As my taste and appetite were gratified in nothing else, I indemnified myself by becoming a glutton of books. Accordingly, I believe I read almost all the romances, old plays, and epic poetry in that for- midable collection, and no doubt was unconsciously amassing materials for the task in which it has been my lot to be so much employed. At the same time I did not in all respects abuse the license *John Irving, writer to the Signet, Edinburgh, died 1850.GENERAL PREFACE, 1X permitted me. Familiar acquaintance with the specious miracles of fiction brought with it some degree of satiety, and I began, by degrees, to seek in histories, men noirs, voyages, and travels : and the like, events nearly as wonderful as those which were the work of imagination, with the additional adv antage that they were at least in a great measure true. The lapse ‘of nearly two years, during which I was left to the exercise of my own free will, was followed by a temporary residence in the country, where I was again very lonely but for the amusement which I derived from a sood though old-fashioned lil rary. The vague and wild use which I made of this advantage I cannot describe better than by refer- ring my reader to the desultory studies of W averley in a similar situ lation ; the passages concerning whose course of reading were imitated from recollections of my own.—It must be that the resemblance extends no further. Time, as it glided on, BHbuiht the blessing of confirmed health and personal strength, to a degree which had never been expected or hoped for. The severe studies necessary to render me fit for my profession occupied the greater part of my time; and the society of my friends and companions who were about to enter life along with me, filled up thesinterval with the usual amusements of young men. I was in a situation which rendered serious labor indispensable ; for, aoe possessing, on the one hand, any of those peculiar advantages which are supposed to favor a hasty ad- vance in the p ieee of the law, nor being, on the other hand, exposed to unusual obstacles to interrupt my progress, I mi cht reasonably expect to succeed according to the greater or less de- gree of trouble Wikich I should take to qualify myself as a pleader. It makes no part of the present story to detail how the success of a few ballads had the effect of changing all the purpose and tenor of my life, and of converting a painstaking lawyer of some years’ standing into a follower of literature. It is enough to say, that I had assumed the latter character for several years before I seriously thought of attempting a work of imagination in prose, although one or two of my political attempts did not differ from romances otherwise than by being written in verse. But yet. I may observe, that about this time (now, alas! thirty years since) I had nourished the ambitious desire of composing a tale of chiv- alry, which was to be in the style of the Castle of Otranto, with plenty of Border characters and supernatural incidents. Having found unexpectedly a chapter of this intended work among some old papers, I have subjoined it to this intro€uctory essay, thinking some readers may account for as curious, the first attempts at romantic composition by an author who has since written so much in that department.* And those who complain, not unreasonably, of the profusion of the Tales which have followed ‘‘ Waverley,” may bless their stars at the narrow escape they have made, by the commencement of the inundation which had so nearly taken place in the first year of the century, being postponed for fifteen years tater, understood * See the Fragment alluded to, in the Appendix No. 1. h 3 Re we eee ieeome eh ane hS RRR rr) eA eee nie sameetubisii sbaiadilasetuedalithaca eee = a GENERA Ls PREFA GLE. This particular subject was never resumed, but I did not aban- don the idea of fictitious composition in prose, though I deter- mined to give another turn to the style of the work. My early recollections of the Highland scenery and customs made so favorable an impression in the poem called the Lady of the Lake, that I was induced to think of attempting something of the same kind in prose. I had been a good deal in the Highlands at a time when they were much less accessible and much less visited than they have been of late years, and was acquainted with many of the old warriors of 1745, who were, like most veterans, easily induced to fight their battles over again for the benefit of a willing listener like myself. It naturally occurred to me that the ancient traditions and high spirit of a people who, living in a civ- ilized age and country, retained so strong a tincture of manners belonging to an early period of society, must afford a subject favor- able for romance, if it should not prove a curious tale marred in the telling. It was with some idea of this kind that about the year 1805, I threw together about one-third part of the first volume of ‘« Waverley.” It was advertised to be published by the late Mr. John Ballantyne, bookseller in Edinburgh, under the name of ‘¢ Waverley ; or, ’Tis Fifty Years Since,” a title afterward altered to ‘*’Tis Sixty Years Since,” that the actual date of publication might be made to correspond with the period in which the scene was laid. Having proceeded as far, I think, as the Seventh Chap- ter, I showed my work to a critical friend, whose opinion was un- favorable ; and having then some poetical reputation, I was unwil- ling to risk the loss of it by attempting a new style of composition. I therefore threw aside the work I had commenced, without either reluctance or remonstrance. I ought to add that, though my in- genious friend’s sentence was afterward reversed on an appeal to the public, it cannot be considered as any imputation on his good taste, for the specimen subjected to his criticism did not extend beyond the departuve of the hero for Scotland, and consequently had not entered upon the part of the story which was finally found most interesting. Be that as it may, this portion of the manuscript was laid aside in the drawers of an old writing-desk, which, on my first coming to reside at Abbotsford, in 1811, was placed in a lumber garret, and entirely forgotten. Thus, though I sometimes, among other literary avocations, turned my thoughts to the continuation of the romance which I had commenced, yet, as I could not find what | had already written. after searching such repositories as were within my reach, and was too indolent to attempt to write it anew from memory, I as often laid aside all thoughts of that nat- ure. Two circumstances in particular recalled my recollection of the mislaid manuscript. The first was the extended and well-merited fame of Miss Edgeworth, whose Irish characters have gone so far to make the English familiar with the character of their gay and kind-hearted neighbors of Ireland, that she may be truly said toGENERAL PREFACE. Xi have done more toward completing the Union than perhaps all the legislative enactments by which it has been followed up. Without being so presumptuous as to hope to emulate the rich humor, pathetic tenderness, and admirable tact which pervaded the works of my accomplished friend, I felt that something might be attempted for my own country of the same kind with that which Miss Edgeworth so fortunately achieved for Ireland—something which might introduce her natives to those of the sister kingdom in . more favorable light than they had been placed hitherto, and tend to procure sympathy for their virtues and indulgence for their foibles. I thought also that much of what I wanted in talent might be made up by the intimate acquaintance with the subject which [ could lay claim to possess, as having travelled through most parts of Scotland, both Highland and Lowland; having been familiar with the elder as well as more modern race; and having had from my infancy free and unrestrained communication with all the ranks of my countrymen, from the Scottish peer to the Scottish plough- man. Such ideas often occurred to me,and constituted an am- bitious branch of my theory, however far short I may have fallen of it in practice. But it was not only the triumphs of Miss Edgeworth which worked in me emulation, and disturbed my indolence. I chanced actually to engage ina work which formed a sort of easy piece, and gave me hope that I might in time become free of the craft of romance writing, and be esteemed a tolerable workman. In the year of 1807-8 I undertook, at the request of John Murray, Esq., of Albemarle Street, to arrange for publication some posthumous productions of the late Mr. Joseph Strutt, dis- tinguished as an artist and an antiquary, amongst which was an unfinished romance entitled ‘‘ Queenhoo-Hall.” The scene of the tale was laid in the reign of Henry VI., and the work was written to illustrate the manners, customs, and language of the people of England during that period. The extensive acquaintance which Mr. Strutt had acquired with such subjects in compiling his labori- ous ‘f Horda Angel Cynnan,” his ‘‘ Royal and Ecclesiastical An- tiquities,” and his ‘‘ Essays on the Sports and Pastimes of the People of England,” had rendered him familiar with all the anti- quarian lore necessary for the purpose of composing the projected romance; and although the manuscript bore the marks of hurry and incoherence natural to the first rough draught of the author, it evinced (in my opinion) considerable powers of imagination. As the Work was unfinished I deemed it my duty, as Editor, to supply such a hasty and inartificial conclusion as could be shaped out from the story, of which Mr. Strutt had laid the founda- tion. This concluding chapter* is also added to the present In- troduction, for the reason already mentioned regarding the preced- ing fragment. It was a step in my advance toward romantic com- position ; and to preserve the traces of these is in a great measure the object of this Essay. ”) *See Appendix No. II., p. 422. On SSR ee m ESSA ee ot eaSe SS a - ne GENERAL PREFACE. ‘“Queenhoo- Hall” was not, however, very successful. I thought I was aware of the reason, and supposed that, by rendering his lan- guage too ancient, and displaying his antiquarian knowledge too liberally, the ingenious author had raised up an obstacle to his own success. Every work designed for mere amusement must be ex- pressed in language easily comprehended ; and when, as is some- times the case in ‘‘ Queenhoo-Hall,” the author addresses himself exclusively to the Antiquary, he must be content to be dismissed by the general reader with the criticism of Mungo, in the “‘ Pad- lock,” on the Mauritanian music, ‘‘ What signifies me hear, if me no understand ? ” I conceived it possible to avoid this error ; and by rendering a similar work more light and obvious to general comprehension, to escape the rock on which my predecessor was shipwrecked. But I was, on the other hand, so far discouraged by the indifferent re- ception of Mr. Strutt’s romance, as to become satisfied that the manners of the Middle Ages did not possess the interest which I had conceived ; and was led to form the opinion that a romance founded on a Highland story, and more modern events, would have a better chance of popularity than a tale of chivalry. My thoughts, therefore, returned more than once to the tale which | had actually commenced, and accident at length threw the lost sheets in my way. I happened to want some fishing-tackle for the use of a guest, when it occurred to me to search the old writing-desk already men- tioned, in which I used to keep articles of that nature. I got access to it with some difficulty, and in looking for lines and flies the long-lost manuscript presented itself. I immediately set to work to complete it according to my original purpose. And here I must frankly confess that the modé in which I conducted the story scarcely deserved the success which the romance afterward attained. The tale of ‘‘ Waverley” was put together with so little care, that I cannot boast of having sketched any distinct plan of the work. The whole adventures of Waverley, in his movements up and down the country with the Highland cateran Bean Lean, are managed without much skill. It suited best, however, the road I wanted to travel, and permitted me to introduce some de- scriptions of scenery and manners to which the reality gave an in- terest which the powers of the author might have otherwise failed to attain forthem. And though I have been in other instances a sinner in this sort, I do not recollect any of these novels in which I have trangressed so widely as in the first of the series. Among other unfounded reports, it has been said the copyright of ‘‘ Waverley” was, during the book’s progress through the press, offered for sale to various booksellers in London at a very incon- siderable price. This was not the case. Messrs. Constable & Cadell, who published the work, were the only persons acquainted with the contents of the publication, and they offered a large sum for it while in the course of printing, which, however, was declined, the author not choosing to part with the copyright. The origin of the story of ‘‘ Waverley,” and the particular factsGENERAL, PREFACE. XH on which it is founded, are given in the ie irate Introduction pre- fixed to that romance in this edition, and require no notice in this place Waverley ’was published in 1814, and as the title-page was without the name of the author, bee work was left to we its way in the world without any of the usual recommendations. Its prog- ress was for some time slow; but after the first two or three months, its popularity had increased in a degree which must have satisfied the expectations of the author, had these been far more sanguine than he ever entertained. Great anxiety was expressed to learn the name of the author. but on this no authentic information could be obtained. My orig- inal motive for oe the work anonymously, was the con- sciousness that it was an experiment on the public taste which might very probably ‘fail, and therefore there was no occasion to take on myself the personal risk of discomfiture. For this pur- 1 pose considerable precautions were used to preserve secrecy. My old friend and school-fellow, Mr. James Ballantyne, who printed these Novels, had the exclusive task of corresponding with the Author, who thus had not only the advantage of his professional talents, but also of his critical abilities. The a manuscript, or, as it is technically allel, copy, was transcribed under Mr. Bal- lantyne’s eye, by confidential persons ; nor was there any instance of treachery durin 1g the many years in which these precautions were resorted to, although various individuals were employed at different times. Double proof-sheets were regularly printed off. One was forwarded to the author by Mr. Ballantyne, and the al- terations which it received were, by his own hand, copied upon the other proof-sheet for the use of the printers, so that even the cor- rected proofs of the author were never seen in the printing-office ; and thus the curiosity of such eager inquirers as made the most minute investigation, was entirely at fault. But although the cause of concealing the author’s name in the first instance, when the reception of “‘ Waverley” was doubtful, was natural enough, it is more difficult, it may be thought, to account for the same desire for secrecy during the subsequent editions, to the amount of betwixt eleven and twelve thousand copies, which followed each other close, and proved the success of the work. I m sorry I can give little satisfaction to queries on the subject. I have already stated elsewhere, that I can render little better reason for choosing to remain anonymous, than by saying with Shylock, that such was my humor. It will be observed, that I eal not the usual stimulus for desiring personal reputation, the desire, namely, to float amidst the conversation of men. Of nce fame, whether merited or undeserved, I had already as much as might have contented a mind more ambitious than mine; and in enter- ing into this new contest for reputation, I might be said rather to endanger what I had, than to have any considerable chance of ac- quiring more. I was affected, too, by none of those motives which, at an early period ee ife, would doubtless have operated upon me. My friendships were formed—my place in society fixed—my life * ‘ele ES Ee eee ra ton kit os enero earbaa ai benabienb ab itahaiaetn ares a ‘i ee [4 RIV GENERAL PREFACE, had attained its middle course. My condition in society was higher perhaps than I deserved, certainly as high as I wished, and there was scarce any degree of literary success which could have greatly altered or improved my personal condition. I was not, therefore, touched by the spur of ambition, usually stimulating on such occasions; and yet I ought to stand exculpat- ed from the charge of ungracious or unbecoming indifference to public applause. I did not the less feel gratitude for the public favor, although I did not proclaim it—as the lover who wears his mistress’s favor in his bosom is as proud, though not so vain of possessing it, as another who displays the token of her grace upon his bonnet. For from such an ungracious state of mind 1 have seldom felt more satisfaction than when, returning from a pleasure voyage, I found ‘‘ Waverley” in the zenith of popularity, and public curiosity in full cry after the name of the author. The knowledge that I had the public approbation was like having the property of a hidden treasure, not less gratifying to the owner than if all the world knew that it was hisown. Another advantage was connected with the secrecy which I observed. I could appear or retreat from the stage at pleasure, without attracting any personal notice or at- tention, other than what might be founded on suspicion only. In my own person also, as a successful author in another department of literature, I might have been charged with too frequent intru- sions on the public patience; but the Author of ‘‘ Waverley” was in this respect as impassible to the critic as the Ghost of Hamlet to the partisan of Marcellus. Perhaps the curiosity of the public, irritated by the existence of a secret, and kept afloat by the discus- sions which took place on the subject from time to time, went a good way to maintain an unabated interest in these frequent publi- cations. There was a mystery concerning the author which each new novel was expected to assist in unravelling, although it might in other respects rank lower than its predecessors. I may perhaps be thought guilty of affectation, should I allege as one reason of my silence a secret dislike to enter on personal discussions concerning my own literary labors. It is in every case a dangerous intercourse for an author to be dwelling continually among those who make his writings a frequent and familiar sub- ject of conversation, but who must necessarily be partial judges of works composed in their own society. The habits of self-impor- tance which are thus acquired by authors are highly injurious to a well-regulated mind ; for the cup of flattery, if it does not, like that of Circe, reduce men to the level of beasts, is sure, if eagerly drained, to bring the best and the ablest down to that of fools. This risk was in some degree prevented by the mask which I wore, and my own stores of self-conceit were left to their natural course without being enhanced by the partiality of friends or the adula- tion of flatterers. If I am asked further reasons for the conduct I have long ob- served I can only resort to the explanation supplied by a critic as friendly as he is intelligent—namely, that the mental organization of the Novelist must be characterized, to speak craniologically, byGENERAL PREFACE. an extraordinary development of the passion for delitescency ! the rather suspect some natural disposition of this kind, for from the instant I perceived the extreme curiosity manifested on the subject I felt a secret satisfaction in baffling it, for which, when its unimportance is considered, I do not well know how to account. My desire to remain concealed in the character of the Author of these Novels subjected me occasionally to awkward embarrass- ments, as it sometimes happened that those who were sufficiently intimate with me would put the question in direct terms. In this case only one of three courses could be followed: Either I must have surrendered my secret or have returned an equivocating answer, or, finally, must have stoutly and boldly dex nied the fact. The first was a sacrifice which I conceive no oné€ had a right to force from me, since I alone was concerned in the matter. The alternative of rendering a doubtful answer must have left me open to the degrading suspicion that I was not unwilling to assume the merit (if f there was any) which I dared not absolutely lay claim to ; or those who me tas more justly of me must have received such an equivocs al answer as an indirect avowal. I therefore con- sidered myself Seno like an accused person put upon trial, to refuse giving my own evidence to my own conviction, and flatly to deny all that could not be proved against me. At the same time I usually qualified my denial by stating that, had I been the author of these works, I would have felt myself quite entitled to protect my secret by refusing my own evidence when it was asked for to accomplish a discovery of what I desired to conceal. The real ‘truth is, that I never expected or hoped to disguise my connection with these Novels from anyone who lived on terms of intimacy with me. The number of coincidences which neces- sarily existed between narratives recounted, modes of expression, and opinions broached in these Tales, and such as were used by their author in the intercourse of private life, must have been far too great to permit any of my familiar acquaintances to doubt the identity betwixt their friend and the Author of ‘* Waverley;” and I believe they were all morally convinced of it. But while I was myself silent, their belief could not weigh much more with the world than that of others ; their opinions and reasoning were lia- ble to be taxed with partiality or confronted with opposing argu- ments and opinions, ae fhe question was not so much whether | should be generally acknowledged to be the author, in spite of my own denial, as whether even my own avowal of the works, if such should be made, would be sufficient to put me in undisputed pos- session of that character. I have been often asked concerning supposed cases in which | was said to have been placed on the verge of discovery, but, as | maintained my point with the composure of a lawyer of thirty years’ standing, I never recollect being in pain or confusion on the sub- ject. In Captain Medwyn’s ‘‘ Conversations of Lord Byron” the reporter states himself to have asked my noble and highly-gifted friend ‘‘if he was certain about these Novels being Sir Walter Seotts?” Fa whieh. Lord. Byron: replied; ‘‘ Scott as muchas * i ~ nae annicniiiibadennese Dee fe ocunienens sest cee STAsule P epiihiRRademaa reece Tass ‘— XV1 GENERAL PREFACE, owned himself the Author of “Waverley” to me in Murtay’s shop. I was talking to him about that novel, and lamented that its author had not carried back the story nearer to the time of the Revolution. Scott, entirely off his guard, replied, ‘ Ay, I might have done so, but There he stopped. It was in vain to at- tempt to correct himself; he looked confused, and relieved his embarrassment by a precipitate retreat.” I have no recollection whatever of this scene taking place, and I should have thought that I was more likely to have laughed than to appear confused, for I certainly never hoped to impose upon Lord Byron in a case of the kind ; and from the manner in which he uniformly expressed him- self, 1 knew his opinion was entirely formed, and that any dis- clamations of mine would only have savored of affectation. I do not mean to insinuate that the incident did not happen, but only that it could hardly have occurred exactly under the circumstances narrated without my recollecting something positive on the sub- ject. In another part of the same volume, Lord Byron is reported to have expressed a supposition that the cause of my not avowing myself the Author of ‘* Waverley”? may have been some surmise that the reigning family would have been displeased with the work. I can only say it is the last apprehension I should have entertained, as indeed the inscription to these volumes sufficiently proves. The sufferers of that melancholy period have, during the last and pres- ent reign, been honored both with the sympathy and protection of the reigning family, whose magnanimity can well pardon a sigh from others, and bestow one themselves to the memory of brave opponents, who did nothing in hate, but all in honor. While those who were in habitual intercourse with the real author had little hesitation in assigning the literary property to him, others, and those critics of no mean rank, employed them- selves in investigating with persevering patience any characteristic features which might seem to betray the original of these Novels. Amongst these, one gentleman, equally remarkable for the kind and liberal tone of his criticism, the acuteness of his reasoning, and the very gentlemanlike manner in which he conducted his in- quiries, displayed not only powers of accurate investigation, but a temper of mind deserving to be employed on a subject of much greater importance, and, I have no doubt, made converts to his opinion of almost all who thought the point worthy of considera- ation.* Of those letters, and other attempts of the same kind, the author could not complain, though his incognito was endangered. He had challenged the public to a game at bo-peep, and if he was discovered in his “‘ hiding-hole,” he must submit to the shame of detection. Various reports were of course circulated in various ways ; some founded on an accurate rehearsal of what may have been partly real, some on circumstances having no concern whatever with the subject, and others on the invention of some impor- tunate persons, who might perhaps imagine that the readiest * Letters on the Author of Waverley ; Rodwell & Martin, London, 1822,GENERAL PREFACE. xvi mode of forcing the author to disclose himselt was to assign some dishonorable and discreditable cause for his silence. It may be easily supposed that this sort of inquisition was treat- ed with contempt by the person whom it principally regarded ; as among all the rumors that were current tHere was only one, and that as unfounded as the others, which had nevertheless some alliance to probability, and indeed might have proved in some degree true. I allude to a report which ascribed a great part, or the whole, of these Novels to the late Thomas Scott, Esq., of fae 70th Regi- ment, then stationed in Canada. Those who remember that gen- tleman will readily grant that, with general talents at least equal to those of his elder brother, he added a power of social humor, and a deep insight into human character, which rendered him a universally delightful member of soc iety, and that the habit of composition alone was wanting to render him equally successful asa writer. The Author of ‘‘ Waverley” was so persuaded of the truth of this, that he warmly pressed his brother to make such an experiment, and willingly ein th io all the trouble of correc ting and superintending the press. Thomas Scott seemed at first very well disposed to embrace te proposal, and had even fixed on a subject and ahero. The latter wasa person well known to both of us in our a yyish years, from having displayed some strong traits of characte Mr. T. Scott had determined to represent his youthful Teg dain sib as emigrating to America, and encounter- ing the dangers and hardships of the New World, with the same dauntless spirit which he had displayed when a boy in his native country. Mr. Scott would probably have been highly successful, being familiarly acquainted with the manners of the native In- dians, of the old French settlers in Canada, and of the Brulés or Woodsmen, and having the power of observing with accuracy what, I have no doubt, he could have sketched with force and expression. In short, the Author believes his brother would have made himself distinguished in that striking field in which, since that period, Mr. Cooper has achieved so many triumphs. But Mr. IT. Scott was already affected ms bad health, which wholly unfitted him for literary labor, even if he could have reconciled his patience to the task. He never, I beli leve, wrote a single line of the projected work; and | ule ela the melancholy pleasure of preserving in the Appendix * the simple anecdote on which he proposed to found it. To this I may add, I can easily conceive that there may have been circumstances which gave a color to the general report of my brother being interested in these works ; and in particular that it might derive strength from my having occasion to remit to him, in consequence of certain family transactions, some considerable sums of money about that period. To which it is to be added, that if any person chanced to evince particular curiosity on such a subject, my brother was likely enough to divert himself with practising on their credulity. * See Appendix No. III., p. 431. Reas Sikes laine kee ere oa . ~ XVili CAVE TAL PILHA CTS. It may be mentioned that, while the paternity of these Novels was from time to time warmly disputed in Britain, the foreign booksellers expressed no hesitation on the matter, but affixed my name to the whole of the Novels, and to some besides to which I had no claim. The volumes, therefore, to which the present pages form a Preface are entirely the composition of the Author, by whom they are now acknowledged, with the exception, always, of avowed quotations, and such unpremeditated and involuntary plagiarisms as can scarce be guarded against by any one who has read and written a great deal. The original manuscripts are all in exist- ence. and entirely written (horre sco referens) in the Author’s own hand, excepting during the years 1818 and 1819, when, being af- fected with severe illness, he was obliged to employ the assistance of a friendly amanuensis. The number of persons to whom the secret was necessarily en- trusted or communicated by chance amounted, I should think, to twenty at least, to whom I am greatly obliged for the fide elity with which they observed that trust, until the “dei ‘angement of the affairs of my publishers, Messrs. Constable & Co., and the e€xpos- ure of their accompt-books, which was the necessary consequence, rendered secrecy no longer possible. The particulars attending the avowal have ae aid before the public in the Introduction to the ‘‘ Chronicles of the Canongate.’ The preliminary advertisement has given a sketch of the pur- pose of this edition. I have some reason to fear that the notes which accompany the tales, as now published, may be thought too miscellaneous and egotistical. It may be some apology ‘for this, that the publication was intended to be posthumous ; and still more, that old men may be permitted to speak long, because they cannot in the course of nature have long time to speak. In pre- paring the present edition, I have done all that I can do to explain the nature of my materials, and the use I have made of them ; nor is it probable that I shall again revise or even read these tales. I was therefore desirous rather to exceed in the portion of new and explanatory matter which is added to this edition, than that the reader should have reason to complain that the information communicated was of a general and merely nominal character. It remains to be tried whether the public (like a child to whom a watch is shown) will, after having been satiated with looking at the outside, acquire some new interest in the object when it is opened, and the internal machinery displayed to them. That ‘* Waverley” and its successors have had their day of favor and popularity must be admitted with sincere gratitude ; and the Author has studied (with the prudence of a beauty whose reign has been rather long) to supply, by the assistance of art, the charms which novelty no longer affords. The publishers have en- deavored to gratify the honorable partiality of the public for the encouragement of British art, by illustrating this edition (1820) with designs by the most eminent living artists. To my distinguished countryman, David Wilkie ; to Edwin Land:GENERAL PREFACE. Rs seer, who has exercised his talents so much on Scottish subjects and scenery; to Messrs. Leslie and Newton, my thanks are due, from a friend as well as an author. Nor am I less obliged to Messrs. Cooper, Kidd, and other artists of distinction am less personally known, for the ready zeal with whic] devoted their talents to the same purpose, Further explanation respecting the Edition is the business of the publisher, not of the Author; and here. therefore, the latter has accomplished his task of Introduction and explanation.* If, like a spoiled child, he has sometimes abused or trifled with the indulgence of the public, he feels himself entitled to full belief, when he exculpates himself from a charge of having been at any time insensible of their kindness. to whom | 1 they have ABBOTSFORD, Yanuary 1, 1829. * The publication of Waverley, see Note, p. 286. eR ae C4 } E4 C4a e Fi 4 V4 é 4 bihntnvcrd ab dsweanion, &WAVERLEY: OR, ple Ltd, lo.) BAA Ie NCE. CHAP LER FIRST. INTRODUCTORY. THE title of this work has not been chosen without the grave and solid deliberation which matters of importance de- mand from the prudent. Even its first, or general denomina- tion, was the result of no common research or selection, al- though, according to the example of my predecessors, I had only to seize upon the most sounding and euphonic surname that English history or topography affords, and elect it at once as the title of my work, and the name of my hero, But, alas! what could my readers have expected from the chivalrous epi- thets of Howard, Mordaunt, Mortimer, or Stanley, or from th softer and more sentimental sounds of Belmour, Belville, Be field, and Belgrave, but pages of inanity, similar to those which have been so christened for half a century past! I must modestly admit I am too diffident of my own merit to place it in unnecessary opposition to preconceived associations : I have therefore, like a maiden knight with his white shield, assumed for my hero, WAVERLEY, an uncontaminated name, bearing with its sound little of good or evil, excepting what the reader shall hereafter be pleased to affix to it. But my second or supple- mental title was a matter of much more difficult election, since that, short as it is, may be held as pledging the author to sume special mode of laying his scene, drawing his characters, and managing his adventures. Had I, for example, announced in my frontispiece, “‘ Waverley, a Tale of other Days,” must not every novel-reader have anticipated a castle scarce less than that of Udolpho, of which the eastern wing had long been uninhabited and the keys either lost or consigned to the care of some aged @ jad ROR eS Pee ttex thtda eee eee rors oz, bare . WAVERLEY. butler or housekeeper, whose trembling steps, about the middle of the second volume, were doomed to guide the hero or heroine, to the ruinous precincts? Would not the owl have shrieked and the cricket cried in my very title-page ? and could it have been possible for me, with a moderate attention to decorum, to introduce any scene more lively than might be produced by the jocularity of a clownish but faithful valet, or the garrulous nar- rative of the heroine’s fille-de-chambre, when rehearsing the stories of blood and horror which she had heard in the servants hall? Again, had my title borne, ‘‘ Waverley, a Romance from the German,” what head so obtuse as not to image forth a pro- fligate abbot, an Oppressive duke, a secret and mysterious as- sociation of Rosicrusians and Illuminati, with all their proper- ties of black cowis, caverns, daggers, electrical machines, trap- doors, and dark-lanterns? Or if I had rather chosen to call my work a “Sentimental Tale,” would it not have been a suffi- cient presage of aheroine with a profusion of auburn hair, ane a harp, the soft solace of her solitary hours, which she fortu- nately finds always the means of transporting from castle ta cottage, although she herself be sometimes obliged to jump out of a two-pair-of-stairs window, and is more than once be- wildered on her journey, alone and on foot, without any guide but a blowsy peasant girl, whose jargon she hardly can under- stand? Or again, if my Waverley had been entitled “A Tale a) of the Times,” wouldst thou not, gentle reader, have demanded from me a dashing sketch of the fashionable world, a few anec- dotes of private scandal thinly veiled, and if lusciously painted, so much the better? a heroine from Grosvenor Square, and a hero from the Barouche Club or the Four-in-Hand, with a set of subordinate characters from the elegantes of Queen Anne Street East, or the dashing heroes of the Bow Street Office? I could proceed in proving the importance of a title-page, and displaying at the same time my own intimate knowledge of the particular ingredients necessary to the composition of romances and novels of various descriptions: but it is enough, and I scorn to tyrannize longer over the impatience of my reader, who is doubtless already anxious to know the choice made by an author so profoundly versed in the different branches of his art. By fixing, then, the date of my story Sixty Years before this present 1st November, 1805, I would have my readers un- derstand that they will meet in the following pages neither a romance of chivalry, nor a tale of modern manners; that my hero will neither have iron on his shoulders, as of yore, nor on the heels of his boots, as is the present fashion of Bond Street ;WAVERLEY. 3 and that my damsels will neither be clothed “in purple and in pall,” like the Lady Alice of an old ballad, nor reduced to the primitive nakedness of a modern fashionable at a rout. From this my choice of an era the understanding critic may further presage, that the object of my tale is more a description of men than manners. A tale of manners, to be interesting, must either refer to antiquity so great as to have become venerable, or it must bear a vivid reflection of those scenes which are passing daily before our eyes, and are interesting from their novelty. Thus the coat-of-mail of our ancestors, and the triple-furred pelisse of our modern beaux, may, though for very different reasons, be equally fit for the array of a fictitious character ; but who, meaning the costume of his hero to be impressive, would willingly attire him in the court dress of George the Second’s reign, with its no collar, large sleeves, and low pocket: holes? The same may be urged, with equal truth, of the Go- thic hall, which, with its darkened and tinted windows, its ele- vated and gloomy roof, and massive oaken table garnished with boar’s-head and rosemary, pheasants and peacocks, cranes and cygnets, has an excellent effect in fictitious description. Much 1ay also be gained by a lively display of a modern féte, such n as we have daily recorded in that part of a newspaper entitled the Mirror of Fashion, if we contrast these, or either of them, with the splendid formality of an entertainment given Sixty Years Since ; and thus it will be readily seen how much the painter of antique or of fashionable manners gains over him who de- lineates those of the |! Considering the disadvantages inseparable from this part of my subject, I must be understood to have resolved to avoid them as much as possible, by throwing the force of my narra- tive upon the characters and passions of the actors ;—those passions common to men in all stages of society, and which « ast generation. have alike agitated the human heart, whether it throbbed under the steel corslet of the fifteenth century, the brocaded coat of the eighteenth, or the blue frock and white dimity waistcoat of the present day. Upon these passions it is no doubt true that the state of manners and laws casts a necessary coloring ; but the bearings, to use the language of heraldry, remain the same, though the tincture may be not only different, but opposed in strong contradistinction. ‘The wrath of our ancestors, for ex- ample, was colored gules, it broke forth in acts of open and sanguinary violence against the objects of its fury. Our ma- lignant feelings, which must seek gratification through more indirect channels, and undermine the obstacles which they can: not openly bear down, may be rather said to be tinctured adée.4 WAVERLEY. But the deep-ruling impulse is the same in both cases; and the proud peer, who can now only ruin his neighbor according to law, by protracted suits, is the genuine descendant of the baron who wrapped the castle of his competitor in flames, and knocked him on the head as he endeavored to escape from the confla- eration. Itis from the great book of Nature, the same through a thousand editions, whether of black-letter, or wire-wove and hot-pressed, that I have venturously essayed to read a chaptet1 to the public. Some favorable opportunities of contrast have been afforded me, by the state of society in the northern part of the island at the period of my history, and may serve at once to vary and to illustrate the moral lessons which I would willingly consider as the most important part of my plan, although I am sensible how short these will fall of their aim, fT shall be found unable to mix them with amusement,—a task not quite so easy in this critical generation as it was “ Sixty Years since.” CHAPTER SECOND. WAVERLEY-HONOUR.—A RETROSPECT. Ir is, then, sixty years since Edward Waverley, the hero of the following pages, took leave of his family to join the regi- ment of dragoons in which he had lately ovtained a commis- sion. It was a melancholy day at Waverley-Honour when the young officer parted with Sir Everard, the affectionate old nncle to whose title and estate he was presumptive heir. A difference in political opinions had early separated the baronet from his younger brether, Richard Waverley, the father of our hero. Sir Everard had inherited from his sires the whole train of tory or high church predilections and prejudices, which had distinguished the house of Waverley since the Great Civil War. Richard, on the contrary, who was ten years younger, beheld himself born to the fortune of a second brother, and anticipated neither dignity nor entertainment in sustaining the character of Will Wimble. He saw early, that to succeed in the race of life, it was necessary that he should carry as little weight as possible. Painters talk of the difficulty of expressing the existence of compound passions in the same features at the same moment : It would be no less difficult for the moralist to analyze the mixed motives which unite to form the impulse of our actions.WAVERLEY. 5 Richard Waverley read and satisfied himself from history and sound argument that, in the words of the old song, Passive obedience was a jest, And pshaw! was non-residence; yet reason would have propably been unable to combat and re- move hereditary prejudice, could Richard have anticipated that his elder brother, Sir Everard, taking to heart an early disap- pointment, would have remained a bachelor at seventy-two. The prospect of succession, however remote, might in that case, have led him to endure dragging through the greater part of his life as ‘‘ Master Richard at the Hall, the baronet’s brother,”’ in the hope that ere its conclusion he should be distinguished as Sir Richard Waverley of Waverley-Honour, successor to a princely estate, and to extend political connections as_ head of the county interest in the shire where it lay. But this was a consummation of things not to be’*expected at Richard’s outset, when Sir Everard was in the prime of life, and certain to be an acceptable suitor in almost any family, whether wealth or beauty should be the object of his pursuit, and when, indeed, his speedy marriage was a report which regularly amused the neighborhood once a year. His younger brother saw no prac- ticable road to independence save that of relying upon his own exertions, and adopting a political creed more consonant both te reason and his own interest than the hereditary faith of Sir Everard in High-Church and in the house of Stuart. He therefore read his recantation at the beginning of his career, and entered life as an avowed Whig, and friend of the Hanover succession. The ministry of George the First’s time were prudently anxious to diminish the phalanx of oppositicn. The Tory nobility, depending for their reflected lustre upon the sunshine of a court, had for some time been gradually reconciling them- selves to the new dynasty. But the wealthy country gentle- men of England, a rank which retained, with much of ancient manners and primitive integrity, a great proportion of obstinate and unyielding prejudice, stood aloof in haughty and sullen oppositi- i, and cast many a look of mingled regret and hope to Bois le Duc, Avignon, and Italy.2 The accession of the neat relation of one of these steady. and inflexible opponents was considered as a means of bringing over more converts, and therefore Richard Waverley met with a share of ministerial favor, more than proportioned to his talents or his political importance. It was, however, discovered that he had respect- able talents for public business, and the first admittance to theba: Shi ahaa tosis baie cies canted . S a OSes or reret Sere tee ate yo WAVERLEY. 6 his suecess became rapid. blic News Letter,—trst, that eturned for the ministerial Richard Waverley, Esquire, minister’s levee being negotiated, cir Everard learned from the pu Richard Waverley, Esquire, was T borough of Barterfaith ; next, that had taken a distinguished part in the debate upon the Excise Bill in the support of government ; and lastly, that Richard Waverley, Esquire, had been honored witha s@at: at fone ol those boards, where the pleasure of serving the country is combined with other important eratifications, which, to rende1 them the more acceptable, occur regularly once a quarter. Although these events followed each other so closely, that the sagacity of the editor of a modern newspaper would have presaged the two last even while he announced the first, yet they came upon Sir Everard gradually, and drop by drop, as it were, distilled through the cool and procrastinating alembic of Dyer’s Weekly Letter.’ For it may he observed in passing, that, instead of those mail-@oaches, by means of which every mechanic at his sixpenny club may nightly fearn from twenty contradictory channels the yesterday's news of the capital, a weekly post brought in those days, to Waverley-Honour, a Weekly Intelligencer, which, after it had gratified Sir Everard’s curiosity, his sister’s, and that of his aged butler, was regularly transferred from the hall to the rectory, from the rectory to Squire Stubb’s at the Grange, from the squire to the baronet’s steward at his neat white house on the heath, from the steward to the bailiff, and from him. through a huge circle of honest dames and gaffers, by whose hard and horny hands it was generally worn to pieces in about a month after its arrival. This slow succession of intelligence was of some advantage to Richard Waverley in the case before us; fox, had the sum total of his enormities reached the ears of Sir Everard at once. there can be no doubt that the new commissioner would have had little reason to pique himself on the success ef his politics. The baronet, although the mildest of human beiags, was not without sensitive points in his character ; his brother’s conduct had wounded these deeply ; the Waverley estate was fettered by no entail (for it never entered into the head of any of its former possessors that one of their progeny coud he euilty of the atrocities laid by Dyers Letter to the door of Richard), and if it had, the marriage of the proprietor might have been fatal to a collateral heir. These various ideas floated through the brain of Sir Everard, 1 determined conclusion. He examined the tree of his gene with many an emblematic mark of honor and heroic achieve: without, however, producing any alogy, which, emblazonedWAVERLEY, 7 ment, hung upon the well-varnished wainscot of his hall. The nearest descendants of Sir Hildebrand Waverley, failing those of his eldest son Wilfred, of whom Sir Everard and his brother were the only representatives, were, as this honored register informed him (and indeed, as he himself well knew), the Wa- verleys of Highley Park, com. Hants; with whom the main branch, or rather stock, of the house had renounced all connec- tion, since the great law-suit in 1670. This degenerate scion had committed a further offence against the head and source of their gentility, by the intermarriage of their representative witn Judith, heiress of Oliver Bradshawe, of Highley Park, whose arms, the same with those of Bradshawe the regicide, they had quartered with the ancient coat of Waverley. These offences, however, had vanished from Sir Everard’s recollection in the heat of his resentment, and had Lawyer Clippurse, for whom his groom was dispatched express, arrived but an hour earlier, he might have had the benefit of drawing a new settle- ment of the lordship and manor of Waverley-Honour, with all its dependencies. But an hour of cool reflection is a great matter, when employed in weighing the comparative evil of two measures, to neither of which we are internally partial. Lawyer Clippurse found his patron involved in a deep study, which he was too respectful to disturb, otherwise than by pro- ducing his paper and leathern ink-case, as prepared to minute his honor’s commands. Even this slight manceuvre was em- barrassing to Sir Everard, who felt it as a reproach to his inde- cision. He looked at the attorney with some desire to issue his fiat, when the sun, emerging from behind a cloud, poured at once its checkered light through the stained window of the gloomy cabinet in which they were seated. The baronet’s eye, as he raised it to the splendor, fell right upon the central scutcheon, impressed with the same device which his ancestor was said to have borne in the field of Hastings; three ermines passant, argent, in a field azure, with its appropriate motto, sans tache. ‘May our name rather perish,” exclaimed Sir Everard, “ than that ancient and loyal symbol should be blended with the dishonored insignia of a traitorous round-head !” All this was the effect of the glimpse of a sunbeam just sufficient to light Lawyer Clippurse to mend his pen. ‘The pen was mended in vain. The attorney was dismissed, with direc. tions to hold himself in readiness on the first summons. The apparition of Lawyer Clippurse at the Hall occasioned much speculation in that portion of the world to which Waverley- Honour formed the centre; but the more judicious politicians of this microcosm augured yet worse consequences to Richardg WAVERLEY. Waverley from a movement which shortly followed his apostasy This was no less than the excursion of the baronet in his coach and six, with four attendants in rich liveries, to make a visit of some duration to a noble peer on the confines of the shire, of untainted descent, steady tory principles, and the happy father of six unmarried and accomplished daughters. . Sir Everard’s reception in this ae was, as it may be easily conceived, sufficiently favorable ; but of the six young ladies, his taste unfortunately determined him in favor of Lady Emily, the youngest, who received his attentions with an embarrassment which showed at once that she durst not decline them, and that they afforded her anything but pleasure. Sir Everard could not bi it perceive something uncommon in the restrained emotions which the young lady testified at the advances he hazarded; but assured by the prudent countess that they were the natural effects of a retired education, the sacrifice might have been completed, as doubtless has happened in many similar instances, had it not been for the courage of an elder sister, who revealed to the wealthy suitor that Lady Emily’s affections were fixed upon a young soldier of fortune, a near telation of her own. Sir Everard manifested great emotion on receiving this intelligence, which was confirmed to him, in a Erivate interview, by the young lady herself, although under the most dreadful apprehensions of her father’s indi ignation. Honor and generosity were hereditary attributes of the house of Waverley. With a grace and delicacy worthy the hero of a romance, Sir Everard withdrew his claim to the hand of Lady Emily. He had even, before leaving Blandeville Castle, the address to extort from her father a consent to her union with the object of her choice. What arguments he used on this point cannot exactly be known, for Sir Everard was never supposed strong in the power of persuasion ; but the young officer, immediately after this transaction, rose in the army with a rapidity far surpassing the usual pace of unpatronized professional merit, although, to outward appearance, that was all he had to depend upon. The shock which Sir Everard encountered upon this occa: sion, although diminished by the consciousness of havi ing acted virtuously and generously, had its effect upon his future life, His resolution of marriage had been adopted in a fit of indigna- tion ; the labor of courtship did not quite suit the di onified j in- dolence of his habits; he had but just escaped the risk of marrying a woman who could never love him, and his pride could not be greatly flattered by the determination of his amour, even if his heart had not suffered. The result of the wholeW. AVERLEY. 9 matter was his return to Waverley-Honour without any transfer of his affections, notwithstanding the sighs and languishments of the fair tell-tale, who had revealed, in mere sisterly affection, the secret of Lady Emily’s attachment, and in des spite of the nods, winks, and innue sndoes of the officious lady mother, and the grave et ulogiums which the earl pronounced successively on the eee e, and go ee sense, and admirable dispositions ot his first, second, third, fourth, and fifth daughters. The Ecnsty of his te aoa amour was with Sir Everard, as with many more of his temper, at once shy, proud, sensitive, and indolent, a beacon against exposing himself to similar mortification, pain, and fruitless exertion for the time to come. He continued to live at Waverley-Honour in the style of an old English gentlemen, of an ancient descent and opulent fortune. His sister, Miss Rachel Waverley, presided at his table, and they became, by degrees, an old bachelor and an ancient maiden lady, the gentlest and kindest of the votaries of celibacy. The vehemence of Sir Everard’s resentment against his brother was but short-lived; yet his dislike to the Whig and the placeman, though unable to stimulate lim to resume any active measures prejudicial to Richard’s interest in the suc- cession to the family estate, continued to maintain the coldness between them. Richard knew enough of the world, and of his brother’s temper, to believe that by any ill-considered or pre- cipitate advances on his part, he might turn passive dislike into a more active principle. It was accident, therefore, wien at length occasioned a renewal of their intercourse —_ ard had married a young woman of rank, by whose family interest and private fortune he hoped to advance his career. In her right he became possessor of a manor of some value, at the Se etanice of a few miles from W averley- Honour. Little Edward, the hero of our tale, then in his fifth year, was their only child. It cha faa: that the infant with his maid had strayed one morning to a mile’s distance from the avenue of Brerewood Lodge, his father’s seat. Their attention was attracted by a carriage drawn by six stately long-tailed black horses, and with as much carving and gil ding as would have done honor to my lord mayor’s. It was waiting for the owner, who was at a little distance inspecting the progress of a half built farm-house. I know not whether the boy’s nurse had been a Welsh or a Scotch woman, or in what manner he asso- ciated a shield emblazoned with three ermines with the idea of personal property, but ee: no sooner beheld this family emblem, than he stoutly determined on vindicating his right to the splendid vehicle on which it was displayed. The baronetWAVERLEY. arrived while the boy’s maid was in vain endeavoring tu inake him desist from his determination to appropriate the gilded coach and six. ‘The rencontre was at a happy moment for Kd- ward, as his uncle had been just eyeing wistfully, with some- thing of a feeling like envy, the chubby boys of the stout yeo- man whose mansion was building by his direction. In the round-faced rosy cherub before him, bearing his eye and his name, and vindicating a hereditary title to his family, affection and patronage, by means of a tie which Sir Everard held as sacred as either Garter or Blue-mantle, Providence seemed to have granted to him the very object best calculated to fill up the void in his hopes and affections. Sir Everard returned to Waverley-Hall upon a led horse, which was kept in readiness for him, while the child and his attendant were sent home in the carriage to Brerewood Lodge, with such a message as opened to Richard Waverley a door of reconciliation with his elder brother. Their intercourse, however, though thus renewed, contin- ued to be rather formal and civil, than partaking of brotherly cordiality ; yet it was sufficient to the wishes of both parties. sir Everard. obtained, in the frequent society of his litttle nephew, something on which his hereditary pride might found the anticipated pleasure of a continuation of his lineage, and where his kind and gentle affections could at the same time fully exercise themselves. For Richard Waverley, he beheld in the growing attachment between the uncle and nephew the means of securing his son’s, if not his own, succession to the hereditary estate, which he felt would be rather endangered than promoted by any attempt on his own part towards a closer intimacy with a man of Sir Everard’s habits and opinions. Thus, by a sort of tacit compromise, little Edward was per- mitted to pass the greater part of the year at the Hall, and ap- peared to stand in the same intimate relation to both families, although their mutual intercourse was otherwise limited to formal messages, and more formal visits. The education of the youth was regulated alternately by the taste and opinions of his uncle and of his father. But more of this in 2 subse quent chapter:WAVERLEY. CHAPTER THIRD. EDUCATION, THE education of our hero, Edward Waverley, was of a cature somewhat desultory. In infancy his health suffered, ot was supposed to suffer (which is quite the same thing), by the air of London. As soon, therefore, as official duties, attend- ance on Parliament, or the prosecution of any of his plans of interest or ambition, called his father to town, which was his usual residence for eight months in the year, Edward was transferred to Waverley-Honour, and experienced a total change of instructors and of lessons, as well as of residence. ‘This might have been remedied, had his father placed him under the superintendence of a permanent tutor. But he considered that one of his choosing would probably have been unaccepta- ble at Waverley-Honour, and that such a selection as Sir Everard might have made, were the matter left to him, would have bur- dened him with a disagreeable inmate, if not a political spy, in his family. He therefore prevailed upon his private secretary, a young man of taste and accomplishments, to bestow an hour or two on Edward’s education while at Brerewood Lodge, and left his uncle answerable for his improvement in literature while an inmate at the Hall. This was in some degree respectably provided for. Sir Everard’s chaplain, an Oxonian, who had lost his fellowship for declining to take the oaths of the accession of George I. was not only an excellent classical scholar, but reasonably skilled in science, and master of most modern languages. He was, however, old and indulgent, and the recurring interregnum, during which Edward was entirely freed from his discipline, occasioned such a relaxation of authority, that the youth was permitted, in a great measure, to learn as he pleased, what he pleased, and when he pleased. ‘This slackness of rule might have been ruinous to a boy of slow understanding, who, feeling labor in the acquisition of knowledge, would have altogether neglected it, save for the command of a task-master; and it might have proved equally dangerous to a youth whose anima! spirits were more powerful than his imagination or his feelings, and whom the irresistible influence of Alma would have en- gaged in field sports, from morning till night. But the char- acter of Edward Waverley was remote from either of these. His powers of apprehersion were so uncommonly quick, as almost iy RTOFs paths Sra Lace aes an e eat 12 WAVERLEY. to resemble intuition, and the chief care of his preceptor was ta prevent him, as a sportsman would phrase it, from overrun- ning his See that is, from acquiring his knowledge ina slight, flimsy, and inadequate manner. And here the instructor had to combat another propensity too often united with brilliancy of fancy and vivacity of talent,—that indolence, namely, of dis- position, which can only be stirred by some strong motive of gratification, and which renounces study as soon as curiosity is gratified, the pleasure of conquering the first difficulties ex hausted, and the novelty of pursuit at an end. Edward would throw himself with spirit upon any classical author of which his preceptor proposed the perusal, make himself master of the style so far as to understand the story, and if that pleased or interested him, he finished the volume. But it was in vain to attempt fixing his attention on critical distinctions of philology, upon the difference of idiom, the beauty of felicitous expres- sion, or the artificial combinations of syntax. “ I can read and understand a Latin aut hor,” said young Edward, with the self- confidence and rash reasoning of fifteen, “and Scaliger or Bentley could not do much more.” Alas! while he was thus permitted to read only for the gratification of his amusement, he foresaw not that he was losing forever the opportunity of acquiring habits of firm and assiduous application, of gaining the art of controlling, directing, and concentrating the powers of his mind for earnest investigation,—an art far. more essen- tial than even that intimate acquaintance with classical learning which is the primary object of study. I am aware I may be here reminded of the necessity of ren- dering instruction agreeable to youth, and of Tasso’s infusion of honey into the medicine prepared for a child; but an age in which children are taught the dryest doctrines by the insinuat- ing method of instructing games, has little reason to dread ue consequences of study being rendered too serious or sever The History of £ ngland is now reduced to a game at a. the problems of mathematics to puzzles and riddles, and the doctrines of arithmetic may, we are assured, be sufficie ntly ac- quired by spending a few hours a week at a new and compli- cated edition of the Royal Game of the Goose. There wants but ‘one step further, and the Creed and Ten Commandments may be taught in the same manner without the necessity of the grave face, deliberate tone of recital, and devout attention, hitherto enacted from the well- governed childhced of this realm. It may in the meantime be si ubject of serious consid. eration, whether those who are accustomed only to acquire instruction through the medium of amusement, may not beWAVERLEY. 13 Drought to reject that which approaches under the aspect of study; whether those who learn history by the cards, may not be led to prefer the means to the end; and whether, were we to teach r on in the way of sport, our pupils may not thereby be gra nduced to make sport of their religion. To oul young f.ero, who was permitted to seek his instruction only ac ording to the bent of his own mind, and who, of consequence, nly sought it so long as it afforded him amusement, the indul- rence of his tutors was attended with evil consequences, which ong continued to influence his character, happiness and utility. Edward’s power of imagination and love of literature although the former was vivid, and the latter ardent, were so far from affording a remedy to this peculiar evil, that they rather inflamed and increased its violence. ‘The library at Waverley-Honour, a large Gothic room, with double arches and a gallery, contained such a miscellaneous and extensive collec- tion of volumes as had been assembled together, during the course of two hundred years, by a family which had been al- ways wealthy, and inclined, of course, as a mark of splendor, to furnish their shelves with the current literature of the day, without much scrutiny, or nicety of discrimination. Through- out this ample realm Edward was permitted to roam at large His tutor had his own studies; and church politics and con troversial divinity, together with a love of learned ease, though they did not withdraw his attention at stated times from the progress of his patron’s presumptive heir, induced him readily 1e] 1 L to grasp at-any apology for not extending a strict and regulated survey towards his general studies. Sir Everard had never > been himself a student, and, like his sister, Miss Rachel Wa- verley, held the common doctrine, that idleness is incompatible with reading of any kind, and that the mere tracing the alpha- betical characters with the eye, is in itself a useful and merito- rious task, without scrupulously considering what ideas or doc- trines they may happen to convey. With a desire of amuse- ment, therefore, which better discipline might soon have con- verted into a thirst for knowledge, young Waverley drove thiough the sea of books, like a vessel without a pilot ora rudder. Nothing perhaps increases by indulgence more than a desultory habit of reading, especially under such opportunt- ties of gratifying it. I believe one reason why such numerous instances of erudition occur among the lower rank is, that, with the same powers of mind, the poor student is limited to a nar- row circle for indulging his passion for books, and must _neces- sarily make himself master of the few he possesses ere he can acquire more. Edward, on the contrary, like the epicure who Sree ee fer ce ete SrSEAS cisacieENRERS ee =f WAVERLEY. only deigned to take a single morsel from the sunny side of peach, read no volume a moment after it ceased to excite his curiosity of interest; and it necessarily happened, that the habit of seeking only this sort of gratification rendered it daily more difficult of attainment, till the passion for reading, like other strong appetites, produced by indulgence a sort of satiety. Ere he attained this indifference, however, he had read and stored in a memory of uncommon tenacity, much curious, though ill-arranged and miscellaneous information. In English literature he was master of Shakespeare and Milton,of our earlier dramatic authors, of many picturesque and interesting passages from our old historical chronicles, and was particularly well ac- quainted with Spenser, Drayton, and other poets who have exer- cised themselves on romantic fiction, of all themes the most fascinating to a youthful imagination, before the passions have roused themselves, and demand poetry of a more sentimental description. In this respect his acquaintance with Italian opened him yet a wider range. He had perused the numerous romantic poems, which, from the days of Pulci, have been a favorite exercise of the wits of Italy, and had sought cratification in the numerous collections of zovelle which were brought forth by the genius of that elegant though luxurious nation, in emula- tion of the Decameron. In classical literature, Waverley had made the usual progress, and read the usual authors : and the French had afforded him an almost exhaustless collection of memoirs, scarcely more faithful than romances, and of romances so well writte en as hardly to be distinguished from memoirs. The splendid pages of Froissart, with his heart- stirring od eye- dazzling descriptions of war and of tourna iments, were among his chief favorites ; and from those of Brantome Fea De la Noue he learned to compare the wild and loose, yet supersti- tious character of the nobles of the League, with the stern, rigid, and sometimes turbulent disposition of the Huguenot par ty. due Ppenish had contributed to his stock of chivalrous and romantic lore. The earlier literature of the northern na- tions did not escape the study of one who read, rather to awaken the imagination than to benefit the ve eee: And yet, knowing much that is known but to few, Edward Waverley might justly be considered as ignorant, since he knew little of what adds dignity to man, and qualifies him to support and adorn an elevated situation in society. The occasional attention of his parents mig ht indeed have been of service, to prevent the dissipation of mind incidental to such a desultory course of reading. But his mother died in the seventh year after the reconciliation between the brotl hers,WAVERLEY. 15 and Richard Waverley himself, who, after this event, resided more constantly in London, was too much interested in his own plans of wealth and ambition, to notice more respecting Ed- ward, than that he was of a very bookish turn, and probably destined to be a bishop. If he could have disc vered and analyzed his son’s waking dreams, he would have formed a very different conclusion. CHAPTER FOURTH. CASTLE-BUILDING. I HAvE already hinted, that the dainty, squeamish, and fastidious taste acquired by a surfeit of idle reading, had not only rendered our hero unfit for serious and sober study, but had even disgusted him in some degree with that in which he had hitherto indulged. He was in his sixteenth year, when his habits of abstraction and love of solitude became so much marked, as to excite Sir Everard’s affectionate apprehension. He tried to counterbalance these propensities, by engaging his nephew in field-sports, which had been the chief pleasure of his own youthful days. But although Edward eagerly carried the gun for one season, yet when practice had given him some dex- terity, the pastime ceased to afford him amusement. In the succeeding spring, the perusal of old Isaac Walton’s fascinating volume determined Edward to become “a brother of the angle.” 3ut of all diversions which ingenuity ever devised for the relief of idleness, fishing 1s the worst qualified to amuse a man who is at once indolent and impatient ; and our hero’s rod was speedily flung aside. Society and example, which, more than any other motives, master and sway the natural bent of our passions, might have had their usual effect upon the youthful visionary. But the neighborhood was thinly inhabited, and the not of a class home-bred young squires whom it afforded were Gt to form Edward’s usual companions, far less to excite him to emulation in the practice of those pastimes which composed the serious business of their lives. There were afew other youths of better education, and a more liberal character, but from their society also our hero was in some degree excluded. Sir Everard had, upon the death of Queen Anne, resigned his seat in the Parliament, and as his age increased and the number of his contemporaries diminished, had gradually withdrawn himself from society; so that, wheyFe : om : Riis eae enaNssiesaeiors ‘ Siaiicierntmnaie pe in a cm so WAVERLEY. upon any particular occasion, Edward mingled with accom plished and well-educated young men of his own rank and ex- pectations, he felt an inferiority in their company, not so much from deficiency of information, as from want of the skill to command and to arrange that which he possessed. A deep and increasing sensibility added to this dislike of society. The idea of having committed the slightest solecism in politeness, whether real or imaginary, was agony to him : for perhaps even guilt itself does not impose upon some minds so keen a sense of shame and remorse as a modest, sensitive, and inexperienced youth feels from the consciousne ss of having neglected etiquette or excited ridicule. Where we are not at ease, we cannot be happy; and therefore it is not surprising, that Edward Waverley supposed that he disliked and was unfitted for society, merely because he had not yet acquired the habit of living in it with ease and comfort, and of reciprocally giving and receiving pleasure. The hours he spent with his uncle and aunt were exhausted in listening to the oft-repeated tale of narrative old age. Yet even there his imagination, the predominant faculty of his mind, was frequently excited. Family tradition and genealogical history, upon which much of Sir Everard’s dis. course turned, is the very reverse of amber, which, itself a valuable substance, usually includes flies, straws, and other trifles, whereas these studies, being themselves very insignifi- cant and trifling, do nevertheless serve to perpetuate a great deal of what is rare and valuable in ancient manners, and to record many curious and minute facts which could have been preserved and conveyed through no other medium. _ If, there. fore Edward Waverley yawned ‘at times over the dry deduction of his line of ancestors, with their various intermar riages, and inwardly deprecated the remorseless and protracted accuracy with which the worthy Sir Everard rehearse it the various degrees of propinquity between the house of Waverle -y-Honour and the doughty barons, knights, and squires to whont they stood allied ; if (notwithstanding his obligations tc the three ermines passat 1t) he sometimes cursed in his heart the jargon of heraldry, its griffins, its moldwarps, its wiverns, and its dragons, with all the bitterness of Hotspur himself, there were moments when these communications interested his fancy and rewarded his atten- tion. The deeds of Wilibert of Waverley in the Holy Land, his long absence and perilous adventures, his supposed death 1, and his ‘return on the evening when the betrothed of his heart had wedded the hero who had protected her from insult and oppres- sion during his absence ; the generosity with which the crusa- lar relinquished his ene. anil sought na neighboring cloisterWAVERLEY. 17 that peace which passeth not away ; * to these and similar tales he would hearken till his heart glowed and his eyes glistened. Nor was he less affected, when his aunt, Mrs. Rachel narrated the sufferings and fortitude of Lady Alice Waverley during the Great Civil War. The benevolent features of the venerable spinster kindled into more majestic expression as she told how Charles had, after the field of Worcester, found a day’s refuge at Waver- ley-Honour, and how when a troop of cav alry were approaching to search the mansion, Lady Alice dismissed her youngest son with a handful of domestics, charging them to make good wit! their lives an hour's diversion, that the king might have that space for escape. “And, God help her,” would Mrs. Rachel continue, fixing her ca pe the heroine’s portrait as she spoke, “full dearly did she purchase the safety of her prince with the life of her RAT he chi ld. They brought him here a prisoner, mortally wounded, and you may trace the drops of his blood from the great hall-door, along the little ¢ allery, and up to the saloon, where they laid him down to die at his mother’s feet. But there was comfort exchanged between them ; for he knew from the glance of his mo ae eye, that the purpose of his desperate defence was attained—Ah! I remember,” she continued, ‘‘ [ remember well to hase seen one that knew and loved him. Miss Lucy St. Aubin lived and died a maid for his sake, though one of the most beautiful and wealthy matches in this country; all the world ran aa her, but she wore widow’s mourning all her life for poor William, for they were betrothed though not married, and died in fe cannot think of the date ; but I remember, in the November of that very year, when she found herself sinking, she desired to be brought to Waverley- Honour once more, and visited all the places where she had been with my grand-uncle, and oe the carpets to be raised that she might trace the impression of his oad uae if tears could have washed it out, it Fa not been there now; for there was not a dry eye in the house. You would ihe fiouatit Edward, that the very trees mourned for her, for their leaves dropped around her without a gust of wind; and indeed she locked like one that would never see them green again.” From such legends our hero would steal away to indulge the fancies they excited. In the corner of the large and som- bre library, with no other light than was afforded by the decay- ing brands on its ponderous and ai nple e hearth, he would exer- cise for hours that internal sorcery, by which past or imaginary events are presented in action, as it were, to the eye of the muser. Then arose in long and fair array the splendor of the bridal ‘feast at Waverley -Castle ; the tall and emaciated formP pepe rata LR ee DDS LALYLL LLL LAP EL LLL ES LTS | 18 WAVERLEY. of its real lord, as he stood in his pilgrim’s weeds, an unno: ticed spectator of the festivities of his supposed heir and ine tended bride; the electrical shock occasioned by the discovery ; the springing of the vassals to arms; the astonishment of the bridegroom; the terror and confusion of the bride: the agony with which Wilibert observed that her heart as well as consent was in these nuptials; the air of dig- nity, yet of deep feeling, with which he flung down the half- drawn sword, and turned away forever from the house of his ancestors. ‘Then would he change the scene, and fancy would at his wish represent Aunt Rachel’s tragedy. He saw the Lady Waverley seated in her bower, her ear strained to every sound, her heart throbbing with double agony ; now listening to the decaying echa of the hoofs of the king’s horse, and when that had died away, hearing in every breeze that shook the trees of the park, the noise of the remote skirmish. A distant sound is heard like the rushing of a swollen stream—it comes nearer, and Edward can plainly distinguish the gallop- ing of horses, the cries and shouts of men, with strangling pis- tol-shots between, rolling forwards to the hall. The lady starts up—a terrified menial rushes in—But why pursue such a de- scription? As living in this ideal world became daily more delectable to our hero, interruption was disagreeable in proportion. ‘The extensive domain that surrounded the Hall, which, far exceed- ing the dimensions of a park, was usually termed Waverley: Chase, had originally been forest ground, and still, though broken by extensive glades in which the young deer were sport- ing, retained its pristine and savage character. It was tra versed by broad avenues, in many places half grown up with brushwood, where the beauties of former days used to take their stand to see the stag coursed with greyhounds, or to gain an aim at him with the cross-bow. In one spot distinguished by a moss-grown Gothic monument, which retained the name of Queen’s Standing, Elizabeth herself was said to have pierced seven bucks with her own arrows. This was a very favorite haunt of Edward Waverley. At other times, with his gun and his spaniel], which served as an apology to others, and with a book in his pocket, which, perhaps, served as an apology to himself, he used to pursue one of these long avenues, which, after an ascending sweep of four miles, gradually narrowed into a rude and contracted path through the cliffy and woody pass called Mirkwood Dingle, and opened suddenly upon a deep, dark, and small lake, named, from the same cause, Mirk wood Mere. ‘here stood in former times a solitary towerWAVERLEY. 19 upon a rock almost surrounded by the water, which had ac. quired the name of the Strength of Waverley, because, in peril- ous times, it had often been the refuge of the family. There, in the wars of York and Lancaster, the last adherents of the Red Rose who dared to maintain her cause, carried on a harassing and predatory warfare, till the stronghold was re duced by the celebrated Richard of Gloucester. Here, too, a party of cavaliers long maintained themselves under Nigel Waverley, elder brother of that William whose fate Aunt Rachel commemorated. Through these scenes it was that Edward loved to “chew the cud of sweet and bitter fancy,” and, like a child among his toys, culled and arranged, from the splendid yet useless imagery and emblems with which his imagination was stored, visions as brilliant and as fading as those of an evening sky. The effect of this indulgence upon his temper and char- acter will appear in the next chapter. CHAPTER PLETE, CHOICE OF A PROFESSION. From the minuteness with which I have traced Waverley’s pursuits, and the bias which these unavoidably communicated to his imagination, the reader may perhaps anticipate, in the following tale, an imitation of the romance of Cervantes. But he will do my prudence injustice in the supposition. My in- tention is not to follow the steps of that inimitable author, in describing such total perversion of intellect as misconstrues the objects actually presented to the senses, but that more common aberration from sound judgment, which apprehends occurrences indeed in their reality, but communicates to them a tincture of its own romantic tone and coloring. So far was Edward Waverley from expecting general sympathy with his own feelings, or concluding that the present state of things was calculated to exhibit the reality of those visions in which he loved to indulge, that he dreaded nothing more than the detection of such sentiments as were dictated by his musings. He neither had nor wished to have a confidant, with whom to communicate his reveries ; and so sensible was he of the ridi- cule attached to them, that, had he been to choose between any punishment short of ignominy, and the necessity of giving a cold and composed account of the ideal world in which he lived the better part of his days, I think he would not havePa thie sees cher eee =e zo WAVERLEY. hesitated to prefer the former infliction. This secrecy became doubly precious, as he felt in advancing life the influence of the awakening passions. Female forms of exquisite grace and beauty began to mingle in his mental adventures: nor was he long without looking abroad to compare the creatures of his own imagination with the females of actual Jife. The list of the beauties who displayed their hebdomadai finery at the parish church of Waverley was neither numerous nor select. By far the most passable was Miss Sissly, or as she rather chose to be called, Miss Cecilia Stubbs, daughter of Squire Stubbs at the Grange. I know not whether it was by the “merest accident in the world,” a phrase which, from female lips, does not always exclude malice prepense, or whether it was from a conformity of taste, that Miss Cecilia more than once crossed Edward in his favorite walks through Waverley-Chase. He had not as yet assumed courage to accost her on these oc- casions; but the meeting was not without its effect. A roman- tic lover is a strange idolat er, who sometimes cares not out of what log he frames the object of his adoration ; at least, if nature has given that object any passable proportion of per- sonal charms, He can easily play the Jeweller and Dervise in the oriental tale,* and supply her richly Ys out of the stores of his own econ, with supernatural beauty, and all the properties of intellectual wealt h. But ere the charms of Miss Cecilia Stubbs had erected her into a positive goddess, or ele- vated her at least to a level with the saint her namesake, Mrs. Rachel Waverley gained some intimation which determined her to prevent the approaching apotheosis. Even the most simple and unsuspicious of the female sex have (God bless them !) an instinctive sharpness of perception in ae matters, which sometimes goes the length of observing partialities that never existed, but rarely misses to detect such a pass actually under their observation. Mrs. Rachel apphed herself, with great prudence, not to combat, but to elude, the approaching danger, and suggested to her brother the necessity that the heir of his house should see something more of the world than was consistent with constant residence at Waverley-Honour. Sir Everard would not at first listen to a proposal which went to separate his nephew from him. Edward was alittle bookish, he admitted; but youth, he had always heard, was the season for learning, and, no doubt, when his rage for letters was abated, and his head full y stocked with knowledge , his nephew would take to field sports and country business. He had of. ten, he said, himself regretted that he had not spent some time *See Hoppner’s Tales of the Seven Lovers.WAVERLEY. at in study during his youth: he would neither have shot nor hunted with less skill, and he “wight have made the roof of St. Stephen’s echo to longer orations than were comprised in those zealous Noes, \ vith which, when a member of the house during Godoiphin’s administration, he encountered every measure of government. Aunt Rachel’s anxiety, however, lent her address to carry her point. Every representative of their house had visited for- ‘ign parts, or served his country in the army, before he settled for life at Waverley-Honoux and she appealed for the truth of her assertion to the genealogical pedigree, an authority which Sir Everard was never known to contradict. In short, a pro. posal was made to Mr. Richard Wa erley, that his son should travel, under the direction of his present tutor, Mr. Pembroke, with a suitable allowance from the baronet’s liberality. The father himself saw no objection to this overture ; but upon mentioning it casually at the taple oi the minister the great m shi looked grave. ‘The reason w 7 explained in private. The un! nap py turn of Sir Everard’s politics, the minister observed, was such as would render it highly improper that a young centleman of such hopeful prospects should travel on the con- ‘inent with a tutor doubtless of his uncle’s choosing, and direct- ing his course by his instructions. What might Mr. Edward Waverley’s society be at Paris, what at Rome, where all man- ner of snares were spread by the “pretender and his sans? hese were points for Mr. Waverley to consider. This he could himself say, that he knew his majesty had sucha just sense of Mr. Richard Waverley’s merits that if his son adopted the army for a few years, a troop, he believed, mi; ‘ht be reckoned "pon in one of the dragoon regiment s lately returned from Flanders. NR ee ae ee RETRO eTPaes Soe ene ee _ baer WavVERLEY. that it was now, unfortunately, not in Edward’s power exactly to comply with the plan which had been chalked out by his best friend and benefactor. He himself had thought with pain on the boy’s inactivity, at an age when all his ancestors had borne arms; even Royalty itself had deigned to.inquire whether young Waverley was not now in Flanders, at an age when his grandfather was already bleeding for his king in the Great Civil War. This was accompanied by an offer of a troop of horse. What could he do! There was no time to con- sult his brother’s inclinations, evenif he could have conceived there might be objections on his pon to his nephew’s follow- ing the glorious career of his predecessors. And, in short, that Edward was now (the intermediate steps of cornet and lieutenant being overleapt with great agility) Captain Waver- ley, of Gardiner’s regiment of Dragoons, which he must join in their quarters at Dundee in Scotland, in the course of a month. Sir Everard Waverley received this~intimation with a mix- ture of feelings. At the period of the Hanoverian succession he had withdrawn com Parliament, and his conduct, in the memorable year 1715, had not been altogether unsuspected. There were reports of private musters of tenants and horses in Waverley-Chase by moonlight, and of cases of carbines and pistols purchased in ‘Holland, and addressed to the baronet, but jntercepted by the vigNance of a riding officer of the ex- cise, who was afterwards Tossed in a blanket.oh a moonless night, by an association of stout yeomen, for his officiousness. Nay, it was even said, that at the arrest of Sir William Wynd- ham, the leader of the T ory party, a letter from Sir Everard was found i in the pocket of his night-gown. But there was no overt act which an attainder could be founded on, and govern- ment, contented with suppressing the insurrection of 1715, felt it neither prudent nor safe to push their vengeance farther than against those unfortunate gentlemen who actually took up arms. Nor did Sir Everard’s eae of personal con- sequences seem to correspond with the reports spread among his Whig neighbors. It was well know that he had supplied with money several of the distressed Northumbrians and scotchmen, who, after being made prisoners at Preston in Lancashire, were imprisoned in New gate and the Marshalsea, and it was his solicitor and ordinary counsel who conducted the defence of some of these unfortunate gentlemen at their trial. It was generally supposed, however, that, had ministers possessed any real proof of Sir Everard’s accession to the re- bellion, he either would not have ventured thus to brave theWAVERLEY. 23 existing government, or at least would not have done so with impunity. The feelings whichshen dictated his proceedings, were those of a young man, and at an agitating period. Since that time Sir Everard’s jacobitism had been gradually decay- ing like a fire which burns out for want of fuel. His Tory and high-church principles were kept up by some occasional exer- cise at elections and quarter-sessions; but those respecting hereditary right were fallen into a sort of abeyance. Yet it jarred severely upon his feelings, that his nephew should go into the army under the Brunswick dynasty ; and the more so, as independent of his high and conscientious ideas of paternal authority, it was impossible, or at least highly imprudent, to interfere authoritatively to prevent it. This suppressed vex- ation gave rise to many poohs and pshaws, which were placed to the amount of an incipient fit of gout, until, having sent for the Army List, the worthy baronet consoled himself with reck- oning the descendants of the houses of genuine loyalty, Mor- ( daunts, Granvilles, and Stanleys, whose names were to be found in that military record; and calling up all his feelings of family grandeur and warlike glory, he concluded, with logic something like Falstaff’s, that when war was at hand, although it were shame to be on any side but one, it were worse shame to be idle than to be on the worst side, though blacker than usurpation could make it. As for Aunt Rachel, her scheme had not exactly terminated according to her wishes, but, she was under the necessity of submitting to circumstances ; and her mortification was diverted by the employment she found in fitting out her nephew for the campaign, and greatly consoled by the prospect of beholding him blaze in complete uniform. Edward Waverley himself received with animated and un defined surprise this most unexpected intelligence. It was, as a fine old poem expresses it, “like a fire to heather set,” that covers a solitary hill with smoke, and illumines it at the same time with dusky fire. His tutor, or, I should say, Mr. Pem- broke, for he scarce assumed the name of tutor, picked up about Edward’s room some fragments of irregular verse, which he appeared to have cvinposed under the influence of the agi- tating feelings occasioned by this sudden page being turned up to him in the book of life. The doctor, who was a believer in all poetry which was composed by his friends, and written out in fair straight lines, with a capital at the beginning of each, communicated this treasure to Aunt Rachel, who, with her spectacles dimmed with tears, transferred them to her com- mon-place book, among choice receipts for cookery and med- icine, favorite texts, and portions from high-church divines . ‘ ve ae eeTease 24 WAVERLEY. and a few songs, amatory and jacobitical, which she had ca olled in her younger days, from, whence her nephew’s aS id tentamina were extracted when the volume itself, with other authentic records of the Waverley family, were exposed to the inspection of the unworthy editor of this memorable history. If they afford the reader no higher amusement, they will serve, at least, better than narrative of any kind, to acquaint him vith the wild and irregular spirit of our hero-— MIRKWOOD MERE, Late when the Autumn evening fell On Mirkwood Mere’s romantic dell, The lake return’d, in chasten’d gleam, The purple cloud, the golden beam: Reflected in the cry stal pool, Headland and bank lay fair and cool: The weather-tinted rock and tower, Each drooping tree, each fairy flower So true, so soft, the mirror gaye, As if there lay beneath the wave, Secure from trouble, toil, and care, A world than earthly world more fair, But distant winds began to wake, And roused the Genius of the Lake! He heard the groaning of the oak, And donn’d at once his sable cloak, As warrior at the battle-cry Invests him with his panoply, ; Then as the whirlwind nearer press’d, He ’gan to shake his foamy crest O’er furrow’d brow and blacken’d cheek, And bade his surge in thunder speak. In wild and broken eddies whirl’d, Flitted that fond ideal world, And to the shore in tumult tost, The realms of fairy bliss were lost. Yet, with a stern del light andstrange I saw ‘the s spirit-stirring “ch: ange Ass warr’d the wind with wave and wood, Upon the ruin’d tower I stood And felt my heart more strongly bound Responsive to the lofty sound. While, joying in the mighty, roar, I mourn’d that tranquil scene’ more. So, on the idle dicatek of ya Breaks the] loud trumpet-c lof Truth Bids each fair vison pass aw a Like landscape on the lake that lay, As fair, as flitting, and as frail, As that which fled the Autumn gale— Forever dead to fancy’s eye Be each gay form that an by, While dreams of love and lady’s charms Give place to honor and to arms!VAVERLEY. ie In sober prose, as perhaps these verses intimate less decid: edly, the transient idea of Miss’ Cecilia Stubbs passed fro1 Captain Waverley’s heart ami bs the turmoil which his new destinies excited. She appeared indeed in full splendor in her ather’s pew upon the Sunday et he attended service for the ast time at the old parish church, upon which occasion, a t the request of his uncle and Aunt Rachel, he was induced (nothi in loth, if the truth must be told) to present himself in fall uniform, Phere is no better antidote against entertaining too high an opinion of others, than having an excellent one of ourselves at the very same time. Miss Stubbs had indeed summoned up very assistance which art sm aftord to beauty; but, alas! hoop, patches, frizzled locks, and a new mantua of genuine French silk, were lost upon a young officer of dragoons, whe wore, for the first time, his gold-laced hat, jack-boots, and broadsword. I know not whether, like the champion of an old ballad, c J } J His heart was all on honor bent, He could not stoop to Jove; No lady in the land had power His frozen heart to move; or whether the deep and flaming bars of embroidered gold, which now fines 1 vis breast, defied the artillery of Cecilia’s eyes, but every arrow was launched at him in vain. Yet did I mark where Cupid’s shaft did light: It lighted not on little western flower, But on bold yeoman, flower of all the west, High Jonas Culbertfield, the steward’s son. Craving pardon for my heroics (which I am unable in certain cases to resist giving way to), it is a melancholy fact, that my history must here take leave of the fair Cecilia, who, like many a daughter of Eve, after the departure of Edward, and the dissipation of certain idle visions which she had adopted, quietly contented herself with a pis-a/ler, and gave her hand at the distance of six months, to the aforesaid Jonas, son of the baronet’s steward, an heir (no unfertile prospect) toa steward’s fortune; besides the snug probability of succeeding to his father’s office. All these advantages moved Squire Stubbs, as much as the ruddy brow and manly form of the suitor influenced his daughter, to abate somewh at in the article of their gentry, and so the match was concluded. None seemed more gratified than Aunt Rachel, who had hitherto looked rather askance upon the presumptuous damsel (as much as Riperer sagt sec tier att Pits eee ee ease tn re PERNT oSee fee ppbv aiscene WAVERLEY. peradventure as her nature would permit), but who, on the first appearance of the new-married pair at church, honored the bride with a smile and a profound curtsey, in presence of the rector, the curate, the clerk, and the whole congregation of the united parishes of Waverley cum Beverley. I beg pardon once and for all, of those readers who take up novels merely for amusement, for plaguing them so long with old-fashioned politics, and Whig and Tory, and Hanove- rians and Jacobites. The truth is, 1 cannot promise them that this story shall be intelligible, not to say probable, without it. My plan requires that I should explain the motives on which its action proceeded, and these motives necessarily arose from the feelings, prejudices, and parties, of the times, I do not invite my fair readers, whose sex and impatience give them the greatest right to compiain of these circumstances, into a flying chariot drawn by Lyppogriffs, or moved by enchantment. Mine is a humble English post-chaise, drawn upon four wheels, and keeping his majesty’s highway. Such as dislike the vehicle may leave it at the next halt, and wait for the conveyance of Prince Hussein’s tapestry, or Malek the Weaver’s flying sentry- box. Those who are contented to remain with me will be occasionally exposed to the dulness inseparable from heavy roads, steep hills, sloughs, and other terrestial retardations ; but, with tolerable horses, and a civil driver (as the advertise- ments have it), I engage to get as soon as possible into a more picturesque and romantic country, if my passengers incline to have some patience with me during my first stages.” CHAPTER SIXTH. THE ADIEUS OF WAVERLEY, Ir was upon the evening of this memorable Sunday that Sir Everard entered the library, where he narrowly missed _sur- prising our young hero as he went through the guards of the broadsword with the ancient weapon of old Sir Hildebrand, which, being preserved as an heir-loom, usually hung over the chimney in the library, beneath a picture of the knight and his horse, where the features were almost entirely hidden by the knight’s profusion of curled hair, and the Bucephalus, which he bestrode concealed by the voluminous robes of the Bath with which he was decorated. Sir Everard entered, and after a glance at the picture and another at his nephew, began a littleWAVERLEY. 2 speech, which, however, soon dropt into the natural simplicity of his common manner, agitated upon the present occasion by no common feeling. ‘‘ Nephew,” he said ; and then, as mending his phrase, “ My dear Edward, it is God’s will, and also the will of your father, whom, under God, it is your duty to obey, that you should leave us to take up the profession of arms, in which so many of your ancestors have been distinguished. I have made such arrangements as will enable‘ you to take the Geld as their descendant, and as the probable heir of the house of Waverley: and, sir, in the field of battle you will remembet what name you bear. And, Edward, my dear boy, remembei also that you are the last of that race, and the only hope of its revival dépends upon you; therefore, as far as duty and honor will permit, avoid danger—I mean unnecessary danger—and keep no company with rakes, gamblers, and whigs, of whom, it 7 i is to be feared, there are but too many in the service into which you are going. Your colonel, as | am informed, is an excellent o man—for a presbyterian; but you will remember your duty to God, the Church of England, and the’?—_-(this breach ought to have been supplied, according to the rubric, with the word hing ; but as, unfortunately, that word conveyed a double and embarrassing sense, one meaning de facto, and the other gure, the knight filled up the blank otherwise)—‘“‘the Church of England, and all constituted authorities.” Then, not trusting himself with any other oratory, he carried his nephew to his stables to see the horses destined for his campaign. ‘T'wo were black (the regiment color), superb chargers both; the other three were stout active hacks, designed for the road, or for his domestics, of whom two were to attend him from the Hall; an additional groom. if necessary, might be picked up in Scotland. “Vou will depart with but a small retinue,’ quoth the baronet, “compared to Sir Hildebrand, when he mustered before the gate of the Hall a larger body of horse than your whole regiment consists of. | could have wished that these twenty young fellows from my estate, who have enlisted in your troop, had been to march with you on your journey to Scotland. It would have been something at least; but J am told their attendance would be thought unusual in these days, when every new and foolish fashion is introduced to break the natural dependence of the people upon their landlords.” sir Everard had done his best to correct this unnatural disposition of the times ; for he had brightened the chain of attachment between the recruits and their young captain, not only by 4 copious repast of beef and ale, by way of parting feast, but by such a pecuniary donation to each individual, as tended rather RRs Anion etna oe et sadPs papbiithtwers cS wacne sities SRS 28 WAVERLEY. to improve the conviviality than the discipline of their march, After inspecting the cavalry, Sir Everard again conducted his nephew to the library, where he produced a letter, carefully folded, surrounded by a little stripe of flox-silk, according to ancient form, and sealed with an accurate impression of the Waverley coat-of-arms. It was addressed, with great formality, “To Cosmo Comyne Bradwardine, Esq., of Bradwardine, at his principal mansign of Tully-Veolan, in Perthshire, North Britain. These—By the hands of Captain Edward Waverley, nephew o! Sir Everard Waverley, of Waverley-Honour, Bart.” The gentleman to whom this enormous greeting was ad. dressed, of whom we shall have more to say in the sequel, had been in arms for the exiled family of Stuart in the year ¥7 455, and was made prisoner at Preston, in Lancashire. He was of avery ancient family, and somewhat embarrassed fortune; a scholar, according to the scholarship of Scotchmen, that is, his learning was more diffuse than accurate, and he was rather a reader than a grammarian. Of his zeal for the classic authors he is said to have given an uncommon instance. On the road between Preston and- London he made his escape from his guards ; but being afterwards found loitering near the place where they had lodged the former night, he was recognized and again arrested. His companions, and even his escort, were surprised at his infatuation, and could not help inquiring, why, being once at liberty, he had not made the best of his way toa place of safety; to which he replied, that he had in- tended to do so, but, in good faith, he had returned to seek his Titus Livius, which he had forgot in the hurry of his escape.° ‘The simplicity of this anecdote struck the gentleman, who, as we before observed, had managed the defence of some of those unfortunate persons, at the expense of Sir Everard, and _per- haps some others of the patty. He was, besides, himself a special admirer of the old Patavinian, and though probably his own zeal might not have carried him such extravagant lengths, even to recover the edition of Sweynheim and Pan- nartz, (supposed to be the princeps), he did not the less estimate the devotion of the North Briton, and in consequence exerted himself to so much purpose to remove and soften evi. dence, detect legal flaws, e¢ celéra, that he accomplished the final discharge and deliverance of Cosmo Comyne Bradward- ine from certain very awkward consequences of a plea before our sovereign lord the king in Westminster, The Baron of Bradwardine, for he was generally so called in Scotland (although his intimates, from his place of residence. used to denominate him Tully-Veolan, or more familiarly, Tully),WAVERLEY. no sooner stood rectus zu curta, than he posted ee to | respects and-make his acknowledgments at Waverley- Honour, A congenial passion for field sports, and a general eedees in political opinions, cemented his friendship with Sir Everard notwithstanding the difference of their habits and studies in i other particulars ; and, ha ving spent several weeks at Waver- ley-Honour, the Baron departed with m: uny expressions of regard, warmly pressing the Bai onet to return his visit, and partake of the diversion of grouse shootin ] a next season. Shortly after, ¢ upon his moors in Perthshire [r. Bradwardine remitted from Scotland a sum in celeuksors 1ent of expenses incurred in the King’s High Court of Westminster, which, although not « so formidable when reduced to the English denomination, in its original form of Scotch pounds, shillings, and pence, such a formidable effect upon the frame of Duncan Mac- wheeble, the laird’s confidential factor, baron-bailie, and man of resource, that he had a fit of the colic which lasted for five j , he said, waits and utterly by becoming the unhappy inst rument of conveying such . serious sum of money out of his native country into the hands of the false English. But patriotism, as it the fairest, so is it often the most sus le f i l bens i edd ih keh CRAs lings , aiid mal ly WhO KNEW Hallie Wiad lays, OCCz 1sionec cious mask of o wheeble, concluded altogether disinterested, and that he wuld have grudged the moneys paid to the /oons at Westm Saad much less had they 1 his professions of TeSTrec: Were Not a + . ° 1 1 : aot come from Bradwardine estate. a fund which he consid- } a0 ao 5 = 2 ered as more particularly his own. But the Bailie protested he was absolutely disin terested— Woe, woe, for Scotland, not a whit for me ! The laird was only rejoiced that his worthy friend, Sir Everard Waverley of Waverley-Honour, was reiml bursed of the ex pe ndi- ture which he had outlaid on account of the house of Bradw: ur dine. It concerned, he said, the credit of his own family anc of the kingdom of Scotland at large, that these disbursements should be repaid forthwith, and, if delayed, it would be a mat- ter of national reproach. Sir Everard, accustomed to treat much larger sums with indifference, received the remittance of £294: 13: 6, without being aware that the payment was an international concern, and, indeed, would probably have for- got the circumstance ‘altogether, if Bailie Macw heeble had thought of comforting his colic by intercepting the subsidy. A yearly intercourse took place, of a short letter, and a hamper or a cask or two, between Waverley-Honour and Tully-Veolan the English exports consisting of mighty cheeses and mightier 4 RE PT ee . Leen ars 5 tn ee eee tT ni nCStaats iene et Po ~ aa es 30 WAVERLEY. ale, pheasants, and venison, and the Scottish returns being vested in grouse, white hares, pickled salmon, and usquebaugh. All which were meant, sent, and received, as pledges of con- stant friendship and amity between two important houses. It followed as a matter of course, that the heir-apparent of Wa- verley-Honour could not with propriety visit Scotland without being furnished with credentials to the Baron of Bradwardine. When this matter was explained and settled, Mr. Pembroke expressed his wish to take a private and particular leave of his dear pupil. The good man’s exhortations to Edward to pre- serve an unblemished life and morals, to hold fast the principles of the Christian religion, and to eschew the profane company of scoffers and latitudinarians, too much abounding in the army, were. not unmingled with his political prejudices. It had pleased Heaven, he said, to place Scotland (doubtless for the sins of their ancestors in 1642) in a more deplorable state of darkness than even this unhappy kingdom of England. Here, at least, although the candlestick of the Church of England had been in some degree removed from its place, it yet afforded a glimmering light; there was a hierarchy, though schismatical, and fallen from the principles maintained by those great fathers of the Church, Sancroft and his brethren; there was a liturgy, though wofully perverted in some of the principal petitions. But in Scotland :+ was in utter darkness, and excepting a sorrow- ful, scattered, and persecuted remnant, the pulpits were aban- doned to presbyterians, and he feared, to sectaries of every description. It should be his duty to fortify his dear pupil to resist such unhallowed and pernicious doctrines in church and state, as must necessarily be forced at times upon his unwilling ears.—Here he produced two immense folded packets, which appeared each to contain a whole ream of closely-written man- uscript. They had been the labor of the worthy man’s whole life; and never were labor and zeal more absurdly wasted. He had at one time gone to London, with the intention of olv- ing them to the world, by the medium of a bookseller in Little Britain, well known to deal in such commodities, and to whom he was instructed to address himself in a particular phrase, and with a certain sign, which, it seems, passed at that time current among the initiated jacobites. The moment Mr Pembroke nad uttered the Shibboleth, with the appropriate gesture, the bibliopolist greeted him, notwithstanding every disclamation. by the title of Doctor, and conveying him into his back shop, after inspecting every possible and impossible place of conceal: ment, he commenced: “ Eh, Doctor !—Well—all under the rose~—snug—I keep no holes here even for a Hanoverian ratWAVERLEY. 3) . hide in. And, what—eh! any good news from our friends ver the water ?—and how does the w rorthy King of France ?— Or perhaps you are more lately from Rome? it must be Rome will do it at last—the Church must light its candle at the old lamp.—Eh—what, cautious? I like you the better ; but no fear.” Here Mr. Pembroke with some difficulty stopped a torrent of interrogations, eked out with signs, nods, and winks ; and, having at Jength convinced the bookseller that’ he did him too much honor in supposing him an emissary of exiled royalty, he explained his actual business. The man of books with a much more composed attr, pro- ceeded to examine the manuscripts. ‘The title of the first was, “ A Dissent from Dissenters, or the Comprehension confuted ; showing the impossibility of any composition between the Church and Puritans, Presbyterians, or Sectaries of any de- scription ; illustrated from the Scriptures, the Fathers of ea Church, and the soundest controversial Divines.” To thi work the booksellér positively demurred. “ Well meant, 2 fe said, “and learned, doubtless: but the time had gone by. Printed in small pica it would run to eight hund ed pages, and could never pay. Begged therefore to be excused—Loved and honored the true church from his soul, and, had it beena sermon on the seen or any twelve-penny touch—why I would venture something for the honor of the cloth—But come, let’s see the other. “ Right hereditary righted !”—Ay ! there’s some sense in this. Hum—hum—hum—pages so many, paper so much, letter-press Ah! J’ll tell you, though, doctor, you must knock out some of the Latin and Greek; heavy, doctor, damn’d heavy—(beg your pardon) and if you throw ina few grains more pepper—I am he that never peached my Author— T have published for Drake and C Rene RS Lawton, and poor eed Ah, Caleb! Caleb! Well, 1 was a shame to let poor Caleb starve, and so many fat rectors and squires among us. I gave hima dinner once a-week ; but, Lord love you, what’s once a week, when a man does not know where to go the other six days ?—Well, but I must show the manuscript to little Tom Alibi the solicitor, who manages all my law affairs— must keep on the windy side—the mob were ve ry uncivil the last time I mounted in Old Palace Yard—all w ie and round- heads every man of them, - illiamites and Hanover rats.” The next day Mr. Pembroke ag ain called on the publisher, but found Tom Alibi’s advice had determined him against un- dertaking the work. ‘‘ Not but what I would go to—( What was I going to say ?) to the Plantations for the church with pleasure OES eee eC ekShown hia oy eee oe Sophie street 32 WAVERLEY. —but, dear doctor, [ have a wife and family; but, to show my zeal, 1’ll recommend the job to my neighbor Trimmel—he is 4 bachelor, and leaving off business, so a voyage in a western barge would not inconvenience him.” But Mr. Trimmel was aiso obdurate, and Mr. Pembroke, fortunately perchance for himself, was compelled to return to Waverley-Honour with his treatise in vindication of the real fundamental principles of church and state safely packed in his saddle-bags. As the public were thus likely to be deprived of the benefit arising from his lucubrations by the selfish cowardice of the trade, Mr. Pembroke resolved to make two copies of these tre- mendous manuscripts for the use of his pupil. He felt that he had been indolent as a tutor, and besides, his conscience checked him for complying with the request of Mr. Richard Waverley, that he would impress no sentiments upon Edward’s mind in- consistent with the present settlement in church and state. “ But now,” thought he, “ I may without breach of my word, since he is no longer under my tuition, afford the youth the means of judging for himself, and have only to dread his re- proaches for so long.concealing the light which the perusal will flash upon his mind.” While he thus indulged the reveries of an author and a politician his darling proselyte, seeing nothing very inviting in the title of the tracts, and appalled by the bulk and compact lines of the manuscript, quietly consigned them to a corner of his travelling trunk. Aunt Rachel’s farewell was brief and affectionate. She only cautioned her dear Edward, whom she probably deemed somewhat susceptible, against the fascination of Scottish beauty. She allowed that the northern part of the island contained some ancient families, but they were all whigs and presbyterians ex- cept the Highlanders; and respecting them she must needs says, there could be no great delicacy among the ladies, where the gentleman’s usual attire was, as she had been assured, say the least, very singular, and not at all decorous. She con- cluded her farewell with a kind and moving benediction, and gave the young officer, as a pledge of her regard, a valuable diamond ring (often worn by the male sex at that time), and a purse of broad gold pieces, which also were more common Sixty Years since than they have been of late, ay UWAVERLEY. CHAPTER SEVENTH. A HORSE-QUARTER IN SCOTLAND. g, amid varied igallnay) the chief of which was a predominant, anxious, and even solemn impression, tha he was now ina great measure abandoned to his own guidance and direction, Edward Waverley departed from the Hall amid the blessings and tears of all the old domestics and the inhabi- tants of the village, mingled with some sly petitions for ser- geantcies and corporalships, and so forth : the part of those who professed that they never “thoft to sae seen Jacob, and Giles, and Jonathan, go off for soldiers, save to attend his honor, as in duty bound.” Edward, as in duty bound, extricated him- self from the supplicants with the pledge of fewer promises than might have been expected from a young man so little ac- customed to the worid. After a short visit to London, he pro- ceeded on horseback, then the general made of traveling, to Kdinburgh ,and from thence to Dundee, a seaport on the eastern coast of Angusshire, where his regiment vas then quart tered. He now entered upon a new world, where, for a time, all was beautiful because all was new. Colonel Gardiner, the commanding officer of the regiment, was himself a study for a romantic, and at the same time an inquisitive, youth. In person he was tall, handsome, and active, thought somewhat advanced in life. In his early years, he had been what is called, by manner of palliative, a very gay young man, and strange stories were circulated about his sudden conversion from doubt, if not infidelity, to a serious and even enthusiastic turn of mind. It was whispered that a supernatural communication, of a nature obvious even to the exterior senses, had produced this won- derful change; and though some mentioned the proselyte as an enthusiast, none hinted at his being a hypocrite. This singular and mystical circumstance gave Colonel Gardiner a peculiar and solemn interest in the eyes of the young soldiers.° It may be easily imagined that the officers of a regiment, com- manded by so respectable a person, composed a society more sedate and orderly than a military mess always exhibit ; and that Waverley escaped some temptations to which he might otherwise have been exposed. Meanwhile his military education proceedec d. Already a good horseman, he was now initiated into the arts of the ma- nége, which, when carried to perfection, almost realize the fable THE next morning24 WAVERLEY. 2 of the Centaur, the guidance of the horse appearing to pro: ceed from the rider’s mere volition rather than from the use of any external and apparent signal of motion. He received also instructions in his field duty ; but I must own, that when his first ardor was past his progress fell short in the latter particular of what he wished and expected. The duty of an officer, the most imposing of all others to the inexperienced mind, because accompanied with so much outward pomp and circumstance, is in its essence a very dry and abstract task, depending chiefly upon arithmetical combinations, requiring much attention, and a cool and reasoning head to bring them into action. Our hero was liable to fits of absence, in which his blunders excited some mirth, and called down some re- proof. ‘This circumstance impressed him with a painful sense of inferiority in those qualities which appeared most to deserve and obtain regard in his new profession. He asked himself in vain, why his eye could not judge of distance or space so well as those of his companions; why his head was not always suc- cessful in disentangling the various partial movements neces- sary to execute a particular evolution; and why his memory, so alert upon most occasions, did not correctly retain tech- nical phrases, and minute points of etiquette or field discipline. Waverley was naturally modest, and therefore did not fall into the egregious mistake of supposing such minuter rules of mili- tary duty beneath his notice, or conceiting himself to be born a general, because he made an indifferent subaltern. The truth was, that the vague and unsatisfactory course of reading which he had pursued, working upon a temper naturally retired and abstracted, had given him that wavering and unsettled habit of mind which is most averse to study and rivetted atten- tion. ‘Time, in the meanwhile, hung heavy on his hands. The gentry of the neighborhood were disaffected, and showed little hospitality to the military guests; and the people of the town, chiefly engaged in mercantile pursuits, were not such as Wa- vetly chose to associate with. ‘The arrival of summer, and a curlosity to know something more of Scotland than he could see in a ride from his quarters, determined him to request leave of absence for a few weeks. He resolved first to visit his uncle’s ancient friend and correspondent, with a purpose of extending or shortening the time of his residence according to circumstances. He traveled of course on horseback, and with a single attendant, and passed his first night at a miserable inn, where the landlady had neither shoes nor stockings, and the landlord, who called himself a gentleman, was disposed to be rude to his guest, because he had not bespoke the pleasure of hisWAVERLEY. 35 society to supper.? The next day, traversing an open and un enclosed country, Edward gradually approached the Highlands of Perthshire, which at first had appeared a blue outline in the horizon, but now swelled into huge gigantic masses, which frowned defiance over the more level country that lay beneath them. Near the bottom of this stupendous barrier, but still in the Lowland country, dwelt Cosmo Comyne Bradwardine of Bradwardine ; and if gray-haired eld can be in aught believed, there had dwelt his ancestors, with all their heritage, since the days of the gracious King Duncan. CHAPTER EIGHTH. A SCOTTISH MANOR-HOUSE SIXTY YEARS SINCE. Ir was about noon when Captain Waverley entered the straggling village, or rather hamlet, of Tully-Veolan, close to which was situated the mansion of the proprietor. The houses seemed miserable in the extreme, especially to an eye accus- tomed to the smiling neatness of English cottages. They stood, without any respect for regularity, on each side of a straggling kind of unpaved street, where children, almost in a primitive state of nakedness, lay sprawling, as if to be crushed by the hoofs of the first passing horse. Occasionally, indeed, when such a consummation seemed inevitable, a watchful old gran- dame, with her close cap, distaff, and spindle, rushed like a sibyl in frenzy out of one of these miserable cells, dashed into the middle of the path, and snatching up her own charge from among the sun-burnt loiterers, saluted him with a sound cuff, and transported him back to his dungeon, the little white- headed varlet screaming all the while from the very top of his lungs a shrilly treble to the growling remonstrances of the en raged matron. Another part in this concert was sustained by the incessant yelping of a score of idle useless curs, which fol- lowed, snarling, barking, howling, and snapping at the horses’ heels ; a nuisance at that time so common in Scotland, that a French tourist, who, like other travellers, longed to find a good and rational reason for everything he saw, has recorded, as one of the memorabilia of Caledonia, that the state maintained in each village a relay of curs, called co//es, whose duty it was to chase the chevaux de poste (too starved and exhausted to move without such a stimulus) from one hamlet to another, til! their annoying convoy drove them to the end of their stage. Meee trate enc,P ppRiRaerss rec cee nae eS , ae WAVERLEY. 36 The evil and remedy (such as it is) still exist: But this is re- mote from our present purpose, and is only thrown out for consideration of the collectors under Mr. Dent’s dog-bill. As Waverley moved on, here and there an old man, bent as much by toil as years, his eyes bleared with age and smoke, tottered to the door of his hut, to gaze on the dress of the stranger and the form and mot ions of the horses, and then as embled, with his neighbors, in a little group at ae smithy, tc dis cuss the probabilities of whence the stranger came, and where he might fe goin S- Three or 1ouy y. ill bee > girls, return- ing from the well or brook with pitchers and pails upon their heads, formed mor Sass ng objects, and, h their thin short- gowns and single petticoats, bare arms, eee and feet, un- covered heads and braided hair, somewhat resembled Italian forms of landscape. Nor could a lover of the picturesque have challenged either the elegance of their costume, or the sym- metry of their shape, although, to say the truth, a mere Eng lishman, in search of the comfortable, a word peculiar to his 7 1 + a ; he 1c IN tha native tongue, might have wished the clothes Jess scanty, tne feet and legs somewhat protected from the weather, the head and comple »xion shrouded from the sun, or perhaps might even have thought the whole meson and dress consider ubly im- proved, by a 2 entiful application of spring water, with a guan- tum suficit of soap. he whole scene was depressing, for it ‘st glance, at least a stagnation of industry, and a — 4 argued, at ie f o1 perhaps of intellect. Even curiosity, the busiest passion of the idle, seemed of a listless cast in the village of Tully-Veolan : the curs aforesaid alone showed any part of its activity ; with the villagers it w as pe ssive. They stood and gazed at the handsome young officer and his attendant, but without any of those ae motions a eager looks that indicate the earnest- .ess with which those who live in monotonous ease at home look out for amusement abroad. Yet the ph ryslognomy of the people, when more closely examined, was far from exhibiting the indifference of stupidity: their features were rough, but remarkably ee grave, but the very reverse of stupid ; and from among the young women, an artist might have chosen more than one model w = ose features and form resembled those of Minerva. The children also, whose skins were burnt black, and whose hair was bleached white, by the influence of the sun. had a look and manner of life and interest. Itseemed, upon the whole, as if eo and indolence, its too frequent com panion, were combining to depress the natural genius and ac quired information of a hardy, intelligent, and reflecting peas antry, 1 k ]WAVERLEY. Some such thoughts crossed Waverley his horse slowly through the rugged and { ace street ot Tully- Veolan, interrupted only in his meditations by the occasional cabrioles which his charger exhibited at the reiterated assaults of those canine C ossacks, the collies before village was more the inhabitants is Sixty Years since) the than irregularly divided from half a mile each other by now 37 s mind as he paced mentioned, long, the cottages being gardens, called them, of defierent: sizes where (for it universal potato was unknown, ‘The or yards, as but which were stored with gigantic plants of £a/e or colewort, ] encircled with grove a huge hemlock, or the inclosure. of the village petty was built had ] presented declivities of there sink or seemed ing-like to fence s of nettles, national thistle, The broken never been lev eled, every degree, tan-pits. The dry-stone w (for they were sorely and exhibited here and there overshadowing a qt ground on so that these inclosures uarter whi lich the here rising like terraces, alls which fenced, breached), these hanging gardens of Tully-Veolan, where intersected by a narrow lane leading to the common field, where the j joint labor of the villagers cultivated alternate ridges and patches of rye, oats, barley, distance the tallor’s book of unprol patt itable variety of erns. In a few and pease, each of such minute extent, that at a little the surface resembled a favored instances, there appeared behind the cottages a miserable wigwam, compiled of earth, loose stones, shelter side of the door, in noble emulation. inclosures, proudly walls was the upper gate and turf a starved cow or while five feet in height. where rely galled horse. on the other the the wealthy might perhaps But almost every hut was fenced in front ve a huge black stack of turf on one About a bow-shot from the end of the village a cr mn denominated the parks of 1 being certain squareefields, surrounded and dividet d by stone of the avenue, family dunghill ascended In the centre of the exterior barrier opening under an archway, battlemented on the top, and adorned with two large weather beaten mutilated masses of upright stone, which, if the tradition of the hamlet could be trusted, had once represented, at least had been once designed to represent, two rampant bears, the supporters of the straight and of moderate of very ancient horse-chestnuts, planted < alternately family of Bradwardine. length, running between a double row This avenue Was with syca- mores, which rose to such huge height, and flourished so luxu- riantly, beneath: that their boughs comple tely overarched the broad road Beyond these venerable ranks, and running parallel to them, were two high walls, of apparently the like antiquity, Scere a NTS a a aS we PARRA Sethi oth) Bete ro ee er eteee Pitthiie ss wlist ee 38 WAVERLEY. overgrown with ivy, honeysuckle, and other climbing plants, The avenue seemed very little trodden, and chiefly by foot- passengers; so that being very broad, and enjoying a constant shade, it was clothed with grass of a deep and rich verdure excepting where a foot-path, worn by occasional passengers, tracked with a natural sweep the way from the upper to the lower gate. ‘This nether portal, like the former, opened in front of a wall ornamented with some rude sculpture, with battlements on the top, over which were seen, half-hidden by the trees of the avenue, the high steep roofs and narrow gables of the mansion, with lines indented into steps, and corners decorated with small turrets. One of the folding leaves of the lower gate was open, and as the sun shone full into the court behind, a long line of brilliancy was flung upon the aperture up the dark and gloomy avenue. It was one of those effects which a painter loves to represent, and mingled well with the struggling light which found its way between the boughs of the shady arch that vaulted the broad green alley. The solitude and repose of the whole scene seemed almost monastic; and Waverley, who had given his horse to his servant on entering the first gate, walked slowly down the avenue, enjoying the grateful and cooling shade, and so much pleased with the placid ideas of rest and seclusion excited by this confined and quiet scene, that he forgot the misery and dirt of the hamlet he had left behind him. The opening into the paved court-yard corresponded with the rest of the scene. The house, which seemed to consist of two or three high, narrow, and steep-roofed buildings, projected from each other at right angles, formed one side of the enclosure. It had been built at a period when castles were no longer necessary, and when the Scottish architects had not yet acquired the art of designing a domestic residence. The wandows were number- less, but very sma]l; the roof had some nondescript kind of projections, called bartizans, and displayed at each frequent angle a small turret, rather resembling a pepper-box than a Gothic watch-tower. Neither did the front indicate absolute security from danger. There were loop-holes for musketry, and iron stanchions on the lower windows, probably to repel any roving band of gypsies, or resist a predatory visit from the caterans of the neighboring Highlands. Stables and other offices occupied another side of the square. The former were low vaults, with narrow slits instead of windows, resembling, as Edward’s groom observed, ‘rather a prison for murderers and larceners, and such like as are tried at sizes, than a place for any Christian cattle.” Above these dungeon looking stablesWAVERLEY. 39 were granaries, called girnels, and other offices, to which there was access by outside stairs of heavy masonry. Two battle- mented walls, one of which faced the avenue, and the other divided the court from the garden, completed the inclosure. Nor was the court without its ornaments. In one corner was a tun-bellied pigeon-house, of great size and rotundity, resembling in figure and proportion the curious edifice called Arthur’s Oven, which would have turned the brains of all the antiquaries in England, had not the worthy proprietor pulled it down for the sake of mending a neighboring dam-dyke. This dove-cote, or columbarium, as the owner called, was no small resource to a Scottish laird of that period, whose scanty rents were eked out by the contributions levied upon the farms by these light foragers, and the conscriptions exacted from the latter for the benefit of the table. Another corner of the court displayed a fountain, where a huge bear, carved in stone, predominated over a large stone basin, into which he disgorged the water. This work of art was the wonder of the country ten miles round. It must not be forgotten, that all sorts of bears, small and large, demi or in full proportion, were carved over the windows, upon the ends of the gables, terminated the spouts, and supported the turrets, with the ancient family motto “ BEWAR THE BAR,” cut under each hyperborean form. The court was spacious, well paved, and perfectly clean, there being probably another en- trance behind the stables for removing the litter. Everything around appeared solitary, and would have been silent, but for the continued plashing of the fountain; and the whole scene still maintained the monastic illusion which the fancy of Waver- ley had conjured up.!? And here we beg permission to close a chapter of still life. CHAPTER NINTH. MORE OF THE MANOR-HOUSE AND ITS ENVIRONS. AFTER having satisfied his curiosity by gazing around him for a few minutes, Waverley applied himself to the massive knocker of the hall-door, the architrave of which bore the date 1594. But no answer was returned, though the peal resounded through a number of apartments, and was echoed from the court-yard walls without the house, startling the pigeons from the venerable rotunda which they occupied, and alarming anew Pc errcrtar korean SSMena EE 2S Ree 40 WAVERLEY. even the distant village curs, which had retired to sleep upon their respective dunghills. ‘Tired of the din which he created, and the unprofitable responses which it excited, Waverley began to think that he had reached the castle of Orgoglio, as entered by the victorious Prince Arthur, When ’gan he loudly through the house to call, But no man cared to answer to his cry ; There reign’d a silence over all, Nor voice was heard, nor wight was seen in bower or hall. Filled almost with expectations of beholding some “ old, old man, with beard as white as snow,” whom he might question concerning this deserted mansion, our hero turned to a little oaken wicket-door, well clenched with iron nails, which opened in the court-yard wall at its angle with the house. It was only latched, notwithstanding its fortified appearance, and, when opened, admitted him into the garden, which presented a pleasant scene." The southern side of the house, clothed with fruit trees, and having many evergreens trained upon its walls. extended its irregular yet venerable front, along a terrace, partly paved, partly graveled, partly bordered with flowers and choice shrubs. ‘This elevation descended by three several flights of steps, placed in its centre and at the extremities, into what might be called the garden proper, and was fenced along the top by a stone parapet with a heavy balustrade, ornamented from space to. space with huge grotesque figures of animals seated upon their haunches, among which the favorite bear was repeatedly introduced. Placed in the middle of the terrace, between a sashed-door opening from the house and the central flight of steps, a huge animal of the same species supported on his head and fore-paws a sun-dial of large circumference, in- scribed with more diagrams than Edward’s mathematics enabled him to decipher. The garden, which seemed to be kept with great accuracy, abounded in fruit trees, and exhibited a profusion of flowers and evergreens, cut into grotesque forms. It was laid out in terraces, which descended rank by rank from the western wall to a large brook, which had a tranquil and smooth appearance, where it served asa boundary to the garden; but, near the extremity, leapt in a tumult over a strong dam, or wear-head the cause of its temporary tranquility, and there forming a cas- cade, was overlooked by an octangular summer-house, with a gilded bear on the top by way of avane. After this feat, the brook, assuming its natural rapid and fierce character, escaped from the eye down a deep and wooded dell, from the copse ofWAVERLEY. AI which arose a massive but ruinous tower, the former habitation of the Barons of Bradwardine. The margin of the brook, opposite to the garden, displayed a narrow meadow, or haugh as it was called, which formed a small eae the bank, which retired behind it, was covered by ancient trees. — The scene though pleasing, was ao quite equal to the garden of Alcina, yet wanted not the “due donzelette garrule” of that enchanting paradise, for upon the green aforesaid, two- bare-legged damsels, each standing in a spacious tub, performed with their feet the office of a patent washing-machine. ‘These did not, however, like the maidens of Armida, remain to greet with their harmony the eae te guest, but alarmed at the appearance of a handsome stranger on the opposite side, oles their garments (I should say aroient to be quite correct) over their limbs, which their occupation exposed somewhat too freely, and, with a shrill exclamation of “ Eh, sirs!” uttered with an accent between modesty and coquetry, sprung off like deer in different directions. Waverley began to despair of gaining entrance into this soli- tary and seemingly enchanted mansion, when a man advanced up one of the garden alleys, where he still retained, his are ‘Trusting this m g to the house, Edward descended the steps in ede: to meet him ; but as the figure approached, and long before he could discry its features, he was struck by the « ddity of its appear- ance and gestures. Sometimes this mister wight held his hands clasped over his head, like an Indian Jogue in the attitude of penance; sometimes he swung them perpendicularly, like a pendulum on each side; and anon he slapped them swiftly and repeatedly across his breast, like a substitute used by a hackney-coachman for his usual flogging exercise when his cattle are idle upon the stand, in a clear frosty day. His gait was as singular as his gestures, for at times he hopped with great perseverance on the right foot, then exchanged that sup- porter to advance in the same manner on the left, and then putting his feet close together, he hopped upon both at once. His attire also was antiquated and extravagant. It consisted in a sort of gray jerkin, with scarlet cuffs and slashed sleeves show- ing a scarlet lining; the other parts of the dress corresponded in ‘color, not forgetting a pair of scarlet stockings, and a scarlet bonnet, proudly surmounted with a turkey’s feather. Edward, whom he did not seem to observe, now perceived confirmation in his features of what the mien and gestures had already an- nounced. It was apparently neither idiocy nor insanity which gave that wild, unsettled, irregular expression to a face which ight be a gardener, or some domestic belong Rt eereeer OR SOR RS ER teaaa Ts farta emanates = 42 WAVERLEY. naturally was rather handsome, but something that resembled a compound of both, where the simplicity of the fool was mixed with the extravagance of a crazed imagination. He sung with great earnestness, and not without some taste, a fragment of an old Scotch ditty : False love, and hast thou play’d me thus In summer among the flowers ? I will repay thee back again In winter among the showers. Unless again, again, my love, Unless you turn again ; As you with other maidens rove, I’ll smile on other men. Here lifting up his eyes, which had hitherto been fixed in observing how his feet kept time to the tune, he beheld Waver- ley, and instantly doff’d his cap, with many grotesque signals of surprise, respect, and salutation. Edward, though with little hope of receiving an answer to any constant question, requested to know whether Mr. Bradwardine were at home, or where he could find any of the domestics. The questioned party replied, and hke the witch of Thalaba, “ still his speech was song,”— The Knight’s to the mountain His bugle to wind; The Lady’s to greenwood Her garland to bind. The bower of Burd Ellen Has moss on the floor, That the step of Lord William Be silent and sure. This conveyed no information, and Edward, repeating his queries, received a rapid answer, in which, from the haste and peculiarity of the dialect, the word “ butler’ was alone intelli gible. Waverley then requested to see the butler; upon which the fellow, with a knowing look and nod of intelligence, made a signal to Edward to follow, and began to dance and caper down the alley up which he had made his approaches.—* A strange guide this,” thought Edward, “ and not much unlike one of Shakespeare’s roynish clowns. I am not over prudent to trust to his pilotage ; but wiser men have been led by fools.”—By this time he reached the bottom of the alley, where. turning short on a little parterre of flowers, shrouded from the east and north by a close yew hedge, he found an old man at work without his coat, whose appearance hovered between that ofan upper servant and gardener; his red nose and ruffled shirt be-WAVERLEY. 43 longing to the former profession; and his hale and sun-burnt visage, with his green apron, appearing to indicate Old Adam’s likeness, set to dress this garden, The major domo, for such he was, and indisputably the sec ond officer of state in the barony (nay, as chief minister of the interior, superior even to Bailie Macwheeble, in his own depart- ment of the kitchen and cellar),—the major domo laid down his spade, slipped on his coat in haste, and with a wrathful look at Edward’s guide, probably excited by his having introduced a stranger while he was engaged in this laborious, and, as he might suppose it, degrading office, requested to know the gen- tleman’s commands. Being informed that he wished to pay nis respects to his master, that his name was Waverley, and so forth, the old man’s countenance assumed a great deal of re- spectful importance. ‘‘ He could take it upon his conscience to say, his honor would have exceeding pleasure in seeing him. Would not Mr. Waverley choose some refreshment after his journey ? His honor was with the folk who were getting doon the dark hag; the twa gardener lads (an emphasis on the word twa) had been ordered to attend him; and he had been just amusing himself in the mean time with dressing Miss Rose’s flower-bed, that he might be near to receive his honor’s orders, if need were: he was very fond of a garden, but had little time for such divertisements.” ‘“ He canna get it wrought in abune twa days in the week, at no rate whatever,” said Edward’s fantastic conductor. A grim look from the butler chastised his interference. and he commanded him by the name of Davie Gellatley, in a tone which admitted no discussion, to look for his honor at the «lark hag, and tell him that a gentleman from the south had arrived at the Ha’. ‘* Can this poor fellow deliver a letter?’ asked Edward. “ With all fidelity, sir, to any one whom he respects. I would hardly trust him with a long message by word of mouth ——though he is more knave than fool.” Waverley delivered his credentials to Mr. Gellatley. who seemed to confirm the butler’s last observation, by twisting his features at him, when he was looking another way, into the resemblance of the grotesque face on the bowl of a German tobacco-pipe; after which, with an odd congé to Waverley, he danced off to discharge his errand. ‘“ He is an innocent, sir,” said the butler; “there is one such in almost every town in the country, but ours is brought 4 Pr: "gPBecasensittteneene tt LOLS: y Mtrerercsgue crests Te TT ewer st?) Crit aP. peBRiens css ae ae eee ———— phate, : . : pe < a4 : WAVERLEY. farben. He used to work a day’s turn weel eneugh; but he help’d Miss Rose when she was flemit with the laird of Kil- fancureit’s new English bull, and since that time we ca’ him Davie Do-little; indeed we might ca’ him Davie Do- naething, for since he got that gay y clothing, to please his honor and my young mistress (great Folles will have their fancies), he has done naething but dance up and down about the foun, without doing a single turn, unless trimming the laird’s fishing-wand of busking his flies, or may be catching a dish of trouts at any orra- time. “But here comes Miss Rose, who, I take burden upon me for her, will be especial glad to see one of the house of Waverley at her father’s mansion of Tully-Veolan.” But Rose Bradwardine deserves better of her unworthy his torian, than to be introduced at the end of a ch lapter. In the meanwhile it may be noticed, that Wav erley learned two things from this colloquy: that in Scotland a single house was called a town and a natural fool an énnocenz.'8 CHAPTER TENTH. ROSE BRADWARDINE AND HER FATHER. Miss BrapwaRDINE was but seventeen : yet, at) the dast races of the county town of ——, upon her health being pro- posed among a roun¢ ax of beauties, the Laird of Bumperquaigh, permanent toast-master and croupier of the Bautherw hillery Club, not only said Mor ve to the pledge in a pint bumper of Bor- deaux, but, ere pouring forth the libation, denominated the di- vinity to whom it was dedicated, the “ Rose of Tully-Veolan ” : upon which festive occasion, three cheers were given by all the sitting members of that respectable society, whose throats the wine had left capable of such an exertion. Nay, I am well as- eping partners of the este: snorted ap- ya sured, that the sle plause, and that althe ough strong bumpers and weak brains had consigned two or three to the floor, yet even these, fallen as they were from their high estate, and weltering—I will carry the parody no farther—uttered divers inarticulate sounds, inti- mating their assent to the motion. | Such unanimous applause knowlec B edsamerit oe Rose Bradwardine not only deserved it, but also the ap pioba ion of much more rational persons than the Bautherwhillery Club could have mustered, even before discussion of the first magnum, She was indeed a very pretty could not be extorted but by ac-WAVERLEY. 45 that is, with a profusion of \ HE like ’ the snow of her own moun- tains in whiteness. Vet she hi A not ¢ ve illid or Beusiys cast of countenance ; her features, as well as her temper, had a lively expression; her complexion, though not florid, was sO pure as to seem transparent, and the asciolaicte! emotion sent her whole blood at once to her face and neck. Her form, though unde1 he common size, was remarkably elegant, and her motions ght, em and unembarrassed. She came from another part of the garden to receive Captain Waverley, with a manner that vd between Drei yrs and courtes} sreetings past, Edward le: urned from her that the 1 1 7 ]. ce * 7 1 ’ dark hag, which had somewhat eed him in the butler’s ac- pirl of the Sc hair of paley oO Oo ct ae _~ oe 0 9 DM par Cc CO eh aael YS Be — eat ws e LATIN £ Len pn eery eds . atk oe | J it] - a ¢ count of nis masters avocations, had notAing to do el tne! with ee fe ee ee eae ' fae aT a black cat or a broomstick, but was simply a portion of oak copse which was to be felled that day. She piace. with difident civility, to show t 1e way to the spot, NE Strancer 1 which. it ae mer bs ectant ~ bad oheu a \ hich, it seems, Was ROL far “aiSstant > Dut tiscy weic Fe Bs aes an i yok pe : wi vented by the appearance of the Baron of Bradwardine in person, who, summoned by David Gellatley, now derenrek c ] shal Lees ot a 4 9) 1 ote on hospitable thoughts intent,” clearing the ground at a i o > prodigious rate with swift and long strides, which reminded Se. of the seven-l I was a tall, thin, athleti with every muscle re exercise. He was dressec man than an Englishman of the period, while, from his hard eas ts ee at gs sure, old indeed, and gray-hair 5 Z ie dh rea aS tougen as whip-cord by constant carelessly. and more like a French- E i. “ a ade on } e “ features and perpendiculat rigidity Of Stature, he bore some re- a let 5 a, : = E ; | ] Ae emblance to a Swiss officer ol the guards, who had resided ae ks 3 ta ea eee Li ae eh eos some time at Paris, and caught the coszwme, Dut not the ease Ol . ; T bea ts ‘ core “114 2 + a+ +O qAnG1I< ra mani mner, of its inhabitants. The truth was, that his language — je) a a jets) ~ ° a and habits were as heterogeneous as his extern: Onite to his natural disposition to study, or perha very general Scottish fashion of giving young men of legal education, he had been bred with a view to the e politics of his family precluding the hope of his rising in at profession, Mr. Bradwardine traveled with hi gh reputation for several years, and made some campaigns in forei ign service, After his demélé, with the law of high treason in 1715 he had lived in retirement conversing almost entirely with those of his own principles in the vicinage. The pedantry of the law- yer, superinduced upon the military pride of the soldier, might remind a modern of the days of the zealous volunteer service. when the bar-gown of our leaders was often flung over a blaz- ing uniform. ‘To this must h h ms ot ot y 1r) p t be added the prejudices et ancient a \ Pe err UCR « ey sey ‘ aD ao eT rT Eerrrrrperernn ys rcrriote ae % die YR natin aShoes TOUT F. aap here pie x * 46 WAVERLEY. birth and jacobite politics, greatly strengthened by habits of solitary and secluded authority, which, though exercised only within the bounds of his half-cultivated estate, was there indis- putable and undisputed. For, as he used to observe, ‘“ the lands of Bradwardine, Tully-Veolan, and. others, had been erected into a free barony by a charter from David the First, cum liberalt potest. habendi curias et justicias, cum Jossa et furca (LIE pit and gallows) et saka et soka, et thol et theam, et unfang-thief ct gutfang-thief, sive hand-habend, sive back-barand.”’ The peculiar meaning of all these cabalistical words few or none could ex- ‘plain ; but they implied, upon the whole, that the Baron of Brad- wardine might, in case of delinquency, imprison, try, and execute his vassals at his pleasure. Like James the First, however, the present possessor of this authority was more pleased in talking about prerogative than in exercising it; and excepting that he imprisoned two poachers in the dungeon of the old tower of Tully-Veolan, where they were sorely frightened by ghosts and almost eaten by rats, and that he set an old woman in the 7ougs (or Scottish pillory) for saying “there were mair fules in the laird’s ha’ house than Davie Gellatley,” I do not learn that he was accused of abusing his high powers. Still, however, the conscious pride of possessing them gave additional impor- tance to his language and deportment. At his first address to Waverley, it would seem that the hearty pleasure he felt to behold the nephew of his friend had somewhat discomposed the stiff and upright dignity of the Baron of Bradwardine’s demeanor, for the tears stood in the old gentleman’s eyes, when, having first shaken Edward heartily by the hand in the English fashion, he embraced him @-Ja-mode frrangoise, and kissed him on both sides of his face ; while the hardness of his gripe, and the quantity of Scotch snuff which his accolade communicated, called corresponding drops of moist- ure to the eyes of his guest. “ Upon the honor of a gentleman,” he said, “ but it makes me young again to see you here, Mr. Waverley! A worthy scion of the old stock of Waverley-Honour—sfes al/tera, as Maro hath it—and you have the look of the old line, Captain Waver- ley ; not so portly yet as my old friend Sir Everard—wmais cela viendra avec le tems, as my Dutch acquaintance Baron Kikkit- broeck, said of the sagesse of Madame son épouse.—And so ye have mounted the cockade? Right, right; though I could have wished the color different, and so I would ha’ deemed might Sir Everard. But no more of that ; Lam old, and times are changed.—And_ how does the worthy knight baronet, and the fair Mrs. Rachel ?>—Ah, ye laugh, young man! In troth sheWAVERLEY. Ay was the fair Mrs. Rachel in the year of grace seventeen hun. dred and sixteen ; but time passes—eé singula predantur anni —that is most certain. But once again, ye are most heattily welcome to my poor house of Tully-Veolan !—Hie to the house, Rose, and see that Alexander Saunderson looks out the old Chateau Margoux, which I sent from Bordeaux to Dundee in ihe year ny1a- ~ Xu 2 Rose tripped off demurely enough till she turned the first corner, and then ran with the speed of a fairy, that she might gain leisure, after discharging her father’s commission, to put her own dress in order, and produce all her little finery—an oc- cupation for which the approaching dinner-hour left but limited time. “We cannot rival the luxuries of your English table, Cap- tain Waverley, or give youthe efucae dautiores of Waverley- Honour—l say epu/e rather than prandium, because the later phrase is popular; “pulead senatum, prandium vero ad populum aitinet, says Suetonius Tranquillus. But I trust ye will ap- plaud my Bordeaux ; cest des deux oreilles, as Captain Vinsauf use to say—Vinum prime note, the Principal of St. Andrews denominated it. And, once more, Captain Waverley, right glad am [that ye are here to drink the best my cellar can make forthcoming.” This speech, with the necessary interjectional answers, con- tinued from the lower alley where they met, up to the door of the house, where four or five servants in old-fashioned liveries, headed by Alexander Saunderson, the butler, who now bore no token of the sable stains of the garden received them in grand Costume, In an old hall hung round with pikes and with bows, With old bucklers and corslets that had borne many shrewd blows. With much ceremony, and still more real kindness, the Baron, without stopping in any intermediate apartment, conducted his guest through several into the great dining parlor, wainscoted with black oak, and hung round with the pictures of his an- cestry, where a table was set forth in form for six persons, and an old-fashioned beaufet displayed all the ancient and massive plate of the Bradwardine family. A bell was now heard at the head of the avenue ; for an old man, who acted as porter upon gala days, had caught the alarm given by Waverley’s ar- rival, and, repairing to his post, announced the arrival of other guests. These, as the Baron assured his young friend, were very estimable persons. “ There was the young Laird of Balma Re eta or NTS SCL_ Peace aa ee ‘a 48 WAVERLEY. whapple, a Falconer by surname, of the house of Glenfarquhar, given right much to field-sports—gaudet equis ct canibus—but a very discreet youn g gentleman. Then there was the Laird of Killancureit, who had devoted his leisure wa#z/ tillage and agri- culture, and boasted himself to be possessed of a bull of match- [less merit, brought from the county of Devon (the Damnonia of the Romans, i if we can trust Robert of Cirencester). He is, as ye may well suppose from such a tendency, but of yeo- man extraction—servabit odorem testa diu—and I believe, be- tween ourselves, his ee was from the wrong side of the Border—one Bull segs, who came hither as a steward, o1 bailiff, or ground officer, or ee in that department, to the last Girnigo at ce eit, who died of an atrophy. After his ese death, sir,—ye would hardly believe such a scandal —but this Bullsegg, being portly and comely of aspect , inter- married with the lady dowager, who was young and amorous, and possessed himself of the estate, which devolved on this unhappy woman by a settlement of her umwhile husband, in direct ae of an unrecorded taillie, and to the preju- dice of the disponer’s own flesh and blood, in the person of his natural heir and seventh cousin, Girnigo of Tipperhewit, whose family was so reduced by the ensuing lawsuit, that his representative 1S NOW serving as a private gentleman-sentinel in the Highland Black Watch. But this gentleman, Mr. Bull- segg of Killancureit that now is, has good blood in his veins by the mother and grandmother, who were both of the family of Pickletillim, and he is well liked, and looked upon, and knows his own place. And God forbid, Ca ptain Waverley, that we of 1 pe: achable lineage should exult over him, when it may be, that in the eight, ninth, or tenth generation, his progeny may rank, in a manner, with the old gentry of the country. Rank and ancestry, sir, should be the last words in the mouths of us of ae lemished race—vix ea nostra voco, as Naso saith. —There is, besides, a clerzyman of the true (though su ifering ) Episcopal church of Scotland. He was a confessor in he! cause after the year 1715, when a whiggish mob destroyed his meeting-house, tore his surplice, and ae his dwelling: house of four silver spoons, intromitting ¢ also with his mart and his meal-ark, and with two barrels, one of single e, and one of double ale, besides three bottles of brandy. My Baron- Bailie and doer, Mr. Duncan Macwheel ole, 1 is yi fourth on our list. There is a question, owing to the incertitude of ancient orthography, whether he belongs to the clan of Wheedle or of Quibble, but both have produce d persons eminent in the law.’’— As such he described them by person and namk, hh y ay? : They enter’d, and dinner was served as they came.WAVERLEY. CHAPTER ELEVENTH. THE BANQUET. THE entertainment was ample, and handsome, according tc the Scotch ideas of the period, and the guests did great honor to it. The. Baron eat like a famished. soldier, the Laird of Bs ilmawhapple like a sportsman, Bullsegg of Killancureit like farmer, W averley himself like a traveler, and Bailie Mac- eae like all four together; though, either out of more re- spect, or in ore | a > | yrder to preserve that proper declination of person which showed a sense that he was in the presence of his patron, he sat upon the edge of his chair, placed at three feet distanc from the table, and achieved a communication with his plate by projecting hie person towards it ina line which obliqued from the bottom of his spine, so that the person who sat op- i SOS1 re £O him could only Seo the foretop of his riding Bae This stooping position might have been inconvenient to another person; but long habit made it, whether kad. or walking, perfectly easy to the worthy Bailie. In the latter posture, it occasioned, no songs an unseemly projection of the person towards those who haj ppe Pe to walk behind; but chose being at all times his inferiors (for Mr. Macwheeble was eu ns in giving place to all in he cared very little what inference of contempt or slight regard they might ‘derive ee the circumstance. Hence, when he waddled across the court to and from his old gray pony, he somewhat resembled a turnspit walking upon its hind legs. The nonjuring ple reyman was a pensive and interesting old man, with much the air of a sufferer for conscience’ sake. He was one of those Who, undeprived, their benefice forsook, For this whim, when the Baron was out of hearing, the Baili used sometimes gently to rally M with the nicety of his scruples. Indeed, it must be owned that he himself, though at heart a keen partisan of the exiled family, had kept pretty fair with all - different turns of state in his time: so that Davie Gellatley once described him as a particularly good man, who had a fee quiet and peaceful conscience, that never did him any ae WN. When the dinner was removed, he Baron announced the r.. Rubrick. upbraidinge him YY \ | teenies coal as SN RR RRS pn aire Paste RNa err rreerrereey yr curr aMittens ne eres Be stam s = 50 WAVERLEY. health of the king, politely leaving to the consciences of his guests to drink to the sovereign de facto or de jure, as their politics inclined. The conversation now became general; and, shortly afterwards, Miss Bradwardine, who had done the honors with natural grace and simplicity, retired, and was soon followed by the clergyman. Among the rest of the party, the wine, which fully justified the encomiums of the land- lord, flowed freely round, although Waverley, with some difficulty obtained the privilege of sometimes neglecting the glass. At length, as the evening grew more late, the Baron made a private signal to Mr. Saunders Saunderson, or, as he facetiously denominated him, Alexander ab Alexandro who left the room with a nod, and soon after returned, his grave countenance mantling with a solemn and mysterious smile, and placed before his master a small oaken casket, mounted with brass ornaments of curious form. The Baron, drawing out a private key, unlocked the casket, raised the lid, and produced a golden goblet of a singular and antique ap- pearance, moulded into the shape of a rampant bear, which the owner regarded with a look of mingled reverence, pride, and delight that irresistibly reminded Waverley of Ben Jonson’s Tom Otter, with his Bull, Horse, and Dog, as that wag wittily denominated his chief carousing cups. But Mr. Bradwardine, turning towards him with complacency, requested him to cb- serve this curious relic of the olden time. “It represents,” he said, ‘the chosen crest of our family, a bear, as ye observe, and rampant, because a good herald will depict every animal in its noblest posture; as a horse salient, a greyhound currant, and, as m: Ly be 1 inferred, a raven- ous animal 77 actu ferociori, or in a voracious, lacerating, and devouring posture. Now, sir, we hold this most honorable achievement by the wap pa or concession of arms, cf Frederick Red-beard, Emperor of Germany, to my predecessor. Godmund Bradwardine, it being he crest of a cigantic Dane, whom he slew in the lists in the Holy Land, on a quarrel touch ing the chastity of the emperor’s spouse or daughter, tradition saith not precisely which; and thus, as Virgilius hath it, Mutemus clypeos, Danaumque insignia nobis Aptemus, x When for the cup, Captain Waverley, it was wrought by the command of Saint Duthac, Abbot of Abe rbrothock, for behoof of another baron of the house of Bradw: ardine, who had val iantly defended the patrimony of that monastery against certain encroaching nobies. It is properly termed the Blessed Bear ofWAVERLEY, oy Bradwardine (though old Dr. Doubleit used jocosely to call it Ursa Major), and was supposed, in old and Catholic times, to be invested with certain properties of a mystical and super- natural quality. And though I give not in to such azz/ia, it is certain it has always been esteemed a solemn standard cup and heirloom of our house; nor is it ever used but upon sea- sons of high festival, and such I hold to be the arrival of the heir of Sir Everard under my roof; and I devote this draught to the health and prosperity of the ancient and _highly-to-be- honored house of Waverley.” During this long harangue, he carefully decanted a cob- webbed bottle of claret into the goblet, which held nearly an English pint ; and, at the conclusion, delivering the bottle to the butler, to be held carefully in the same angle with the horizon, he devoutly quaffed off the contents of the Blessed Bear of Bradwardine. Edward, with horror and alarm, beheld the animal making his rounds, and thought with great anxiety upon the appropriate, motto, ‘“‘Beware the Bear”; but at the same time plainly foresaw that, as none of the guests scrupled to do him this ex- traordinary honor, a refusal on his part to pledge their cour- tesy would be extremely ill received. Resolving, therefore, to submit to this last piece of tyranny, and then to quit the table, if possible, and confiding in the strength of his constitu- tion, he did justice to the company in the contents of the Blessed Bear, and felt less inconvenience from the draught than he could possibly have expected. The others, whose time had been more actively employed, began to show symp: Ba 2215 toms of innovation,—‘‘ the good wine did its good office. The frost of etiquette, and pride of birth, began to give way before the genial blessings of this benign constellation, and the formal appellatives with which the three dignitarieshad hitherto addressed each other, were now familiarly abbreviated into Tully, Baily, and Killie. When a few rounds had passed, the two latter, after whispering together, craved permission (a joy- ful hearing for Edward) to ask the grace-cup. ‘This, after some delay, was at length produced, and Waverley concluded that the orgies of Bacchus were terminated for the evening. He was never more mistaken in his life. As the guests had left their horses at the small inn, or change-house, as it was called, of the village, the Baron could not, in politeness, avoid walking with them up the avenue, and Waverley, from the same motive, and to enjoy, after this fever- ish revel, the cool summer evening, attended the party. But when they arrived at Luckie Macleary’s the Lairds of Balme Crea wemice tattece Stage meureaneee Nees Reet oto reeneSSN Ta Peas enALS 2 WAVERLEY CIT whapple and Killancureit declared their determination to ac knowledge their sense of the papene ality of pipe by partaking, with their entertainer and his guest Captain peer ley, what they technically called deoch an doruis, a stirrup-cup, to the honor of the Baron’s roof-tree.” It must be noticed that the Bailie, knowing bye experience that the oe joviality, which had been hitherto sustained at he expense of his patron, might terminate partly at his own, ce mounte st Hi is spavined gray pony, and between gayety of , and alarm for being hooked into a reckoning, spurred ite into a hobbling canter (a trot was out of the question), cue had already cleared the village. The others entered the change-house, leading Edward in “amnesisting submission ; for his e indlord whispered him, that to demur to such an overture would be construed into a high misdemeduay against the Zeges conviviales, OY reni potation. Widow Mac leary seen 1ed to have expected this visit, as well she might, for it was the usual consummation of m srry bouts, not only at Tully- Veolan, but at most other gentlemen’s houses in Scotland, Sixty Years Since. ‘The guests tl of their burden of reculations of genial com nce acquitted themselves entertainer’s kindness, encouraged the trade -house, did honor to the slace which afforded harbor orses, and indemnified piace whic amoraed Nnarpo O thell Orses, and 1ndemninea themselves for the previous restraints imposed by private hos- pitality, by spending what Falstaff calls the sweet of the night, in a eenia al license of a tavern. Accordinely, in full expectation of these distinguished guests, Luckie Macleary had sw ept her house for the first time this ee tempered her turf-fire to such a heat as the sea- a 1 son required in her damp hovel even at midsummer, set forth her deal bile newly washed, propped its lame foot with a frag ment of turf, arranged four or five stools of huge and clumsy form upon the sites which best suited the inequalities of Be] clay floor; and having, moreover, put on her clean toy, rokelay and scarlet plaid, gravely awaited the arrival of the compan in full hope of custom and profit. n they were seated under the sooty rafters of Li only apartment thickly tapestried with cobwebs, their hostess, who had alread\ taken her cue from the Laird of Balma whapple, appeared wi a huge pewter measuring-pot, containing at least three E nglish } quarts, familiarly denominated @ 7. ippit Hen, and which, in fie fanguage of the hostess, reamed (¢. ¢. mantled) with excellent claret just drawn from the cask. _ : It was soon plain that what crumbs of reason the Bear had not devoured were to be picked up by the Hen; but the conWAVERLEY. 53 fusion which appeared to prevail favored Edward’s resolution to evade the gayly circling glass. The others began to talk thick and at once, each performing his own part in the conver. E: sation, without the least respect to his neighbor. he Baron | | of Bradwar French CHAINSOI2S-A-0OL7 EC, and spouted pieces of* Latin; Killancureit talked, in a steady unalterable 1 dull key, of top-dressing and bottom-dressing,” and year- Nae : io - f und gimmers, and dinmonts, and stots, and runts, and kyloes, and a proposed turnpike-act; while Balmawhapple, in notes exalted above both, extolled his horse, his hawks, and a grey- hound called eo In the middle of this din, the Baron repeatedly impl red s ence; and when at length the instinct of polite discipline so far prevailed, that for a moment he ob- tained it, he hastened to beseech their attention “ unto a mill- tary ariette, which was a particular favorite of the Marechal Duc de Berwick;” then imitating, as well as he could, the manner and tone of a French musquetaire, immediately com- menced : 3) Mon cceur volage, dit-elle, N’est pas pour vous, garcon ; Mais pour un homme de guerre, Qui a barbe au menton. Lon, Lon, Laridon. Qui Be chapeau & plume, Soulier ar Uuge talon, Que ‘i e de la flite, iat du violon. Eon, Eon, Laridon. Balmawhapple could hold no longer, but broke in with what .e called a d—d good song, composed by Gibby Gae- hroughwi’t, the piper of Cupar; and without wasting more < 4 , Oo t time struck up: It’s up Glenbarchan’s braes I gaed, And o’er the bent of Killiebraid, And mony a weary cast L made, To cuittle the muirfowl’s tail. [he Baron, whose voice was; drowned in tke Ieuder. and more obstreperous strains of Balixawhapple, now cropped the com- petition, but continued to, He 1m, Lon,-Lon, Laridon, and to re- a gard the successful candidat > fos the penton Ch the, company t with an eye of disdain, aie 1 Jalmawnapple proceeded: If up a bonny black-cock should spring, To whistle him down wi’ a slug in his wing, And strap him on to my lunzie string, Right seldom would Ttaike if ~*~ Lees wimnia . PRE eeF aphiiee 5: SSMS ce 54 WAVERLEY, After an ineffectual attempt to recover the second verse, he sung the first over again ; and, in prosecution of his triumph, declared there was “‘more sense in that than in all the derry- dongs of France, and Fifeshire to the boot of it.” “The Baron only answered with a long pinch of snuff, and a glance of in- finite contempt. But those noble allies, the Bear andthe Hen, had emancipated the young laird from the habitual reverence in which he held Bradwardine at other times. He pronounced the claret s4z/z¢, and demanded brandy with great vociferation. Tt was brought, and now the Demon of Politics envied even the harmony arising from this Dutch concert, merely because there was not a wrath ful note in the strange compound of sounds which it produced. Inspired by her, the Laird of Bal- mawhapple, now superior to the nods and winks with which the Baron of Bradwardine, in delicacy to Edward, had hitherto checked his entering upon political discussion, demanded a bumper with the lungs of a Stentor, “to the little gentleman in black velvet who did such service in 1702, and may the white horse break his neck over a mound of his making!” Edward was not at that moment clear-headed enough to remember that King William’s fall, which occasioned his death, was said to be owing to his horse stumbling at a mole-hill, yet felt inclined to take umbrage at a toast, “which seemed, from the glance of Balmaw happle’ s eye, to have a peculiar and un- civil reference to the Government which he served. But, he could interfere, the Baron of Bradwardine had taken up the quarrel. “Sir,” he said, “ whatever my sentiments, samguam privatus, may be in such matters, I shall not tamely endure your saying anything that may impinge upon the honorable fee slings: of. a gentleman under my roof. Sir, if you have no respect for the laws s of urbanity, do ye not respect the miltary oath, the sacramentum militare, by which every officer is bound to the standards under which he is enrolled? Tao at Titus Livius, what he says of those Roman soldiers who were so un- happy as exwere sacramentum,—to renounce their legionary oath but you are pacens sir, alike of ancient history and modern Gourtesy.. <":° “Not's SO ionor ant 45 ye Wwouid pronpunce me,” roared Bal- mawhapple. el ken weel that ydu mean the Solemn League and Coverjaiit tis Db uf if all the whigs: in.hell had taken the : Here‘ the Batan ‘aha W averley both.‘spoke out at once, the former calling out, “Be silent, sir! ye not only show your ignorance, but disgrace your native country before a stranger aad an E nglishman -”? and Wav erley, at the same moment, en- treating Mr. Bradwardine to permit him to reply to an affrontWAVERLEY. 55 which seemed leveled at him personally. But the Baron was exalted by wine, wrath, and scorn above all sublunary consid- €rations. “T crave you to be hushed, Captain Waverley; you are elsewhere, peradventure, sé juris,—foris-familiated, ‘that is, and entitled, it may be, to think and resent for yourself; but in my domain, in this poor Barony of Bradwardine, and under ihis roof, which is gvasé mine, being held by tacit relocation by a tenant at will, I am zz Zoco parentis to you, and bound to sec you scathless.—And for you, Mr. Falconer of Balmawhapple, I warn you let me see no more aberrations from the paths of good manners.” “And I tell you, Mr. Cosmo Comyne Bradwardine, of Bradwardine and Tully-Veolan,” retorted the sportsman, in huge disdain, “that fuses my toast, whether it be a crop-eared English Whig wi’ a black ribbon at his lug, or ane wha deserts his ain friends to claw favor wi’ the rats of Hanover.” In an instant beth rapiers were brandished, and some des perate passes exchanged. Balmawhapple was young, stout, and active ; but the Baron, infinitely more master of his weapon, would, like Sir Toby Belch, have tickled his opponent other gates than he did, had he not been under the influence of Ursa Major. Edward rushed forward to interfere between the combat- ants, but the prostrate bulk of the Laird of Killancureit, over which he stumbled, intercepted his passage. How Killancureit happened to be in this recumbent posture at so interesting a moment was never accurately known. Some thought he was about to ensconce himself under the table ; he himself alleged that he stumbled in the act of lifting a joint-stool, to prevent mischief, by knocking down Balmawhapple. Be that as it may, if readier aid than either his or Waverley’s had not interposed there would certainly have been bloodshed. But the well known clash of swords, which was no stranger to her dwelling, aroused Luckie Macleary as she sat quietly beyond the hallan, or earthen partition of the cottage, with eyes employed on Bos- ton’s Crook of the Lot, while her ideas were engaged in sum ming up the reckoning. She boldly rushed in, with the shrill expostulation, “‘ Wad their honors slay ane another there, and bring discredit on an honest widow-woman’s house, when there was a’ the lea-land in the country to fight upon?’ a remon- strance which she seconded by flinging her plaid with great dexterity over the weapons of the combatants. The servants by this time rushed in, and being, by great chance, tolerably ui I'll make a moor-cock of the man that re- I rece rt eNOS TSS56 WAVERLEY. sober, separated the incensed opponents, with the assistance of Edward and Killancureit. ‘The latter led off Balmawhapple, cursing, swearing, and vowing revenge against every Whig, Presbyterian, and fanatic in England and Scotland, from John- o-Groat’s to the Land’s End, and with difficulty got him to horse. Our hero, with the assistance of Saunders Saunderson escorted the Baron of Bradwardine to his own dwelling, but could not prevail upon him to retire to bed until he had made a long and learned apology for the events of the evening, of which, however, there was not a word intelligible, except some- thing ahout the Centaurs and the Lapithe. GHAPAER “CWELE Ta, REPENTANCE, AND A RECONCILIATION, WAVERLEY was unaccustomed to the use of wine, excepting with great temperance. He slept therefore soundly till late in the succeeding morning, and then awakened to a painful recol- lection of the scene of the preceding evening. Hehad received a personal affront—he, a gentleman, a soldier, and a Waver- ley. True, the person who offered it was not, at the time it was given, possessed of the moderate share of sense which nature had allotted him; true also, in resenting this insult, he would break the laws of Heaven, as well as of his country ; true, in doing so, he might take the life of a young man who perhaps respectably discharged the social duties, and rendered his family miserable ; or he might lose his own ;—no pleasant alternative even to the bravest, when it is debated coolly and in private. All this pressed on his mind; yet the original statement recurred with the same irresistible force. He had received a personal insult ; he was of the house of Waverley ; and he bore a commission. ‘There was no alternative; and he descended to the breakfast parlor with the intention of taking leave of the family, and writing to one of his brother officers to meet him at the inn mid-way between Tully-Veolan and the town where they were quartered, in order that he might convey such a mes- sage to the Laird of Balmawhapple as the circumstances seemed to demand. He found Miss Bradwardine presiding over the tea and coffee, the table loaded with warm bread, both of flour, oatmeal, and barley-meal, in the shape of leaves, cakes, biscuits, and other varieties, together with eggs, reindeer ham,WAVERLEY. Oe mutton and beef ditto, smoked salmon, marmalade, and all other delicacies which induced even Johnson himself to extol the luxury of a Scotch breakfast above that of all other coun- tries. A mess of oatmeal porridge, flanked by a silver jug, which held an equal mixture of cream and _ butter-milk, was placed for the Baron’s share of the repast ; but Rose observed he had walked out early in the morning, after giving orders that his guest should not be disturbed. ’ Waverley sat down almost in silence, and with an air of absence and abstraction, which could not give Miss Bradwar- dine a favorable opinion of his talents for conversation. He answered at random one or two observations which she ven- tured to make upon ordinary topics; so that feeling hersel almost repulsed in her efforts at entertaining him, and secretly wondering that a scarlet coat should cover no see er breeding she left him to his mental amusement of cursing Dr. Double sie favorite constellation of Ursa Major, as the cause of all the mischief which had already happened, and was likely to ensue. At once he started,%nd his color heightened, as, looking toward the window, he beheld the Baron and young Balmawhapple pass arm in arm, apparently in deep conversation; and he hastily asked, “ Did Mr. Falconer sleep here last night? ” Rose, not much pleased with the abruptness of the first ques- tion which the young stranger had addressed to her, answered dryly in the negative, and the conversation again sunk into silence. At this moment Mr. Saunderson appeared, with a message from his master, requesting to speak to Captain Waverley in another apartmeat. With a heart which beat a little ee not indeed from fear, but from uncertainty and anxiety, Ed ward obeyed the summons. He found the two gen tlemen standing together, an air of complacent dignity on the brow of the Baron, while something like sullenness or shame, or both, blanked the bold visage of Balmawhapple. ‘The former slipped his arm through that of the latter and thus seeming to walk with him, while in reality he led him, advanced to meet Wa- verley, and, stopping in the midst of the apartment, me in great state the following oration: “ Captain Waverle young and esteemed friend, Mr. — of Balmawhappl has craved of my age and experience, as of one not wholly un skilled in the dependencies and esaictilhon of the duello or monomachia, to be his interlocutor inexpressing to you the re geet with which he calls to remembrance ce rtain passages of our symposion last night, which could not but be highly dis- pleasing to you, as serving for the time under this present ex i ao 1 le,the soc eee re rs ‘a 5 8 WAVERLEY. isting government. He craves you, sir, to drown in oblivion the memory of such solecisms against the laws of politeness, as being what his better reason disavows, and to receive the hand which he offers you in amity; and I must needs assure you that nothing less than a sense of being wavs son tort, as a gallant French “chevalier, Mons. Le Bretailleur, once said to me on such an occasion, and an opinion also of your peculiar merits, could have extorted such concessions ; for he and all his family are, and have been time out of mind, Mavor toa pettora as Buchanan saith , a bold and warlike sept, or people Edward immediately, and with natural politeness, accepted the hand which Balmawhapple, or rather the Baron in his char- acter of mediator, extended towards him, “ It was impossible,” he said, “for him to remember what a gentleman expressed his wish he had not uttered; and he willingly imputed what had passed to the ee festivity of the day.” “That is very handsomely said,” answered the Baron ; ‘ for undoubtedly, if aman be ebrius, or intoxicated,—and incident which, on solemn and festive occasions, may and will take place in the life of a man of honor; and if the same gentleman, being fresh and sober, recants the contumelies which he hath spoken in his liquor, it must be held winum locutum est; the words cease to be his own. Yet would I not find this exculpation rele- vant in the case of one who was eérvosws, ora habitual drunkard ; because, if such a person choose to pass the greater part of his time in the predicament of intoxication, he hath no title to be exeemed from the obligations of .the code of politeness, but should learn to deport himself peaceably and courteously when under influence of the vinous stimulus. “And now let us proceed to breakfast, and think no more of this daft business.” I must confess, whatever inference may be drawn from the circumstance, that Edward, after so satisfactory an explanation, did much gre eater honor to the delicacies of Miss Bradwardine’s breakfast-table than his commencement had promised. Balma- whapple, on the contrary, seemed embarrassed and dejected; and Waverley now, for the first time, observed that his arm was in a sling, which seemed to account for the awkward and em- barrassed manner with which he had presented his hand. ‘Yo a question from Miss Bradwardine, he muttered, in answer something about his horse ha aving fallen ; and, seeming desirous to escape “both from the ere “and the company, he arose as soon as breakfast was over, made his bow to the party, and de- clining the Baron’s invitation to tarry till after dinner, mounted his horse and returned to his own home. Waverley now announced his purpose of leaving Tully-VeoWAVERLEY. 59 lan early enough after dinner to gain the stage at which he meant to sleep; but the unaffected and deep mortification with which the goodnatured and affectionate old gentleman heard the proposal, quite deprived him of courage to persist in it. No sooner had he gained Waverley’s consent to lengthen his visit for a few days, than he labored to remove the grounds upon which he conceived he had meditated a more early retreat. ‘“J] not have you opine, Captain Waverley, that I am by practice or precept an advocate of ebriety, though it may be that, in our festivity of last night, some of our friends, if not perchance altogether edrzz, or drunken, were, to say the least, ebrioli, by which the ancients designed those who were fuddled, or, as your English vernacular and metaphorical phrase goes, half-seas-over. Not that I would so insinuate respecting you, Captain Waverley, who, like a prudent youth, did rather abstain from potation ; nor can it be truly said of myself, who, having assisted at the tables of many great generals and marechals at their solemn carousals, have the art to carry my wine discreetly, and did not, during the whole evening, as ye must have doubt- less observed, exceed the bounds of a modest hilarity.” ‘There was no refusing assent to a proposition so decidedly laid down by him, who undoubtedly was the best judge; al- though, had Edward formed his opinion from his own recollec- tions, he would have pronounced that the Baron was not only ebriolus, but verging to become edrius,; or, in plain English, was incomparably the most drunk of the party, except perhaps his antagonist, the Laird of Balmawhapple. However, having ceived the expected, or rather the required, compliment on his sobriety, the Baron proceeded,—‘ No, sir, though I am myself of a strong temperament, I abhor ebriety, and detest those who swallow wine guz/@ causa, for the oblectation of the gullet ; albeit I might deprecate the law of Pittacus of Mitylene, who pun- ished doubly a crime committed under the influence of Lzder ‘ater ; nor would I utterly accede to the objurgation of the younger Plinius, in the fourteenth book of his ‘ Historia Natura- lis.’ No, sir, I distinguish, I discriminate, and approve of wine so far only as it maketh glad the face, or, in the language of Flaccus, recepto amico.” Thus terminated the apology which the Baron of Bradwar- dine thought it necessary to make for the superabundance of his hospitality ; and it may be easily believed that he was neither interrupted by dissent, nor any expression of incredu- lity. He then invited his guest to a morning ride, and ordered that Davie Gellatley should meet them at tne dern path with TC- . ROO ne 5 ! Se "gf asarecaminy ee60 WAVERLEY. Ban and Buscar. ‘For, until the shooting season commenced, { would willingly show you some sport; and we may, God will: ing, meet with a roe. The roe, Captain Waverley, may be hunted at all times alike ; for never being in what is called przde of grease, he is also never out of season, though it be a truth that his venison is not equal to that of either the red or fallow deer. But he will serve to show how my dogs Tun ; and there fore they shall attend us with Davie Gella they. * Waverley expressed his surprise that his friend Davie was capable of such trust; but the Baron gave him to understand that this poor simpleton was neither fatuous, ec raturalete zdiota, as is expressed in the brieves of furiosity, but simply a crackbrained knave, who could execute very well any commis- sion which jumped with his own humor, and made his folly a plea for avoiding every other. ‘ He has made an interest with us,” continued the Baron, “by saving Rose from a great dan. ger with his own proper peril ; and the roguish loon must there- fore eat of our bread and drink of our cup, and do what he can, or what he will, which, if the suspicions of Saunderson and the Bailie are well founded, may perchance in his case be com- mensurate terms.” Miss Bradwardine then gave Waverley to understand, that this poor simpleton was doatingly fond of music, deeply affected by that which was melancholy, and transported into extravagant gayety by light and lively airs. He had in this respect a pro- digious memory, stored with miscellaneous snatches and frag- ments of all tunes and songs, which he sometimes applied, with considerable address, as the vehicles of remonstrance, explana- tion, or satire. Davie was much attached to the few who showed him kindness; and both aware of any slight or ill usage which he happened to receive, and sufficiently apt, where he saw op- portunity, to revenge it. ‘The common people, who often judge hardly of each other, as well as of their betters, although they had expressed great compassion for the poor éznocent while suf- : fered to wander in rags about the village, no sooner beheld him a || decently clothed, provided for, and even a sort of favorite, than 4 they called up all the instances of sharpness and ingenuity, in action and repartee, which his annals afforded, and ch aritably bottomed thereupon a hypothesis, that David Gellatley was no further fool than was necessary to avoid. hard labor. ‘This opinion was not better founded than that of the Negroes, who, from the acute and mischievous pranks of the monkeys , Suppose that they have the gift of speech, and only suppress their powers of elocution to escape being set to work. But the hypothesis was entirely imaginary ; David Gellatley was in good earnest eget Pithies ce ra te dare ta inn Ee Seu Gi acle if WC dow long fits of laughter, or else breaks into tears of but was never heard to give any explanation or to mention his brother’s name since his death. “‘ Surely,” said Edward, who was readily interested by a tale bordering on the romantic, “surely more might be learned by more particular inquiry.” ‘“ Perhaps so,” answered Rose, “ but my rather will not per- mit any one to practice on his feelings on this subject.” TOT eA eS 3 ARO 2 Wee et een et ae re ees62 WAVERLEY, By this time the Baron, with the help of Mr. Saunderson, had indueda pair of jack-boots of large dimensions, and now invited our hero tofollowhimas he stalked clattering down the ample staircase, tapping each huge balustrade as ‘he passed with the butt of his massive horse whip, and humming, with the air of a chasseur of Louis Quatorze, Pour la chasse ordonnée il faut préparer tout Hola ho! Vité! vite debout. CHAPTER, 1 HIRTEENTH. A MORE RATIONAL DAY THAN THE LAST, Tue Baron of Bradwardine, mounted onan active and well- managed horse, and seated on a demi-pique saddle, with deep housings to agree with his livery was no bad representative of the old school. His light-colored embroidered coat, and su- perbly barred waistcoat, his brigadier wig, surmounted by a small gold-laced cock ed h: at, completed his personal costume; but he was attended. by two well-mounted servants on horse- back, armed with holster-pistols In this guise he ambled forth over hill and valley, the ad- miration of every farm-yard which eet passed in their prog- ress, till, “low down in a grassy vale,” they found Davie Gel- latley leading two very tall deer greyhounds, and presiding over half-a-dozen curs, and about as many bare- legged and bare-headed boys, who, to procurethe chosen distinction of at- tending on the chase had not failed to tickle his ears with the dulcet appellation of Maister Ge ae y, though probably all and each had hooted him on former occasions in the character of daft Davie. But thisisno uncommon strain of flattery to persons in office, nor altogether confined ae bare-legged villagers of Tully-Veolan; it wasin fschict 1 Sixty Years since, is now, and will be six hundred years hence, if this admirable compound of folly and knavery, called Bn Ww orld, shall be then in existence. These gidlie-wet-foots,” as they are called, were destined to beat the bushes, which th 1ey performed with so much success, th ae atten half an hour’s search, a roe was started, coursed, and k illed; the Baron following on his white hor rse, like Earl Percy of EYOLE, and magnanimously flaying and emboweling the slain. animal (which, he observed, was ‘called by the French chasseurs, fazre la cure) with his own baronial couteau deWAVERLEY. 63 chasse. After this ceremony, he conducted his guest home ward by a pleasant and circuitous route, commanding an ex. tensive prospect of different villages and houses, to each of which Mr. Bradwardine attached some anecdote of history or genealogy, told in language whimsical from prejudice and pedantry, but often respectable for the good sense and honor- able feelings which his narratives displayed, and almost always curious, if not valuable, for the information they contained. — The truth is, the ride seemed agreeable to both gentlemen, because they found amusement in each other’s conversation, although their characters and habits of thinking were in many respects totally opposite, Edward, we have informed the reader, was warm in his feelings, wild and romantic in his ideas and in his taste of reading, with a strong disposition toward poetry. Mr. Bradwardine was the reverse of all this, and piqued himself upon stalking through life with the same up- right, starched, stoical gravity which distinguished his evening promenade upon the terrace of Tully-Veolan, where for hours together—the very model of old Hardyknute— Stately stepped he east the wa’, And stately stepped he west. As for literature, he read the classic poets, to be sure, and the Epithalamium of Georgius Buchanan, and Arthur John- ston’s Psalms, of a Sunday; and the Deliciz Poetarum Scot- orum, and Sir David Lindsay’s Works, and Barbour’s Bruce, and Blind Harry’s Wallace, and the Gentle Shepherd, and the Cherry andthe Slae. But though he thus far sacrificed his time to the Muses, he would, if the truth must be spoken, have been much better pleased had the pious or sapient apothegms, as well as the historical narratives which these various works contained, been presented to him in the form of simple prose. And he sometimes could not refrain from expressing contempt of the “ vain and unprofitable art of poem-making,”’ in which, he said, “ the only one who had excelled in his time was Allan Ramsay, the periwig-maker.” ” But although Edward and he differed ‘0/0 c/o, as the Baron would have said, upon this subject, yet they met upon history as on a neutral ground, in which each claimed an interest, oe Baron, indeed, only cumbered his memory with matters of ‘t—the cold, dry hard outlines which history delineates Baaend, on the contrary, loved to fill up and round the oe with the coloring of a warm and vivid imagination, which gis light and life to the actors and speakers in the drama of ee ages. Yet with tastes so opposite, they contributed greatly ta64 WAVERLEY. each other’s amusement. Mr. Bradwardine’s minute nari atives and powerful memory supplied to Waverley fresh subjects of the kind upon which ‘his fancy loved to labor, and opened tc him a new mine of incident el of character. And he repaid the pleasure thus communicated, by an earnest attention, valuable to all story-tellers, more es pecially to the Baron, who felt his habits of self-respect flattered by it; and sometimes also by peciprocal communications which interested Mr. Bradwardine. as confirming or illustrating his own favorite anecdotes. Be- sides, Mr. Bradwardine loved to talk of the scenes of his youth, which had been spent in camps and foreign lands, and had many interesting particulars to tell of the ge enerals under whom he had served and the actions he had witnessed. Both parties returned to Tully-Veolan in great good humor with each other; Waverley, desirous of studying more atten- tively what he considered as a singular and interesting charac- ter, gifted with a memory containing a curious register of an- cient and modern anecdotes; and Bradwardine disposed to regard Edward as puer (or rather yuvents) bone sper let magne indolis, a youth devoid of that petulant volatility which is im- patient of, or vilipends, the conversation and advice of his seniors, from which he predicted great things of his future suc- cess and deportment in life. ‘There was no other guest except Mr. Rubrick, whose information and discourse, asa clergyman and a scholar, harmonized very well with that of the Baron and his guest. Shortly after dinner, the Baron, as if to. show that his tem- perance was not entirely theoretical, Br oRper d a visit to Rose’s apartment, or, as he termedit, her Zroisieme Etage. Waverle y was accordingly conducted through one or two of those long awkward passages with which ancient architects studied 43 puzzle the inhabitants of the houses which they planned, at the end of which Mr. Bradwardine began to ascend, by two steps at once, a verysteep, narrow, and winding stair, leaving Mr. Rubrick and Waverley to follow at more leisure, while he should announce their approach to his daughter. After having climbed this perpendicul: ar corkscrew until their brains were almost giddy, they arrived in a little matted lobby. which served as an ante-room to Rose’s sanctum sanctorum. ana through which they entered her parlor. It was a small, but pleasant apartment, opening to the south, and hung with tapes- try ; adorned besides with two pictures, one of her ATs in the dress of a shepherdess, with a bell- BOOB, the other of the Baron in his tenth year, in a blue coat, eml broidered waistcoat, laced hat, and bag-wig, ae a bow in his hand. Edward couldWAVERLE} 65 not help smiling at the costume, and at the odd resemblance between the round smooth, red-c heeked, staring visage in the portrait and the gaunt, bearded, hollow-ey ed, swarthy f which traveling, fatigues of war, and ac stowed on the original. The Baron joined in the laugh. “Truly,” he said, “ that picture was a metnen s fantasy of my good mother’s (a daughter of the Laird of Tul Waverley : I in \dicated the house to you wet we were on the top of the Shinnyheuch ; it was burnt by t o Dutch auxiliaries brought in by the government in 171s); never sat for my portraiture but once since that was Lien and it was at the special and reiterated request of the Marechal Duke of Berwick.” he rane old gentleman did not mention what Mr. Rubrick afterward told Edward, that the Duke had Sas him this honor on account of his being the first to mount t the breach of a fort in S: LVOY during the memorable campaign of 1709, and his hav- iny there defended himself with his half-pike for nearly ten minutes before any support reached him. To do the Baron justice, 2 ulthough suf ficiently prone to dwell upon, and even to exaggerate, his famil ly dignity and eatures, advanced age, had be- 5 — liellum, Captain consequence, he was too much a man of real courage ever to allude to such personal acts of merit as he had himself manifested, Miss Rose now appeared from the interior room of hera apart ment to welcome her father and his friend. The little labors in which she had been eae ace showed a natural taste which required only cultivatic Her father had taught her French and Italian, and a4 eat of the ordin: ury aa in those languages ornamented her shelves. He had ende avo red also to be her preceptor in music: but as he began with the more abstruse doctrines of the science master of eo himself, she had made than to be able to ac company her voice \ but even this was not very common in So at To make amends, she sang with great and was not perhaps no proficiency further ith tee Shut eiatlare land at that period. taste and feeling, and with a respect to the sense of what she uttered that might be proposed in example to ladies of much superior musical talent. Her natural good sense Aan her, that if, as we are assured by high authority, music be “ married to immortal verse,”’ they are very often divorced by the performer in a most shameful] manner. It was perhz ips Owing to this sensibility to poetry and power of combining its expression pith those of the musi cal notes, that her singing gave more pleasure to all the un learned in music, and even to many of the learned, than could have been communicated by a much finer voice and more bril meds lant execution, unguided by the same delicacy of feeling. i ~ ae RRS a eeSE ee as a eer 66 WAVERLEY. A bartizan, or projecting gallery, before the windows of her parlor, served to illustrate another of Rose’s pursuits s, for it was crowded with flowers of different kinds, which she had taken under her special protection. A projecting turret gave access to this Gothic balcony, which commanded. a most beautiful prospect. The formal garden, with its high wombs ved lay below, contracted as it seemed, toamere parterre ; while the view extended beyond them down a wooded glen,where the small river was sometimes visible,sometimes hid¢ len in copse. The eye might be delayed bya desire to rest on the rocks, which here and there rose from the dell with massive or spiry fronts, or it might dwell on the noble, though ruined tower, which was here be eheld in all its dignity, frowning from a promontot ry over the river. To the left were seen two or three cottages, a part of the village ; the brow of the hill concealed the others. ‘The glen, or dell, vas terminated by a sheet of water, called Loch-Veolan, into which the brook discharged itself, and which now elistened in the western sun. The distant country seemed open and varied in surface, though not wooded ; and there was nothing to inter- rupt the view until the scene was bounded by a ridge of distant and blue hills, which formed the southern boundary of the strath or valley. To this pleasant station Miss Bradwardine had ordered coffee. The view of the old tower, or fortalice, introduced some family anecdotes and tales of Scottish chivalry, which the Baron told with great enthusiasm. T ne projecting peak of an impend- lng crag which rose near it, had acquired the name of St. Swithin’s Chair. It was the scene of a peculiar superstition, of which Mr. Rubrick mentioned some curious particulars, which reminded Waverley of a rhyme quoted by Edgar in King Lear ; and Rose was called upon to sing a little legend in which they had been interwoven by some village poet, Who, noteless as the race from which he sprung, Saved others’ names, but left his own unsung, The sweetness of her voice, and the simple beauty of her music, gave all the advantage which the minstrel could have desired, and which his poetry so much wanted. I almost suet if it can be read with patience, destitute of these advantage although I conjecture the following copy to have been some- what corrected by Waverley, to suit the taste of those who might not relish pure antiquity :— pl. SWITHEN’S CHAIR, On Hallow-Mass Eve, ere ye boune ye to rest, Ever beware that your couch be blessed;WAVERLEY. Sign it with cross, and sain it with bead, Sing the Ave, and say the Creed. For on Hallow-Mass Eve the Night-Hag will ride, And all her nine-fold sweeping on by her side. Whether the wind sing lowly or loud, Sailing through moonshine or swathed in the cloud. The Lady she sat in St. Swithin’s Chair, The dew of the night had damped her hair: Her cheek was pale—but resolved and high Was the word of her lip and the glance of her eye. She muttered the spell of Swithin bold, When his naked foot traced the midnight wold, When he stopped the Hag as she rode the night, And bade her descend, and her promise plight. He that dare sit on St. Switl When the Night-Hag wings the trouble Questions three, when he speaks the spe e may ask, and she must tell. He may asl L sl tell 1in’s Chair, d air, | E The Baron has been with King Robert his liege, These three long years in battle a1 ies News are there none of his weal or his woe, ind fain the Lady his fate would know. ] 1d sieve: LCi & > She shudders and stops as the charm she speaks ; * J ? 7 . . ” Is it the moody owl that shrieks ? Or is it that sound, betwixt laughter and scream, The voice of the Demon who haunts the stream ? The moan of the wind sunk silent and low, And the roaring torrent ceased to flow ; The calm was more dreadful than raging storm, When the cold gray mist brought the ghastly form ! “IT am sorry to disappoint the company, especially Captain Waverley, who listens with such laudable gravity; it is but a fragment, although I think there are other verses, describing the return of the Baron from the wars, and how the lady was found ‘clay-cold upon the grounsill ledge.’ ”’ “Tt is one of those figments,” observed Mr. Bradwardine, “with which the early history of distinguished families was deformed in the times of superstition; as that of Rome and other ancient nations had their prodigies, sir, the which you may read in ancient histories, or in the little work compiled by Julius Obsequens, and inscribed by the learned Scheffer, the editor, to his patron, Benedictus Skytte, Baron of Dudershoff.” “My father has astrange defiance of the marvelous, Cap- tain Waverley,” observed Rose, “ and once stood firm when a whole synod of Presbyterian divines were put to the rout by a a? yea 4 sudden apparition of the foul fiend Reto m atts rh ro ree cece CRS Tee Ren, are ore GR eet .68 WAVERLEY. Waverley looked as if desirous to hear more. “Must I tell my story as well Bs sing my song? Well—. Once upon a time thete e lived an old women, call led Janet Gel- latley, who was suspected to be a witch, on the infallible grou inds that she was very old, very ugly, very poor, and had two sons, one of whom was a poet, and the other a fool, which visitation all the neighborhood agreed, had come upon her for the sin of witcl cious And she was imprisoned for a week in the steeple of the parish church, and sparingly supplied with food, and not permitted to sleep, until she ne became as much persuaded of her being a witch as her accusers ; and in ue lucid and h aPPY state of mind was Breet forth to make a clean eee that is, to make open confession of her sorcer- cw ies before all the W ‘hi is gentry and ministers of the vicinity, who were no conjurors themselves. My father went to see fair 1emse ] t h and the clergy: forthe witch had been born on his estate. A play between the witch a e clergy. nd while the witch was confessing that the Enemy appeared, and made his addresses to her as a handsome black man—which, if you could have seen poor old blear-eyed Janet, reflected little honor on Apollyon’s taste— and while the auditors listened with astonished ears, and the clerk recorded with a tremb 1 changed the low mumbling 1 shrill yell, and exclaimed, ‘ Look to yourselves! look to your- ling hand, she, allof a sudc tone with which she spoke, into a Selves! I see the Evil One sitting in the midst of ye” “The surprise was general, and terror and flight its immediate con- sequences. Happy were those who were next the door; and many were the disasters that befell hats, bands, cuffs, and wigs, before they could get out of the church, where they left the obstinate prelatist to settle matters with the witch and her admirer, at his own peril or pleasure.” “Feisu solvuntur tabule,”’ said the Baron; “ when they re- covered their panic trepidation , they were too much ashamed to bring any wakening of ihe process against Janet Gellat- ley.” This anecdote led to a long discussion of All these idle thoughts and fantasies, Devices, dreams, opinions unsound, Shows, visions, soothsays, and prophecies, And all that feioned i is, aS leasings, tales, and lies. With such conversation, and the rom ant ic legends which it produced, closed our hero’s second evening in the house of Tully-Veolan.Ui AVERLE Y. CHAPTER FOURTEENTH. A DISCOVERY—WAVERLEY BECOMES DOMESTICATED AT TULLY VEOLAN. THe next day Edward arose betimes, and in a morning walk around the house and its vicinity, came suddenly upon a small court in front of the dog-kennel, where his friend Davie was employed about his four-footed charge. One quick glance of his eye recognized Waverley, when, instantly turning his back, as if he had not observed him, he began to sing part of an old ballad : r Young men will love thee more fair and more fast Old men’s love the longest will last The young man’s wrath is like light straw on fire; But like red-hot steel is the old man’s ire, And the throstle- e's head ts under his win The young man will braw! at the evening board ; Heard ye so merry the littl. bird sing ? But the oldman will « draw at the dawning the sword, f the throstle-cock’s head is under his win Waverley could not avoid observing that Davie had some- thing like a satirical emphasis on these lines. He therefore approached, and endeavored, by sundry 7 que ries, to elicit from him what the innuendo might mean; but Davie had no mind to explain, and had wit enough to ke his folly cloak his Edward could collect nothing from him, excepting Laird of Balmawhapple had gone home yesterday morning, “ wi’ his boots fu’ o’ bluid.” In the eg rar den, however, he met the old butler, who no longer attempted < conceal that, having been bred in the nursery line with Sumack & Co., of Newcastle. he sometimes wrought a turn in the flower-bor- ders to oblige the Laird and Miss Rose. By a series of queries, Edward at length discovered, with a painful feeling of surprise and shame, that B: apology had been “é consequence of a rencontre with the Baron before his est had quitted his pillow, in which t younger nes sea been disarmed and wounded in t l-arm., ilmawhapple’s submission and he ha ne SWoOrc Oa AY TTT TR SRT er RTE ST FEUER TT a Ae pate as Nata.70 WAVERLEY. Greatly mortified at this information,Edward sought out his friendly host, and anxiously expostulated with him upon the au sui se he had done him in anticipating his meeting with Mr. ‘alconer, a circumstance which, considering his youth and the profession of arms which he h: ad just adopte d, was capable of being represented much to his prejudice. T he Baron justified himself at greater length than I choose to repeat. He urged that the quarrel was common to them, and that Balmawh apple could not, ey the code of honor, évz/e giving satisfaction to both, which he had done in his case by an honorable meeting, and in > that of Edward by such a palinode as rendered the use of the sword unnecessary, and which, being made and accept- ed, must necessarily sofzte the whole affair. With this excuse or explanation, Wa iverley was silenced, if not satisfied, but he could not help testifying some displeasure against the Blessed Bear, which had given rise to the quarrel, nor refrain from hinting that the sanctified epithet was hardly appropriate. The Baron observed, he could not deny that “the Bear, though allowed by heralds as a most honorable ordinary, had, never- theless, somewhat fierce, churlish, and morose in his disposi- tion (as might be read in Archibald Simson, pastor of Dal- keith’s ze roglyphica Animalium), and had thus been the type of many quarrels and dissensions which had occurred in the house of BRN ardiAe of which,” he “continued, “1 mieht commemorate mine own unfortunate dissension with my t hird cousin by the mother’s side, Sir Hew Halbert, who was so un- thinking as to deride my family name, as if it had been guasz Bear-warden ; a most uncivil jest, since it not only insinuated that the founder of our house occupied such a mean situation as to be a custodier of wild beasts, a charge which, ye must have observed, is only intrusted to the very basest plebeians ; but, moreover, seemed to infer that our coat-armor had not been achieved by honorable actions in war, but bestowed by way of paranomasia, or pun upon our family appellation—a sort of bearing which the French call armoires parlantes ; the Latin, arma cantatia ; and your English authorities, c: anting heraldry ; being indeed a species of emb lazoning more befitting canters, eaberlunzies , and such like mendicants, whose gib ber- ish is formed upon playing upon the word, than the noble, hon- orable, and useful science of heraldry, which assigns armorial bearings as the reward of noble and generous actions, and not to tickle the ear with vain quodlibets, such as are found in jest- books.” ?> Of his quarrel with Sir Hew he said nothing more, than that it was settled in a fitting manner. Having been so minute with respect to the diversions ofWAVERLEY. A purpose of introducing its inmates to the reader’s accquaintance, it becomes less necessary to trace the progress of his inter- course with the same accuracy. It is probable that a young man accustomed to more cheerful society would have tired of the conversation of so violent an asserter of the “boast of heraldry” as the Baron; but Edward found an agreeable variety in that of Miss Bradwardine, who listened with eager- ness to his remarks upon literature, and showed great justness of taste in her answers. ‘The sweetness of her disposition had made her submit with complacency, and even pleasure, to the course of reading prescribed by her father, although it not only comprehended several heavy folios of history, but certain gigantic tomes in high-church polemics. In heraldry he was fortunately contented to give her only such a slight tincture as might be acquired by perusal of the two folio volumes of Nisbet. Rose was indeed the very apple of her father’s eye. Her constant liveliness, her attention to all those little observ- ances most gratifying to those who would never think of exacting them, her beauty, in which he recalled the features of his beloved wife, her unfeigned piety, and the noble generosity of her disposition, would have justified the affection of the most doting father. His anxiety on her behalf did not, however, seem to extend itself in that quarter, where, according to the general opinion, itis most efficiently displayed; in laboring, namely, to estab- lish her in life, either by a large dowry or a wealthy marriage. By an old settlement, almost all the landed estates of the Baron went, after his death, to a distant relation ; and it was supposed that Miss Bradwardine would remain but slenderly provided for, as the good gentleman’s cash matters had been too long under the exclusive charge of Bailie Macwheeble, to admit of any great expectations from his personal succession. It is true the said Bailie loved his patron and his patron’s daughter next (although at an incomparable distance) to himself, He thought it was possible to set aside the settlement on the male line, and had actually procured an opinion to that effect (and, as he boasted, without a fee) from an eminent Scottish counse under whose notice he contrived to bring the point while con. sulting him regularly on some other business. But the Baron would not listen to such a proposal for an instant. On the contrary, he used to have a perverse pleasure in boasting that the barony of Bradwardine was a male fief, the first chartet having been given at that early period when women were not deemed capable to hold a feudal grant; because, according Pully-Veolan, on the first days of Edward’s arrival, for the ORSRE arrest gst 7 SN ee tNiemarichbheelahabnastionshect Sts, 72 WAVERLEY. to Les coustusmes Ge Normandie cest Phomme ki se bast et ki conseille; or, as is yet more ungallantly expressed by other authorities, all of whose barbarous names he delighted to quote at full length, because a woman could not serve the superior, or feudal lord, in war, on account of the decorum of her sex, nor assist him with advice, because of her limited intellect, nor keep his counsel, owing to the infirmity of her disposition, He would triumphantly ask how it would become a female, and that female a Bradwardine, to be seen employed 727 servetio exucnii, seu detrahendi, caligas regis post battaliam? that is, in pulling off the king’s boots after an engagement, which was the feudal service by which he held the barony of Bradwardine. “No,” he said, “ beyond hesitation, procu/ dusio, many females as worthy as Rose, had been excluded, in order to make way for my own succession, and Heaven forbid that I should do aught that might contravene the destination of my forefathers, or impinge upon the right of my kinsman, Malcolm Brad- wardine of Inchgrabbit, an honorable though decayed branch of my own family.” The Bailie, as prime minister, having received this decisive communication from his sovereign, durst not press his own opinion any farther, but contented himself with deploring, on all suitable occasions, to Saunderson, the minister of the in- terior, the Laird’s self-willedness and with laying plans for uniting Rose with the young Laird of Balmawhapple, who had a fine estate, only moderately burdened, and was a faultless young gentleman, being as sober as a saint—if you keep brandy from him, and him from brandy—and who, in brief, had no imperfection but that of keeping light company at a time ; such as Jinker the horse-couper, and Gibby Gaethroughwi’t the piper o’ Cupar; “o’ whilk follies, Mr. Saunderson, he’ll mend, he’l! mend,’’—pronounced the Bailie. “‘ Like sour ale in simmer,” added Davie Gellatley, who hap pened to be nearer the conclave than they were aware of. Miss Bradwardine, such as we have described her, with all the simplicity and curiosity of a recluse, attached herself to the opportunities of increasing her store of literature which Ed- ward’s visit afforded her. He sent for some of his books from his quarters, and they opened to her sources of delight of which she had hitherto had no idea. The best English poets, of every description, and other works on belles lettres, made a part of this precious cargo. Her music, even her flowers, were neglected, and Saunders not only mourned over, but began to mutiny against, the labor for which he now scarce received thanks. ‘These new pleasures became gradually enhanced bysharing them with one of a kindred taste to comment, to recite, to explain difficult his assistance invaluable its deficiencies. WAVERLEY. quite at ease, he possessed that flow of ate eloquence figure, fashion, There was, therefore, fame, or an intercourse, to poor Rose’s fortune, in mind 73 Edward’s readiness passages, rendered ; and the wild romance of his spirit delighted a character too young and inexperienced to observe Upon subjects which interested him, and when natural, and somewhat e, which has been supposed as powerful even as winning the female heart. increasing danger, in peace of this constant which was the more imminent, as her father was gre atly too much abstracted in his studies, and wr: es ped up in daughter’s incurring it. wardine ryt Phe ¢ 1is ] l own dignity, aughters ‘of were, in his opinion, like those of the house of Bour- to dream of his the house of Brad- bon or Austria, placed high above the clouds of passion which might obfuscate the intellects of mean er females; they moved in another sphere, were governed by other ea and amen- able to other rules, than those of idle an shut his eyes so lward’s intimacy whole neighborhood concluded that he ha In short, he quences ol Ex advantages of a match atic be tween he had generally shown hin was concerned. If the Baron, ance, the however, indifference of Waverle -y would have Our h Cre: perable bar to his project. with the world, had setae to think with great shame and con- fusion upon his mental ] tion of these self j 1 resolutely to the Miss | ( with his daughter young Englishman, and pronounced him much less a in cases where affection. natural conse- radwardine, that the opened them to the and the wealthy fool than » his own interest antastic y ) - l had really meditated such an alli- vend of reflections Ww: LS li kely, for Saint been an insu- since mixing more freely and the vexa- time at least, to Cecilia, some counterbalance the natural susceptibility of his disposition. beautiful and amiable as we have de- Besides, Rose Bradwardine, | scribed her, had not precise! captivates a romantic imagination in early youth. amiable « frank, too confiding, too kind; destructive of the marvelous. W y the sort of beauty ith which TAtrs " dere A ba oe qo een celights to address the empress of his affe to bow, to tremble, and to adore, before the yu ilities, undoubt tedly, or merit which She was too but a youth of imagi ination ctions. Was it possib dle e timid yet playful little girl, who now asked Edward to mend her pen, now to construe a stanza in Tasso, long word in her version of fascination on and now it > how All these the mind at a certain when a youth is entering it, and object whose affection may dignify him in his own eyes, than rather to spell a very—very incidents have their period of life, but not looking out for some : ee ae es:a Bie ee ee a a ge > 74 WAVERLEY. stooping to one who looks up to him for such distinction. Hence, though there can be no rule in so capricious a passion, early love is frequently ambitious in choosing its object , or, which comes to the same, selects her (as in the case of Saint Cecilia aforesaid) from a situation that gives fair scope for le beau ideal, which the reality of intimate and familiar life rather tends to limit and impair. JI knew a very accomplished and sensible young man cured of a violent passion for a pretty woman, whose talents were not equal to her face and figure, by being permitted to bear her company for a whole afternoon. Thus it is certain, that had Edward enjoyed such an op- portunity of conversing with Miss Stubbs, Aunt Rachel’s precaution would have been unnecessary, for he would as soon have fallen in love with the dairy-maid. And although Miss Bradwardine was a very different character, it seems probable that the very intimacy of their intercourse prevented his feel- ing for her other sentiments than those of a brother for an amiable and accomplished sister ; while the sentiments of poor Rose were gradually, and without her being conscious, assum- ing a shade of warmer affection. I ought to have said that Edward, when he sent to Dundee for the books before mentioned, had applied for, and received permission, extending his leave of absence. But the letter of his commanding-ofhicer contained a friendly recommendation to him, not to spend his time exclusively with persons, who, estimable as they might be in a general sense, could not be supposed well affected to a government, which they declined to acknowledge by taking the oath of allegiance. The letter further insinuated, though with great delicacy, that although some family connections might be supposed to render it neces- sary for Captain Waverley to communicate with gentlemen who were in this unpleasant state of suspicion, yet his father’s situation and wishes ought to prevent his prolonging those at- tentions into exclusive intimacy. And it was intimated, that while his political principles were endangered by communicat ing with laymen of this description, he might also receive erro- neous impressions in religion from the prelatic clergy, who so perversely labored to set up the royal prerogative in things sacred. This last insinuation probably induced Waverley to set both down to the prejudices of his commanding-officer. He was sensible that Mr. Bradwardine had acted with the most scrupu- lous delicacy, in never entering upon any discussion that had the most remote tendency to bias his mind in political opinions, although he was himself not only a decided partisan of theWAVERLEY. 70 5 exiled family, but had been trusted at different times with im portant commissions for their service. Sensible, therefore, that there was no risk of his being perverted from his alle- giance, Edward felt as if he should do his uncle’s old friend injustice in removing from a house where he gave and received pleasure and amusement, merely to gratify a prejudiced and ill-judged suspicion. He therefore wrote a very general an swer, assuring his commanding-officer that his loyalty was not in the most distant danger of ‘contamination, and continued an honored guest and inmate of the house of Tully-Veolan. CHAPTER FIFTEENTH. A CREAGH * AND ITS CONSEQUENCES. WHEN Edward had beena guest at Tully-Veolan nearly six weeks, he descried one morning, as he took his usual walk before the breakfast hour, signs of uncommon perturbation in the family. Four bare-l egged dairy-maids, with each an empty milk-pail in her hand, ran about with frantic gestures, and ut- tering loud exclamations of surprise, grief, and resentment. From their appearance, a pagan might have conceived them a detachment of the celebrated Belides, just come from their baling penance. As nothing was to be got from the distracted chorus, excepting “Lord guide us!” and “ Eh sirs!” ejacula- tions which threw no light upon the cause of their dis- may, Waverley repaired to the fore-court, as it was called, where he beheld Bailie Macwheeble cantering his white pony down = avenue with all the speed it could muster. He had arrived, it would seem, upon a hasty summons, and was fol- aban by ee a score of peasants from the village, who had no great difficulty in keeping pace with him. The Bailie, greatly too busy, and too important, to enter into explanations with Edward, summoned forth Mr. Saunder. son, who appeared with a countenance in which dismay was mingled with solemnity, and they immediately entered into close conference. Davie Gellatley was also seen in the group, idle as Diogenes at Sinope, while his countrymen were pr epar- ing for asiege. His spirits always rose with anything good or bad, which occasioned tumult, and he continued frisking, hopping, dancing, and singing the burden of an old ballad, Our gear’s a’ gane, mat Sts “Ree says sathoedpabsenhs F pipbiitthvasscae cea SE 76 WAVERLEY. until, happening to pass too near the Bailie, he received an admonitory hint from his horsewhip, which converted his songs into lamentation. ; ape Passing from thence toward the garden, Waverley beheld the Baron in person, measuring and re-measuring, with swift and tremendous strides, the length of the terrace; his coun- tenance clouded with offended pride and indignation, and the whole of his demeanor such as seemed to indicate, that any inquiry concerning the cause of his discom posure would give pain at least, if not offence. Waverley therefore glided into the house, without addressing him, and took his way to the breakfast parlor, where he found his young friend Rose, who, though she neither exhibited the resentment of her father, the turpid importance of Bailie Macwheeble, nor the despair of the handmaidens, seemed vexed and thoughtful. A single word explained the mystery, “ Your breakfast will be a disturbed one, Captain Waverley. A party of Caterans have come down upon us last night, and have driven off all our milch cows.” “A party of Caterans? ” “Ves ; robbers from the neighboring Highlands. We used to be quite free from them while we paid blackmail to Fergus Mac-Ivor Vich Ian Vohr; but my father thought it unworthy of his rank and birth to pay it any longer, and so this disaster has happened. It is not the value of the cattle, Captain Waver- ley, that vexes me; but my father is so much hurt at the affront, and is so bold and hot, that I fear he will try to recover them by the strong hand ; and if he is not hurt himself, he will hurt some of these wild people, and then there will be no peace be- tween them and us perhaps for our lifetime; and we cannot defend ourselves as in old times, for the government have taken all our arms; and my dear father is so rash—Oh what will be- come of us!”»—-—Here poor Rose lost heart altogether, and burst into a flood of tears. : The Baron entered at this moment, and rebuked her with more asperity than Waverley had ever heard him use to any one. ‘‘ Was it not a shame,” he said, “ that she should exhibit herself before any gentleman in such a light, as if she shed tears for a drove of horned nolt and milch kine, like the daugh- ter of a Cheshire yeoman; Captain Waverley, I must request your favorable construction of her grief, which may or ought to proceed solely from seeing her father’s estate exposed to spulzie and depredation from common thieves and sorners,™ while we are not allowed to keep half a score of muskets, whether fom detence or rescue.”’ Bailie Macwheeble entered immediately afterward, and byWAVERLEY. 77 his report of arms and ammunition confirmed this statement, informing the Baron, in a melancholy voice, that though the people would certainly obey his honor’s orders, yet there w no chance of their following the gear to ony eude purpose, in spect there were only his honor’ s body servants who had =. and pistols, and the depredators were twelve High- landers, completely armed after the manner of their country. Having delivered this doleful annunciation, he assumed a pos: ture of silent d dele >ction, shaki ng his head slowly with the motion of a pendulum when it is ceasing to vibrate, and then remained stationary, hi is ere stooping ata more acute angle than usual, and the latter part of his person projecting in proportion, The Baron, meanwhile, pa e ee the room in silent indignation 7 i and at length fixing his eye upon an old portrait, whose person was clad in armor, and whose features glared crimly out of a buge bush of hair, part of which descended from his head to his shoulders, and part from his chin and upper-lip to his breast- plate,“ That gentleman, Captain Waverley, my grandsire,” he said, ‘with two hundred horse, whom he le ee within his own bounds, disctomfited and put to the rout more than five hun- dred of these Highland reivers, who have been ever apis offenst- nis, et petra scandali, a stumbling-block and a rock of offence to the Lowland vicinage—he discomfited them, I say, when they had the temerity to descend to pears this country, in the time of the civil dissensions, in the year of grace, sixteen hundred forty and two. And now, sir, ] such unworthy hands !” er ‘ ee g1 randson, am thus used at Here there was an awful pause ; after which all the com- pany, as is usual incase of difficulty, began to give separate and inconsistent counsel. Alexander ab Alexandro proposed they should send some one to compound with the Caterans, who would readily, he said, give up their prey for a dollar a head. ‘The Bailie opined that this transaction would amount to theft-boot, or composition of felony; and he recommended that some cazny hand should be sent up to the glens to make the best bargain he could, as it were for himself, so that the Laird might not be seen in such a transaction. Edward pro. pesed to send off to the nearest garrison for a party of soldiers and a magistrate’s warrant ; and Rose, as far as she dared, en- deavored to insinuate the course of paying the arrears of tribute money to Fergus Mac-Vich Ian Vohr, who, they all knew, could easily procure restoration of the cattle if he were prop: erely propitiated. None of these proposals met the Baron’s approbation. The idea of composition, direct or implied, was absolutely ignomini-48 WAVERLEY. ous; that of Waverley only showed that he did not understand the state of the country, and of the political parties which di- rided it; and, standing matters as they did with Fergus Mac- [vor Vich Ian Vohr, the Baron would make no concession to him, were it, he said, “to procure restitution 7” tegrum of every stirk and stot that the chief, his forefathers, and his clan, had stolen since the days of Malcolm Canmore.” In fact, his voice was still for war, and he proposed to send expresses to Balmawhapple, Killancureit, Tulliellum, and other lairds, who were exposed to similar depredations, inviting them to join in the pursuit; ‘and then, sir, shall these zebulones ne- guissimt, as Lesleus calls them, be brought to the fate of their predecessor Cacus, ‘ Elisos oculos, et siccum sanguine guttur,’ ” The Bailie, who by no means relished these warlike counsels, here pulled forth an immense watch, of the color, and nearly of the size, of a pewter warming-pan, and observed it was now past noon,.and that the Caterans had been seen in the pass of Ballybrough soon after sunrise ; so that before the allied forces could assemble; they and their prey would be far beyond the reach of the most active pursuit, and sheltered in those pathless deserts, where it was neither advisable to follow, nor indeed possible to trace them. This proposition was undeniable. The council therefore broke up without coming to any conclusion, as has occurred to councils of more importance ; only it was determined that the Bailie should send his own three milk-cows down the Mains for the use of the Baron’s family, and brew small ale as a sub- stitute for milk in his own. To this arrangement, which was suggested by Saunderson, the Bailie readily assented, both from habitual deference to the family, and an internal con- sciousness that his courtesy would, in some mode or other, be repaid tenfold. The Baron having also retired to give some necessary direc- tions, Waverley seized the opportunity to ask, whether this Fergus, with the unpronounceable name, was the chief thief- taker of the district ? ‘“ Thief-taker !”? answered Rose, laughing; “ he is a gentle- man of great honor and consequence ; the chieftain of an inde: pendent branch of a powerful Highland clan, and is much respected, both for his own power, and that of his kith, kin, and allies.” “And what has he to do with [sche thieves then?7 77> .{7 WAVERLEY. 79 a magistrate, or in the commission of the peace?” asked Wa- verley. “The commission of war rather, if there be such a thing.” said Rose; ‘ for he is a very unquiet neighbor to his un-friends, and keeps a greater following on foot than many that has thrice his estate. As to his connection with the thieves, that I cannot well explain; but the boldest of them will never steal a hoof from any one that pays black-mail to Vich Ian Vohr.” ‘* And what is black-mail ?” ‘A sort of protection-money that Low-country gentlemen and heritors, lying near the Highlands, pay to some Highland chief, that he may neither do them harm himself, nor suffer it to be done to them by others ; and then if your cattle are stolen, you have only to send him word, and he will recover them; or it may be, he will drive away cows from some distant place, where he has a quarrel, and give them to you to make up your loss.” “And is this sort of Highland Jonathan Wild admitted into society, and called a gentleman?” ‘‘So much so,” said Rose, “that the quarrel between my father and Fergus Mac-Ivor began at a county meeting, where he wanted to take precedence of all the Lowland gentlemen then present, only my father would not suffer it. And then he up- braided my father that he was under his banner, and paid him tribute ; and my father was in a towering passion, for Bailie Macwheeble, who manages such things his own way, had con- trived to keep this black-mail a secret from him, and passed it in his account for cess-money. And they would have fought ; but Fergus Mac-Ivor said, very gallantly, he would never ratse his hand against a gray head that was so much respected as my father’s. Oh, I wish, I wish they had continued friends !” “And did you ever see this Mr. Mac-Ivor, if that be his yame, Miss Bradwardine ?”’ ‘No, that is not his name; and he would consider master as a sort of affront, only that you are an Englishman, and know no better. But the Lowlanders call him, like other gen- tlemen, by the name of his estate, Glennaquoich ; and the Highlanders call him Vich Ian Vohr, that is, the Son of John the Great; and we upon the braes here call him by both names indifferently.” “T am afraid I shall never bring my English tongue to call him by either one or other.” ‘“ But he is a very polite, handsome man,” continued Rose; “ and his sister Flora is one of the most beautiful and accom- plished young ladies in this country; she was bred in a con- vent in France, and was a great friend of mine before «his ) SAMARAS SERN LAAT Sots 3 ~ renin meeeBe WAVERLEY. unhappy dispute. Dear Captain Waverley, try your influence with my father to make matters up. I am sure this is but the beginning of our troubles; for Tully-Veolan has never been a safe or quiet residence w hen we have been at feud with the Highlanders. When I was a girl about ten, there was a skir- mish fought between a party of twenty of them, and my father and his servants, behind the Mains; and the bullets broke several panes in the north windows, t they were so near. Three of the Highlanders were killed, and they brought them in, wrapped in their plaids, a and laid them on the stone floor of the hall; and next morning, their wives and daughters came, clap- ping their hands, and crying the coronach, and shrieking, an d carried away the dead bodies,with the pipes playing before them. I could not sleep for six weeks without starting, and thinking I heard those terrible cries, and saw the bodies lying on the steps, all stiff and swathed up in their bloody tartans. But since that time there came a party from the garrison at Stirling, with a warrant from the Lord Justice-Clerk, or some such great man, and took away all our arms; and now, how are we to protect ourselves if they come down in any strength ? ” Waverley could not help starting at a story which bore so much resemblance to one of his own dayne Here was a 1r i qd l girl scarce seventeen, the gentle st ¢ her sex, both in temper and appearance, who had witnessed with her own eyes such a scene as he had used to conjure me in his imagination, as only occurring in ancient times, and spoke of it coolly, as one very likely to recur. He felt at once the impulse of curiosity, and that slight sense of danger which only serves to heighten its interest. He might have said with Malvolio, “‘I do not now fool myself, to let in nagination a me!’ Iam actually in the land of military and romantic adventures, and it only remains to be seen what will be my own share in them.” The whole circumstances now detailed concerning the state of the country, seemed equally novel and ext raordina anys Fle had indeed often heard of Highland thieves, but had no idea of the systematic mode in which their depredations were con- ducted ; and that the practice was connived at, and even en- couraged, by many of the Highland chieftains, who not only found ‘the creaghs, or forays, useful for the purpose of training individuals of their clan to the practice of arms, but also of maintaining a wholesome terror among their Lowland neigh- bors, and levying, as we have seen, a tribute from them, under color of protection- money, Bailie Macwheeble, who soon afterward entered, expatiated still more at length upon the same topic. This honest gentleWAVERLEY. 81 man’s conversation was so formed upon his professional prac: tice, that Davie Gellatley once said his discourse was like a ‘charge of horning.”» He assured our hero that, “from the maist ancient times of record, the lawless thieves, hmmers,and broken men of the 1 Highla ae oe been in fellows re! together by reason of their surnames, for the committing of divers thefis, eifs, and herships upon Ce honest men of the Low Country, when they not only intromitted with their whole goods and gear, corn, cattle, horse, nolt, sheep, outsight and imsight plen- at their wicked pleasure, but moreover made prisoners, ae them,or concussed them into giving borrows (pledges) ri o sebubiit Ss) to enter into captivity again : all which was directly prohibited in divans parts of the Statute Book, both by the act one thou- sand five hundred and sixty-seven, and various others ; the whilk statutes, with all that had followed and might follow V thereupon, were shamefully broken and villipended by the said sorners, limmers, and broken men, associat ae into fellowships for the afore sal purposes of theft, stouthreef, fire-raising, murder, rapius mulierum, Or forcible abduction of women, and - ‘ iio cox bd such like cs aforesaid. It seemed like a dream to Waverley that these deeds of ] violence should be famihar to men’s minds, and currently talked of, as falling within the common order of things, and happening daily in ee immediate vicinity, without his having crossed the seas, and while he was yet in the otherwise wel ordered island of Great Britain.” CHAPTER SIXTEENTH. AN UNEXPECTED ALLY APPEARS, Tue Baron returned at the dinner hour, and had in a great measure recovered his composure and good humor. He not only confirmed the stories which Edward had heard from Rose and Bailie Macwheeble, but added many anecdotes from his own experience, concerning the state of the Highlands\and their inhabitants. ‘The chiefs he pronounce 1 to be, in genekal, gentlemen of great honor and high pedigree, whose word was accounted as a law by all those of thers sent; or lan. “lt did not, indeed,” he said, ‘become them, as had occurred in late instances, to propone their ae a lineage, which rested for the most part on the vain and fond rhymes of their Seannachies or Bhairds, as eequiponderate with the evidence of ed aN a: LR TT IRR Sete ET ee eae ent US MITT TtSe WAVERLEY. ancient charters and royal grants of antiquity, conferred upon distinguished houses in the Low Country by divers Scottish monarchs ; nevertheless, such was their ou¢recuadance and pre sumption, as to undervalue those who possessed such evidents, as if they held their lands in a sheep’s skin.” This, by-the-way, pretty well explained the cause of quarrel between the Baron and his Highland ally. But he went on to state so many curious particulars concerning the manners, cus- toms, and habits of this patriarchal race, that Edward’s curiosity became highly interested, and he inquired whether it was pos- sible to make with safety an excursion into the neighboring Highlands, whose dusky barrier of mountains had already excited his wish to penetrate beyond them. ‘The Baron as- sured his guest that nothing would be more easy, providing this quarrel were first made up, since he could himself give him letters to many of the distinguished chiefs, who would receive him with the utmost courtesy and hospitality. While they were on this topic, the door suddenly opened, and, ushered by Saunders Saunderson, a Highlander, fully armed and equipped, entered the apartment. Had it not been that Saunders acted the part of master of the ceremonies to this martial apparition, without appearing to deviate from his usual composure, and that neither Mr. Bradwardine nor Rose exhibited any emotion, Edward would certainly have thought the intrusion hostile. As it was, he started at the sight of what he had not yet happened to see, a mountaineer in his full national costume. The individual Gael was a stout, dark young man, of low stature, the ample folds of whose plaid added to the appearance of strength which his person exhibited. The short kilt, or petticoat, showed his sinewy and clean-made limbs ; the goat-skin purse, flanked by the usual defences, a dirk and steel-wrought pistol, hung before him ; his bonnet had a short feather, which indicated his claim to be treated as a Duinhé wassel, or sort of gentleman ; a broadsword dangled by his side, a target hung upon his shoulder, and a long Spanish fowling-piece occupied one of his hands. With the other hand he pulled off his bonnet, and the Baron, who well knew thei customs, and the proper mode of addressing them, immediately said, with an air of dignity, but without rising, and much, as Edward thought, in the manner of a prince receiving an em- bassy, “Welcome Evan Dhu Maccombich ; what news from Fergus Mac-Ivor Vich Ian Vohr?” “Fergus Mac-Ivor Vich Ian Vohr,” said the ambassador, in good English, “greets you well, Baron of Bradwardine and Pully-Veolan, and is sorry there has been a thick cloud interWAVERLEY. 83 posed between you and him, which has kept you from seeing and considering the friendship and alliances that have been between your houses and forbears of old, and he prays you that the cloud may pass away, and that things may be as they have been heretofore between the clan Ivor and the house of Brad- wardine, when there was an egg between them for a flint, and a knife for a sword. And he expects you will also say, you are sorry for the cloud, and no man shall hereafter ask whether it descended from the hill to the valley, or rose from the valley to the hill; for they never struck with the scabbard who did not receive with the sword, and woe to him who would lose his friend for the stormy cloud of a spring morning.” To this the Baron of Bradwardine answered with ‘suitable dignity, that he knew the chief of clan Ivor to be a well-wishe: to the Azwg, and he was sorry there should have been a cloud between him and any gentleman of such sound principles, “ for when folks are banding together, feeble is he who hath no brother!” This appearing perfectly satisfactory, that the peace between these august persons might be duly solemnized, the Baron ordered a stoup of usquebaugh, and, filling a glass, drank to the health and prosperity of Mac-Ivor of Glennaquoich ; upon which the Celtic ambassador, to requite his politeness, turned down a mighty bumper of the same generous liquor, seasoned with his good wishes to the house of Bradwardine. Having thus ratified the preliminaries of the general treaty of pacification, the envoy retired to adjust with Mr. Macwheeble some subordinate articles with which it was not thought neces- sary to trouble the Baron. These probably referred to the discontinuance of the subsidy, and apparently the Bailie found means to satisfy their ally, without suffering his master to suppose that his dignity was compromised. At least, it is certain, that after the plenipotentiaries had drunk a bottle of brandy in single drams, which seemed to have no more effect upon such seasoned vessels, than if it had been poured upon the two bears at the top of the avenue, Evan Dhu Maccombich, having possessed himself of all the information which he could procure respecting the robbery of the preceding night, declared his intention to set off immediately in pursuit of the cattle, which he pronounced to be “no far off ;—they have broken the pone,” he observed, ‘“‘ but they have had no time to suck the marrow.” Our hero, who had attended Evan Dhu during his perquisi- tions, was much struck with the ingenuity which he displayed in collecting information, and the precise and pointed conclu . ee Seen ts Pernt eat,84 WAVERLEY. sions which he drew from it. Evan Dhu, on his part, was obviously flattered by the attentions of Wav erley, the interest he seemed to take in his inquiries, and his curiosity about the customs and scenery of the Highlands. Without much cere- mony he invited Edward to accompany him. on a short walk of ten or fifteen miles into the mountains, and see the place where the cattle were conveyed to; adding, “If it be as I suppose, you never saw such a place in your life nor ever will, unless you go with me or the like of me Our hero, feeling his curiosity y considerab ly excited by ets idea of visiting the den of a High land Cacus, took, howeve the precaution to inquire if his cuide might be trusted. He was assured, that the invitation would on no account have been given, had there been the least danger, and that all he had to apprehend was a little fatigue ; and as Evan proposed he should pass a day at his chieftain’s house in returning, where he would be sure of good accommodation and an excellent welcome, there seemed nothing very formidable in the task he undertook. Rose, indeed, turned pale when she heard of it; but her father, who loved the spirited curiosity of his young friend, did not attempt to damp it by an alarm of danger which really did not exist; and a knapsack, with a few necessaries, being bound on the shoulder of a sort of deputy camekeeper, our hero set forth with a fowling-piece in his hand, accompanied by his new friend Evan Dhu, and followed by the gamekeeper aforesaid, and by two wild Highlanders, the attendants of Evan, one of whom had upon his shoulder a hatchet at the end of a pole, called a Lochal ber-axe,”’ and the other a long ducking-gun. Evan, upon Edward’s inquiry, gave him to understand, that this martial es was by no means necessary as a guard, but merely, as ee said, drawing up and adjusting his plaid with an air of dig that he might appear decently at Tully-Veolan, and as Vich iad an Vohr’s foster-brother ought to do. “Ah!” said he, “ If you Saxon Duinhé-wassel (English gentleman) saw th | Soe 5 t but the chief with his tail on!” “ With his tail on? ” echoed Edward in some surprise. “ Yes—that is, with all his usual fc ile owers, when he visits those of the same rank. There is,” he continued, stopping an a drawing himself proudly up, while he counted upon his fingers the several officers of his chief’s re tinue ; “ there is his Vatican or right-hand man; then his dard, or poet; then his d/adier, ot orator, to make harangues to the great folks whom he visits, then his gz//y-more, or armor-bearer, to carry his sword, and target, aud his gun; then his Sully. -casfliuch, who carries him on his back through the sikes and brooks ; then his gi//y-comstrian.WAVERLEY. Se to lead his horse by the bridle in steep and difficult paths ; then his gully trusharnish, to carry his knapsack ; and the piper and the piper’s man, and it may by a dozen young lads besides, that have no business, but are just boys of the belt, to follow the laird l, and do his honor’s bidding. 2 ‘And does your Chief regularly maintain all the men?” ae W averley. ‘“ All these?” replied Evan; “ ay, and many a fair head eside, that would not ken where to lay itself, but for the mickle barn at Glennaquoich.” With similar tales of the grandeur of the chief in peace and war, Evan Dhu beguiled the way till they ap Broun more closely those huge mountains which Edward had hitherto only seen ata distance. It was towards evening as they entered one of the tremendous passes which afford communication between the high and low country ; the path, which was extremely steep and rugged, winding up a chasm between two tremendous rocks, following the passage which a foaming stream, that brawled far below, aj ppeared to have worn for itself in the course of ates. A few slanting beams of the dees which was now setting, reached the water in its darksome bed, and showed it partially, chafed by a hundred rocks, and broken ed 1 hundred falls. The descent from the path to the stream was a mere precipice, with here and there a projecting fragment of granite, or a scathed tree, which had warped its twisted roots into the fissures of the rock. On the right hand, the mountain rose above the path with almost equal inaccessibility ; but the hill on the opposite side displayed a shroud of copsewood, with which some pines were intermingled. “This,” said Evan, “is the pass of Bally-Brough, which was kept in former times by ten of the clan Donnochie against a hundred of the Low Country carles. The graves of the slain are still to be seen in that little corri, or bottom, on the oppo- site side of the burn—if your eyes are good, you may sée the green specks among the heather.—See, there is an earn, which you southrons call an eagle—you have no such birds as that England—he is going to fetch his supper from the laird of Bradwardine’s braes, but I’ll send a slug after him,” He fired his piece accordingly, but missed the superb mon- arch of the feathered tribes, who, without noticing the attempt to annoy him, continued his majestic Night to the southward, A thousand birds of prey, hawks, kites, carrion-crows, and ravens, disturbed from the lodging which they had just taken up for the evening, rose at the report of the gun, and mingled their hoarse and discon ‘dant notes with the echoes ‘which replied ~ eae socio26 WAVERLEY. to it, and with the roar of the mountain cataracts. Evan, a little disconcerted at having missed his mark, when he meant to have displayed peculiar dexterity, covered his confusion by whistling part of a pibroch as he reloaded his piece, and pro- ceeded in silence up the pass. It issued in anarrow glen, between two mountains, both very lofty and covered with heath. ‘The brook continued to be their companion, and they advanced up its mazes, crossing them now and then, on which occasions Evan Dhu uniformly offered the assistance of his attendants to carry over Edward ; but our hero, who had been always a tolerable pedestrian, declined the accommodation, and obviously rose in his guide's opinion, by showing that he did not fear wetting his feet. In- deed he was anxious, so far as he could without affectation, to remove the opinion which Evan seemed to entertain of the effem- inacy of the Lowlanders, and particularly of the English. - Through the gorge of this glen they found access to a black bog, of tremendous extent, full of large pit-holes, which they traversed with great difficulty and some danger, by tracks which no one but a Highlander could have followed. The path itself, or rather the portion of more solid ground on which the travellers half walked, half waded, was rough, broken, and in many places quaggy and unsound. Sometimes the ground was so completely unsafe, that it was necessary to spring from one hillock to another, the space between being incapable of bear- ing the human weight. This was an easy matter to the High- landers, who wore thin-soled brogues fit for the purpose, and moved with a peculiar springing step ; but Edward began to find the exercise, to which he was unaccustomed, more fa- tiguing than he expected. ‘The lingering twilight served to show them through this Serbonian bog, but deserted them almost to- tally at the bottom of a steep and very stony hill, which it was the travellers’ next toilsome task to ascend. The night, however, was pleasant, and not dark ; and Waverley, calling up mental energy to support personal fatigue, held on his march gallantly, though envying in his heart his Highland attendants, who con- tinued without a symptom of unabated vigor, the rapid and swinging pace, or rather trot, which, according to his computa- tion, had already brought them fifteen miles upon their journey. After crossing this mountain, and descending on the other side towards a thick wood, Evan Dhu held some conference with his Highland attendants, in consequence of which Ed- ward’s baggage was shifted from the shoulders of the game- keeper to those of one of the gz//zes, and the former was sent off with the other mountaineer in a direction different from thatWAVERLEY. 87 of the three remaining travelers. Onasking the meaning of this separation, Waverley was told that the Lowlander must go to a hamlet about three miles off for the night; for unless it was some very particular friend, Donald Bean Lean,* the worthy person whom they supposed to be possessed of the cattle, did not much approve of strangers approaching his retreat. This seemed reasonable, and silenced a qualm of suspicion which came across Edward’s mind, when he saw himself, at such a place and such an hour, deprived of his only Lowland companion. And Evan immediately afterward added “that indeed he himself had better get forward, and announce theirapproach to Donald Bean Lean, as the arrival of a sider roy fT (red soldier) might otherwise be a disagreeable surprise.” And without wait- ing for an answer, in jockey phrase, he trotted out and putting himself to a very round pace, was out of sight in an instant. Waverley was now left to his own meditations, for his attend- ant with the battle-axe spoke very little English. They were traversing a thick, and as it seemed, an endless wood of pines, and consequently the path was altogether indiscernible in the murky darkness which surrounded them. The Highlander, how- ever, seemed to trace it by instinct, without the hesitation of a moment, and Edward followed his footsteps as close as he could. After journeying a considerable time in silence, he could not help asking, “ Was it far to the end of their journey ?” ‘“'T’a cove was tree, four mile ; but as Duinhé-wassel was a wee taiglit, Donald could, tatis, might,would,should send ta curragh.” ‘This conveyed no information. The curragh which was promised might be a man, a horse, a cart, or chaise ; and no more could be got from the man with the battle-axe, but a repe- tition of ‘ Aich ay! ta curragh.” But in a short time Edward began to conceive his meaning, when, issuing from the wood, he found himself on the banks of a large river or lake, where his conductor gave him to understand . they must sit down for a little while. The moon, which now be- gan to rise, showed obscurely the expanse of water which spread before them, and the shapeless and indistinct forms of moun- tains with which it seemed to be surrounded. The cool, and yet mild air of the summer night, refreshed Waverley after his rapid and toilsome walk, and the perfume which it wafted from the birch trees,” bathed in the evening dew, was exquisitely fragrant. He had now time to give himself up to the full romance of * Pronounced Bane Lane. t The sider roy were used to distinguish the regular regiments from the independent companies raised to protect the peace of the Highlands, These last were called sidier dhu, t.c., black soldier; and the 42d Regiment, which was formed out of these independent companies, is still called the Black Watch from the dark color of their tartans, PRE Re eT eee Se eerie oe CRN SCS TICS)ST eae Downers 88 WAVERLEY. his situauion. Here he sat on the banks of an unknown lake, under the guidance of a wild native, whose 1: nguage was un- known to him, on a visit to the den of some renowned outlaw, a second Robin Hood, perhaps, or Adam 0’ a and that at deep midnight, through scenes of di faculty and tort separated from his attendant, left | by his guide. —What a variety Pie ic dents for the exercise of a romantic imagination, and all hanced by the solemn feeling of uncertainty at least, if not of eer { The only circumstance whicl h assorted ill wit = the rest, was the cause of his j jour rea Baron’s milk-cows ! thi degrading i incident he kept in the background. While wrapt in these dreams of imagination, his companion gently touched him, and, pointi ng in a direction nearly straight across. the lake, said, ‘‘ Yon’s ta cove.” A small point of Ji cht was seen to twinkle in the direction in which he re and gradually increasing in size and lustre, seemed to flicker like a meteor upon the verge of the horizon. While Edward watched this phenomenon, the distant oe ce oars was heard. The measured sound approached near and more near, and presently a loud whistle was heard in thesame direction. His friend wit i the battle-axe immediat ely whistled clear and shrill, in reply t the signal, and a boat manned with four or five Highlanders, pushed for the little inlet, near which Edward was sitting. He advanced to meet them with his attenda int, Was immedi: itely sisted into a boat by the officious attention of two sto ut Moun- taineers, and had no sooner seated himself than they resumed their oars, and began to row across the lake with great rapidity. 1S a5- CHAPTER SEVENTEENTH. THE HOLD OF A HIGHLAND ROBBER, THE party preserved silence, interr upted only by the monot- onous and murmured chant of a Gaelic song, sung in a kind of low recitative by the steersman, and by the dash of the oars, which the notes seemed to regulate, as they dipped to them’ in cadence. ‘The light, which they now approached more nearly, assumed a broader, rec Ider, and more irregular splendor, It appeared plainly to be a large fire, but whether kindled upor an island, or the main land, E ‘dw ard could not determine. As he saw it, the red glaring orb seemed to rest on the very sur- * A Freebooter of Aberdeenshire, see Percy Religues,WAVERLEY. Sa 7. face of the lake itself, and resembled the fiery vehicle in which the Evil Genius of an Oriental tale traverses land and sea They approached nearer, and the light of the fire sufficed to show that it was kindled at the bottom of a huge dark crag or rock, rising abruptly from the very edge of the water ; its front, changed by the reflection to dusky red, formed a_ strange ind even awful contrast to the banks around, which were from time to time faintly and partially illuminated by pallid moon light. The boat now neared the shore, and Edward could discover that this large fire, amply sup plied with br: anches of pine-wood by two fioures, who, in the red reflection of its light, appeared like demons, was kindled in the jaws of a lo ofty cavern, into which an inlet from the lake seemed to advance; and he con- jectured, which was indeed true, that the fire had been lighted as a beacon to the boatmen on their return. They rowed right for the mouth of the cave, and then, shipping their oars, per- mitted the boat to enter in obedience to the impulse which it had received. The skiff passed the tle point, or platform, of rock, on, which the fire was blazing, and running about two boats’ length further, stopped where the cavern (for it was already arched overhead) ascended from the water by five or six broad ledges of rocks, so easy and regular that they might be termed patie) steps. At this moment a quantity of wate1 was suddenly flung upon the fire, which sunk with a hissing noise, and with it disappeared the light it had hitherto aftorded. Four or five active arms lifted Waverley out of the boat, placed 1im on his feet, and almost carried him into the recesses of he cave. He made a few paces in darkness, guided in this manner; and advancing toward a hum of voices, which seemed to sound from the centre of the rock, at an acute turn Donald Bean Lean and his whole establishment were before his eyes. ' The interior of the c cave, which here rose very high, was illuminated by torches made of pine-tree, which emitted a bright and bickering light, attended by a strong though not unpleas- ant odor. Their light was assisted by the red glare of a large ckarcoal fire, round which were seated five or six armed Hi igh- landers, while others were indistinctly seen couched on their plaids, in the more remote recesses of the cavern. In one large aperture, which the robber facetiously called his spence (or pantry), there hung by the heels the carcasses of a sheep, or ewe, and two cows lately slaughtered. The principal inhabitant of this singular mansion, attended by Evan Dhu as master of the ceremonies, came forward to meet his guest, totally different in 1 l + L YY . “GIB osenennianenFSR lohan tees Reet 90 WAVERLEY. appearance and manner from what his imagination had antici pated. ‘The profession which he followed—the wilderness in which he dwelt—the wild warrior forms that surrounded him, were all calculated to inspire terror. From such accompani- ments, Waverley prepared himself to meet a stern, gigantic, ferocious figure, such as Salvator would have chosen to be the central object of a group of banditti.” Donald Bean Lean was the very reverse of all these. He was thin in person and low in stature, with light sandy-colored hair and small pale features, from which he derived his agnomen of Bean, or white ; and although his form was light, well-propor- tioned, and active, he appeared, on the whole, rather a diminu- tive and insignificant figure. He had served in some inferior capacity in the French army, and in order to receive his English visitor in great form, and probably meaning, in his way, to pay him a compliment, he had laid aside the Highland dress for the time, to put on an old blue and red uniform, and a feathered hat, in which he was far from showing to advantage, and indeed looked so incongruous, compared with all around him, that Waverley would have been tempted to laugh, had laughter been either civil or safe. The robber received Captain Waverley with a profusion of French politeness and Scottish hospitality, seemed perfectly to know his name and connections, and to be particularly acquainted with his uncle’s political principles. On these he bestowed great applause, to which Waverley judged it prudent to make a very general reply. Being placed at a convenient distance from the charcoal fire, the heat of which the season rendered oppressive, a strap- ping Highland damsel placed before Waverley, Evan, and Donald Bean, three cogues, or wooden vessels composed of staves and hoops, containing eanaruich, a sort of strong soup *” made out of a particular part of the inside of the beeves. After this refreshment, which though coarse, fatigue and hunger ren- dered palatable, steaks, roasted on the coals, were supplied in liberal abundance, and disappeared before Evan Dhu and their host with a promptitude that seemed like magic, and astonished Waverley, who was much puzzled to reconcile their voracity with what he had heard of the abstemiousness of the High- landers. He was ignorant that this abstinence was with the lower ranks wholly compulsory, and that, like some animals of prey, those who practice it were usually gifted with the power of indemnifying themselves to good purpose, when chance threw plenty in their way. The whiskey came forth in abundance to crown the cheer. The Highlanders drank it copiously and undiluted; but Edward, having mixed a little with water, did tWAVERLEY. gI not find it so palatab yle as to invite him to repeat the draught. Their host bewailed himself exceedingly that he could offer him no wine: ‘* Had he but known four-and-twenty hours before, he would have had some, had it been within the circle of forty miles round him. But no gentleman could do more to show his sense of the honor of a visit from another, than to offer him the best cheer his house afforded. Where there are no bushes there can be no nuts, and the way of those you live with 1s that you must follow.” He went on regretting to ae Dhu the death of an age d man, Donnacha an Amrigh, or Duncan with the Cap, “a eifted seer,’ who foretold, through the second sight, visitors of every description who haunted their dwelling, whetber as friends of foes. “Ts not his son Malcolm ¢aishatr ?” (a second-sighted per son), asked Evan. ‘Nothing equal to his father,” replied Donald Bean. © He told us the other day we were to see a great ge sntleman riding on a horse, and there came nobody that whole. day but Shemus Beg, tue blind harper, with his dog. Another time he adver- tised us of a wedding, and behold it proved a funeral; and on the creagh, when he idectotd to us we should bring home a hundred head of horned cattle, we grippit nothing but a fat bailie of Perth.” From this discourse he passed to the political and military state of the country ; and Waverley was astonished, and even alarmed, to find a person of this description so accurately ac- quainted with the strength of the various garrisons and regiments quartered north of the Tay. He even mentioned the exact number of recruits who had joined Waverley’s troop from his uncle’s estate, and observed they were frefiy men, meaning, not handsome, but stout warlike fellows. He put Waverley in mind of one or two minute circumstances which had happened at a general review of the reg iment, which satis- fied him that the robber had been an eye-witness of it; and Evan Dhu having by this time retired from the conversation, and wrapped himself up in his plaid to take some repose, Donald asked Edward, in a very significant manner, whether he had nothing particular to say to him. Waverley, surprised and somewhat startled at this question from such a character, answered he had no mo tive in visiting him but curiosity to see his extraordinary place of residence. Donald Bean Lean looked him steadily in the face for an in: stant, and then said, with a signl ificant nod, “ You might as well have confided in me; I am as much worthy of trust as Rincon eiyurertats92 WAVERLEY. either the Baron of Bradwardine or Vich Ian Vhor :—but you are equally welcome to my house.” Waverley felt an invo olentany shudder creep over him at the mysterious language held by this outlawed and lawless bandit, which, in anes of his attempts to master it, deprived him of the power to ask the meaning of his insinuations. A heath pallet, with the flowers stuck uppermost, had been pre: pared for him in a recess of the cave, and here, covered with such spare plaids as could be mustered, he lay for some time watching the motions of the other inhabitants of the cavern. Small parties of two or three entered or left the place without any other ceremony than a few words in Gaelic to the e principal outlaw, and, when he fell asleep, to a tall Highlander who acted as his heutenant, and seemed to keep watch duri ing his repose. Those who entered se ce to have returned from some excur- sion, of which they ane the success, and went without further ceremony to a e larder, where, cutting with their dirks their rations from the carcasses which were there suspended, they proceeded to broil and eat them at their own pleasure and leisure. The liquor was under strict regulation, being served out either by Donald himself, his lieutenant, or the strapping Highland girl aforesaid, who was the only nels that appeared. ‘The allowance of whiskey, however, would have appeared prodigal to any but Highlanders, wh 10, living ent onl in the open air, and in a very moist climate, can consume great quantities of ardent spirits without the usual baneful effects either upon the brain or constitution, At length the fl luctuating groups began to swim before the eyes of our hero as they gradually closed; nor did he re-open them till the morning sun was high on the lake without, ae there was but a faint and ‘glimmering twilight in the ecesses of Uaimh an Ri, or the King’s Cavern, as the abode of Donald Bean Lean was proud y denominated. CHAPTER EIGHTEENTH. WAVERLEY PROCEEDS ON HIS JOURNEY. WHEN Edward had collected his sca ttered recollection, he was surprised to observe the cavern totally deserted. Having arisen and put his dress in some order, he looked more accu. rately around him, but all was still solitary, Ifit had not beenWAVERLEY. for the decayed brands of the fire, now sunk into gray ashes, 7 4 E ee yf i E and the remnants of the festival, consisting of bones half i burned and half ors an mained no traces of Don: sallied forth to the entrance of Pike cave, he perceived that the point of rock, on which remained the marks of last night’s beacon, was accessible by a small path, either natural, or roughly hewn in the rock, along the little inlet of water which ran a few yards up into the cavern, where, as in a wet-dock, 1 an empty keg or two, there re. iN ¢ ild and Bs bind: When Waverley the skiff which brought seit there the night before, was still lying moored. When he reached the smal I] projecting platform en established, he would have believed his farther fee by land impossible, only that it vas scarce probable st what the inhabitants of the cavern had some mode of issuing from it otherwise than by the lake. Accordingly, he soon chanel 1 three or four shelving ledges of ok <, at the very extremity of the little platform; and making use of them as a staircase, he clambered by their means around the projecting shoulder of the crag on which the cavern opened, and, descending with some difficulty on the other side, he gained the wild and prec ipitous shores of a Highland loch, about four miles in length, anda aa et a half across, surrounded by heathy and savage 1e crest of which the morning mist was still SRS SARE SWAVERLEY. essor was in harrying No srthumberland, and therefore left to his posterity a rival edific e, as a monument of his magnificence. Around the house, w hich stood on an eminence in the midst of a narrow Highland valley, there appeared none of that at- tention to convenience, far less to or nanrent and decoration, which usually surrounds a gentleman’s h abitation. An inclosure or two, divided by dry-stone walls, were the only part of the domain that was fenced ; as to the rest, the narrow slips of level ground which lay by the side of the brook, exhibited a Boanty crop of barley, liable to constant depredations from the herds of wild ponies and black cattle that grazed upon the ad- jacent hills. These ever and anon made an incursion upon the arable ground, which was repelled by the loud, uncouth, and dissonant shouts of half-a-dozen Highland swains, all running as if they had been mad, and every one hallooing a half-starved dog to the rescue of the forage. At a little distance up the glen was a small and stt unted wood of birch; the hills were high and heathy, but without any variety of surface ; so that the whole view was wild and desolate, rather than grand and solitary. Yet such as it was, no genuine descendant of lan nan Chaistel would have changed the domain for Stowe or Blenheim. There was a sight, however, before the gate, w hich perhaps would have afforded the first owner of Blenheim more pleasure than the finest view in the domain assigned to him by the gr ati- tude of his country. This consisted of about a hundred High- landers, in complete dress and arms; at sight of whom. the chieftain apologized to Waverley in a sort of negligent manner. “ He had forgot,” he said, “ that he na ordered a few of his clan out, for the purpose of seeing that they were in a fit con- dition to protect the country, and prevent such accidents as, he was sorry to learn, had befallen the Baron of Bradwardine. Before they were dismissed, perhaps Captain Waverley might choose to see them go through a part of their exercise. Edward assented, and the men executed with agility and precision some of the ordinary military movements. They then practiced individually at a mark, and showed extraordinary dexterity in the management of the pistol and firelock. They took aim standing, sitting, leaning, or lying prostrate, as they were commanded, and always with effect upon the target Next they paired off for the broadsword exercise ; and, having manifested their individual skill and dexterity, united in two bod- ies, and exhibited asort of mock encounter, in which the charge, the rally, the flight, the pursuit, and all the current of a heady fight, we re exhibited to the sound of the great war bagpipe.WAVERLEY. 107 On a signal made by the chief, the skirmish was ended. Matches were then made for running, wrestling, leaping, pitch- ing the bar, and other sports, in which this feudal militia dis- p layec l incredible swiftness, strength, and agility ; and accom- plished the purpose which their chieftain had at heart. by impressing on Waverley no light sense of their merit as soldiers, and of the power of him who commanded them by his nod. ‘And what number of such gallant fellows have the hap- piness to call you leader?” asked Waverley. In a good cause, and under a chieftain whom they loved, the race of Ivor have seldom taken the field under five hundred claymores. But you are aware, Captain Waverley, that the disarming act, passed about twenty years ago, prevents their being in the complete state of preparation, as in former times ; and I keep no more of my clan under arms than may defend my own or my friends’ BlOneHy; when the country is troubled with such men as your last night’s landlord; and government, which has removed other means of defence, must connive at our protecting ourselves.” “ But with your force you might soon destroy, or put down, such gangs as that of Donald Bean Lean.” “Yes, doubtless; and my reward would be a summons to deliver up to General Blakeney, at Stirling the few broad- swords they have left us: there were little policy in that, me- thinks.—But come, C aptain, the sound of the pipes informs me that dinner is prepared. Let me have the honor to show you into my rude mansion.” CHAPTER TWENTIETH, A HIGHLAND FEAST. ErE Waverley entered the banqueting-hall, he was offered the patriarchal refreshment of a bath for the feet, which the sultry weather, and the morasses he had traversed, rendered high ily acceptable. He was not indeed so luxuriously attend- ed upon this occasion, as the heroic travelers in the Odyssey ; the task of ablution and abstersion being performed, not by a beautiful damsel, trained To chafe the limb, and pour the fragrant oil, but by a smoke-dried, skinny old Highland woman, who did not seem to think herself much honored by the duty imposedSa FAERIE gan ite 108 WAVERLEY. upon her, but muttered between her teeth, ‘‘ Our fathers’ herds did not feed so near together, that 1 should do you this ser- vice.” A small donation, however, amply reconciled this an- cient handmaiden to the supposed di ee ; and, as Edward proceeded to the hall, she gave him her biessing, in the Gaelic proverb, ‘‘ May the open hand be filled the fulleou The: hall, an ach the feast was prepared, occupied the I first story of Ian nan Chaistel’s original erection, and a huge oaken table extended through its whole length. The apparatus for dinner was simple, even to rudeness, and the company nu- merous, even to crowding. At the head of the ta aes was the Chief himself, with Edward, a1 Highland visi- tors of neighboring clans; the elders of his o vn tribe, wad- setters and tacksmen, as the y were called, who oc cupiec d por- tiens of his estate as mortgagers or lessees, sat next in rank ; beneath them their sons and nephews, and foster-brethren ; then the officers of the Chief’s household, according to their - order ; and, lowest of all, the tenants who actually cultivated the ground. Even beyond this long perspective, Edward might see upon the green, to 7 a huge pair of folding doors opened, a multitude of Highlanders of a yet inferior description, who, mewertheless, were canedenee as ete and had their e both of the countenance of the entertainer, and of the cheer of the day. In the distance, and fluctuating round this He; Co 4ct a YW oe c OD extreme verge of the banquet, was a changeful group of women, ragged boys and girls, beggars, young and old, large greyhounds, and terriers, and pointers, and curs of low de QTE ; y : ; all of whom took some interest, more or less immediate, in the main action of the piece. This hospitality, apparently unbounded, had yet its line of economy. Some pains had been bestowed in dressing the dishes of fish, game, etc., which were at the upper end of the ] 4 1 : ¢ A 2 dim Neer iatel ywoder the >} c t : lick table, and immediately uz one the eye of the English stranger. Lower down stood immense clums) joints of mutton and beef, ee a7 * : 1 1 which, but for the absence of pork, ®’abhorred in the Highlands he Highlands, resemb! led the rude festivity of the banquet of Penelope’s suitors. But the central dish was a vearline lamb called “ a Orbs ists es ] ‘ 39 Pe ea rT, . o e . e hog in harst, roasted whole. It was set upon its legs, with a pee h of be sey In its mouth, and was probably exhibited in 1e pride of the cook, who piqued himself more on the plenty than the elegance of his master’s tabl Asc Ul Lilo > Ts Rinne one thse : I he sides O01 this Be Or animal | St es ~ pa) — EH Sa UO = ae 0) a) a © 5 9 A of WEE hercely attacked by th: clansmen, some with dirks, others ge the knives which were usually in the same sheath with the da wer. So tha tawas soon rendered a m: ingle d and rueful pee tials: Lower down still,WAVERLEY. 109 the victuals seemed of yet coarser quality, though sufficiently abundant. Broth, onions, cheese, eo oe frasments of the feast, regaled the sons of Or who feasted in th The liquor was sup pl lied in similar regulations. Exc selle nt claret and champagne were liberally distributed among the Chief’s immediate neighbors ; whiskey, plain or diluted, and strong beer, refreshed those who sat near the lower end. Nor did this inequality of distribution appear to le Open air. the same proportion, and undet give the least offence. Every one present under stood that his taste was to be ie according to the rank which he he d at table: and conse XQ quently ae tacksmen and eed ee Ry their dependants always BED tessed the wine was too cold for their stomachs, and called. apparently out oe choice, for the =u gee ES ie se es 0 ry 1 liquor which was assigned to them from economy. The bag pipers, three in number, screamed. during the whole time « dinner, a tremendous war-tune: and the echoing of the vaulted ner 6 ees : at «tf Vallis 4 : eee ‘ ] root, ane clang of the Celtic tongue, produced | such a Babel eel Mick al ee of noises, that Waverley dreaded | his €ars would never recover it. Mocivon indeed, a its ic } : { e Sia pologized for the confusion occasioned Toe. : E ats : ‘ } ; : ; ; DY SO Hee) ¢ party, and pleaded the necessity of his situation, os de 1 ] a ye . = on which unlimited hospitality was imposed as a paramount Pate. cer t Pals i ee C ks 2 7 ot duty. Thess stout idle kinsmen of mine,” he said, “account my estate as held in trust for their support ; and I must iad them beef and ale, w selves but | C shooting, fishing, hunting, drinking, and making love to ile the rogues will do nothing for then yractice the broadsword. or w: ie ee a ractice the broacdsword, or wander about the hills ( the eae oe ha strat} .. mat. cart bon tae t Way ul ss LaSSES OF EAE Strath. Bub What Carl E-ae. ¢ aptain Wave rley erything will keep af 59 SSL AUREL IS, 6S EIR c r eet TS iether it be a hawk or a ahaa Edward made the expected answer, in a com- « pliment upon his possessing so many bold and attached fol- lowers. ‘Why, yes,” replied the Chief, “were I disposed, like my father, to put las in the way of getting one blow on the head, or two on the neck, I believe the loons would stand by me, But who thi fers of that in the present day, when the maxim is, ‘Better an old woman with a purse in her hand than three men with belted brands’? ” Then, turning to the Health of Captain Waverley, a company, he proposed af 2 1 7 a8 ) % mee iy neighbor and ally, the Baron of worthy friend of his Bradwardine.” ‘“‘He is welcome hither,” said oné of the elders, “if, he come from Cosmo Comyne Bradwardine.” ‘I say nay to that,” said an old man, who apparently did not mean to pledge the toast; “I say nay to that ;—while there is a green leaf in “the forest, there will be fraud in a Comyne.” rs Sie nst eR) ve “gE Be naseaaitinnn eeSedan ee eases See ee SS SOE ANNES TO WAVERLEY. “There is nothing but honor 1 in the Baron of Bradwardine,” answered another ancient; “and the guest that comes hither from him should be welcome, though he came with blood on his hand, unless it were blood of the race of Ivor.’ The old man, whose cup remained full, replied: “" Uhere has been blood enough of the race of Ivor on the hand of Bradwardine.”’ “Ah! Ballenkeiroch,” replied the first, “you think rather of the flash of the carbine at the Mains of rely -Veolan, tha dan the glance of the sword that fought for the cause at Preston.’ © And well I may,” ans swered Ballenkeiroch ; ‘ the flash of the gun cost me a fair-haired son, and the elance of the sword has done but little for King James.’ e Chieftain, in two words of French, expl ained to Waver- ley, Bee the Baron had shot this old man’s son in a fray near Tully-Veolan about seven years before ; and then hastened to remove Ballenkeiroch’s prejudice, by informing him that Waver- ley was an Englishman, unconnected b by birth or alliance with the family of Bradwardine; upon which the old gentleman raised the hitherto untas ted cup, and courteously dranl EetO: GS health. This ceremony being requited in kind, the Chieftain made a sighal for the pipes to cease, and said, bided ** Where is the song hidden, my friends, that Mac- Murrough cannot hand 1b Mac- Nee the family Jhairdh, an aged man, imme- diately took the hint, and began to chant, with low and rapid utterance, a profusion of (¢ ‘eltic verses, which were received i the audience with all the applause of enthusiasm. As he ad- vanced in his declamation, his ardor seemed to increase. He had at first spoken with his eyes fixed on the ground; he now cast them around as if beseeching, and anon as if commanding, attention, and his tones rose into wild and impassioned notes, accompanied with appropriate gestures. He seemed to Ed- ward, who attended to him with much interest, to recite many proper names, to lament the dead, to apostrophize the absent, to exhort, and entreat, and animate those who were present. Waverley thought he even discerned his own name, and was convinced his conjecture was right, from the eyes of the com- pany being at that moment turned toward him simultaneously. The ardor of the poet appeared to communicate itself to the audience. Their wild and sun-burnt countenances assumed a fiercer and more animated expression; all bent forward toward the reciter, many sprung up and w aved their arms in ecstasy, and some laid their hands on their swords. When the song ceased, there was a deep pause, while the aroused feelingsWAVERLEY. Tir of the poet and of the hearers gradually subsided into their usual channel. The Chieftain, who, during this scene, had appeared rather to watch the emotions which were excited, than to partake their high tone of enthusiasm, filled with claret a small silver cup which stood by him. ‘Give this,” he said to an attendant, “to Mac-Murrough nan Fonn (Z. ¢. of the songs), and when he has drank the juice bid him keep, for the sake of Vich lar Vohr, the shell of the gourd which contained it.” ‘The gif was received by Mac-Murrough with profound gratitude ; he drank the wine, and, kissing the cup, shrouded it with rever- ence in the plaid which was folded on his bosom. He then burst forth into what Edward justly supposed to be an extem- poraneous effusion of thanks and praises of his chief. It was received with applause, but did not produce the effect of his first poem. It was obvious, however, that the clan regarded the generosity of their chieftain with high approbation. Many approved Gaelic toasts were then proposed, of some of which the Chieftain gave his guest the following versions: “To him that will not turn his back on friend or foe.” “To him that never forsook a comrade.” ‘To him that never bought or sold justice.” ‘‘ Hospitality to the exile, and broken bones to the tyrant.” ‘The lads with the kilts.” “ High- Janders, shoulder to shoulder,’’-—with many other pithy senti- ments of the like nature. Edward was particularly solicitous to know the meaning of that song which appeared to produce such effect upon the pas- sions of the company, and hinted his curiosity to his host. “ As I observe,” said the Chieftain, “that you have passed the bottle during the last three rounds, I was about to propose to you to retire to my sister’s tea-table, who can explain these things to you better than I can. Although I cannot stint my clan in the usual current of their festivity, yet I neither am addicted myself to exceed in its amount, nor do I,” added he, smiling, “keep a Bear to devour the intellects of such as can make good use of them.” Edward readily assented to this proposal, and the Chief ‘tain, saying a few words to those around him, left the table, followed by Waverley. As the door closed behind them Ed- ward heard Vich Ian Vohr’s health invoked with a wild and animated cheer, that expressed the satisfaction of the guests, and the depth of their devotion to his service. om YHee WAVERLEY. CHAPTER TWENTY-FIRST. THE CHIEFTAIN’S SISTER. Tue drawing-room of Flora Mac-Ivor was furnished in the plainest and most simple manner ; for at Glennaquoich every other sort of expenditure was retrenched as much as possible, for the purpose of maintaining, in its full dignity, the hospitality of the Chieftain, and retaining and multiplying the number of his dependents and adherents. But there was no appearance of this parsimony in the dress of the lady herself, which was in texture elegant, and even rich, and arranged in a manner which partook partly of the Parisian fashion and partly of the more simple dress of the Highlands, blended together with great taste. Her hair was not disfigured by the art of the friseur, but fell in jetty ringlets on her neck, confined only by acirclet, richly set with diamonds. This peculiarity she adopted in com- pliance with the Highland prejudices, which could not endure that a woman’s head should be covered before wedlock. Flora Mac-Ivor bore a most striking resemblance to her brother Fergus; so much so, that they might have played Viola and Sebastian with the same exquisite effect produced by the appearance of Mrs. Henry Siddons and her brother, Mr. William Murray, in these characters. They had the same antique and regular correctness of profile; the same dark eyes, eyelashes, and eyebrows; the same clearness of complexion, excepting that Fergus’s was embrowned by exercise, and Flora’s possessed the utmost feminine delicacy. But the haughty, and somewhat stern regularity of Fergus’s features was beautifully softened in those of Flora. Their voices were also similar in tone, though differing in the key. That of Fergus, especially while issuing orders to his followers during their military exer- cise, reminded Edward of a favorite passage in the description of Emetrius : —— whose voice was heard around, Loud as a trumpet with a silver sound lent thing in woman ; ” yet in urging any favorite topic, which she often pursued with natural eloquence, it possessed as well the tones which impress awe and conviction, as those of pet suasive insinuation. The eager glance of the keen black eye; which, in the Chieftain, seemed impatient even of the material obstacles it encountered, had, in his sister, acquired a centel That of Flora, on the contrary, was soft and sweet, “an excel-WAVERLEY. 113 pensiveness. His looks seemed to seek glory, power, all that could exalt him above others in the race of humanity ; while those of his sister, as if she were already conscious of mental superiority, seemed to pity, rather than envy, those who were struggling for any further distinction. Her sentiments corre- sponded with the expression of her countenance. Early educa- tion had impressed upon her mind, as well as on that of the Chieftain, the most devoted attachment to the exiled family of Stuart. She believed it the duty of her brother, of his clan, of every man in Britain, at whatever personal hazard, to contri- bute to that restoration which the partisans of the Chevalier de St. George had not ceased to hope for. For ee she was pre- pared to do all, to suffer all, to sacrifice all. But her loyalty, as tt exceeded her brother’s in fanaticism, eine d it also in purity. Accustomed to petty intrigue, and necessarily involved in a thousand paltry and selfish discussions, ambitious also by nature, his political faith was tinctured at least, if not tainted. by the views of interest and advancement so easily combined with it; and at the moment he should unsheath his claymore, it might be difficult to say whether it would be most with the view to making James Stuart a king or Fergus Mac-Ivor an earl. This indeed was a mixture of feeling which he did 1 avow even to himself, but it existed, nevertheless, in a powerful degree. In Flora’s bosom, on the contrary, the zeal of loyalty burnt pure and unmixed with any selfish feelin; g; she would have as soon made religion the mask of ambitious and interested views as have shrouded them under the opinions which she had been taught to think patriotism. Such instances of devotion were not uncommon among the followers of the unhappy race oi Stuart, of which many memorable proofs will recur to the mind of most of my readers. But peculiar attention on the part of the Chevalier de St. George and his princess to the parents of Fergus and his sister, and to themselves, when orphans, had riveted their faith, Fergus, upon the death of his parents, had been for some time a page of honor in the train of the Cheva- lier’s lady, and for his beauty and sprightly temper, was unl formly treated by her with the utmost distinction. This was also extended to Flora, who was maintained for some time at a convent of the first order, at the princess’s expense, and removed from thence into her own family, where she spent nearly two years. Both brother and sister retained the deepest and most grateful sense of her kindness. Having thus touched upon the leadit character, [ may dismiss the rest more s 1g principle of Flora’s lightly. She was highly D x wo . ui Ree art heneemeen ere verehid n bias ah eee TT Lig WAVERLEY. accomplished, and had acquired those elegant manners to be expected from one who, in early youth, h ad been the companion of the princess; yet she had not learned to substitute the gloss of politeness for the reality of feeling. When settled in the lonely regions of Glennaquoich, she found that her resources in French, English, and Italian literature, were likely to be few and interrupted; and, in order to fill up the vacant time, she bestowed a part of it upon the music and poetical traditions of the Highlanders, and began really to feel the pleasure in the pursuit, which her brother, whose perceptions of literary merit were more blunt, rather affected for the sake of popularity than actually experienced. Her resolution was strengthened in these researches by the extreme delight which her inquiries seemed to afford those to whom she resorted for information. Her love of her clan, an attachment which was almost hered- itary in her bosom, was, like her loyalty, a more pure passion than that of her brother. He was too thorough a politician, re. garded his patriarchal influence too much as the means of ac- compli ishing his own aggrandizement, that we should term him the model of a High land Chieftain. Flora felt the same anx. jlety for cherishing and extending their patriarchal sway, but it was with the generous desire of vindicating from poverty, or at least from want and foreign oppression, those whom her brother was by birth, according to the notions of the time and country, entitled to govern. The savings of her income, for she had a small pension from the Princess Sobieski, were dedicated, not to add to the comforts of the peasantry, for that was a word which they neither knew nor apparently wished to know, but to relieve their ore ute necessities, when in sickness or extreme old age. At every other period, 1 they rather toiled to procure something whi ok they might share with the Chief, as a proof of their attachment, than expected other assistance from him save what was aff eae by the rude hos spitality of his castle, and the general division and subdivision of his estate among them. Flora was so much beloved by them, that when Mac- Murrough com- posed a song, in which he enumerated all the pri incipal beauties of the districts and intimated her superiority by concluding, that “the fairest apple hung on the highest bough,” he received in donatives from the individuals of the clan, more seed-barley than would have sowed his Highland Parnassus, the Bara’s croft, as it was called, ten times over. From situation, as well as choice, Miss Mac-Ivor’s society was extremely limited. Her most intimate friend had been Rose Bradwardine, to whom she was much attached; and when seen together, they would have afforded an artist two admirableWAVERLEY. tre subjects for the gay and the melancholy muse. Indeed Rose was so tenderly watched by her father, and her circle of wishes was so limited, that none arose but what he was willing to gratify, and scarcely any which did not come within the compass of his power. With Flora it was otherwise. While almost a’ girl, she had undergone the most complete change of scene, from gayety and sp lendor to absolute solitude and comparative poverty ; and the ideas and wishes which she chiet fly eae respected great national events, and changes not to be broug! round without both hazard and bloods hed, and therefore not to be thought of with levity. Her manner consequently was grave, though she readily contributed her talents to the amusement of society, and stood very high in the opinion of the old Baron, who used to sing along with her such French duets of Lindor and Cloris, etc., as were in fashion about the end of the reign of old Louis le Grand. It was generally believed, though no one durst have hinted it to the Baron of Bradwardine, that Flora’s entreaties had no small share in allaying the wrath of Fergus upon occasion of their quarrel, She took her brothe r on the assailable side , by dwelling first upon the Baron’s age, and then representing ‘the injury which the cause might sustain, and the damage which must arise to his own character in point of prudence, so neces- sary to a political agent, if he persisted in edeain it to extrem- ity. Otherwise it is probable it would have terminated in a duel, both because the Baron had ona former occasion shed blood of the clan, though the matter had been timely accommo- dated, and on account of his high reputation for address at his weapon, which Fergus almost condescended to envy. For the same reason she had urged their reconciliation, which the Chief- tain the more readily agreed to, as it favored some ulterior pro- jects of his own. To this young lady, now presiding at the female empire of the tea-table, Fergus introduced Captain Waverley, whom she received with the usual forms of politeness. CHAPTER TWENTY-SECOND. HIGHLAND MINSTRELSY. WHEN the first salutations had passed, Fergus said to his sister, “ My dear Flora, before I return to the barbarous ritual of our forefathers, I must tell you that Captain Waverley is ar16 WAVERLE ¥. worshiper of the Celtic muse, not the less so perhaps that he does not understand a word of fe Panes I have told hiin Highland poetry, and that ¢ you are eminent as a transiator OL GE N/ Niesieeriis oho anomie rei rATGIAY {C hic songs upc! thy Mac-Murrough aamires youl! VGErSslOn “OF oe OngsS Upon te C 1 same principle that Captain Waverley a mires . the original,— because he does noi comprehend them. Will you hay verses can i x could trans em as you pretend.” n they interest me, lady fair. To-day your joint composition, for J insist you a a share imit, has: cost me the last silver cup in the castle, and I suppose will cost me something else next time I hold our wur pléniére, if the muse de- scends pas “now our proverb,—When the h ue stow, the breath of the bard i be it which he dare not imita a lou is d’or to put into it.” ‘Well, brother, since you betray my secrets, you oe expect me to keep yours.—I assure you, Captain Waverley, that Fereus is too proud to exchange his broadsword for a maréchal’s baton; that he esteems Mac-Murrough a far rive bbe his goat-skin cat a w, as Conan said to and Botte if not of : lo the final honors xe of Ivor.” So. sayime, he ler tue 1 continued between Flora and Waverley; 1 young women, whose character seemed to hover between that of companions and dependants; took no Share init. They wer foils to the grace and beat followed the turn which the chieftain ley was equally amuse: } the lady gave him of C ee O — ear a streams of Glenfinnan #? leap bright in the bl And the streams of Glenfinnan *# leap bright in the blaze. O high-minded Moray ! 43 the exiled—the dear! In the blush of the dawning the STANDARD uprear! Wide, wide on the winds of the north let it fly, Like the sun’s latest flash when the tempest is nigh Ye sons of the strong, when the dawning shall break, Need the harp of the aged remind you to wake? That dawn never beamed on your forefathers’ eye, But it roused each high chieftain to vanquish or ‘die. t AYWAVERLEY. O! sprung from the kings who in Islay kept state, Proud chiefs of Clan Ranald, Glengarry, and Sleat! Combine like three streams from one mountain of snow, And resistless in union rush down on the foe! True son of Sir Evan, undaunted Lochiel, Place thy targe on thy shoulder and burnish thy steel! Rough Keppoch, gave breath to thy bugle’s bold swell, Till far Coryarrick resound to the knell! Stern son of Lord Kenneth, high chief of Kintail, Let the stag in thy standard bound wild in the gale! May the race of Clan Gillean, the fearless and free, Remember Glenlivat, Harlaw and Dundee! Let the clan of gray Fingon; whose offspring has given Such heroes to earth and such martyrs to heaven, Unite with the race of renowned Rorri More, To launch the long galley, and stretch to the oar. How Mac-Shimei will joy when their chief shall display The yew crested bonnet o’er tresess of gray! How the race of wronged Alpine, and murdered Glencoe Shall shout for revenge when they pour on the foe! Ve sons of brown Dermid, who slew the wild boar, Resume the pure faith of the great Callum-More ! Mac-Neil of the Islands, and Moy of the Lake, For honor, for freedom, for vengeance awake! Here a large greyhound, bounding up the glen, jumped upon Flora, and interrupted her music by his importunate ca- resses. Ata distant whistle, he turned and shet down the path again with the rapidity of anarrow, ‘“ That is Fergus’s faithful attendant, Captain Waverley, and that was his signal. He likes no poetry but what is humorous, and comes in good time to interrupt my long catalogue of the tribes, whom one of yow saucy English poets calls Our bootless host of high born beggars, Mac-Leans, Mac-Kenzies and Mac-Gregors.” Waverley expressed his regret at the interruption. ‘“O you cannot guess how much you have lost! ‘The bard, as in duty bound, has addressed three long stanzas to Vich Ian Vohr of the Banners, enumerating all his great properties, and not forgetting his being a cheerer of the harper and bard—‘ a giver of bounteous gifts.’ Besides, you should have heard a practical admonition to the fair-haired son of the stranger, who lives in the land where the grass is always green—the rider on the shining pampered steed, whose hue is like the raven, and whose neigh is like the scream of the eagle for battle. This vailant horseman is affectionately conjured to remember thatWAVERLEY. 123 his ancestors were distinguished by their loyalty, as well as by their courage.—All this you have lost ; but, since your curiosity is not satisfied, [ judge, from the distant sound of my brother’s whistle, I may have time to sing the concluding stanzas before he comes to laugh at my translation.” Awake on your hills, on your islands awake, Brave sons of the mountain, the frith, and the "Tis the bugle—but not for the chase is the ca ake. ] . *Tis the pibroch’s shrill summons—but not to t l Its he hall. *Tis the summons of heroes for conquest or death, When the banners are blazing on mountain and heath; They call to the dirk, the claymore, and the targe, To the march and the muster, the line and the charge. Be the brand of each chieftain like Fin’s in his ire! May the-blood through his vains flow like currents of fire! Burst the base foreign yoke as your sires did of yore, Or die like your sires, and endure it no more! ~ CHAPTER [WENT Y=EHIRD: WAVERLEY CONTINUES AT GLENNAQUOICH. As Flora concluded her songs, Fergus stood before them. * | knew I should find you here, even without the assistance of my friend Bran. A simple and unsublimed taste now, like my own, would prefer a jet d’eau at Versailles to this cascade, with all its accompaniments of rock and roar; but this is Flora’s Parnassus, Captain Waverley, and that fountain her Helicon. It would be greatly for the benfit of my cellar if she could teach her coadjutor, Mac-Murrough, the value of its influence; he has just drunk a pint of usquebaugh to correct, he said, the coldness of the claret—Let me try its virtues.” He sipped a little water in the hollow of his hand, and immediately com- menced, with a theatrical air,— O lady of the desert, hail ! That lov’st the harping of the Gael, Through fair and fertile regions borne, Where never yet grew grass or corn. 3ut English poetry will never succeed under the influence of a Highland Helicon.—A//ons, courage /— O vous, qui buvez, & tasse pleine. A cette heureuse fontaine, Ast SeesSGA c eee WAVERLEY. Ou on ne voit, sur le rivage, Que quelques vilains troupeaux, Suivis de nymphes de village, Qui les escortent sans sabots ”— “A truce, dear Fergus! spare us those most tedious and insipid persons of all Arcadia. Do not, for heaven’s sake, bring down Coridon and Lindor upon us. “Nay, if you cannot relish Za houlette et le chalumeau, have with you in heroic strains.” “Dear Fergus, you have certainly partaken of the inspira tion of Mac-Murrough’s cup rather than of mine.” “T{ disclaim it, ma belle demoiselle, although I protest it would be the more congenial of the two. Which of your crack-brained Italian romancers is it that says, Io d’Elicona niente Mi curo, in fe di Dio, che’l bere d’acque (Bea chi ber ne vuol, sempre mi spiacque | * But if you prefer the Gaelic, Captain Waverley, here is little Cathleen shall sing you Drimmindhu.—Come Cathleen, asvore (z.e., my dear), begin; no apologies to the Ceankinné.” Cathleen sung with much liveliness a little Gaelic song, the burlesque elegy of a countryman upon the loss of his cow, the comic tones of which, though he did not understand the lan- laugh more than once.* > guage, made Waverley laug “ Admirable, Cathleen !” cried the Chieftain ; “1 must find you a handsome husband among the clansmen one of these 9? Cathleen laughed, blushed, and sheltered herself behind her companion. In the progress of their return to the castle, the Chieftain warmly pressed Waverley to remain for a week or two, in order to see agrand hunting party, in which he and some other High- land gentlemen proposed to join. The charms of melody and beauty were too strongly impressed in Edwar l’s breast to per mit his declining an invitation so pleasing. It was agreed, therefore, that he should write a note to the Baron of Bradwar- dine, expressing his intention to stay a fortnight at Glenna- quoich, and requesting him to forward by the bearer (a gz/Zy of the Chieftain’s) any letters which might have arrived for him. This turned the discourse upon the Baron, whom Fergus highly extolled as a gentleman and soldier. His character was oO ack U lays * Good sooth, I reck nought of your Helicon 3 Drink water whoso will, in faith I will drink none.y. WAVERLE 125 ouched with yet more discrimins ition by Flora, who observed he was the very model of the olc Scottish cavalier, with all his excellences and peculiarities. “It is a character, Captain Waverley, which is fast disappearing ; for its best point was a self-respect which was never lost sight of till now. But in the resent time, the gentlemen whose. principles do not permit hem to pay court to the existing government are neglected and 4 degraded, and many conduct themselves accordingly ; and 9 like some of the persons you have seen at Tully-Veolan, adopt habits and companions inconsistent with their birth and breed- ney) EhG ruthless » DERSC BEDE of party seems to degrade the victims whom it brands, howevet unjustly. But let us hope that a brighter d appre Pe when @ Scottish country-gentleman may be a scholar without the pedantry of our friend the Baron, a sportsman without the low habits of Mr. Falconer, and a ju dicious improver of his property without becoming a boorish two-le ved steel i Killancureit.” Thus did Flora prophecy a revolution, which time indeed has produced, but in a manner very different from what she had in her mind. The kmiable Rose was next mentioned, with the warmest encomium on her person, manners, and mind...’ :Loat man, said Flora vill find an inestimable treasure in the affections of Ros« Bradwardine ho shall be so fortunate as to become their object. Her vel ul is in home, and in the discharge | rtre Het th 1 ther now is, the object of all ion. She will g, connect herself with nothing, but by him and through him. If he is a man of sense and virtue, she will sympathize in his 1, Ne 1S: a i rtu sorrows, divert his fatigue, and share his pleasures. [f she becomes the property of a churlish or negligent hus band, she will suit his taste also, for she will not long survive his w nkind- ness, And. alas! how great is the chance that some such hy | | p friend |!—O that I were unworthy lot may be that of my poor {Irie BE a queen this moment, and could command the most amiable 2 . : c } and worthy youth of my kingd lom to accept happiness with ; ! eer ne: the hand of Rose Fe “T wish you woul id command her to accept mine ¢ attend: ant,’ said Fergus, hinge: I ahaa know by what capric eit was that this wish, however joc ularly express¢ .d, rather jarred on Edward’s feelings, not- withstanding his growing ‘nclination to Flora, and his in- difference to Miss Bradw ardine. This is one of the inexplica- bilities of human nature, which we » leave without comment. % S Sea eee RPO Erneta tere Cora RE SS eee)”WAVERLEY. “Yours, brother?” answered Flora, regarding him steadily. “No; you have another bride—Honor; and the dangers you must run in pursuit of her rival would break poor Rose’s heart,” With this discourse they reached the castle, and Waverley: soon prepared his despatches for Tully-Veolan. As he knew the Baron was punctilious in such matters, he was about to impress his billet with a seal on which his armorial bearings were engraved, but he did not find it at his watch, and thought he must have left it at Tully-Veolan. He mentioned his loss, borrowing at the same time the family seal of the Chieftain. Surely,” said Miss Mac-Ivor, “ Donald Bean Lean would Lon = “‘ My life for him, in such circumstances,’ answered her brother ; ‘ besides, he would never have left the watch behind.” “ After all, Fergus,” said Flora, “‘ and with every allowance, I am surprised you can countenance that man.” ‘“{ countenance him ?—This kind sister of mine would persuade you, Captain Waverley, that I take what the people of old used to calla ‘steakraid,’ that is, a‘collop of the foray,’ or, in plainer words, a portion of the robber’s booty, paid by him to the laird, or chief, through whose grounds he drove his prey. O,it is certain, that unless I can find some way to charm Flora’s tongue, General Blakeney will send a serjeant’s party from Stirling (this he said with haughty and emphatic irony) to seize Vich Ian Vohr, as they nickname me, in his own castle.” ‘Now, Fergus, must not our guest be sensible that all this is folly and affectation? You have men enough to serve you without enlisting banditti, and your own honor is above taint. Why don’t you send this Donald Bean Lean, whom I hate for his smoothness and duplicity, even more than for his rapine, out of your country at once? No cause should induce me to tolerate such a character.” ** Vo cause, Flora ?”’ said the Chieftain, significantly. “ lVo cause, Fergus ! not even that which is nearest to my heart. Spare it the omen of such evil supporters ! ” “O but, sister,” rejoined the Chief, gayly, “you don’t consider my respect for Za delle passion. Evan Dhu Mac- combich is in love with Donald’s daughter, Alice, and. you cannot expect me to disturb him in his amours. Why, ‘the whole clan would cry shame onme. You know it is one of their wise sayings, that a kinsman is part of a man’s body, but a foster-brother is a piece of his heart.”WAVERLEY. 124 “ Well, Fergus, there is no disputing with you; but I would all this may end well.” ““ Devoutly prayed, my dear and prophetic sister, and the best way in the world to close a dubious argument.—But hear ye not the pipes, Captain Waverley? Perhaps you will like better to dance to them in the hall, than to be deafened with their harmony without taking part in the exercise they invite us:{G.7 Waverley took Flora’s hand. The dance, song, and merry- making proceeded, and closed the day’s entertainment at the castle of Vich Ian Vohr. Edward at length retired, his mind agitated by a variety of new and conflicting feeling, which detained him from rest for some time in that not unpleasing state of mind in which fancy takes the helm, and the soul rather drifts passively along with the rapid and confused tide of reflections, than exerts itself to encounter, systematize, or examine them. Ata late hourhe fell asleep, and dreamed of Flora Mac-Ivor. CHAPTER TWENTY-FOURTH. A STAG HUNT AND ITS CONSEQUENCES. SHALL this be a long ora short chapter ?—This is a question in which you, gentle reader, have no vote, however much you may be interested in the consequences ; just as you may (like my self) probably have nothing to do with the imposing a new tax, excepting the trifling circumstance of being obliged to pay it. More happy surely in the present case, since, though it lies within my arbitrary power to extend my materials as I think proper, I cannot call you into Exchequer if you do not think proper to read my narrative. Let me therefore consider. It is true, that the annals and documents in my hands say but little of this Highland chase ; but then I can find copious materials for description elsewhere. There is old Lindsay of Patscottie ready at my elbow, with his Athole hunting, and his “lofted and joisted palace of green timber ; with all kind of drink to be had in burgh and land, as ale, beer, wine, musca- del, malvaise, hippocras, and aquavite ; with whelt-bread, main- bread, ginge-bread, beef, mutton, lamb, veal, venison, goose, erice, capon, coney, crane, swan, partridge, plover, duck, drake, brissel—cock, pawnies, black-cock, muir-fowl, and capercail- zies ;” not forgetting the ‘‘ costly bedding, vaiselle, and napry,” PA EARN SRE Pee ai PRN aSSaaS Palanan Toh ns Seer ee nes Fe a 128 WAVERLEY. and least of all the “exceling stewards, cunning baxters, excel- lent cooks, and pottingars, with confections and drugs for the desserts.” Besides the particulars which may be thence gleaned from this Highland feast (the splendor of which induced the Pope’s legate to dissent from an opinion which he had hitherto held, that Scotland, namely, was the the—the latter end of the world)—besides these, might I not illuminate my pages with Taylor the Water Poet’s hunting in the braes of Mar, where Through heather, mosse, ’mong frogs, and bogs, and fogs, ’Mongst craggy cliffs and thunder-battered hills, Hares, hinds, bucks, roes, are chased by men and dogs, Where two hours hunting fourscore fat deer kills. Lowland, your sports are lowasis your seat; The Highland games and minds are high and great. But without further tyranny over my readers, or display of the extent of my own reading, I shall content myself with bor- rowing a single incident from the memorable hunting at Lude, commemorated in the ingenious Mr. Gunn’s Essay on the Caledonian Harp, and so proceed in my story with all the brevity that my natural style of composition, partaking of what scholars call the periphrastic and ambagitory, and the vulgar the circumbendibus, will permit me. Phe solemn hunting was delayed, from various causes, for about three weeks. The interval was spent by Waverley with great satisfaction at Glennaquoich ; for the impression which Flora had made on his mind at their first meeting grew daily stronger. — She was precisely the character to fascinate a youth of romantic imagination. Her manners, her language, her tal- ents for poetry and music, gave additional and varied influence to her eminent personal charms. Even in her hours of gayety . . 1 . — ~ oe ) she was in his fancy exalted above the ordinary daughters of Eve, and seemed only to stoop for an instant to those topics ‘ L of amusement and gallantry which others appeared to live for. In the neighborhood of this enchantress, while sport: consumed the morning, and music and the dance led on the < fetter rN = x Mie i -laArtr ar. ant 1 ; 1 hours of evening, Way erley became daily more delighted with his hospitable landlord, and more enamored of his bewitching sister. At length the period fixed for the grand hunting arrived, and Waverley and the Chieftain departed for the place of ren- dezvous, which was a day’s journey to the northward of Glen- naquoich. Fergus was attended on this occasion by about three hundred of his clan, well armed, and accoutred in their best fashion. Waverley complied so far with the custom ofTT Dai leah iNet Wit Ait} Alt y Wii : S 4 fn 3 & ewer Teter sty le Cees Amati biees vere ae antesaWAVERLEY. 129 the country as to adopt the trews (he could not be reconciled to the kilt), brogues and bonnet, as the fittest dress for the ex- ercise in which he was to be ¢ engaged, and which least exposed him to be stared at as a stranger when they should reach the place of rendezvous. They found, on the spot appointed, several powerful Chiefs, to all of whom W averley was formally presented, and by all cordially suhaal nee Their vassals and clansmen, a part of whose feudal duty it was to attend on these parties, appeared in such numbers as amounted to a small army. ‘These active assistants spread through the country far and near, forming a circle, tec shnically called the tinchel, which, gradually closing, drove the deer in herds together toward the glen where the Chiefs and _pri ciple sportsmen lay in wait for them. In the meanwhile, a se distinguished personages bivou- acked among the Lorene heath, wra ipped 1 up in their plaids; a mode of passing a summer’s night which Wav etley found by no means unpleasant. For many hours after sunrise, the mountain ridges and passes retained their ordinary appearance of silence and soli- tude, and the Chiefs, with their followers, amused themselves with various pastimes, in which the joys of the shell, as Ossian has it, were not forgotte n. “Others apart sate on a hill re- tired ; ” probably as deeply e ngaged in the discussion of poli- tics and news, as Milton’s spirits in metaphysical disquisition. At length signals f the approach of the game were descried and heard. ~ Distant shouts resounded from valley to valley, as the various parties of Highlanders, climbing rocks, struggling though copses, wading brooks, and traversing thickets, ap- proached more and more near to each other, and aoe the astonished deer, with the other wild animals t that fled before them, into a narrower circuit, Every now and then the report of muskets was heard, repeated by a gece d echoes. The baying of the dogs was soon added to the c horus, which grew ever louder and more loud. At length the advanced parties of the deer began to show themselves, ‘and as the stragglers came bounding down the pass by two or three at a time, the Chiefs showed their skill by disti nguishing the fattest deer, and their dexterity in bringing them “dow n with their guns. Fergus ex- hibited remarkable adduéaei and Edward was also so fortunate as to attract the notice and applause of the sportsmen. But now the main body of the deer appeared at the head of the glen, compelled into a very narrow compass, and presenting such a formidable e phalanx, that their antlers appeared at a dis. tance over the ridge of the steep pass like a leafless grove. Their number was very great, and from a desperate stand which P % CS a ee wane errs he retirees rss BPMOeer oT Th Tet eee Steae io ee ae 130 WAVERLEY. they made, with the tallest of the red-deer stags arranged in front in a sort of a battle array, gazing on the group which barred their passage down the glen,the more experienced sports: men began to augerdanger. ‘The work of destruction, however now commenced on all sides. Dogs and hunters were at work, and muskets and fusees resounded from every quarter. ‘The deer, driven to desperation, made at length a fearful charge right upon the spot where the more distinguished sportsmen nad taken their stand. The word was given in Gaelic to fling themselves upon their faces ; but Waverley, on whose English ears the signal was lost, had almost fallen a sacrifice to his ig- norance of the ancient language in which it was communicated. Fergus, observing his danger, sprung up and pulled him with violence to the ground, just as the whole herd broke down upon them. ‘The tide being absolutely irresistible, and wounds from the stag’s horn highly dangerous,* the activity of the Chieftain may be considered, on this occasion, as having saved his guest’s life. He detained him with a firm grasp until the whole herd of deer had fairly run over them. Waverley then attempted to rise, but found that he had suffered several very severe contu- sions, and upon a further examination discovered that he had sprained his ankle violently. This checked the mirth of the meeting, although the High- landers, accustomed to such incidents, and prepared for them, had suffered no harm themselves. A wigwam was erected almost in an instant, where Edward was deposited on a couch of heather. The surgeon, or he who assumed the office, ap- peared to unite the characters of a leech and aconjurer. He was an old smoke-dried Highlander, wearing a venerable gray beard, and having for his sole garment a tartan frock, the skirts of which descended to the knee, and, being undivided in front made the vestment serve at once for a doublet and breeches.® He observed great ceremony in approaching Edward ; and though our hero was writhing with pain, would not proceed to any operation which might assuage it until he had perambu- lated his couch three times moving from east to west, accord- ing to the course of the sun. This, which was called making the deasz/, *’ both the leech and the assistants seemed to consider as a matter of the last importance to be accomplishment of a cure ; and Waverley, whom pain rendered incapable of expos- tulation, and who indeed saw no chance of its being attended to, submitted in silence. After this ceremony was duly performed, the old Esculapius let his patient’s blood with a cupping-glass with great dexterity, and proceeded, muttering all the while to himself in Gaelic, to"AVERLEY. T3t boil upon the fire certain herbs, with which he compounded an embrocation. He then fomented the parts which had sustained ey, never failing to murmur prayers or spells, which of the vo Waverley coul | not distinguish, as his ears only caught the Movds Gasper-Milchior- Balthazar- “MAX-fPraxfax, and similar gib- berish. The fomentation hada speedy effect in alleviating the pain and swelling, which our hero imputed to the virtue of the herbs, or the effect of the chafing, but co was by the bystand- ers unanimously ascribed to the spells with which the operation had been accompanied. Edward was given to understand, that not one of the ingredients had been gathered except during the full moon, and that the herbalist had, while coleadae them, uniformly recited a charm, which, in English, ran thus : Hail to thee, thou holy herb, That sprung on holy ground! All in the Mount Olivet First wert thou found Thou art boot for many a bruise, And healest many a wound : In our Lady’s blessed name, I take thee from the ground. Edward observed, with some surprise, that even Fergus, notwithstanding his knowledge and education, seemed to fall in with the superstitious ideas of his countrymen, either be- cause he deemed it impolitic to affect scepticism on a matter of general belief, or more probably because, like most men who do not think deeply or accurately on such subjects, he had in his mind a reserve of superstition which balanced the freedom of his expressions and practice upon other occasions. Waver- ley made no commentary, therefore, on the manner of the treatment, but rewarded the professor of medicine with a liberality beyond the utmost conception of his wildest hopes. He uttered, on the occasion, so many incoherent blessings in Gaelic and English, that Mac-Ivor rather scandalized at the excess of his acknowledgments, cut them short, by exclaiming, Ceud mile mhalloich ort! i.e., “A hundred thousand curses on you!” and so pushed the helper of men out of the cabin. Aiter Waverley was left aise the exhaustion of the pain and fatigue—for the whole day’s exercise had been severe—threw him into a profound, but yet a feverish sleep, which he chiefly owed to an opiate draught administered by the old High lander, from some decoction of herbs in his pharmacopceia. Early next morning, the purpose of their meeting being over, and their sports damped by the untoward accident, in which Fergus and all his friends expressed the greatest sym- Reins tret tis132 WAVERLEY. pathy, it became a question how to dispose of the disabled sportsman. ‘This was settled by M Tac- hah who had a litter prepared, of “ birch and hazel-gray,’’ * which was borne by his people with such caution and cat as renders it not im- probable that they may have been the ancestors of some of those sturdy Gael, who have now the happiness to transport the belles of Edinburgh in their sedan-chairs, to ten routs in one evening. When Edward was elevated up yon their shoul- cers, he could not hi elp being gratified with the romant ic effect produced by the breaking up of this sylvan camp.” The various tribes assembled, each at the pibroch of their native clan, and each headed by their patiarchal ruler. Some, who had already begun to retire, where seen winding up the hills, or descending the passes which led to the scene o 5 action, the sound of their bagpipes dying upon theear. Others made still a moving poe uy 9on the narrow plain, forming various changeful groups, their feathers and loose plaids waving in the morning eee and their arms glitterin: g in the rising sun. Most of the chi > b came to ag farewell of Waverley, and to express their anxious hope ey ee ee and speedily, meet ; but the care of Fergus d the ceremony of taking leave. At length, his own men beanie com] le tely assembled and mustered, Mac-Ivor cammenced his march, but not tow- ard the quarter from which they had come. He gave Edward to understand that the greater part of his followers, now on the field, were bound on a distant expedition, and that when he had deposited him in the house of a gentleman, who he was sure would pay him every attention, he himself should be under the necessity of accompanying them the greater part of the way, but would lose no time in rejoining his friend. Waverley was rather surprised that Fergus had not men- tioned this ulterior destination when they set out upon the hunting-party; but his situation did not admit of many inter- rogatories. The greater part of the clansmen went forward under the guidance of old Ballenkeiroch, and Evan Dhu Mac- combich, apparently in high spirits. A few remained for the purpose of escorting the Chieftain, who walked by the side of Edward’s litter, and attended him with the most affectionate assiduity. About noon, after a journey which the nature of the conveyance, the pain of his bruises, and the roughness of the way, rendered ely painful, Waverley was hospi- tably received into the house of a gentleman related to F ergus, who had prepared for him every accommodation which the simple habits of living then universal in the Hi a lands, put in his power. In this person, an old man about seventy, Edward ¢ ] | oO S eyWAVERLEY. 133 admired a relic of primitive simplicity. He wore no dress but what his estate afforded; the cloth was the fleece of his own sheep, woven by his own servants, and stained into tartan by the dyes produced from the herbs and lichens of the hills around him. His linen was spun by his daughters and maid- servants, from his own flax, nor did his table, though plentiful, and varied with game and fish, offer an article but what was of native produce. Claiming himself no rights of clanship or vassalage, he was fortunate in the alliance and protection of Vich Ian Vohr, and other bold and enterprising chieftains, who protected him in the quiet unambitious life he loved, It is true, the youth born on his grounds were often enticed to leave him for the service of his more active friends ; but a few old servants and tenants used to shake their gray locks when they heard their master censured for want of spirit, and observed, “* When the wind is still, the shower falls soft.” This good old man, whose charity and hospitality were unbounded, would have received Waver- ley with kindness, had he been the meanest Saxon peasant, since his situation required assistance. But his attention to a friend and guest of Vich Ian Vohr was anxious and unremitted. Other embrocations were applied to the injured limb, and new spells were put in practice. At length, after more solicitude chan was perhaps for the advantage of his health, Fergus took farewell of Edward for a few days, when, he said, he would return to Tomanrait, and hoped by that time Waverley would be able to ride one of the Highland ponies of his landlord, and ‘n that manner return to Glennaquoich. The next day, when his good old host appeared, Edward learned that his friend had departed with the dawn, leaving none of his followers except Callum Beg, the sort of foot-page who used to attend his person, and who had it now in charge to wait upon Waverley. On asking his host if he knew where the Chieftain was gone, the old man looked fixedly at him, with something mysterious and sad in the smile which was his only reply. Waverley repeated his question, to which his host answered in a proverb,— € x l What sent the messengers to hell, r : 1 cy 5 Was asking what they knew full well. He was about to proceed, but Callum Beg said, rather pertly as Edward thought, that “ Ta Tighearnach (ze, the Chief) did not like ta Sassenagh Duinhé-wassel to be pingled wi’ mickle speaking, as she was na tat weel.” From this Wa: verley concluded he should disoblige his friend by inquiring ofWAVERLEY. a stranger the object of a journey, which he himself had not communicated. It is unnecessary to trace the progress of our hero’s re covery. The sixth morning had arrived, and he was able to walk about with a staff, when Fergus returned with about a score of his men. He seemed in the highest spirits, congratu- lated Waverley on his progress toward recovery, and finding he was able to sit on horseback, proposed their immediate return to Glennaquoich. Waverley joyfully acceded, for the form of its fair mistress had lived in his dreams during all the time of his confinement. Now he has ridden o’er moor and moss, O’er hill and many a glen, Fergus all the while, with his myrmidons, striding stoutly by his side, or diverging to get a shot at a roe or a heath-cock. Waverley’s bosom beat thick when they approached the old tower of Ian nan Chaistel, and could distinguish the fair form of its mistress advancing to meet them. Fergus began immediately, with his usual high spirits, to exclaim, ‘Open your gates, incomparable princess, to the wounded Moor Abindarez, whom Rodrigo de Narvez, constable of Antiquera, conveys to your castle ; or open them, if you like it better, to the renowned Marquis of Mantua, the sad attend- ant of his half-slain friend, Baldovinos of the mountain.—Ah, long rest to thy soul, Cervantes! without quoting thy remnants, how should I frame my language to befit romantic ears!” * Flora now advanced, and welcoming Waverley with much kindness, expressed her regret for his accident, of which she had already heard the particulars, and her surprise that her brother should not have taken better care to puta stranger on his guard against the perils of the sport in which he engaged him. Edward easily exculpated the Chieftain, who, indeed, at his own personal risk, had probably saved his life. This greeting over, Fergus said three or four words to his sister in Gaelic. ‘The tears instantly sprung to her eyes, but they seemed to be tears of devotion and joy, for she looked up to Heaven, and folded her hands as in a solemn expression of prayer or gratitude. After the pause of a minute, she pre- sented to Edward some letters which bad been forwarded from Tully-Veolan during his absence, and, at the same time, de- livered some to her brother. ‘To the latter she likewise gave three or four numbers of the Caledonian Mercury, the only newspaper which was then published to the north of the Tweed, * See Lon Ourxote,WAVERLEY. I2c 35 Both gentlemen retired to examine their dispatches, and Edward speedily found that those which he had received con- tained matters of very deep interest. CHAPTER TWENTY-FIFTH. NEWS FROM ENGLAND. THE letters which Waverley had hitherto received from his relations in England, were not such as required any particular ce notice in this narrative. His father usually wrote to him with dy the pompous affectation of one who was too much oppressed | public affairs to find leisure to attend to those of his own family. Now and then he mentioned persons of rank in Scotland to whom he wished his son should pay some attention ; but Waver- ley, hitherto occupied by the amusements which he had found at Tully-Veolan and Glennaquoich, dispensed with paying any attention to hints so coldly thrown out, especially as distance, shortness ot leave of absence, and so forth, furnished a ready apology. But latterly the burden of Mr. Richard Waverley’s paternal epistles consisted in certain mysterious hints of great- 1ess and his influence which he was speedily to attain, and which would insure his son’s obtaining the most rapid promotion should he remain in the military service. Sir Everard’s letters were of a different tenor. They were short; for the good Baronet was none of your illimitable correspondents, whose manuscript overflows the folds of their large post paper, and leaves no room for the seal; but they were kind and affection ate, and seldom concluded without some allusion to our hero’s stud, some question about the state of his purse, and a special inquiry after such of his recruits as had preceded him from Waverley-Honour. Aunt Rachel charged him to remem ber his principles of religion, to take care of his health, to beware of Scotch mists, which, she had heard, would wet a1 Englishman through and through; never to go out at night without his great-coat ; and, above all, to wear flannel next to his skin. Mr. Pembroke only wrote to our hero one letter, but it was of the bulk of six epistles of these degenerate days, contain- ing, in the moderate compass of ten folio pages, closely written, a précis of a supplementary quarto manuscript of addenda, delenda, et corrigenda, in reference to the two tracts with which he had presented Waverley. This he considered as a mereWAVERLEY. sop in the pan to stay the appetite of Edward’s curiosity, until he should find an opportunity of sending down the volume itself, which was much too heavy for the post, and which he proposed to accompany with certain interesting pamphlets, lately published by his friend in Little Britain, with whom he had kept up a sort of literary correspondence, in virtue of which the library shelves of Waverley-Honour were loaded with much trash, and a good round bill, seldom summed in fewer than three figures, was yearly transmitted, in which Sir Edward Waverley of Waverley-Honour, Bart., was marked Dr. to Jonathan Grubbet, bookseller and stationer, Little Britain. Such had hitherto been the style of the letters which Edward had received from England; but the packet delivered to him at Glennaquoich was of a different and more interesting com- plexion. It would be impossible for the reader, even were I to insert the letters at full length, to comprehend the real cause of their being written, without a glance into the interior of the British Cabinet at the period in question. The Ministers of the day happened (no very singular event) to be divided into two parties ; the weakest of which, making up by assiduity of intrigue their inferiority in real consequence, had of late acquired some new proselytes, and with them the hope of superseding their rivals in the favor of their sovereign, and overpowering them in the House of Commons. Amongst others, they had thought it worth while to practice upon Rich- ard Waverley. This honest gentleman, by a grave myste- rious demeanor, an attention to the etiquette of business, rather more than to its essence, a facility in making long dull speeches, consisting of truisms and common-places, hashed up with a technical jargon of office, which prevented the inanity of his orations from being discovered, had acquired a certain name and credit in public life, and even established with many the character of a profound politician; none of your shining orators, indeed, whose talents evaporate in tropes of rhetoric and flashes of wit, but one possessed of steady parts for busi- ness, which would wear well, as the ladies say in choosing their silks, and ought in all reason to be good for common and every-day use, since they were confessedly formed of no holi- day texture. This faith had become so general, that the insurgent party in the Cabinet of which we have made mention, after sounding Mr. Richard Waverley, were so satisfied with his sentiments and abilities, as to propose, that, in case of a certain revolu: tion in the ministry, he should take an ostensible place in the new order of things, not indeed of the very first rank, butWAVEARERY. E37 greatly higher, in point both of emolument and influence, than that which he now enjoyec There was no resisting so tempt: ing a proposal, notwilt thstandit ig that the Great Man, under whose patronage he had enlisted, and by whose banner he had hitherto stood firm, was the principle object of the proposed OC. oon attack by the new allies. Unfortunately, this fair scheme of ambition was blighted in the very bud, by a premature move ment. All the official gentlemen concerned in it, who a eee to take the part of a voluntary resignation, were informed tha the king had no further occasion for their services; and, n Richard Waverley’s case, which the minister considered as ag- gravated by ingratitude, dismissal was accompanied by some- thing like SateonAl contempt and contumely. The public, and even the party of whom he shared the fall, sympathized little in the disappointment of this selfish and interested statesman; and he retired to the country under the comfortable reflection, that he had lost, at the same time, character, credit, and,— what he at least equ: lly d deplored »—emolument. Richard Waverley’s let tter to his son upon this occasion was a masterpiece of its kind. Aristides himself could not have made out a harder case. An unjust monarch, and an ungrate- ful country, were the burden of each rounded paragraph. He spoke of long services, and unrequited sacrifices, though the former had been overpaid by his salary, and nobody could guess in what the latter consisted, un less 1t were in his desert: ing, not from conviction, but for the lucre of gain, the tory principles of his family. In the acre sion, his resentment was wrought to such an excess by the force of his own oratory, that he could not repress some threats of vengeance, however vague and impotent, and finally acquainted his son with his pleasure that he should testify his sense of the ill-treatment he had sustained, by throwing up his commission as soon as the letter reached him. ‘This, he said, was also his uncle’s desire, as he would himself intimate in due course. Accordingly, the next letter which Edward opened, was from Sir Everard. His brother’s disgrace seemed to have re- moved from his well-natured bosom all recollection of their differences; and remote as he was from every means of learn- ing that Richard’s disgrace was in reality only the just, as well as natural consequence of his own unsuccessful intrigues, the good, but credulous Baronet, at once set it down as a new and enormous instance of the injustice of the existing govern- ment. It was true, he said, and i must not disguise it ev from Edward, that his father could not have sustained ntehe an insult as was now for the first time, offered to one of his house, ReserSR ee SA WAVERLEY. unless he had subjected himself to it by accepting of an em ployment under the present system. Sir Everard had no doubt that he now both saw and felt the magnitude of this error, and it should be his (Sir Everard’s) business to take care that the cause of his regret should not extend itself to pecuniary consequences. It was enough for a Waverley to have sustained the public disgrace; the patrimonial iujury could easily be obviated by the head of their family. But it was both the opinion of Mr. Richard Waverley and his own, that Edward, the representative of the family of Waverley-Honour, should not remain in a situation which subjected him also to such treatment as that with which his father had been stigma- tized. He requested his nephew therefore to take the fittest, and, at the same time, the most speedy opportunity, of transmitting his resignation to the War-Office, and hinted, moreover, that little ceremony was necessary where so little had been used to his father. He sent multitudinous greetings to the Baron of Bradwardine. A letter from Aunt Rachel spoke out even more plainly. She considered the disgrace of brother Richard as the just re- ward of his forfeiting his allegiance to a lawful though exiled sovereign, and taking the oaths to an alien; a concession which her grandfather, Sir Nigel Waverley, refused to make, either to the Round-head Parliament or to Cromwell, when his life and fortune stood in the utmost extremity. She hoped her dear Edward would follow the footsteps of his ancestors, and as speedy as possible get rid of the badge of servitude to the usurping family, and regard the wrongs sustained by his father as an admonition from Heaven, that every desertion of the line of loyalty becomes its own punishment. She also concluded with her respects to Mr. Bradwardine, and begged Waverley would inform her whether his daughter, Miss Rose, was old enough to wear a pair of very handsome earrings, which she proposed to send as a token of her affection. The good lady also desired to be informed whether Mr. Bradwardine took as much Scotch snuff, and danced as unweariediy, as he did when he was at Waverley-Honour about thirty years ago. These letters, as might have been expected, highly excited Waverley’s indignation. From the desultory style of his studies, he had not any fixed political opinion to place in op- position to the movements of indignation which he felt as his father’s supposed wrongs. Of the real cause of his disgrace Edward was totally ignorant; nor had his habits at all led him to investigate the politics of the period in which he lived, or remarked the intrigues in which his father had been so actively CCWAVE LOL IDM 139 engaged. Indeed, any impre ssions which he had accidentally adopted concerning the parties of the times, were (owing to the society in which he had lived at W averley-Honour) of a nature rather unfavorable to the existing goverhment and dynasty. He entered, therefore, without hesitation, into the resentful teeling of the relations who had the best title to dictate his conduct : and not perhaps the less willi ngly, yes he remem- pered the tedium of his ee rs, and the inferior figure which he had made aes the of rs of his regiment. Lf he oubt u pon sks subject, it would have been de cided by ee a sowing letter from his comm: inding officer, which, as it is very short, shall be inserted verbatim : could Nave had any J TRY “Having carried somewhat beyond the line indulgence which even the lights of nature, and much more those of Christianity, . toward errors which may arise from youth aes lexperience, and that altogether without effect, [ am reluctant] compe elled, at the present crisis, to use the only rian e iacas which is in my power. tore, hereby commanded to repaint: t6-—=* the headquarters of the regiment, within three days after the date of this letter If you shall fail to do so, I must report you to the War-Office as absent without leave and also take other steps, which will he disagreeable to you, as well as to, Sir “Your obedient Servant, “J. GARDINER, Lieut.-Col. “ Commanding the of my duty an You are, there- 2 1 To Ot tS 99 Regt. Dragoons. Edward’s blood boiled within him as he read this letter. He had been accustomed from his very infancy to possess, in a great measure, the ausnorel of his own time, and thus ac- quired habits which rendered the rules of military discipline as unpleasing to him in this as they were in some other respects An idea that in his own case they would not be enforced ina very rigid manner had also obtained full possession of his mind, and had hitherto been sanctioned by the indulgent con- duct. of his lieutenant-colonel. Neither had anything occurred, to his knowledge, that should have ee his comm a officer, without any other warning than the hints we noticed ; the end of the fourteenth ch: upter, so sudde nae to assume a harsh, bbe as E ‘dward deemed it, so insolent a tone of dicta- torial authority. Connecting it with the letters he had j just re ceived from his family, he could ee but suppose ae It Was Per SextetWAVERLEY. designed to make him fee , in his present situation, the same pressure of authority which had been exercised in his father’s case, and that the whole was a concertec d scheme to depress and degrade every member of the Waverley yee ie ee a pause, therefore, Edward wrote a few cold lines, x his lieuten: ant-colonel for past salts and expressing should have chosen to efface the remembrance of by assuming a different tone toward him. The strain of his letter, as well as what he (Edward) conceived to be his isis, called upon him to lay down his and he therefore enclosed the formal resignation of a situation which subjected _ to so unpleasant a corre- spondence, and requested Colonel Gardiner would have the goodness to forward it to the proper authorities. Having finished this magnani mous epistle, he felt somewhat uncertain concerning the terms in which his resign: ation ought to be expressed, upon which subject he reso ved to consult Fergus Mac-Ivor. It may be observe -d, in passing, that the bold and prompt habits s of thinking, acting, and speaking, which distinguished this young Chieftain, had given him a considerable ascendancy over the mind 5 Waverley. En- dowed with at least equal powers of understanding, and with much finer genius, Edward yet stooped to the bold and deci sive activity of an intellect which was sharpened by the habit of acting on a preconceived and regular system, as well as by -] extensive knowledge of this world. When Edward found his friend, the latter had still in his hand the newspaper which he had perused, and advanced to meet him with the embarrassment of one who has unpleasing news to communicate. “Do your letters, Captain Waverley confirm the unpleasing il formation that I find in this paper?” He put the paper into his hand, where his father’s disgrace was registered in the most bitter terms, transferred probably from some London journal. At the end of the paragr aph was this remarkable innuendo : We understand that ‘this same Richard who hath done all this, isnot the only example of the 7 (avering Honour of W-v-r-ly H-n-r. See the Gazette of this day. With hurried and feverish apprehension our hero turned to the place referred to, and found therein recorded, “ Edward Waverley, captain in——regiment dragoons, superseded for absence without leave ;’’ and in the list of military promotions, referring to the same regiment, he discovered this further ar- ticle, “ Lieut. Julius Butler, to be captain, vice Edward Waver- ley, superseded,”WAVERLEY. r4t Our hero’s bosom glowed with the resentment which unde: served and apparently premeditated insult was calculated to exite in the bosom of one who had aspired after honor, and was thus wantonly held up to public scorn and disgrace. Upon comparing the date of his colonel’s letter pith that of the article in the Gazette, he perceived that his threat of making a report upon his absence had been literally fulfilled, and without inquiry, as it seemed, whether Edward had either received his summons, or was disposed to comply with it. The whole, therefore, ap- peared a formed plan to degrade him e the eyes of the public and the idea of its having succeeded filled him with such bitter emotions, that, after various panne to conceal them, he a length threw himself into Mac-Ivor’s arms, and gave vent to tears of shame and indignation. It was none of this Chieftain’s faults to be indifferent to the wrongs of his friends; and for Edward, aoe of certain plans with which he was connected, he felt a deep and sincere iriterest: ~ Dhe proceed ing appeared as extraordinary to him as it had done to Bawatds He indeed knew of more motives than the peremptory order that he should join his regiment. But that, without further inquiry into the circumstances of a necessary delay, the « commanding « officer, in contradiction to his known and established character, should have proceeded in so harsh and unusual a manner, was a mys- tery which he could not penetrate. He soothed our hero, however, to the best of his power, and be gan to turn his thoughts on revenge for his insulted honor. Edward eagerly grasped at the idea. “ Will you carry a message for me to Colonel Gardiner, my dear Fergus, and oblige me forever?” Fergus paused. ‘“ Itis an act of friendship which you should command, could it be useful, or lead to the righting your honor ; but in the present case, I doubt if your commanding officer would give you the meeting, on account of his having taken measures, which, however harsh and exasperating, were still within strict bounds of his duty. Besides, Gardiner is a pre cise Huguenot, and has adopted certain ideas about the sinft iL ness of such rencontres from which it would be impossible to make him depart, especially as his courage is beyond all sus- picion. And besides, I—1I, to say the truth—I dare not at this moment, for some very weighty reasons, go near any of the military quarters or garrisons belonging to this government.” “ And am I,” said Waverley, “to sit down quiet and con: tented under the injury I have received? ” “That will Ree Bg oo eek oe ee es fo "\ averiey Was privy tO for U ] 1 7 I never advise, my friend,” replied Mac-Ivor.142 WAVERLEY. £ ‘‘ But I would have vengeance to fall on the head not on the hand; on the tyra nical and oppressive government which designed and See these premeditated and reiterated insults, not on the tools of office which they employed in the execution of the ee they aimed at you.” “On the gove ernment!” said Waverley. “Yes,” replied the impetuous Highlander, “on the usurp- mg’ house of eEnees whom your grandfather would no more have served than he would have taken w ages of red-hot gold from the great fiend of hell!” “But since the time of my grandfather two generations of this dynasty have possessed the throne,” said E ‘dward , coolly. “True,” replied the Chieftain; “and because we have passively given them so long the means of showing their native pe pzactens because both you and I myself have lived in quiet submission, have even truckled to the times so far as to accept commissions under them, and thus have given them an opportu- nity of disgracing us publicly by resuming them, are we not on that account to resent injuries which our fathers only appre- hended, but which we have actually sustained? Or is the cause of the unfortunate Stuart family become less just because their title has devolved upon an heir who is innocent of the charges of misgovernment brought against his father ?—Do you remem- ber the lines of your favorite poet ?— Had Richard unconstrained resigned the throne, A king can give no more than is his own; The title stood entailed had Richard had a son. You see, my dear Waverley, I can quote poetry as well as Flora and you. But come, clear your moody brow, and trust to me to show you an honorable road toa s peedy and glorious revenge Let us seek Flora, who, perhaps, ae more news to tell us “of what has occurred during our absence. She will rejoice to hear that you are relieved of your servitude. But first add a post- script to your letter, marking the time when you received this calvinistical Colonel’s first summons, and express your regret that the hastiness of his proceedings prev ented your anticipat- ing them by sending your resignation. Then let him blush for his injustice.” The letter was sealed accordingly, covering a formal resig- ee of the commission, and Mac-Ivor de spatched i it with some letters of his own by a special messenger, with charge to put mee into the nearest post-office in the Lowlands,WAVERLEY, CHAPTER TWENTY-SIXTH. AN ECLAIRCISSEMENT. Tue hint which the Chieftain had thrown out respecting Flora was not unpremeditated. He had observed with great satisfaction the growing attachment of Waverley to his sister, nor did he see any bar to their union, excepting the situation which Waverley’s father held in the ministry, and Edward’s own commission in the army of George II. These obstacles were now removed, and in a manner which apparently paved the way for the son’s becoming reconciled to another allegiance. In every other respect the match would be most eligible. The safety, happiness, and honorable provision of his sister, whom he dearly loved, appeared to be insured by the proposed union 5 and his heart swelled when he considered how his own interest would be exasted in the eyes of the ex-monarch to whom he had dedicated his service, oy an alliance with one of those ancient, powerful, and wealthy E nglish families of the steady cav alier faith, to awaken whose > decayec d attachment to the Stuart family was now a matter of such vital importance to the Stuart cause. Nor could Fergus perceive any obstacle to such a scheme. Waverley’s attachment was evident; and as his person was handsome, and his taste apparent tly coincided with her own, he anticipated no opposition on the part of Flora. Indeed, be- tween his ideas of patriarchal power, and those which he had acquired in France respecting the disposal of females in mar- riage, any opposition from his sister, dear as she was to him, would have been the last obstacle on which he would have cal- culated, even had the union been less eligible. Influenced by these feelings, the C hief now led Waverley in quest of Miss Mac-Ivor, not without the hope that the pres- ent agitation of his guest’s spirits might give him courage to cut short what Fergus termed the romance of the courtship. Ai hey found Flora, with her faithful attendants, Una and Cath- leen, busied in preparing what appeared to Waverley to be white bridal favors. Disguising as well as he could the agitation ol his mind, Waverley masked for what joyful occasion Miss Mac- Ivor made such ample preparation. “Tt is for Fergus’s bridal,” she said, smiling. , “Indeed!” said Edward ; “he has kept his secret well. I hope he will allow me to be his bride’ s-man.”Choon hin ghia ss os Side ee as 444 WAVERLEY. “That is a man’s office, but not yours, as Beatrice says,” retorted Flora. “ And who is the fair lady, may I be permitted to ask, Miss Mac-Ivor?”’ “Did I not tell you long since, that Fergus wooed no bride but Honor ?” answered Flora. “ And am I then incapable of being his assistant and coun- sellor in the pursuit of Honor?” said our hero, coloring deeply. “Do I rank so low in your opinion?” “ Far from it Captain W averley. I would to God you wer of our le Connon ! and made use of the expression which displeased you, solely Because you are not of our quality, But stand against us as an enemy.” “That time is passed, sister,” said Fergus ; “and you may wish Edward Waverley (no longer captain) joy of being freed from the slavery to an usurper, implied in that sable and ill omened emblem.” “Yes,” said Waverley, undoing the cc pcnpes from his hat, “it has pleased the king who bestowed ae s ba ‘ge upon me to resume it in a manner which leaves me lit reason to regret his service.” “ Thank God for that!” cried the enthusiast ; ‘and O that they may be blind enough to trea every man of honor who serves them with the same indignity, that I may have less to sigh for when the struggle ay yproac .ches | ” : ““ And now, sister,”’ said the Chi afte ain, “‘ replace his cockade with one of amore lively color. I think it was the fashion of the ladies of yore to arm and send forth flict knights to high achievement.” f “Not,” replied the lady, “ till the knight adventurer had well weighed the justice and the danger of the cause, Fergus. Mr. Waverley is just now too much agitated by feelings of recent emotion, for me to press upon him a resolution of con- sequences.” Waverley felt half-alarmed at the thoughts of adopting the badge of what was by the majority of the kit edom esteemed rebellion, yet he could not diseuise his chagrin at the coldness with which Flora parried her brother’s Aine “Miss Mac-Ivor I perceive, thinks the knight unworthy of her encouragement and favor,” said he, somewhat bitterly, . : a ee pe eee pice Wath ores) ea y brother’s value end a boon which Iam distributing to his whole clan? Most willingly would I | L ify ceet WAVERLEY. 148 enlist every man of honor in the cause to which my brother has devoted himself. But Fergus has taken his measures with his eyes open. His life has been devoted to this cause from his cradle ; with him its call is sacred, were it even a summons to the tomb. But how can I wish you, Mr. Waverley, so new to the world, so far from every friend who might advise and ought to influence you-—in a moment too of sudden pique and indignation-—how can I wish you to plunge yourself at once into so desperate an enterprise ?” Fergus, who did not understand these delicacies, strode through the apartment biting his lip, and then, with a con- strained smile, said, “ Well, sister, I leave you to act your new character of mediator between the Elector of Hanover and the subjects of your lawful sovereign and benefactor,” and left the room. There was a painful pause, which was at length broken by Miss Mac-Ivor. ‘ My brother is unjust,” she said, “ because he can bear no interruption that seems to thwart his loyal eal And do you not share his ardor?”’ asked Waverley ‘ Do I not?” answered Flora—"God knows mine excee< his, if taat be possible. But I am not, like him, rapt by the bustle of military preparation, and the infinite detail necessary to the present undertaking, beyond consideration of the grand principles of justice and truth, on which our enterprise is grounded ; and these, I am certain, can only be furthered by measures in themselves true and just. To operate upon your present feelings, my dear Mr. Waverley, to induce you to an irretrievable step, of which you have not considered either the justice or the danger, is, in my poor judgment, neither the one nor the other.” “Incomparable Flora!” said Edward, taking her hand ; how much do J need such a monitor ! ” A better one by far,” said Flora, gently withdrawing her hand, * me Waverley will always find in his own bosom, when he will give its s small still voice leisure to be heard.” . No “Miss Mac-Ivor, I dare not hope it ; a thousand cir- cumstances of fatal self-indulgence have made me the creature rather of imagination than reason. Durst I but hope—could [ but think—that you would deign to be to me that affectionate, that condescending friend who would strengthen me to redeem my errors, my future life” ' “ Hush, my dear sir ! now you Carry your joy at escaping the hands of a Jacobite recruiting officer to an unparalleled ex. cess of gratitude.” : 6s146 WAVERLEY. «Nay, dear Flora, trifle with me no longer ; you cannot mistake the meaning of those feelings which I have almost involuntarily expressed ; and, since I have broken the barrier of silence, let me profit by my audacity—or may I, with yout permission, mention to your brother’’——— ‘¢ Not for the world, Mr. Waverley ! ”’ “ What am I to understand ? ” said Edward. “ Is there any fatal bar—has any prepossession ” “ None, sir,” answered Flora. “ I owe it to myself to say, that I never yet saw the person on whom I thought with refer ence to the present subject.” “The shortness of our acquaintance, perhaps—If Miss Mac- Ivor will deign to give me time” “T have not even that excuse. Captain Waverley’s character is so open—is, in short, of that nature, that it cannot be mis- construed, either in its strength or its weakness.” “ And for that weakness you despise me ? ” said Edward. “ Forgive me, Mr. Waverley—and remember it is but within this half hour that there existed between us a barrier of a nature to me insurmountable, since I never could think of an officer in the service of the Elector of Hanover in any other tight than as a casual acquaintance. Permit me then to arrange my ideas upon so unexpected a topic, and in less than an hour I will be ready to give you such reasons for the resolution I shall express, as may be satisfactory at least, if not pleasing to you.” So saying, Flora withdrew, leaving Waverley to meditate upon the manner in which she had received his addresses. Ere he could make up his mind whether to believe his suit had been acceptable or no, Fergus re-entered the apart- ment. ‘“ What, @ da mort, Waverley?” he cried. “ Come down with me to the court, and you shall see a sight worth all the tirades of your romances. An hundred firelocks, and as many broadswords, Just arrived from good friends ; and two or three hundred stout fellows almost fighting which shall first possess them.—But let me look at you closer—Why, a true Highlander would say you have been blighted by an evil eye. —Or can it be this silly girl thathas thus blanked your spirit ? —Never mind her, dear Edward ; the wisest of her sex are fools in what regards the business of life.” “Indeed, my good friend,” answered Waverley, “ all that I can charge against your sister is, that she is too sensible, too reasonable.” “Tf that be all, I insure you fora louis dor against the mood lasting four-and-twenty hours. No woman “was ever steadily sensible for that period ; and I will engage if thatWAVERLEY. 147 will please you, Flora shall be as unreasonable to-morrow as any of her sex. You must learn, my dear Edward, to consider women ¢7” mousquetaire.”’ So saying, he seized Waverl ey’s arm, and dragged him off to review his mil itary preparations. CHAPTER TWENTY-SEVENTH. UPON THE SAME SUBJECT. Fercus Mac-Ivor had too much tact and del new the subject which he had interrupted. appeared to be, icacy to re- His head was, or so full of guns, broadswords, bonnets, can- teens, and tartan hose, that Waverley could not for some time draw his attention to any other topic. “* Are you to take the field so soon, Fergus,” he asked, “ that you are making all these martial preparations ? ” “ When we have settled that you go with me, you shall know all ; bet otherwise the knowledge might rather be preju- dicial to you.” “ But are you serious in your purpose, with such inferior forces, to rise against an established government ? frenzy.” : “Laissez farie & Don Antoine—I shall take good care of myself. We shall at least use the compliment of Conan, who never got a stroke but he gave one. I would not. however,” continued the Chieftain, “have you think me mad enough to stir till a favorable opportunity: I will not slip my dog before the game’s afoot. But, once more, will you join with us and you shall know all?” It is mere “How can I?” said Waverley: “I, who have so lately held that commission which is now posting back to those that gave it? My accepting it implied a promise of fidelity, and an acknowledgment of the legality of the government.” ‘“ A rash promise,” answered Fergus, ‘is not a steel hand- cuff; it may be shaken off, especially when it was given under deception, and has been repaid by insult. But if you cannot immediately make up your mind to a glorious revenge, go to England, and ere you cross the Tweed, you will hear tidings that will make the world ring; and if Sir Everard be the gal- lant old cavalier I have heard him described by some of our fonest gentlemen of the year one thousand seven hundred and fifteen, he will find you a better horse-troop and a better cause than you have lost.” MRO RY Pcs eer react TERNWAVERLEY. “ But your sister, Fergus ?” “Out, hyperbolical fiend !” replied the Chief, laughing; “how vexest thou this man !—Speakest thou of nothing but of laGites cay “Nay, be serious, my dear friend,” said Waverley; “I feel that the happiness of my future life must depend upon the answer which Miss Mac-Ivor shall make to what I ventured ta tell her this morning.” “And is this your very sober earnest,”’ said Fergus, more gravely, “or are we in the land of romance and fiction ?? “My earnest undoubtedly. How could you suppose meé jesting on such a subject?” “Then in very sober earnest,” answered his friend, ‘‘ I am ry glad to hear it: and so highly do I think of Flora, that you are the only man in England for whom I would say so much.—-But before you shake my hand so warmly, there is more to be considered.—Your own family—will they approve your connecting yourself with the sister of a high-born High- land | beggar ti My unc ae s situation,” sae Waverley, “his general opin- ions, and his uniform indulgence, entitle me to Say, that birth and personal qualities are il | he yuk look to in such a con- nection. And w here can I find both united in such excellence as in your sister ?”’ “© nowhere !—cela va sans dire,’ replied Fergus with a smile. ‘“ But your father will expect a father’s prerogative in being consulted.” “Surely ; but his late breach with the ruling powers re- moves all apprehension of objection on his part, especially as I am convinced that my uncle will be warm in my cause.” “Religion, perhaps,” said Fergus, “may make obstacles though we are not bigoted Catholics.” “My grandmother was of the Church of Rome, and her religion was never objected to by my family.—Do not think of my friends, dear Fergus; let me rather have your influence where it may be more necessary to remove obsta with your lovely sister. f My lovely sister,” replied Fergus, “like her loving broth er, jis Wer apt to have a pretty decisive will of her own, by which, in this case, you must be ruled; but you shall not want my interest nor my counsel. And, in the first place, I will give you one hint—Loyalty is her ruling passion; and since she could spell an English book, she has been in love with the memory of the gallant Captain Wogan, who renounced the service of the usurper Cromwell to join the standard of CharlesWAVERLEY. £49 If., marched a handful of cavalry from London to the High- lands to join Middleton, then in arms for the king, and at length died gloriously in the royal cause. Ask her to show you some verses she made on his history and fate; they have been mush admired, I assure you. The next point is—I think I saw Flora go up toward the waterfall a short time since—fol- low, man, follow !—don’t allow the garrison time to strengthen its purposes of resistance—Alerte & la mus aille! Seek Flora out, and learn her decision as soon as you can, and Cupid go with you while I go to look over belts and cartouch-boxes.” Waverley ascended the glen with an anxious and throbbing heart. Love, witl all its romantic train of hopes, fears, and wishes, was mingled with other feeling of a nature less easily defined. He could not but remember how much this morning had changed his fate, and into what a complication of perp lexity it was likely to plunge him. Sunrise had seen him possessed of an esteemed rank in the honorable profession of arms, aa father to all aj ppearances rapidly rising in the favor of his overeign ;—all this had aah ed away like a dream—he himself was dickies of his tather disgraced, and he had become mvoluntarily the confidant at least, if not the accomplice, of plans, dark, deep, and dangerous, which must either infer the subversion of the government he had so lately served, or the destruction of all who had participated in them. Should Flora even listen to his suit favorably, what prospect was there of its being brought to a happy termination amid the tumult of an impending insurrection? Or how could he make the selfish request that she should leave Fergus, to whom she was so much attached, and, retiring with him to England, wait as a distant spectator, the success of her brother’s undertaking, or the ruin of all his hopes and fortunes !—Or, on the other hand, to engage himself, with no other aid than his single arm, in the dangerous and precipitate counsels of the Chieftain,—to be whirled along by him, the partaker of all his sie and impetuous motions, renouncing almost the power of judging, or feciding upon the rectitude or prudence of his ee his was no “ple asing prospect for the secret pride of Waverley to stoop to And: yet what other conclusion remained, saving the rejection of his addresses by Flora, an alternative not to be thought of in the present high-wrought state of his feeling’, with anything short of mental agony. Pondering the doubtful and dangerous prospect before him, he at length arrived near the cascade, where, as Fergus had augured, he found Flora seated. She was quite alone, and as soon as she observed his ap- } 1 BSc Bo Praca ENN a150 WAVERLEY. proach, she rose and came to meet him. Edward attempted to say something within the verge of ordinary compliment and conversation, but found himself unequal to the task. Flora seemed at first equally embarrassed, but recovered herself more speedily, and (an unfavorable augury for Waverley’s suit) was the first to enter upon the subject of their last InkeTeWs «U0 is too important, in every point of view, Mr. Waverley, to per- mit me to leave you in doubt on my sentiments.” “Do not speak them speedily,” said Waverley, much agita: ted, “ unless they are such as I fear, from your manner, I must not dare to anticipate. Let time—let my future conduct—let your brother’s influence ” “ Forgive me, Mr. Waverley,” said Flora, her complexion a little heightened, but her voice firm and composed. ‘I should incur my own heavy censure, did I delay expressing my sincere conviction that I can never regard you otherwise than as a valued friend. I should do you the highest injustice did I con- ceal my sentiments for a moment—lI see I distress you, and | grieve for it, but better now than later; and O, better a thou- sand times, Mr. Waverley, that you should feel a present mo- mentary disappointment, than the long and heart-sickening eriefs which attend a rash and ill-assorted marriage !”’ “ Good God!” exclaimed Waverley, ‘‘ why should you anti- cipate such consequences from a union where birth is equal, where fortune is favorable, where, if I may venture to say so, the tastes are similar, where you allege no preference for an- other, where you even express a favorable opinion of him whom you reject?” “Mr. Waverley, I ave that favorable opinion,” answered Flora; ‘and so strongly, that though I would rather have been silent on the grounds of my resolution, you shall command them, if you exact such a mark of my esteem and confidence.” She sat down upon a fragment of rock, and Waverley, placing himself near her, anxiously pressed for the explanation she offered. “JT dare hardly,” she said, “tell you the situation of my feelings, they are so different from those usually ascribed to young women at my period of life; and I dare hardly touch upon what I conjecture to be the nature of yours, lest I should give offence where I would willingly administer consolation. For myself, from my infancy till this day, I have had but one wish-—-the restoration of my royal benefactors to their rightful throne. It is impossible to express to you the devotion of my feelings to this single subject, and I will frankly confess that it has so occupied my mind as to exclude every thought respectWAVERLEY. IST ing what is called my own settlement in life. Let me but live to see the day of that happy restoration, and a Highland cottage, a French convent, or an English palace, will be alike indifferent to me.” “But, dearest Flora, how is your enthusiastic zeal for the exiled family inconsistent with my happiness ?” ‘Because you seek, or ought to seek, in the object of your attachment, a heart whose principal delight should be in aug- snenting your domestic felicity, and returning your affection, even to the height of romance. To aman of less keen sensi- bility, and less enthusiastic tenderness of disposition, Flora Mac-Ivor might give content, if not happiness; for, were the irrevocable words spoken, never would she be deficient in the duties which she vowed.” “ And why —why, Miss Mac-Ivor, should you think your- self a more valuable treasure to one who is less capable of loving, of admiring you, than to me?” ‘Simply because the tone of our affections would be more in unison, and because his more blunted sensibility would not require the return of enthusiasm which I have not to bestow. But you, Mr. Waverley, would forever refer to the idea of do- mestic as which your imagination is capable of painting. and whatever fell short of that ideal representation would be construed into coolness and indifference, while you might con- sider the enthusiasm with which I regarded the success of the royal family as defrauding your affection of its due return.’ “Tn other words, Miss “Mac-lv or, you cannot love me?” said her suitor, dejectedly. ‘“‘T could esteem you, Mr. Waverley, as much, perhaps more, than any man I have ever seen; but I cannot love you as you ought to be loved. O! do not, for your own sake, desire so hazardous an experiment. The woman whom you marry ought to have affections and opinions moulded upon yours. Her studies ought to be your studies ;—her wishes, her feelings, her’ should all mingle with yours. She should share your sorrows, and cheer your hopes, her fears, enhance your pleasures, melancholy. . i ‘And why will not you, Miss Mac-Ivor, who can so well describe a hi appy union, W hy will not you be yourself the person you describe ?’ “Ts it possible you do not yet comprehend me ?” said Flora. “ Have I not told you, that every keener sensation of my mind is bent exclusively ‘toward: an event, upon which, indeed, I have no power but those of my earnest prayers ?” “ And might not the granting the suit I solicit,’’ said Waver- URS TT x TSN WA PEs nu hrennar esFaas: Cums Mae eee 52 WAVERLEY. ley, too earnest on his purpose to consider what he was about to say, “even advance the interest to which you have devoted yourself? My family is wealthy and powerful, inclined in prin- ciples to the Stuart race, and should a favorable opportu- nity ’”’—— “A favorable opportunity !”’ said Flora, somewhat scorn- fully,—“‘ inclined in principles !—Can such lukewarm adherence be honorable to yourselves, or gratifying to your lawful sov ereign ?—Think, from my present feelings, what I should suffer when I held the place of member in a family where the rights which f hold most sacred are subjected to cold discussion, and only deemed worthy of support when they shall appear on the point of triumphing without it?” “Your doubts,” quickly replied Waverley, “ are unjust as far as concerns myself. The cause that I shall assert, | dare support through every danger, as undauntedly as the boldest who draws sword in its behalf.” “‘ Of that,” answered Flora, “ I cannot doubt fora moment. But consult your own good sense and reason rather than a pre. possession hastily adopted, probably only because you have met a young woman possessed of the usual accomplishments, in a sequestered and romantic situation. Let your part in this great and perilous drama rest upon conviction, and not ona hurried, and probably a temporary feeling.” Waverley attempted to reply, but his. words failed him. Every sentiment that Flora had uttered vindicated the strength of his. attachment ; for even her loyalty, although wildly enthu- Silastic, was generous and noble, and disdained to avail itself of any indirect means of supporting the cause to which she was devoted. After walking a little way in silence down the path, Flora thus, resumed the conversation.—* One word more, Mr. Waver- ley, ere we bid farewell to. this topic forever; and forgive my boldness if that word have the air of advice. My brother Fer- gus is anxious that you should join him in his present enter prise. But do. not consent to this; you could not, by your single exertions, further his success, and you would inevitably share his fall, if it be God’s pleasure that fall he must. Your character would also suffer irretrievably. Let me beg you will return to your own country; and, having publicly freed yourself from every tie to the usurping government, I trust you will see cause, and find opportunity, to serve your injured sovereign with effect, and stand forth, as your loyal ancestors, at the head of your natural followers and adherents, a worthy representative of the house of Waverley.” : {?J re WAVERLEY. 153 ** And should I be so happy as thus to distinguish myself, might I not hope ”»—— : ‘Forgive my interruption,’ said Flora. “The present time only is ours, and I can but explaitt to you with candor the feelings which I now entertain: how they gnscht be altered by a train of events po favorable perhaps ioe hoped for, it were In vain even to” conjecture: only be assured, Mr. Waverley, that, after: my brother’s honor and happiness, there is none which I shall more sincerely pray for than for yours.” With these words she parté@ from him, for they were now arrived where two paths separated. Waverley reached the cas. tle amidst a medley of conflicting passions. He avoided anv private interview with Fergus, as he did not find himself able either to encounter his raillery, or reply to his solicitations. The wild revelry of the feast, for Mac-Ivor kept open table for his clan, served in some degree to stun reflection. When their festivity was ended, he began to consider how he should again meet Miss Mac-Ivor after the painful and interesting expla- nation of the morning. But Flora did not appear. Fergus, whose eyes flashed when he was told by Cathleen that her mistress designed to keep her apartment that evening, went himself in quest of her; but apparently his remonstrances were in vain, for he returned with a heightened complexion, and manifest symptoms of displeasure. The rest of the evening passed on without any allusion, on the part either of Fergus or Waverley, to the subject which engrossed the reflections of the latter, and perhaps of both, When retired to his own apartment, Edward endeavored to sum up the business of the day. That the repulse he had re- ceived from Flora would be persisted in for the present, there was no doubt. But could he hope for ultimate success in case circumstances permitted the renewal of his suit? Would the enthusiastic loyalty, which at this animating moment left no room for a softer passion, survive, at least, in its engrossing force, the success or the failure of the present political mach- inations? And if so, could he hope that the interest which she had acknowledged him to possess in her favor might be im: proved into a warmer attachment? He taxed his memory to recall every word she had used, with the appropriate looks and gestures which had enforced them, and ended by finding him- self in the same state of uncertainty. It was very late before sleep brought relief to the tumult of his mind, after the most painful and agitating day which he had ever passed. ee ick rer erannS~ Lighablaahainaett Ns WAVERLEY. CHAPTER TWENTY-EIGHTH. A LETTER FROM TULLY-VEOLAN. In the morning when Waverley’s troubled reflections had for some time given way to repose, there came music to his dreams, but not the voice of Selma. He imagined himself transported back to Tully-Veolan, and that he heard Davie Gellatley singing in the court those matins which used gener- ally to be the first sounds that disturbed his repose while a guest of the Baron of Bradwardine. The notes w hich suggested this vision continued, and waxed louder, until Edward awoke in earnest. The illusion, however, did aa seem entirely dis- pelled. ‘The apartment was in the fortress of Ian nan Chaistel, but it was still the voice of Davie Gellatley that made the fol. lowing lines resound under the window :— My heart’s in the Highlands, my heart is not here, My heart’s in the Highlands a-chasing the deer ; A-chasing the wild deer, and following the roe, My heart’s in the Highlands wherever I go. 5 Curious to know what could have determined Mr. Gellatley on an excursion of such unwonted extent, Edward began to dress himself in all haste, during which operation the minstrelsy of Davie changed its tune more than once :— There’s pug in the Highlands but syboes and leeks, And lang-leggit callants gaun wanting the breeks ; Wanting t the bre eks, and without hose and shoon, But we’ll a’ win the breeks when King Jamie comes hame. ® By the time Waverley was dressed and had issued forth, David had associated himself with two or three of the numerous Highland loungers who always graced the gates of the castle with their presence, and was capering and dancing full merrily in the doubles and full career of a Scotch foursome reel, to the music of his own whistling. In this double capacity of dancer and musician he continued, until an idle piper, who observed his zeal, obeyed the unanimous call of Seéd suas (#.e., blow up,) and relieved him from the latter part of his trouble. Young and old then mingled in the dance as they could find partners. ‘The appearance of Waverley did not interrupt David’s exercise, though he contrived, by grinning, nodding, and throwing one ofWAVERLEY. 155 two inclinations of the body into the graces with which he per- formed the Highland fling, to convey to our hero symptoms of recognition. ‘Then, while busily employed in setting, whoop: ng ali the while and snapping his fingers over his head, he of a sudden prolonged his side-step until it brought him to the place where Edward was standing, and, still keeping time to the music like Harlequin ina pantomime, he thrust a letter into our hero’s hand, and continued his saltation without pause or intermission. Edward, who perceived that the address was in Rose’s handwriting, retired to peruse it, leaving the faithful bearer to continue his exercise until the piper or he should be tired out. The contents of the letter greatly surprised him. It had originally commenced with, Dear Sir; but these words hada been carefully erased, and the monosyllable, Szv, substituted in their place. The rest of the contents shall be given in Rose’s own language. ‘“‘T fear I am using an improper freedom by intruding upon you, yet I cannot trust to anyone else to let you know some things which have happened here, with which it seems neces- sary you should be acquainted. Forgive me if I am wrong in what I am doing; for, alas! Mr. Waverley, 1 have no better advice than that of my own feelings ;—my dear father ‘is gone from this place, and when he can return to my assistance and protection, God alone knows. You have probably heard that, in consequence of some troublesome news from the Highlands. watrants were sent out for apprehending several gentlemen in these parts, and, among others, my dear father. In spite of all my tears and entreaties that he would surrender himself to the government, he joined with Mr. Falconer and some other gentlemen, and they have all gone northwards, with a body of about forty horsemen. So I am not so anxious concerning his immediate safety as about what may follow afterwards, for these troubles are only beginning. But all this is nothing to you, Mr. Waverley, only I thought you would be glad to learn that my father has escaped, in case you happen to have heard that he was in danger. ee ‘The.day after my father went off, there came a party of soldiers to Tully-Veolan, and behaved very rudely to Bailie Macwheeble ; but the officer was very civil to me, only said his duty obliged him to search for arms and papers. My father had provided against this by taking away all the arms except the useless old things which hung in the hall, and he had put all his papers out of the way. But O! Mr. Waverley, how shall I tell you, that they made strict inquiry after you, and Een iets eae tenet)WAVERLEY, asked when you had been at Tully-Veolan, and where you now were. ‘The officer is gone back with his party, but a non-com- missioned officer and four men remain as a sort of garrison in the house. They have hitherto behaved very well, as we are forced to keep them in good-humor, But these soldiers have hinted as if on your falling into their hands you would be in great danger; I cannot prevail on myself to write what wicked falsehoods they said, for I am sure they are falsehoods ; but you will best judge what you ought to do. The party that returned carried off your servant prisoner, with your two horses, and everything that you left at Tully-Veolan. I hope God will protect you, and that you will get safe home to England, where you used to tell me there was no military violence nor figl iting among clans eee d, but everything was done accord- ing to an equal law that protected all who were harmless and innocent. I hope you will exert your indulgence as to my boldness in writing to you, where it seems to me, though per- haps erroneously, that your safety and honor are concerned. I am sure—at least I think, my father would approve of my writ- ing; for Mr. Rubric is fled to his cousin’s at the Duchran, to be out of danger from the soldiers and the Whigs, and Bailie Macwheeble does not like to meddle (he says) in other men’s concerns, though I hope what may serve my father’s friend at such a time as “this, cannot be termed improper interference. Farewell, Captain Waverley. I sh all probably never see you more ; for it would be very improper to wish you to call at Tully- Veolan just now, even if these men were gone ; but I will always remember with gratitude your kindness in assisting so poor a scholar as myself, and your attentions to my dear, dear father, I remain, your obl iged servant, ‘* ROSE Comyne BRADWARDINE, * P. 5.—I hope you will send me a line by David Gellatley, just to say you have received this, and that you will take care of yourself; and forgive me if I entreat you, for your own sake, to join none of these unh 1appy cabals, but escape, ag fast as possible, to your own fortunate country. My compliments to my dear Flora, and to See ch. Is she not as hand- some and accomplished as I described her?” This concluded the let co of Rose Bradwardine, the con- {nts of which both surprised and affected Waverley, That the Baron should fall under the suspicions of Government, in consequence of the present stir among the partisans of the house of Stuart, seemed only the natural consequence of his political predictions; but how Ze himself should have been involved in such suspicions, conscious that until yesterday heWAVERLEY. 157 had been free from harboring a thought against the prosperity of the reigning family, seemed inexplicable. Both at Tully Veolan and Glennaquoich, his host had respected his engage- ments with the existing government, and though enough passed by accidental innuendo that might induce him to reckon the Baron and the Chief among those disaffected gentlemen who were still numerous in Scotland, yet until his own connection with the army had been broken off bythe resumption of his commission, he had no reason to suppose that they nourished any immediate or hostile attempts against the present estab- lishment. Still he was aware that unless he meant at once to embrace the proposal of Fergus Mac-Ivor, it would deeply con- cern him to leave this suspicious neighborhood without delay, and repair where his conduct might undergo a satisfactory ex- amination. Upon this he the rather determined, as Flora’s advice favored his doing so, and because he felt inexpressible repugnance at the idea of being accessory to the plague of civil war. Whatever were the original rights of the Stuarts, calm reflection told him, that, omitting the question how far James the Second could forfeit those of his posterity, he had, according to ‘the united voice of the whole nation, justly for- feited his own. Since that period, four monarchs had reigned in peace and glory over Britain, sustaining and exalting the character of the nation abroad, and its liberties at home. Reason asked, was it worth while to disturb a government so long settled and established, and to plunge a kingdom into all the miseries of civil war, for the purpose of replacing upon the throne the descendants of a monarch by whom it “had been wilfully forfeited ? If, on the other hand, his own final con- viction of the goodness of their cause, or the commands of his father or uncle, should recommend ne allegiance to the Stuarts, still it was necessary to clear his own character by showing that he had not, as seemed to be falsely insinuated, taken any step to this purpose, during his holding the commis- sion of the reigning monarch. The affectionate simplicity of Rose, and her anxiety for his safety —his sense too of her unprotected state, and of the terror and actual dangers to which she might be exposed, made an impression upon his mind, and he instantly wrote to thank her in the kindest terms for her solicitude on his account, to express his earnest good wishes for her welfare and that of her father, and to assure her of his own safety. The feelings which his task excited were speedily lost in the necessity which he now saw of bidding farewell to Flora Mac-Ivor per haps forever. The pang attending this reflection was inexpres: Parcs sW ura SeaSSabusnn nasacort Rt ee es 158 WAVERLEY. sible ; for her high-minded elevation of character, her self devotion to the cause which she had embraced, united to her scrupulous rectitude as to the means of serving it, had vindi- cated to his judgment the choice adopted by his passions. But time pressed, calumny was busy with his fame, and every hour’s delay increased the power to injure it. His departure must be instant. With this determination he sought out Fergus, and com: : municated to him the contents of Rose’s letter, with his own resolution instantly to go to Edinburgh, and put into the hands of some one or other of those persons of influence to whom he had letters from his father, his exculpation from any charge which might be preferred against him. ‘You run your head into the lion’s mouth,” answered Mac- Ivor. “You do not know the severity of a government -ha- rassed by just apprehensions, and a consciousness of their own illegality and insecurity. I shall have to deliver you from some dungeon in Stirling or Edinburgh Castle.” ‘“‘ My innocence, my rank, my father’s intimacy with Lord M——, General G——-, etc., will be a sufficient protection,” said Waverley. ‘“¢'You will find the contrary,” replied the Chieftain ; “‘ these gentlemen will have enough to do about their own matters. Once more, will you take the plaid, and stay a little while with us among the mists and the crows, in the bravest cause ever sword was drawn in?” * ‘““For many reasons, my dear Fergus you must hold me excused,”’ “Well then,’* said Mac-Ivor, “I shall certainly find you exerting your poetical talents in elegies upon a prison, or your antiquarian researches in detecting the Oggam © character, or some Punic hieroglyphic upon the key-stones ofa vault, curi- ously arched. Or what say you to um petit pendement bien joli ? against which awkward ceremony I don’t warrant you, should you meet a body of the armed west-country Whigs.” ‘And why should they use me so?” said Waverley. “For a hundred good reasons,” answered Fergus : “ First, you are an Englishman ; secondly, a gentleman ; thirdly, a pre- latist abjured ; and fourthly, they have not had an opportunity to exercise their talents on such a subject this long while. But don’t be cast down, beloved : all will be done in the fear of the Lord.” ** Well, I must run my hazard,” “You are determined, then ?” Civam.” oo: Oo tWAVERLEY. 159 “ Wilful will do’t,” said Fergus ;—‘ but you cannot go on foot, and I shall want no horse, as I must march on foot at the head of the children of Ivor; you shall have Brown Der- mid.” “Tf you will sell him, I shall certainly be much obliged ‘If your proud English heart cannot be obliged by a gift 02 loan, I will not refuse money at the entrance of a campaign : his price is twenty guineas. [ Remember, reader, it was Sixty Years since.]|_ And when do you propose to depart?” ‘The sooner the better,” answered Waverley. ‘You are right, since go you must, or rather, since go you will I will take Flora’s pony, and ride with you as far as Bally-Brough. Callum Beg, see that our horses are ready, with Pe] eg, a pony for yourself, to attend and carry Mr. Waverley’s bag- face asifar as — (naming a small town), where he can have a horse and guide to Edinburgh. Puton a Lowland dress, Callum, and see you keep your tongue close, if you would not have me cutit out; Mr. Waverley rides Dermid.” ‘Then turn- ing to Edward, “ You will take leave of my sister ?” ‘‘ Surely—that is, if Miss Mac-Ivor will honor me so fare “ Cathleen let my sister know that Mr. Waverley wishes to pid her farewell before he leaves us.—But Rose Bradwardine—- her situation must be thought of. I wish she were here. And why should she not? ‘There are but four red-coats at Tully- Veolan, and their muskets would be very useful to us.” To these broken remarks Edward made no answer ; his ear indeed received them, but his soul was intent upon the expec- ted entrance of Flora. The door opened—it was but Cath- leen, with her lady’s excuse, and wishes for Captain Waverley's health and happiness. CHAPTER TWENTY-NINTH. WAVERLEY’S RECEPTION IN THE LOWLANDS AFTER HIS HIGH- LAND TOUR. Ir was noon when the two friends stood at the top of the pass at Bally-Brough. “I must go no farther,” said Fergus Mac-Ivor, who during the journey had in vain endeavored to raise his friend’s spirits. . “ If my cross-grained sister has any share in your dejection, trust me she thinks highly of you, though her present anxiety about the public cause prevents her listening to any other subject. Confide your interests to me;WAVERLEY. I will not betray it, providing you do not again assume that vile cockade.” “ No fear of that, considering the manner in which it has been recalled. Adieu, Fergus; do not permit your sister to forget me.” “ And adieu, Waverley; you may soon hear of her with a prouder title. Get home, write letters, and make friends as many and as fast as you can; there will speedily be unexpected guests on the coast of Suffolk, or my news from France has Gecelved mer.” Thus parted the friends; Fergus returning back to his cas tle, while Edward, followed by Callum Beg, the latter trans- formed from point to point into a Low-country groom, pro- ceeded to the little town of ——. Edward paced on under the painful and yet not altogether embittered feelings, which separation and uncertainty produce in the mind of a youthful lover. I am not sure if the ladies understand the full value of the influence of absence, nor do I think it wise to teach it them, lest, like the Clelias and Man- danes of yore, they should resume the humor of sending their lovers into banishment. Distance, in truth, produces in idea the same effect as in real perspective. Objects are softened, and rounded, and rendered doubly graceful; the harsher and more ordinary points of character are mellowed down, and those by which it is remembered are the more striking outlines that mark sublimity, grace, or beauty. There are mists too in the mental, as well as the natural horizon, to conceal ‘what is less pleasing in distant objects, and there are happy lights, to stream in full glory upon those points which can profit by brill- iant illumination. Waverley forgot Flora Mc-Ivor’s prejudices, :n her mag- nanimity, and almost pardoned her indifference towards his aifection, when he recollected the grand and decisive object which seemed to fill her whole soul. She, whose sense of duty so wholly engrossed her in the cause of a benefactor, what would be her feelings in favor of the happy individual who should be so fortunate as to awaken them? Then came the doubtful question, whether he might not be that happy man,— a question which fancy endeavored to answer in the affirma- tive, by conjuring up all she had said in his praise, with the addition of a comment much more flattering than the text war: ranted. All that was commonplace, all that belonged to the every-day world, was melted away and obliterated in those dreams of imagination, which only remembered with advantaye the points of grace and dignity that distinguished Flora fromWAVERLEY. 161 the generality of her sex, not the particulars which she held in common with them. Edward was, in short, in the fair way of creating a goddess out of a high- ap ‘ited, accomplished, and beautiful young woman; and the time was w fasted in castle building, until, at the descent of a steep hill, he saw beneath him the market-town of ——, The Highland politeness of Callum Beg—there are few nations, by the way, who can boast of so much natural polite- ness as the Highlanders *“—the Highland civility of his attend- ant had not permitted him to disturb the reveries of our hero. But observing him rouse himself at the sight of the village, Callum pressed closer to his side, and hoped ‘ ‘When they cam to the public, his honor wad not say nothing about ¥ ich Ian Vohr, for ta people were bitter V\ ‘higs, deil burst tenaz” Waverley assured the prudent page that he would be cau- tious ; and as he now distinguished, not indeed the ringing of bells, but the tinkling of something like a hammer against the side of an old mossy, green, inverted porridge-pot, that hung in an open booth, of the size and shape of a parrot’s cage, erected to grace the east end of a buil ding resembling an old barn, he asked : allum Beg if it were Si and: ay. “Could na say i st preceesely—Sunday ‘seldom cam aboon the pass of Bally -Brough.” On entering es ‘ait however, and adv ancing towards the mosc¢ apparent public-house, which presented itselk, the numbers of old women, in tartz from the at resemb Se in screens and red cloaks, who streamed ling building, debating, as they went, the comparative merits of the blessed youth Jabesh Rentowel, and that chosen vessel Maister Goukt thrapple, induced Callum to as- sure his temporary master, “ that it was either ta muckle Sunday hersell, or ta little government Sunday that they ca’d ta fast.” On alighting at the sign of the Seven-branched Golden Candiestick, which, for the farther delectation of the guests, was graced with a short Hebrew motto, they were received by mine host, a tall thin puritanical figure, who seemed to debate with himself whether he ought to give shelter to those who had travelled on such a day. Reflecting, however, in all probability, that he possessed the power of mulcting them for this irregu- larity, a penalty which they might escape by passing into Gregor Duncanson’s, at the sign of the Highlander and 1 the. Hawick Gil i Mr. Ebenezer Cruickshanks condescended to admit them i into his dwelling. To this sanctified person Waverley addressed his request, that he would procure him a guide, with a saddle-horse, to carry his ere aneod to Edinburgh“ And whar may ye be coming from?” demanded mine host of the Candlestick. “T have told you where I wish togo; I do not conceive any farther information necessary either for the guide or his saddle-horse.” “ Hem! Ahem!” returned he of the Candlestick, some- what disconcerted at this rebuff. ‘It’s the general fast, sir, and I cannot enter into ony carnal transactions on sic a day, when the people should be humbled, and the backsliders should return, as worthy Mr. Goukthrapple said ; and moreover when, as the precious Mr. Jabesh Rentowel did weel observe, the land was mourning for covenants burnt, broken, and buried.” “My good friend,” said Waverley, “ if you cannot let me have a horse and guide, my servant shall seek them else- where.” “ Aweel! Your servant ?—and what for gangs he not for- ward wi’ you himsell ?” Waverley had but very little of a captain of horse’s spirit within him—I mean of that sort of spirit which I have been obliged to when I happened, in a mail-coach, or diligence, to meet some military man who has kindly taken upon him the disciplining of the waiters, and the taxing of reckonings. Some of this useful talent our hero had, however, acquired during his military service, and on this gross provocation it began seriously to arise, “ Look ye, sir; I came here for my own accommoda- tion, and not to answer impertinent questions. Either say you can, or cannot, get me what I want; I shall pursue my course im either case.” Mr. Ebenezer Cruickshanks left the room with some indis- tinct muttering; but whether negative or acquiescent, Edward could not well distinguish. ‘The hostess, a civil, quiet, laborious drudge, came to take his orders for dinner, but declined to make answer on the subject of the horse and guide; for the Salique law, it seems, extended to the stables of the Golden Candlestick. From a window which overlooked the dark and narrow court in which Callum Beg rubbed down the horses after their journey, Waverley heard the following dialogue betwixt the subtle foot-page of Vich Ian Vohr and his landlord :— “ Ye’ll be frae the north, young man ?” began the latter. ‘“* And ye may say that,” answered Callum. “‘ And ye’ll hae ridden a lang way the day, it may weel be ?” ** Sae lang, that I could weel tak a dram.” ** Gudewife, bring the gill stoup.” Here some compliments passed, fitting the occasion, whenWAVERLE) Gis 3 my host. of the Golden Candlestick, having, as he thought, opened his guest’s heart by this hospitable propitiation sumed his scrutiny. “ Yell no hae mickle better whiskey than that aboon the Pass? “Iam nae frae aboon the Pass.” Ye re a Highlandman by your tongue : ee e¢ NT Na; I am but just Aberdeen-a- way. And did your master come frae Aberdeen wi’ you?” Ay—that’s when I left it n rysell,” answered the cool and eh te ane Callum Beg. “And what kind of a gentleman is he ? ” “I believe he is ane o’ King George’s state officers: at least he’s aye for ganging on to the south, and he has a hantle siller, and never grudges onything till a poor body, or in the way of a lawing.”’ TC: ‘He wants a guide and a horse frae hence to Edinburgh ?” Ay, and ye maun find it him forthwith.” Ahem! It will be ch: irgeable ‘“‘ He cares na for that a boddle.’ Aweel, Duncan—Did ye say your name was Duncan ot Donald? ‘Na, man—Jamie—Jamie Steenson—I telt ye before.” This last undaunted parry altogether foiled Mr. Cruickshanks, who, though not quite satisfied either with the reserve of the master, or the extreme readiness of the man, was contented to lay atax on the reckoning and horse-hire, that might compound for his ungratified curiosity. The circumstance of its being the fast day was not forgotten in the charge, which, on the whole, did not, however, amount to much more than double what in fair- ness it should have been. Callum Beg soon after announced in person the ratification es this treaty, adding, “Ta auld ¢ leevil was ganging to ride > ta Duinhé-wassel hersell. “That will not be very rit Callum, nor altogether safe, for our host seems a person of great curiosity ; but a traveller must submit to these inconveniences. Meanwhile, my good lad, here is 4 trifle for > ou to drink Vich Ian Vohr’s health.” The hawk’s aga of Callum flashed delight upon a golden guinea, with which as last words were accompanied. He hastened, not without a curse on the intricacies of a Saxon breeches pocket, or spleuchan, as he called it, to deposit the treasure in his fob; and then, as if he conceived the benevo- fence called for some requital on his part, he gathered close up to Edward, with an expression of countenance peculiarly SS SR TRS s rite nce tries h nS eee ‘ bees sisnnsis164 WAVERLEY. knowing, and spoke in an undertone, “If his honor thought ta auld deevil whig carle was a bit dangerous, she could easily provide for him, and teil ane ta wiser.” “ How, andin what manner?” “Her ain sell,” replied Callum, ‘‘ could wait for him a wee bit frae the toun, and kittle his quarters wi’ her skene-occle.”’ “ Skene-occle! what’s that?”’ Callum unbuttoned his coat, raised his left arm, and, with an emphatic nod, pointed to the hilt of a small dirk, snugly deposited under it, in the lining of his jacket. Waverley thought he had understood his meaning; he gazed in his face, and discovered in Callum’s very handsome, though em- browned features, just the degree of roguish malice with which a lad of the same age in England would have brought forward a plan for robbing an orchard. ‘Good God, Callum, would you take the man’s life ?” “Indeed,” answered the young desperado, “ and I think he has had just a lang enough lease o’t, when he’s for betraying nonest folk, that come to spend siller at his public.” Edward saw nothing was to be gained by argument, and therefore contented himself with enjoining Callum to lay aside all practices against the person of Mr. Ebenezer Cruickshanks, in which injunction the page seemed to acquiesce with an air of great indifference. “Ta Duinhé-wassel might please himsell; ta auld rudas loon had never done Callum nae ill. But here’s a bit line frae ta Tighearna, tat he bade me gie your honor ere I came back.” The letter from the Chief contained Flora’s lines on the fate of Captain Wogan, whose enterprising character is so well drawn by Clarendon. He had originally engaged in the ser- vice of the Parliament, but had abjured that party upon the execution of Charles I.; and upon hearing that the royal stand- ard was set up by the Earl of Glencairn and General Middle- ton in the Highlands of Scotland, took leave of Charles IL., who was then at Paris, passed into England, assembled a body of cavaliers in the neighborhood of London, and traversed the kingdom, which had been so long under domination of the usurper, by marches conducted with such skill, dexterity, and spirit, that he safely united his handful of horsemen with the ! body of Highlanders then in arms. After several months of desultory warfare, in which Wogan’s skill and courage gained him the highest reputation, he had the misfortune to be wounded in a dangerous manner, and no surgical assistance being within reach, he terminated his short but glorious career. There were obvious reasons why the politic Chieftain was a IU P . ppiebibhasasr cass cses babes daha = eenit STICI & = ~ _— Q = A < o nD a 4 eH Fy om ~~ cy wD ° 4 jen a i 4A) EG boo r Bay 7 eo F F pbinaretia ssc SeanaWAVERL eee BY. rGfr a desirous to place the example of this young hero under the eye of Waverley, with whose romantic disposition it coincided so peculiarly. But his letter turned chiefly upon some trifling commissions which Waverley had pro mised to execute for him in England, and it was only towa ird the coneln sion that Edward found these words:—‘“I owe Flora a gruc f her company yesterday ; and as I am givin; reading these lines, in order to Lee in promise to procure me the fishing-tackle and cross-bow from London, I will enclose her verses on the Grave of Wogan. This I know will teaze her; for, to tell you the truth, I think her more in love with the memory of that dead hero, than sh iving one, unless he shall tread a simi- dere fc or refusing us you the trouble of our memory your >: 2 V is likely to be with any lj lar path. But English squires of our day keep their oak-trees to shelter their deer parks, or repair the losses of an evening at White’s, and neither invoke them to wreath their brows, nor shelter their graves. Let me hope for one brilliant e exception in a dear friend, to whom I would most gladly give a dearer tie”? The verses were inscribed, TO: AN OAK. FREE, Uy THE GHURCHYARD OF——, IN THE HIGHLANDS OF SCOTLAND, SAID 3%} MARK THE GRAVE OF CAPTAIN WOGAN, KILLED IN 1649. Emblem of England’s ancient raith, Full pr oor, may thy branches wave, Where loyalty lies low in death, And valor fills a timeless grave And thou, brave tenant of the tomb! Repine not if our clime deny, Above thine honor’d sod to blocm, Lhe flowerets of a milder sky, These owe their birth to genial May ; Beneath a fiercer sun they pine, Before the winter storm decay— And can their worth be type of thine ? Wo! for ’mid storms of Fate opposing, Still higher swell’d thy dauntless heart, And while Despair the scene was closing, Commenced the brief but brilliant part. ’T was then thou sought’st on Albyn’s hill, (When England’s sons the strife resign’d), A rugged race resisting still, And unsubdued, though unrefined.F plpithiiersssrersjase uae revenge WAVERLEY. Thy death’s hour heard no kindred w ail, No holy knell thy rec ae rung Thy mourners were the plaided Gael, Thy dirge the clamorous pibroch sung. Yet who, in Fortune’ summer-shine, To we ay life’s longest term away, Would change that glori« sus dawn of thine, Though darken’d ere its noontide day ? Be thine the Tree whose dauntless boughs, Brave summer’s drought and winter’s gloom ! Rome bound with oak her patriot’s brows, As Albyn shadows Wogan’s tomb. Whatever might be the real merit of Flora Mac-Ivor’s Rosy, the enthusiasm which it intimated was well calculated to make a corresponding impression upon her lovers Phe dines were ria ad again—then deposited in Waverley’s bosom— then again drawn out, and read line by line, in a low and smothered voice, and with frequent pauses which prolonged the mental treat, as an epicure Oe by sipping slowly, the enjoyment of a delicious beverage. ‘The entrance of Mrs. Cruickshanks, with the sublunary “articles of dinner and wine = hardly interrupted this pantomime of affections ite enthusi: asm. At length the tall ungainly figure and ungracious visage of Ebenezer presented themselves. ‘The upper part of his form, notwithstanding the season required no such defence, was shrouded in a large great-coat, belted over his under habilt ments, and crested with a huge cowl of the same stuff, which, when drawn over the head and hat, completely overshadowed both, and being buttoned beneath the chin, was called a trot cozy. His hand grasped a huge jockey-whip, garnished with brass mounting. His thin legs tenanted a pair of gambadoes, fastened at the sides with rusty clasps. ‘Thus accoutred, he stalked into the midst of the apartment, and announced his errand in brief Oe :—“ Yer horses are ready.”’ “You go with me yourself then, landlord?” “T do, as far as Perth; where ye may be supplied with guide to Embro’, as your occasions shall ee C Thus saying, he placed under Waverley’s eye the bill which he held in his hand; and at the same time, self- so vited, filled a glass of wine, and dran k devoutly to a blessing on their journey. Waverley stared at the man’s impudence, but, as ae ir connec- tion was to be short, and promised to be convenient, he made no observation upon it; and, having paid his rbckonine. eXx- pressed his intention to depart immediately. He mounted Dermid accordingly, and sallied forth from the Golden CandleWAVERLEY. 107 stick, followed by the puritanical figure we have describec after he had, at the expense of some time and difficulty, and by the assistance of a “ louping-on-stane,” or structure of masonry erected for the traveler’s convenience in front of the house, elevated his person to the back of a long-backed, raw-boned, thin-gutted phantom of a broken-down blood-horse, on which Wav erley’s s portmanteau was deposited. Our hero, though not in a very gay humor, could hardly help laughing at the appearance of his new squire, and at imagining the astonishment which his person and equipage would have excited at Waverley-Honour Edward’s tendency to mirth did not escape mine host ae the Candlestick, who, conscious of the cause, infused a double portion of souring into the pharisaical leaven of his counte- nance, and resolved internally that in one way or other the young Englisher should pay dearly for the contempt with which he seemed to regard him. Callum also stood at the gate, and enjoyed, with undissembled glee, the ridiculous figure of Mr. Cruickshanks. As Wave1 rley passed him, he pulled off his hat respectfully, and, approaching his stirrup, bade him “ Tak heed the auld whig deevil played him nae cantrip.” Waverley once more thanked and bade him farewell, and then rode briskly onward, not sorry to be out of hearing of the shouts of the children, as they beheld old Ebenezer rise and sink in his stirrups, to avoid the concussions occasioned by a hard trot upon a hard-paved street. ‘The village of was soon several miles behind him. CHAPTER REIBVEE iH. SHOWS THAT THE LOSS OF A HORSE’S SHOE MAY BE A SERIOUS INCONVENIENCE, THE manner an. air of Waverley, but above all, the glitter- ing contents of his purse, and the indifference with which he seemed to regard them, somewhat overawed his companion, and deterred him from making any attempt to enter upon con- versation. His own reflections were, moreover, agitated by various surmises, and by plans of self-interest, with which these were intimately connected. ‘The travelers journeyed, therefore, in silence, until it was interrupted by the annunciation on the part of the guide, that his “naig had lost a fore-foot shoe, which, doubtless, his honor would consider it was his part to replace.” This was what lawyers call a fshing question, calcu- . pretinycte) SN Shes SN RS akeWAVERLEY. lated to ascertain how far Waverley was disposed to submit to petty imposition. “My part toreplace your horse’s shoe, youras- cal!” said Waverley, mistaking the purport of the intimation. “ Indubitably,” answered Mr. Cruickshanks ; “ though there were no preceese clause to that effect, it canna be expected that I am to pay for the casualties whilk may befall the puir naig while in your honor’s service—Nathless if your honor ”— “O, you mean I am to pay the farrier; but where shall we find one?” Rejoiced at discerning there would be no objection made on the part of his temporary master, Mr. Cruickshanks assured him that Cairnvreckan, a village which they were about to enter, was happy in an excellent blacksmith; “but as he was a pro- fessor, he would drive a nail for no man on the Sabbath, or kirk fast, unless it were in a case of absolute necessity, for which he always charged sixpence each shoe.” ‘The most im- portant part of this communication, in the opinion of the speaker, made a very slight impression on the hearer, who only internally wondered what college this veterinary professor belonged to; not aware that the word was used to denote any person who pretended to uncommon sanctity of faith and manner. As they entered the village of Cairnvreckan,* they speed- ily distinguished the smith’s house. Being also a public, it was two stories high, and proudly reared its crest, covered with era, slate, above the thatched hovels by which it was sur- rounded. ‘The adjoining smithy betokened none of the Sab- batical silence and repose which Ebenezer had augured from the sanctity of his friend. On the contrary, hammer clashed and anvil rang, the bellows groaned, and the whole apparatus of Vulcan appeared to be in full activity. Nor was the labor of a rural and pacific nature. The master smith, benempt, as his sign intimated, John Mucklewrath, with two assistants, toiled busily in arranging, repairing, and furbishing old muskets, pis- tols, and swords, which lay scattered around his workshop in military confusion. The open shed, containing the forge, was crowded with persons who came and went as if receiving and communicating important news; and a single glance at the aspect of the people who traversed the street in haste, or stood assembled in groups, with eyes elevated, and hands uplifted, announced that some extraordinary intelligence was agitating the public mind of the municipality of Cairnvreckan. “There is some news,” said mine host of the Candlestick, pushing his Jantern-jawed visage and bare-boned nag rudely forward into * (Supposed to represent Auchterarder, a village midway between Perth and Sterling, noted for religious controversy.)" a3 i \\ 33 Sor AM R\\\ va ee | Sastre i yy, | a: = @ ‘4 oO 4 a A a a oS < G a R & R &A i a ¢ i % d % 6a bbb stieaa nes PA F spibhithhiesss orcas casaWAVERLEY. 169 the crowd—* there is some news s, and if it please my Creator l will forthwith obtain s speirings thereof.” Waverley, with better regulated curiosi ity than his attendant’ S, dismounted, and gave his horse to a bi ’y who stox -d idling near, It arose, perhaps, from the shyness of his character in early youth, that he felt dislike at applying toa stranger even for casual information, without previ sly” glancing at his physiog- nomy and appearance. While he looked about in order to elect the person with whom he would most willingly hold com- munication, the buzz around saved him in some degree the trouble of interrogatories. The names of Lochiel, Clanronald, Glengarry, and other distinguished Highland ( chiefs, among whom Vich Ian Vohr was repeatedly mentioned, familiar in men’s mouths as household alarm generally expressed, he easily scent into the Lowlands either already taken were as words; and from the conceived that their de- Ss, at the head of their armed tribes, had place, or was instantly apprehended, Kre Waverley could ask particulars, a strong, large-boned, hard-featured woman, about forty, dressed as if her clothes had been flung on with a pitchfc srk, her cheeks flushed with a scarlet red where they were not smutted with soot and lamp- black, jostled through the crowd, and br andishing high a child of two years old, which she danced in her arms, without r e- gard tO its screams of LeCrror, sang forth, witl 1 all her might “Charlie is my darling, my darling, my darling Charlie is my darling, , The young Chevalier,” “‘D’ye hear what’s come ower ye now,” continued the vira- go, “ ye whingeing Whig carles ? ‘D’ye hear wha’s coming to cow yer cracks ? “Little wot ye whi v’s coming, Little wot ye wha’s coming, A’ the wild Macraws are coming.” The Vulcan of Cairnvreckan, who acknowl in this exulting Bacchante, regarded | forebodinf® countenance, while some of the senators of the village hastene sd to interpose. “ Whisht, gudewife ; is this a time, or is this a day, to be si nging your ranting fule ; sangs in? —a time when the wine of wrath is poured out ‘without mixture in the cup of indignation, and a d: ty when the land should give testimony against popery, and prelacy, and quakerism, and independency, and supremacy, and erastianism, and antino- mianism and a’ the errors of the church?” edged his Venus 1er with a grim and ire- * SC oa we rest AAs x oi Dee riers te eeeeE NT Terr eyes y) Clr rt eeee tes ~oee ~ Sere eas anthes eres kc eee 170 WAVERLEY. “And that’s a’ your Whiggery,” re- echoed the Jacobite heroine; “that’s a’ your Whiggery, and your presbytery, ye cut lugged, ‘graning carles! What! d’ye think the lads wi’? the kilts allt care for yer sy nods and yer presbyteries, and yer but- tock- a and yer stool 0’ repentance ? Vengeance on the black face o’t! ‘Mony an honester woman’s been set upon it than streeks doon beside ony Whig in the country. I my sell” Here John Muckle wrath, who dreaded her ente ering upon a detail of personal experience oe his mé atrimonial au thority. ‘‘Gae hame, and be d— , (that I should say sae), and pe on the sowens for supper. ind you, ye doil’d dotard, eee his gentle helpmate, her wrath which had hitherto wandered abroad over the whole assembly, being at once and violently impelled into its natural channel, “ ye stand there hammering dog-heads for fules that will never snap them at a Highl landman, instead of earning bread f or your family, and shoeing this winsome young centle- man’s horse that’s just come frae the north! I’se warrant him name of your whingeing King George f folk, but a gallant Gor- don, at the least o’ him.’ The eyes of the assembly were now turned upon Waverley, who took the opportunity to beg the smith to shoe his guide’s horse with all speed, as he wished to proceed on his journey ;— for he had heard enough to make him sensible that there would be danger in delaying long in this place, Lhe smith’s eyes rested on him with 2 look of displeasure and suspicion, not lessened by the eagerness with which his wife enforced Waver- ley’s mandate. “ D’ ye hear what the weel-favored young gentle- man says, ye drunken ne’er-do-good ? ” “ And what may your name be, sir?” quoth Mt icklewrath. “Tt is of no consequence to you, my friend, prc guitled 1 pay your labor.” “But it may be of consequence to the state, sir,” replied an old farmer, smelling strongly of whiskey and peat-smoke ; “and I doubt we maun delay your journey till you have seen the gerd,” “Vou certainly,” said Waverley, haughtily, “will find it both difficult and dangerous | to detain me, unless» you can pro- duce some proper authority.’ There was a pause, and a whisper among the crowd— “Secretary Murray;” “Lord Lewis Gordon; ” “ Maybe the Chevalier himsell!”? Such were the surmises that passed hur riedly among them, and there was obviously an increased dis- hae to resist Waverley’s departure. He attempted to argue mildly with them, but his volt eat ally, Mrs. Mucklewrath,WAVERLEY. 171 broke in upon and drowned his e: xpostulations, taking his part with an abusive violence, which was al] set dow n to. F award’s account by those on whom it was bestowed. “Ye stop ony gentleman that’s the Prince’s freend?” for she too, though with other feelings, had adopted the general opinion respecting Waverley. “I daur ye to touch him, ” spreading abroad her long and muscular fingers, garnished with claws which a vul- ture might have envied. “ [’ll set my ten commandments in the face o” the first loon that lays a finger on him.’ ‘ Gae hame, gudewife,” quoth the farmer aforesaid; “ it wad better set you to be nursing the gudeman’s bairns th: be d eaving us here.’ ‘ fis bairns!” retorted the Amazon. regarding her band with a grin of ineffable contempt—“ As bairns |! i LO hus- O gin ye were dead, gudeman, end a green turf on your head, gudeman ! Then I wz aa ware my widowhood U a a ranting Highlandman.’’ This canticle, which excited a suppressed titter among: the younger part of 1 the audience, tot tally overcame the patience of the taunted man of the anvil. Deil be in me but I’ll put this het gad down her throat!” cried he, in an ecstacy of wfath snatching a bar from the forge ; and he, might have Pet his threat, had he not been withheld | by a part of the mob, whi the rest endeavored to force the term: igant out of his presence Waverley meditated a retreat in the confusion, but his ieee: was nowhere to be seen. At length, he observed, at some dis- tance, his faithful attendant, E ‘benezer, who, as soon as he had perceived the turn matters were likely to take, had withdrawn both horses from the press, and, mounted on the one, and holding the other, answered the loud and repeated calls of Waverley for his horse, ‘‘ Na, na! if ye are nae friend to kirk and the king, and are detained as siccan a person, ye maun an swer to honest men of the country for breach of contract : and I maun keep the naig and the walise for damage and ex- pense, in respect my horse and mysell will lose to-morrow’s day’s-wark, besides the afternoon preaching.” "Edward, out of patience, hemmed in and hustled by the rabble on every side, and every moment expecting personal vio- lence resolved to try measures of intimidation, and at length drew a pocket-pistol, threatening, on the one hand, to shoot whomsoever dared to stop him, and on the other, menacing Ebenezer -with a similar doom, if he stirred a foot with the horses. ‘The sapient Partridge says, that one man with a pis ERENT Rater iste iatsDe neh ncuron re 172 WAVERLEY. tol, is equal to a hundred unarmed, because, though he can shoot but one of the multitude, yet no one knows but that he himself may be that luck es individual. The levy en masse of Cairnvreckan would therefore Bion ably have given way, nor would Ebenezer, whose natural paleness had waxed three shades more cadaverous, have ventured to dispute a mandate so en- forced, had not the Vulcan of the village, eager to discharge upon some more worthy object the fury which his helpmate had pro- voked, and not ill satisfied to find such an object in Waverley, rushed at him with the red-hot bar of iron, with such determina, tion, as made the discharge of his pistol an act of self-defence. The unfortunate man fell ; and while Edward, thrilled with a nat. ural horror at the incident, neither had presence of mind to un- sheathe his sword, nor to draw his remaining pistol, the populace threw themselves upon him, disarmed him, and were about to use him with great violence, when the appearance of a venerable clergyman, the pia: of the parish, put a curb on their fury. This worthy man (none of the Goukthrapples or Rentowels) maintained his character with the common people, although he preached the practical fruits of Christian faith, as well as its abstract tenets, and was respected by the higher orders, not- withstanding he declined soothing their speculative errors by converting the pulpit of the gospel into a school of heathen morality. Perhaps it is owing to this mixture of faith and practice in his doctrine, that, although his memory has formed a sort of era in the annals of Cairnvreckan, so that the parishioners, to denote what befell Sixty Years since, still say it happened “in good Mr. alg rton’s time,” I have never eid able to discover which he belonged to, the evangelical, or the moderate party in the kirk. NerdolI hold the circumstance of much moment, since, inmy own remembrance, the one was headed by an Erskine, the other Dy a Robertson. Mr. Morton had been alarmed by the discharge of the pistol, and the increasing hubbub around the smithy. His first attention, after he had directed the bystanders to detain Wa- verley, but to abstain from injuring him, was turned to the body of Muck lewrath, over which his wife, in a revulsion of feeling, was weeping, howling, and tearing her elflocks, in a state little short of distraction. On raising up the smith, the first dis: covery was, that he was alive; and the next, that he was likely to live as long as if he had never heard the report of a pistol in his life. He had made a narrow escape, however; the bullet had grazed his head, and stunned him for a moment ot two, which trance terror and confusion of spirit had prolonged somewhat longer. He now arose to demand vengeance on theWAVERLEY. 73 person of Waverley, and with difficulty acquiesced in the pro: posal of Mr. Morton, that he should be carried before the laird, as a justice Of peace, and placed at his disposal. ‘The rest of the assistants unanimously agreed to the measures recom- mended; Even Mrs. Mucklewrath, who had begun to re- cover from her hysterics, whimpered forth—“She wadna say naething against what the minister proposed ; he was e’en owe! gude for his trade, and she hoped to see him wi’ a dainty decent bishop’s gown on his back; a comelier si Geneva cloaks and bands, I wis.” All controversy being thus laid aside, Waverley, escorted by the whole inhabitants of the village, who were not bed-rid- den, was conducted to the house of ‘Cairnvreckan, which was about half a mile distant. ght than your CHAPTER THIRTY-—FIRST. AN EXAMINATION, Major MELVILLE of Cairnvreckan, an elderly gentleman, who has spent his youth in the military service, received Mr. Morton with great kindness, and our hero with civility, which the equivocal circumstances wherein Edward was placed, ren- dered constrained and distant. The nature of the smith’s hurt was inquired into, and as the actual injury was likely to prove trifling, and the circumstances in which it was received, rendered the infliction, on Edward’s part, a natural act of self-defence, the Major conceived he might dismiss that matter, on Waverley’s depositing in his hands a small sum for the benefit of the wounded person. ‘I couid wish, sir,” continued the Major, “ that my duty terminated here ; but it is necessary that we should have some further inquiry into the cause of your journey through the country at this unfortunate and distracted time.” Mr Ebenezer Cruickshanks now stood forth, and communi: cated to the magistrate all he knew or suspected, from the re- serve of Waverley, and the evasions of Callum Beg. The horse upon which Edward rode, he said, he knew to belong to Vich Ian Vohr, though he dare not tax Edward’s former attendant with the fact, lest he should have his house and stables burnt over his head some night by that godless gang, the Mac-Ivors. He concluded by exaggerating his own services to the kirk and state, as having been the means, under God (as he modestly c i Re oie NNT Sync ist eT eae eh eaSO ates ities eck eee eee ie oo 174 WAVERLEY. qualified the assertion), of attaching this suspicious and formid able delinquent. He intimated hopes of future reward, and ol instant reimbursement for loss of time, and even of character, by travelling on the state business on the fast-day. To this Major Melville answered, with great composure, that so far from claiming any merit in this affair, Mr. Cruick- shanks ought to deprecate the imposition of a very heavy fine for neglecting to lodge, in terms of the recent proclamation, an account with the nearest magistrate of any stranger who came to his inn; that as Mr. Cruickshanks boasted so much of re- ligion and loyalty, he should not impute this conduct to dis- affection, but only suppose that his zeal for kirk and state had been lulled asleep by the opportunity of charging a stranger with double horse-hire; that, however, feeling himself incom- petent to decide singly upon the conduct of a person of such importance, he should reserve it for consideration of the next quarter-sessions. Now our history for the present saith no more of him of the Candlestick, who wended dolorous and mal- content back to his own dwelling. Major Melville then commanded the villagers to return to their homes, excepting two, who afficiated as constables, and whom he directed to wait below. The apartment was thus cleared of every person but Mr. Morton, whom the Major in- vited to remain; a sort of factor, who acted as clerk; and Waverley himself. There ensued a painful and embarrassed pause, till Major Melville, looking upon Waverley with much compassion, and often consulting a paper or memorandum which he held in his hand, requested to know his name. “Edward Waverley.” “Tt thought so; late of the dragoons, and nephew of Sir Everard Waverley, of Waverley-Honour?” ; Lhe Same,” “Young gentleman, I am extremely sorry that this painful duty has fallen to my lot.” “Duty, Major Melville, renders apologies superfluous.” “True, sir; permit me, therefore, to ask you. how your time has been disposed of since you obtained leave of absence from your regiment, several weeks ago, until the present mo: Ment r- ‘“My reply,” said Waveriey, ‘“‘to so general a question must be guided by the nature of the charge which renders it necessary. I request to know what that charge is, and upor what authority I am forcibly detained to reply to it?” “The charge, Mr. Waverley, I grieve to say, is of a very high nature, and effects your character both as a soldier and aWAVERLEY 175 subject. In the former capacity, you are charged with spreading mutiny and rebellion among the men you commanded, and setting them the example of des sertion, by prolonging your own absence from the regiment, conti “ary to the express orders of your commanding-officer. The civil crime of which you stand o c accused is that of high treason, and levying war against the king, the highest delinquency of which a subject can be guilty.” And by what authority am I detained to reply to such heinous calumnies ? ” ‘By one which you must not dispute, nor I disobey.” He handed to Waverley a warrant from the Supreme Criminal Court of Scotland, in full form, for apprehending and securing the person of Edward Waverley, Esq., suspected of treasonable practices and other high crimes and misdemeanors. The astonishment which Waverley expressed at this com- munication was imputed by Mz jor Melville to conscious cuilt, while Mr. Morton was rather disposed to construe it into the surprise of innocence unjustly suspected. Ther ‘€ was some- thing true in both conjectures s; for although Edward’s mind acquitted him of the crimes with which he was charged, yet a hasty review of his own conduct convinced him he m ‘He tae great difficulty in establishing his innocence to the satisfaction of others. “It is a very painful part of this painful business,” said Major Melville, after a pause, “ that, under so grave a charge, [ must necessarily request to see such papers as you have on your person.” ‘You shall, sir, without reserve,” said Edward, throwing his pocket-book and memorandums upon the table; “ there is but one with which I could wish you would dispense.” ‘I am afraid, Mr. Waverley, T can indulge you with no re- servation.” ‘You shall see it then, sir; and as it can be of no service, I beg it may be returned.” He took from his bosom the lines he had that morning re ceived, and presented them with the envelope. The Major perused them in silence, and directed his clerk to make a copy of them, He then wrapped the copy in the envelope, and placing it on the table before him, returned the original to Waverley, with an air of melancholy gravity. After indulging the prisoner, for such our hero must now be considered, with what he thought a reasonable time for re- flection, Major Melville resumed his examination, premising, that as Mr, Waverley seemed to object to general questions,ithe se ee WAVERLEY. his interrogatories should be as specific as his information per: mitted. He then proceeded in his investigation, dictating, as he went on, the import of the questions and answers to the amanuensis, by whom it was written down. “Did Mr. Waverley know one Humphry Houghton, a non- commissioned officer in Gardiner’s dragoons ?” “Certainly ; he was sergeant of my troop, and son of a tenant of my uncle.” ‘““Exactly—and had a considerable share of your confi- dence, and an influence among his comrades ? ” ‘‘T had never occasion to repose confidence in a person of sé his description,’ answered Waverley. ‘I favored Sergeant Houghton as a clever, active young fellow, and I believe his fellow-soldiers respected him accordingly.” “But you used through this man,” answered Major Mel- ville, “to communicate with such of your troop as were re- cruited upon Waverley-Honour? ” “Certainly ; the poor fellows, finding themselves in a regi- ment chiefly composed of Scotch or Irish, looked up to me in any of their little distresses, and naturally made their country- man, and sergeant, their spokesman on such occasions.” “Sergeant Houghton’s influence,” continued the Major, “extended, then, particularly over those soldiers who followed you to the regiment from your uncle’s estate?” ** Surely ;—but what is that to the present purpose? ” “To that I am just coming, and I beseech your candid re- ply. Have you, since leaving the regiment, held any corre- spondence, direct or indirect, with this Sergeant Houghton? ” “I!—I hold correspondence with a man of his rank and situation !—How, or for what purpose ? ” “That you are to explain ;—but did you not, for example, send to him for some books?” “You remind me of a trifling commission,” said Waver- ley, “which I gave Sergeant Houghton, because my servant could not read. I do recollect I bade him by: letter -sétect some books, of which I sent him a list, and send them to me at Tully-Veolan.” “ And of what description were those books ? ” “They related almost entirely to elegant literature; they were designed for a lady’s perusal.” “ Were there not, Mr. Waverley, treasonable tracts and pamphiets among them ? ” “There were some political treatises, into which I hardly looked. They had been sent to me by the officiousness of a kind friend, whose heart is more to be esteemed than his pruWAVERLEY. 177 dence or political sagacity ; they seemed to be dull composi: tions.” ‘That friend,” continued the persevering inquirer, “ was a Mr, Pembroke, a non-juring clergyman, the author of two trea- sonable works, of which the manuscripts were found among your baggage?” “But of which, I give you my honor as a gentleman,” re- plied Waverley, “‘I never read six pages.” ‘I am not your judge, Mr. Waverley ; your examination will be transmitted elsewhere. And now to proceed—Do ycu know a person that passes by the name of Wily Will, or Will Ruthven ?’ ““T never heard of such a name till this moment.” “Did you never through such a person, or any other per- son, communicate with Sergeant Humphry Houghton, instigat- ing him to desert, with as many of his comrades as he could seduce to join him, and unite with the Highlanders and other rebels now in arms, under the command of the young Preten- der?:”’ “T assure you I am not only entirely guiltless of the plot you have laid to my charge, but I detest it from the very bot- tom of my soul, nor would I be guilty of such treachery to gain a throne, either for myself or any other man alive,” ‘Yet when I consider this envelope in the handwriting of one of those misguided gentlemen who are now in arms against their country, and the verses which is enclosed, I cannot but find some analogy between the enterprise I have mentioned and the exploit of Wogan, which the writer seems to expect you should imitate.” "Waverley was struck with the coincidence, but denied that the wishes or expectations of the letter-writer were to be re- garded as proofs of a charge otherwise chimerical. “ But, if I am rightly informed, your time was spent, during your absence from the regiment, between the house of this Highland Chieftain, and that of Mr. Bradwardine of Bradwar- dine, also in arms for this unfortunate cause.” “T do not mean to disguise it, but I do deny, most reso- lutely; being privy to any of their designs against the Govern. ment.” “You do not, however, I presume, intend to deny that you attended your host Glennaquoich to a rendezvous, where, under pretense of a general hunting match, most of the ac- complices of his treason were assembled to concert measures for taking arms?” “T acknowledge having been at such a meeting,’’ said cy Ws a . eae anety Pps sts ates ne firemen er = WAVERLEY. Waverley ; ‘‘but I neither heard nor saw anything which could give it the character you affix to it.” “From thence you proceeded,” continued the magistrate, “with Glennaquoich and a part of his clan, to join the army of the young Pretender, and returned after having paid your homage to him, to discipline and arm the remainder, and unite them to his bands on their way southward ?” “‘T never went with Glennaquoich on such an errand. [| never so much as heard that the person whom you mention was in the country.” He then detailed the history of his misfortune at the hunt- ing match, and added, that on his return he found himself sud- denly deprived of his commission, and did not deny that he then, for the first time, observed symptoms which indicated a disposition in the Highlands to take arms ; but added, that having no inclination to join their cause, and no longer any reason for remaining in Scotland, he was now on his return to his native country, to which he had been summoned by those who had a right to direct his motions, as Major Melville would perceive from the letters on the table. Major Melville accordingly perused the letters of Richard Waverley, of Sir Everard, and of Aunt Rachel, but the infer- ences he drew from them were different from what Waverley ex- pected. They held the language of discontent with Government, threw out no obscure hints of revenge; and that of poor Aunt Rachel, which plainly asserted the justice of the Stuart cause, was held to contain the open avowal of what the others only ventured to insinuate. ‘‘ Permit me another question, Mr. Waverley,” said Major Melville,—“ Did you not receive repeated letters from your commanding-officer, warning you and commanding you to re- turn to your post, and acquainting you with the use made of your name to spread discontent among your soldiers ?” ‘““Tnever did, Major Melville. One letter, indeed, I received from him containing a civil intimation of his wish that I would employ my leave of absence otherwise than —in constant resi- dence at Bradwardine, as to which, I own, I thought he was not called on to interfere ; and finally, I received, on the same day on which I observed myself superseded in the Gazette, a second letter from Colonel Gardiner, commanding me to join the regiment, an order which, owing to my absence, already mentioned and accounted for, I received too late to be obeyed. If there were any intermediate letters, and certainly from the Colonel’s high character I think it probable that there were, they have never reached me.WAVERLEY. 179 ““T have omitted, Mr. Wav erley,” continued Major Melville, ‘to inquire after a matter of less consequence, but which ha nevertheless been publicly talked of to your disadvantage. It is said, that a treasonable toast having been proposed in your hearing and presence, you, holding his Majesty’s commission, suffered the task of resenting it to “devolve e€ upon another gentle- man of the company. This, sir, cannot be charged against you in a court of justice ; but if, as I am informed, the officers of your regiment requested an explanation of such a rumor, as a gentleman and a soldier, I cannot but be surprised that you did not afford it to them.” This was too much. Beset and pre ac on every hand by accusations, in which gross falsehood were blended with such circumstances of truth as could not fail td: procure them credit —alone, unfriended, and in a strange land, Waverley almost gave up his life and honor for lost, and leaning his head upon his hand, resolutely refused to answer any further questions, since the fair and candid statements he had alre eady made had only served to furnish arms against him. Without expressing either surprise or displeasure at the change in Waverley’s manner, Major Melville proceeded com- posedly to put several other queries to him. ‘“ What does it avail me to answer you?” said Edward sullenly. ‘“ You appear convinced of my guilt, and wrest every reply I have made to support your own perconceived opinion. Enjoy your supposed triumph, then, and torment me no further. If I am capable of the cowardice and treachery your charge burdens me with, I am not worthy to be believed in any reply I can make you. If I am not deserving of your suspicion—and God and my own con- science bear evidence with me that it is so—then I do not see why I should by my candor lend my accuser arms against my innocence. ‘There is no reason I should answer a word more, and I am determined to abide by this resolution.” And again he resumed his posture of sullen and determined silence. ‘Allow me,” said the magistrate, “to remind you of one reason that may suggest the propriety of a candid and open confession. ‘The inexperience of youth, Mr. Waverley, lays it open tothe plans of the more designing and artful; and one of your friends at least—I mean Mac-Ivor ‘of Glennaquoich ranks high i in the latter class, as, from your apparent ingenuousness, youth , and unacquaintance with the manners of the Highlands, [ should be disposed to place you among the former. In such a case, a false step, or error li ke yours. which I shall be happy to consider as involuntary, may be atoned for, and I would willingly act as intercessor. But as you must necessarily be LRA A ee et OL renagate bahnatcas aces WAVERLEY. acquainted with the strength of the individuals in this coun- try who have assumed arms, with their means, and with their plans, I must expect you will merit this mediation on my part by a frank and candid avowal of all that has come to your knowledge upon these heads, In which- case, I think I can venture to promise that a very short personal restraint will be the only ill consequence that can arise from your accession to these unhappy intrigues.” Waverley listened with great composure until the end of this exhortation, when, springing from his seat, with an energy iat is your name, | have hitherto answered your questions with candor, or declined them with temper, because their import concerned myself alone; but as you presume to esteem me as | 1e had not vet displayed, he replied, “ Major Melville, since y t y iE 3 J 9 | mean enough to commence informer against others, who re- ceived me, whatever may be their public misconduct, as a guest and friend,—I declare to you that I consider your question as an insult infinitely more offensive than your calumnious sus- l fortune permits me no other picions ; and that, since my har« 1 1 mode of resenting them than by verbal defiance, you shoulc sooner have my heart out of my bosom than a single syllable of information upon subjects which I could only become ac- quainted with in the full confidence of unsuspecting hospitality.” Mr. Morton and the Major looked at each other, and the former, who, in the course of the examination, had been re- bled with a sorry rheum, had recourse to his snuff- f peatedly trot box and hi “ Mr. Waverley,” said the Major, “‘ my present ‘situation prohibits me alike from giving or receiving offence, and I will not protract a discussion which approaches to either. I am Ou s handkerchie afraid I must sign a warrant for detaining you in custody, but this house shall for the present be yourprison. I fear I cannot persuade you to accept a share of our supper ?—(Edward shook his head)—but I will order refreshments in your apartment.” Our hero bowed and withdrew, under guard of the officers of justice, toasmall but here, declining all } offers of food or wine, he flung himself on the bed, and, stupe- fied by the harassing events and mental fatigue of this miser able day, he sunk intoa deep and heavy slumber. This was more than he himself could have expected ; but it is mentioned of the North American Indians, when at the stake of torture, that on the least intermission of agony, they will sleep until the fire is applied to awaken them. [3 . 1 1 Nanadsome roonk—_WWAVERLEY. CHAPTER THIRTY-SECOND. A CONFERENCE AND THE CONSEQUENCE. Major MELviItie had detained Mr. Morton during his ex: amination of Waverley, both because he thought he might de- rive assistance from his practical good sense and approved loyalty, and also because it was agreeable to have a witness of unimpeached candor and veracity to proceedings which touched the BéHoT and safety of a young Englishman of high rank and family, and the expectant heir of a large fortune. Every step he knew would be rigorously canvassed, and it was his business to place the justice and integrity of his own conduc t be yond the limits of question. When Waverley retired, the laird and clergyman of Cairn- vreckan sat down in silence to their evening oe While the servants were in attendance, neither chose to say anything on the circumstances which occupied their minds, tad neither felt it easy to speak upon any other. The youth and apparent frankness of Waverley stood in strong contrast to the shades of suspicion which darkened around him, and he had a sort of naiveté and openness of demeanor, that seemed to belong to one unhackneyed in the ways of intrigue, and which pleaded highly in his favor. Each mused over the particulars of the examination, and each viewed it through the medium of his own feelings. Both were men of ready and acute tale ri and both were equally com- petent to combine various parts of evidence, and to deduce from them the necessary conclusions. But the wide difference of their habits and education often occasioned a great discrep- ancy in their respective deductions from admitted premises. Major Melville had been versed in camps and cities ; he was vigilant by profession, and cautious from experience, had met with much evil in the world, and therefore, though himself an upright magistrate and an honorable man, his opinion of others were always strict, and sometimes unjustly severe. Mr. Morton, on the contrary, had passed from the literary pursuits of a college, where he was beloved b y his companions and re- specter dby his teachers, to the ease and simplicity of his present charge, where his opportunities of witnessing evil were few, and never dwelt upon, but in order to encourage repentance and amendment; and where the love and respect of his parishionersi ns thinndbishhhesiuabbhskier akeees Fae i FS ee WAVERLEY. repaid his affectionate zeal in their behalf, by endeavoring to disguise from him what they knew would give him the most acute pain, namely, their own occasional transgressions of the duties which it was the business of his life to recommend. . ‘Thus it was a common saying in the neighborhood (though both were popular characters), that the laird knew only the ill in the parish, and the minister only the good. A love of letters, though kept in subordination to his clerical studies and duties, also distinguished the pastor of Cairnvreckan, and had tinged his mind in earlier days with a slight feeling of romance, which no after incidents of real life had entirely dissipated, The early loss of an amiable young woman, whom he had married for love, and who was quickly followed to the grave by an only child, had also served, even after the lapse of many years, to soften a disposition naturally mild and contemplative. His feelings on the present occasion were therefore likely to differ from those of the severe dis- ciplinarian, strict magistrate, and distrustful man of the world. When the servants had withdrawn, the silence of both par- ties continued, until Major Melville, filling his glass, and push- ing the bottle to Mr. Morton, commenced. “ A distressing affair this, Mr. Morton. I fear this young- ster has brought himself within the compass of a halter.” “God forbid!” answered the clergyman. “Marry, and amen,” said the temporal magistrate, “ but I think even your merciful logic will hardly deny the conclu- sion.” “ Surely, Major,” answered the clergyman, “I should hope it might be averted, for aught we have heard to-night?” “Indeed!” replied Melville. ‘“ But, my good parson, you are one of those who would communicate to every criminal the benefit of clergy.” “ Unquestionably I would: mercy and long-suffering are the grounds of the doctrine I am called to teach.” “True, religiously speaking ; but mercy to a criminal may be gross injustice to the community. I don’t speak of this young fellow in particular, who I heartily wish may be able to clear himself, for I like both his modesty and his spirit. But I fear he has rushed upon his fate.” “ And why? Hundreds of misguided gentlemen are now in arms against the Government, many, doubtless, upon principles which education and early prejudice have gilded with the names of patriotism and heroism ;—Justice, when she selects her victims for such a multitude (for surely all will not be destroyed), must regard the moral motive. He whom ambition,WAVERLEY. 183 or hope. of personal advantage, has led to disturb the peace o! a well-ordered government, let him fall a victim to the laws: but surely youth, misled by the wild visions of chivalry and imaginary loyalty, may plead for pardon. ] [If visionary chivalry and imaginary the predicament of high-treason, repli ed th know no court in Christe idom, my dear \ they cannot sue out their ee Corpus.’ ‘ But I cannot see that Eaisppouehy s guilt is at all established to my satisfaction,” said the clergyman. ‘“ Because your good nature blinds your good sense,” replied Major Melville “Observe now: this young man, descended of a family of hereditary Jacobites, his uncle the leader of the Tory interest in the county of ——,, his father a disobliged and discontented courtier, his tutor a non-juror, and the author of two treasonable ee youth, I say, enters 1 into Gardiner’s dragoons, bringing with him a body of young loyalty come withi he magistrate, ‘ oJ [ Morton, where 33 fellows from his uncle’s estate, who have not stickled at avow- ing, in their way, the high-church principles they learned at Waverley-Honour, in their disputes with their comrades. To these young men Waverley is unusually attentive ; they are supplied with money beyond a soldier’s wants, and inconsistent with his discipline ; and are under the management of a favorite sergeant, through whom they hold an unusually close communi- cation with their captain, and affect to consider themselves as inde ependen it of the other officers, and superior to their com- rades.”’ All this, my dear Major, is the natural consequence of their attachment to their young landlord, and of their finding themselves in a regiment levied chiefly in the north of Ireland and the west of Scotland, and of course among comrades dis- posed to quarrel with them, both as Englishmen, and as mem- bers of the Church of England.” ‘Well said, parson!” replied the magistrate.—“ I would some of your synod heard you.u—But let me goon. This young man obtains leave of absence, goes to Tully- -Veolan—the prin: ciples of the Baron of Bradw ardine are pretty well known, not to mention that this lad’s uncle brought him off in the year fifteen ;\he engages there in a brawl, in which he is said to have disgraced the commission he bore ; Colonel Gardiner writes to hi im, first mildiy, then more sharply—I think you will not doubt his s having done so, since he says so; the mess invite him to explain the quarrel, in which he is said to have been in- volved; he neither replies to his commander nor his comrades. In the meanwhile his soldiers Fecome mutinous and disorderly, eeSee ore : bs A . cae WAVERLEY. and at length, when the rumor of this unhappy rebellion be. comes general, his favorite Sergeant Houghton, and another fellow, are detected in correspondence with a French emissary, accredited, as he says, by Captain Waverley, who urges him, according to the men’s confession, to desert with the troop and join their captain, who was with Prince Charles. In the mean while, this trusty captain is, by his own admission, residing at Glennaquoich with the most active, subtle, and desperate Jacobite in Scotland ; he goes with him at least as far as theu famous hunting rendezvous, and I fear a little farther. Mean- while two other summons are sent him; one warning him of the disturbances in his troop, another peremptorily ordering him to repair to his regiment, which indeed common sense might have dictated, when he observed rebellion thickening all around him. He returns an absolute refusal. and throws up his commission.” “ He had been already deprived of it,” said Mr. Morton. “ But he regrets,” replied Melville, “ that the measure had anticipated his resignation, His baggage is seized at his quar- ters, and at Tully-Veolan, and is found to contain a stock of pestilential jacobitical pamphlets, enough to poison a whole country, besides the unprinted lucubrations of his worthy friend and tutor Mr. Pembroke.” “He says he never read them,” answered the minister. “In an ordinary case I should believe him,” replied the magistrate, “ for they are as stupid and pedantic in composi- tion as mischievous in their tenets. But can you suppose any- thing but value for the principles they maintain would induce a young man of his age to Ing such trash about with him? Then, when news arrive of the approach of the rebels, he sets out in a sort of disguise, refusing to tell his name ; and, if yon old fanatic tell truth, attended by a very suspicious character, and mounted on a horse known to have belonged to Glenna- quoich, and bearing on his person letters from his family, ex- pressing high rancor against the house of Brunswick, and a copy of verses in praise of one Wogan, who abjured the service of the Parliament to join the Highland insurgents, when in arms to restore the house of Stuart, with a body of English cavalry—the very counterpart of his own plot—and summed up with a ‘Go thou and do likewise,’ from that loyal subject, and most safe and peaceable character, Fergus Mac-Ivor of Glen- naquoich, Vich Ian Vohr, and so forth. And, lastly,” continued Major Melville, warming in the detail of his arguments, ‘“ where do we find this second edition of Cavalier Wogan ? Why, truly, in the very track most proper for execution of his design, andWAVERLEY. 185 pistoling the first of the king’s subjects who ventures to ques- tion his intentions.’ Mr. Morton prudently abstained from argument, which he perceiv would only harden the magistrate in his opinion, and merely asked how he intended to dispose of the prisoner ? ‘It is a question of some difficulty, considering the state of the country,” said Major Melville “Could you not detain him (being such a gentleman-like young man) here 2 your own house, cut of harm’s way, till this storm blows over: “ My good ene said Major Melville, “ neither your house nor mine will be long out of harm’s way, even were it legal to confine him here. I have just learned that the com- mander-in-chief, who marched into the Highlands to seek out and disperse the insurgents, has declined giving oe battle at Corryerick, and marched on northward with all the disposable force of Government, to Inverness, John-o’-Groat’s House, or the devil, for what I know, leaving the road to the Low Coun- try open and undefended to the Highland army.” “Good God!” said the clergyman. ‘Is the man a coward, a traitor, or an idiot?” “None of the three, I believe,” answered Melville. ‘Sir John has the commor- fa courage of a common soldier, is honest enough, does what he is commanded, and understands what is told him, but is as fit to act for himself in circumstances of importanc e, as I, my dear parson, to occupy your pulpit.’ This important public intelligence naturally diverted the discourse from Waverley for some time ; at length, however, the subject was resumed. ““T believe,” said Major Melville, “ that I must give this young man in charge to some of the detached parties of armed volunteers, who were lately sent out to overawe the disaffected districts. They are now recalled towards Stirling, and a small body comes this way to-morrow or next day, commanded by the westland man,—what’s his name ?—You saw him, and said he was the very model of one of Cromwell’s military saints.” “ Gilfillan, the Cameronian,” answered Mr. Morton, “ I wish. the young gentleman may be safe with him. Strange things are done in the heat and hurry of minds in so agitating a crisis, and I fear Gilfillan is of a sect which has suffered persecution, without learning mercy.” “ He has only to lodge Mr. Waverley in Stirling Castle,” said the Major, “ I will give strict 1 injunctions to treat him well. I really cannot devise any better mode for securing him, and ] f . Rett sitdeien samen Sos res are etn ee enaWAVERLEY. fancy you would hardly advise me to encounter the responsi. bility of setting him at liberty.” “ But you will have no objection to my seeing him to-morrow in private : >” said the minister None, certainly : your loyalty and character are my Wat- rant. But with what view do you make the request ?’ ¢ Simply,” replied Mr. I Morton, “ to make the experiment whether he may not be brought to communicate to me some circumstances which may hereafter be useful to alleviate, if not to exculpate his conduct.” The friends now parted and retired to rest, each filled with the most anxious reflections on the state of country. CHAPTER THIRTY-THIRD. A CONFIDANT. WAVERLEY awoke in the morning, from troubled dreams and unrefreshing slumbers, to a full consciousness of the horrors of his situation. How it might terminate he knew not. He might be delivered up to military law, which, in the midst of civil war, was not likely to be scrupulous in the choice of its victims, or the quality of the evidence. Nor did he feel much more comfortable at the thoughts of a trial before a Scottish court of justice, where he knew the laws and forms differed in many eu from those of England, and had been taught to believe, however erroneously, that the liberty and rights of the subject were less carefully protected. A sentiment of bitter- ness rose in his mind against the Government, which he con- sidered as the cause of his embarrassment and peril, and he cursed internally his scrupulous rejection of Mac-Ivor’s invita- tion to accompany him to the field. “Why did not I,” he said to himself, “ like other men of honor, take the earliest opportunity to welcome to Britain the descendant of her ancient kings, and lineal heir of her throne? Why did not I Unthread the rude eye of rebellion, And welcome home again discarded faith, Seek out Prince Charles, and fall before his feet? All that has been recorded of excellence and worth in the house of Waverley, has been founded upon their loyal faith to the house of Stuart. From the interpretation which this ScotchWAVERLEY. magistrate has put upon the letters of my uncle and father, it is plain that I ought to have understood them as marsh anne me to the course of my ancestors ; and it has been my gross dulness, joined to the obscurity of expression which they ad lopted for the sake of security, that has confounded my judem ent. Had I yielded to the first generous impulse of indignat tion when I learned that my honor was practiced upon, how different had been my present situation! I had then been free and in arms, fighting, like my forefathers, for love, for loyalty, and for fame. And now I am here, netted and in the toils, at the disposal of a suspicious, stern, and cold-hearted man, per haps to be turned over to the solitude of a dungeon, or the in- famy of a public execution. O, Fe srgus! how true has your prophecy proved; and how speedy, how very speedy, has been its accomplishment ! ” While Edward was ruminating on these painful subjects of contemplation, and very naturally, though not quite so justly, bestowing upon the reigning « dynasty that blame which was due to chance, or, in part at least, to his own unreflecting conduct, Mr. Morton availed himself of Major Melville’s permission to pay him an early visit. Waverley’s first impulse was to intimate a desire that he might not be disturbed with questions or conversation, but he suppressed it upon observing the benevolent and reverend ap- pearance of the clergyman who had rescued him from the im- mediate violence of the villagers. a elieve, sir,’ said the unfortunate y oung man, “that in any other circumstances I should have had as ‘much gratitude to express to you as the safety of my life may be worth; but such is the present tumult of my mind, and such is my antici pation of what I am yet likely to endure, that I can hardly offer you thanks for your interposition. Mr. Morton replied, “ that, far from making any claim upon his good opinion, his only wish and the sole purpose of his visit was to find out the means of deserving it. My excellent friend, Major Melville,” he continued, “ has feelings and duties as a soldier and public functionary, by which I am not fettered ; nor can I always coincide in op yinions which he forms, perhaps with too little allowance for the imperfections of human nature.” He paused, and then proceeded: “TI do not intrude myself on your confidence, Mr, Waverley, for the purpose of learning any circumstances, the knowledge of which can be prejudicial either to yourself or to others; but I own my earnest wish is, that you would intrust me with any particulars which could lead to your exculpation. I can solemnly assure you they will be dePsaltis eae eae Sore WAVERLEY. posited with a faithful, and, to the extent of his limited powers, a zealous agent.” “You are, sir, 1 presume, a Presbyterian clergyman? ’’— Mr. Morton bowed,—* Were I to be guided by the preposses- sions of education, I might distrust your friendly professions in my case; but | have observed that similar preju idices are nour- ished in this country against your professional brethren of the Episcopal persuasion, and I am willing to believe them equally unfounded in both cases.” ‘vil to him that thinks otherwise,” said Mr. Morton; “ or who holds church government and ceremonies as the exclusive gauge of Christian faith or moral virtue.” “ But,” continued Waverley, “I cannot perceive why I should trouble you with a de tail of ug ticulars, out of which after revolving them as carefully as Bos ssible in my recollection, I find myself unable to explain much of pe atis charged against me. I know, indeed, that I am innocent, but I hardly see how I can hope to prove myself so.” “Tt is for i oy reason, man, “that I venture to solicit your confiden« My of individuals in side country is pretty gener a sd can upon Oc casion be extended. Your situation will, [ fear, preclude your taking those active steps for recovering intelligence, or tracing imposture, which I would willingly undertake in your b ehalf : and if you are not benefited by my exertions, at least they Mr. pelosi yeas the crerey- knowl ledg cannot be prejudicial to you.” Waverley, after a few minutes’ a ae ction, was convinced that his reposing confidence in Mr. Morton, so far as he him- self was concerned, could hurt neither Ove Bradwardine nor no ae both of whom had eS. assumed arms eainst the Government, and that it might possibly, if the pro- Escons of his new friend corresponded in sincerity with the earnestness of his expression, be of some service to himself. He therefore ran briefly over most of the events with which the reader is already acquainted, suppressing his attachment to FI lora, and indeed a her mentioning her nor Rose Bradwar- dine in the course of his narrative. Mr. Morton seemed d paraeuiany struck with the account of Waverley’s visit to Donald Bean Lean. ‘I am glad,” he said, “you did not mention this circumstance to the Major. It is capable of great misconstruction on the part of those who do not consider the power of curiosity and the influence of ro- mance as motives of youthful conduct. When I was a young man like you, Mr. Waverley, any such hair-brained expedition (I beg your pardon for the expression) would have had inex-WAVERLEY, pressible charms for me. But there are men in the world whe will not believe that danger and fatigue are often incurred with- ut any very adequate cause, and therefore who are sometimes ied to assign motives of action entirely foreign to the truth. This man Bean Lean is renowned through the country as a sort of Robin Hood, and the stories which are told of his ad dress and enterprise are the common tales of the winter fire- side. He certainly possesses talents beyond the rude sphere in which he moves; and, being neither destitute of ambition nor encumbered with scruples, he will prob ably attempt, by every means, to distinguish himself during the period of these nhappy commotions Mr. Morton then made a careful oes ae of the various ears culars of Waverley’s inter- view with Donald Bean Lean, and the other circumstances : 1 ] ] } e see cat ee 4 » which he had communicated. [he interest which this good man seemed to take in his us gO misfortunes—above all, the full confidence he appeared to re- pose in his innocence—had the natural effect of softening Ed- 1 ward’s heart, whom the coldness of Major Melville had taught to believe that the w sok was leagued to oppress him. He shook Mr. Morton warmly by the hand, and, assuring him that his kindness and sympathy had relieved his mind of a heavy load, told him, that whatever might be his own fate, he be- longed to a family who had both gratitude and the power of displaying it. a > i ge [he earnestness of his thanks called drops to the eyes of the worthy clergyman, who was doubly interested in the cause for which he had volunteered his services, by observing the eenuine and undissembled feelings of his young friend. ~ Edward now inquired 2 “Mr. Morton knew what was likely to be his destination. ‘ Stirling Castle,” replied his friend ; * and so far Iam well pleased for your sake, for the governor is a man Rt honor and humanity. But I am more doubtful of your treatment upon the road; Major Melville is involuntarily obliged o, bees, the custody of your person to another.” ‘‘T am glad of it,” answered Waverley. ‘‘I detest that cold-blooded calculating Scotch magistrate. I hope he and shall never meet more: he had neither sympathy with my in- nocence nor my wretchedness; and _ the petrifying accu- racy with which he attended to every form of civility, while he tortured me by his questions, his suspicions, and his inferences, was as tormenting as the racks of the Inquisition. Do not vindicate him, my dear sir, for that I cannot bear with patience; Th Y Reto eres 5WAVERLEY. tell me rather who is to have the charge of so important a state prisoner as I am?” fo believe a person called Gilfillan, one of the sect who are termed Cameronians.”’ “‘T never heard of them before.’ “They claim,” said the clergyman, “ to represent the more strict and severe Presbyterians, who, in Charles Second’s and James Second’s’ days, ‘refused to profit by the~ Toleration, or Indulgence’ as “it was called, which was extended:to others of that reli izion. \-"Fhey*held conventicles in the open fields, and being treated with‘ great violence and cruelty by the Scottish vovernment, more than once took arms during those reigns. They take their name from their leader, Richard Cameron.” “T recollect,” said Waverley ;—‘ but did not the triumph of Presbytery at the Revolution extinguish that sect?” ‘“¢ By no means,” replied Mr. Morton; “that great event fell yet far short of what they proj posed, which was ee less than the complete estab! ishment of the Presbyterian Church, ie upon the grounds of the old Solemn League ‘and abvenane Indeed; +I Weliéve th iey- scarce knew what they wanted ; but being a*numerous body of*men, and not unacquainted with the use of arms, they kept Ck mselves together as a separate party in the state, and at the time of the Union had nearly formeda most unnatural league Hin theit old enemies, the Jacobites, to oppose that important national measure. Since that time their numbers have gradually diminished ; but a good many are still to be found in the western counties, and several, with a bette1 4 temper than in!'1707; have now taken arms for Government. This person, whom they call Gifted Gilfillan, has been long a leader.among them, and now ‘heads a small party, which will pass here to-day, or to-morrow, on their march toward St irling, under whose escort Major Melville proposes you shall trave el. I would willingly speak to Gilfillan in your behalf ; but having deeply imbibed all the prejudices of his sect, and being of the same fierce disposition, he would pay little regard to the remon- strances of an Erastian divine, as he would politely term me.— And now, farewell, my young friend ; for the present, I must not weary out the Major's indulgence, that I may obtain his permission to visit you again in the course of the day.” )WAVERLEY. CHAPTER THIRTY-FOURTH. THINGS MEND A LITTLE. Aout noon, Mr. Morton returned, and brought an invitation from Major Melvillethat Mr. Wav erley would honor him with his company to dinner, notwithstanding the unpleasant affair which detained him at Cairnvreckan, from which he should heartily rejoice to see Mr. Waverley completely extricated. The truth was that Mr. re s favorable eae Bee had some- Wi staggered the preconceptions of the old soldier concerning Edward’s. Supposed accession to the mutiny in the regiment: and in the Raa state of the country, the mere Se ee of disaffection, or an inclination to join the in: surgent Jacobites, might 1 infer criminality indeed, but certainly not dishonor. Be- sides, a person w hom the Major trusted had reported to him (though, as it By ed, inaccurately), a contradiction of the agitating news of the preceding evening. According to this second edition of ps intelligence, the Highlande rs had with- drawn from the Lowland frontier with the purpose of following the army in their march to Inverness. The M.- jor was at a loss, indeed, to reconcile his information with the well-known abilities of some of the gentlemen in the Highland army, yet it was the course which was likely to be most agreeable to others. He remembered the same policy had detained them in the north in the year 1715, and he anticipated a similar ter- mination to the insurrection as upon that occasion. ‘This news put him in such good humor, that he readily acquiesced in Mr. Morton’s proposal to pay some hospitable attention to his un- fortunate guest, and voluntarily added, he hoped the whole affair would prove a youthful escapade, which might be easily atoned by a short confinement. The kind mediator had some trouble to prevail on his young friend to accept the invitation. He dared not urge to him the real motive, which was a good- natured wish to secure a favorable report of Waverley’s case from Major Melville to Governor Blakeney. He remarked from*the flashes of our hero’s spirit, that touching upon this topic would be sure to defeat his purpose. He therefore pleaded, that the invitation argued the Major’s disbelief of any part of the accusation which was inconsistent with Waverley’s conduct as a soldier anda man of honor, and that to decline his courtesy might be interpreted into a consciousness that it was unmerited. In short, he so satisfied Edward that the manly Werte asters KWAVERLEY. and proper course was to meet the Major on easy terms, that, suppressing his strong dislike again to encounter his cold and punctilious civility, Waverley agreed to be guided by his new friend. The meeting, at first, was stiff and formal enough. But Edward having accepted the invitation, and his mind being really soothed and relieved by the kindness of Morton, held himself bound to behave with ease, though he could not affect cordiality. The Major was somewhat of a don vivant, and his wine was excellent. He told his old campaign stories, and displayed much knowledge of men and manners. Mr. Morton had an internal fund of placid and quiet gayety, which seldom failed to enliven any small party in which he found himself pleasantly seated. Waverley, whose life was a dream, gave ready way to the predominating impulse, and became the most lively of the party, He had at all times remarkable natural powers of conversation, though easily silenced by discourage- ment. On the present occasion, he piqued himself upon leav- ing on the minds of his companions a favorable impression of one who, under such disastrous circumstances, could sustain his misfortunes with ease and gayety. His spirits, though not unyielding, were abundantly elastic, and soon seconded his efforts. The trio were engaged in very lively discourse, ap- parently delighted with each other, and the kind host was pressing a third bottle of Burgundy, when the sound of a drum was heard at some distance. The Major, who, in the glee of an old soldier, had forgot the duties of a magistrate, cursed, with a muttered military oath, the circumstances which recalled him to his official functions. He rose and went towards the window, which commanded a very near view of the high-road, and he was followed by his guests, The drum advanced, beating no measured martial tune, but a kind of rub-a-dub-dub, like that with which the fire- drum startles the slumbering artisans of a Scotch burgh. It is the object of this history to do justice to all men: J must therefore record, in justice to the drummer, that he protested he could beat any known march or point of wai known in the British army, and had accordingly commenced with “ Dumbarton’s Drums,’ when he was silenced by Gifted Gilfillan, the commander of the party, who refused to permit his followers to move to this profane, and even, as he said, persecutive tune, and commanded the drummer to beat the t1gth Psalm. As this was beyond the capacity of the drubber of sheep-skin, he was fain to have recourse to the inoffensive row-de-dow, as a harmless substitute for the sacred musicVAVERLEY. 193 which his instrument of skill was unable to achieve. This may be held a trifling anecdote, but the drummer in question was no less than town drummer of Anderton. I remember his successor in office, a member of that enlightened body, the Brit. ish Convention: be his memory, therefore, treated with due ~ respect, CHAPTER THIRTY-FIFTH. A VOLUNTEER SIXTY YEARS SINCE. On hearing the unwelcome sound of the drum, Major Melville hastily opened a sashed- door, and stepped out upon a sort of terrace which divided his house from the high-road from which the martial music proceeded. W averley and his new friend followed him, though prob ably he would have dispensed with their attendance. They soon recognized in solemn march, first, the performer upon the drum: ‘second! a large flag of four compartments, on which were inscribed t] words, COVENANT, Kirk, Kinc, Kincpoms. The person who was honored with this charge was followed by the commander of the party, a thin, dark, rigid-looking man, about sixty years old. The spiritual pride, which, in mine host of the Candle- stick, mantled in a sort of supercilious hypocrisy, was, in this man’s face, elevated and yet darkened by genuine and un- doubting fanaticism. It was impossible to behold him without imagination placing him i In some strange crisis, where religious Zz eal was the ruling principle. A martyr at the stake, a soldier in the field, a lonely and banished wanderer consoled by the intensity and supposed purity of his faith under every earthly privation ; perhaps a persecuting inquisitor, as terrific in power as unyielding in adversity ; any of these seemed congenial characters to this personage. W ‘ith these high traits of energy, there was something in the affec ted precision and solemnity of his deportment and ‘discourse , that bordered upon the ludicrous ; so that, according to the midod of the spectator’s mind, arid the light under which Mr. Gilfillan presented himself, one might have feared, admired, or laughed at him. His dress was that of a west-country peasant, of better materials indeed than that of the lower rank, but in no re espect affecting either the mode of the age, or of the Scottish gentry at any period. His arms were a broadsword and pistols, which, from the antiquity ys 1 Ow - ~ —_ soa eI ccs eaPsbS cerca eae hee NRE “ = WAVERLEY. of their appearance, might have seen the rout of Pentland, or Bothwell Brigg. As he came up a few steps to meet Major Melville and touched solemnly, but slightly, his huge and over-brimmed blue bonnet, in answer to the Major, who had courteously raised a small triangular gold-laced hat, Waverley was irresistibly im- pressed with the idea that he beheld a Jeader of the Round heads of yore in conference with one of Marlborough’s captains. The group of about thirty armed men who followed this gifted commander, was of a motley description. They were in ordinary Lowland dresses, of different colors, which, contrasted with the arms they bore, gave them an irregular and mobbish appearance ; so much is the eye accustomed to connect uniformity of dress with the military character. In front were a few who apparently partook of their leader’s enthusiasm; men obviously to be feared in a combat where their natural courage was exalted by religious zeal. Others puffed and strutted, filled with the importance of carrying arms and all the novelty of their situation, while the rest, apparently fatigued with their march, dragged their limbs listlessly along, or straggled from their companions to procure such refreshments as the neighboring cottages and alehouses afforded. “ Six erenadiers of Ligonier’s,” thought the major to himself, as his mind reverted to his own military experience, ‘“‘ would have sent all these fellows to the right about.” Greeting, however, Mr. Gilfillan civilly, he requested to know if he had received the letter he had sent to him upon his march, and could undertake the charge of the state prisoner whom he there mentioned, as far as Stirling Castle. “ Yea,” was the concise reply of the Cameronian leader, in a voice which seemed to issue from the very fenetralia of bis person. “But your escort, Mr. Gilfillan, is not so strong as I ex- pected,” said Major Melville. “Some of the people,” replied Gilfillan, “hungered and were athirst by the way, and tarried until their poor souls were refreshed with the word.” “TI am sorry, sir,” replied the Major, ‘ you did not trust to your refreshing your men at Cairnvreckan ; whatever my house contains is at the command of persons employed in the ser ViGe:’s “It was not of creature-comforts I spake,” answered the Covenanter, regarding Major Melville with something like a smile of contempt; “howbeit, I thank you; but the people remained waiting upon the precious Mr. Jabesh Rentowel, for the out-pouring of the afternoon exhortation.WAVERLEY. 195 ‘““And have you, sir,” said the Ma jor, ‘‘ when os » rebels are about to spread themselves th 1rough this country, eomally left a great part of your command at a field- -preachit ns o ; Gilfillan again smiled scornful lly as he made this: indirect answer,—* Even thus are the children of this world wiser in their generation than the children of light ! ” _ “ However, sir,” said the Major, “as you are to take charge of this gentleman to Stirling, and deliver him, with papers, into the hands of Governor Blak eney, I beseech you to observe some rules of military discipline upon your march. For example, I would advise you to keep your men more closely together, and that each, in his march, should cover his file-leader, instead of stage these ering like geese upon a common: and for fear of surprise, I further recommend to you to form a small advance party of your best men, with a single vidette in front of the whole march, so that when you approach a villa ge or a wood”’—(Here the major interrupted himself)—“ But as I don’t observe you listen to me, Mr. Gilfillan, I Suppose I need not give myself the trouble to say more upon the subject. You are a better judge, unquestionably} y, than l.am of the measures to be pursued ; but one thing I would have you well aware of, that you are to treat tl is gentlem: in, your prisoner, with no rigor nor incivility, and are to subject him to no other restraint than is necessary for his security.” “T have looked into my commission,” said Mr. Gilfillan, “subscribed by a worthy and professing nobleman, William, Earl of Glencairn; nor do I find it therein set down that I am to receive any charges or commands anent my doings from Major William Melville of Cairnvreckan. Major Melville reddened even to the well-powdered ears which appeared beneath his neat military side-curls, the more so as he observed Mr. Morton smile at the same moment. “Mr. Gilfillan,” he answered, with some asperity, “I beg ten thousand pardons for interfering with a person of your im- portance. I thought, however, that as you have been bred a grazier, if | mistake not, there might be occasion to remind you of the difference between Highlanders and Highland cattle and if you should happen to meet with any gentleman who has seen service, and is disposed to speak upon the subject, I should still imagine that listening to him would do you no sort of harm. But I have done, and have only once more to recom- mend this gentleman to your civility, as well as to your custody. —Mr. Waverley, I am truly sorry we should part in this way ; but I trust, when you are again in this country, I may have 5 « SS eae VatarainenestaesPsbS erates ~ ee x 196 WAVERLEY. an opportunity to render Cairnvreckan more agreeable than circumstances have permitted on this occasion.’ So saying he shook our hero by the hand. Morton also affectionate farewell; and Wai ee having mounted his horse, with a musketeer leading it by the bridle, and a file upon each side to prevent his escape, set forward upon the march with Gi iIfillan and his party. Through the little village they were accompanied with the shouts of the children, who cried out, “Eh! see to the Southland gentleman, that’s gaun VI to be hanged for shooting lang John Mucklewrath the smith ! LY took an CHAPTER THIRTY-SIXTH. INCIDENT. 4 Al THe dinner-hour of Scotland Sixty Years since was two o'clock. It was Cae about four o’clock of a delightful autumn afternoon th: it Mr. Gilfillan commenced his march, in ee although Stir ling was eighteen miles distant, he might be able, oS becoming a borrower of the night for an hour or two, to reach it that evening. He therefore put forth his an oe marched stoutly along at the head of his fol- lowers, eyeing our hero from time to time, as if he longed to enter into controversy with him. At length, unable to resist the temptation, he slackened his pace till he was alongside of his prisoner’s horse, and after marching a few steps in silence abreast of Buh he suddenly asked,—“ Can ye say wha the carle was wi’ the black coat an rd the mousted head, that was wi t the Laird of Cairnvreckan ?” ‘A Presbyterian clergyman,” answered Waverley = gee nes !”. answered Gilfillan, lek Cuaotiibely 3 na wretched Erastian, or oe an obscured Prelatist,—a~fa- vorer of the black Indulgence; ane o’ thae dumb dogs that canna bark: they tell ower a clash o’ terror and a clatter O° comfort in their sermons, without ony sense or savour, or life —Ye’ve been fed in siccan a ; pe auld, belike : “No; I am of the Church of England,” said Waverley. And they’re just neighbor-like,” replied the Covenanter ; ‘and nae wonder they gree sae weel. Wha wad hae thought the eae structure of the Kirk of Scotland, built up by our fathers in 1642, wad hae been defaced by carnal ends and the Bei ptibis of the time ;—ay, wha wad hae thought the carved work ‘of the sanctuary would hae been sae soon cut down !’WAVERLEY. 197 To this lamentation, which one or two of the assistants chorused with a deep groan, our hero thought it unnecessary to make any reply. Whereupon Mr. Gilfillan, resolving that he should be a hearer at least, if not a disputant, proceeded in his Jeremiade. ‘* And now it is wonderful, when, for lack of exercise anent the call to the service of the altar and the duty of the day, ministers fall into sinful compliances with patronage, and indemnities, and oaths, and bonds, and other corruptions,—is it wonderful, I say, that you, sir, and other sic-like unhappy persons should labor to build up your auld Babel of iniquity, as in the bluidy persecuting saint-killing times? I trow, gin ye werena blinded wi’ the graces and favors, and services and enjoyments, and employments and inheritances, of this wicked world, I could prove to you, by the Scripture, in what a filthy rag ye put your trust ; and that your surplices, and your copes and vestments, are but cast-off garments of the muckile harlot, that sitteth upon seven hills, and drinketh of the cup of abom- ination. But, I trow, ye are deaf as adders upon that side of the head ; ay, ye are deceived with her enchantments, and ye traffic with her merchandise, and ye are drunk with the cup of her fornication !” How much longer this military theologist might have con- tinued his invective, in which he spared nobody but the scat- tered rernnant of Az//-folk, as he called them, is absolutely un- certain. His matter was copious, his voice powerful, and his memory strong ; so that there was little chance of his ending his exhortation till the party had reached Stirling, had not his attention been attracted by a pedler who had joined the march from a cross-road, and who sighed or groaned with great regu- larity at all fitting pauses of his homily. ‘And what may ye be, friend?” said the Gifted Gilfillan. ‘“‘ A puir pedler, that’s bound for Stirling, and craves the protection of your honor’s party in these kittle times. Ah! your honor has a notable faculty in searching and explaining the secret,—ay, the secret and obscure and incomprehensible causes of the backslidings of the land; ay, your honor touches the root o’ the matter.” “Friend,” said Gilfillan, witha more complacent voice than he had hitherto used, ‘‘honor not me. Ido not go out to park- dikes, and to steadings and to market-towns, to have herds, and cottars, and burghers pull off their bonnets to me as they do to Major Melville o’ Cairnvreckan, and ca’ me laird, or cap- tain, or honor; no, my sma’ means whilk are not aboon twenty thousand merk, have had the blessing of increase, but or oO % X “GIB BP MeeCeboaidieitii Sol ott trees Tos, . SPR eae WAVERLEY. the pride of heart has not increased with them; nor do |} delight to be called captain, though I have the subscribed com- mission of that gospel-searching nobleman, the Earl of Glen- cairn, in whilk I am so designated. While I live, I am and will be called Habakkuk Gilfillan, who wil stand up for the standards of doctrine agreed on by the ance-famous Kirk of Scotland, before she traf fficked with the se Achan, while he has a plack in his purse, or a drap o’ bluid in his body ~ Ah,’ ‘said the pedier, “I have seén your land about Mauchlin—a fertile spot! your lines have fallen in pleasant places !—and siccan a breed o’ cattle is not in ony laird’s land in Scotland.” “Ve say right,—ye say right, friend,” retorted Gilfillan eagerly, for he was not in: iccessible to flattery upon this sub- jec—" ‘Ye say right; they are the real Lancashire, and there’s no the like o’ them even at the Mains of Kilmaurs;” and he then entered into a discussion of their excellences, to which our readers will probably be as indifferent as our hero. After this excursion, the leader returned to his theological discus- sions, while the pedler, less profound upon those mystic points, contented | aioe with groaning, and expressing his edification at suitable intervals. “‘ What a blessing it would be to the puir blinded popish nations among whom I hae sojourned, to have siccan a light to their paths! I hae been as far as Mus- covia in my sma’ trading way, as a traveling merchant; and I hae been through F1 rance and the Low Countries, and a’ Poland, and maist feck o’ Germany; and O! it would grieve your honor’s soul to see the m ees and the singing, and massing, that’s in the kirk, and the piping that’s in the quire, and the heathenish dancing and dick ing upon the Sabbath !” This set Gilfillan off upon the Book of Sports and the Cov- enant, and the Engagers, and the Protesters, and the Whigga- mores’ Raid, and the Assembly of Divines at- Westminster, and the Longer and Shorter Catechism, and the Excommunication at ‘Torwood, and the slaughter of Archbishop Sharp. This last topic, again, led him into the lawfulness of defensive arms, on which subject he uttered much more sense than could have been expected from some other parts of his harangue, and at- tracted even Waverley’s attention, who had hitherto been lost in his own sad reflections. Mr. Gilfillan then considered the lawfulness of a private man standing forth as the avenger of public oppression, and as he was labori ing with great earnest- ness the cause of Mas James Mitchell, w ho fired at the Arch- bishop of St. Andrews some years before the prelate’s assassi-WAVERLEY. 199 natioh on Magus Muir, an incident occurred which interrupted his harangue. The rays of the sun were lingering on the very verge of the horizon as the party ascended a hollow and somewhat stee ep path, which led to the summit of a rising ground. The country was unenclosed, being part of a very extensive heath or com mon; but it was far from level, exhibiting in many places hol- lows filled with furze and broom; in others, little dingles of stunted brushwood. A _ thicket of the latter description crowned the hill up which the party ascended. The foremost of the band, being the stoutest and most active, had pushed on, and, h eos surmounted the ascent, were out of ken for the present. Gilfillan, with the pedler, and the small party who were Waverley’s more immediate guard, were near the top of the ascent, and the remainder straggled after them at a con- siderable interval. Such was the situation of matters, when the pedler missing, as he said, a little doggie which belonged to him, began to halt and whistle for the animal. ‘This signal, repeated more than once, gave offence to the rigor of his companion, the rather because it appeared to indicate inattention to the treasures of theological and controversial knowledge which was pouring out for his edification. He therefore signified gruffly, that he could not waste his time in waiting for a useless cur. ‘“‘ But if your honor wad consider the case of Tobit” “Tobit !”? exclaimed Gilfillan, with great heat ; ‘ Tobit and his dog baith are altogether heathenish and apocryphal, and none but aprelatist or a papist would draw them into question. I doubt I hae been mista’en in you, friend.” “Very likely,” answered the os with great composure ; “but ne’ertheless, I shall take leave to w histle again upon pull Bawty.” This last signal was answered in an unexpected manner: for six or eight stout Highlanders, who lurked among the copse and brushwood, sprung into the hollow way, and began to lay about them with their claymores. Gilfillan, unappalled at this undesirable apparition, cried out manfully, ‘The sword of the Lord and of Gideon!” and, drawing his broadsword, would probably have done as* much credit to the good old cause as any of his doughty champions at Drumclog, when, behold! the pedler, snatching a musket from the person who was next him, bestowed the butt of it with such emphasis on the head of his late instructor in the Cameronian creed, that he was forthwith leveled-to the ground. In the confusion which ensued, the horse which bore our hero was shot by one of Gilfillan’s party, ee tren ee eOn NTOeS Bis cot no WAVERLEY. as he discharged his firelock at random. Waverley fell with, and indeed under, the animal, and sustained some severe con- tusions. But he was almost instantly extricated from the fallen steed by two Highlanders, who, each seizing him by the arm, hurried him away from the scuffle and from the high-road. They ran with great speed, half supporting and half dragging our hero, who could, however, distinguish a few dropping shots fired about the spot which he had left. This, as he afterward learned, proceeded from Gilfillan’s party, who had now assem- bled, the stragglers, in front and rear having joined the others. At their approach the Highlanders drew off, but not before they had rifled Gilfillan and two of his people, who remained on the spot grievously wounded. A few shots were exchanged be- twixt them and the Westlanders ; but the latter, now without a commander, and apprehensive of a second ambush did not make any serious effort to recover their prisoner, judging it more wise to proceed on their journey to Stirling, carrying with them their wounded captain and comrades, CHAPTER THIRTY-SEVENTH, WAVERLEY IS STILL IN DISTRESS. THE velocity, and indeed violence, with which Waverley was hurried along, nearly deprived him of sensation ; for the injury he had received from his fall prevented him from aiding himself so effectually as he might otherwise have done. When this was observed by his conductors, they called to their aid two or three others of the party, and swathing our hero’s body in one of their plaids, divided his weight by that means among them, and transported him at the same rapid rate as before, without any exertion of hisown. They spoke little, and that in Gaelic ; and did not slacken their pace till they had run nearly two miles, when they abated their extreme rapidity, but con- tinued still to walk very fast, relieving each other occasionally. Our hero now endeavored to address them, but was only answered with ‘Cha n’edl Beurl agam,” i.e., “1 have no English,”’ being, as Waverley well knew, the constant reply of a High- lander, when he either does not understand, or does not choose to reply to, an Englishman or Lowlander. He then mentioned the name of Vich [an Vohr, concluding that he was indebted to his friendship, for his rescue from the clutches of GiftedWAVERLEY. san Gilfillan; but neith from his escort. The twilight had given place to moonshine when the party halted upon the brink of a precipitous glen, which, as partly enlightened by the moonbeams, seemed full of trees and tang led brushwood. ‘Two of the Highlanders dived into it by a smal foot-path, as if to explore its recesses, and one of them return- ing in a few minutes, said something to his companions, who instantly raised their burden, and bore him, with great attention and care, down the narrow and abrupt descent. Notwithstand. ing their precautions, however, Waverley’s person came more than once into contact, rudely enough, with the projecting stumps and branches which overhung the pathway. At the bottom of the descent, and, as it seemed, by the side of a brook, (for Waverley heard the rushing of a consider- able body of water, although its stream was invisible in the darkness,) the party again stopped before a small and rudely constructed hovel. The door was open, and the inside of the premises appeared as comfortable and rude as its situation and exterior foreboded. ‘There was no appearance of a floor of any kind; the ie seemed rent in several places; the walls were composed of loose stones and turf, and the thatch of branches of trees. ‘The fire was in the centre, and filled the whole wigwam with smoke, which escaped as much through the door as by means of a circular aperture in the roof. An old High- land sibyl, the only inhabitant of this forlorn mansion, appeared busy in the preparation of some food. By the light which the fire afforded, Waverley could discover that his attendants were not of the clan of Ivor, for Fergus was particularly strict in requiring from his followers that they should wear the tartan striped in the mode e peculiar to their rac e; a mark of distinction anciently general through the Highlanx Is, and still maintained by those Chiefs who were proud of their lineage, or jealous of their separate and exclusive authority. Edward had lived at Glennaquoich long enough to be aware of a distinction which he had epeatedly heard noticed, and now satisfied that he had no interest with his attendants, he glanced a disconsolate eye round the interior of the cabin. The only furniture, ex mcep ae a washing-tub, and a wooden press, called in Scotland an améry, sorely decayed, was a large wooden bed, planked, as is usual, all aoe and opening by a sliding panel. In this recess the Highlanders deposited Waverley, after he had by signs declined any refreshment. His slumbers were broken and unrefreshing ; strange visions passed before his eyes, and it required constant and reiterated efforts r did this produce any mark of recognition DS f Learea of mind to dispel them. Shivering, violent headache, and shooting pains in his limbs, succeeded these symptoms ; and in the morning it was evident to his Highland attendants, or guard, for he knew not in which light to consider them, that Waverley was quite unfit to travel. After along consultation among themselves, six of the party left the hut with their arms, leaving behind an old and a young man. ‘The former undressed Waverley, and bathed the contu- sions, which swelling and livid color now made conspicuous. His own portmanteau, which the Highlanders had not failed to bring off, supplied him with linen, and, to his great surprise, was, with all its undiminished contents, freely resigned to his use. The bedding of his couch seemed clean and comfortable, and his aged attendant closed the door of the bed, for it had no curtain, after a few words of Gaelic, from which Waverley gathered that he exhorted him to repose. So behold our hero for a second time the patient of a Highland Esculapius, but in a situation much more uncomfortable than when he was the guest of the worthy Tomanrait. The symptomatic fever which accompanied the injuries he had sustained, did not abate till the third day, when it gave way to the care of his attendants and the strength of his con- stitution, and he could now raise himself in his bed, though not without pain. He observed, however, that there was a great disinclination, on the part of the old woman who acted as his nurse, as well as on that of the elderly Highlander, to permit the door of the bed to be left open, so that he might amuse himself with observing their motions; and at length, after Waverley had repeatedly drawn open, and they had as fre- quently shut, the hatchway of his cage, the old gentleman put an end to the contest, by securing it on the outside witha nail so effectually, that the door could not be drawn till this exterior impediment was xemoved. While musing upon the cause of this contradictory spirit in persons whose conduct intimated no purpose of plunder, and who, in all other points, appeared to consult his welfare and his wishes, it occurred to our hero, that, during the worst crisis of his illness, a female figure, younger than his old Highland nurse, had appeared to flit around his couch. Of this, indeed, he had but a very indistinct recollection, but his suspicions were confirmed, when, attentively listening, he often heard, in the course of the day, the voice of another female conversing in whispers with his attendant. Who could it be? And why should she apparently desire concealment ? Fancy immediately roused herself, and turned to Flora Mac-Ivor. But after a shortWAVERLEY. 203 conflict between his eager desire to believe she was in his neighborhood, guarding like an angel of mercy, the couch of his sickness, Waverley was compelled to conclude that his conjecture, was altogether improbable; since, to suppose she had left the comparatively safe situation at Glennaquoich to descend into the Low Country, now the seat of civil war, and to inhabit such a lurking-place as this, was a thing hardly to be imagined. Yet his heart bounded as he sometimes could distinctly hear the trip of a light female step glide to or from the door of the hut, or the suppressed sounds of a female voice, of softness and delicacy, hold dialogue with the hoarse inward croak of old Janet, for so he understood his antiquated at- tendant was denominated. Having nothing else to amuse his solitude, he employed himself in contriving some plan to gratify his curiosity, in spite of the sedulous caution of Janet and the old Highland janizary, for he had never seen the young fellow since the first morning. At length, upon accurate examination, the infirm state of his wooden prison-house appeared to supply the means of gratifying his curiosity, for out of a spot which was some- what decayed he was able to extract a nail. Through this minute aperture he could perceive a female form, wrapped ina plaid, in the act of conversing with Janet. But, since the days of our grandmother Eve, the gratification of inordinate curi- osity has generally borne its penalty in disappointment. The form was not that of Flora, nor was the face visible; and, to crown his vexation, while he labored with the nail to enlarge the hole, that he might obtain a more complete view, a slight noise betrayed his purpose, and the object of his curiosity in- stantly disappeared ; nor, so fay as he could observe, did she again revisit the cottage. All precautions to blockade his view were from that time abandoned, and he was not only permitted, but assisted, to rise, and quit what had been, in a literal sense, his couch of confinement. But he was not allowed to leave the hut; for the young Highlander had now rejoined his senior, and one or other was constantly on the watch. Whenever Waverley ap- proached the cottage door, the sentinel upon duty civilly, but resoluté:y, placed himself against it and opposed his exit, ac- companying his action with signs which seemed to imply there was danger in the attempt, and an enemy in the neighborhood. Old Janet appeared anxious and upon the watch; and Waver- ley who had not yet recovered strength enough to attempt to take his departure in spite of the opposition of his hosts, was under the necessity of remaining patient. His fare was, in . Pasar nr Eee “ se eerie osSere scorrs eee < Pease tai Sn ee 204 7 WAVERLEY. every point of view, better than he could have conceived; for poultry, and even wine, were no strangers to his table. The Highlanders never presumed to eat with him, and, unless in the circumstance of watching him, treated him with great re- spect. His sole amusement was gazing. from the window, or rather the shapeless aperture which was meant to answer the purpose of a window, upon a large and rough brook, which raged and foamed through a rocky channel, closely canopied with trees and bushes, about ten feet beneath the site of his house of captivity. Upon the sixth day of his confinement, Waverley found himself so well, that he began to meditate his escape from this dull and miserable prison-house, thinking any risk which he might incur in the attempt preferable to the stupefying and in- tolerable uniformity of Janet’s retirement. The question in- deed occurred, whither he was to direct his course when again at his own disposal. ‘two schemes seemed practicable, ye both attended with danger and difficulty. One was to go back to Glennaquoich, and join Fergus Mac-Ivor, by whom he was sure to be kindly received; and in the present state of his mind, the rigor with which he had been treated, fully absolved him, in his own eyes, from his allegiance to the existing govern- ment. ‘The other project was to endeavor to attain a Scottish seaport, and thence to take shipping for England. His mind wavered between these plans, and probably, if he had effected his escape in the manner he proposed, he would have been finally determined by the comparative facility by which either might have been executed. But his fortune had settled that he was not to be left to his option. Upon the evening of the seventh day, the door of the hut suddenly opened, and two Highlanders entered, whom Waver- ley recognized as having been a part of his original escort to this cottage. They conversed for a short time with the old man and his companion, and then made Waverley understand, by very significant signs, that he was to prepare to accompany them. This was a joyful communication. What had already passed during his confinement made it evident that no per- sonal injury was designed to him; and his romantic spirit, having recovered ‘during his repose much of that elasticity which anxiety, resentment, disappointment, and the mixture of unpleasant feelings excited by his late adventures had for a time subjugated, was now wearied with inaction. His passion for the wonderful, although it is the nature of such dispositions to be excited by that degree of danger which merely gives dignity to the feeling of the individual exposed to it, had sunkWAVERLEY. under the extraordinary and apparently insurmountable evils by which he appeared environed at Cairnvreckan. In fact, this com) pound of intense curiosity and exalted imagination, forms a peculiar s species of courage, which somewhat resem bles the light usu: ally carried by a miner, sufficiently compe- tent indeed, to afford him guidance and comfort during the ordinary perils of his labor, but certain to be extinguis hed should he encounter the more formidable hazard of. earth- damps or oe ane vapors. It was now, however, once more rekindled, and with a thy robbing mixture of hope, awe, and anxiety, Waverley watched the group before him, as those who were just arrived snatched a hast y meal, and the others assumed their arms, and made brief preparations for their de- parture. As he sat in the smoky hut, at some distance from the fire, around which the others were crowded, he felt a gentle pres- sure upon his arm. He looked around—it was Alice, the daughter of Donald Bean Lean. She showed him a packet of papers in such a manner that the motion was remarked by no one else, put her finger for a second to her lips, and passed on as if to assist old Janet in packing Waverley’s clothes in his pofumanteau. It was obviously her wish that he should not seem to recognize her; yet she repeatedly looked back at him, as an opportunity occurred of doing so unobserved, and when she saw that he remarked what she did, she folded the packet with great address and speed in one of his shirts, which she deposited in the portmanteau. Here then was fresh food for conjecture. Was Alice his unknown warden, and was this maiden of the cavern the tutelar genius that watched his bed during his sickness ? Was he in the hands of her father? and if so, what was his purpose ? spoil, his usual object, seemed in this case neglected; for not only was Waireiaes? S property restored, but his purse, which might have tempted this professional plunderer, had been all along suffered to remain in his possession. All this perhaps the packet might explain ; but it was plain from Alice’s man- ner, that she desired he should consult it in secret. Nor did she again seek his eye after she had satisfied herself that her manceuvre was observed and understood. On the contrary, she shortly afterward left the hut, and it was only as she trip- ped out from the door, that, favored by the obscurity, she gave Waverley a parting smile, and nod of significance, ere she vanished in the dark glen. The young Highlander was repeatedly despatched by his comrades as if te collect intelligence. At length, when he had vk See ee ee aN SE enn earnersEASES alee BUS FS Sie s WAVERLEY. returned for the third or fourth time, the whole party arose, and made signs to our hero to accompany them. Before his departure, however, he shook hands with old Janet, who had been so sedulous in his behalf, and added substantial marks of his gratitude for her attendance. “God bless you! God prosper you, Captain» Waverley ! ” said Janet, in good Lowland Scotch, though he had never hitherto heard her utter a syllable, save in Gaelic. But the im- patience of his attendants prohibited his asking any explana- tion, CHAPTER THIRTY-EIGHTH. A NOCTURNAL ADVENTURE. THERE was a moment’s pause when the whole party had got out of the hut ; and the Highlander who assumed the com- mand, and who, in Waverley’s awakened recollection, seemed to be the same tall figure who had acted as Donald Bean Lean’s lieutenant, by whispers and signs imposed the strictest silence. He delivered to Edward a sword and steel pistol, and, point- ing up the track, laid his hand on the hilt of his own claymore, as if to make him sensible they might have occasion to use force to make good their passage. He then placed himself at the head of the party, who moved up the pathway in single or Indian file, Waverley being placed nearest, to their leader. He moved with great precaution, as if to avoid giving any alarm, and halted as soon as he came to the verge of the ascent. Waverley was soon sensible of the reason, for he heard at no great distance an English sentinel call out “ All’s well.” The heavy sound sunk on the night-wind down the woody glen, and was answered by the echoes of its banks. A _ second, third, and fourth time the signal was repeated fainter and fainter, as if at a greater and greater distance. It was obvious that a party of soldiers were near, and upon their guard, though not sufficiently so to detect men skilful in every art of predatory warfare, like those with whom he now watched their ineffectual precautions. When these sounds had died upon the silence of the night, the Highlanders began their march swiftly, yet with the most cautious silence. Waverley had little time, or indeed disposi- tion, for observation, and could only discern that they passed at some distance from a large building, in the windows of whichWAVERLEY. 207 a light or two yet seemed to twinkle. A little farther on, the leading Highlander snuffed the wind like a setting spaniel, and then made a signal to his party again ‘to halt. He stooped down upon all-fours, wrapped up in his plaid, so as to be scarce distinguishable from the heathy ground on which he moved, and advanced in this posture to reconnoitre. In a short time he returned, and dismissed his attendants excepting one; and, intimating to Waverley that he must imitate his cautious mode of proceeding, all three crept forward on hands and knees. After proceeding a greater way in this inconvenient manner than was at all comfortable to his knees and shins, Waverley perceived the smell of smoke, which probably had been much sooner distinguished by the more acute nasal organs of his guide. It proceeded from the corner of a low and ruinous sheep-fold, the walls of which were made of loose stones, as is usual in Scotland. Close by this low wall the Highlander guided Waverley, and in order probably to make him sensible of his danger, or perhaps to obtain the full credit of his own dexterity, he intimated to him, by sign and example, that he might raise his head so as to peep into the sheep-fold. Wa- verley did so, and beheld an outpost of four or five soldiers lying by their watch-fire. They-were all asleep, except the sentinel, who paced backwards and forwards with his firelock on his shoulder, which glanced red in the light of the fire as he crossed and re-crossed before it in his short walk, casting his eye frequently to that part of the heavens from which the moon, hitherto obscured by mist, seemed now about to make her appearance. In the course of a minute or two, by one of those sudden changes of atmosphere incident to a mountainous country, a breeze arose, and swept before it the clouds which had covered the horizon, and the night planet poured her full effulgence upon a wide and blighted heath, skirted indeed with copsewood and stunted trees in the quarter from which they had come, but open and bare to the observation of the sentinel in that to which their course tended. ‘The wall of the sheep-fold indeed con- cealed them as they lay, but any advance beyond its shelter seemed impossible without certain discovery. The Highlander eyed the blue vault, but far from blessing the useful light with Homet’s, or rather Pope’s, benighted peas- ant, he muttered a Gaelic curse upon the unseasonable splendor of MacFarlane’s buat (7.2, lantern).°? He looked anxiously around for a few minutes, and then apparently took his resolu- tion. Leaving his attendant with Waverley, after motioning to Edward to remain quiet, and giving his comrade directions in a " CS ate ca PRU ee rte ay4 Es a % 4 phivpbanencinns sooteaints eet Paes SS Sate Fa UceaaAuRssiaencan nes = WAVERLEY. brief whisper, he retreated, favored by the irregularity of the ground, in the same direction and in the same manner as they had advanced. Edward, turning his head after him, could per- ceive him crawling on all fours with the dexterity of an Indian, availing himself of every bush and inequality to escape observa- tion, and never passing over the more exposed parts of his track until the sentinel’s back was turned from him. At length he reached the thickets and underwood which partly covered the moor in that direction, and probably extended to the verge of the glen where Waverley had been so long an inhabitant. The Highlander disappeared, but it was only for a few minutes, for he suddenly issued forth from a different part of the thicket, and advancing boldly upon the open heath, as if to invite dis- covery, he levelled his piece, and fired at the sentinel. A wound in the arm proved a disagreeable interruption to the poor fellow’s meteorological observations, as well as to the tune of Nancy Dawson, which he was whistling. He returned the fire ineffectually, and his comrades, starting up at the alarm, advanced alertly towards the spot from which the first shot had issued. The Highlander, after giving them a full view of his person, dived among the thickets, for his ruse de guerre had now perfectly succeeded. While the soldiers pursued the cause of their disturbance in one direction, Waverley, adopting the hint of his remaining attendant, made the best of his speed in that which his guide originally intended to pursue, and which now (the attention of the soldiers being drawn to a different quarter) was unobserved and unguarded. When they had run about a quarter of a mile, the brow of a rising ground, which they had surmounted, con- cealed them from further visk of observation, They still heard, however, at a distance, the shouts of the soldiers as they hal- looed to each other upon the heath, and they could also hear the distant roll of a drum beating to arms in the same direction. But these hostile sounds were now far in the rear, and died away upon the breeze as they rapidly proceeded. When they had walked about half an hour, still along open and waste ground of the same description, they came to the stump of an ancient oak, which, from its relics, appeared to have been at one time a tree of very large size. In an adjacent hollow they found several Highlanders, with a horse or two. They had not joined them above a few minutes, which Waver- ley’s attendant employed, in all probability, in communicating the cause of their delay (for the words ‘ Duncan Duroch’ were often repeated), when Duncan himself appeared, out of breath indeed, and with all the symptoms of having run for his Hie,WAVERLEY. 209 but laughing, and in high spirits at the success of the stratagem by which he had baf fled his pursuers. ‘This, indeed, Waverley could easily conceive, might be a matter of no great difficulty to the active mountaineer, who was perfectly acquainted with the ground, and traced his course with a firmness and confi- dence to which his pursuers must "ele been strangers. The alarm which he excited seemed still to continue, for a dropping shot or two was heard at a great distance, which seemed to serve as an addition to the mirth of Duncan and his comrades. The mountaineer now resumed the arms with which he had intrusted our hero, ee ing him to understand that the dangers of the journey wer — ippily surmounted. Waverley was then oft 1e horses, a change which the fatigue of the night and his recent lime ss rendered exceedingly acceptable. His portmanteau was placed on another pony, Duncan mounted a third, and they set forward at a round pace, accompanied by their escort. No other incident marked the course of that night’s journey, and at the dawn of morning they attained the banks of a rapid river. ‘The country around was at once fertile and romantic. Steep banks of wood were broken by corn- fields, which this year presented an abundant harvest, already in a great measure cut down. On the « pposite bank of the river, and partly surrounded by a winding of its stream, stooda large and massive castle, the Rotentn ca turrets of which were already glittering in the first rays of the sun. It was in form an oblo mg square, of size sufficient to contain a large court inthe centre. The towers at each angle of the square rose higher than the walls of the build- ing, and were in ‘their turn surmounted by turrets, differing in height and irregular in oo sae one of these a sentinel watched, whose bonnet and plaid, streaming in the wind, de- clared him to be a Highlander, as a broad white ensign, which floated from another tower, announced that the garrison was held by the insurgent adherents of the house of Stuart. Passing hastily through a small and mean town, where their appearance excited neither surprise nor curiosity in the few peasants whom the labors‘of the harvest began to summon from their repose, the party crossed mounted upon one o | an ancient and narrow bridge of séveral arches, and turning to the left, up an avenue of huge old sycamores, Waverley found himself in front of the gloomy yet picturesque structure which he had admired at a distance. A huge iron-grated door, which formed the exterior defence of the gateway, was already thrown back to receive them; anda second,. heavily constructed of oak, and studded thickly wit iron nails, being next opened, admitted them into the interior ALANSPai ALAA LARUE ee gee aR eI sa " " WAVERLEY. courtyard. A gentleman, dressed in the Highland garb, and having a white cockade in his bonnet, assisted Waverley to dis- mount from his horse, and with much courtesy bade him welcome to the castle. The governor, for so we must term him, having conducted Waverley to a half-ruinous apartment, where, however, there was a small camp-bed, and having offered him any refreshment which he desired, was then about to leave him. “Will you not add to your civilities,’ said Waverley, after having made the usual acknowledgment, “ by having the kind- ness to inform me where I am, and whether or not I am to con- sider myself as a prisoner?” “TI am not at liberty to be so explicit upon this subject as I could wish. Briefly, however, you are in the Castle of Doune, in the district of Monteith, and in no danger whatever.” ‘¢ And how am I assured of that?” “By the honor of Donald Stewart, governor of the garrison, and lieutenant-colonel in the service of his Royal Highness Prince Charles Edward.” So saying, he hastily left the apart- ment, as if to avoid further discussion. Exhausted by the fatigues of the night, our hero now threw himself upon the bed, and was in a few minutes fast asleep. CHAPTER TALR CYANIN TA. THE JOURNEY IS CONTINUED. BEFoRE Waverley awakened from his repose, the day was far advanced, and he began to feel that he had passed many hours without food. This was soon supplied in form of a copi- ous breakfast; but Colonel Stuart, as if wishing to avoid the queries of his guest, did not again present himself. His com. pliments were, however, delivered by a servant, with an offer to provide anything in his power that could be useful to Captaiy Waverley on his journey, which he intimated would be continued that evening. To Waverley’s further inquiries, the servant op posed the impenetrable barrier of real or affected ignorance and stupidity. He removed the table and provisions, and Waverley was again consigned to his own meditations. As he contemplated the strangeness of his fortune, which seemed to delight in placing him at the disposal of others, with- out the power of directing his own motions, Edward’s eye sud- denly rested upon his portmanteau, which had been depositedWAVERLEY. 2IT in his apartment during his sleep. The mysterious appearance of Alice, in the cottage of the elen, immedi ately rushed upon his mind, and he was about to secure and examine the packet which she had deposite d among his clothes, when the servant of Colonel Stuart again made his appearance, and took up the portmanteau upon his shoulders. ‘May I not take out a change of linen, my friend ? ” Your honor sall get ane o’ the colonel’s ain ruffled sarks but this maun gang in the baggage-cart.” And so saying, he very “ec y coolly carried off the portmanteau, without waiting further remonstrance, leaving our hero ina state where disappointment and indignation struggled for the mastery. In a few minutes he heard a cart rumble out of the rugged courtyard, and made no doubt that he was now dis- possessed, for a space at least, if not forever, of the only docu- ments which seemed to promise some light upon the dubious events which had of late influenced his destiny. With such nelancholy thoughts he had to beguile about four or five hours E solitude. When this space had elapsed, the trampling of horse was heard in the courtyard, and Colonel Stuart soon after made his appearance to request his guest to take some further refresh- ment before his depai rture. ‘The offer was accepted, for a late »reakfast had by no means left our hero incapable of doing honor to dinner, which was now presented. The conversation of his host was that of a plain country gentleman, mixed with some soldier-like sentiments and expressions. He caunionely avoided any reference to the military operations, or civil politics of the time : and to Waverley’s direct i inquixies concerning some of these points, replied, that he was not at li berty to speak upon such topics. When dinner was finished, the governor arose, and, wishing Kdward a good journey, said, that havi ing been informed by W averley’s servant that his baggage had been sit forward, he had taken the freedom to supply him with such cl anges of linen as he might find necessary till he was again possessed of his own. With this compliment he eee opeared. A servant acquainted Waverley an instant afterwards that his horse was ready, Upon this hint he descended into the courtyard, and found a trooper holding a saddled horse, on which he mounted, and sallied from the portal of Doune Castle, attended by about a score of armed men on horseback. These had less the appear- ance of regular soldiers than of individuals who had suddenly assumed. arms from some pressing motive of unexpected emer- gency. Their uniform, which was blue and red, and affected EER ca cRr erect no aon,RorTA LeewA ae T eA Lissd tT Vee eee tae aS X oe peeeriire b i FRO s RMR ne a an SoG eet a = eens zs oN 212 WAVERLEY. imitation of that of the French chasseurs, was in many respects incomplete, and sat awkwardly upon those who wore it. Wa- verley’s eye, accustomed to look at a well-disciplined regiment, could easily discover that the motions and habits of his escort were not those of trained soldiers, and that, although expert enough in the management of their horses, their skill] was that of huntsmen or grooms, rather than of troopers. ‘The horses were not trained to the regular pace so necessary to execute simultaneous and combined movements and formations; no did they seem Jdzted (as it is technically expressed) for the use of the sword. The men, however, were stout, hardy-look ing fellows, and might be individually formidable as irregular cavalry. ‘The commander of this small party was mounted upon an excellent hunter, and although dressed in uniform, his change of apparel did not prevent Waverley from recognizing his old acquaintance, Mr. Falconer of Balmawhapple. Now, although the terms upon which Edward had parted with this gentleman were none of the most friendly, he would have sacrificed every recollection of their foolish quarrel for the pleasure of enjoying once more the social intercourse of question and answer, from which he had been so long secluded. But apparently the remembrance of his defeat by the Baron of Bradwardine, of which Edward had been the unwilling cause, still rankled in the mind of the low-bred, and yet. proud laird. He carefully avoided giving the least sign of recognition, riding doggedly at the head of his men, who, though scarce equal in numbers to a sergeant’s party, were denominated Captain Fal- coner’s troop, being preceded by a trumpet, which sounded from time to time, and a standard borne by Cornet Falconer, the laird’s younger brother. The lieutenant, an elderly man, had much the air of alow sportsman and boon companion; an expression of dry humor predominated in his countenance, over features of a vulgar cast, which indicated habitual intemper- ance. His cocked hat was set knowingly upon one side of his head, and while he whistled the “Bob of Dumblain” under the influence of half a mutchkin of brandy, he seemed to trot merrily forward, with a happy indifference to the state of the country, the conduct of the party, the end of the journey, and all other sublunary matters whatever. From this wight, who now and then dropped alongside of his horse, Waverley hoped to acquire some information, or at least to beguile the way with talk. “A fine evening, sir,” was Edward’s salutation. ‘Ow, ay, sir! a bra’ night,” replied the lieutenant, in broad Scotch of the most vulgar description. maWAVERLEY. 213 “And a fine harvest, apparently,” continued Waverley, fol- lowing up his first attack. " Ay, the aits will be got bravely in: but the farmers, dei burst them, and the corn-mongers, will make the auld pric gude against them as has horses till Keep. ‘You perhaps act as quarter-master, sir?” “Ay, quarter-master, riding-master, and lieutenant,” an- swered this officer of all work. “ And, to be sure, what’s fitter to look after the breaking and the keeping of the poor beasts than mysell, that bought and sold every ane o’ them?” ‘And pray, sir, if it be not too great a freedom, may I beg to know where we are going just now?” “A fule’s erranc sonage. i e l, I fear,” answered this communicative per- “In that case,” said Waverley, determined not to spare civility. “I should have thought a person of your appearance would not have been found on the road.” “Vera true, vera true, sir,” replied the officer, “ but every why has its wherefore. Ye maun ken, the laird there bought a’ thir beasts frae me to munt his troop, and agreed to pay for them according to the necessities and prices of the time. But theu he hadna the ready penny, and I hae been advised his bond will not be worth a boddle against the estate, and then I had 2’ my dealers to settle wi’ at Martinmas : and so as he very kindly offered me this commission, andas the auld fifteen * wad never help me to my siller for sending out naigs against the Govern- ment, why, conscience ! sir, I thought my best chance for pay- ment was e’en to gae out® mysel’; and ye may judge, sir, as I hae dealt a’ my life in halters, I think na mickle o’ putting my craig in peril of a St. Johnstone’s fippet, “You are not, then, by profession a soldier?” said Waver- ley. “Na, na, thank God,” answered this doughty partisan, “] wasna bred at sae short a tether: I was brought up to hack and manger. I was bred a horse-couper, sir ; and if I might live to see you at Whitson-tryst, or at Stagshaw-bank, or the winter fair at Hawick, and ye wanted a spanker that would lead the field, I’se be caution I would serve ye easy, for Jamie Jinker was ne’er the lad to impose upon a gentleman.—Ye’re a gentleman, sir, and should ken a horse’s points ; ye see that through-ganging thing that Balmawhapple’s on; I selled her till him. She was bred out of Lick-the-Ladle, that wan the King’e plate at Caverton-Edge, by Duke Hamilton’s White- toot,” ete., etc., etc. But as Jinker was entered full sail upon the pedigree ofeR Sree nent Snare eniahahaater eee SSmeNeaaescotte tes 214 WAVERLE Balmawhapple’ s mare, having already got as far as great g1 cand- sire and great-grand-dam, and while Wave srley was watching for an op »portunity to obtain from him intelligence of more in- terest, the noble captain checked his horse until they came up, and then, without directly appearing to notice Edward, said sternly to the genealogist, “I thought, lieutenant, my orders were preceese, that no one should speak to the prisoner?’ The metamorphosed horse-dealer was silenced of course, and slunk to the rear, where he consoled himself by entering into a vera dispute upon the price of hay with a farme who had reluctantly followed his laird to the field, rather than give up his farm, whereof the lease had just expired. Waver- ley was therefore once more consigned ‘3 silence, foreseeing that further attempts at conversation with any of the party would only give Balmawhapple awished-for opportunity to dis- play the insolence of authority, and the sulky spite of a temper naturally dogged, and rende red more so by habits of low in- dulgence and the incense of servile x ation. In about two hours’ time, the party were near the Castle of Stirling, over whose battlements the union flag was brightened as it waved in the evening sun. To shorten his journey, or perhaps to display his importance and insult the English gar- rison, Balmawhapple, inclining to the right, took his route through the royal park which reaches to and surrounds the rock upon which the fortress is situated. With a mind more at ease, Waverley could not have failed to admire the mixture of romance and beauty which render interesting the scene through which he was now passing—the field which had been the scene of the tournaments of old—the rock from ee the ladies beheld the contest, while each made vows for the success of some favorite knight—the towers of the Gothic church, where these vows might be paid—and, sur- mounting all, the fortress itself, at once a castle and palace, where valor ‘received the prize from royalty, and knights and dames close the evening amid the revelry of the dance, the song, and the feast. All these were objects fitted to arouse and interest a romantic imagination. But Waverley had other objects of meditation, and an in- cident soon occurred of a nature to disturb meditation of any kind. Balmawhapple, in the Pugs of his heart, as he wheeled his little body of cavalry around the base of the castle, com- manded his trumpet to sound a flourish, and his standard to be displayed. This insult produced apparently some sensa- tion: for when the cavalcade was at such distance from the southern battery as to admit of a gun being depressed so as toWAVERLEY. bear upon them, a flash of fire issued from one of the embra:- sures upon the rock ; and ere the report, with which it was at tended could be heard, the rushing sound of a cannon-ball passed over Balmawhapple’s head, and the bullet burying itself in the ground a few yards distance, covered him with the earth which it drove up. There was no need to bid the party trudge. In fact, every man acting upon the impulse of the moment, soon brought Mr, Jinker’s steeds to show thei: mettie, and the cavaliers, retreating with more speed than regu- larity, never took to a trot, as the lieutenant afterwards ob: served, until an intervening eminence had secured them from any repetition of so undesirable a compliment on the part of Stirling Castle. I must do Balmawhapple, however, the justice to say, that he not only kept the rear of his troop, and labored to maintain some order among them, but, in the height of his gallantry, answered the fire of the castle by discharging one of his horse-pistols at the battlements ; although, the distance being nearly half a mile, I could never learn that this measure of retaliation was attended with any particular effect. The travelers now passed the memorable field of Bannock- burn and reached the Torwood, a place glorious or terrible to the recollections of the Scottish peasant, as the feats of Wal- lace, or the cruelties of Wude Willie Grime, predominate in his recollection. At Falkirk, a town formerly famous in Scot- tish history, and soon to be again distinguished as the scene of military events of importance, Balmawhapple proposed to halt and repose for the evening. This was performed with very little regard to military discipline, his worthy quarter- master being chiefly solicitous to discover where the best brandy might be come at. Sentinels were deemed unnecessary, and the only vigils performed were those of such of the party as could procure liquor. xposed themselves, either on the main street, or elsewhere in the vicinity of the fortress. The morning being calm and fair, the effect of this dropping fire was to invest the Castle in wreaths of smoke, the edges of which dissipated slowly in the air, while the central veil was darkened ever and anon by fresh clouds poured forth from the battlements; the whole giving, by the partial concealment, an appearance of grandeur and gloom, rendered more terrific when Waverley reflected on the cause by which it w as produced, and that « each explosion might ring some brave man’s knell. Ere they approached the city, the partial cannonade had wholly ceased. Balmawhapple, however, having in his recol- lection the unfriendly greeting which his troop had received from the battery of Stirling, had apparently no wish to tempt the forbearance of the artillery of the Castle. He therefore left the direct road, and sweeping considerab!] y to the south- ward, so as to keep out of the range of the cannon, approached the ancient palace of Holyrood, without having entered the walls of the city. He then drew up his men in front of that venerable pfle, and delivered Waverley to the custody of a guard of Hiel landers, whose officer conducted him into the in- terior of the builc ding. A long, low, and ill- proportioned gallery, hung with pictures, affirmed to be the portraits of ki ings, who, if they ever flourished at all, lived sever ‘al hundred years before the invention of paint ing in oil colors, served as a sort of guard ch ee or vestibule, to “the apartments which the adventurous Ch uarles Edward now occupied in the palace of his ancestors. Officers. both in theWAVERLEY. Highland and Lowland garb, passed and re-passed in haste, or loiterec 1 in the hall, as if waiting for orders. Secretaries were engaged in making out passes, musters, and returns. All seemed busy, and earnestly intent upon something of impor. tance ; but Wav erley was suffered to remain seated | in the re cess of a window unnoticed by any one, in anxious reflection upon the crisis of his fate which seemed now rapidly ap- proaching. CHAPTER FORTIETH. AN OLD AND A NEW ACQUAINTANCE, WHILE he was deep sunk in his revert rie, the rustle of tar- tans was heard behind him, a friendly arm clasped his shoul- der, and a friendly voice exclaimed : “Said the Highland prophet sooth? Or must second sight go for nothing ? ” Waverle y “turned, and was warmly embraced by Fergus Mac-Ivor. “A thousand welcomes to Holyrood, once more possessed by her legitimate sovere sign ! did I not say we should prosper, and that you would fall into the hands of the Philis- tines if you Pp yarted from us?” “ Dear F ‘ergus !”” said Waverley, eagerly returning his greet- ing... “obt i is long since I have heard a friend’s voice. Where is Flora } aA “Safe, and a triumphant spectator of our success.’ “In this place?” said W averley, “* Ay, in this city at least,” answered his friend, “and you shall see her; but first you must meet a friend whom you little think of, who has been frequent in his i SN after you.’ Thus saying, he dragged Waverle ‘y by the arm out of the guard-chamber, and ere he knew where he was conducted, Edw ard found himself in a presence-room fitted up with some attempt at royal state. A young man, wearing his own fair hair, distinguished by the digvity of his mien and the noble expression of his well- formed andr ecular features, advanced out of acircle of mili itary gentlemen and Highland Chiefs, by whom he was surrounded. In his easy and oraceful manner, Waverley afterwards thought he could have discov ered his hich birth and rank, alt hough the star on his breast, and the embroid ered garter at his knee, had not appeared as its indications.P. sphere rate Sakae a? s S WAVERLEY. “Let me present to your Royal Highness,” said Fergus, bowing profoundly—— “The descendant of one of the most ancient and loyal fam- lies in England,” said the young Chevalier, interrupting him. “T beg your pardon for interrupting you, my dear Mac-Ivor; but no master of ceremonies is necessary to present a Waverley to a Stuart.” Thus saying, he extended his hand to Edward with the ut- ? most courtesy, who could not, had he desired it, have avoided rendering him the homage which seemed due to his rank, and was certainly the right of his birth. “I am sorry to understand, Mr. Waverley, that, owing to circumstances which have been as yet but ill explained, you have suffered some restraint among my followers in Perthshire, and on your march here; but we are in such a situation that we hardly know our friends, and I am even at this moment uncertain whether I can have the pleasure of considering Mr. Waverley as among mine.” He then paused for an instant; but before Edward could adjust a suitable reply, or even arrange his ideas as to its pur- port, the Prince took out a paper, and then proceeded :—“ I should indeed have no doubts upon this subject, if I could trust to this proclamation, set forth by the friends of the Elec- tor of Hanover, in which they rank Mr. Waverley among the nobility and gentry who are menaced with the pains of high treason for loyalty to their legitimate sovereign. But I desire to gain no adherents save from affection and conviction ; and if Mr. Waverley inclines to prosecute his journey to the south, or to join the forces of the Elector, he shall have my passport and free permission to do so; and I can only regret, that my present power will not extend to protect him against the prob- able consequences of such a measure.—But,” continued Charles idward, after another short pause, ‘if Mr. Waverley should, like his ancestor, Sir Nigel, determine to embrace a cause which has little to recommend it but its justice, and follow a prince who throws himself upon the affections of his people to recover the throne of his ancestors or perish in the attempt, I can only say, that among these nobles and gentlemen he will find worthy associates in a gallant enterprise, and will follow a master who may be unfortunate, but, I trust, will never be un- grateful.” The politic Chieftain of the race of Ivor knew his advantage in introducing Waverley to this personal interview with the royal Adventurer. Unaccustomed to the address and manners of a polished court, in which Charles was eminently skilful, his words and his kindness penetrated the heart of our hero, andWAVERLEY. 219 easily outweighed all prudential motives. To be thus personally solicited for assistance by a Prince, whose form and manners, as well as the spirit which he displayed in this singular enterprise, answered his ideas of a hero of romance; to be courted by him in the ancient halls of his paternal palace, recovered by the sword which he was already bending toward other conquests, gave Edward, in his own eyes, the dignity and importance which he had ceased toconsider as his attributes. Rejected, slan- dered, and threatened upon the one side, he was irresistibly at- tracted to the cause which the prejudices of education, and the political principles of his family, had already recommended as the most just. These thoughts rushed through his mind like a torrent, sweeping before them every consideration of an oppo- site tendency—the time, besides, admitted of no deliberation ——and Waverley, kneeling to Charles Edward, devoted his heart and sword to the vindication of his rights! The Prince (for, although unfortunate in the faults and follies of his forefathers, we shall here, and elsewhere, give him the title due to his birth ) raised Waverley from the ground, and embraced him with an expression of thanks too warm not to be genuine. He also thanked Fergus Mac-Ivor repeatedly for having brought him such an adherent, and presented Waverley to the various noblemen, chieftains, and officers who were about his person, as a young gentleman of the highest hopes and pros- pects, in whose bold and enthusiastic avowal of his cause they might see an evidence of the sentiments of the English families of rank at this important crisis.* Indeed, this was a point much doubted among the adherents of the house of Stuart; and asa well-founded disbelief in the co-operation of the English Jaco- bites kept many Scottish men of rank from his standard, and diminished the courage of those who had joined it, nothing could be more seasonable for the Chevalier than the open dec- laration in his favor of the representative of the house of Waverley-Honour, so long known as cavaliers and loyalists. This Fergus had foreseen from the beginning. He really loved Waverley, because their feelings and projects never thwarted each other; he hoped to see him united with Flora, and he re- joiced that they were effectually engaged in the same cause. But, as we before hinted, he also exulted as a politician in be- holding secured to his party a partisan of such consequence, and he was far from being insensible to the personal importance which he himself gained with the Prince, from having so ma- terially assisted in making the acquisition. Charles Edward, on his part, seemed eager to show his at- * Note R. Jacobite Sentiments.Shbbinavcaata aceon ST ce P, sphRiaeasnnecr tas Saas = 220 WAVERLEY. attendants the value which he attached to his new adherent, by entering immediately, as in confidence, upon the circumstances of his situation. ‘You have been secluded so much from in- telligence, Mr. Waverley, from causes of which I am but indis- tinctly informed, that I presume you are even-yet unacquainted with the important particulars of my present situation. Vou have, however, heard of my landing in the remote district of Moidart, with only seven attendants, and of the numerous chiefs and clans whose loyal enthusiasm at once placed a solitary ad- venturer at the head of agallant army. You must also, I think, have learned, that the Commander-in-chief of the Hanoverian Elector, Sir John Cope, marched into the Highlands at the head of a numerous and well appointed military force, with the intention of giving us battle, but that his courage failed him when we were within three hours’ march of each other, so that he fairly gave us the slip, and marched northward to Aberdeen, leaving the Low Country open and undefended. Not to lose so favorable an opportunity, I marched on to this metropolis, driving before me two regiments of horse, Gardiner’s and Ham- ilton’s, who had threatened to cut to pieces every Highlander that should venture to pass Stirling; and while discussions were carrying forward among the magistracy and citizens of Edinburgh, whether they should defend themselves or surren- der, my good friend Lochiel (laying his hand on the shoulder of that gallant and accomplished chieftain) saved them the trouble of further deliberation by entering the gates with five hundred Camerons. Thus far, therefore, we have done well ; but, in the meanwhile, this doughty general’s nerves being braced by the keen air of Aberdeen, he has taken shipping for Dunbar, and I have just received certain information that he landed there yesterday. His purpose must unquestionably be to march toward us to recover possession of the capital. Now, there are two opinions in my council of war: one, that being inferior probably in numbers, and certainly in discipline and military appointments, not to mention our total want of artillery, and the weakness of our cavalry, it will be the safest to fall back toward the mountains, and there protract the war until fresh succors arrive from France, and the whole body of the Highland clans shall have taken arms in our favor. The op- posite opinion maintains that a retrograde movement, in our circumstance, is certain to throw utter discredit on our arms and undertaking ; and, far from gaining us new partisans, will be the means of disheartening those who have joined our stand- ard. The officers who used these last arguments, among whom is your friend Fergus Mac-Ivor, maintain that if the Highland:WAVERLEY. 221 €rS are strangers to the usual military discipline of Europe, the sol diers whom they are to encounter are no less stra angers to their peculiar and formidable mode of attack: that the attachment and courage of the chiefs and gentlemen are not to be doubted; and that as they will be in the midst of the enemy, their clans. men will as surely follow them ; in fine, that havi ing drawn the sword, we should throw aw ay the scabbard, and trust our cause to battle and to the God of Battles. Will Mr. Wav erley favor us with his opinion in these arduous circumstances ?” Waverley colored high betwixt pleasure and modesty at the distinction implied in this question, and answered, with equal spirit and readiness, th: it he could not venture to offer an opin ion as derive a tide military skill, but that the counsel would be far the most acceptable to him which should first afford him an opportunity to evince his zeal in his Royal Highness’s service, “ Spoken like a Waverley!” answered Charles Edward: “and that you may hold a rank in some d egree corresponding to your name, allow me, instead of the captain’s commission which you have lost, to offer you the brevet rank of major in my service, with the advantage of acting as one of my sides -de- camp until you can be attac hed to a regiment, of which I hope SE veral will be speedily embodied.” ‘Your Royal Highne: ss will forgive me,” answered Waverley, (for hi S recollection turned t to Balmawhapple and his scanty troop), “if I decline accepting any rank until the time and place where I may have interest enough to raise a sufficient body of men to make my command useful to your Royal High- ness’s service. In the meanwhile, I hc ype for your permission to serve as a volunteer under my friend Fergus Mac-Ivor.” ° At least” said the Prince, who was obv iously pleased with this proposal, “allow me the ple asure of arming you after the High I ind fashion.” With these wor rds, he unbuckled the need. sword which he wore, the belt of which was plated with silver, and the steel basket-hilt richly and curiously inlaid. “The blade,” said the Prince, “is a genuine Andrea Ferrara: it has been a sort of heirloom in our family ; but I am convinced I put it into better hands than my own, and will add to it pistols of the same workmanship.—Colonel Mac-Ivor, you must have much to say to your friend ; I will detain you no longer from your private conversation ; but remember we expect you both to attend us in the evening. It may be perhaps the last night we may enjoy in these halls, and as we go to the field with a clear conscience, we will spend the eve of battle me errily. Thus, licensed, the chief and Waverley left the presence chamber,mianencenceiion pasts komt WAVERLEY. CHAPTER FORTY-FIRST. THE MYSTERY BEGINS TO BE CLEARED. “ How do you like him?” was Fergus’s first question, as they descended the large stone staircase. “A prince to live and die under,” was Waverley’s enthusi- astic answer. “T knew you would think so when you saw him, and [| in- tended you should have met earlier, but was prevented by your sprain. And yet he has his foibles, or rather he has difficult cards to play, and his Irish officers,* who are much about him are but sorry advisers,—they cannot discriminate among the numerous pretensions that are set up. Would you think it,—l have been obliged for the present to suppress an Earl’s patent, granted for services rendered ten years ago, for fear of exciting the jealousy, forsooth, of C——- and M——. But you were very right, Edward, to refuse the situation of aide-de-camp. There are two vacant, indeed, but Clanronald and Lochiel, and almost all of us, have requested one for young Aberchallader, and the Lowlanders and the Irish party are equally desirous to have the other for the Master of F——. Now, if either of these candidates were to be superseded in your favor, you would foaice; enemies... And, then Jam Suupiised that che Pance should have offered you a majority, when he knows very well that nothing short of lieutenant-colonel will satisfy others, who cannot bring one hundred and fifty men to the field. ‘But patience, cousin, and shuffle the cards ! ’ It is all very well for the present, and we must have you regularly equipped for the evening in your new costume; for to say the truth, your out- ward man is scarce fit for a court.” “ Why,” said Waverley, looking at his soiled dress, “my shooting jacket has seen service since we parted ; but that, prob- ably, you, my friend, know as well or better them, te “You do my second-sight too much honor,” said Fergus. “We were so busy, first with the scheme of giving battle to Cope, and afterward with our operations in the Lowlands, that I could only give general directions to such of our people as were left in Perthshire to respect and protect you, should you come in their way, But let me hear the full story of your ad- ventures, for they have reached us in a very partial and mut- lated manner.” * Note S. Irish Officers.WAVERLEY, 223 Waverley then detailed at length the circumstances with which the reader is already acquainted, to which Fergus listened with great attention, By this time they had reached the door of his quarters, which he had taken up in a smali paved court, retiring from the street called the Canongate, at the house of a buxom widow of forty, who seemed to smile very graciously upon the handsome young chief, she being a person with whom good looks and good humor were sure to secure an interest, whatever might be the party’s political opinions. Here Callum Beg received them with a smile of recognition. ~ Callum,” said the Chief, “call Shemus an Snachad”’ (James of the Needle). This was the hereditary tailor of Vich Ian sVohr. “Shemus, Mr. Waverley is to wear the the cath dath (battle color, or tartan); his trews must be ready in four hours. You know the measure of a well-made man : two double nails to the small of the leg ”»—— “Eleven from haunch to heel, seven round the waist—I give your honor leave to hang Shemus, if there’s a pair of sheers in the Highlands that has a baulder sneck than her’s ain at the cumadhk an truais” (shape of the trews). “Get a plaid of Mac-Ivor tartan, and sash,” continued the Chieftain, “and a blue bonnet of the Prince’s pattern, at Mr. Mouat’s in the Crames. My short green coat, with silver lace and silver buttons, will fit him exactly, and I have never worn it. Tell Ensign Maccombich to pick out a handsome target from among mine. The Prince has given Mr. Waverley broad- sword and pistols, I will furnish him with a dirk and purse ; 5 add but a pair of low-heeled shoes, and then my dear Edward, (turning to him) you will be a complete son of Ivor.” These necessary directions given, the Chieftain resumed the subject of Waverley’s adventures. “It is plain,” he said, “that you have been in the custody of Donald Bean Lean. You must know that when I marched away my clan to join the Prince, I laid my injunctions on that worthy member of society to perform a certain piece of service, which done, he was to join me with all the force he could muster. But instead of doing so, the gentleman, finding the coast clear, thought it better to make war on his own account, and has scoured the country, plundering, I believe, both friend and foe, under pre- tence of levying blackmail, sometimes as if by my authority, and sometimes (and be cursed to his consummate impudence) in his own great name! Upon my honor, if I live to see the cairn of Benmore again, I shall be tempted to hang that fellow ! I recognize his hand particularly in the mode of your rescue from that canting rascal Gilfillan, and I have little doubt that Donald % f Gotan = ENA eee tech etre TT etree) Coe tet aa3 Suita aS ee si . Sitios sah — SS eee ee Ee ~~ 224 WAVERLEY. himself played the part of the pedler on that occasion ; but how be should not have plundered you, or put you to ransom, or availed himself in some way or other of your captivity for his own advantage, passes my judgment.” “When and how did you hear the intelligence of my con- finement?” asked Waverley. “ The Prince himself told me,” said Fergus, “and inquired very minutely into your history. He then mentioned your being at that moment in the power of one of our northern parties—you know I could not ask him to explain particulars— and requested my opinion about disposing of you. I recom- mended that you should be brought here as a prisoner, because I did not wish to prejudice you further with the English Govern- + ment, in case you pursued your purpose of going southward. I knew nothing, you must recollect, of the charge brought against you of aiding and abetting high treason, which, I pre- sume, had some share in changing your original plan. That sullen, good-for-nothing brute, Balmawhapple, was sent to escort you from Doune, with what he calls his troop of horse. As to his behavior, in addition to his natural antipathy to everything that resembles a gentleman, I presume his adventure with Bradwardine rankles in his recollection, the rather that I dare say his mode of telling that story contributed to the evil reports which reached your quondam regiment.” “Very likely,” said Waverley; “but now surely, my dear Fergus, you may find time to tell me something of Flora.” “Why,” replied Fergus, “I can only tell you that she is well, and residing for the present with a relation inthis city. I thought it better she should come here, as since our success a good many ladies of rank attend our military court, and I assure you, that there is a sort of consequence annexed to the near relative of such a person as Flora Mac-Ivor, and where there is such a justling of claims and requests, a man must use every fair means to enhance his importance.” There was something in this last sentence which grated on Waverley’s feelings. He could not bear that Flora should be considered as conducing to her brother’s preferment, by the admiration which she must unquestionably attract ; and although it was in strict correspondence with many points of Fergus’s character, it shocked him as selfish, and unworthy of his sister’s high mind and his own independent pride. Fergus, to whom such manceuvres were familiar, as to one brought up at the French court, did not observe the unfavorable impression which he had unwarily made upon his friend’s mind, and concluded by saying, “that they could hardly see Flora before the even:“AVERLE ¥. 22< it Og, when she would be at the concert and bal , With which the Prince’s party were to be entertained. She ae ‘T had a quarrel about her not appearing to take leave of you, .-1. am unwilling to renew it, by soliciting her to receive you this morning ; and perhaps my doing so might not only ~ ineffectual, but prevent your meeting this ev ening.” While thus conversing, Waverley heard in the court, before the windows of the parlor, a well-known voice. “I aver to you, my worthy friend,” said the speaker, “ that it is a total dereliction of military discipline ; and were you not as it werea “rd, your purpose would deserve strong reprobation. For a prisoner of war is on no account to be coerced with fet ters, or detained in ergastulo, as would have been the case had you put this gentleman into the pit of the peel-house at Balma- whapple. I grant, indeed, that such a prisoner may for security be coerced ix carcere, that | is, in a public prison.” The growling voice of Balmawhap ple was heard as taking leave in “‘disple easure, but the word, e ARG TSAR CN 7 alone was distinctly audil ie ie had disap peared before Waverle eached the house, in order to greet the Savi Baron of Bad wardine. The uniform in w hich] he was now attired, a blue coat, namely, with gold lace, a scarlet waistcoat and breeches, and immense jack -boots, seemed to have added fresh stiffness and rigidity to his tall, perpendicul ar figure ; and the consciousness of milit ary command and auLhonity had increased, in the same proportion, the self- -Importance of his demeanor, and the dog- matism of his conversation. He received Waverley with his usual kindness, and ex- pressed immediate anxiety to hear an explanation of the cir- cumstances attending the loss of his commission in Gardiner’s dragoons ; “ Not,” he said, “ that he had the least apprehen- sion of his young friend having done < ught which could merit such ungenerous treatment as he had received from Govern- ment, but bec cause it was right and seemly that the Baron of Bradwardine should be, in point of trust and in point of power, fully able to refute all calumnies against the heir of Waverley- Honour, whom he had so much right to regard as his own son.” Fergus Mac-Ivor, who had now joined them, went hastily over thi circumstances of Waverley’s story, and concluded with the flattering reception he had met from the young Chev- alier, «The Baron listened in silence, and at the conclusion shook Waverley heartily by the hand, and congratulated him upon ente ering the service of his lawful Prince. ‘“Bor,’’ eons tinued he, “alt hough it has been justly held in all nations a matter of scandal and dishonor to infringe the sacramentum a Sos R S PN ccre Spey! SOc a tana, SoSede bitaaa erie habit cehhhnodeaasee: ate FR Mitkas ee ee ss Ee ~~ Os BE assem . < 5G WAVERLEY. militare, and that whether it was taken by each soldier singly, whilethe Romans denominated per conjurationem, or by one soldier in name of the rest, yet no one ever doubted that the allegiance so sworn was discharged by the dzmzssio, or dis- charging of a soldier, whose case would be-as hard as that of colliers, salters, and other adscriptz gilebe, or slaves of the soil, were it to be accounted otherwise. ‘This is something like the brocard expressed by the learned Sanchez in his work De /Jure- jurando, which you have questionless consulted upon this yecasion. As for those who have calumniated you by leasing- making, I protest to Heaven I think they have justly incurred the penalty of the Memnonia lex, also called Lex Rhemnia which is prelected upon by Tullius in his oration Jz Verrem I should have deemed, however, Mr. Waverley, that before destining yourself to any special service in the army of the Prince, ye might have inquired what rank the old Bradwardine held there, and whether he would not have been peculiarly happy to have had your services in the regiment of horse which he is now about to levy.” Edward eluded this reproach by pleading the necessity of piving an immediate answer to the Prince’s proposal, and his uncertainty at the moment whether his friend the Baron was with the army, or engaged upon service elsewhere. This punctilio being settled, Waverley made inquiry after Miss Bradwardine, and was informed she had come to Edin- burgh with Flora Mac-Ivor, under guard of a party of the Chieftain’s men. This step was indeed necessary, Tully-Veolan having become a very unpleasant, and even dangerous place of residence for an unprotected young lady, on account of its vicinity to the Highlands, and also to one or two large villages, which, from aversion as much to the Caterans as zeal for Pres- bytery, had declared themselves on the side of Government, and formed irregular bodies of partisans, who had frequent skirmishes with the mountaineers, and sometimes attacked the houses of the Jacobite gentry in the braes, or frontier betwixt the mountain and plain. “T would propose to you,” continued the Baron, “ to walk as far as my quarters in the Luckenbooths, and to admire in your passage the High Street, whilk is, beyond a_ shadow of dubitation, finer than any street, whether in London or Paris: But Rose, poor thing, is sorely discomposed with the firing of the castle, though I have proved to her from Blondel and Coehorn, that it is impossible a bullet can reach these build- ings ; and, besides, I have it in charge from his Royal High- ness to go to the camp, or leaguer of our army, to see that theWAVERLEY. 22% men do conclamare vasa, th lat is, truss up their bag and bag- gage for to-morrow’s march,’ That will be easily done by most of us,” said Mac-Ivor, laughing. “Craving your pardon, Colonel Mac-Ivor, not quite so easily as ye seem to opine. I grant most of your folk left the Highlands, expedited as it were, and free from the incumbrance of baggage; but it is unspeakable the quantity of useless sprechery which they have collected on their march. I saw one fellow of yours (craving your pardon once more) with pier-glass upon his back.” “Ay,” said Fergus, still in good humor, “he would have told you, if you had questioned him, @ ganging foot is aye get- ting.—But come, my dear Baron, you know as well as 1, that a hundred Uhlans, or a single troop of Schmirschitz’s Pandours, would make more havoc ina country than the knight of the mirror and all the rest of our clans put together.’ ‘And that is very true likewise.” replied the Baron; “ they are, as the heathen author says, feracéores in aspectu, mitiores, in actu, of a horrid and grim vis sage, but more benign i in demeanor han their physiognomy o r aspect might infer.—But I stand here talking to you two youngsters, when I should be in the King’s Park.” a “ But you will dine with Waverley and me on your return ? 1 assure you, Baron, though I can live like a High vlarder when needs must, I remember my Paris education, and understand perfectly faire la meilleure chere. nd wha the deil doubts it,” quoth the Baro», laughing, “when ye bring only the cook ery, and the gnde toun must furnish the materials ? el, I have some business in the toun too: but I’ll join you at three if the vivers can tarry so long.” So saying, he took leave of his friends, aud went to look after the charge which had ant assigned him. CHAPTER FORTY-SECOND, A SOLDIER’S DINNER. James of the Needle was a man of his word, when whiskey was no party to the contract; and upon this occasion Callum Beg, who still thought himself in Wav etley’s debt, since he ha declined accepting compensation at the expense of mine Host RTE Rihrtearsy nitecriieass PO aw Pern renEareeteaete opaestoar acetates Soe iste tee eee 33 WAVERLEY. of the Candlestick’s person, took the opportunity of dischare- ing the obligation, by mounting guard over the hereditary tailor of Sliochd nan Ivor; and, as he expressed himself, “ targed him tightly” till the finishing of the job. To rid himself of this restraint, Shemus’s needle flew through the tartan like lightning; and as the artist kept chanting some dreadful skir- mish of Fin Macoul, he accomplished at least three stitches to the death of every hero. The dress was, therefore, soon ready, for the short coat fitted the wearer, and the rest of the apparel required little adjustment. Our hero having now fairly assumed the “ garb of Old Gaul,” well calculated as it was to give an appearance of strength to a figure, which, though tall and well-made, was rather elegant than robust, I hope my fair readers will excuse him if he looked at himself in the mirror more than once, and could not help acknowledging that the reflection seemed that of a very hand: some young fellow. In fact, there was no disguising it. His light-brown hair—for he wore no periwig, notwithstanding the universal fashion of the time—became the bonnet which sur- mounted it. His person promised firmness and agility, to which the ample folds of the tartan added an air of dignity. His blue eye seemed of that kind Which melted in love, and which kindled in war; and an air of bashfulness, which was in reality the effect of want of habitual intercourse with the world, gave interest to his features, without injuring their grace or intelligence. ‘“He’s a pratty man—a very pratty man,” said Evan Dhu (now Ensign Maccombich) to Fergus’s buxom landlady. ‘“‘Hle’s vera weel,” said the Widow Flockhart, “but no naething sae weel-faur’d as your Colonel, ensign.” “T wasna comparing them,’ quoth Evan, “nor was I speaking about his being weel-favored; but only that Mr. Waverley looks clean-made and deliver, and like a proper lad 9’ his quarters, that will not cry barley in a brulzie. And, in- deed, he’s gleg eneuch at the broadsword and target. I hae played wi’ him mysell at Glennaquoich, and sae has Vich Jan Vohr, often of a Sunday afternoon.” “Lord forgie ye, Ensign Maccombich,” said the alarmed Presbyterian ; “I’m sure the colonel wad never do the like o’ thie | & “Hout! hout! Mrs. Flockhart,” replied the ensign “ we're young blude, ye ken; and young saints, auld deils.” “But will ye fight wi’ Sir John Cope the morn, Ensign Maccombich ?”” demanded Mrs. Flockhart of her guest. ? 3WAVERLEY. 229 “'Troth I’se ensure him, an’ he’ll bide us, Mrs eee he Gael, \nd will ye face thae tearing chields, the dr ragoons, Ensign . Flockhart,” } Maccombic ch 2 again inquired the | landlady. ‘ Claw for claw: as: Gonan« said to Satan, Mrs. Flockhart, and the deevil tak the shortest nails. And will the Colonel venture on the bagganets himsel? ” ‘Ye may swear it, Mrs. Flockh art; the very first man will he be. by Saint Phedar.” ‘Merciful goodness! and if he’s coats ?” exclaimed the soft-hearted el CoProth, if it should sae befall, Mrs. Flockhart, I ken ane that will no be living to weep for him. But we maun a’ live the day, and have our dinner ; and there’s Vich Ian Vohr has packed his dorlach, and Mr. W averley's wearied wi’ majoring yonder afore the muckle pier-glass, and that gray auld stoor carle, the Baron o’ Bradwardine, that shot young Ronald of Ballankeiroch, he’s coming down the close wi’ that droghling coghling bailie body they ca’ Macwl hupple, just like the haan o’ Kittlegab’s French cook, wi’ his tun nspit doggie trindling ahint him, and I amas hungry as a gled, my bonny dow; sae bid Kate set on the broo’, and do ye put on your pinners, for ye ken Vich Ian Vohr winna sit down til] ye be at the head o’ table ;—and dinna forget the pint bottle o’ brandy, my woman.” This hint produced dinner. Mrs. Flockhart, smiling in her weeds like the sun through a mist, took the head of the table, thinking within herself. perhaps, that she cared not how long the rebellion lasted, that brought her into com- pany so much above her usual associates. She was Sup ported by Waverley and the Baron, with the ady vantage of the Chieftain ws-d-vis. The men of peace and of war, that is, Baillie Macwheeble and E nsign Maccombich, after many pro- found conmgés to their superiors and each other, took their places on each side of the Chieftain. Their fare was excellent, time, place, and circumstances considered, and Fergus’s spirits were ext ravagantly high. Regardless of danger, and s sanguine from temper, youth, and ; ambition, he saw in imagination all his pro: emeasl crowned with success, and was tota lly indifferent to A probable alternative of a soldier’ s grave. The Baron apologized slightly for Wee Maewheeble. They had been providing, he said. for the -xpenses of the campaign. “ And, by my faith,” said the old man, “as I think this will be my last, so [ just end where [ began—I hae evermore found the sinews of war, as a learned author calls the cazsse militaire, killed amang the red-230 WAVERLEY. mair difficult to come by than either its flesh, blood, of bones.” “ What! have you raised our only efficient body of cavalry, and got ye none of the louis-d’or out of the Doutelle * toshelp you?” * « No, Glennaquoich; cleverer fellows have been before me.” “ That’s a scandal,” said the young Highlander ; “ but you will share what is left of my subsidy: it will save you an anx ious thought to-night, and will be all one to-morrow, for we shall all be provided for, one way or other, before the sun sets.” Waverley, blushing deeply, but with great earnestness, pressed the same request. “T thank ye baith, my good lads,” said the Baron, “ but I will not infringe upon your peculium. Bailie Macwheeble has provided the sum which is necessary.” Here the Bailie shifted and fidgeted about in his seat, and appeared extremely uneasy. At length, after several pre- liminary hems, and much tautological expression of his devo- ton to his honor’s service, by night or day, living or dead, he began to insinuate, “ that the Banks had removed a’ their ready cash into the Castle ; that, nae doubt, Sandie Goldie, the silversmith, would do mickle for his honor; but there was little time to get the wadset made out ; and, doubtless, if his honor Glennaquoich, or Mr. Wauverley, could accommodate’— “ Let me hear of no such nonsense, sir,” said the Baron, ‘na tone which rendered Macwheeble mute, “ but proceed as we accorded before dinner, if it be your wish to remain in my service.” To this peremptory order, the Bailie, though he felt as if condemned to suffer a transfusion of blood from his own veins ‘nto those of the Baron, did not presume to make any reply. After fidgeting a little while longer, however, he addressed himself to Glennaquoich, and told him, if his honor had mair ready siller than was sufacient for his occasions in the field, he could put it out at use for his honor in safe hands, and at great profit, at this time. At this proposal Fergus laughed heartily, and answered, when he had recovered his breath,—‘“ Many thanks, Bailie ; but you must know it is a general custom among us soldiers tomake our landlady our banker.—Here, Mrs. Flockhart,” said he, taking four or five broad pieces out of a well-filled pnurse, and tossing the purse itself, with its remaining contents, into her apron. “these will serve my occasion ; do you take * The Doutelle was an armed vessel, which brought a small supply of money and arms from France for the use of the insurgents.WAVERLEY. No 32 the rest; be my banker if I live, and my executor if I die: but iake care to give something to the High land cailliachs * that shali cry the coronach loudest for the last Vich Ian Vohr.”’ “ It is the “estamentum militare,” quoth the Baron, “ whilk amang the Romans, was privilegiate to be nuncupative.” Bu the soft heart of Mrs. Flockhart was melted within her at the Chieftain’s speech ; she set up a lamentable blubbering, and positively refused to touch the bequest, which Fergus was therefore obl iged to resume. “¢ Well then,’ said the Chief, “ if I fall, it will go to the grenadier that knocks my brains out and I shall take care he works hard for it.” Bailie Meawitnite Was again tempted to put in his oar; for where cash was concerned he did not willingly remain silent. ‘ Perhaps he had ae carry the gowd to Miss Mac- Ivor, in case of mortality, or accidents, of war. It mi ight tak the form of a mortis we FAG in the young leddie’ s favor, and wad cost but the scrape of a pen to mak it out.’ "Fhe young lady,” said Fergus, “should such an event happen, will have other matters to think of than these wretched louis d’or.” ** ‘True—undeniable—there’s nae doubt o’ that; but your honor kens that a full sorrow”—— “Is endurable by most folks more easily than a hungry one? —True, Bailie, very true; and I believe there may even be some who would be consoled by such a reflection for the loss of the whole existing generation. But there is a sorrow which knows neither hunger nor thirst: and poor Flora’”——He paused, and the whole company sympathized in his emotion. The Baron’s thoughts natur ally reverted to the unprotected state of his daughter, and the big tear came to the veteran’s eye. “If I fall, Macwheeble, you have all my papers, and know all my affairs ; be just to Rose.’ The Bailie was a man of earthly mould after all ;a good deal of dirt and dross about him, undoubtedly, but some kindly and just feelings he had, especially where the Baron or his young mistress were concerned. He set upa lamentable howl. “Tf that doleful day should come, while Duncan Macwheeble had a boddle, it should be Miss Rose’s. He wald scroll for a plack the sheet, or she kenn’d what it was to want ; if indeed a’ the bonnie baronie o’ Bradwardine and Tully-Veolan, with the fortalice and manor-place thereof (he kept sobbing and whining bt * Old women, on whom devolved the duty of Jamenting for the cead which the Irish call Aeexeng.ree eres Seater 232 WAVERLEY. at every pause), tofts, crofts mosses, muirs—outfield, infield— buildings—orchards—dove-cots—with the right of net and coble in the water and loch of Veolan—tiends, parsonage and vicarage—annexis, connexis—rights of pasturage—fuel, feal, and divot—parts, pendicles, and pertinents whatsoever—(here he had recourse to the end of his long cravat to wipe his eyes, which overflowed in spite of him, at the ideas which this tech- nical jargon conjured up)—all as more fully described in the proper evidents and titles thereof—and lying within the parish of Bradwardine, and the shire of Perth—if, as aforesaid, they must a’ pass from my master’s child to Inch-Grabbit, wha’s a Whig and a Hanoverian, and he managed by his doer, Jamie Howie, wha’s no fit to be a birlieman, let be a bailie ”— The beginning of this lamentation really had something affecting, but the conclusion rendered laughter irresistible. “ Never mind, Bailie,” said Ensign Maccombich, “ for the gude auld times of rugging and riving (pulling and tearing) are come back again, an’ Sneckus Mac-Snackus, (meaning probably, an- nexis, connexis), and a’ the rest of your friends, maun gie place to the langest claymore.” “And that claymore shall be ours, Bailie,” said the chief- tain, who saw that Macwheeble looked very blank at this inti- mation. We'll give them the metal our mountain affords, Lillibulero, bullen a la, And in place of broad-pieces, we'll pay with broadswords, Lero, lero, etc. With duns and with debts we will soon clear our score, Lillibulero, etc. For the man that’s thus paid will crave payment no more, Lero, lero, etc.* But come, Bailie, be not cast down; drink your wine with a joyous heart; the Baron shall return safe and victorious to Tully-Veolan, and unite Killancureit’s lairdship with his own, since the cowardly half-bred swine will not turn out for the Prince like a gentleman,” “To be sure, they lie maist ewest,”f said the Bailie, wip- ing his eyes, “and should naturally fa’ under the same factory.” “ And I,” proceeded the chieftain, “shall take care of my- self, too; for you must know, I have to complete a good work here, by bringing Mrs, Flockhart into the bosom of the Catho- lic church, or at least half way, and that is to your Episcopal meeting-house. O Baron! if you heard her fine counter-tenor * These lines, or something like them, occur in an old Magazine of the period. tz. é., Contiguous.WAVERLEY. 233 admonishing Kate and Matty in the morning, you, who under stand music, would tremble at the idea of hearing her shriek in the psalmody of Haddo’s Hole.” “Lord forgie you, colonel, how ye rin on! but I hope your honors will tak tea before ye gang to the palace, and I maun gang, and mask it for you.” So saying, Mrs. Flockhart left the gentlemen to their own conversation, which, as might be supposed, turned chiefly upon the approaching events of the campaign. CHAPTER FORTY-THIRD,. THE BALL. EnsicN Maccompicu having gone to the Highland camp upon duty, and Bailie Macwheeble having retired to digest his dinner, and Evan Dhu’s intimation of martial] law, in some blind change-house Waverley, with the Baron and the Chief- tain, proceeded to Holyrood House. The two last were in full tide of spirits, and the Baron rallied in his way our hero upon the handsome figure which his new dress displayed to advan- tage. “Ifyou have any design upon the heart of a bonny Scotch lassie, I would premonish you, when you address her, to remember and quote the words of Virgilius :— Nunc insanos amor duri me Martis in armis, Tela inter media atque adversos detinet hostes ; Whilk verses Robertson of Struan, Chief of the Clan Donno- chy (unless the claims of Lude ought to be preferred primo 4oco) has thus elegantly rendered : For cruel love has gartan’d low my leg, And clad my hurdies in a philabeg. Although, indeed, ye wear the trews, a garment whilk I approve maist of the twa, as mair ancient and seemly.” ‘Or rather,” said Fergus, “hear my song : She wadna hae a Lowland laird, Nor be an English lady ; But she’s away with Duncan Graeme, And he’s rowed her in his plaidy.” By this time they reached the palace of Holyrood, and were announced respectively as they entered the apartments. ry Le234 WAVERLEY. It is but too well known how many gentlemen of rank, edu- cation, and fortune, took a concern in the ill-fated and desperate undertaking of 1745. ‘The ladies, also, of Scotland very gener- ally espoused the cause of the gallant and handsome young Prince, who threw himself upon the mercy.of his countrymen, rather like a hero of romance than a calculating politician. It is not, therefore, to be wondered that Edward, who had spent the ereater part of his life in the solemn seclusion of Waverley- Honour, should have been dazzled at the liveliness and ele- gance of the scene now exhibited in the long-deserted halls of the Scottish palace. The accompaniments, indeed, fell short of splendor, being such as the confusion and hurry of the time admitted ; still, however, the general effect was striking, and the rank of the company considered, might well be called brilliant. It was not long before the lover’s eye discovered the object of his attachment. Flora Mac-Ivor was in the act of returning to her seat, near the top of the room, with Rose Bradwardine by her side. Among much elegance and beauty, they had at- tracted a great degree of the public attention, being certainly two of the handsomest women present. The Prince took much notice of both, particularly of Flora, with whom he danced; a preference which she probably owed to her foreign education, and command of the French and Italian languages. When the bustle attending the conclusion of the dance per- mitted, Edward, almost intuitively, followed Fergus to the place where Miss Mac-Ivor was seated. ‘The sensation of hope, with which he had nursed his affection in absence of the beloved object seemed to vanish in her presence, and, like one striving to recover the particulars of a forgotten dream, he would have given the world at that moment to have recollected the grounds on which he had founded expectations which now seemed so delusive. He accompanied Fergus with downcast eyes, ting- ling ears, and the feelings of the criminal, who, while the melan- choly cart moves slowly through the crowds that have assembled to behold his execution, receives no clear sensation cither from the noise which fills his ears, or the tumult on which he casts his wandering look. Flora seemed a little—a very little—affected and discom- posed at his approach. “I bring you an adopted son of Ivor,” said Fergus, ‘And I receive him as a second brother,”’ replied Flora. There was a slight emphasis on the word, which would have escaped every ear but one that was feverish with apprehension. it was, however, distinctly marked, and, combined with her wholeWAVERLEY. 235 tone and manner, plainly intimated, “I will never think of Mr, Waverley as a more intimate connection.” Edward stopped, bowed, and looked at Fergus, who bit his lip; a movement of anger, which proved that he also had put a sinister interpreta- tion on the reception which his sister had given his friend “This, then, is an end of my day-dream!” Such was Waverley’s first thought, and it was so exquisitely painful as to banish from his cheek every drop of blood ““Good God!’ recovered !” These words which she uttered with great emotion, were overheard by the Chevalier himself. who stepped hastily for- ward, and, taking Waverley by the hand, inquired kindly after his health, and added, that he wished to speak withhim. By a strong and sudden effort, which the circumstances rendered indispensable, Waverley recovered himself so far as to follow the Chevalier in silence toa recess in the apartment. Here the Prince detained him some time. questions about the great Tory and Catholic fami their connections, their influence, and tl tions towarc « said Rose Bradwardine, “he has not yet asking various lies of England, 1e state of their affec- l the house of Stuart. To these queries Edward could not at any time have given more than general answers, and it may be supposed that, in the present state of his feelings, his responses were indistinct even to confusion. The Chevalier smiled once or twice at the incongruity of his replies, but con- tinued the same style of conversation, although he found himself obliged to occupy the principal share of it, until he perceived that Waverley had recovered his presence of mind. It is prob- able that this long audience was partly meant to further the idea which the Prince desired should be entertained among his followers, that Waverley was a character of political influence, But it appeared, from his concluding expressions, that he had a different and good-natured motive, personal to our hero, for prolonging the conference. ‘I cannot resist the temptation,” he said, “of boasting of my own discretion as a lady’s confidant. You see, Mr. Waverley, that I know all, and I assure you I am deeply interested in the affair. But, my good young friend, you must put a more severe restraint upon your feelings. here are many here whose eyes can see as clearly as mine, but the prudence of whose tongues may not be equally trusted.” So saying, he turned easily away, and joined a circle of officers at a few paces distance, leaving Waverley to meditate upon his parting expression, which, though not intelligible _to him in its whole purport, was sufficiently so in the caution which the last word recommended. Making, therefore, an effort to cm Mtererssrsy teenySat ray PRBS Gags se ieee ae = 4 236 WAVERLEY. show himself worthy of the interest which his new master had expressed, by instant’ obedience to his recommendation, he walked up to the spot where Flora and Miss Bradwardine were still seated, and having made his compliments to the latter, he succeeded, even bey ond his own expectations, in entering into conversation upon general topics. If, my dear reader, thou hast ever happened to take post- horses at ——, or at ——— (one at least of which blanks, or more probably both, you will be able to fill up from an inn near your own residence), you must have observed, and doubtless with sympathetic pain, the reluctant agony with which the poor jades at first apply their galled necks to the collars of the har- ness. But when the irresistible arguments of the post-boy have prevailed upon them to proceed a mile or two, they will become callous to the first sensation; and being warm in the harness, as the said post-boy may term it, proceed as if their withers were altogether unwrung. This simile so much corresponds with the state of Waverley’s feelings in the course of this memorable evening, that .I prefer it, {especially as being, I trust, wholly original) to any*more’splendid illustration, with which Byshe’s Art of Poetry might suppl, me. Exertion, like virtue, is its own reward; and our hero had, moreover, other stimulating motives for persevering in a display of affected composure and indifference to Flora’s obvious un- kindness. Pride, which supplies its caustic as a useful, though severe remedy for the wounds of affection, came rapidly to his aid. Distinguished by the favor of a prince; ¢ destined, he had room to hope, to play a eta S uous part in the rev olution which awaited a mighty kingdom; excelling, probably, in mental ac- quirements, and equalling’ at least, in personal accomplish- ments, most of the noble and distinguished persons with whom he was now ranked : young, we althy, and high-born—could he, or ought he to droop beneath the frown of a capricious beauty? O nymph, unrelenting and cold as thou art, My bosom is proud as thine own. With the Gos expressed in these beautiful lines (which, however, were not then written) * Waverley determined upon convincing +i that he was not to be depressed by a rejec tion in which his v anity whispered that perhaps she did her own * They occur in Miss Seward’s fine verses, beginning— To thy rock, stormy Lannow, adieu.WAVERLEY. 237 prospects as much injustice as his. And, to aid this ch lange of feeling, there lurked the sec ret al od unacki nowledged hope, that she might learn to prize his affection more high hly_ when she ne not conceive it to be altogether within her own choice to attra or repulse it. There was a mystic tone of encouragement, also, in the Chevalier’s words, though he feare dt they only referred to the wishes of Fergus in favor of a union between him and his sister. But the whole circumstances of time, place, and inci- dent, combined at once to awaken his imagination, and to call upon him for a manly and a decisive tone of conduct, leaving to fate to dispose of the issue. Should he appear to be the only one sad and disheartened on the eve of battle, how ereedily would the tale be commented upon by the slander which had been already but too busy with his fame? Never, never, he inter- nally resolved, shall my unprovoked enemies possess such an advantage over my reputation. Under the influence of these mixed sensations, ane cheered at times by a smile of intelligence and approbation from the Prince as he passed the group, Waverley exerted i powers of fancy, animation, ond ae ence, and attracted the general ad- miration of the company. The conversation gradually assumed the tone best qu: ified for the display of his talents and acqui- sitions. The gayety of the evening was exalted in character, rather than checked, by the approaching dang y reo oD ers of the: nono All nerves were strung for the future, and avautres to enjoy the present. This mood of mind is hi: chiy favorable for the exercise of the powers of imagination, for poetry, and for that eloquence oO i which is allied to poetry. Waverley, as we have elsewhere observed, possessed at times a wonderful flow of rhetoric: and on the present occasion, he touched more than once the higher notes of feeling, and then again ran off in a wild voluntary of fanciful mirth. He was supported and excited by kindred spir- its, who felt the same impulse of mood and time ; and even those of more cold and calculating habits were hurried along by the torrent. Many ladies declined the dance, which still went for- ward, and, under various pretences, joined the party to which the “ handsome young Englishman” seemed to have attached himself. He was presented to several of the first rank, and his manners, which for the present were altogether free from the bashful restraint by which, in a moment of less excitation, they were usually clouded, gave universal delight. Flora Mac-lvor appeared to be the only fe male press ent who regarded him with a degree of coldness and reserve ; yet even she could not suppress a sort of wonder at talents, which, in the course of their acquaintance, she had never seen displayed a 2 RR EG » ‘ + Dee eeWAVERLEY. with equal brilliancy and impressive effect. I do not know whether she might not feel a momentary regret at having taken so decisive a resolution upon the addresses of a lover, who seemed fitted so well to fill a high place in the highest stations of society. Ccrtainly she had hitherto accounted among the incurable deficiencies of Edward’s disposition, the mauvaise Lonte, which, as she had been educated in the first foreign cir- cles, and was little acquainted with the shyness of English manners, was, in her opinion, too nearly related to timidity and imbecility of disposition. But if a passing wish occurred that Waverley could have rendered himself uniformly thus amiable and attractive, its influence was momentary ; for circumstances had arisen since they met, which rendered, in her eyes, the resolution she had formed respecting him, final and irrevocable. With opposite feelings, Rose Bradwardine bent her whole soul to listen. She felt a secret triumph at the public tribute paid to one whose merit she had learned to prize too early and too fondly. Without athought of jealousy, without a feeling of fear, pain, or doubt, and undisturbed by a single selfish consid- eration, she resigned herself to the pleasure of observing the general murmur of appiause. When Waverley spoke, her ear was exclusively filled with his voice; when others answered, her eye took its turn of observation, and seemed to watch his reply. Perhaps the delight which she experienced in the course of that evening, though transient, and followed by much sorrow, was in its nature the most pure and disinterested which the human mind is capable of enjoying. ‘ Baron,” said the Chevalier, “I would not trust my mis- tress in the company of your young friend. He is really, though perhaps somewhat romantic, one of the most fascinating young men whom I have ever seen.” ‘¢And by my honor, sir,” replied the Baron, ‘the lad can sometimes be as dowff as a sexagenary like myself. If your Royal Highness had seen him dreaming and dozing about the banks of Tully-Veolan like a hypochondriac person, or, as Burton’s Anatomia hath it, a phrenesiac or lethargic patient, you would wonder where he hath sae suddenly acquired all this fine sprack festivity and jocularity.” “Truly,” said Fergus Mac-Ivor, “I think it can only be the inspiration of the tartans; for, though Waverley be always a young fellow of sense and honor, I have hitherto often found him a very absent and inattentive companion.” “We are the more obliged to him,” said the Prince, “ for having reserved for this evening qualities which even such in- timate friends had not discovered.—But come, gentlemen, theWAVERLEY. 239 night. advances, and the business of to-morrow must be early thought upon, Each take charge of his fair partner, and honor a small refreshment with your company.” He led the way to another suite of apartments, and assumed the seat and canopy at the head of a long range of tables, with an air of dignity mingled with courtesy, which well became his high birth and lofty pretensions. An hour had hardly flown away when the musicians played the signal for parting, so well known in Scotland.* ‘“Good-night, then,” said the Chevalier, rising; “Good night, and joy be with you !—Good-night, fair ladies, who have so highly honored a proscribed and banished Prince.—Good- night, my brave friends ;—may the happiness we have this eve- ning experienced be an omen of our return to these our paternal halls, speedily and in triumph, and of many and many future meetings of mirth and pleasure in the palace of Holyrood!” When the Baron of Bradwardine afterward mentioned this adieu of the Chevalier, he never failed to repeat ina melan- choly tone, Audiit, et voti Phoebus succédere partem Mente dedit ; partem volucres dispersit in auras ; “which,” as he added, “is weel rendered into English metre by my friend Bangour : Ae half the prayer, wi’ Phoebus grace did find, The t’other half he whistled down the wind.” CHAPTER FORTY-FOURTH. THE MARCH. THE conflicting passions and exhausted feelings of Waverley had resigned him to late but sound repose. He was dreaming of Glennaquoich, and had transferred to the halls of Ian nan Chaistel the festal train which so lately graced those of Holy- rood. ‘The pibroch too was distinctly heard; and this at least was nojlelusion, for the ‘‘ proud step of the chief piper” of the ““chlain Mac-Ivor’”’ was perambulating the court before the door of his Chieftain’s quarters, and,as Mrs. Flockhart, appar- ently no friend to his minstrelsy, was pleased to observe, “oarring the very stane-and-lime wa’s dingle wi’ his screech- * Which is, or was wont to be, the old air of “‘ Good-night, and joy he wi’ you a’!’ . i Lee *HalAkaoadahaaain, cee WAVERLEY. ing.” Of course, it soon became too powerful for Waverley’s dre am, with which it had at first rather harmonized. The sound of Callum’s brogues in his apartment (for Mac: Ivor had again assigned Wav erley to his care) was the next note of parting. “ “Winna yere honor bang up? Vich Ian Vohr and ta Prince are awa to the lang green glen ahint the clachan, tat they ca’ the King’s Park, * and mony ane’s on his ain shanks the day that will be carried on ither folk’s ere night.” Waverley sprung up, and, with Callum’s assistance and in structions, adjusted his tartans in proper costume. Callum told him also, ‘ tat his leather dordach wi’ the lock on her was come frae Doune, and she was awa again in the wain wi’ Vich Ian Vohr’s walise.” By this periphrasis Waverley readily apprehended his port- manteau was intended. He thought upon the mysterious packet of the maid of the cavern, w hich seemed always to es- cape him when within his very grasp. But this was no time for indulgence of curiosity; and having declined Mrs. Flockhart’s compliment of a morning, i.é., a matutinal dram, being probably the only man in the Chevalier’s army by whom such a courtesy would have been rejected, he made his adieus, and departed with Callum. “Callum,” said he, as they proceeded down a dirty close to gain the southern skirts of the Canongate, “ what shall I do for a horse?” ‘Ta deil ane ye maun think o’,” said Callum. * Vach lan Vohr’s marching on foot at the head o’ his kin, (not to say ta Prince, wha does the like), wi’ his target on his shoulder ; ; and ye maun e’en be neighbor-like.” And so I will, Callum—give me my target ;—so, there we ATE fixed. How does it look?” “Like the bra’ Highlander tat’s painted on the board afore the mickle change- house they ca’ Luckie Middlemass’s,” an- swered Callum; meaning, I must observe, a high compliment, for, in his opinion, Luckie Middlemass’s sign was an exquisite specimen of art. Waverley, however, not feeling the full force of this polite simile, asked him no further questions. Upon extricating themselves from the mean and dirty suburbs of the metropolis, and emerging into the open air, Waverley felt a renewal both of health and spirits, and turned his recollection with firmness upon the events of the preceding * The main body of the Highland army encamped, or rather bivouacked. in that part of the King’s Park which lies toward the village of Dudding ston.WAVERLEY. 241 evening, and with hope and resolution toward those of the approaching day. When he had surmounted a small craggy eminence, called St. Leonard’s Hill, the King’s en or the hollow betw een the mountain of Arthur's Seat, and the rising grounds on which the southern part of Edinburgh is now built, Tay beneath him, and displayed a singular and animating prospect. It was oc- cupied by the army ‘of the High landers, now in the act of pre- paring for their march. Wav erley had already seen something of the kind at the hunting-match which he attended with Ferous Mac-Ivor ; but this was on a stile of much greater magnitude, and incomparably deeper interest. The rocks which formed the back emt t a pereyrerrpyyernav ys cir voot etney sane x Pi) renee242 WAVERLEY. guard of the army: and their standards, of which they had . rather too many in respect of their numbers, were seen waving upon the extreme verge of the horizon. Many horsemen of i this body, among whom Waverley accidentally remarked Bal- mawhapple, and his lieutenant, Jinker (which last, however, had been reduced, with several others, by the advice of the . Baron of Bradwardine, to the situation of what he called re- formed officers, or reformadoes), added to the liveliness, though by no means to the regularity, of the scene, by galloping thei horses as fast forward as the pass would permit, to join their | proper station in the van. ‘The fascinations of the Circes of the High Street, and the potations of strength with which they A had been drenched over night, had probably detained these heroes within the walls of Edinburgh somewhat later than was consistent with their morning duty. Of such loiterers, the prudent took the longer and circuitous, but more open route, to attain their place in the march, by keeping at some distance from the infantry and making their way through the inclosures to the right, at the expense of leaping over or pulling down the dry-stone fences. ‘The irregular appearance and vanishing of these small parties of horsemen, as well as the confusion occasioned by those who endeavored, though generally without effect, to press to the front through the crowd of Highlanders, naugre their curses, oaths, and opposition, added to the pic- turesque wildness what it took from the military regularity of the scene. While Waverley gazed upon this remarkable spectacle, i rendered yet more impressive by the occasional discharge of ! cannon-shot from the Castle at the Highland guards as they were withdrawn from its vicinity to join their main body, Cal- lum, with his usual freedom of interference, reminded him that Vich Ian Vohr’s folk were nearly at the head of the column of march, which was still distant, and that “ they would gang very fast after the cannon fired.” Thus admonished, Waverley walked briskly forward, yet often casting a glance upon the darksome clouds of warriors who were collected before and beneath him. A nearer view, indeed, rather diminisled the effect impressed on the mind by the more distant appearance of the army. The leading men of each clan were well armed i with broadsword, target, and fusee, to which all added the | dirk, and most the steel pistol. But these consisted of gentle: | men, that is, relations of the chief, however distant, and who had an immediate title to his countenance and _ protection. Finer and hardier men could not have been selected out of any army in Christendom ; while the free and independentWAVERLEY, 243 habits which each possessed, and which each was yet so well taught to subject to the command of his chief, and the peculiar mode of discipline adopted in Highland warfare, rendered them equally formidable by their individual courage and high spirit, and from their rational conviction of the necessity of acting in unison, and of giving their national mode of attack the fullest opportunity of success. But, in a lower rank to these, there were found individuals of an inferior description, the common peasantry of the High. land country, who, although they did not allow themselves to be so called, and claimed often, with apparent truth, to be of more ancient descent than the master whom they served, bore nevertheless, the livery of extreme penury, being indif. ferently accoutred, and worse armed, half-naked, stinted in growth, and miserable in aspect. Each important clan had some of those Helots attached to them ;—thus, the Mac-Couls, 5 though tracing their descent from Comhal, the father of Finn or Fingal, were a sort of Gibeonites, or hereditary servants to the Stuarts of Appine ; the Macbeths, descended from the un- happy monarch of that name, were subjects to the Morays, and clan Donnochy, or Robertsons of Athole: and many other examples might be given, were it not for the risk of hurting any pride of clanship which may yet be left, and thereby draw- ing a Highland tempest into the shop of my publisher. Now these same Helots, though forced into the field by the arbitrary authority of the chieftains under whom they hewed wood and drew water, were, in general, very sparingly fed, ill-dressed, and worse armed. ‘The latter circumstance was indeed owing chiefly to the general disarming act, which had been carried into effect ostensibly through the whole Highlands, although most of the chieftains contrived to elude its influence by retain- ing the weapons of their own immediate clansmen, and deliver- ing up those of less value, which they collected from these inferior satellites. It followed, as a matter of course, that, as we have already hinted, many of these poor fellows were brought to the field in a very wretched condition. From this it happened, that, in bodies, the van of which were admirably well-armed in their own fashion, the rear re- sembled actual banditti. Here was a pole-axe, there a sword without a scabbard ; here a gun without a lock, there a scythe set straight upon a pole ; and some had only their dirks, and bludgeons or stakes pulled out of hedges. The grim, un. combed, and wild appearance of these men, most of whom gazed with all the admiration of ignorance upon the most ordi nary production of domestic art, created surprise in the Low « ‘ . SIMO AA aaah Bene serene oor Se Poe! > ET Tt ere ron ernns tt cot pera ; “Pa eT Ree eee eee 244 WAVERLEY. lands, but it also created terror. So little was the condition of be Highlands known at that late period, that the characte and appearance of their population, while thus sallying forth as military adventurers, convey ed to the south-country Lowlanders as much surprise as if an invasion of African negroes or Es- quimaux Indians had issued forth from the northern mountains of their own native country. It cannot therefore be wondered if Waverley, who had hitherto judged of the Highlanders gen- ay from the samples which el policy of Fergus had from ne to time exhibited, should have feltdamped and aaron shen a the daring attempt of a body not then exceeding four thou- sand men n, and of whom not above half the number, at the utmost, were armed, to change the fate, and alter the dynasty, of the British kingdoms. As he moved along the column, which still remained stationary an iron gun, the only piece of artillery possessed by the army which meditated so important a peitogeiny was fired as the signal of march. The Chevalier had expressed a wish to leave this useless piece of ordnance behind him; but to his surprise, the Highland chiefs interposed to solicit that it might accompany their march, pleading the prejudices of their fol- lowers, who, little accustomed to artillery, attached a degree of absurd importance to this field-piece, and expected it would contribute essentially to a victory which they could only owe to their own muskets and broadswords. Two or three French artillerymen were therefore appointed to the management of this military engine, which was drawn along by astring of High- land ponies, and was, after all, only used for the purpose of firing signals.* No sooner was its voice heard upon the present occasion, than the whole line was in motion. rise of his eyebrow, to which his shoulders corre- sponded in the same degree of elevation. “ Now: twa points of dubitation occur to me upon this topic. First, whether this service, or feudal homage, be at any event due to the person of the Prince, the words being, per Hayy ssum, caligas REGIS, the boots of the Eng himself; and | pray your opinion anent that epee before we proc eed Furth gr, “Why, he is Prince Regent,’ answered Maclvor,. with laudable composure of countenance; “‘and in the court of France all the honors are rendered to the person of the RegentWAVERLEY. oT which are due to that of the King. Besides, were I to pull off either of their boots, I would render that service to the young il Chevalier ten times more willi ngly than to his father.’ Ay, but I talk not of personal predilections. However, your authority is of great weight as to the usages of the court of France : and doubt less the P rince, as alter ego, may have a right t o claim the omagium of the great tenants of the crown, since all faithful subjects are commanded, in the commission of regency, to respect him as the king g’s own person. Far, therefore, be it from me to diminish { the lustre of his authority, by withholding this a act of homage, so peculiarly calculated to give it splendor; for ] question if the Emperor of Germany hath his boots taken off | »y a free baron of the empire. But here lieth the second difficulty—The Prince wears no boots, but simply brogues and trews.” This last dilemma had almost disturbed Fergus’s gravity. ‘’ Why,” said he, “ you know, Baron, the proverb tells us, t’s ill taking the breeks off a Highlandman, ‘—and the boots are here in the same predicame nt. 6 T+ I The word calige, however,” continued the Baron, “ though I admit, that, by fami ily tradition, and even in our ancient armen it is explained Ze Boots, means, in its primitive sense ‘ather sandals ; and Caius Cesar, the nephew and _ successor of Caius Tiberi us, received the agnomen of Caligula, a caligults, sive caligts levioribus, guibus adolescentior usus fuerat in exercitu Givin: patris sui. And the calige were also prc oper to the monastic bodies ; for we read in an ancient Glossari lum, upon the rule of St. Benedict, in the Abl ey of St. Amand, were tied with latchets.” That will apply to the brogues,” said Fergus. “It will so, my dear Glennaquoich; and the words are express : Calic dicte sunt ae “igantur ; nam socct, non ligantur, sed tantum intromittuntur ; that is, calige are denominated from the ligatures wherewith ae are bot may be analogous to our mules, wl that calive yund ; whereas socct, which ulk the English denominate slippers, are only slipped upon the feet. The words of the charter are also alternative,—exuere, seu detrahere; that is, to undo, as in the case of sanda Is or brogues ; and to pull off, as we say ¥vernacularly, concerning boots. Yet I would we had more light; but I fear there is little chance of finding here- about any erudite author a re vestiarid.” “T should doubt it very much,” said the Chieftain, looking around on the straggling Highlanders, who were returning loaded with spoils of the slain, “ though the res vestiaria itself seems to be in some request at present.” Sean enShakinescetancatteters WAVERLEY. This remark coming within the Baron’s idea of jocularity, he honored it with a smile, but immediately resumed what te him appeared very serious business. ‘“‘ Bailie Macwheeble indeed holds an opinion, that this honorary service is due, from its very nature, sz petatur tan- tum, only if his Royal Highness shall require of the great tenant of the crown to perform that personal duty ; and indeed he pointed out the case in Dirleton’s Doubts and Queries, Grippet versus Spicer, anent the eviction of an estate od non solutum canonem, that is, for non-payment of a feu-duty of three pepper-corns a year, whilk were taxt to be worth seyen-eighths of a penny Scots, in whilk the defender was assoilzied. But I deem it safest, wi’ your good favor, to place myself in the way of rendering the Prince this service, and to proffer performance thereof ; and I shall cause the Bailie to attend with a schedule of a protest, whilk he has here prepared (taking out a paper), intimating, that if it shall be his Royal Highness’s pleasure to accept of other assistance at pulling off his ca/ige (whether the same shall be rendered boots or brogues) save that of the said Baron of Bradwardine, who is in presence ready and willing to perform the same, it shall in no wise impinge upon or prejudice the right of the said Cosmo Comyne Bradwardine to perform the said service in future; nor shall it give any esquire, valet of the chamber, squire, or page, whose assistance it may please his Royal Highness to employ, any right, title, or ground, for evicting from the said Cosmo Comyne Bradwardine the estate and barony of Bradwardine, and others held as aforesaid, by the due and faithful performance thereof.” Fergus highly applauded this arrangement; and the Baron took a friendly leave of them, with a smile of contented impor- tance upon his visage. ‘“Long live our dear friend the Baron,” exclaimed the Chief, as soon as he was out of hearing, ‘ for the most absurd original] that exists north of the Tweed! I wish to heaven I had recom- mended him to attend the circle this evening with a boot-ketch under his arm. I think he might have adopted the suggestion, if it had been made with suitable gravity.” 7 S ‘“And how can you take pleasure in making a man of his worth so ridiculous ?” ‘“ Begging pardon, my dear Waverley, you are as ridiculous ashe. Why, do you not see that the man’s whole mind is wrapped up in this ceremony? He has heard and thought of it since infancy, as the most august privilege and ceremony in the world ; and I doubt not but the expected pleasure of per- forming it was a principal motive with him for taking up arms,WAVERLEY. Depend upon it, had I endeavored to divert him from exposing himself, he would have treated me as an ignorant conceited coxcomb, or perhaps might have takena fancy to cut my throat; a pleasure which he once proposed to himself upon some point of etiquette, not half so important, in his eyes, as this matter of boots or brogues, or whatever the calige shall finally be pro- nounced by the learned. But I must go to headquarters to prepare the Prince for this extraordinary scene. My informa- tion will be well taken, for it will give him a hearty laugh at present, and put him on his guard against laughing, when it might be very maZa-propos. So, au revoir, my dear Waverley.” CHAPTER FORTY-NINTH. THE ENGLISH PRISONER. THE first occupation of Waverley, after he departed from the Chieftain, was to go in quest of the officer whose life he had saved. He was guarded, along with his companions in misfortune, who were very numerous, in a gentleman’s house near the field of battle. On entering the room where they stood crowded together, Waverley easily recognized the object of his visit, not only by the peculiar dignity of his appearance, but by the appendage of Dugald Mahony, with his battle-axe, who had stuck to him from the moment of his captivity, as if he had been skewered to his side. his close attendance was, perhaps, for the pur- pose of securing his promised reward from Edward, but it also operated to save the English gentleman from being plundered in the scene of general confusion; for Dugald sagaciously ar- gued, that the amount of the salvage which he might be allowed, would be regulated by the state of the prisoner, when he should deliver him over to Waverley. He hastened to assure Waverley, therefore, with more words than he usually employed, that he had “keepit ta s¢dier roy haill, and that he wasna a plack the waur since the ferry moment when his honor forbad her to gie him a bit glamhewit wi’ her Lochaber axe.” Waverley assured Dugald of a liberal recompense, and, ap: proaching the English officer, expressed his anxiety to do any: thing which might contribute to his convenience under his present unpleasant circumstances, “I am. not so inexperienced a soldier, sir,” answered the I’nglishman, “as to complain of the fortune of war. Iam only prem reressgocr sopra RS STS errs SUSE OS2 See oes R ee nice WAVERLEY. grieved to see those scenes acted in our own island, which 1! have often witnessed elsewhere with comparative indifference.” ““ Another such day as this,” said Waverley, “and I trust the cause of your regrets will be removed, and all will again re- turn to peace and. order.” : The officer smiled and shook his head. ‘I must not forget my situation so far as to attempt a formal confutation of that opinion ; but, notwithstanding your success, and the valor which achieved it, you have undertaken a task to which your strength appears wholly inadequate.” At this moment Fergus pushed into the press. “Come, Edward, come along ; the Prince has gone to Pinkie- house for the night; and we must follow, or lose the whole ceremony of the cage. Your friend, the Baron, has been guilty of a great piece of cruelty; he has insisted upon drag- ging Bailie Macwheeble out to the field of battle. Now you must know the Bailie’s greatest horror is an armed Highlander, or a loaded gun; and there he stands, listening to the Baron’s instructions concerning the protest, ducking his head like a sea- guli at the report of every gun and pistol that our idle boys are firing upon the fields ; and undergoing, by way of penance, at every symptom of flinching, a severe rebuke from his patron, who would not admit the discharge of a whole battery of can- non, within point-blank distance, as an apology for neglecting a discourse, in which the honor of his family is interested.” ‘* But how has Mr. Bradwardine got him to venture so far?”’ said Edward. ‘Why, he had come as far as Musselburgh, I fancy, in hopes of making some of our wills; and the peremptory commands of the Baron dragged him forward to Preston after the battle was over, He complains of one or two of our ragamuffins having put him in peril of his life, by presenting their pieces at him; but as they limited his ransom to an English penny, I don’t think we need trouble the provost-marshal upon that subject. So, come along, Waverley.” “Waverley!” said the English officer, with great emotion ; “the nephew of Sir Everard Waverley, of shire ?” “The same, sir,” replied our hero, somewhat surprised at the tone in which he was addressed. “IT am at once happy and grieved,” said the prisoner, “ ta have met with you.” ““T am ignorant, sir,’ served so much interest.” ‘Did your uncle never mention a friend called Talbot?” “I have heard him talk with great regard of such a person,” > answered Waverley, ‘how I have deWAVERLEY. 265 replied Edward; “a colonel. I believe, in the army, and the hus band of Lady Emily Blandeville ; but I thought Colonel lalbot had been abroad. “I am just returned,” answered the officer; “and being in Scotland, thought it my duty to eC t where my services promised to be useful. Yes, Mr. Waverl ley, 1 am that Colonel Talbot, the husband of the lady you have’ named ; and I am proud to acknowledge that I owe alike my professional rank and my domestic happiness to your generous and noble-minded relative. Good God! that I should find his nephew in such a dress, and engaged in such a cause!” Sir,” said Fergus, haughtily, ‘ those of men of birth and honor. 2 ee the dress and cause are My sitt uation forbids me to dispute your assertion,” said Colonel Talbot ; “ otherwise it were no difficult matter to show, that neither courage nor pride of lines age can gild a bad cause. But, with Mr . Waverley’ S permission, and yours, sir, if yours also must be asked, I would wi illingly speak « a few words with him on affairs connected with his own family. “Mr. Waverley, sir, regulates his own motions. —You will follow me, I suppose, to Pinkie,” said Fe ergus, turning to Ed- ward, “when you have finished your discourse with this new Beauetatanes ?”” So saying, the Chief of Glennaquoich adjusted his plaid with rather more than his usual air of haughty as- sumption, and left the apartment. The interest of W averley readily procured for Colonel Tal- bot the freedom of a adjourning to a large garden belonging to his place of confinement. They walked a few paces in silence, Colonel Talbot ap parently studying how to open what he had to say; at length he addressed Kx lw ard. ““ Mr. Wav erley, you have this day saved my life; and yet I would to God that I had lost it, ere I had found you we earring the uniform and cockade of these men, ‘I forgive your reproach, Colonel Talbot ; it is well meant, and your education and p! ejudices render it natural. Butthere is nothing extraordinary in finding a man, whose honor has been publicly and unjustly assailed, in the situation which promised most fair to afford him satisfaction on his calum- niators,’ “ I should rather say, in the situation most likely to confirm the reports which they have circulated,” said Colonel Talbot, ‘by following the very line of conduct ascribed to you. Are you aware, Mr. W averley, of the infinite distress, and even danger, which your present conduct had occasioned to your nearest relatives ?’ Nearer . oS Su Vansnance a woreey reer WAVERLEY. “Danger !:” “Ves, sir, danger. When I left England, your uncle and father had been obliged to find bail to answer a charge of treason, to which they were only admitted by the exertion of the most powerful interest. I came down to Scotland with the sole purpose of rescuing you from the gulf into which you have precipitated yourself ; nor can I estimate the consequences to your family of your having openly joined the rebellion, since the very suspicion of your intention was so perilous to them. Most deeply do I regret that I did not meet you before this last and fatal error.” “T am really ignorant,” said Waverley, in a tone of reserve, “why Colonel Talbot should have taken so much trouble on my account.” “ Mr. Waverley,” answered Talbot, “I am dull at appre- hending irony ; and therefore I shall answer your words accord- ing to their plain meaning. JI am indebted to your uncle for benefits’ greater than those which a son owes to a father. I acknowledge to him the duty of a son; and as | know there is no manner in which I can requite his kindness so well as by serving you, I will serve you, if possible, whether you will permit me or no. The personal obligation which you have this day laid me under (although in common estimation as great as one human being can bestow on another) adds nothing to my zeal on your behalf; nor can that zeal be abated by any coolness with which you may please to receive it.” “Your intentions may be kind, sir,” said Waverley, dryly; “but your language is harsh, or at least peremptory.” “On my return to England,” continued Colonel Talbot, “after long absence, I found your uncle, Sir Everard Waverley, in the custody of a king’s messenger, in consequence of the suspicion brought upon him by your conduct. He is my oldest friend—how often shall I repeat it?—my best benefactor ; he sacrificed his own views of happiness to mine—he never uttered a word, he never harbored a thought, that benevolence itself might not have thought or spoken. I found this man in con- finement, rendered harsher to him by his habits of life, his natural dignity of feeling, and—forgive me, Mr. Waverley—by the cause through which this calamity had come upon him. I cannot disguise from you my feelings, upon this occasion ; they were most painfully unfavorable to you. Having, by my family interest, which you probably know is not inconsiderable, succeeded in obtaining Sir Everard’s release, I set out for Scot- land. <* saw Colonel Gardiner, a man whose fate alone is sufficient to render this insurrection forever execrable. In theWAVERLEY. 264 course of conversation with him, I found, that, from late cir- cumstances, from a re-examination of the persons engaged in the mutiny, and from his original good opinion of your charac. ter, he was much softened toward you; and I doubted not, that if I could be so fortunate as to discover you all might yet be well. But this unnatural rebellion has ruined all. I have, for the first time, in a long and active military life, seen Britons disgrace themselves by a panic flight, and that before a foe without either arms or discipline! and now I find the heir of my dearest friend—the son, I may say, of his affections —sharing a triumph, for whichhe ought the first to have blushed. Why should I lament Gardiner ? his lot was happy, compared to mine!” There was so much dignity in Colonel Talbot’s manner, such a mixture of military pride and manly sorrow, and the news of Sir Everard’s imprisonment was told in so deep a tone of feeling, that Edward stood mortified, abashed, and distressed, in presence of the prisoner, who owed to him his life not many hours before. He was not sorry when Fergus interrupted their conference a second time. “His Royal Highness commands Mr. Waverley’s attend- ance.” Colonel Talbot threw upon Edward a reproachful glance, which did not escape the quick eye of the High- land Chief. “ His immediate attendance,” he repeated, with considerable emphasis. Waverley turned again toward the Colonel. ‘““ We shall meet again,” he said ; “in the meanwhile, every possible accommodation ”— “I desire none,” said the Colonel; “let me fare like the meanest of those brave men, who, on this day of calamity, have preferred wounds and captivity to flight ; I would almost exchange places with one of those who have fallen, to know that my words have made a suitable impression on your mind.” “Let Colonel Talbot be carefully secured,” said Fergus to the Highland officer, who commanded the guard over the prisoners ; “itis the Prince’s particular command; he isa prisoner of the utmost importance.” “ But let him want no accommodation suitable to his ranks? said Waverley. “Consistent always with secure custody,” reiterated Fer- gus. ‘The officer signified his acquiescence in both commands, and Edward followed Fergus to the garden-gate, where Callum Beg, with three saddle-horses, awaited them. Turning his head, he saw Colonel Talbot reconducted to his place of con- finement by a file of Highlanders ; he lingered on the thresh- ) x eS EnPaice ates eee a acme os 268 WAVERLEY. old of the door, and made a signal with his hand toward Waverley, as if enforcing the language he had held toward him. “ Horses,” said Fergus, as he mounted, “are now as plenty as blackberries; every man may have them for the catching. Come, let Callum adjust your stirrups, and let us to Pinkie- house* as fast as these ci-divant dragoon-horses choose to carry us.” GOVCAT It ho a Le 28. RATHER UNIMPORTANT. “T was turned back,” said Fergus to Edward as they gal- loped from Preston to Pinkie-house, “ by a message from the Prince, But, I suppose you know the value of this most noble Colonel Talbot as a prisoner. He is held one of the best officers among the red-coats;a special friend and favorite of the Elector himself, and of that dreadful hero the Duke of Cumberland, who has been summoned from his triumphs at Fontenoy to come over and devour us poor Highlanders alive. Has he been telling you how the bells of St. James’s ring ? Not ‘turn again, Whittington,’ like those of Bow, in the days Orcyore? © “Fergus! ” said Waverley, with a reproachful look. “Nay, I cannot tell what to make of you,” answered the Chief of Mac-Ivor, “ you are blown about with every wind of doctrine. “Here have we gained a victory, unparalleled in his- tory—and your behavior is praised by every living mortal to the skies—and the Prince is eager to thank you in person— and all our beauties of the White Rose are pulling caps for you,—and you the preaux chevalier of the day, are stooping on your horse’s neck like a butter-woman riding to market, and looking as black as a funeral.” “Tam sorry for Colonel Gardiner’s death ; he was once very kind to me.” “Why, then, be sorry for five minutes, and then be glad again ; his chance to-day may be ours to-morrow. And what does it signify ?—the next best thing to victory is honorable death ; but it isa pzs-a//er, and one would rather a foe had it than one’s self.” * Charles Edward took up his quarters after the battle at Pinkie-house adjoining to Mussleburgh.WAVERLEY. “ But Colonel Talbot has informed me that my father and uncle are both imprisoned by government on my account. “We'll put in bail, my boy; old Andrew Ferrara * shall lodge his security ; ; and J I should like to see him put to fatty it in Westminster Hall. “ Nay, they are already at liberty upon bail of a more civic disposition. Ms “'I'hen why is thy noble spirit cast down, Edward? Dost think that the Elector’s Ministers are such doves as to set their enemies at liberty at this critical moment, if the ey could or durst confine and punish them? Assure thyself that either they have no charge against your relations on which they can continue — imprisonment, or else they are afraid of our friends, the jolly cavaliers of England. At any rate, you need not be apprehensive upon their account; and we will find some means of conveying to them assurances of your safety.” Edward was silenced, but not satisfied. with these reasons. He had now been more than once shocked at the small degree of sympathy which Fergus exhibited for the feelings even of those whom he loved, if they did not correspond with his own mood at the time, and more especially if they thwarted him while earnest in a favorite pursuit. Fergus sometimes indeed observed that he had offended Waverley, but, always intent upon some favorite plan or project of his own, he was never sufficiently aware of the extent or duration of his displeasure, so that the reiteration of these petty offences somewhat cooled the volunteer's extreme attachment to his officer. The Chevalier received Waverley with his usual favor, and paid him many com pliments on his dist ingul shed ae He Talbot, ark when he ied aaa all the info cance. which Edward was able to give concerning him and his connections, he proceeded,—* I cannot but think, Mr. Waverley, that since this gentleman is so particularly connected with our worthy and excellent friend, Sir Everard Waverley, and since his lady is of the house of Blandeville, whose devotion to the true and loyal principles of the Church of England is so generally known, the Colonel’s own private sentiments cannot be un- favorablefo us, whatever mask he may have assumed to accom- modate himself to the times.” “If I am to judge from the language he this day held to me, I am under the necessity of differing widely from your Royal Highness.” “Well, it is worth making a trial at least. I therefore en- * Note X. Andrea di Ferrara. BSSSS aS nT TEE SRT ARECTSESY A EEREtrust you with the charge of Colonel Talbot, with power to act concerning him as you think most advisable ;—and I hope you will find means of ascertaining what are his real dispositions towards our Royal Father’s restoration.” ‘“‘T am convinced,” said Waverley, bowing, “that if Colonel Talbot chooses to grant his parole, it may be securely depended upon; but if he refuses it, I trust your Royal Highness will devolve on some other person than the nephew of his friend, the task of laying him under the necessary restraint.” ‘“‘T will trust him with no person but you,” said the Prince, smiling, but peremptorily repeating his mandate: “it is of im- portance to my service that there should appear to be a good intelligence between you, even if you are unable to gain his confidence in earnest. You will therefore receive him into your quarters, and in case he declines giving his parole, you must apply for a proper guard. I beg you will go about this directly. We return to Edinburgh to-morrow.” Being thus remanded to the vicinity of Preston, Waverley lost the Baron of Bradwardine’s solemn act of homage. So little, however, was he at this time in love with vanity, that he had quite forgotten the ceremony in which Fergus had labored to engage his curiosity. But next day a formal Gazette was circulated, containing a detailed account of the battle of Glads- muir, as the Highlanders chose to denominate their victory. It concluded with an account of the Court afterward held by the Chevalier at Pinkie-house, which contained this among other high-flown descriptive paragraphs :— “Since that fatal treaty which annihilates Scotland as anh independent nation, it has not been our happiness to see hex princes receive, and her nobles discharge, those acts of feudal homage, which, founded upon the splendid actions of Scottish valor, recall the memory of her early history, with the manly and chivalrous simplicity of the ties which united to the Crown the homage of the warriors by whom it was repeatedly upheld and defended. But on the evening of the 20th, our memories were refreshed with one of those ceremonies which belong to the ancient days of Scotland’s glory. After the circle was formed, Cosmo Comyne Bradwardine, of that ilk, colonel in the service, étc. etc. etc., came before the Prince, attended by Mr. D. Macwheeble, the Bailie of his ancient barony of Bradwar dine (who, we understand, has been lately named a commis- sary), and, under form of instrument, claimed permission to perform, to the person of his Royal Highness, as representing nis father, the service used and wont, for which, under a char ter of Robert Bruce (of which the original was produced andWAVERLEY. 277 inspected by the Masters of his Royal Highness’s Chancery, for the time being), the claimant held the barony of Brad- wardine and lands of Tully-Veolan. His claim was admitted and registered, his Royal Highness having placed his foot upon a cushion, the Baron of Br radwardine, kneeling upon his right knee, proceeded to undo the latchet of the brogue, or low-heeled Highland shoe, which our gallant young hero w ears in compli- ment to his brave followers. When this was performed, his Royal Highness declared the ceremony completed ; and em- bracing the gallant veteran, protested that nothing but com- pliance with an ordinance of Robert Bruce could have induced him to receive even the symbolical performance of a menial office from hands which had fought so bravely to put the crown upon the head of his father. The Baron of ‘Bradwardine then took instruments in the hands of Mr. Commissary Macwhee- ble, bearing, that all points and circumstances of the act of homage had been rite et solenniter acta et peracta; anda cor- responding entry was made in the protocol of the Lord High- Chamberlain, and in the record of Ch 1ancery. We understand that it is in contemplation of his Royal Highness, when his Majesty’s pleasure can be known, to raise Colonel Bradwardine to the peerage, by the title of Viscount Bradwardine, of Brad- wardine and Tully-Veolan, and th at, in the meanwhile, his Royal Highness, in his father’s name and authority, has been pleased to grant him an honorable augmentation to his Poe coat of arm, being a budget or boot- -jack, disposed saltier-wise with a naked broadsw ord, to be borne in the dexter cantle of the shield ; and, as an additional motto, on a scroll beneath, the words, ‘ Draw and Draw off” “Were it not for the recollection of Fergus’s raillery,” thought Waverley to himself, when he had perused this long and grave document, ‘“ how very tolerable would all this sound, and how little should [ have thought of connecting it with any ludicrous idea! Well, after all, everything has its fair, as well as its seamy tee and truly I do not see why the Baron’s boot- jack may not stand as fair in heraldry as the water-buckets, wagons, cart-wheels, plough- socks, sh uttles, candlesticks, and other ordinaries, conveying ideas of anything save chiv alry, which appear in the arms of some of our most ‘ancient gentry. ” —This, however, is an episode in respect to the principal story. W hen Wav erley returned to Preston, and rejoined Colonel Talbot, he found him recovered from the strong and obvious emotions with which a concurrence of unpleasing events had affected him. He had regained his natural manner, which was tbat of an English gentleman and soldier, manly, open, and gen- eT . meet sae ase STEREO Soc Serr aaa 5s TESTA ASS Meh poe ROR s 2 ERE: ORipnieary nyse spies BD aoe Lees272 WAVERLEY. erous, but not unsusceptible of prejudice against those of a dif: ferent country, or who opposed him in px olitical tenets. When Waverley acquainted Colonel Talbot with the Chevalier’s pur- pose to commit him to his charge, “I ae not think to ha ave owed so much obligation to that young g gentleman,” he said, “ as is im- plied in this ‘destination. “I can at least cheert fully join in the prayer of the honest Presbyterian clergyman, that, as he has come among us seeking an earthly crown, his labors may be speedily rew peice with a heav enly one.* Ishall willingly give my parole not to attempt an escape vation your knowledge, since, in fact, it was to meet you that I came to Scotland; and I am glad it has happened even under this Ercan But I suppose we shall be but a short time together. Your Chev- alier (that is a name we may both give to him), with his plaids and blue-caps, will, I presume, be continuing his crusade south- ward?” “Not as I hear; I believe the army makes some stay in ‘dinburgh, to collect reinforcements.” ‘“‘ And to besiege the Castle?” said Talbot, smiling sarcas- tically. ‘Well, unless my old commander, General Preston, turn false metal, or the Castle sink into the North Loch, events which I deem equally probable, I think we shall have some time to make up our acquaintance. I have a guess that this gallant Chevalier has a design that I should be your proselyte ; and, as I wish you to be mine, there cannot be a more fair pro- posal than to afford us fair conference together. But as I spoke to-day under the influence of feelings I rarely give way to, I hope you will excuse my entering again upon controversy till we are somewhat better acquainted.”’ CHAPTER FIFTY-FIRST. INTRIGUE OF LOVE AND POLITICS. IT is not necessary to record in these pages the triumphant entrance of the Chevalier into Edinburgh after the decisive affair of Preston. One circumstance, however, may be noticed, because it illustrates the high spirit of Flora Mac-Ivor. The * The clergyman’s name was Mac-Vicar. Protected by the cannon of fie «castle, he preached every Sunday in the West Kirk, while the High- landers were i possession of Edinburgh; and it was in presence of some of the Jacobites that he prayed for Prince Charles Edward in the terms quoted in the text.WAVERLEY. 273 Highlanders, by whom the Prince was surrounded, in the license and extravagance of this joyful moment, fired their pieces re- peatedly, and one of these having been accidentally loaded with ball, the bullet grazed the young lady’s temple as she waved her handkerchief from a balcony.* Fergus, who beheld the accident, was at her side in an instant; and, on seeing that the wound was trifling, he drew his broadsword, with the purpose of rushing down upon the man by whose carelessness she had incurred so much danger, when, holding him by the plaid, “ Do not harm the poor fellow!” she cried; “‘for Heaven’s sake do not harm him; but thank God with me that the accident hap- pened to Flora Mac-Ivor; for had it befallen a Whig, they would have pretended that the shot was fired on purpose.” Waverley escaped the alarm which this accident would have occasioned to him, as he was unavoidably delayed by the ne- cessity of accompanying Colonel Talbot to Edinburgh. They performed the journey together on horseback, and for some time, as if to sound each other’s feelings and sentiments, they conversed upon general and ordinary topics. When Waverley again entered upon the subject which he had most at heart, the situation, namely, of his father and his uncle, Colonel Talbot seemed now rather desirous to alleviate than to aggravate his anxiety. This appeared particularly to be the case when he heard Waverley’s history, which he did not scruple to confide to him. “And so,” said the Colonel, “there has beéh no malice prepense, as lawyers, I think, term it, in this rash step of yours ; and you have been trepanned into the service of this Italian knight-errant by a few civil speeches from him, and one or two of his Highland recruiting sergeants? It is sadly foolish, to be sure, but not nearly so bad as I was led to expect. How- ever, you cannot desert, even from the Pretender, at the pres- ent moment,—that seems impossible. But I have little doubt that, in the dissensions incident to this heterogeneous mass of wild and desperate men, some opportunity may arise, by avail. ing yourself of which, you may extricate yourself honorably from your rash engagement before the bubble burst. If this can be managed, I would have you go toa place of safety in Flanders, which [ shall point out. And I think I can secure your pardon from Government after a few months’ residence abroad.” “JT cannot permit you, Colonel Talbot,” answered Wa- verly, “to speak of any plan which turns on my deserting an * Note Y. Miss Nairne.FaAanStntbasateei s 274 WAVERLEY. enterprise in which I may have engaged hastily, but certainly voluntarily, and with the purpose of abiding the issue.” “Well,” said Colonel Talbot, smiling, “leave me my thoughts and hopes at least at liberty, if not my speech. But have you never examined your mysterious packet?”’ “Tt is in my baggage,” replied Edward; ‘‘we shall find it in Edinburgh.” In Edinburgh they soon arrived. Waverley’s quarters had been assigned to him, by the Prince’s express orders, in a hand- some lodging, where there was accommodation for Colonel Talbot. His first business was to examine his portmanteau, and, after a very short search, out tumbled the expected packet. Waverley opened it eagerly. Under a blank cover, simply ad- dressed to E. Waverley, Esq., he found a number of open letters. ‘The uppermost were two from Colonel Gardiner, ad- dressed to himself. The earliest in date was a kind and gentle remonstrance for neglect of the writer’s advice respecting the disposal of his time during his leave of absence,—the renewal of which, he reminded Captain Waverley, would speedily ex- pire. “ Indeed,” the letter proceeded, “had it been otherwise, the news from abroad, and my instructions from the War-office, must have compelled me to recall it, as there is great danger, since the disaster in Flanders, both of foreign invasion and in- surrection among the disaffected at home. I therefore entreat you will repair, as soon as possible, to the headquarters of the regiment ; and I am concerned to add, that this is still the more necessary, as there is some discontent in your troop, and I postpone inquiry into particulars until I can have the advant- age of your assistance. The second letter, dated eight days later, was in such a style as might have been expected from the Colonel’s receiving no answer to the first. It reminded Waverley of his duty as aman of honor, an officer, and a Briton; took notice of the increasing dissatisfaction of his men, and that some of them had been heard to hint that their captain encouraged and approved of their mutinous behavior ; and, finally the writer expressed the utmost regret and surprise that he had not obeyed his com- mands by repairing to headquarters, reminded him that his leave of absence had been recalled, and conjured him, in a style in which paternal remonstrance was mingled with military authority, to redeem his error by immediately joining his regi- ment. ‘‘ That I may be certain,” concluded the letter, ‘that this actually reaches you, I despatch it by Corpora! Tims, of your troop, with orders to deliver it into your hand.” Upon reading these letters, Waverley, with great bitternessWAVERLEY. 275 of feeling, was compelled to make the amende honorable to the memory of the brave and excellent writer ; for surely, as Col. onel Gardiner must have had every reason to conclude they had come safely to hand, less could not follow, on their being neg: lected, than that third and final summons, which Waverley actually received at Glennaquoich, though too late to obey it And his being superseded, in Consequence of his apparent neglect of this last command, was so far from being a harsh or severe proceeding, that it was plainly inevitable. The next letter he unfolded was from the Major of the regiment, acquaint- ing him that a report, to the disadvantage of his reputation, was public in the country, Stating, that one Mr. Falconer of Ballihopple, or some such name, had proposed, in his presence, a treasonable toast, which he permitted to pass in silence, although it was so gross an affront to the royal family, that a gentleman in company, not remarkable for his zeal fox govern: ment, had nevertheless taken the matter up ; and that, suppos- ing the account true, Captain Waverley had thus suffered another, comparatively unconcerned, to resent an affront directed against him personally as an officer, and to go out with the person by whomit was offered. The Major concluded, that no one of Captain Waverley’s brother-officers could believe this scandalous story, but it was necessarily their joint opinion, that his own honor, equally with that of the regiment, depended upon its being instantly contradicted by his authority, etc., etc. etc: “What do you think of all this?” said Colonel Talbot, to whom Waverley handed the letters after he had perused them. “Think! it renders thought impossible. It is enough to drive me mad.” “Be calm, my young friend ; let us see what are these dirty scrawls that follow.” The first was addressed, “For Master W. Ruffin These,” “Dear sur, sum of our yong gulpins will not bite, thof I tuold them you shoed me the squoires own seel. But Tims will deliver you the lettrs as desired, and tell ould Addem he gave them to squoir’s hond, as to be sure yours is the same, and shall be ready for signal, and hoy for Hoy Church and Sachefrel,* as fadurysings at harvest whome. Yours, deer Subjs! CElesie * Poscriff. Do’e tell squoire we longs to heer from him, and has dootings about his not writing himself, and Lieftenant Bottler is smoky.” *[Henry Sacheverell, D. D., wasa violent high-churchman, who, in 1710, was impeached for an attack made on the Godolphin Whig ministry. He afterward became very popular. J BUS EESONRERIRERY Fu UICY CSTE TIS TIES SSSR SSDS276 WAVERLEY. “ This Ruffin, I suppose, then, is your Donald of the Cav. ern, who has intercepted your letters, and carried on a corre- spondence with the poor devil Houghton, as if under your authority !” “Tt seems too true. But who can Addem be?” “ Possibly Adam, for poor Gardiner, a sort of pun on his name.” The other letters were to the same purpose, and they soon received yet more camplete light upon Donald Bean’s machina- tions. John Hodges, one of Waverley’s servants, who had remained with the regiment, and had been taken at Preston, now made his appearance. He had sought out his master, with the pur- pose of again entering his service. From this fellow they learned, that, some time after Waverley had gone from the headquarters of the regiment, a pedler called Ruthven, Ruffin, or Rivane, known among the soldiers by the name of Wily Will, had made frequent visits to the town of Dundee. He appeared to possess plenty of money, sold his commodities very cheap, seemed always willing to treat his friends at the ale-house, and easily ingratiated himself with many of Waverley’s troop, par- ticularly Sergeant Houghton, and one Tims, also a non-commis- sioned officer. ‘To these he unfolded, in Waverley’s name, a plan for leaving the regiment, and joining him in the Highlands, where report said the clans had already taken arms in great numbers. The men, who had been educated as. Jacobites, so far as they had any opinion at all, and who knew their landlord, Sir Everard, had always been supposed to hold \such tenets, easily fell into the snare. That Waverley was at a distance in the Highlands, was received as a sufficient excuse for transmit- ting his letters through the medium of the pedler ; and the sight of his well-known seal seemed to anthenticate the negotiations in his name, where writing might have been dangerous, ‘The cabal, however, began to take air, from the premature mutinous language of those concerned. Wily Will justified his appella- tive ; for, after suspicions arose, he was seen no more. When the Gazette appeared, in which Waverley was superseded, great part of his troop broke out into actual mutiny, but were sur- rounded and disarmed by the rest of the regiment. In conse- quence of the sentence of the court-martial, Houghton and Tims were condemned to be shot, but afterwards permitted to cast lots for life. Houghton, the survivor, showed much penitence, being convinced from the rebukes and explanations of Colonel Gardiner, that he had really engaged in a very heinous crime. It is remarkable, that, as soon as the poor fellow was satisfiedWAVERLEY. 244 of this, he became also convinced th at the instigator had acted without authority from Edward, saying, ‘‘ If it was dishonorable and against Old England, the squire could know nought about it; he never did, or thought to do, anything dishonorable,—na more didn’t Sir Everard, nor none of them afore him, and in that belief he would live and die that Ruffin had done it all of his own head.” The strength of conviction with which he expressed himself upon this subject, as well as his assurances that the letters intended for Wav erley had been delivered to Ruthven, made that revolution in Colonel Gardiner’s opinion which he ex- pressed to Talbot. _ The reader has long since understood that Donald Bean Lean played the part of tempter on this occasion. His motives were shortly these. Of an active and intriguing spirit, he had been long employed as a subaltern agent and spy by those in the confidence of the Chevalier, to an extent beyond what was suspected even by Fergus Mac-Ivor, whom, though obliged to him for protection, he regarded with fear and dislike. To suc- cess in this political department, he naturally looked for raising himself by some bold stroke above his present hazardous and precarious state of rapine. He was particularly employed in learning the strength of the regiments in Sc otland, the charac- ter of the officers, etc., and had long had his eye upon Waver- ley’s troop, as open to temptation. Donald even believed that Waverley Hiniself was at the bottom in the Stuart interest, which seemed confirmed by his long visit to the Jacobite Baron of Bradwardine. When, therefore, he came to his cave with one of Glennaquoich’s attendants, the robber, who could never ap- preciate his real motive, which was mere € curiosity, was so san- guine as to hope that his own talents were to be employ ed in some intrigue of consequence, under the auspices of this we calthy young E ngli shman. Nor was he undeceived by Wav erley’s neg- lecting all hints and openings for an explanation. His con- duct p nassed for prudent reserve, and somewhat piqued Donald Bean, who, supposing himself left out of a secret where confi- dence promised to be advantageous, determined to have his share in the drama, whether a regular part were assigned him or not. J*or this purpose, during Waverley’s sleep, he possessed himself of his seal, as a token to be used to any of the troopers whom he might discover to be possess ed of the captain’s confi- dence. His first journey to Dundee, the town w hete the regiment was quartered, undeceived him in hi IS original supposition, but opened to him a new field of action. He knew there would be no service so well rewarded by the friends of the Chevalier, as BEeMOrrer at tT Treen ir sey= STS asa s x Stet 2 aes SS WAVERLEY. seducing a part of the regular army to his standard. For this purpose, he opened the machinations with which the reader is hich form a clue to all the intricacies already acquainted, and w ative previous to Waverley’s leaving and obscurities of the nar Glennaquoich. | By Colonel Talbot’s advice, Waverley declined detaining in his service the lad whose evidence had thrown additional light on these intrigues. He represented to him that it would be doing the man an injury to engage him in a desperate under- taking, and that, whatever should happen, his evidence would go some length, at least, in explaining the circumstances under which Waverley himself had embarked in it. Waverley there- fore wrote a short statement of what had happened to his uncle and his father, cautioning them, however, in the present circum- stances, not to attempt to answer his letter. Talbot then gave the young man a letter to the commander of one of the English vessels of war cruising in the firth, requesting him to put the bearer ashore at Berwick, with a pass to proceed to shire. He was then furnished with money to make an expeditious journey, and directed to get on board the ship by means of bribing a fishing-boat, which, as they afterward learned, he easily affected. Tired of the attendance of Callum Beg, who, he thought, had some disposition to act as a spy on his motions, Waverley hired as a servant a simple Edinburgh swain, who had mounted the white cockade in a fit of spleen and jealousy, because Jenny Jop had danced a whole night with Corporal Bullock of the Fusileers. CHAPTER FIFTY-SECOND. INTRIGUES OF SOCIETY AND LOVE. CoLonEL TaLtBot became more kindly in his demeanor toward Waverley after the confidence he had reposedin him, and as they were necessarily much together, the character of the Colonel rose in Waverley’s estimation. There seemed at first something harsh in his strong expressions of dislike and censure, although no one was in the general case more open to conviction. The habit of authority had also given his manners some peremptory hardness, notwithstanding the polish which they had received from his intimate acquaintance with the higher circles. As a specimen of the military character, heWAVERLEY. differed from all whom Waverley had as yet seen. The soldier ship of the Baron of Bradwardine was marked by A doing that of Major Melville by a sort of martinet attention to the minutiae and technicalities of discipline, rather suitable to one who was to manceuvre a battalion, than to him who was to command an army; the military spirit of Fergus was so much W veeae and blended with his plans and political views, that it vas less that of a soldier than of a petty sovereign. But Col- onel Talbot was in every point the English sol dier. His whole soul was devoted to the service of his king and country, with- out feeling any pride i in knowing the theory of his art, with the Baron, or its practical minutiz with the Major, or in applying his science to his own particular plans of ambition, like the Chieftain of Glennaquoich. Added to this, he was a man of extended knowledge and cultivated taste, although strongly tinged, as we have already observed, with those prejudices which are peculiarly English. The character of Colonel Talbot dawned upon Edward by degrees ; for the delay of the Highlanders in the fruitless siege of Edinburgh Castle occupied several weel was most liquid, and best adapted for poetry; the opinion for the Gaelic, which probably might not have found supporters elsewhere, was here fiercely defended by seven Highland ladies, who talked at the top of their lungs, and screamed the company deaf, with examples of Celtic exphonia. Flora observing the Lowland ladies sneer at the comparison, produced some reasons to show that it was not altogether so absurd: but Rose, when asked for her opinion, gave it with animation, in praise of Italian, which she had studied with Waverley’s assistance. ‘She has a more correct ear than Flora, though a less accom- plished musician,” said Waverley to himself, “I suppose Miss Mac-Ivor will next compare Mac-Murrough nan Fonn to Ariosto !” Lastly, it so befell that the company differed whether Fer- gus should be asked to perform on the flute, at which he was an adept, or Waverley invited to read a play of Shakespeare, and the lady of the house good-humoredly undertook to collect the votes of the company for poetry or music, under the con- dition, that the gentleman whose talents were not laid under contribution that evening, should contribute them to enliven the next. It chanced that Rose had the casting vote. Now Flora, who seemed to impose it as a rule upon herself never errors SRR HST TEWAVERLEY. to countenance any proposal which might seem to encourage Waverley, had voted for music, providing the Baron would take his violin to accompany Fergus. ‘I wish you joy of your taste, Miss Mac-Ivor,” thought Edward, as they sought for his book. “T thought it better when we were at Glennaquoich ; but cer- tainly the Baron is no great performer, and Shakespeare is worth listening to.” Romeo and Juliet was selected, and Edward read with taste, feeling, and spirit, several scenes from that play. All the com- pany applauded with their hands, and many with their tears. Flora, to whom the drama was well known, was among the former: Rose, to whom it was altogther new, belonged to the latter class of admirers. ‘‘She has more feeling, too,” said Waverley, internally. The conversation turning upon the incidents of the play, and upon the characters, Fergus declared that the only one worth naming, as a man of fashion and spirit, was Mercutio. “TI could not,” he said, “quite follow all his old-fashioned wit, but he must have been a very pretty fellow, according to the ideas of his time.” ‘And it was a shame,” said Ensign Maccombich, who usu- ally followed his Colonel everywhere, fon that: Libbert; sot Taggart, or whatever was his name, to stick him under the other gentleman’s arm, while he was redding the fray.” The ladies, of course, declared loudly in favor of Romeo ; but this opinion did not go undisputed. The mistress of the house, and several other ladies,-severely reprobated the levity with which the hero transfers his affections from Rosalind to Juliet. Flora remained silent until her opinion was repeatedly requested, and then answered, she thought the circumstance objected to not only reconcilable to nature, but such as in the highest degree evinced the art of the poet. ‘‘ Romeo is de- scribed,” said she, “as a young man, peculiarly susceptible of the softer passions; his love is at first fixed upon a woman who could afford it no return; this he repeatedly tells you,— From love’s weak childish bow she lives unharmed ; and again,— She hath forsworn to love. Now, as it was impossible that Romeo’s love, supposing him 4 reasonable being, could continue to subsist without hope, the poet has, with great art, seized the moment when he was re- duced actually to despair, to throw in his way an object more accomplished than her by whom he had been rejected, and who is disposed to repay his attachment. I can scarce conceive aWAVERLEY. 291 situation more calculated to enhance the ardor of Romeo’s affection for Juliet than his being at once raised by her from the state of drooping melancholy in which he appears first upon the scene, to the ecstatic state in which he exclaims— come what sorrow can ; It cannot countervail the exchange of joy That one short moment gives me in her sight.” “Good, now, Miss Mac-Ivor,” said a young lady of quality, “do you mean to cheat us out of our prerogative ? will you persuade us love cannot subsist without hope, or that the lover must become fickle if the lady is cruel? O fie! I did not ex- pect such an unsentimental conclusion.” “* A lover, my dear Lady Betty,” said Flora, “ may,I conceive, persevere in his suit, under very discouraging circumstances. Affection can (now and then) withstand very severe storms of rigor, but not along polar frost of downright indifference. Don’t, even with your attractions, try the experiment upon any lover whose faith you value. Love will subsist on wonderfully little hope, but not altogether without it.” “It will be just like Duncan Mac-Girdie’s mare,” said Evan, ‘“if your ladyships please ; he wanted to use her by degrees to live without meat, and just as he had put her on a straw a-day, the poor thing died!” Evan’s illustration set the company a-laughing, and the dis- course took a different turn. Shortly afterwards the party broke up, and Edward returned home, musing on what Flora had said. “TI will love my Rosalind no more,” said he: “she has given me a broad enough hint for that; and I will speak to her brother, and resign my suit. But for Juliet—would it be handsome to interfere with Fergus’s pretensions ?>—though it is impossible they can ever succeed: and should they mis- carry, what then ?—why then alors comme alors.’ And with this resolution, of being guided by circumstances, did our hero commit himself to repose. CHAPTER PIEITY-FIFEH. A BRAVE MAN IN SORROW. Ir my fair readers should be of opinion that my hero’s levity in love is altogether unpardonable, I must remind them that all his eriefs and difficulties did not arise from that senti- mental source. Even the lyric poet, who complains so feelingly ARUP snr acs PRT Chen Ss ARR RRC292 WAVERLEY. of the pains of love, could not forget, that, at the same time. he was “in debt and in drink,” which, doubtless, were great aggravations of his distress. There were indeed whole days in which Waverley thought neither of Flora nor Rose Brad- wardine, but which were spent in melancholy conjectures on the probable state of matters at Waverley-Honour, and the dubious issue of the civil contest in which he was pledged. Colonel Talbot often engaged him in discussions upon the jus: tice of the cause he had espoused. “Not,” he said, “that it is possible for you to quit it at this present moment, for, come what will, you must stand by your rash engagement. EBut I wish you to be aware that the right is not with you; that you are fighting against the real interests of your country ; and that you ought, as an Englishman and a patriot, to take the first op: portunity to leave this unhappy expedition before the snowball melts.” In such political disputes, Waverley usually opposed the common arguments of his party, with which it is unnecessary to trouble the reader. But he had little to say when the Colonel urged him to compare the strength by which they had undertaken to overthrow the Government with that which was now assembling very rapidly for its support. ‘To this statement Waverley had but one answer: ‘If the cause I have under- taken be perilous, there would be the greater disgrace in aban- doning it.”” And in his turn he generally silenced Colonel Tal- bot, and succeeded in changing the subject. One night, when, after a long dispute of this nature, the friends had separated, and our hero had retired to bed, he was awakened about midnight by a suppressed groan. He started up and listened; it came from the apartment of Colonel Tal- bot, which was divided from his own by a wainscoted partition, with a door of communication. Waverley approached this door, and distinctly heard one or two deep-drawn sighs. What could be the matter? The Colonel had parted from him, ap- parently in his usual state of spirits. He must have been taken suddenly ill. Under this impression, he opened the door of communication very gently, and perceived the Colonel in his nightgown, seated by a table, on which lay a letter anda picture. He raised his head hastily, as Edward stood uncer- tain whether to advance or retire, and Waverley perceived that his cheeks were stained with tears. As if ashamed at being found giving way to his emotion, Colonel Talbot rose with apparent displeasure, and said, with some sternness, “I think, Mr. Waverley, my own apartment, and the hour, might have secured even a prisoner against ”——WAVERLEY. 293 “Do not say zztrusion, Colonel Talbot ; [heard you breathe hard, and feared you were ill: that alone could have induced me to break in upon you.” ‘“T am well,” said the Colonel, “ perfectly well.” ‘ But you are distressed,” said Edward : “is there anything can be done ?” “Nothing, Mr. Waverley; I was only thinking of home, anc 1 of some “unpleasant occurrences there.’ “ Good God, my uncle!” exclaimed Waverley ‘ No,—it is a grief entirely my own. I am eben you should have seen it disarm me so much; but it must have its course at times, that it may be at others more decently sup: ported. J would have kept it secret from you; for I think it will grieve you, and yet you can administer no consolation, But you have surprised me—I see you are surprised yourself,— and I hate mystery. Read that letter,” The letter was from Colonel Talbot’s sister, and in these words : ‘I received yours, my dearest brother, by Hodges. Sir E. W. and Mr. R. are still at large, but are not permitted to leave London. I wish to Heaven [ could give you as good an ac- count of matters in the square. But the news of the unh lappy affair at Preston came upon us, ‘vith the dreadful addition that you were among the fallen. You know Lady Emily’s state of health, when your friendship for Sir E. induced you to leave her. She was much harassed with the sad accounts from Scot land of the rebellion having broken out; but kept up her spirits, as, she said, it became your wife, and for the sake of the future heir, so long hoped for in vain. Alas, my dear brother, these hopes are now ended! Notwithstanding all my watchful care, this unhappy rumor reached her without preparation. Shé was taken ill immediately ; and the poor infant scarce survived its birth. Would to God this were all! But although the contra. diction of the horrible report by your own letter has greatly revived her spirits, yet Dr. apprehends, I grieve to a4 serious, and even dangerous, consequences to her health, espe- cially from the uncertainty in which she must necessarily re- main for some time, aggravated by the ideas she has formed of the ferocity of those with whom you are a prisoner. “Do uierefore, my dear brother, as soon as this reaches you, endeavor to gain your release, by parole, by ransom, or any way that is practicable. I do not exaggerate Lady E mily’ S state of health; but I must not—dare not—suppress the truth, —Fver, my dear Philip, your most affectionate sister, “Lucy Tatzor.” a "gps naaeseatbhiersnenann ~ SMITE ys Or SET ET eet a)See minha: oo Sea rs WAVERLEY. Edward stood motionless when he had perused this letter ; €or the conclusion was inevitable, that by the Colonel’s journey in quest of him, he had incurred this heavy calamity. It was severe enough, even its irremediable part; for Colonel Talbot and ‘Lady Emily, long without a_ family, had fondly exulted in the hopes which were now blasted. But this dis- appointment was nothing to the extent of the thre atened evil ; and Edward, with horror, regarded himself as the original cause of both. Ere he could collect himself sufficiently to speak, Colonel Talbot had recovered his usual composure of manner, though his troubled eye denoted his mental agony. ‘“‘ She is a woman, my young frie nd, who may justify evena soldier’s tears.” He -eached Shika the miniature, exhibiting features which fully sustified the eulogium; ‘and yet, God knows, what you see of her there is the least of the charms she possesses—possesse d, I should perhaps say—but God’s will be done 7 “You must fly—you must fly instantly to her relief. It is not—it shall not be too late.” ‘Fly !-_how is it possible ? “IT am your keeper—I restore your par for you.” “You cannot do so consistently with your duty, nor can I accept a discharge from you with due regard to my own honor —you would be made responsible “¢T will answer it with my head, if necessary,”’ said Waver ley, impetuously. “I have been the unhappy cause of the ae of your child—make me not the murderer of your wife.” ‘No, my dear Edward,” said Talbot, taking him kindly by the hand, “ you are in no respect to ae - and if I concealed this domestic distress for two days, it was lest your sensibility should view it in that light. You could not think of me, h ardly knew of my existence, when I left England in quest of you. It is a responsibility, Heaven knows, sufficiently he avy for mor- tality, that we must answer for the foreseen and direct result of our actions,—for their indirect and consequential operation, the great and good Being, who alone can foresee the depend- ence of human events on each other, hath not pronounced his frail creatures liable “But that you should have left Lady Emily,” said Waver- ley, with much emotion, “in the situation of all others the most interesting to a husband, to seek a” -———- sl only did my duty,” answered Colonel Talbot, calmly, “and I do not, ought not to regret it. If the path of gratitude arole.” am to answerWAVERLEY. 295 and honor were always smooth and easy, there would be little merit in following it; but it moves often in contradiction to our interest and passions, and sometimes to our better affec. tions. These are the trials of life, and this, though not the least bitter” (the tears came unbidden to his eyes) “is not the first which it has been my fate to encounter.—But we will talk tcl of this to-morrow,” he said, wringing Waverley’s hands. “ Good- night ; strive to forget it for a few hours. It will dawn, I think, by six, and it is now past two. Good-night.” Edward retired, without trusting his voice with a reply. Bs CHAPTER: FIETY-SEYEH. EXERTION, WHEN Colonel Talbot entered the breakfast-parlor next morning, he learned from Waverley’s servant that our hero had been abroad at an early hour, and was not yet returned. The morning was well advanced before he again appeared. He arrived out of breath, but with an air of joy that astonished Colonel Talbot. “There,” said he, throwing a paper on the table, “ there is my morning’s work.—Alick, pack up the Colonel’s clothes. Make haste, make haste.” The Colonel examined the paper with astonishment. It was a pass from the Chevalier to Colonel Talbot, to repair to Leith, or any other port in possession of his Royal Highness’s troops, and there to embark for England or elsewhere, at his free pleasure ; he only giving his parole of honor not to bear arms against the house of Stuart for the space of a twelve- month. “In the name of God,” said the Colonel, his eyes sparkling with eagerness, ‘how did you obtain this?” “T was at the Chevalier’s levee as soon as he usually rises. He was gone to the camp at Duddingston. | pursued him thither ; asked and obtained an audience—but I will tell you not a word more, unless I see you begin to pack.” ‘Before I know whether I can avail myself of this passport, or how it was obtained?” : ‘““O, you can take out the things again, you know.—N ow, £ see you busy, I will go on. When I. first mentioned your name, his eyes sparkled almost as bright as yours did two minutes since. ‘Had you,’ he earnestly asked, ‘shown any 9Sete eae ee east blimathasiaaees a 296 WAVERLEY. sentiments favorable to his cause?’ ‘Not in the least, nor was there any hope you would do so.’ His countenance fell. I requested your freedom. ‘Impossible,’ he said ;—‘ your im- portance, as a friend and confidant of such and such person- ages, made my request altogether extravagant.’ I told him my own story and yours; and asked him’ to judge what my feelings must be by his own. He has a heart, and a kind one, Colonel Talbot, you may say what you please. He took a sheet of paper, and wrote the pass with his own hand. ‘I will not trust myself with my council,’ he said ; ‘ they will argue me out of what is right. I will not endure that a friend, valued as I value you, should be Joaded with the painful reflections which must afflict you in case of further misfortune in Colonel Talbot’s family ; nor will I keep a brave enemy a prisoner under such circumstances. Besides,’ said he, ‘I think I can justify myself to my prudent advisers, by pleading the good effect such lenity will produce on the minds of the great English families with whom Colonel Talbot is connected.’ ” “There the politician peeped out,” said the Colonel. “Well, at leas the concluded like a king’s son.—‘ Take the passport ; I have added a condition for form’s sake ; but if the Colonel objects to it, let him depart without giving any parole whatever. Icome here to war with men, but not to distress or endanger women.’ ”’ ‘Well, I never thought to have been so much indebted to the Pretend ’”—— “To the Prince,” said Waverley, smiling. ‘To the Chevalier,” said the Colonel; “‘ it is a good travel- ling name, and which we may both freely use. Did he say anything more ? ” “ Only asked if there was anything else he could oblige me in; and when] replied in the negative, he shook me by the hand, and wished all his followers were as considerate, since some friends of mine not only asked all he had to bestow, but many things which were entirely out of his power, or that of the greatest sovereign upon earth. Indeed, he said, no prince seemed, in the eyes of his followers, so like the Deity as himself, if you were to judge from the extravagant requests which they daily preferred to him.” “Poor young gentleman !” said the Colonel ; “ I suppose he begins to feel the difficulties of his situation. Well, dear Waverley, this is more than kind, and shall not be forgotten while Philip ‘Talbot can remember anything. My life—pshaw —let Emily thank you for that—this is a favor worth fifty lives. I cannot hesitate on giving my parole in the circum- )WAVERLEY. stances : there it is—(1 am I to get off ? ” “ All that is settled : your baggage is packed, my horses wait, and a boat has been engaged, by the Prince’s permission, to put you on board the Fox frigate. I sent a messenger down to Leith on purpose,’ “ That will do excelle ntly well. Captain Beaver is my particular friend ; he will put me ashore at Berwick or Shields, trom whence I can ride post to London ;—and you must en- trust me with the packet of papers which you recovered by means of your Miss Bean Lean. I may have an opportunity of using them to your advantage .—But I see your Highland friend, Glen—— what do you call his barbarous name ? and his orderly with him—I must not call him his orderly cut-throat any more, I suppose. See how he walks as if the world were his ow n, with the bonnet on one side of his head, and his plaid puffed out across his breast! I should like now to meet that youth where my hands were not tied: I w ould tame his pride, or he should tame mine.” For shame, Colonel Talbot ! you swell at sight of tartan, as the bull is said to do at scarlet. You and Mac-Ivor have some points not much unlike, so far as national prejudice it concerned.” The latter part of this discourse took place in the street, They passed the Chief, the Colonel and he sternly and punctiliously greeting each other, like two duelists before mney take their eround, It was evident the dislike was mutual. ‘I never see that surly fellow that dogs his heels,” said the Colonel, after he had mounted his horse. “ but he reminds me of lines I have somewhere heard—upon the stage, I think : “——— Close behind him Stalks sullen Bertram, like a sorcerer’s fiend Pressing to be emp loyed.”? “I assure you, Colonel,” said Waverley, “ that you judge too harshly of the Highlanders.’ i “Not a whit, not a whit: I cannot spare them a jot—] cannot bate them an ace. . L et them stay in their own barren mountains, and puff and swell, and ha ang their bonnets on the horns of the moon, if they have a mind: but. what business have they to come where people wear breeches, and speak an intelligible language ? i mean intelligible in comparison with their cibbe -rish, for even the Lowlanders talk a kind of English little better than the negroes in Jamaica. I could pity the er , | mean the Chevalier himself, for having so many des af 1€ wrote it out in form)—and now, how PRS Sos ean sta COS TSRRO TSSixieraaa Seat ee aS eee NASER Pia oe eee 5 eco Q a ah : aan See 298 WAVERLEY. peradoes about him. And they learn their trade so early. There is a kind of subaltern imp, for example, a sort of suck- ing devil, whom your friend Glenna—Glenamuck there, has sometimes in his train. To look at him he is about fifteen years ; but he is a century old in mischief and villany. He was playing at quoits the other day in the court ; a gentleman —a decent-looking person enough—came past, and as a quoit hit his shin, he lifted his cane : but my young bravo whips out his pistol, like Beau Clincher in the trip to the Jubilee, and had not a scream of Gardez eau from an upper window set all parties a scampering for fear of the inevitable consequences, the poor gentleman would have lost his life by the hands of that little cockatrice.” ‘A fine character you'll give of Scotland upon your return, Colonel Talbot.” “©, Justice Shallow,” said the Colonel, “ will save me the trouble—‘ Barren, barren—beggars all, beggars all: Marry, ood air,’-—and that only when you are fairly out of Edinburgh, and not yet come to Leith, as is our case at present.” In a short time they arrived at the sea-port : ] The boat rocked at the pier of Leith. Full loud the wind blew down the ferry ; The ship rode at the Berwick Law— “ Farewell, Colonel ; may you find all as you would wish it ! Perhaps we may meet sooner than you expect; they talk of an immediate route to England.” “Tell me nothing of that,” said Talbot; “I wish to carry no news of your motions.” “Simply then, adieu. Say, with a thousand kind greet- ings, all that is dutiful and affectionate to Sir Everard and Aunt Rachel. Think of me as kindly as you can—speak of me as indulgently as your conscience will permit, and once more adieu.” “And adieu, my dear Waverley !—many, many thanks for your kindness. Unplaid yourself on the first opportunity. I shall ever think on you with gratitude, and the worst of my censure shall be, Oue diable alloit-il faire dans cette galére ?” And thus they parted, Colonel Talbot going on board of the boat, and Waverley returning to Edinburgh.WAVERLEY. 299 CHAPTER FIFTY-SEVENTH. THE MARCH. IT is not our purpose to intrude upon the province of his- tory. We shall therefore only remind our readers, that about the beginning of November the Young Chevalier, at the head of about six thousand men at the utmost, resolved to peril his Cause on an attempt to penetrate into the centre of England, although aware of the mighty preparations which were made for his reception. They set forward on this crusade in weather which would have rendered any other troops incapable of marching, but which in reality gave these active mountaineers advantages over a less hardy enemy. In defiance of a superior army lying upon the Borders, under Field Marshal Wade, they besieged and took Carlisle, and soon afterward prosecuted their daring march to the southward. As Colonel Mac-Ivor’s regiment marched in the van of the clans, he and Waverley, who now equaled any Highlander in the endurance of fatigue, and was become somewhat acquainted with their language, were perpetually at its head. They marked the progress of the army, however, with very different eyes. Fergus, all air and fire, and confident against the world in arms, measured nothing but that every step was a yard nearer London. He neither asked, expected, nor desired any aid, except that of the clans, to place the Stuarts once more 6n the throne; and when by chance a few adherents joined the stand- ard, he always considered them in the light of new claimants upon the favors of the future monarch, who, he concluded, must therefore subtract for their gratification so much of the bounty which ought to be shared among his Highland fol- lowers. Edward's views were very different. He could not but observe, that in those towns in which they proclaimed James the Third, “no man cried, God bless him.” The mob stared and listened, heartless, stupefied, and dull, but gave few signs even of that boisterous spirit which induces them to shout upon all octeasions, for the mere exercise of their most sweet voices. The Jacobites had been taught to believe that the north-western counties abounded with wealthy squires and hardy yeomen, devoted to the cause of the White Rose. But of the wealthier Tories they saw little. Some fled from their houses, some feigned themselves sick, some surrendered them: D ~ _ 2 Ne "yan eeitin PE HI Fe RRC cae NSTTST ET ENTS as300 WAVERLEY. selves to the Government as suspected persons. Of such as remained, the ignorant gazed with astonishment, mixed with horror and aversion, at the wild appearance, unknown language, and singular garb of the Scottish clans. And to the more prudent, their scanty numbers, apparent defi- ciency in discipline, and poverty of equipment, seemed cer- tain tokens of the calamitous termination of their rash under- taking. Thus the few who joined them were such as bigotry of political principle blinded to consequences, or whose broken fortunes induced them to hazard ql on a risk so cen iale The Baron of Bradwardine being asked what he thought of these recruits, took a long pinch « of snuff, a1 “ answered dryly, “that he could not but have an excellent opinion of them, since they resembled precisely the followers who attached themselves to the good King David at the cave of Adullam ; V1 L1Cel y D f every one that was in distress, and every one that was in debt, and every one that was discontented, whi ch the Vul- gate renders bitter of soul; and doubtless,” he said, “they will prove mighty men of their hands, and there is much need that they should, for I have seen many a sour look cast upon us.” But noah of these considerations moved Fergus. He ad- mired the luxuriant beauty of the country, and the situation of any, of the seats which they passed. “Is Waverley-Honour like that house, Edward?” “Tt is one-half larger. ‘Is your uncle’s ae as fine‘a_one as that?” “Tt is three times as extensive, and rather resembles a forest than a mere park.” ‘“‘ Flora will be a happy woman.” “T hope Miss Mac-Ivor will have much reason for happi ness, unconnected with Waverley-Honour.” “ T hope so too; but, to be mistress of such a place, will be a pretty addition to the sum total.” ‘An addition, the want of which, I trust, will be amply supplied by some other means.” ‘How,’ said Fergus, stopping short, and turning upon Waverley—“ How am I to understand that, Mr. Waverley ? — Had I the pleasure to hear you aright?” ‘ Perfectly right, Fergus.” “And am I to understand that you no longer desire my alliance, and my sister’s hand? ”’ ’ “Your sister has refused mine,” said Waverley, “ both dt rectly, and by all the usual means by which ladies repress un desired attentions,” : ‘‘T have no idea,’ answered the Chieftain, “ of a lady dis-WAVERLEY. 301 missing or a gentleman withd pawn his suit, after it has been approved of by her legal guardian, without giving him an oppor- tunity of talking the matter over with the la idy.. You did not, [ suppose, =xpect my sister to drop into your mouth like a ripe plum, the first moment you chose to open it?” “As to the lady’s yitetie| dismiss her lover, Colonel,’ replied Edward, “it is a point whic 1 you must argue with her, asl am 1gnor ant of the customs of the Highlands in that particular But as to my title to acquiescein a rejection from her w thot an appeal to your int erest, I will tell you plainly, without mean- ing toundervalue Miss Mac-Ivor’sadm nitted beaut y and accom- plishments, that I would not ta a the hand of an angel, with an empire for her dowry, if her consent were extorted. by the im- portunity ¢ P felon! and guardians, and did not flow from her a free ela O . An angel, with the dowry of an empire,” repeated Fergus, in a tone of of bitter irs ony, “isnot very likely to be pressed upon a——shire squire —But, sir,” changing his tone, “if Flora Mac-Ivor have not the shes) of an empire, she is my sister; and that is sufficient at leas stto secure her against being treated has anything approaching to levi ity. She is Flora Mac-Iy or, sir,” said Waverley, with firmness, cevhich to me, were I eit ble of treating any woman with ’ levity, would be a more effectual 1 protectic The brow of the Chieftain was n ow fully clouded, but Ed- ward felt too indignant at the unr casonable tone which he had adopted, to avert the storm by the leastconcession. T hey both stood still w hile this short Sonate pa ssed, and Fergus seemed half disposed to say something more vic lent, | out, by a strong effort, suppressed his passion, and turning his face forward, walked sullenly on. As they had always hitherto walked together, and almost const: antly side by side, Waverley pur- sued his course silently in the same direction, determined to let the Chief take his own time in recovering the good-humor which he had so WA reasgna ply disca1 ded, and firm in his resolution not to bate him an inc h of dignity. After they had marched on in this sullen manner about a mile, Fergus resumed the discour se in a different tone. “I believ ye I was warm, my dear Edwarc But YOURFOY ORE me with your want of kno\ wlec ge of the wor Id. You have tak a pet at some of Flora’s prudery, or high-flying notions of loyalty, and ow, likea child, you quarrel with the plaything you have been crying for, and beat me, your faithful keeper, because my arm cannot reach to Edinburgh to hand it to you. I amsureif I was passionate, the mortification of losing the alliance of such i ~ Le i OIC STs oer NTE ERE eta. Sie OO 302 WAVERLEY. a friend, after your arrangement had been the talk of both Highlands and Lowlands, and that without so muchas knowing why or wherefore, might well provoke calmer blood than mine. I shall write to Edinburgh, and put all to nights; that is, if you desire I should do so,—as indeed I cannot suppose that your good opinion of Flora, it being such as you have often expressed to me, can be at once laid aside.” ‘¢Colonel Mac-Ivor,” said Edward, who had no mind to be hurried further or faster than he chose, in a matter which he had already considered as broken off, “ I am fully sensible of the value of your good offices ; and certainly, by your zeal on my behalf in such an affair, you do me no small honor. But as Miss Mac-Ivor has made her election freely and voluntarily, and as all my attentions in Edinburgh were received with more than coldness, I cannot, in justice either to her or myself, con- sent that she should again be harassed upon this topic. I would have mentioned this to you some time since ;—but you saw the footing upon which we stood together, and must have understood it. Had I thought otherwise, I would have earlier spoken ; but I had a natural reluctance to enter upon a subject so painful to us both.” ““O, very well, Mr. Waverley,” said Fergus, haughtily, “ the thing is at an end. I have no occasion to press my sister upon any man. ‘Nor have I any occasion to court repeated rejection trom the same young lady,” answered Edward in the same_tone. “T shall make due inquiry,\however,” said the Chieftain, without noticing the interruption, “and learn what my sister thinks of all this we will then see whether it is to end here.” “ Respecting such inguiries, you will of course be guided by your own judgment,” said Waverley. “It is, I am aware, im- possible Miss Mac-Ivor can change her mind; and were such an unsupposable case to happen, it is certain 1 will not change mine. I only mention this to prevent any possibility of future misconstruction.”’ Gladly at this moment would Mac-Ivor have put their quarrel to a personal arbitrament ;—his eye flashed fire, and he meas- ured Edward, as if to choose where he might best plant a mor- tal wound. But although we do not now quarrel according to the modes and figures of Caranza or a Vincent Saviola, no one knew better than Fergus that there must be some decent pre- text for a mortal duel. For instance, you may challenge a man for treading on your corn in a crowd, or for pushing you up to the wall, or for taking your seat in the theatre; but the modern code of honor will not permit you to found a quarrel upon yourWAVERLEY. right of compelling a man to continue addresses to a fem: ke relative whick the fair lady had already refused. So that Fe gus was compelled to stomach this supposed affront, until the whirligig of time, whose motion he promised himself he would watch most sedulously, should bring about an opportunity of revenge. Waverley’s servant always led a saddle-horse for him in the rear of the battalion to which he was attached, though his mas- ter seldom rode. But now, incensed at the domineering and unreasonable conduct of his late friend, he fell behind the So, and mounted his horse, resolving to seek the Baron of sradwardine, and request permission to volunteer in his troop, wisttd of the Mac-Ivor cours “A happy time of it I should have had,” thought he, after he was mounted, “ to have been so aeeeed allied to this superb specimen of pride and self-opinion and passion. A colonel! why, he should have been a gener ralissimo. A pretty chief of three er four hundred men I— his pride might suffice for the Cham of Tartary—the Grand Seignor—the great Mogul! [I am well free of him. Were Flora an angel, “she would bring with her a second Lucifer of ambition and wrath for a brother- in-law.” The Baron, whose learning like Sancho’s jests while in the Sierra Morena, seemed to grow mouldy for want of exercise, joy- fully embraced the opportunity of Waverley’s offering his ser- vice in his regiment, to bring it into some exertion. The good- natured old gentleman, howev er, labored to effect a reconcilia- tion between the two quondam friends. Fergus turned a cold ear to his remonstrances, though he gave e them a respectful hear- ing; and as for W averley, he : saw no reason why he should be the first in courting a ee al of the intimacy w hich the chief- tain had so unreasonably disturbed. The Baron then mentioned the matter to the Prince, who, anxious to prevent quarrels in his little army, declared he would himself remonstrate with olonel Mac-Ivor on the unreasonableness of his conduct. But, in the hurry of their march, it was a day or two before he had an opportunity to exert his influence in the manner pro- posed. In the meanwhile, Waverley turned the instructions he had received while in Gardiner’s dragoons to some account, and assisted the Baron in his command as a sort of adjutant. “ Parmt les aveugles un borgne est rot,” says the French proverb and the cavalry, which consisted chiefly of Lowland gentlemen, their tenants and servants, formed a high opinion of Waverley’s skill, and a great attachment to his person. ‘This was indeed u ~ cy es seeyanasibiisescrm cn.P saipiitiien sites ulate Sear so cians a = tS & WAVERLEY, partly owing to the satisfaction which they felt at the distin- guished English volunteer’s leaving the Highlanders to rank among them; for there was a latent grudge between the horse and foot, not only owing to the difference of the services, but because most of the gentlemen, living near the Highlands, had at one time or other had quarrels with the tribes in their vicinity and all of them looked with a jealous eye on the Highlanders’ avowed pretensions to superior valor, and utility in the Prince’s service. CHAPTER FIFTY—-EIGHTH. THE CONFUSION OF KING AGRAMANT’S CAMP. It was Waverley’s custom sometimes to ridea little apart from the main body, to look at any object of curiosity which occurred on themarch. They were now in Lancashire, when, attracted by a castelated old hall, he left the squadron for half an hour, to take a survey and slight sketch of it. As he returned down theavenue, he was met by Ensign Maccombich. This man had contracted a sort of regard for Edward sincetbe day of his first seeing himat Tully-Veolan, andintroducing him to the Highlands. He seemed to loiter, as if on purpose to meet with our hero. Yet, as he passed him, he only approached his stirrup, and pronounced the single word “ Beware!” and then walked swiftly on, shunning all further communication. Iidward, somewhat surprised at this hint, followed with his eyes the course of Evan, who speedily disappeared among the trees. His servant, Alick Polwarth, who was in attend- ance, also looked after the Highlander, and then riding up close to his master, said, “The ne’er be in me, sir, if I think you’re safe among thae Highland rinthereouts ” “What do you mean, Alick?” said Waverley. “The Mac-Ivors, sir, hae gotten it into their heads, that ye hae affronted their young leddy, Miss Flora; and I hae heard mae than ane say, they wadna take muckle to make a black-cock o’ ye; and ye ken weel eneugh there's mony 0’ them wadna mind a bawbee the weising a ball through the Prince himsell, an the Chief gave them the wink—or whether he did or no,—if they thought it a thing that would please him when it was dune.” Waverley, though confident that Fergus Mac-Ivor was in-WAVERLEY. capable of such treachery, was by no means equally sure of the forbearance of his followers. He knew, that where the honor of the Chief or his family were supposed to be touched, th happiest man would be he that could first av ee the stigma ; and he had often heard them quote a proverb, “‘ That the best revenge was the most speedy and most safe.” eects this with the hint of E van, he judged it most prudent to set spurs to his ae and ride briskly back to the squadron. Ere he reached the end of the long avenue, however, a ball whistled past him, and the report of a pistol was heard. “It was that deevil’s buckie, Callum Beg,” said Alick ; saw him whisk away through amang the reises.” Edward, justly 3 ncensed at this act of treachery, galloped out of the es a observed the battalion of Mac-Ivor at some distance moving along the common, in which it terminated. He also saw an individual running very fast to join the party ; this he concluded was the intended assassin, who, by leaping an enclosure, might easily make a much shorter path to the main body than he could find on horseback. Unable to con- tain himself, he commanded Alick to go to the Baron of Brad- wardine, who was at the head of his men about half a mile in front, and acc quaint him with what had happened. He him- self immediately rode up to Fergus’s regiment. The Chief himself was in the act of joining them. He was on horseback, having returned from waiting on the Prince. On perceiving Edward approaching, he put his horse in motion toward him. ‘“‘ Colonel Mac-Ivor,” said Waverley, without any further salutation, “ I have to inform you that one of your people has this instant fired at me from a lurking-place.” ‘ As that,” answered Mac-Ivor, “ excepting the circumstance of a lurking-place, is a pleasure which I presently propose to myself, I should be glad to know which of my clansmen dared to anticipate me.” ‘‘ T shall certainly be at yourcommand whenever you please ; —the gentleman who took your office upon himself is your page there, Callum Bers ‘‘ Stand forth from the ranks, Callum! Did you fire at Mr. Waverley ?” “« No,” answered the unblushing Callum. “ Vou did,” said Alick Polwarth, who was already returned, having met a trooper by who om he despatched an account of what was going forward to the Baron of Bradwardine, while he himself returned to his master at full gallop, neither sparing the rowels of his spurs, nor the sides of his horse. & Von | didsit saw you as plainly as I ever saw the auldkirk at Coudingham.” ‘ . Demme TT SPT ISS SOIT SSS TOTES a as SNR isat) TTaia eres SS hakakradbaawean entire ree = ST oa oe RST WAVERLEY. “You lie,” replied Callum, with his usual impenetrable ob- stinacy. The combat between the knights would certainly, as in the days of chivalry, have been preceded by an encounter between the squires (for Alick was a stout-hearted Merseman, and feared the bow of Cupid far more than a Highlander’s dirk or claymore), but Fergus, with his usual ‘tone of decision, de- manded Callum’s pistol. The cock was down, the pan and muzzle were black withthe smoke ; it had been that instant fired. “Take that,” said Fergus, striking the boy upon the head with the heavy pistol-butt with his whole force, “ take that for acting without orders and lying to disguise it.” Callum re- ceived the blow without appearing to flinch from it, and fell without sign of life. ‘‘ Stand still upon your lives!”’ said Fer- gus to the rest of the clan ; ‘“ I blow out the brains of the first man who interferes between Mr. Waverley and me.” They stood motionless ; Evan Dhu alone showed symptoms of vexa- tion and anxiety. Callum lay on the ground bleeding copiously. but no one ventured to give him any assistance. It seemed as if he had gotten his death-blow. ‘“‘ And now for you, Mr. Waverley; please to turn your horse twenty yards with me upon the common.” Waverley complied ; and Fergus, confronting him when they were a little way from the line of march, said, with great affected coolness, ‘‘I could not but wonder, sir, at the fickleness of taste which you were pleased to express the other day. But it was not an angel, as you justly observed, who had charms for you, unless she brought an empire for her fortune. I have now an excellent commen- tary upon that obscure text.” ‘“T am at a loss even to guess at your meaning, Colonel Mac-Ivor, unless it seems plain that you intend to fasten a quarrel upon me.” “Your affected ignorance shall not serve you, sir. The Prince,—the Prince himself, has acquainted me with your ma. neeuvres. I little thought that your engagements with Miss Bradwardine were the reason of your breaking off your in- tended match with my sister. I suppose the information that the Baron had altered the destination of his estate, was quite a sufficient reason for slighting your friend’s sister, and carry: ing off your friend’s mistress.” “Did the Prince tell you I was engaged to Miss Brad- wardine ?’’ said Waverley. ‘ Impossible.” “He did, sir,” answered Mac-Ivor; “so, either draw and defend yourself, or resign your pretensions to the lady.”WAVERLEY. “This is absolute madness,” exclaimed Waverley. “ strange mistake !” ; RO: no evasion! draw your sword!” said the infuriated Chieftain, his own alr eady unsheathed. Must I fight in a madman’s S quarrel ? ” e ee cote up now, and forever, all pretensions to Miss Bracipand e’s hand.” oO: oan title have you,” cried W averley, utterly losing com- mand of himself,—‘“ Wh vat title have you, or any man living, to dictate such terms tome?” And he also drew his sword. At this moment tae Baron of Ben iwardine, followed by sev- eral of his troop, came up on the spur, some from curiosity, others, to take part bin the quarrel, which they indisti inctly 1n- derstood had broken out between the Mac-Ivors and their corps. The clan, seeing them approach , put themselves in motion to support their C hieft tain, and a scene of confusion commenced, which seemed likely to terminate in bloodshed. A hundred tongues were in motion at once. The Baron lectured, the Chieftain stormed, the Highlanders screamed in Gaelic, the horsemen cursed and swore in Bowland Scotch.. At lensth matters came to such a pass, that the Baron threatened to charge the Mac-Ivors unless they resumed their ranks, and many of them, in return, presented their fire-arms at him and the other troopers. The confusion was privately fostered by old Bal- lenkeiroch, who made no doubt that his own day of vengeance was arrived, when, behold! a cry arose of “Room! make way !—flace a Monseigneur ‘L place & Monseigneur!” this an: nounced the approach of the Prince, who came up with a party of Fitz-James’s foreign dragoons that acted as his body-guard. His arrival produced some degree of order. The Highlanders reassumed their ranks, the cavalry fell in and formed squadron, and the Baron and Chieftain were silent. The Prince called them and Waverley before him. Having heard the diate cause of the quarrel through the villany of Callum Beg, he ordered him into custody of t the provost- marshal for immediate execution, in the event of his surviv ing the chas- tisement inflicted by his Chieftain. Fergus, however, in a tone betwixt claiming a right and asking a favor, requeste ed he might be left to his disposal, and promised his punishment should “be exemplary. To deny this, mica! have seemed to encroach on the patriarchal authority of the Chieftains, of which they were very jealous, and they were not persons to be disobliged. Cal- lum was therefore left to the j justice of his own tribe. The Prince next dentate to know the new cause of quar- rel between Colonel Mac-Ivor and Waverley. There was a or some PROT ONT Toca AESSchl Siena a cae aes ib wat bietaa ee SON eetieenioures, a WAVERLEY. pause. Both gentlemen found the presence of the Baron wi! Bradwardine ( (for by this time all three had approached fhe Chevalier by Bis command) an ins surmountable barrier against entering upon 2 subject where the name of his daughter must unavoidably be mentioned. They turned their eyes on the ground, with looks in which shame and embarrassment were mingle .d with displeasure. The prince, who had been educatec amongst the discontented and mutinous spirits of the court of St, Germains, where feuds of every kind were the daily subject of solicitude to the ee sovereign, had served his ap- prenticeship, as old Frederick of Prussia ‘would have said, to the trade of roy cee To promote or restore concord among his followers was indispensable. Accordingly he took his measures. ‘¢ Monsieur de Beaujeu !” “ Monseigneur!” said a very handsome French cavalry officer, who was in attendance. “ Ayez la bonté d’alligner ces montagnards 18, ainsi que la cavalerie, s’il vous plait, et de les remettre 4 Ja marche. Vous Pee si bien l’Anglois, cela ne vous donneroit pas beaucoup de F peu ey? th ! pas du tout, Monseigneur.” r eye ed Mons. le Comte de Beau} jeu, his head bending ‘down to the neck of his little prancing highly-managed charger. According! vy he piaffed away, in high spirits and confidence, to the head of Fergus’s regiment although understanding not a word of Gaelic and very little English. “ Messieurs les sauvages E :cossois—dat is—gentilmans sav- ages, have the goodness d’arranger vous.’ The clan, comprehending the order more from the gesture than the words, and seeing the Prince himself present, hastened to dress their ranks. Ah ! ver well ! dat is fort bien |!’ said the Count de Beau jeu. “ Gentilmans cures es—mais_ trés bien—E th «bien !— Qu’est-ce que ge appelez visage, Monsieur ?” (to a lounging trooper who stood by him), “ nas oui ! face—Je vous remercie Monsieur.—Gentilshommes, have de eS to make de face to de right par file, dat is, by files. -—Marsh !—Mais tres bien— encore, Messieurs ; il faut vous mettre : lavatiarche.. *. ‘ Marchez donc, au nom de Dieu, parceque j’ai oublié le mot Anglois—mais vous étes des braves gens, et me comprenez tres-bien.”’ The Count next hastened to put the cavalry in motion, “ Gentilmans cavalry, you must fall in—Ah ! par ma foi, I did not say fall off? I ama fear de little gross fat gentilman is “(roWAVERLEY. 309 moche hurt. Ah, mon Dieu! c’est le Commissaire qui nous a apporte le *S premieres nouvelles de ce maudit fracas. Je suis trop faché, Monsieur !” But poor Macwheeble, who, with a sword stuck across him, and a white cockade as large as a pancake, now figured in the character of a commissary, siete overturnedin the bustle oc- casioned by the troopers hastening to get themselves in order in the Pues presence, before he could rally his galloway, slunk to the rear amid the unrestrained laughter of the spec tators. ‘“‘ Eh bien, Messieurs, wheel to the right—Ah! dat is it !— f{h, Monsieur de Bradwardine, ayez la bonté de vous mettre a la téte de votre regiment, car, pat Dieu, je n’en puis plus!” The Baron of Bradwardine was obliged to go to the assist- ance of Monsieur de Beaujeu, after he had fairly expended his few English military phrases. One purpose of the Chevalier was thus answered. The other he proposed was, that in the eager: ness to hear and comprehend commands issued through such an indistinct medium in his own presence, the thoughts of the soldiers in both corps might get a current different from the angry channel in which they were flowing at the time. Charles Edward was no sooner left with the Chieftain and Waverley, the rest of his attendants being at some distance than he said, “ If I owed less to your disinterested friendship I could be most seriously angry with both of you for this very cs Hy extraordinary and causeless broil, at a moment when my father’s service so decidedly demands the most perfect unanimity. But the worst of my situation is, that my very best friends hold they have liberty to ruin ee selves, as well as the cause they are engaged in, upon the slightest caprice.” Both the young men pi Trial their resolution to submit every difference to his arbitration. “ Indeed,” said Edward, [ hardly know of what I am accused. I sought Colonel Mac- Ivor merely to mention to him that I had narrowly escaped assassination at the hand of his immediate dependent—a das- tardly revenge, which I knew him to be incapable of authorizing. As to the cause for which he is disposed to fasten a quarrel upon me,I am ignorant of it, unless it be that he accuses me, most unjustly yy of 1 having engaged the affections of a young lady in prejudice of his pretensions.” “If there is an error,” said the Chieftain, ‘it arised from a conversation which I held this morning with his Royal High ness himself.’’ ““ With.me ?” said the Chevalier; “ how can Colonel Mac- Ivor have so fai misunderstood me?” ce PYM at ya et inh GREEN EMG RERET SEN) sit Reaper restr ene SERB ESALEWES UNCE ERIN SEE ENana cae WAVERLEY, He then led Fergus aside, and, after five minutes’ earnest conversation, spurred his horse toward Edward. “Is it pos- sible—nay, ride up, Colonel, for I desire no secrets—Is it possible, Mr. Waverley, that I am mistaken in supposing that you are an accepted lover of- Miss Bradwardine? ACE “OL which I was by circumstances, though not by communication from you, so absolutely convinced, that I alleged it to Vich Ian Vohr this morning as a reason why, without offence to him, you might not continue to be ambitious of an alliance, which to an unengaged person, even though once repulsed, holds out too many charms to be lightly laid aside.” “ Your Royal Highness,” said Waverley, “‘ must have founded on circumstances altogether unknown to me, when you did me the distinguished honor of supposing me an accepted lover of Miss Bradwardine. I feel the distinction im pled in the suppo- sition, but I have no title to it. For the rest, my confidence in my own merits is too justly slight to admit of my hoping for success in any quarter after positive rejection.” The Chevalier was silent for a moment, looking steadily at them both, and then said, “ Upon my word, Mr. W averley, you are a less happy man than I conceived I had very good reason to believe you.u—But now, gentlemen, allow me to be umpire in this matter, not as Prince Regent, but as Charles Stuart, a brother adv enturer with you in the same gallant cause. Lay my pretensions to be obeyed by you entirely 7 out of view, and consider your own honor, and how far it is, well, or becoming, to give our enemies the advantage, and our friends the scandal, of showing that, few as we are, we are not united. And for- give me if I add, that the names of the ladies who have been mentioned crave more respect from us all than to be made themes of discord.” He took Fergus a little apart, and spoke to him very ear- nestly for two or three minutes, and then returning to Waver- ley, said, “I believe I have satisfied Colonel Mac- [vor that his resentment Ww as founded upon a misconception, to which, in- deed, I myself gave rise; and I trust Mr. Waverley is too generous to harbor any recollection of what is past, when I as- sure him that such is the case.—You must state this matter properly to your clan, Vich Ian Vohr, to prevent a recurrence of their precipitate violence. ” Fergus bowed. ‘And now. gentlemen, let me have the pleasure to see you shake hands.” They advanced coldly, and with measured steps, each ap parently reluctant to appear most forward in concession. They did, however, shake hands, and parted, taking g arespectful leave of the Chevalier.WAVERLEY, 3rF Charles Edward* then rode to the head of the Mac-Ivors, threw himself from his horse, begged a drink out of old Ballen- keiroch’s canteen, and marched about half-a-mile along with them, inquiring into the history and connections of Sliochd nan Ivor, adroitly using the few words of Gaelic he possessed, and affecting a great desire to learn it more thoroughly. He then mounted his horse once more, and galloped to the Baron’s cavalry, which was in front: halted them, and examined thei1 accoutrements and state of discipline ; took notice of the prin: cipal gentlemen, and even of the cadets: inquired after theit adies, and-commended their horses ;—rode about an hour with the Baron of Bradwardine, and endured three long stories about Field-Marshal the Duke of Berwick. ‘Ah, Beaujeu, mon cher ami,” said he, as he returned to his usual place in the line of march, “ que mon métier de prince errant e t ennuyant, par fois. Mais, courage! c’est le grand jeu, aprés tout.” : CHAPTER FIFTY-NINTH. A SKIRMISH. THE reader need hardly be reminded, that, after a council of war held at Derby on the sth of December, the Highlanders relinquished their desperate attempt to penetrate further into England, and, greatly to the dissatisfaction of their young and daring leader, positively determined to return northward. They commenced their retreat accordingly, and, by the extreme celerity of their movements, outstripped the motions of the Duke of Cumberland, who now pursued them with a very large body of cavalry. This retreat was a virtual resignation of their towering hopes. None had been so sanguine as Fergus Mac-Ivor; none, conse- quently, was so cruelly mortified at the change of measures. He argued, or rather remonstrated, with the utmost vehemence at the council of war; and, when his opinion was rejected, shed tears of grief and indignation. From that moment his whole manner was so much altered, that he could scarcely have been recognized for the same soaring and ardent spirit, for whom the whole earth seemed too narrow but a week before. The retreat had continued for several days, when Edward, to his surprise, early on the 12th of December, received a visit from * Note Z. Prince Charles Edward. LATION Bris TRS eeSe axsetenett hblihheenta heater tt: the Chieftain in WAVERLEY. his quarters, in a hamlet about half-way be tween Shap and Penrith. Having had no intercourse with the Chieftain since theit rupture, Edward waited with some anxiety an explanation of this unexpected visit; nor could he help being surprised, and somewhat shocked, with the change in his appearance. His eye had lost much of its fire; his cheek was hollow, his voice was languid; even his gait seemed less firm and elastic than it was wont; and his dress, to which he used to be par- ticularly attentive, was now carelessly flun ¢ about him. He 2 invited Edward to walk out with him by the little river in the vicinity; and smiled in amelancholy manner when he observed him take down and buckle on his sword. As soon as they were in a wild, sequestered path by the side of the stream, the Chief broke out,—“ Our fine adventure is now totally ruined, Waverley, and I wish to know what you intend to do :—nay, never stare at me, man. I tell you I re- ceived a packet from my sister yesterday, and, had I got the information it contains sooner, it would have prevented a quarrel, which I am always vexed when I think of. In a letter written after our dispute, I acquainted her with the cause of it; and she now replies to me, that she never had, nor could have, any purpose of giving you encouragement; so that it seems I have acted likea madman. Poor Flora! she writes in high spirits; what a change will the news of this unhappy re- treat make in her state of mind?” Waverley, who was really much affected by the deep tone of melancholy with which Fergus spoke, affectionately entreated him to banish from his remembrance any unkindness which had arisen between them, and they once more shook hands, but now with sincere cordiality. Fergus again inquired of Wa- vetley what he intended todo. ‘Had you not better leave this luckless army, and get down before us into Scotland, and embark for the Continent from some of the eastern ports that are still in our possession? When you are out of the kingdom, your friends will easily negotiate your pardon ; and, to tell you the truth, I wish you would carry Rose Bradwardine with you as your wife, and take Flora also under your joint protection.” —Kdward looked surprised—“ She loves you, and I believe you love her, though, perhaps, you have not found it out, for you are not celebrated for knowing your own mind very pointedly.” He said this with a sort of smile. “How!” answered Edward, “can you advise me to desert the expedition in which we are all embarked ?” “Kmbarked?” said Fergus; “ the vessel is going to pieces,WAVERLEY. and it is full time for all who can, to get into the long-boat and leave her,’ “Why, what will other gentlemen do ?”’ answere d Waverley, ‘and w hy did the Highland Chiefs consent to this retreat, if it is SO ruinous?” “Q,” replied Mac-Ivor, “they think that, as on former oc- casions, the heading, hang’ ing, and forfeiting, will chiefly fall to the lot of the Lowland gentry ; that they will be left secure in their poverty and their fastnesses, there, according to theii proverb ‘to listen to the wind upon the hill till the waters abate.’ But they will be disappointed; they have been too often troublesome to be so repeatedly passed over, and this time John Bull has been too heartily frightened to recover his good humor for some time. The Hanoverian abit always deserved to be hanged for rascals; but now, if they get the power in their hands,—as, sooner or later they must, since there is neither rising in ns mgland nor assistance from France, —they will deserve the gallows as fools s, if they leave a single clan in the Highlands in a situation to be again troublesome to Government. Ay, they will make root-and-branch-work, I warrant them.” ‘And while you recommend flight to me,” said E dward,— “a courisel which I would rather die than embrace,—what are your own views? ” “OQ,” answered Fergus, with a melancholy air, ‘‘ my fate is settled. Dead or captive I must be before to-morrow.” “What do you mean by that, my friend?” said Edward. ‘The enemy is ‘still ad ay’s march in our rear, an 1d if he comes up, we are still s strong enoug h to keep him in check. Remem- ber Gladsmuir. “What I tell you is true notwithstanding, so far as I individually concerned.” “Upon what authority can you found so melancholy a pre- diction?” asked Waverley. " On one which never failed a person of my house. I have seen,” he said, lowering his voice, ““I have seen the Bodach Glas.” ‘* Bodach Glas ?” “Yes: have you been so long at Glenna aquoich, and never heard ofthe Gray Spectre? though indeed there is a certain reluctance among us to mention him.” “Wo, never.” ‘Abt it aa have been a tale for poor Flora to have told you. Or, if that hill were Benmore, and that long blue lake, which you see et winding toward yon mountainous country CONT SOOY TTT EESTI To REESE STUUR ete aN NNT TESS TEE La aehb uab hiesaiees tas rs ate Shistabaarnab sores a = eS ee ee + WAVERLEY. were Loch Tay, or my own Loch an Ri, the tale would be better suited with scenery. However, let us sit down on this knoll; even Saddleback and Ullswater will suit what I have to say better than the English hedge-rows, enclosures, and farm-houses. You must know, then, that. when my ancestor, Jan nan Chaistel, wasted Northumberland, there was associated with him in the expedition a sort of Southland Chief, or captain of a band of Lowlanders, called Halbert Hall. In their return through the Cheviots, they quarreled about the division of the great booty they had acquired, and came from words to blows. The Lowlanders were cut off to a man, and their chief fell the last, covered with wounds by the sword of my ancestors. Since that time, his spirit has crossed the Vich Ian Vohr of the day when any great disaster was impending, but especially before approaching death. My father saw him twice: once before he was made prisoner at Sheriffmuir; another time, on the morning of the day on which he died.” “How can you, my dear Fergus, tell such nonsense with a grave face?” “IT do not ask you to believe it; but I tell you the truth ascertained by three hundred years’ experience at least, and last night by my own eyes.” “The particulars, for heaven’s sake!” said Waverley, with eagerness. ‘“T will, on condition you will not attempt a jest on the subject.—Since this unhappy retreat commenced, I have scarce ever been able to sleep for thinking of my clan, and of this poor Prince, whom they are leading back like a dog in a string, whether he will or no, and of the downfall of my family. Last night I felt so feverish that I left my quarters, and walked out, in hopes the keen frosty air would brace my nerves I can- not tell how much I dislike going on, for I know you will hardly believe me. However—I crossed a small foot-bridge, and kept walking backwards and forwards, when I observed with surprise by the clear moonlight, a tall figure in a gray plaid such as shepherds wear in the south of Scotland, which, move at what pace I would, kept regularly about four yards before me,’ ‘“You saw a Cumberland peasant in his ordinary dress, probably.” ‘““No: I thought so at first, and was astonished at the man’s audacity in daring to dog me. I called to him but received no answer, I felt an anxious throbbing at my heart; and, to as- certain what I dreamed, I stood still, and turned myself on the same spot successively to the four points of the compass—ByWAVERLEY. oa Heaven, E lward, turn where J] would, the figure was instantly before my eyes, at precisely the same distance! |] was then convinced it was the Bodach Glas. knees shook. [ manned myself, however, and determined to return to my quarters. My ghastly visitant glided before me (for I cannot say he walked), until he reached the foot-bridge : there he stopped, and turned full round. I must either wade the river, or pass him as close as I am to you. WelL? replied the Chieftain, “let Alick have your horse in readiness, in case we should be over-matched, and I shall be delighted to have your company once more.” The rear-guard were late in making their appearance, hav- ing been de layed by various accidents and by the badness of the roads. At length they entered the hamlet. When Waver. ley weg the clan. Mac-Ivor, arm in arm with their Chieftain, all the resentment they had entertained against him seemed blown off at once. Evan Dhu received him with a grin of con- gratulation; and even Callum, who was running about as Ss My hair bristled, and my BIST STS ETS sec an Pe crcrs Vee ee eee316 WAVERLEY. active as ever, pale indeed, and with a great patch on his head, en delighted to see him. Tha t gallows -bird’s skull,” said Fergus, “must be harder than marble: the lock of the pistol was actually broken.” “ How could you strike so young a lad so hard?” said Waverley, with some interest. “Why, if I did not strike hard sometimes, the rascals would forget themselves.” They were now in full march, every caution being taken to prevent surprise. Fergus’s people, and a fine clan regiment from Badenoch, commanded by Cluny Mac-Pherson, had the rear. They had passed a large open moor, and were entering into the enclosures which surrounded a small village called Clif- ton. The winter sun had set, and Edward began to rally Fer- gus upon the false predictions of the Gray Spin be eeihe aides of March are not past,” said Mac-Ivor, with a | smile ; when suddenly casting his eyes back on the moor, a large body of cavalry was indistinctly seen to hover upon its brown and dark surface. To line the enclosures facing the open ground and the road by which the enemy must move from it upon the vil- lage, was the work of a short time. While these manceuvres were accomplishing, night sunk down, dark and gloomy, though the moon was at full. Sometimes, however, she gleamed forth a dubious ent upon the scene of action. The Highlanders did not remain long undisturbed in the defensive position they had adopted. Favored by the night, one large body of dismounted dragoons attempted to force the enclosures, while another, equally strong, strove to penetrate y the high road. Both were received by such a heavy fire as Y ) disconcerted their ranks, and effectually checked their progress. Unsatisfied with the advantage thus gained, Fer ree is, to whose ardent spirit the approach of danger seemed to estore all its elasticity, drawing his sword, and calling out “ Gagne eC encouraged his men, by voice and example, to break through the hedge which divided them, and rush down upon the enemy. Mingling with the dismounted dragoons, they forced them, at the sword point, to fly to the open moor, where a considerable number were cut to pieces. But the moon which suddenly shone out, showed to the English the small number of assail- ants, disordered by their own success. Two squadrons of horse moving to the support of their companions, the Highlanders endeavored to recover the enclosures. But several of them, amongst others their brave Chieftain, were cut off and sur: rounded before they could effect their purpose. Waverley, Jooking eagerly for Fergus, from whom, as well as from the 99 oO > 1S —“WAVERLEY. retreating body of his followers, he had been separated in the darkness and tumult, saw him, with Evan Dhu and Callum, defending themselves desperately against a dozen of horsemen, who were hewing at them with their long broadswords. The moon was again at that moment totally overclouded, and Ed ward, in the obscurity, could neither bring aid to his friends, liscover which way lay his own road to rejoin the rear. guard, After once or twice narrowly escaping being slain o1 made prisoner by parties of the cavalry whom he encountered in the darkness, he at length reached an enclosure, and clam- bering over ae concluded himself in safety, and on the way to the Highland forces, whose pipes he heard at some distance. For Fe Dis hardly a hope remained, unless that he might be made prisoner. Revolving his fate with sorrow and anxiety, the superstition of the Bodach Glas recurred to Edward’s recollection, and he said to himself, with internal surprise. ** What, can the devil speak truth ? ” HOD CHAPTER SIXTINT H. CHAPTER OF ACCIDENTS. EDWARD was in a most unpleasant and dangerous situation. He soon lost the sound of the bagpipes ; and, what was yet more unpleasant, when, after searching long in vain, and scrambling through many enclosures, he at length approached the high 1 ‘oad, he learned, from the unwelcome noise of kettle- drums and trumpets, that the English cavalry now occupied it, aa consequently were between him and the Highlanders. Precluded, therefore, from advancing in a straight direction, he resolved to avoid ce eee military, and endeavor to join his friends by making a circuit to the left, ca which a beaten oe deviating from the main road in that direction, seemed to ford facilities. The > path was muddy, and the 1€ night dark and ere but even these inconveniences wer e hardly felt amidst the apprehensions which falling into the fans of the King’s forces reasonably excited in his bosom. After walking about three miles, he at length reached a hamlet. Conscious that the common people were in general unfavorable to the cause he had espoused, yet desirous, if possible, to procure a horse and guide to Penrith, where he hoped to find the rear, if not the main body, of the Chevalier’s * Note AA. The Skirmish at Cliftorn. SAAS AAR SAASesnabiseahhaninabaleartnses WAVERLEY. army, he approached the alehouse of the place. There was a great noise within: he paused to listen. A round English oath or two, and the burden of a campaign song, convinced him the hamlet also was occupied by the Duke of Cumber- land’s soldiers. Endeavoring to retire from it as softly as possible, and blessing the obscurity which hitherto he had murmured against, W averley groped his we ay the best he could along a small paling, which seemed the boundary of some cot: tage garden. As he reached the gate of his little enclosure, his outstretched hand was grasped by that of a female, whose voice at the same time uttered, “‘ Edward, is’t thou, man?” “Here is some unlucky mistake,” thought Edward, strug- gling, but gently, to disengage himself. ‘Naen o’ thy foun, now, man, or the red cwoats will hear thee; they hae been houlerying and poulerying every ane that past alehouse door this noight to make them drive their w ag- gons and sick loike. Come into feyther’s, or they’ll do ho a mischief.” “ A good hint,” thought Waverley, following the girl through the little garden into a brick-paved kitchen, where she set her- self to kindle a match at an expiring fire, and with the match to light a candle. She had no sooner looked on Edward, than she dropped the light, with a shrill scream of “O feyther! feyther !”’ The father, thus invoked, speedily appeared,—a sturdy old farmer, in a pair of leather breeches and boots pulled on with- out stockings, having just started from his bed ;—the rest of his dress was only a Westmoreland statesman’s robe-de-cham- bre,—that is, his shirt. His figure was displayed to advantage by a candle which he bore in his left hand; in his right he brandished a poker. ‘What hast nf here, wench?” ®t? emed the BAO girl, almost going off in hysterics, ‘ thought it was Ned Williams, and it is one of the plaid-men !’ “ And what was thee ganging to do wi’ Ned Williams at this time o’ noght?” ‘To this, which was, perhaps, one of the numerous class of questions more easily asked than answered, the rosy-cheeked damsel made no reply, but continued sobbing and wringing her hands. ‘ And thee, lad, dost ho know that the dragoons be a town? Dost ho know that, mon ?—ad, they’ll sliver thee loike a turnip, mon.” “T know my life is in great danger,” said Waverley, “ but if you can assist me, I will reward you handsomely. I am no Scotchman, but an unfortunate English gentleman.”CUMBERLAND. 7 ag ea N é Pp © = A a = ns je — & 7“ uu TILE AT Y - 4G WRLE WAVE ahr as ee oneness rer ccst Other kas SeerZ ‘ iWAVERLEY. 319 “Be ho Scot or no,” said the honest farmer, “I wish thou hadst kept the other side of the hallan, But since thou art here, Jacob Jopson willl] betray no man’s bluid - and the plaids were gey canny, and did not so much mischief when they were here yesterday,’ Accordingly he set seriously about sh eltering and refreshing our hero for the night. The fire was speedi ly rekindled, | but with precaution against its light being seen from without. The jolly yeoman cut a rasher of bacon, which Cicely soon broiled, soa her father added a swinging tank ard of his best ale. It was settled, that Edward should remain there till the troops marched in the morning, then hire or buy a horse from the farmer r, and, with the best d directions that could be obtained, endeavor to overtake his friends. A cle ean, though coarse bed, received him after the fatigues of this unh lappy day. With the morning arrived the news that the Highlanders had evacuated Penrith, and marched off toward Carlisle 5: that the Duke of Cumberland was in possession of Penrith, and that detachments of his army covered the roads in every direc- tion. To attempt to get through undiscovered, would be an act of the most frantic { temerity. Ned Williams (the right Ed- ward) was now called to council by Cicely and her father . Ned who perhaps did not care that his h andsome namesake should remain too long in the same house with his sweetheart, for fear of fresh mistakes, proposed that Waverley, exchanging his uniform and plaid for the dress of the country, should go with him to his father’s farm near Ullswater, and remain in that undisturbed retirement until the military movements in the country should have ceased to render his de eparture h ve ous. A price was also agreed upon, at which the strange might board with Farmer Willi ams, if he thought proper, “ill he could « depart with safety. It was of moderate amount ; the distress of his situation, among this honest and simple- hearted race, being considered as no reason for incre easing their de- mand. The necessary articles of dress were accordingly procured ; and, by following by-paths, known to the young farmer, they hoped to escape any unpleasant rencontre. A recompense for their hospitality was refused peremptorily by old Jopson and his cherry-cheeked daughter; a kiss paid the one, anda hearty sh. uk e of the hand the other. Both seemed anxious for their guest’s safety, and took leave of him with kind wishes. In the course of their route, Edward, with his guide, trav- ersed those fields which the night before had been the scene of action. A brief gleam of December’s sun shone sadly on the broad heath, which, toward the spot where the great north- Pre Aier Ln ere Ree RNin SUSAR PEN ESRC UST SECEDE TSS asa ad arr2 Semis SE Sena = 4 s Sa 320 WAVERLEY. west road entered the enclosure of Lord Lonsdale’s property, exhibited dead bodies of men and horses, and the usual com panions of war—a number of carrion-crows, hawks and ravens. “ And this, then, was thy last field,” said Waverley to him- self, his eye filling at the recollection of the many splendid points of Fergus’s character, and of their former intimacy, all his passions and imperfections forgotten.— Here fell the last Vich Ian Vohr, on a nameless heath ; and in an obscure night: uenched that ardent spirit, who thought it little to cut a way for his master to the British throne ! Ambition, policy, bravery, all far beyond their sphere, here learned the fate of mortals. ‘The sole support, too, of a sister, whose spirit, as proud and unbending, was even more exalted than thine own: here ended all thy hopes for Flora, and the long and valued line which it was thy boast to raise yet more highly by thy adventurous valor ! i As these ideas pressed on Waverley’s mind, he resolved to go upon the open heath, and search if, among the slain, he could discover the body of his friend, with the pious intention of procuring for him the last rites of sepulture. The timorous young man who accompanied him remonstrated upon the dan ger of the attempt, but Edward was determined. ‘The followers of the camp had already stripped the dead of all they could carry away ; but the country people, unused to scenes of blood had not yet approached the field of action, though some stood fearfully gazing at a distance. About sixty or seventy dragoons lay slain within the first enclosure, upon the high road, and on the open moor. Of the Highlanders, not above a dozen had fallen, chiefly those who, venturing too far on the moor, could not regain the strong ground. He could not find the body of Fergus among the slain. Ona little knoll, separated from the others, lay the carcasses of three English dragoons, two horses, and the page Callum Beg, whose hard skull a trooper’s broad- sword had, at length, effectually cloven. It was possible his clan had carried off the body of Fergus; but it was also possi ble he had escaped, especially as Evan Dhu, who would nevet leave his chief, was not found among the dead; or he might be prisoner, and the less formidable denunciation inferred from the appearance of the Bodach Glas might have proved the true one. The approach of a party, sent for the purpose of com. pelling the country people to bury the’dead, and who had al: ready assembled several peasants for that purpose, now obliged Edward to rejoin his guide, who awaited him in great anxiety and fear under shade of the plantations. ; After leaving this field of death, the rest of their journey skirmish was qWAVERLEY, 321 was happily accomplished. At the house of Farmer Williams, Edward passed for a young kinsman, educated for the church, who was come to reside there till the civil tumults permitted him to a through the country. This silenced suspicion among the kind and sim ple € yeomanry of Cumberland, and ac. counted sufficiently for the grave manners and retired habits of the new guest. The precaution became more necessary than Waverley had anticipated, as a variety of incidents pro longed his stay at Fasthwaite, as the farm was called. A tremendous fall of snow rendered his departure impossi. ble for more than ten days. When the roads began to become a little practi icable, they successively received news of the re- treat of the Chevalier into Scotland : then, that he had aban- doned the frontiers, ohea upon Glasgow ; and that the Duke of Cumberland had formed the siege of Carlisle. His army, therefore, cut off all possibility of Waverley’s escaping into Scotland in that diteagom On the eastern border, Marshal Wade, with a large force, was advancin upon Edinburgh ; and all along the frontier, parties _of militia, volunteers, and partisans, were in arms to suppress insurrection, and appre hend such stragglers from the Hig plana army as had been left in England. The surrender of C babi and the severit ty with which the rebel garrison were threatened, soon formed an ad- ditional reason against venturing upon a solitary and hopeless journey through a hostile country and a large army, to carry the assistance of a single sword to a cause which seemed alto- gether desperate. In this lonely and secluded situation, without the advan- tage of company or conversation with men of cultivated minds, the arguments of Colonel Talbot often recurred to the mind of our hero. A still more anxious recollection haunted his slum- bers yas the dying look and _ gesture of Colonel Gardiner. Most devoutly did he hope, as the rarely occurring post brought news of skirmishes with various success, that it might never again be his lot to draw his sword in civil conflict. Then his mind turned to the supposed death of Fergus, to the desolate situation of Flora, and, with yet more tender recollection to that of Rose Bradwardine, who was destitute of the devoted enthusiasm of loyalty, which, to her friend, hallowed and ex- alted misfortune. These reveries he was permitted to enjoy, undisturbed by queries or interruption ;—and it was in many a winter walk by the shores of Ullswater, that he acquired a more complete mastery of a spirit tamed by adversity than his former experience had given ah and that he felt himself en- titled to say firmly, though perhaps with a sigh, that the ro- o = It SETS TSrONe Sy Ratt Serr « %, . etre tt heenEenbaceeee 7 oe Pia Pte ie ee neni = es 322 WAVERLEY. mance of his life was ended, and that its real history had now commenced. He was soon called upon to justify his preten- sions by reason and philosophy. CHAPTER SIXTY-FIRST. A JOURNEY TO LONDON. Tue family at Fasthwaite were soon attached to Edward. He had, indeed, that gentleness and urbanity which almost universally attracts corresponding kindness; and to their sim- ple ideas his learning gave him consequence, and his sorrows interest. The last he ascribed, evasively, to the loss of a brother in the skirmish near Clifton; and in that primitive state of society, where the ties of affection were highly deemed of, his continued depression excited sympathy, but not sur- prise. In the end of January, his more lively powers were called out by the happy union of Edward Williams, the son of his host, with Cicely Jopson. Our hero would not cloud with sorrow the festivity attending the wedding of two persons to whom he was so highly obliged. He therefore exerted himself, danced, sung, played at the various games of the day, and was the blithest of the company. The next morning, however, he had more serious matters to think of. The clergyman who had married the young couple was so much pleased with the supposed student of divinity, that he came next day from Penrith on purpose to pay him a visit. This might have been a puzzling chapter had he entered into any examination of our hero’s supposed theological studies ; but fortunately he loved better to hear and communicate the news of the day. He brought with him two or three old news- papers, in one of which Edward found a piece of intelligence that soon rendered him deaf to every word which the Reverend Mr. Twigtythe was saying upon the news from the north, and the prospect of the Duke’s speedily overtaking and crushing the rebels. This was an article in these, or nearly these words : ‘Died at his house, in Hill Street, Berkeley Square, upon the toth inst., Richard Waverley, Esq., second son of Sir Giles Waverley of Waverley-Honour, etc., etc. He died of a lingering disorder, augmented by the unpleasant predicament of suspicion in which he stood, having been obliged to find bailWAVERLEY. 323 to a high amount, to meet an im pending accusation of high: treason. An accusation of the same grave crime hangs over his elder brother, Sir Everard W averley, the representative of that ancient family y ; and we understand the day of his trial will be fixed early in the next month unless Edward Way erley, son of the deceased Ric hard, and heir to the Baronet, shall surrender himself to justice. Tn th hat case, we are assured, it is his Majesty’s gracious purpose to drop further proceedings upon the charge against Sir Everard. This unfortunate young gentleman is ascertained to have been in arms in the Preten- der’ 'S service, and to have marched along with the Highland troops into England. But he has not been heard of since the skirmish at Clifton, on the 18th December last.” Such was this distr: acting paragraph. Good God!” ex. claimed Waverley, “am I then a parricide ?—Impossible ! My father, who never showed the affection of a father while he lived, cannot have been so much affected by my supposed death as to hasten his own. No, I will not believe it,—it were dis. traction to entertain for a moment such a horrible idea. But it were, if possible, worse than parricide to suffer any danger to hang over my noble and generous uncle, who has ever “been more to me than a BSE if such evil can be averted by any sacrifice on my part! While these reflections passed like the stings of scorpions through Waverley’s sensorium, the worthy divine was startled in a long as ion on the battle of Falkirk by the ghastliness which they communicated to his looks, and asked him if he was ill. Portdadialy the bride, all smirk and blush, had just entered the room. Mrs. Williams was none of the brightest of women, but she was good-natured, and readi ly concluding that Edward had been shocked by disagreeable news in the papers, interfered so judiciously, that, w ithout exciting suspicion, s] drew off Mr. Twigtythe’ s attention, and engaged it until he soon after took his leave, Waverley then explained to his friends, that he was under the ne -cessity of going to London with as little delay as possible. One cause of de elay, however, did occur, to which Waverley had been very little accustomed. His purse, though wel} stocked when he first went to Tully-Veolan, had not been rein- forced since that period; and although his life since had not been of a nature to exhaust it h astily (for he had lived chiefly with his friends or with the army), yet ‘he found, that, after set- tling with his kind landlord, he pon Id be too poor to encounter the expense of traveling post. The best course, therefore, seemed to be, to get into the pel north road about Borough Le PERSE oeotis F . ppbthiviesccsscscs eee OTT . : ; rae eee = 324 WAVERLEY. bridge, and there take a place in the Northern Diligence—a huge old-fashioned tub, drawn by three horses, which completed the journey from Edinburgh to London, (God willing, as the advertisement expressed it) in three weeks. Our hero, there fore, took an affectionate farewell of his Cumberland friends, whose kindness he promised never to forget, and tacitly hoped one day to acknowledge by substantial proofs of gratitude. After some petty diffic sulties, and vexatious delays, and afte1 putting his dress into a shape better Ce his rank, though perfectly plain and simple, he acec ymplished crossing the coun- try, and found hi mse self ee the desired vehicle, vzs-a-vis to Mrs. Nosebag, the lady of Lieutenant Noseb ag, adjutant and riding- Iastes Of the: —eee sh di yons,—a jolly woman of about fifty, wearing a blue habit, fac ced with scarlet, and grasping a silver- mounted horse-whip. This lady was one of those active members of society who take upon them faire le frais de la conversation. She had just returned from the north, and ees Edward how nearly her regiment had cut the petticoat people into ribbons at Falkirk, “only somehow there was one sit those nasty, awkward marshes, that ‘they are never without in Scotland, I think, and so our poor dear hee regiment suffered something, as my Nosebag says, in that unsatisfactory affair. You, sir, have served in the dragoons?” Waverley was taken so much at unawares, that he acquiesced. “QO, I knew it at once; I saw you were military from your air, and I am sure you could be none of the foot-wobblers, as my Nosebag calls them. What regiment pray?” Here was a delightful question. Waverley, however, justly concluded that this good lady had the whole army-list by heart ; and, to avoid detection, by adhering to truth, answered—“ Gardiner’s dragoons, ma’am; but I have retired some time.” *‘O aye, those as won the race at the battle of Preston; as my Nosebag says. Pray, sir, were you there?’ “JT was so unfortun: ate, madam,” he replied, “as to witness that engagement.” “¢ And that was a misfortune that few of Gardiner’s stood to witness, I believe, sir—ha! ha! ha!—I beg your pardon; but a soldier’s wife loves a joke.” “ Devil confound you!” thought Waverley ; “ what infernal luck has penned me up with this inquisitive hag!” Fortunately the good lady did not stick long to one sub ject. “We are coming to Ferrybridge, now,” she said, “ where there was a party of ours left to support the beadles, and conWAVERLEY. stables, and justices, and these sort of creatures that are exam- ining papers and sto} pbs rebels, and all that.” They were hardly in the int before she dragged W averley to the window exclaiming, ‘ ‘ Yonder comes Corporal Bridoon, OF our poor de ear troop; he’s coming with the constable man ; Bridoon’s one of my lambs, as Melek calls ’°em. Come, Mr. a—a—pray, what’s your name, sir?” ee T Butler, ma’am,” said Waverley, resolved rather to make ree with the name of a former fallen -officer, than run the risk of detection by inventing one not to be found in the regi- ment. “OQ, you got a troop lately, when that shabby fellow, Waver- ley, went over to the rebels. “Lo rd, I wish our old cross Captain Crump would g0 over to the rebels, that Nosebag might get the troop !—Lord, what can Br idoon be standing swinging on the bridge for? I'll be han, ce o if he a’nt hazy, as Nosel bag says.— Come, sir, as you and I be long to the service, we’ll 20 put the rascal in mind of his duty.” Waverley, with fe 2elings more easily conceived than de- scribed, saw himself obliged to follow this dou ehty female com- mander. ‘The gallant trooper was as like a lamb as a drunken corporal of dragoons, about six fee high, with very broad shoulders, and very th thin legs, not to mention a great scar across his nose, could well be. Mrs. Noseba use addressed him with something which, if not an oath, sounded very like one, and commanded him to attend to his duty. “You be Bag fora——,” commenced the gallant cavalier; but, looking up in order to suit the action to the es and also to enforce the epithet which he meditated, with an adjective applicable to the party, he recog1 uzed the speaker, made his military salam, and altered his tone.—‘ Lord love your handsome face, Madam Nosebag, is it you? Why, if a poor fellow does happen to fire a slug of a morning, I am sure you were never the lady to bring him to harm.” “Well, you rascallion, go, mind your duty; this gentleman and I belong to the service; and be sure you look after that shy cock in the slouched hat that sits in the corner of the coach. I believe he’s one of the rebels in disguise.” **D—n her gooseberry wis g!” said the corporal, when she out of hearing. “That gimlet-eyed jade—mother adjutant, as we call her—is a greater plague to the regiment than provost- marshal, sergeant-major, and old Tfubble-de-Shuff the colonel into the bargain.—Come, Master Cor nstable, let’s see if this shy cock, as she calls him, (who, by the way, was a Quaker from Leeds, with whom Mrs. Nosebag had had some tart argument Cnn asso oar nao. a ‘ pestNee cunt sho cally onnnEDnae Re NTS WG ates pasts = Pitter neice ee ee an A & a ath Serer a WAVERLEY. on the legality of bearing arms), will stand godfather to a sup of brandy, for your Yorkshire ale is cold on my stomach.” The vivacity of this good lady, as it helped Edward out of this scrape, was like to have drawn him into one or two others. In every town where they stopped, she wished to examine the corps de garde, if there was one, and once very narrowly missed introducing Waverley to a recruiting-sergeant of his own regi- ment. Then she Captain’d and Butler’d him till he was almost mad with vexation and anxiety; and never was he more re- joiced in his life at the termination of a journey than when the arrival of the coach in London freed him from the attentions of Madam Nosebag. CHAPTER SIXTY-SECOND. WHAT’S TO BE DONE NEXT ? Ir was twilight when they arrived in town; and having shaken off his companions, and walked through a good many streets to avoid the possibility of being traced by them, Edward took a hackney-coach and drove to Colonel Talbot’s house, in one of the principal squares at the west end of the town. ‘That gentleman, by the death of relations, had succeeded since his marriage to a large fortune, possessed considerable political in- terest, and lived in what is called great style. When Waverley knocked at his door, he found it at first difficult to procure admittance, but at length was shown into an apartment where the Colonel was at table. Lady Emily, whose very beautiful features were still pallid from indisposition, sate opposite to him. The instant he heard Waverley’s voice, he started up and embraced him. “ Frank Stanley, my dear boy, how d’ye do ?—Emily, my love, this is young Stanley.” The blood started to the lady’s cheek as she gave Waver- ley a reception, in which courtesy was mingled with kindness, while her trembling hand and faltering voice showed how much she was startled and discomposed. Dinner was hastily re- placed, and while Waverley was engaged in refreshing him- self, the Colonel proceeded—* I wonder you have come here, Frank; the doctors tell me the air of London is very bad for your complaint. You should not have risked it. But I am delighted to see you, and so is Emily, though I fear we must not reckon upon your staying long.” “Some particular business brought me up,” muttered Wa: verley.WAVERLEY. “ I supposed so, but I sha’n’t allow you to stay long.—-Spon. toon’’ (to an elderly military-looking servant out of livery), “take away these things, and answer the bell yourself, if J ring. Don’t let any of the other fellows disturb us.—My nephew and I have business to talk of.” When the servants had retired, “In the name of God, Waverley, what has brought you here? It may be as much as your life is worth.” “Dear Mr. Waverley,” said Lady Emily,” to whom I owe so much more than acknowledgments can ever pay, how could you be so rash?” ‘““My father—my uncle—this paragraph,’ he handed the paper to Colonel Talbot. ‘““T wish to Heaven these scoundrels were condemned to be squeezed to death in their own presses,” said Talbot. “I am told there are not less then a dozen of their papers now published in town, and no wonder that they are obliged to invent lies to find sale for their journals. It is true, however, my dear Edward, that you have lost your father; but as to this flourish of his unpleasant situation having grated upon his spirits, and hurt his health—the truth is—for though it is harsh to say so now, yet it will relieve your mind from the idea of weighty responsibility—the truth then is, that Mr. Richard Waverley, through this whole business, showed great want of sensibility, both to your situation and that of your uncle; and the last time I saw him, he told me, with great glee, that as I was so good as to take charge of your interest, he had thought t best to patch up a separate negotiation for himself, and make 11s peace with Government through some channels which former connections left still open to him.” ‘* And my uncle—my dear uncle ?” ‘Is in no danger whatever. It is true (looking at the date of the paper) there was a foolish report some time ago to the purport here quoted, but it is entirely false. Sir Everard is gone down to Waverley-Honour, freed from all uneasiness, unless upon your own account. But you are in peril yourself— your name is in every proclamation—warrants are out to apprehend you. How and when did you come here pe? Edward told his story at length, suppressing his quarrel with Fergus ; for being himself partial to Highlanders, he did not wish to give any advantage to the Colonel’s national pre- judice against them. - Are you sure it was your friend Glen’s footboy you saw dead in Clifton Moor ?” “ Quite positive.” 1 1 L b rf . Se Le PPS eae tu Sy er ser ecrrnarcecern tis oi we PRN ee ee eetWAVERLEY. “ Then that little limb of the devil has cheated the gallows for cut-throat was written in his face ; though ” (turning ta Lady Emily) ‘‘ it was a very handsome face too.—But for you Edward, I wish you would go down again to Cumberland, or rather I wish you had never stirred from thence, for there is an embargo on all the seaports, and a Strict search for the adherents of the Pretender; and the tongue of that confounded woman will wag in her head like the clack of a mill, till some- how or other she will detect Captain Butler to be a feigne personage.” “ Do you know anything,” asked Waverley, “ of my fellow- traveler?” “Her husband was my sergeant-major for six years : she was a buxom widow, with a little money—he married her—was steady, and got on by being a good drill. I must send Spon- toon to see what she is about ; he will find her out among the old regimental connections. To-morrow you must be indis- posed, and keep your room from fatigue. Lady Emily is to be your nurse, and Spontoon and I your attendants, You bear the name of a near relation of mine, whom none of my present people ever saw, except Spontoon ; so there will be no im- mediate danger. So pray feel your head ache and your eyes grow heavy as soon as possible, that you may be put upon the sick list ; and Emily, do you order an apartment for Frank Stanley, with all the attention which an invalid may require.” In the morning the Colonel visited his guest.—‘‘ Now,” said he, “I have some good news for you. Your reputation as a gentleman and officer is effectually cleared of neglect of duty, and accession to the mutiny in Gardiner’s regiment. I have had a correspondence on this subject with a very zealous friend of yours, your Scottish parson, Morton ; his first letter was addressed to Sir Everard ; but I relieved the good Baronet of the trouble of answering it. You must know, that your freebooting acquaintance, Donald of the Cave, has at length fallen into the hands of the Philistines. He was driving off the cattle of a certain proprietor called Killan—something or other” “« Killancureit ? ” “ The same. Now, the gentleman being, it seems, a great farmer, and having a special value for his breed of cattle— being, moreover, rather of a timid disposition, had got a party of solders to protect his property. So Donald ran his head unawares into the lion’s mouth, and was defeated and made prisoner. Being ordered for execution, his conscience was assailed on the one hand by a Catholic priest,—on the otherWAVERLEY. 329 by your friend Morton. He repulsed the Catholic chie Hy on account of the nomical gentleman considered as an exce ssive waste of oil. So his conversion from a state of impenitence fell to Mr. Morton’s share, who, I dare Say, acquitted himself excel] ently, though, I suppose, Donald made but a queer kind of Christian after all. He confessed, 10wever, before a magistrate—one Major MeL ville, who seems to have been a correct, friendly sort of per- son—his full intrigue with Houghton, explaining particularly how it was carried on and fully acquitting you of the least ac cession to it. He also mentioned his rescuing you rae the hands of the volunteer officer, and sending you, by orders of the Pret—Chevalier, I mean—as a prisoner to Doune ehh whence he understood you were carried prisoner to E dinburgh, These are particulars which cannot but tell in your favor. He hinted that he had been employed to deliver and protect you, and rewarded for doing so ; but he would not confess by w hom, alleging, that, though he would not have mi inded breaking any ordinary oath to satisfy the curiosity of Mr. Morton, to whose pious admonitions he owed so much. yet in the present Gare he had been sworn to silence upon the edge of his dirk,’ which, it seems, constituted, in his opinion, an inviolable se ligation, " And what has become of him? ” “Oh, he was hanged at Stirling after the rebels raised the siege, with his lieutenant, and four plaids besides ; he, having the adv antage of a gallows more lofty than his friends,” ‘Well, I have little cause either to regret or rejoice at his ‘dart ; and yet he has done me both good and harm to a very considerable extent.” “ His confession, at least, will serve you materially, since it wipes from your charac all those suspicions w hich gave the accusation against you a complexion of a nature different from that with which so many unfortunate ge ntlemen, now or lately in arms against the Government, nay be justly ch arged. Their treason—I must give it its name SNe you participate in its guilt—is an action arising from mistaken virtue, and therefore cannot be classed as a disgrace, though it be doubtless highly criminal. Where the guilty are so numerous. clemency must be extended to far the greater number; and I have little doubt of procuring a remission for you, provided we can keep you out of the claws of justice till she has selected and gorged upon her victims; for in this, as in other cases, it will be ac- cording to the vulgar proverb, ‘ First come, first served.’ * Note BB. Oath upon the Dirk. do ctrine of extreme unction, which this eco- RTD act Mah REECE ARAM 5330 WAVERLEY. Besides, Government are desirous at present to intimidate the English Jacol sites, among whom they can find few examples for punishment. This is a Vindictive and timid feeling which will soon wear off, for, of all nations, the English are lé ast blood thirsty by nature. But it exists at present, and you must there- fore be kept out of the w ay in the meantime.’ Now entered Spontoon with an anxious countenance. By his regimental acquaintances he had traced out Madam Nose- bag, - and found her full of ire, fuss, and fidget, at discovery of an “impostor, who had traveled from the north with her under the assumed name of Captain Butler of Gardiner’s dragoons, She was going to lodge an information on the subject, to have him sought for as an emis: sary of the Pretender ; but Spontoon, (an old soldier), while he pretended to approve, contrived to make her delay her intention. No time, however, was to be lost: the accuracy of this good dame’s description might prob- ably lead to the ‘discovery, that Waverley was the pretended Captain Butler; an identificatro: fraught with danger to Ed- ward, perhaps to his uncle, and even to Colonel Talbot. Which way to direct his course was now, therefore, the question. “To Scotland,” said Waverley. “To Scotland!” said the Colonel; “ with what purpose :— not to engage again with the rebels I hope ?” “ No—I considered my campaign ended, when, after all my efforts, I could not rejoin them; and now, by all accounts, they are gone to make a winter campaign in the Highlands, where such adherents as I am would rather be burdensome than useful. Indeed, it seems likely that they only prolong the war to place the Chevalier’s person out of danger, and then to make some terms for themselves. To burden them with my presence would merely add another party, whom they would not give up, and could not defend. I understand they left almost all their English adherents in garrison at Carlisle, for that very reason :—and on amore general view, Colonel to confess the truth, though it may lower me in your opinion, I am heartily tired of the trade of war, and am, as Fletcher’s Humorous Lieutenant says, ‘even as weary of this fight- ins’ ”’ : 2 5 “Fighting? pooh, what have you seen but a skirmish or two ?—Ah! if you saw war on the grand scale—sixty or a hundred thousand men in the field on each side !” “T am not at all curious, Colonel.‘ Enough,’ says our homely proverb, ‘is as good as a feast.’ The plumed troops and the big war used to enchant me in poetry; but the night marches, vigils, couched under the wintry sky, and suchWAVERLEY. 224 331 accompaniments of the glorious trade taste in practice :—then for dry blows, I had my fill of fighting at Clifton, where I esc -aped By a hair’s-breadth half-a- -dozen times ; and you, I should think’ He stopped. ‘* Had enough of it at P reston): ? you mean to say,” answered the c olonel laughing ; but, ‘’tis my vocation, Hal.’ ” “Ttals) no ming etc said W averley ; “and having honorably got rid of the sw ‘ord, which I drew only as a volun- teer, I am quite satisfied with my mil tary experience, and shall] be in no hurry to take it up again. “Iam very glad you are of that mind—but then, wha would you do in the North ?? 3 “In the first place, there are some seaports on tae astern coast of Scotland still in the hands of the Chev: lends ; should I gain any of them, I can ea asily embark for the Con- finent. 7 ‘“Good—your second reason ?” ‘ Why, to speak the very truth, there is a person in Scotland upon whom I now find my happiness depends more than I was always aware, and about whose situation I am very anxious.’ ‘Then Emily was right, and there is a love affair in the case after all ?—And which of these two pretty Scotchwomen, whom you insisted upon my admiring fair —not Miss Glen I hope. ee NEO 27 ‘Ah, pass for the other: simplicity may be improved, but pride and conceit never. Well, I don’t discourage you; I think it will please Sir Edward, from what he said when I jested with him about it; only I hope that intolerable papa, with his brogue, and his snuff, and his Latin, and his insuffer- able long stories about the Duke of Berw ick, will find it neces- sary h ereafter, to be an inhabitant of foreion parts. But as to the daughter, though I think you might find as fitting a match in England, yet if your heart be really set upon this Scotch Rosebud, why the Baronet has a great opinion of her father and of his family, and he wishes much to see you married and settled, both for your own sake and for that of the three er. mines passant, which may otherwise pass away altogether. But I will bring you his mind fully upon the subject, since you are debarred correspondence for the present, for I think you will not be long in Scotland before me. “Indeed! and what can induce you to think of returnin to Scotland? No relentless longings toward the land ot mountains and floods I am afraid.” “None, on my word; but Emily’s health is now, thank €, are not at all to my , 1s the distinguished . ) bch B « — rN 2 Met aadaueebabb bin serenens SIO Tannen SC Seen Te uN is TD TEDWAVERLEY. So God, re-established, and, to tell you the truth, I have little hopes of concluding the business which I have at present most at heart until | can have a personal interview with his Royal Highness the Commander-in-Chief; for, as Fluellen says, ‘ The Dulce doth love me well, and I nem heaven, I have deserved some love at his hands.’ I am now going a for an hour or two to arrange matters for your departure; your liberty ex- tends to the next room, Lady Emily’ S parlor, where you will find her when you are disposed for music, reading, or conver- Ned sation. We have taken measures to exclude all servants but nad oa who is as true as steel.” In about two hours Colonel Talbot returned, and found his ree young friend conversing with his lady; she pleased with his manners and information, and he delighted at being restored, though but for a moment, to the society of his own ‘rank, from which he had been for some time excluded. “ And now,” said the Colonel, “hear my arrangements, for a there is little oe to lose. ‘This youngster, Edw ard W averley, | alias Williams, alias Captain Butler, must continue to pass by his fourth a/as of Francis Stanley, my nephew: he shall set out to-morrow for the North, and the chariot shall take him the first two stages. Spontoon shall then attend him; and they shall ride post as far as Huntingdon; and the presence of Spontoon, well known on the road as my servant, will check all disposition to inquiry. At Huntingdon you will meet the real Frank Stanley. He is studying at Cambridge; but, a little rin while ago, doubtful if Emily’s health would permit me to go ae down to the North myself, i procured him a passport from the Secretary of State’s office to go in my stead. As he went i chiefly to look es you, his journey is now unnecessary. He knows your story; you will dine together at Huntingdon ; and perhaps 4 your wise heads may hit upon some plan for removing | or diminishing the danger of your farther progress northward. And now (taking out a morocco case), let me put you in funds for the campaign.’ ham ashamed, my dear Colonel,_—— “‘ Nay,” said Colonel Talbot, “you should command my purse in any event; but this money is your own. Your father, considering the chance of your being attainted, left me his | trustee for your advantage. So that you are worth above A £15,000, beside Brerewood Lodge—a very independent person, a I promise you. There are bills here for £200; any larger sum you may have, or credit abroad, as soon as your motions require it.’ The first use which occurred to Waverley of his newly bB] oa oe . PaaS tcc uksctes tes ~=WAVERLEY. acquired wealth, was to write to hone: t Farmer Jopson, request: Ing his acc eptance of a silver tank: lore on the part of his friend Williams, who had not forgotten the night of the eighteenth December last. He be geed him at the sam .e time carefully to ighland garb and acoutrements, pa ticularly the arms—curious in themselves, and to which the friendship of the donors gave additional value. Lady Emily un- dertook to find some suitable token of remembrance , likely to flatter the vanity and please the taste of Mrs. W illiams ; the Colonel, who was a 7 Oo preserve for him his H and kind of farmer, promised to send the Ullswater patriarch an excellent te eam of horses for cart and plough. One happy day Waverle ey spent in London; and, traveling in the manner paojetbed he met with Frank Se at Hunt. ingdon. The two young men were acd lainted in la minute. ‘I can read my uncle’s riddle,” said St Ste nley. The eau- tious old soldier did not care to hint to me that I might hand over to you this passport, which I have no occasion for; but if it should afterward come out as the rattle-pated trick of a young Cantab, cela ne tire d rien. You are therefore to be Francis Stank -y, with this passport.” This proposal appeared in effect to alleviate a great part of the difficulties which Edward nust otherwise have encountered at every turn; and accord- ingly he scrupled not to avail himself of it, the more especially as he had discarded all political purposes from his present journey, and could not be accused of furthering machinations against the Government while traveling under protection of the Secretary’s passport. The day passed merrily away. The young student was in- quisitive about Wa iverley’s campaigns, and the manners—cf the ie ites and Fishes ard was obliged to satisfy his curiosity by whistling a pibroch, dancing a stra ithspey, and s singing a High- land song. ~The next morning Stanley rode as age Sores cd with his new friend, and parted from him with great reluctance, upon the remonstrances of Spontoon, who, accustomed to submit to discipline, was rigid in enforcing it, Bras: Ress rosmmro Soe PT nSix bintan Siblakasaakac ee tra datene etic cans WAVERLEY. CHAPTER SIXTY-THIRD. DESOLATION. WAVERLEY riding post, as was the usual fashion of the period, without any as renture save one or two queries, which ‘he talisman of his passport sufficiently answered, reached the borders of Scotland. Here he heard the tidings of the decisive battle of Culloden. It was no more than he h ad long expected, though the success at Falkirk had thrown a faint and setting eleam over the arms of the Chevalier. Yet it came upon him like a shock, by which he was for a time altogether unmanned. The generous, the courteous, the noble- minded Adventurer, was then a fugitive, with a price upon his head; his adherents so brave, so enthusiastic, so faithful, were dead, ‘imprisoned, or eXx- iled. Where, now, was the exalted and high- souled Fergus, if, indeed, he had igo the night at Clifton ?>—where the pure- hearted and primitive Baron of Bradwardine, whose foibles seemed foils to set off the disinterestedness of his disposition, the genuine goodness of his heart, and his unshaken courage ? Those who clung for support to these fallen pees Rose and Flora,—where were they to be sought, and in what distress must not the loss of their natural protectors have involved gees Of Flora he thought with the regard of a brother for Rose, with a sensation yet more deep and tender. It hight be still his fate to supply the want of those guardians they has lost. Agitated by these thoughts, he precipitated his journey. When he arrived in Edinburgh, where his inquiries must necessarily commence, he felt the full difficulty of his situation. Many inhabitants of that city had seen and known him as Edward Waverley ; how, then, could he avail himself of a pass- port as Francis ‘Stanley > He resolved, therefore, to avoid all company, and to move northward as soon as possible. He was, however, obliged to wait a day or two in expectation of aletter from Colonel Talbot, and he was also to leave his own address, under his feigned character, at a place agreed upon. With this latter purpose he sallied out in the dusk through the well-known streets, carefully shunning observation, —but in vain: one of the first persons whom he met at once recognized him. It was Mrs. Flockhart, Fergus Mac-Ivor’s good-humored landlady. “ Gude guide us, Mr. Waverley, is this you ?—na, ye neednaWAVERLEY. 335 be feared for me—I wad betray nae gentleman in your circum- stances. Eh, lack-a-day! lack-a-day! here’s a change o’ mar- kets ! how merry Colonel Mac-Ivor and you used to be in our house?” And the good-natured widow shed a few natural tears. As there was no resisting her claim of acquaintance, Waverley acknowledged it with a good grace, as well as the danger of his own situation. “ As it’s neart he darkening, sir, wad ye just step in by to our house, and tak a dish o’ tea? and I am sure, if ye like to sleep in the little room, I wad tak care ye are no disturbed, and naebody wad ken ye, for Kate and Matty, the limmers, gaed aff wi’ twa o’ Hawley’s dragoons, and I hae twa new queans instead o’ them.” Waverley accepted her invitation, and engaged her lodging for a night or two, satisfied he should be safer in the house of this simple creature than anywhere else. When he entered the parlor, his heart swelled to see Fergus’s bonnet, with the white cockade, hanging beside the little mirror. “Ay,” said Mrs. Flockhart, sighing, as she observed the direction of his eyes, “ the poor Colonel bought a new ane just the day before they marched, and I winna let them tak that ane doon, but just to brush it ilka day mysell; and whiles I look at it till I just think I hear him cry to Callum to bring him his bonnet, as he used to do when he was ganging out.—It’s unco silly—the neighbors ca’ me a Jacobite—but they may say their say—lI am sure it’s no for that—but he was as kind-hearted a gentleman as ever lived, and as weel-far’d too. Oh d’ye ken, sir, when he is to suffer?” “ Suffer ! Good heaven !—Why, where is he!” “Eh, Lord’s sake! d’ye no ken? The poor Hieland body, Dugald Mahoney, cam here a while syne, wiane o’ his arms cuttit off, and a sair clour in the head—ye’ll mind Dugald ? he carried aye an axe on his shouther—and he cam here just beg- ging, as I may say, for something to eat. Aweel, he tauld us the Chief, as they ca’d him (but I ayeca’ him the Colonel) and Ensign Maccombich, that ye mind weel, were ta’en some- where beside the English border, when it was sae dark that his folk never missed him till it was ower late, and they were like to gang clean daft. And he said that little Callum Beg (he was a bauld mischievous callant that), and your honor, were killed that same night in the tuilzie, and mony mae braw men. But he grat when he spak o’ the Colonel, ye never saw the like. And now the word gangs, the Colonel is to be tried and to suffer wi’ them that were ta’en at Carlisle.” And his sister ¢ ¢ “ Ay, that they ca’d the Lady Flora—weel, she’s away up b ~ Cae Pe neem SEREAYTRE GERAISDpahieha hi eliahhina tees WAVERLEY. to Carlisle to him, and lives wi’ some grand Papist lady there abouts, to be near him.” “ And,” said Edward, “ the other young lady?” “ Whilk other? I ken only of ae sister the Colonel had.” ‘T mean Miss Bradwardine,” said Edward. “Ou ay, the laird’s daughter,” said Ims landlady. “She was a very bonny lassie, poor thing, but far shyer than Lady Flora.” ‘¢ Where is she, for God’s sake ?” “Ou, wha kens where ony o’ them is now? Puir things, they’re sair ta’en doun for their white cockades and their white roses ; but she gaed north to her father’s in Perthshire, when the government troops cam back to Edinbro’. ‘There was some pretty men amang them, and ane Major Whacker was quartered on me, a very ceevil gentleman,—but O, Mr. Waverley, he was naething sae weel-far’d as the poor Colonel.” “Do you know what is become of Miss Bradwardine’s father?” “The auld laird ?—na, naebody kens that; but they say he fought very hard in that bluidy battle at Inverness; and Deacon Clank, the white-iron smith, says, that the Government folk are sair agane him for having been owf twice; and troth he might hae ta’en warning,—but there’s nae fule like an auld fule—the poor Colonel was only out ance.” Such conversation contained almost all the good-natured widow knew of the fate of her late lodgers and acquaintances ; but it was enough to determine Edward at all hazards to pro- ceed instantly to Tully-Veolan, where he concluded he should see, or at least hear, something of Rose. He therefore left a letter for Colonel Talbot at the place agreed upon, signed by his assumed name, and giving for his address the post-town next to the Baron’s residence. From Edinburgh to Perth he took post-horses, resolving to make the rest of his journey on foot—a mode of traveling to which he was partial, and which had the advantage of permit- ting a deviation from the road when he saw parties of military at a distance. His campaign had considerably strengthened his constitution, and improved his habits of enduring fatigue. His baggage he sent before him as opportunity occurred. As he advanced northward, the traces of war became visible. Broken carriages, dead horses, unroofed cottages, trees felled for palisades, and bridges destroyed, or only partially repaired, —all indicated the movements of hostile armies. In those places where the gentry were attached to the Stuart cause, their houses seemed dismantled or deserted, the usual courséWAVERLEY. 337 of what may be called ornamental labor was totally inter. rupted, and the inhabitants were seen gliding about, with fear, sorrow, and de jection on their faces. It was evening when he approached the village of Tully- Veolan, with feelings and sentiments—how different from those which attended his first entrance! Then, life was so new to him, iat 4 oe or disagreeable day was one of the sraetest misfortunes which his imag sination anticipated, and it see med to him that his time ought only to be consecrated ta elegant or amusing study, and relieved by social or youthful frolic. Now, how changed! how saddened, yet how elevated was his character, within the course of a very few months! Danger and misfortune are rapid, though severe teachers, Ei esta sr and a wiser man,” he rele in” internal confidence and mental dig: nity, a comp ensation for the gay ees which. in his case, experience had so rapidly di ssolved. As he approached ae village, he saw, with surprise and anxiety, that a party of soldiers were quartered near it, and, What was worse, that they seemed stationary ke This he conjectured from a few tents which he beheld glimmering upon what was called the Common Moor. To avoid the risk of pole stopped and questioned in a place where he was so likely to be recognized, he made a large circuit, altogether avoiding the hamlet, and approaching the 1 upper gate of the avenue by a by-path well known to him. A single glance announced that great changes had taken place. One-half of the gate, entirely destroyed and split up for firewood, lay in piles, ready to be taken a way ; the other swung uselessly about upon its loosened hinges. The battlements above the gate were broken and thrown down, and the carved Bears, which were said to have done sentinel’s duty upon the top for centu- ries, now, hurled from their posts, lay among the rubbish. The avenue was cruelly wasted. Several large trees were felled and left ins across the path; and the cattle of the villagers, and the more rude hoofs of fiat on horses, had poached into black mud the verdant turf which Wave rley had so much admired. Upon entering the court-yard, Edward saw the fears real- ized which these circumstances had excited. The place had been sacked by the King’s troops, who, in wanton mischief, had even attempted to burn it; and though the thickness of the walls had resisted the fire, unless to a partial extent, the stables and out-houses were totally consumed. ‘The towers and pinnacles of the main building were scorched and black- ened ; the pavement of the court broken and shattered; the Ty y BIS pores eax: NUTT ASAE ene Bs wayPSEA SHAR EL RM RE E Ld TS eee TRS WAVERLEY. doors torn down entirely, or hanging by a single hinge ; the windows dashed in and demolished; and the court strewed with articles of furniture broken into fragments. The accessa: ries of ancient distinction, to which the Baron, in the pride o' his heart, had attached so much importance and veneration, were treated with peculiar contumely. The fountain was de- molished, and the spring which had supplied it now flooded the court-yard. The stone basin seemed to be destined for a drink- ing-trough for cattle, from the manner in which it was arranged upon the ground. ‘The whole tribe of Bears, large and small, had experienced as little favor as those at the head of the avenue ; and one or two of the family pictures, which seemed to have served as targets for the soldiers, lay on the ground in tatters. With an aching heart, as may well be imagined, Edward viewed this wreck of a mansion so respected. But his anxiety to learn the fate of the proprietors, and his fears as to what that fate might be, increased with every step. When he entered upon the terrace new scenes of desolation were visible. ‘The balustrade was broken down, the walls destroyed, the borders overgrown with weeds, and the fruit-trees cut down or grubbed up. In one compartment of this old-fashioned garden were two immense horse-chestnut trees, of whose size the Baron was particularly vain: too lazy, perhaps, to cut them down, the spoilers, with malevolent ingenuity, had mined them, and placed a quantity of gunpowder in the cavity. One had been shivered to pieces by the explosion, and the fragments lay scattered around, encumbering the ground it had so long shadowed. ‘The other mine had been more partial in its effect. About one fourth of the trunk of the tree was torn from the mass, which, mutilated and defaced on the one side, still spread on the other its ample and undiminished boughs.* Amid these general marks of ravage, there were some which more particularly addressed the feelings of Waverley. Viewing the front of the building, thus wasted and defaced, his eyes naturally sought the little balcony which more properly belonged to Rose’s apartment—her troisieme, or rather ci- guicme étage. It was easily discovered, for beneath it lay the stage-flowers and shrubs with which it was her pride to deco- rate it, and which had been hurled from the bartizan: several of her books were mingled with broken flower-pots and other remnants. Among these, Waverley distinguished one of his * A pair of chestnut trees, destroyed, the one entirely, and the other in part, by such a mischievous and wanton act of revenge, grew at Invergarry Castle. the fastness of Macdonald of Glengarry.WA VERLEY. 2 339 Own, a small copy of Ariosto, and gathered it as a treasure, though wasted by the wind and rain, W hile plunged in the sad r eflections which the scene ex: cited, he was looking around for some one who might explai the fate of the inh abi tants, he heard a voice from the ee of the building singing, in well-re emembered accents, an old Scottish song : They came upon us in the night, And brake my bower and slew my knight ; My servants a’ for lif fe did flee, And left us in extremitie, They slew my knight, to me sae dear ; They slew my knight, and drave his gear; * The moon may set, the sun may rise, But a deadly sleep has closed his eyes, ‘Alas !” thought Edward, “is it thou? Poor hel art thou alone left, to gibber and moan, and fill and unconnected scraps of minstrelsy the halls that protected thee ?”—He then called, first low, and then louder, “ Davie== Davie Gellatley ! ” The poor simpleton showed himself from among the ruins of a sort of gTeen- house, that once termin: ated what was called the Terrace-walk, but at first sight of a stranger retreated as if in terror. W averley, remembering his h abits,, began to whistle a tune to which he was partial, ‘which Davie h great pleasure in listening to, and had picked up from him by the ear. Our hero’s min strelsy no more equaled that of Blondel, than poor Davie resembled Coeur de Lion; but the melody had the same effect of producing recognition. Davie again stole from his lurking-place, but timidly, while Waverley, afraid of { frightening him, stood making the “most encouraging signals he could devise.—“ It’s his ohai ist,’’ muttered Davie : yet, coming nearer, he seemed to acknowlec lge his living ac- quaintance. The poor fool himself appeared the ghost of what he had been. The peculiar oe in which he had been at- tired in better days, showed only miser able rags of its whimsi- cal finery, the lack of which was odc lly supplied by the rem. nants of tapestried hangings, window- -curtains, and shreds of pictures, with which he ‘had bec lizened his tatters. His face, too, had lost its vacant and careless air, and the poor creature looked hollow- eyed, meagre, half-starved, and nervous to a pitiable degree.—After long hesitation, he at length approached pless being, with thy Titel ad expressed The/first three couplets are from an old ballad, called the Border Widow’ s Lament. ALAN ANAT OTESee ° LUNAR chee Te Sithvassacset ee a : iene a ce ok 5 WAVERLEY. ot Waverley with some confidence, stared him sadly in the face, and said, ‘A’ dead and gane—a’ dead and gane! e “Who are dead?” said Waverley, forgetting the incapacity of Davie to hold any connected discourse. “ Baron—and Bailie—and Saunders Saunderson—and Lady Rose, that sang sae sweet—A’ dead and gane—dead and gane | But follow, follow me, While glow-worms light the lea ; ’ll show you where the dead should be— Each in his shroud, While winds pipe loud, And the red moon peeps dim through the cloud. Follow, follow me ; Brave should he be That treads by night the dead man’s lea.” With these words, chanted in a wild and earnest tone, he made a sign to Waverley to follow him, and walked rapidly toward the bottom of the garden, tracing the bank of the stream, which, it may be remembered, it was its eastern boun- dary. Edward, over whom an involuntary shuddering stole at the import of his words, followed him in some hope of an ex- planation. As the house was evidently deserted, he could not expect to find among the ruins any more rational informer. Davie, walking very fast, soon reached the extremity of the garden, and scrambled over the ruins of the wall that once had divided it from the wooded glen in which the old Tower of Tully-Veolan was situated. He then jumped down into the bed of the stream, and, followed by Waverley, proceeded at a great pace, climbing over some fragments of rock, and turning with difficulty round others. They passed beneath the ruins of the castle; Waverley followed, keeping up with his guide with difficulty, for the twilight began to fall. Following the descent of the stream a little lower, he totally lost him, but a twinkling light, which he now discovered among the tangled copse-wood and bushes, seemed a surer guide. He soon pursued a very uncouth path; and by its guidance at length reached the door of a wretched hut. WAVERLEY, 357 him at his own house till things are settled in the co untry ; but it’s a little hard to be forced in a manner to pardon such a morta] enemy to the House of Brunswick.’ This was no favorable moment for opening my business ;— ee I said I was poiaiced to learn that his “Roy al Highness was in the course of yranting such requests, as it embolc dened me to present one of the like nature in my own name. € was very angry, but I persisted ;—I mentioned the uniform s support of our three votes in the house, ee modestly on services abroad, though valuable only in his Royal Highness’s having been please ed| kindly to accept them, and found. sd retty s strongly on his own expres- will. He was embarrassed, but y of detaching, on all future rtune as your uncle’s from the machinations of the disaffected, eat I made no impression. I mentioned the obligations whic ey under to Sir Everard, and to you personally, and cea s the sole reward of my services, that he would be pleased ie. afford me the means evincing my gratitude. | perceived th 1at he still meditated < refusal, and taking my commission from my pocket, I said a a last resource), that as his Ro yal Highne ss did not, under these pressing circums tances, think me worthy of a favor which hi en H p eood QO l- obstinate. I hinted the policy occasions, the heir of such a fo; sions of friendship an ad famed he had not scrupled to grant to other gentlemen, whose services I could hardly judge more important than my own, I must beg leave to deposit, with all humility, my commission in his Royal Highness’s hands, and to retire from the service. He was not prepared for this ;—he told me to take up my com- mission ; ae some handsome things of my services, and grante dit y request. You are the refore once more a freeman, and I bat we promised for you that you will be a good boy in future, and remember we you owe to the lenity of Govern- ment. Thus you see my prince can be as generous as Eg I do not pretend, indeed, Sa he confers a favor with all the foreign graces and compliments of your Chevalier errant; but he has a plain English manner, and the evident reluctance with which he grants your request, indicates the sacrifice which th makes of hi S own inclination to your wishes. My friend, adjutant-general, has procured me a duplicate of the Beane protection (the original being in Major Melville’s possession), which I send to you, as I biow that if you can find him you will have pleasure in being the eee to communicate the joyful intelligence. He will of course repair tothe Duchran without loss of time, there to ride quarantine for a few weeks, As for you, I give you leave to escort him thither, and to stay a week there, as PSSNtranten nicer e Serial ELIS TET Sisbiniae pe hahhed aiahs 3 Sotho bin enemas nes ce eT WAVERLEY. 358 v I understand a certain fair lady is in that quarter. And I have the pleasure to tell you, that whatever pee you can make in her good graces will be highly agreeable to Sir Everard and Mrs. Rachel, who will never believe your views and prospects settled, and the three ermines passant. in actual safety, until you present them with a Mrs. Edward Waverley. Now, certain love-affairs of my own—a good many years since—interrupted some measures which were then proposed in favor of the three ermines passant; so I am bound in honor to make them amends. Therefore make good use of your time, for when your week is expired, it will be necessary that you go to London to plead your pardon in the law courts. ‘Ever, dear Waverley, yours most truly, ‘PHicrp JLALBOT.:* CHAPTER SIXTY-SEVENTH. Happy’s the wooing That’s not long a doing. NVwen the first rapturous sensation occasioned by these Be tidings had somewhat subsided, Edward proposed instantly to: go down to the elen to acquaint the Baron with their import. But the cautious Bailie justly observed, that if the Baron were to appear instantly in public, the tenantry and villagers might become riotous in expressing their joy, and give offence to “ the powers that be,” a sort of persons for whom the Bailie always had unlimited respect. He therefore proposed that Mr. Waverley should go to Janet Gellatley’s and bring the Baron up under cloud of night to Little Veolan, where he might once more enjoy the luxury of a good bed. In the meanw hile, he said, he himself would goto C aptain Foster, and show him the Baron’s protection, and obtain his counte- nance for harboring him that night,—and he would have horses ready on the morrow to set him on his way to the Duchran along with Mr. Stanley, ‘ whilk denomin ation, I apprehend, your honor will for the present retain,” said the Bailie “Certainly, Mr. Macwheeble ; but will you not go down to the glen yourself i in the evening to meet your patron ?” ‘That I wad wi’ a? my heart ; and mickle obliged to your bating for putting me in mind o’ my bounden duty. But it will be past sunset afore I get back frae the Captain’s andWAVERLEY. these unsonsy hours the glen has a bad name—there’s he’ll no believe th turesome—and feared neither man nor deevil— ot. Butright sure am I Sir George Macl shalt not suffer them to live there’s baith law and gospel for it. lieve the Leviticus, he might aye believe the Statute-bool he may tak his ain way o’t—it’s a’ ane to Duncan Macwheebie. However, I shall send to ask up auld Janet this e’en ; it’s best no to lightly them that have that character—and we'll want Davie to turn the spit, for, ’ll gar Eppie put down a fat goose to the fire for your honors to your supper.” When it was near sunset, Waverley hastened to the hut : and he could not but allow that superstition had chosen no improper locality, or unfit object, for the foundation of her fantastic terrors. It resembled exactly the description of Spenser: There, in a gloomy hollow glen, she found A little cottage built of sticks and reeds, In homely wise, and wall’d with sods around, In which a witch did dwell in loathly weeds, And wilful want, all careless of her needs : So choosing solitary to abide Far from all neighbors, that her devilish deeds, And hellish arts, from people she might hide, And hurt far off, unknown, whomsoever she espied. He entered the cottage with these verses in his memory. Poor old Janet, bent double with age, and bleared with peat- smoke, was tottering about the hut with a birch broom, mutter- ing to herself as she endeavored to make her hearth and floor a little clean for the reception of her expected guests. Waver- Jey’s step made her start, look up, and fall a-trembling, so much had her nerves been on the rack for her patron’s safety. With difficulty Waverley made her comprehend that the Baron was now safe from personal danger ; and when her mind had admitted that joyful news, it was equally hard to make her be- lieve that he was not to enter again upon possession of his estate. “‘ It behoved to be,” she said, ‘ he wad Seti back again ; naebody wad be sae gripple as to tak his gear after they had gi’en him a pardon; and for that Inch-Grabbit, I could whiles wish mysell a witch for his sake, if I werena feared the Enemy wad tak me at my word.” Waverley then gave her some money, and promised that her fidelity should 359 some- thing no that canny about auld Janet Gellatley. The Laird ae things, but he was aye ower rash and ven- and sae’s seen WAVERLEY. 365 mistaking the stately form and noble features of Fe ergs Mac- Ivor, altho ugh his dress was squi lid and his ; countenance tinged with the sickly yellow hue of long and close imprisonment. “By his side was Evan Maccombich.. Edward felt sick and dizzy as he gazed on them; but he was recalled to hj ae as the Clerk of the Arraigns pronounced the solemn words “Fetgtis Mac-Ivor of Glennaquc ich, otherwise called Vich Ian Vohr, and Evan Mac Ivor, in the Dhu of Tarrascleugh, otherwise called Evan Dhu, otherwise called Evan Maccombich, or Evan Dhu Maccombich—you, and each of you, stand attainted of high treason. What have you to say for yourselves why the Court should not pronounce judgment against you, that you die according to law?’ Fergus, as the presiding J udge was putting on the fatal cap of judgment, placed his own bonnet upon his he: id, regarded him with a steadfast and stern look. and repeal na fitm voice, ‘I cannot let this numerous audience suppose ee to such an appeal I have no answer to ae But what I have to say, you would not eg! to hear, for my defence would a yC A condem- nation. Proceed, then, in che name of God, to do what is per- mitted to souk Yesterday, and the day Batoree you have condemned loyal and honorable blood to be poured forth like vater. Spare notmine. Were that of all my ancestors in my veins, I would have peril’d it in this quarrel.” He resumed his seat, and refused again to rise Evan Maccombich looked at him with great earnestness, and, rising up, seemed anxious to speak; but the confusion of the court, and the perplexity arising from thinking in a langu age different from that in which he was to express himself, kept 9 at him silent. There was a murmur of com passion among the A spectators, from an idea that the poor fellow intended to plead . ‘ Cc * ° mm the influence of his superior as an excuse for his crime. The Judge co mmanded silence, and enc Evan to proceed. “Twas only ganging to say, my Tie Evan, in what he meant to be in an insinuating mal nner,” that if your excel- lent honor, and the honorable Court, would let Vi ich fan Vohr Ta a 3H RAAr B, Waa go free just t his once, anc l let him gae back to France, and no to trouble King George’s government again, that ony six 0’ the very best of his es will be willing to be justified in his stead : and if you'll ae a me gae pane to Glennaquoich, Ill fetch them up to ye mysell, to head or hang, and you may begin wi’ me the ey y fe oe man.’ Notwithstanding the solemnity of the occasion, a sort of laugh was h seatd in the court at the extr: 10ordinary nature of the sos: The Judge checked this indecency, and Evan, look- SEER SERPENT STITT TONG2S eee PARTS = waa N w wo 366 WAVERLEY. ing sternly around, when the murmur abated, “ If the Saxon gentlemen are laughing,” he said, “ because a poor man, such as me, thinks my life, or the life OF six of my degree, is OnE that i Wich lane vie hr, its like enough they may be very right ; but if they laugh because they think I would not keep my word, and come back to redeem him, I can tell them they ken neither the heart of a Hielandman, nor the honor of a gentleman.” There was no further inclination to laugh among the audi- pat and a dead silenced ensued. lhe Judge then pronounced upon both prisoners the sen- tence of the law of high treason, with all its horrible. accom: paniments. ‘The execution was appointed for the ensuing day. “For you, Fergus Mac-Ivor,” continued the Judge, “I can hold out no hope of mercy. You must prepare against to-morrow for your last sufferings here, and your great audit hereafter.” “I desire nothing else, my lord,” answered Fergus, in the same manly and firm tone. ; The hard eyes of Evan, which had been perpetually bent on his Chief, were moistened vin a tear. “ Fer you, poor ignorant man,” continued the Judge, “ who, following the ideas in which you have been educated, have this day given us a striking example how the loyalty due to the king and state alone, is, from your unhappy ideas of clanship, transferred to some ambitious individual, who ends by making you the tool of his crimes—for you, I say, I feel so much compassion, that if you can make up your mind to petition for grace, I will en- deavor to procure it for you. Otherwise ” ‘Grace me no grace,” said Evan ; “since you are to shed Vich Jan Vohr’s blood, the only favor I would accept from you is—to bid them loose my hands and gie me my claymore, and bide you just a minute sitting where you are !” ‘Remove the prisoners,” said the Judge ; “ his blood be upon his own head.” Almost stupefied with his feelings, Edward found that the rush of the crowd had conveyed him out into the street, ere he knew what he was doing.—His immediate wish was to see and speak with Fergus once more. He applied at the Castle, where his unfortunate friend was confined, but was refused admit: tance. “ The High Sheriff,” a non-commissioned officer said, “had requested of the governor that none should be admitted to see the prisoner excepting his confessor and his sister.” And where was Miss Mac-Ivor?” They gave him the direction. It was the house of a respectable Catholic family near Carlisle Kepulsed from the gate of the Castle, and not venturing toWAVERLEY. 364 make application to the High Sheriff or Jud ges in his own unpopular name, he had recourse to the solicitor who came down in Fergus’s behalf. This gentleman told him that it was thought the ‘public mind was in danger of being debauched by he account of the last moments of these persons, as given by he friends of the Pretender : that there had been a re esolution, herefore, to exclude all such persons as had not tne plea of near kindred for attending upon them. Yet he promised (to oblige the heir of Wav erley- Honour) to get him an order for admittance to the prisoner the next morning, before his irons were knock ed off for execution. ls ib of Fer seus Mac-Ivor they speak thus,” thought Wa- verley, “ or do I dream? of Fet rgus, the bold, the chivalrous, the Ande the lofty chieftain of a tribe devoted to him? Is it he, that I have seen lead the chase and head the attack, —the brave, the active, the young, the noble, the love of ladies, and the theme of song—is it he who is ironed like a malefactor —who is to be dragged on a hurdle to the common callow - to die a lingering and cruel death, and to be ma ungled by t hand of the most outcast of wretches ? Evil indeed was - spectre that boded such a fate as this to the brave Chief of Glennaquoich. With a faltering voice he requested the solicitor to find means to warn Fergus of his intended visit, should he obtain permission to make it. He then turned away from him, and, returning to the inn, wrote a scarcely intelligible note to F lora Mac-Ivor, intimating his purpose to wait upon her that even- ing. The messenger brought back a letter in Flora’s beautiful [talian hand, which seemed scarce to tremb le even under this load of misery. ‘“ Miss Flora Mac- Ivor,” the letter bore, “ could not refuse to see the dearest friend of her dear brother, even in her present circumstances of unparalleled distress.” When Edward reached Miss Mac-Ivor’s present place of abode, he was instantly admitted. In a large and gloomy tapestried apartment, Flora was seated ] vy a latticed window, sewing what seemed to bea garment of white flannel, Ata little distance sat an elderly woman, apparently a foreigner, and of a religious order. She was re sading in a book of Catho- lic devotion ; but when Wav erley entered, laid it on the table and left the room. Flora rose to receive him, and stretched out her hand, but neither ventured to attempt Speech: Her fine complexion was totally gone : her person considerably emaciated; and her face and hands as white as the purest statuary marble, forming a strong contrast with her sable dress and jet-hlack hair, Yet, amid these marks of distress, there t U ¢ L oer Sette y amare tis Sucrh CaS CLITA eee ee a 3 SS ees elaknitsWAVERLEY. was nothing negligent or ill-arranged about her attire ; even her hair, though totally without ornament, was disposed with ‘ her usual attention to neatness. The first words she uttered were, ‘ Have you seen him ?” ‘“ Alas, no,” answered Waverley; ‘I have been refused an admittance.” ; tt ‘Tt accords with the rest,” she said, Shall you obtain leave, do you suppose ?” ‘“‘ For—for—to-morrow,” said Waverley ; but muttering the iast word so faintly that it was almost unintelligible. Hi “¢ Ay, then or never,” said Flora, ‘‘ until ’’—she added, look- Wa ing upward, ‘“‘ the time when, I trust, we shall all meet. But I hope you will see him while earth yet bears him. He always loved you at his heart, though—but it is vain to talk of the past.” “Vain-indeed !’’ echoed Waverley. ‘Or even of the future, my good friend,” said Flora “ so | far as earthly events are concerned; for how often have I Bille | pictured to myself the strong possibility of this horrid issue, an and tasked myself to consider how I could support my part; and yet how far has all my anticipation fallen short of the unimaginable bitterness of this hour!” “Dear Flora, if your strength of mind” ‘“‘ Ay, there it is,’? she answered, somewhat wildly ; ‘‘ there it is, Mr. Waverley, there is a busy devil at my heart that whis- pers—but it were madness to listen to it—that the strength of mind on which Flora prided herself has murdered her brother !” Wy ‘‘Good Gad! how can you give utterance to a thought so i shocking ?” a “ Ay, is it not so ?—but yet it haunts me like a phantom: I | know itis unsubstantial and vain ; but it zvz/7 be present—wil] intrude its horrors on my mind—will whisper that my brother, as volatile as ardent, would have divided his energies amid a hundred objects. It was I who taught him to concentrate them, and to gage all on this dreadful and desperate cast. Oh that I could recollect that I had but once said to him, ‘He that striketh with the sword shall die by the sword ;’ that I had but once said, Remain at home ; reserve yourself, your vassals, your life, for enterprises within the reach of man. But | oh, Mr. Waverley, I spurred his fiery temper, and half of his , a ruin at least lies with his sister !” The horrid idea which she had intimated Edward endeav- ored to combat by every incoherent argument that occurred ce but we must submit, tas Prien x hestaGarst ee tee ee Spanascaeaceeiet Mikes eee 48, After the Revolution of 1688, and on some occasions when t ‘it of the Presbyterians had been unusually animated against their opponents, the FE] ee al clergymen, who were chiefly non-jurors, were exposed to be m bl ved, as we should now say, or vabéled, as the phrase then went, to expiate their political heresies. But, notwithstanding that the Presbyterians had the bake -cution in Charles II. and his brother’s time to exasperate them, there was little mischief done beyond the kind of petty violence mentioned in the text. I5. Page 51. Southey’s Madoc. 16, Page 52 I may here mention, that the fashion of compotation described in the text was still occasionally practiced in Scotland, in the author’s vouth. A company, after having taken leave of their host, often went to finish the evening at the clachan or village, in *‘ womb of tavern, és Their entertainer always accompanied them to take the stirrup-cup, which often occasioned a long and late revel. Phe Poculum Pot or of the valiant Baron, his blessed Bear, has a prototype at the fine old Castle of Glammis, so rich in memorials of anciont times; it is a massive Kelker of silver, double gilt, moulded into the shape of a lion, and holding about an English pint of wine The form alludes ta the family name of Strathmore. which js Lyon, and, when exhibited. the cup must necessarily be emptied to the cee Ba uth. The author ought perhaps to be ashamed of recordit g that 1 > has had the honor of swallow- ing the contents of the Lion; and the recbilettios of the feat served ta suggest the story of the Bear of Bradwardine. In the family of Scott of Phirlestane (not Thirlestane in the Parcee, but the place of the same name in Roxburghshire) was long preserved a cup of the same kind, in the form of a jack-boot. Each guest was obliged to empty this at his departure. If the guest’s name was Scott, the necessity was doubly imperative. W hen the landlady of an ini presented his guests with deoch an doruis, that is, the drink at the door, ph the stirrup-cup, the draught was not charged in the reckoning. On tl ; point a learned Bailie of the town of Forfar pronounced a very sound ji ieee t. A., an ale-wife in Forfar, had brewed her “ peck of malt,” and set theNOTES TO WAVERLEY, 397 liquor out of doors to cool; the cow of B., a neighbor of A., chanced to come by, and seeing the good beverage, was allured to taste it, and finally to drink it up. When A. came to take in her liquor, she found her tub empty, and from the cow’s s aggering and staring, so as to betray her in- temperance; she easily divined the mode in which her “ browst” had disap- eon Crummie’s ribs with a stick, was her first effort. The roaring of the cow brought B., her master, who remonstrated with his angry neighbor, and received in reply a demand for the value of the ale which Crummie_ had drunk up. B. refused payment, and was con- veyed before C., the Bailie, or sitting Magistrate. He heard the case patiently; and then demanded of the plaintiff A., whether the cow had sat down to her potation, or taken it standing. The plaintiff answered, she had not seen the deed committed, but she supposed the cow drank the ale while standing on her feet; adding that had she been near, she would have made her use them to some purpose, The Bailie, on this admission, peared To take vengeanc solemnly adjudged the cow’s drink to be deoch an doruis—a stirrup-cup, for which no charge could be made, without violating the ancient hospitality of Scotland. 17. Page 53. This has been censured as an anachronism; and it must i be confessed that agriculture of this kind was unknown to the Scotch Sixty Years since. Io. Pace Se 53- Suum cuigue. This snatch of a ballad was composed by Andrew MacDo nald, the ingenious and unfortunate author of Vimonda, IQ; Pag 1 ] Cc wardine, and hold the roe vension dry and indifferent food, unless when dressed in soup and Scotch collops. 60. The learned in cookery dissent from the Baron of Brad.- J Oo. Page 62. A bare-footed Highland lad is called a gillie-wet-foot. Gillie, in general, means servent or attendant. 21, Page 63. The Baron ought to have remembered that the joyous Allan literally drew his blood from the house of the noble Earl, whom he terms— alhousie of an old descent, y stoup, my pride, my ornament. 22, Page 68. The story last told was said to have happened in the south of Scotland; but—vredant arma toge—and let the gown have its dues. It was an old clergyman, who had wisdom and firmness enough to resist the panic which seized his brethren, who was the means of rescuing a poor in- Sane creature from the cruel fate which would otherwise have overtaken her. The accounts of the trials for witchcraft form one of the most de. plorable chapters in Scottish story. 23. Page 70. Although canting heraldry is generally reprobated, it seems nevertheless to have been adopted inthe arms and mottoes of many honorable families. Thus the motto of the Vernons, Ver non semper utret, is a perfect pun, and so is that of the Onslows, Festina lente. The Perdissem ni per-itssem of the Anstruthers, is liable to a similar objection. One of that ancient race, finding that an antagonist, with whom he had fixed a friendly meeting, was determined to take the opportunity of assassinating him, pre: vented the hazard by dashing out his brains with a battle-axe. Two sturdy arms, brandishing such a weapon, form the usual crest of the family, with SSR rs eReCt aches eh nnt ss RRR: Riera ees. ‘f 5spiikastanty scotia? = ST cei EE ere NOTES TO WAVERLEY. the above motto-—Per iissem ni peri-issem—(I had died unless I had gone through with it). 24. Page 75. A crveagh was an incursion for plunder, termed on the Borders a raid. 25. Page 76. .Sorners may be translated sturdy beggars, more especi- ally indicating those unwelcom> visitors who exact lodgings and victuals by force, or something approaching to it. 26. Page 8s. Mac-Donald of Barrisdale, one of the very last Highland 3entlemen who carried on the plundering system to any great extent, was a ycholar and a well-bred gentlemen. He engraved on his broadswords the well-known lines— Heec tibi erunt artes—pacisque imponere morem, Parcere subjectis, et debellare superbos. Indeed, the levying of the black mail was, before the year 1745, practised by several chiefs of very high rank, who, in doing so, contended that they were lending the laws the assistance of their arms and swords. and afford. ing a protection which could not be obtained from the magistracy in the disturbed state of the country. The author has seen a Memoir of Mac- Pherson of Cluny, chief of that ancient clan, from which it appears that he levied protection-money to a very large amount, which was willingly paid even by some of his most powerful neighbors. A gentleman of this clan hearing a clergyman hold forth to his congregation on the crime of theft interrupted the preacher to assure him, he might leave the enforcement of such doctrines to Cluny Mac-Pherson, whose broadsword would put a stop to theft sooner than all the sermons of all the ministers of the Synod. 27. Page 84. The Town-guard of Edinburgh were, till a late period, armed with this weapon when on their police-duty. There was a hook at the back of the axe, which the ancient Highlanders used to assist them to climb over walls, fixing the hook upon it, and raising themselves by the handle. The axe, which was also much used by the natives, is supposed to have been introduced into both countries from Scandinavia. 28. Page 87. It is not the weeping birch, the most common species in the Highlands, but the woolly-leaved Lowland birch, that is distinguished by this fragrance. 29. Page go. An adventure, very similar to what is here stated, ac- tually befell the late Mr. Abercromby of Tullibody, grandfather of the present Lord Abercromby, and father of the celebrated Sir Ralph. When this gentleman, who lived to a very advanced period of life, first settled in Stirlingshire, his cattle were repeatedly driven off by the clebrated Roh Roy, or some of his gang; and at length he was obliged, after obtaining a proper safe conduct, to make the Cateran such a visit as that of Waverley to Bean Lean inthe text. Rob received him with much courtesy, and made many apologies for the accident, which must have happened, he said, through some mistake. Mr. Abercromby was regaled with collops from two of his own cattle, which were hung up by the heels in the cavern, and was dismissed in perfect safety, after having agreed to pay in future a small sum of black mail, in consideration of which Rob Roy not only undertook to forbear his herds in future, but te replace any that should be stolen from him by other freebooters. Mr. Abercromby said, Rob Roy affected ta eonsider him as a friend to the Jacobite interest, and a sincere enemy to theNOTES TO WAVERLEY. 399 Union. Neither of these circumstances were true ; but the laird thought it quite unnece ssary to undeceive his Highland host at the risk of bringing on a political dispute in such a situation. ‘This anecdote [ received many years since (about 1792), from the mouth of the venerable gentleman who was concerned in it. . Page go. This was the regale presented by Rob Roy to the Laird libody. i : 31. Page 96. This celebrated gibbet was, in the memory of the last generation, still eee at the western end of the town of Crieff, in Perth- Shire. Why it was called the 477d gallows, we are unable to inform the reader with certainty; but it is alleged that the Highlanders used to touch their bonnets as they passed a place, which had been fatal to many of their countrymen, with the ejaculation —‘‘ God bless her nain sel] , and the Tiel tamn you!” It may therefore have been called kind, as being a sort of native or kindred place of doom to those who suffered hers as in fulfil- ment of a natural destiny. 32. Page 98. The story of the bridegroom carried off by Caterans, on his bridal-day, is taken from one which was told to the author by the late Laird of Mac-Nab, many years since. To carry off persons from the Low- lands, and to put them to ransom, was a common practice with the wild Highlanders, as it is said to be at the present day with the banditti in the south of Italy. Upon the occasion alluded to, a party of Caterans carried off the bridegroom, and secreted him in some cave near the mountain of Schehallion. The young man caught the small-pox before his ransom could be agreed on ; and whether it was the fine cool air of the place, or the want of medical attendance, Mac-Nab did not pretend to be positive ; but so it was, tl .at the prisoner recovered, his ransom was paid, and he was restored to his friends and bride, but always considered the Hi: ghland rob: bers as having saved his life, by their treatment of his malady. 33. Page too. The Scotch are liberal in computing thair land and liquor ; the Scottish pint corresponds to two English quarts. As for their coin, every one knows the couplet— How can the rogues pretend to sense ?— Their pound is only twenty pence. 34. Page 103. This happened on many occasions. Indeed, it was not till after the total destruction of the cl: un pofiuence, after 1745, that purchasers could be found, who offered a fair price for the estates forfeited in 1715, which were then brought to sale by the creditors of the York Buildings Company, who hz id purchased the whole or greater part from government at a very small price. Even so late as the period first men- tioned, the prejudices of the public in favor of the heirs of the forfeited families threw various see deans in the way of intending purchasers of such property. 35. Page 104. This sort of political game ascribed to Mac-Ivor was in reality played by several Highland chiefs, the celebrated Lord Powel, in particular, who used that kind of finesse to the uttermost, The Laird of Mac—— was also captain of an independent company, but oe, the sweets of present pay too well to incur the risk of losing them in the Jacobite cause. His martial consort raised his clan, and headed it in 1745 But the chief himself would have nothing to do with king-making, de- Bap Soe STRESS NISTSiete 2 Sees ee = & 400 NOTES TO WAVERLEY. claring himself for that monarch, and no other, who gave the Laird of Mac “* half-a-guinea the day, and half-a-guinea the morn.” 30. Page xo7. In Cee of the military exercises observed at the Castle of Glenn: aquoich, the author begs to remark, that the Highlanders were not only well practiced in the use of the broadsword, firelock, and most of the many sports and trials of strength common throughout Scot- land, but also used a peculiar sort of drill, suited to their own dress and mode of warfare. There were, for instance, different modes of disposing the plaid, one when on a peaceful journey, another when danger was appre: hended ; one way of enveloping themselves in it when expecting undis- turbed repose, and another which enabled them to start uD with sword ard pistol in hand on the slightest alarm. Previous to 1720, or thereabouts, the belted plaid was universaily worn, in which the portion which surrounded the middle of the wearer, and that which was flung around his shoulders, were all of the same piece of tartan. In a desperate onset, all was thrown away, and the clan charged bare be- neath the doublet, save for an artificial arrangement of the shirt, which, like that of the Irish, was always ample, and for the sporran-mollach, or goat’s-skin purse, The manner of handling the pistol and dirk was also part of the High- land manual exercise, which the author has seen gone through by men who had learned it in their youth. 37: Page 108. Pork, or swine’s flesh, in any shape, was, till of late years, much abominated bythe Scotch, nor is it yet a favorite food amongst them. King Jamie carried this prejudice to England, and is known to have abhorred pork almost as much as he did tobacco. Ben Jonson has recorded this peculiarity, where the gypsy in a masque, examining the king’s hand, says, vou should by this line Love a horse, and a hound, but no part of a swine. The Gypsies Metamorphosed. James’s own proposed banquet for the Devil was a oe of pork and a poll of ling, with a pipe of tobacco for digestion. 38. Page tog. In the number of persons of all ranks who assembled at the s: ame table, though by no means to discuss the same fare, the High- land chiefs only retained a Custom which had been formerly universally ob- served, throughout Scotland. “I myself,” says the traveler, Fynes Morrison, in the end of Queen Elizabet h’s reign, the scene being the Low: lands of Scotland, “‘was ata knight’s house, who had many servants to attend him, that brought in his meat with their heads covered with blue caps, the table being more than half furnished with great platters of por- ridge, each having a little piece of sodden meat. And when the table was served, the servants did sit down with us; but the upper mess, instead of porridge, had a pullet, with some prunes in the broth.”—( 7rave/s, p. 155.) Till within this last century, the farmers, even of a respectable condi- tion, dined with their work- people. ae difference betwixt those of high degree was ascertained by the place of the party above or below the salt, or, sometimes, by a line drawn with chalk on the dining-table. Lord Lovat, who knew well oe to feed the vanity, and restrain the appetites, of his clansmen, allowed each sturdy Fraser, who had the slightest pretensions to be a Duinhé-wassel, the full honor of the sitting, but, at the same time, took care that his young kinsmen did not acquire at his table any taste for outlandish luxuries. His lords ship was always ready with some honorable apology, why foreign wines and French brandy, delicacies which he con:eeived might sap the hardy habits of his cousins, should not circulate past: an assigned point on the table. 39. Page 116. In the Irish ballads, relating to Fion (the Fingal of Mac-Pl herson), there occurs, as in the primitive poetry of most nations, a cycle of heroes, each of whom has some distinguishing attribute ; upon these qualities, and the adventures of those possessing “them, many pron erbs are formed, which are still current in the Hi igh onde Among other characters, Conan is distinguished as in ee res spects a kind of Phersites but brave and daring even to rashness. He had made a vow that he would never take a blow without returning it; and having, like other heroes of antiquity, descended to the infernal regions, he received a cuff from the Arch-f end. who presided there, which he instantly returned, using the ex- pression in the text. Sometimes the proverb is worded thus :—‘“ Claw for claw, and the devil take the shortest nails, as Conan said to the devil.” 40. Page 117. The Highland poet almost always was an imprevisa- tore. Captain Burt met one of them at Lovat’s ne 41. Page 119. The description of the waterfall mentioned ia this chapter is taken from that of Lede: ird, at the farm so called on the northern side of Lochard, and near the head of the Lake, four or five miles from Aberfoyle. It isupon asmall scale, but otherwise one of the most ex- quisite cascades it is possible to behold. The appearance of Flora with the harp, as described, has been justly censured as too theatrical and affected for the lady like simplicity of her character. But something may be allowed to her French education, in which point and striking effect al- ways make a considerable object. 42, Page 121. The young and daring Adventurer, Charles Edward, landed at Glenaladale, in Moidart and displayed his standard in the valley of Glenfinnan, mustering around it the Mz 1c-Donalds, the Camerons, and other less numerous clans, whom he had prevailed on to join him. There is a monument erected on the spot, atti a Latin inscription by the late Dr. Gregory. 43. Page 121, The Marquis of Tullibardine’s elder brother, who, long exiled, returned to Scotland with Charles Edward in 1745. 44. Page 124. This ancient Gaelic ditty is still well known, both in the Highlands and in Ireland. It was translated into English, and pub lished, if I mistake not, under the auspices of the facetious Tom D’Urfey, by the title of ‘‘ Colley, my Cow.”’ 45. Page 130. The thrust from the tynes, or branches, of the stag’s horns were accounted far more dangerous than those of the boar’s tusk :— Tf thou be hurt with horn or stag, it brings thee to thy bier, But barber’s hands shall boar’s hurt heal; thereof have thou no fear. 46. Page 130. This garb, which resembled the dress often put on children in Scotland, called a polonie (i.e. polonaise), is a very ancient modification of the Highland garb. Jt was, in fact, the hauberk or shirt of mail only composed of cloth instead of rings of armor. Page.130. Old Highlanders will still make the deasi around those whom they wish well to. To go rounda person in the opposite direc NOTES T0 WAVERLEY. 401 yh orn, Srpreaareces: oss eyes 5 es Coenen en pa Beate aiect ne ote Seen SS)eee pbbbesptenn sacotin? Fash Bee ees er cee ad s Ss ee NOTES TO WAVERLEY, 402 tion, or wéther-shins (German wder-shins), is unlucky, and a sort of incan- tation. 48. Page 131. This metrical spell, or something very like it, is pre served by Reginald Scott, in his work on Witchcraft. 49. Page 132. On the morrow they made their biers Of birch and hazel gray.k———Chevy Chase 50. Page 132. The author has been sometimes accused for confounding stion with reality. He therefore thinks it necessary to state, that the circumstances of the hunting described in the text as preparatory to the insurrection of 1745, is, so far as he knows, entirely imaginary. But it is well known such a great hunting was held in the forest of Brae-Mar, under the auspices of the Earl of Mar, as preparatory to the Rebellion of 1715; and most of the Highland chieftains who afterward engaged in that civiJ commotion were present on this occasion. 5 1. Page 133. Corresponding to the Lowland saying, “‘Mony ane speirs the gate tl , 1ey ken fu’ weel.’ 2. Page 1s4. These lines form the burden of an old song to which Burns wrote additional verses. Wn $3. Page 154. These lines are also ancient, and I believe to the tune of We’ll never hae peace till Jamie comes hame ; to which Burns likewise wrote some verses. 54. Page 158. A Highland rhyme on Glencairn’s Expedition, in 1650, has these lines— ** We’ll bide a while among ta crows, We'll wiske ta sword and bend ta bows.” 55. Page 158. The Oggam is aspecies of the old Irish character. The idea of the correspondence between the Celtic and the Punic, founded onascene in Plautus, was not started till General Vallancey set up his theory, long after the date of Fergus Mac-Ivor. 56. Page 160. The sanguine Jacobites, during the eventful years (745-6, kept up the spirits of their party by the rumor of descents from France on behalf of the Chevalier St. George. 57. Page 161. The Highlander, in former times, had always a high idea of his own gentility, and was anxious to impress the same upon those with whom he conversed. His language abounded in the phrases of courtesy and compliment ; and the habit of carrying arms, and mixing with those who did so, made it particularly desirable they should use cau- tious politeness in their intercourse with each other. 58. Page 172. The Rev. John Erskine, D.D., an eminent Scottish divine, and a most excellent man, headed the Evangelical party in the Church of Scotland at the time when the celebrated Dr. Robertson, the historian, was the leader of the moderate party. These two distinguished persons were colleagues in the Old Gray Friars’ Church, Edinburgh ; and, however much they differed in church politics, preserved the most perfect harmony as private friends, and as clergymen serving the same cure.NOTES TO WA VERLEY. 403 ane, occupying the fastnesses of the » were great depredators on the low country, € made usually by night, the moon was prover bially called their lantern. Their celebrated pibroch of Hogerl nam Bo, which is the name of their gathering tune, intimates similar practices,—the Sense being :—. 59. Page 207. The Clan of Mac-Farl western side of Loch Lomond and as their excursions wer We are bound to drive the bullocks, All by hollows, hirsts and hillocks, Through the sleet, and through the rain. When the moon is beaming low On frozen lake and hills of snow, Bold and heartily we go: And all for little gain. 60. Page 209. This noble ruin is dear to my recollection, from asso- ciations which have been long and painfully broken. It holds a command- Ing station on the banks of the river Teith, and has been one of the largest castles in Scotland. Murdock, Duke of Albany, the founder of this stately pile, was beheaded on the Castlehill of Stirling, from which he might see the towers of Doune, the monument of his fallen greatness. In 1745-6, as stated in the text, a garrison on the part of the Chevalierwas put into the castle, then less ruinous than at present. It was commanded by Mr. Stewart of Balloch, as governor for Prince Charles ; he was a man of preperty near Callander. This castle became at that time the actual scene of aromantic escape made by John Home, the author of Douglas, and some other prisoners, who, having been taken at the battle of Falkirk, were confined there by the insurgents. The poet, who had in his own mind a large stock of that romantic and enthusiastic spirit of adventure, which he has described as animating the youthful hero of his-drama, devised and un. dertook the perilous enterprise of escaping from his prison, He inspired his companions with his sentiments, and when every attempt at open force was deemed hopeless, they resolved to twist their bed-clothes into ropes, and thus to descend. Four persons, with Home himself, reached the ground in safety. But the rope broke with the fifth, who was a tall lusty man. The sixth was Thomas Barrow, a brave young Englishman, a par- ticular friend of Home’s. Determined to take the risk, even in such un- favorable circumstances, Barrow committed himself to the broken rope, slid down on it as far as it could assist him, and then let himself drop. His friends beneath succeeded in breaking his fall. Nevertheless, he dislocated his ankle, and had several of his ribs broken. His companions, however, were able to bear him off in safety. The Highlanders next morning sought for their prisoners with great activity. An old gentleman told the author he remembered seeing the commander Stewart, Bloody with spurring, fiery red with haste, riding furiously through the country in quest of the fugitives. 61. Page 213. The Judges of the Supreme Court of Session in Scotland are proverbially termed, among the country people, The Fifteen. tional phrase similar to that of the Irish respecting a man having been wp, both having reference to an individual who had been engaged in iInsurrec- tion, It was accounted ill-breeding in Scotland, about forty years since, te use the phrase rede//ion or rebel, which might be interpreted by some of the 62. Page 213. To go out, or to have been out, in Scotland, was a conven: mi CISC Tens SPSS TEs athe SYR ENTLY s erro otsestes eae ee hsgesho tet ees Pau e 2FO Sie er: NOTES TO WAVERLEY. 404 parties present as a personal insult. It was also esteemed more polite even for staunch Whigs to denominate Charles Edward the Chevalier, than to speak of him as the Pretender; and this kind of accommodating courtesy was usually observed in society where individuals of each party mixed on friendly terms. 63. Page 213. (St. Fohn’s Tippet, literally a halter. Perth was formerly known as St. John’s town, from the name of the Tutelary Saint. In an old poem by H. Adamson, 1638, there occurs the proverbial saying— ‘‘ And in contempt, when any rogue they see, They say, St. Johnston’s ribbon’s meet for thee.” This proverb, says the editor of Adamson in 1774, is well understood in Perth and through the shire. It is applied to people who deserve to ve hanged). Note R, p. 263. The Jacobite sentiments were general among the western counties, and in Wales. But although the great families of the Wynnes, the Wyndhams, and others, had come under an actual obligation to join Prince Charles if he should land, they had done so under the express stipulation, that he should be assisted by an auxiliary army of French without which they foresaw the enterprise would be desperate. Wishing well to his cause, therefore, and watching an opportunity to join him, they did not, nevertheless, think themselves bound in honor to do so, as he was only supported by a body of wild mountaineers, speaking an un- couth dialect, and wearing asingular dress. The race up to Derby struck them with more dread than admiration. But it was difficult to say what the effect might have been, had either the battle of Preston or Falkirk been fought and won during the advance into England. S > } 1 i Note S, p. 266. Divisions early showed themselves in the Chevalier’s little army, not only amongst the independent chieftains, who were far too proud to brook subjection to each other, but betwixt the Scotch and Charles’s governor O’Sullivan, an Irishman by birth, who, with some of his countrymen bred in the Irish Brigadein the service of the King of France, had an influence with the Adventurer, much resented by the Highlanders, he only eared e his enterprise. ‘There The Author of Waverley has been charged with painting t the young Adventurer in colors more amiable than his character Er Tetris sn tt “fpr aerenensticernnnnBian otha baa hions Sikh casita 408 NOTES TO WAVERLEY. deserved. But having known many individuals who were near his person, he has been described “according to the light in which those eye-witnesses saw his temper and qualifications. Something must be allowed, no doubt, to the natural exaggerations of those who remembered him as the bold and adventurous Prince, in whose cause they had braved death and ruin } but is their evidence to give place entirely to ‘that of a single malcontent ? I have already noticed the imputations thrown by the Chevalier John stone on the Prince’s courage. But some part at least of that gentleman’s tale is purely romantic. It would not, for instance, be supposed, that at the time he is favoring us with the highly wrought account of his amour with the adorable Peggie, the Chevalier Johnstone was a married man, whose gr andchild is now alive, or that the whole circumstantial story con: cerning the outrageous vengeance taken by Gordon of Abbachie on a Presby terian clergyman, is entirely apocryph al. At the same time it may be ndmitte d, that the Prince, like others of his family, did not esteem the services done him by his .dherents so highly as he ought. Educated in high ideas of his hereditary right, he has been supposed to have held every exertion and sacrifice made in his cause as too much the duty of the person making it, to merit extravagant gratitude on his part. Dr. King’s evidence (which his leaving the Jacobite interest renders somewhat doubtful) goes ito strengthen this opinion. The ingenious editor of Johnstone’s Memoirs has agar a story said to ibe told by Helvetius, stating that Prince Charles Edward, far from volun. tarily embarking on his daring e ee ety was literally bound 1 hand and foot, and to which he seems disposed to yield credit. Now, it being a fact as well known as any in history, and, so far as I know, kak undisputed, that the Prince’s personal entreaties and urgency positively forced Boisdale and Lochiel into insurrection, when they were earnestly desirous that he would put off his attempt until he could obtain a sufficient force from France, it will be very difficult to reconcile his alleged reluctance to under- take the expedition, with his desperately insisting on carrying the rising into effect, against the advice and entreaty of his most powerful and most sage partisans. Surely a man who had been carried bound on board the vessel which brought him to so desperate an enterprise, would have taken the opportunity afforded by the reluctance of his partisans, to return to France in safety. It is averred in Johnstone’s Memoirs, that Charles Edward left the field of Culloden without doing the utmost to-dispute the victory ; and, to give the evidence on both sides, there isin existence the more trustworthy testimony of Lord Elcho, who states, that he himself earnestly exhorted the Prince to charge at the head of the left wing, which was entire, and retrieve the day or die with honor. And on his counsel being declined, Lord Elcho took leave of him with a bitter execration, swearing he would never look on his face again, and kept his word. On the other hand, it seems to have been the opinion of almost all the other officers, that the day was irretrievably lost, one wing of the High- Janders being entirely routed, the rest of the army out- numbered, out-flanked, and in acondition totally hopeless. In this situation of things, the Ini sh officers who surrounded Charles’s person interfered to force him off the field A cornet who was close to the Prince, left a strong attestation, that he had seen Sir Thomas Sheridan seize the = of his horse, and turn him round. There is some discrepancy of evidence ; but the opinion of Lord Elcho, a man of fiery temper, and desperate at the ruin high he beheld impending, cannot fairly be taken, in prejudice of a character for courage which is intr mated by the nature of the enterprise itself, by the Prince’s eagerness ta fight on all eccasions, by his determination to advance from Derby to LewNOTES TO WAVERLEY. 409 ee and by the presence of mind which he manifested during the romantie perils of his escape. ‘Phe Author is far from claiming for this unfortunate person the praise due to splendid talents ; but he continues to be of opinion, that at the iod of his enterprise, he had a mind capable of facing danget and aspiring to fame. : 2 That Charles Edward had the advantages of a graceful presence, courtesy, and an address and manner becoming ‘his stati on, the author never heard disputed by any who ap »proached his person, nor does he conceive that these gualities are over-chz a in the present attempt to sketch his portrait The following € -xtracts corroborative of the general opinion respecting the Prince’s amiab] le disposition, are taken froma manuscript account of his romantic expedition, by James Maxwell of Kirkconnell, of ee I possess a copy, by the fr jendship of J. Menzies, Esq., of Pitfoddell The author though parti il to the eian ce, whom he faithnuls Pete seems to have been a fair and Ci indid man, and well acquainted ‘with the intrigues among the Adventurer’s council :— é “Everybody was mightily taken with the Prince’s figure and beset behavior. There was but one voice about them. Those whom interest or prejudice made a runaway to his cause, could not help acknowledgi ing that they wished him well in all other respects, and el hardly blame him for his present undertaking. Sundry things had concurred to raise his character to the highest pitch, besides the greatness of the enterprise, and the conduct that had hitherto appeared in the execution of it. There were several instances of good-nature and humanity that had made a great im- pression on people’s minds. I shall confine myself to two or three, Immediately after the battle, as the Prince was ri iding along the ground that Cope’s army had occupied a few minutes before, one of the officers came up to congratulate him, and said, pointing to the killed, ¢ Sir, there are your enemies at your feet.’ The Prince, far from exulting, expressed a great deal of compassion for his father’s deluded subjects, whom he declared he was heartily sorry to see in that posture. Next day, while the Prince was at Pinkie-house, a citizen of Edinburgh came to mz ike some representation to Secretary Murray about the tents that city was ordered ta furnish against a certain day. Murray happened to-be out of the way, which the Prince hearing of, called to have the gentleman brought to him, saying, he would rather despatch the SEE ES whatever it was, himself, than have the gentleman wait, which he did, a granting everything that was asked. So much affability in a young pri ce. ius) red with victory, drew encomiums even from his enemies. but ah at gave the people the highest idea of him, was the negative he gave to a thing that very nearly concerned his interest, and upon which the success of his enterprise per- haps depended. It was proposed to send one of the prisoners to London, te demand of that court a cartel for the exchange of prisoners taken, and to be taken, during this war, and to intimate that a refusal would be looked upon as a resolution on their part to give no quarter. It was visible a cartel would be of great advantage to the Prince’s affairs ; his friends would be more ready to declare for him if they had nothing to fear but the chance of war in the field; and if the court of London refused to settle a cartel the Prince was authorized to treat his prisoners in the same manner the Elector of Hanover was determined to treat such of the Prince’s friends as might fall into his hands: it was urged that a few examples would compel the court of London to comply. It was to be presumed that the officers of the English army would make a point of it. They had never engaged in the service, but upon such terms as are in use among all civilized nations, and it could be no stain upon their honor to lay down their commissions if these terms were not observed, and that owing to the obstinacy of their owa SSNS TNS ESTES eter ts eer rn st att iuapaaneaabbienas.aekcanyixeerseeeeee etter 410 NOTES TO WAVERLEY. Prince. Though this scheme was plausible, and represented as very im- ortant, the Prince could never be brought into it; it was below him, he said, to make empty threats, and he would never put such as those into execution; he would never in cold blood take away lives which he had saved in heat of action, at the peril of his own. These were not the only proofs of good nature the prince gave about this time. Every day produced something new of this kind. These things softened-the rigor of a military government, which was only imputed to the necessity of his affairs, and which he endeavored to make as gentle and easy as possible. It has been said, that the Prince sometimes exacted more state and cere: monial than seemed to suit his condition ; but, on the other hand, some strictness of etiquette was altogether indispensable where he must other- wise have been exposed to general intrusion. He could also endure, with a good grace, the retorts which his affectation of ceremony sometimes ex: posed him to. It is said, for example, that Grant of Glenmoriston having made a hasty march to jain Charles, at the head of his clan, rushed into the Prince’s presence at Holyrood, with unceremonious haste, without having attended to the duties of the toilet. The Prince received him kindly, but not without a hint that a previous interview with the barber might not have been wholly unnecessary. ‘‘It is not beardless boys,” answered the dis- pleased chief, ‘who are to do your Royal Highness’s turn.” The Chev- alier took the rebuke in good part. On the whole, if Prince Charles had concluded his life soon after his miraculous escape, his character in history must have stood very high. As it was, his station is amongst those, a certain brilliant portion of whose life forms a remarkable contrast to all which precedes, and all which follows it. Nore AA, p. 317. The following account of the Skirmish at Clifton is extracted from the manuscript Memoirs of Evan Macpherson of Cluny, Chief of the clan Macpherson, who had the merit of supporting the principal brunt of that spirited affair. The Memoirs appear to have been composed about 1755, only ten years after the action had taken place. They weré written in France, where that gallant Chief resided in exile, which accounts for some Gallicisms which occur in the narrative. “Tn the Prince’s return from Derby back towards Scotland, my Lord George Murray, Lieutenant-General, cheerfully charg’d himself with the command of the rear; a post, which, altho’ honorable, was attended with great danger, many difficulties, and no small fatigue ; for the Prince being apprehensive that his retreat to Scotland might be cut off by Marischall Wade, who lay to the northward of him with an armie much supperior to what H. R. HY had, while the Duke of Comberland with his whole cavalrie followed hard in the rear, was obliged to hasten his marches. It was not, therefore, possible for the artilirie to march so fast as the Prince’s armie, in the depth of winter, extremely bad weather, and the worst roads in Eng- land; so Lord George Murray was obliged often to continue his marches long after it was dark almost every night, while at the same time he had frequent allarms and disturbances from the Duke of Comberland’s advanc’d parties. Towards the evening of the twentie-eight December 1745, the Prince entered the town of Penrith, in the province of Comberland. But as Lord George Murray could not bring up the artilirie so fast as he wou’d have wish’d, he was obliged to pass the night six miles short of that town, together with the regiment of MacDonel of Glengarrie, which that day hap: pened to have the arrear guard. The Prince, in order to refresh his armie, and to give My Lord George and the artilirie time to come up, resolved to sejour the 29th at Penrith; so ordered his little army to appear in theNOTES TO WAVERLEY. 41 viewed, and to know in what mannet I laveing entered England. It did not at that time amount to 5000 foot in all, with about 400 cavalrie, composed of the noblesse who serv’d as volunteers, part of whom form’d a first troop of guards for the Prince, under the command of My Lord Elchoe, now Comte de Weems, who, being proscribed, is presently in France. Another part formed a second troup of guards under the command of My Lord Balmirino, who was beheaded at the Tower of London. A third part serv’d under My Lord le Comte de Kilmarnock, who was likewise beheaded at the Tower. A fourth part serv’d under My Lord Pitsligow, who is also proscribed ; which cavalrie, tho’ very few in numbers, being all Noblesse, were very brave, and of infinate advantage to the foot, not only in the day of battle, but in Serving as advanced guards on che several marches, and in patroling morning under arms, in order to be re the numbers stood from his ] ’ dureing the night on the different roads which led towards the towns where the army happened to quarter, . While this small army was out in a body on the 29th December, upon a rising ground to the northward of Penrith, passing review, Mons de Cluny, with his tribe, was ordered to the Bridge of Clifton, about a mile to southward of Penrith, after having passed in review before Mons Patullo, who was charged with the inspection of the troops, and was likewise Quarter-Master General of the army, and isnowin France. They remained inder arms at the Bridge, waiting the arrival of My Lord George Murray with the artilirie, whom Mons, de Cluny had orders to cover in passing the bridge. They arrived about sunsett closely pursued by the Duke of Comberland with the whole body of his cavalrie, reckoned upwards of 3000 strong, about a thousand of whom, as near as might be computed, dis- mounted, in order to cut off the passage of the artilirie towards the bridge, while the Duke and the others remained on horseback in order to attack the rear. My Lord George Murray advanced, and although he found Mons. de Cluny and his tribe in good spirits under arms, yet the circum. stance appear’d extremely delicate. The numbers were vastly unequall, and the attack seem’d very dangerous ; so My Lord George declin’d giving orders to such time as he ask’d Mons. de Cluny’s opinion. ‘TI will attack them with all my heart,’ say Mons. de Cluny, ‘if you order me? “isda order it then,’ answered My Lord George, and immediately went on himself along with Mons. de Cluny, and fought sword in hand on foot, at the head of the single tribe of Macphersons. They in a moment made their way through a strong hedge of thorns, under the cover whereof the cavalrie had taken their station, in the struggle of passing which hedge My Lord George Murray, being dressed ex montagnard, as wellas the army were, lost his bonet and wig s so continued to fight bear-headed during the action, They at first made a brisk discharge of their firearms on the enemy, then attacked them with their sabres, and made a great slaughter a considerable time, which obliged Comberland and his cavalrie to fly with precipitation and in great confusion : in so much, that if the Prince had been provided in a sufficient number of cavalrie to have taken advantage of the disorder, it is beyond question that the Duke of Comberland and the bulk of his cavalrie had been taken prisoners. By this time it was so dark that it was not possible to view or number the slain, who filled all the ditches which happened to be on the ground where they stood. But it was computed that, besides those who went off wounded, upwards of a hundred at least were left on the spot, among whom'was Colonel Honeywood, who com- manded the dismounted cavalrie, whose sabre cf considerable value Mons, de Cluny brought off and still preserves ; and his tribe lykewise brorght off many arms ;—the Colonel was afterwards taken up, and, his wounbs being dress’d, with great difficultie recovered. Mons, de Cluny lost only WORE eee S Sh sun tS eee TT ene TTT ONT eT nT 4Sree Sai ncatbas to ears ere eer i Sa Tiaras keener eT Bee ee ¢ = EE ne A¥2 NOTES TO WAVERLEY. ‘1 the action twelve men, of whom some having been only wounded, fell afterwards into the hands of the enemy, and were sent as slaves to America, hy | whence several of them returned, and one of them is now in France, a serjeant in the Regiment of Royal Scots. How soon the accounts of the enemie’s approach had reached the Prince, H.R.H. had immediately ordered Mi-Lord le Comte de Nairne, Brigadier, who being proscribed, is now in France, with the three batalions of the Duke of Athol, the batalion of the Duke of Perth, and some other troups under his command, in order to sup- port Cluny, and to bring off the artilirie. But the action was intirely over before the Comte de Nairme, with his command, cou’d reach nigh to the place. They therefore return’d all to Penrith, and the artilirie marched up in good order. Nor did the Duke of Cumberland ever afterwards dare to come within a day’s march of the Prince and his army during the course of all that retreat, which was conducted with great prudence and safety when in some manner surrounded by enemies.” Note B B, p. 983. As the heathen deities contracted an indelible obligation if they swore by Styx, the Scottish Highlanders had usually some péculiar solemnity attached to an oath which they intended should be binding Very frequently it consisted in laying their hand, as they swore, which dagger, becoming a party to the transac- But by whatever ritual on them. on their own drawn dirk : tion, was invoked to punish any breach of faith. the oath was sanctioned, the party was extremely desirous to keep secret what the special oath was, which he considered as irrevocable. This was a matter of great convenience, as he felt no scruple in breaking his assevera- ion when made inany other form than that which he accounted as peculiarly solemn: and therefore readily granted any engagement which bound him “ Whereas, if the oath which he accounted inviolable was once publicly known, no party with whom he might have occasion to contract would have rested satisfied with any other. ous: XB. of France practised the same sophistry, for he also had a peculiar species of oath, the only one which he was ever known to respect, and which, therefore, no longer than he inclined. he was very unwilling to pledge. The only engagement which that wily ri tyrant accounted binding upon him was an oath by the Holy Cross of 1e Saint Lo d’Angers, which contained a portion of the True Cross. If | 1 S Hee prevaricated after taking this oath, Louis believed he should die within the if year. The Constable Saint Paul, being invited to a personal conference i with Louis refused to meet the king unless he would agree to ensure him safe conduct under sanction of thi$ oath. But, says Comines, the king replied, he would never again pledge that engagement to mortal man, though he was willing to take any other oath which could be devised. The treaty broke off, therefore, after much chaffering concerning the nature of the vow which Louis was to take. Such is the difference between the dic- tates of superstition and those of conscience.TO WAVERLEY. NOTE TO PREFACE, THIRD EDITION, p. 6. A homely some striking particulars, and is st metrical narrative of the events of the period, which ointains till a great favorite with the lt wer classes, gives a very correct statement of the behavior of the mountaim ‘ers respecting this same militar and contain some good sense, we y license ; venture and as the verses are little knce wn, to insert them. THE AUTHOR’S ADDRESS TO ALL IN GENERAL. Now, gentle reader -t you ken MT +] h } My very though 1 and pen, lis n O COI oO CC roule For there’s n i I rd o’t I can men’— It’s just they got such groats in kail, Who do the same. tt on t che ( | rea lo them again I’ve seen the men cal ind Rogues, With q. owland men m rs a brogs, Sup kail and brose, and cogs Out at the door, Take cocks, hens, sheep, and hogs, And pay ah for. I saw a Highlander, ’twas right drole, With a string of puddin Shane on a pole, Whipp’d o’er his sl epulas sr, skipped like a tole, Caus’d Maggy bann, Lap o’er the midden and midden-hole, And aff he ran. When check’d for this, they’d often tell ye Inde thes - mainsell’s a tume belly ; You’ il no gie’t wanting pou ht, nor sell me; Hersell will hae’t ; Ge tell King Spree , and Shordy’s Wiilie. hae a meat. I's saw the soldiers at Linton-brig, ecause the man was not a W hig, Of meat and drink leave not a skig, W thin his door; hey burnt his very hat and wig, And thump’d him sore. And through the Highlands they we! so rude, As leave the -m peuhes clothes nor food, Then burnt their houses to conclude ; Twas tit for tat. How can her zatuseli e’re be good, To think on that? And after all, O shame and grief! To use some worse than murd’ring thief, ‘Their very gentleman and chi i Unhumanly! Popish tortures, I believe, Such cruelty. > L Ev’n w hat was act on open stage At Carlisle, in the hott est rage, When mercy was clapt ina cage, And At dead, Such cruelty approv’d by every age, I shook my head. So many to curse, so few to pray, And some aloud huzza did cry; They cursed the rebel Scots that day, As they’ d been nowt Brought up for slaughter, as that way Too many rowt. Therefore, alas! dear countrymen, O never do the like again, To thirst for vengeance, never ben’ Your gun nor pa’, But with the English e’en borrow and len Let anger fa’. 5 There boasts and bullying, not worth louse, As our King’s the best about the house. ’Tis aye good to be sober and douce, To live in peace ; For many, I see, for being o’er crouse, Gets broken face. SOMBIE TER MRE ANS eaten e ta Sates 8% Sentra SO iz eer or nen E Oe TDs Tires: aAPPENDIX. a Axia Reach Tt eee HR GENERAL PREFACE, p. x, No. I.* FRAGMENT OF A ROMANCE WHICH WAS TO HAVE BEEN ENTITLED THOMAS THE RHAYMER. CHAP bik FIRS L. \ THE sun was nearly set behind the distant mountains of Liddesdale, when a few of the scattered and terrified inhabitants of the village of Hersildoune, which had four days before been burned by a predatory band of English Borderers, were now busy in repairing their ruined dwellings. One high tower in the centre of the village alone exhibited no appearance of devasta- tion. It was surrounded with court walls, and the outer gate was barred and bolted. The bushes and brambles which grew around, and had even insinuated their branches beneath the gate, plainly showed that it must have been many years since it had been opened. While the cottages around lay in smoking ruins, this pile, deserted and desolate as it seemed to be, had suffered nothing from the violence of the invaders; and the wretched beings who were endeavoring to repair their miserable huts against nightfall, seemed to neglect the preferable shelter which it might have afforded them, without the necessity of labor, Before the day had quite gone down, a knight, richly arined, and mounted upon an ambling hackney, rode slowly into the village. His attendants were a lady, apparently young and beautiful, who rode by his | side upon a dappled palfrey; his squire, who carried his helmet and lance, and led his battle-horse, a noble steed, richly caparisoned. A page and four yeonian, bearing bows and quivers, short swords, and targets of a span breadth, completed his equipage, which, though small, denoted him to be a man ot high rank. He stopped and addressed several of the inhabitants whom curiosity had withdrawn from their labor to gaze at him; but at the sound of his voice, and still more on perceiving the St. George’s Cross in the caps of his fol- { lowers, they fled, with a loud cry, “ that the Southrons were returned.” The knight endeavored to expostulate with the fugitives, who were chiefly aged men, women, and children; but their dread of the English name ac: celerated their flight, and in a few minutes, excepting the knight and his at- tendants, the place was deserted by all. He paced through the village to seek a shelter for the night, and despairing to find one either in the inacces sible tower, or the plundered huts of the peasantry, he directed his course to the left hand, where he spied a small decent habitation, apparently the abode of a man considerably above the common rank. After much knock F : apeeittiaes #. He is a cousin to a family of Petersons, which was the name of the hus band of my sister-in-law ; so there is room to hope it may be worth more than he reports. oe November, Io A.M.— May God pardon all our sins !—An English frigate, bearing the Parliament flag, has appear i in the offing, and gives chase.—11 A.M. She nears us every moment, and the captain of our vessel prepares to clear for action. —May God again have mercy upon us!” s#'Ffere,” ‘said ee “the journal with which I have opened the narration en ids somewhat a penptly. is “T am glad of it,” said Lady Ratcliff. “ But, Mr. Maxwell,” said feune Frank, Sir Henry’s grandchild, ‘shall we not hear how the battle ended?” [ do not know, cousin, whether I have not formerly made you acquainted , with the abilities of Frank Ratcliff. There is not a b rattle fought between the troops of the Prince and of the Government, during the years 1745-6, of which he is not able to give anaccount. It is true, ] have taken partic- ular pains to fix the events of this important period upon his memory by frequent repetition. ‘ a i No, Ae dear,” said Maxwell, in answer to young Frank Ratcliff—‘ No, my dear, I cannot tell you the exact particulars of the engagement, but its consequences appear from the following letter, despatched by Garbonete Von Eulen, daughter of our journalist, to a relation in England, from whom she implored assistance. After some general account of the purpose of the voyage, and of the engagement, her narrative proceeds thus ;APPENDIX. “The noise of the cannon had hardly ceased, before the sounds of a language to me but half known, and the confusion on board our vessel, in- formed me that the captors had boarded us, and taken possession of our vessel. I went on deck, where the first spectacle that met my eyes was a young man, mate of our vessel, who, though disfigured and covered with lood, was loaded with irons, and whom they were forcing over the side of the vessel i nto aboat. The two principal persons “among our enemies ap- peared to be a man of a tall thin figure, with a high-crow vned hat and long neckband, and_ short-cropped head of hair, accompanied by a bluff open- looking elderly man ina eee uniform. ‘ Yarely! yarely! pull away my hearts!’ said the latter, and the boat bearing the unlucky young man soon carried him on board the frigate. Perhaps you will blame me for mention- ing this circumstance ; but consider, my dear cousin, this man saved my life, and his fate, even when my own and my father’s were in the balance, could not but affect me nearly. “‘¢Tn the name of him who is jealous, even to siaying,’ said the first ”>—— * * * * * CETERA DESUNT GENERAL PREPACE, p.xiL No Tt. CONCLUSION OF MR. STRUTT’S ROMANCE OF QUEENHOO-HALL. BY THE AUTHOR OF WAVERLEY. CHAP THR POUR T EH. A HUNTING PARTY—AN ADVENTURE—A DELIVERANCE. THE next morning the bugles were sounded by day-break in the court of Lord Boteler’s mansion, to call the inhabitants from their slumbers, to assist in a splendid chase, with which the Baron had resolved to entertain his neighbor Fitzallen, and his noble visitor St. Clere. Peter Lanaret, the falconer, was in attendance, with falcons for the knights, and tercelets for the ladies, if they should choose to vary their sport from hunting to hawking. Five stout yeomen keepers, with their attendants, called Ragged Robins, all meetly arrayed in Kendal green, with bugles and short hangers by their sides, and quarterstaffs in their hands, led the slow- hounds or brachets, by which the deer was to be. puteap.’ +fen brace of gallant grayhounds, each of which was fit to pluck down, singly, the tallest red deer, were led in leashes by as many of Lord Boteler’s foresters. ‘Ehe ve squires, and other attendants of feudal splendor, well attired in their best hunting-gear, upon horseback or foot, according to their rank, mb their boar-spears, long-bows, and cross-bows, were in seemly waiting. A numerous train of yeomen, called in the language of the times retainers, who yearly received a livery coat and a small pension for their attendance on such selemn occasions, appeared in cassocks of blue, bearing upon theirAPPENDIX. 122 ioe arms the cognizance of the house of Boteler, as a badge of their adherence, They were the tallest men of their hands tl iat the nighboring villages could supply, with every man his good buckler on his shoulder, and a bri ight burnished broadsword dangling from his leathern belt. On this occasion they acted as rangers for beating up the thickets, and rousing the game. These attendants filled up the court of the castle, spacious as it was. On the green without, you might have seen the motley assemblage of peasantry, Convened by report of the splendid hunting, including most of our old acquaintances from Tewin, as well as the jolly y partakers of good cheer at Hob Filcher’s. Gregory the jester, it may well be euessed, had no great mind to exhibit himself in public after his recent disaster ; but Oswald the steward, a great formalist in whatever concerned the public exhibition of his master’s household state, had positively enjoined his attendance. ‘‘ What!” quoth he, “ shall the house of the brave Lord Boteler, on such a brave day as this, be without a fool ? Certes, the good Lord St. Clere, and his fair lady sister, might think our housekeeping as niggardly as that of their churlish kinsman at Gay Bowers, who sent his father’s jeste r to the hospital, sold the poor sot’s bells for hawk -jesses, and made a nightc ap 0 f hi S long-eared 1 bonnet. And, sirrah, let me see thee fool handsomel sak squibs and crackers instead of that dry, barren, musty, gibing w hich thou hast used of late ; or, by the bones ! the porter shall have thee to his lodge, and cob thee with Ae own wooden sword, till thy skin is as motley as thy doublet. To this stern injunction Gre gory made no reply, any more than to the courteous offer of old Albert Drawslot, the chief park-keeper, who proposed to blow vinegar in his nose to sharpen his wit, as he had done that blessed morning to Bragger, the old hound, whose scent was failing. There was indeed little time for ue , for the bugles, after a lively flourish, were now silent, and Peretto, with his two attendant minstrels, stepping beneath the windows of the strangers’ apartments, joined in the following roundelay, the deep voices of the rangers and falconers making up a chorus that caused the very battlements to ring again. Waken, lords and ladies gay. On the mountain dawns the day ; All the jolly chase is here, With hawk and horse, and hunting spear ; Hounds are in their couples yelling, Hawks are whistling, horns are knelling, Merrily, Merrily, mingle they “6 Wak en, lords and ladies g gay ! 12? Waken, lords and ladies gay! The mist has left the mountain gray : Springlets in the dawn are streaming, Diamonds on the brake are gleaming, And foresters have busy been To track the buck in thicket green 5 Now we come to chant our lay, ** Waken, lords and ladies gay! >? Waken, lords and ladies gay! To the green-wood haste away : We can show you where he lies, Fleet of foot, and tall of size; We can show the marks he made, When ’gainst the oak his antlers frayed : You shall see him brought to bay ; “ Waken, lords and ladies gay! my? Beet manastnn Beye CRT DIT ara torrceans: RRPRRSTE SSO rere ohees JET Sense Tae APPENDIX. Louder, louder, chant the lay, Waken, lords and ladies gay! Tell them, youth, and mirth, and glee, Run a cours? as well as we; Time, stern huntsmen! who can baulk, Staunch as hound, and fleet as hawk ? Think of this, and rise with day, Gentle lords and ladies gay! By the time this lay was finished, Lord Boteler, with his daughter and kinsman, Fitzallen of Marden, and other noble guests, had mounted their palfreys, and the hunt set cig ak in due order. The huntsman, having carefully observed the traces of a large stag on the preceding ev ening, were able, without loss of time, to conduct the company, by the marks w hich they had made upon the rae to the side of the thicket in which, by the report of Drawslot, he had harbored all night. The horsemen, spreading them- selves along the side of the cover, waited until the keeper entered, leading his ban-dog, a large blood-hound, tied ina leam or band, from which he takes his name. But it befell thus. A hart of the second year, which was in the same cover with the proper object of their a chanced to be unharbored first, and broke cover very near where the Lady Emma and her brother were stationed. An inexperienced varlet, who was nearer to ae ee instantly un- loosed two tall grayhounds, who abuts after the fugiti vith all the fleet- ness of the north wind. Geogory, restored a little to ebisits by the enliven- ing scene around him, followed, encouraging the hounds with a loud tayout,* for which he had the hearty curses of the huntsman, as well as of the Baron, who entered into the spirit of the chase with all the juvenile ardor of twenty. “May the foul fiend, booted and spurred, ride down his bawling throat, with a scythe at his girdle!” quoth Atbert Drawslot; “here have I been telling him, that all the marks were those of a buck of the first head, and he has halloos ed the hounds upon a vevlet-headed knobbler! By Saint Hubert, if I break not his pate wit tht my cross-bow, may I never cast off hound more! But, to it my lords and masters! the noble beast is here yet; and, thank the saints, we have enough of hounds.” The cover being now thoroughly beat by the attendants, the stag was compelled to abandon it, and trust to his speed for his safety. Three gray- hounds were slipped upon him, whom he threw out, after running a couple of miles, by entering an extensive furzy brake, which extended along the side of a hill. The horsemen soon came up, and casting off a sufficient number of slow-hounds, sent them with the prickers into the cover, in order to drive the game from his strength. ‘This object being accomplished, afforded another severe chase of several miles, ina direction almost. circu- lar, during which the poor animal tried every wile to get rid of his perse- cutors. He crossed and traversed all such dusty paths as were likely to retain the least scent of his foot steps } he laid himself close to the ground, drawing his feet under his belly, and cl apping his nose close to the earth, lest he ‘should be betrayed to the hounds by his breath and hoofs. When all was in vain, and he found the hounds coming fast in upon him, his own strength failing, his mouth embossed with foam, and the tears dropping from his eyes, he turned in despair upon his pursuers, who then stood at gaze, making a hideous clamor, and awaiting their two-footed auxiliaries. Of these it chanced that the Lady Eleanor, taking more pleasure in the sport than Matilda, and being a less burden to her palfrey than the Lord Boteler, was the first who arrived at spot, and taking a cross-bow from an attendant, discharged a bolt at the stag. When the infuriated animal felt himself wounded, he pushed franticly toward her from whom he received * Tailliers hors, 12 modern phrase, Tally-ho!APPENDIX. 425 the s hafe, and Lady Eleanor vee have had occasion to repent of her en- terprise, had not your ng Fitzallen, who Kept near her during the whole day, at that inst: int galloped briskly i in, < and ere the stag could ch: lange his object of ass: Sault, dispatched him with his short t hunting s sword, 4ilbert Drawslot, who had just come up in terror for the young lady’s aes broke out into loud enc ey upon Fitzallen’s strength and gal- fantry. °* By’r Lady,” said he, taking off his cap, and wiping his sun-burnt face with his sleeve, ‘ wel] struck, and in good time !—But now, boys, doff your bonnets, and sound the mort.” The sportsmen they n sounded a t which, mingled with the The huntsman ‘eble mort, and set up a general whoop, yelping of ite dogs, made the welki In ring again. then offered his knife to Lord Bx Oteler, t hat he might ‘take the say of the deer, but the Baron courteously insisted upon Fitzallen going through tha ceremony. The Lady Matilda was now come up, with most of th nts; and the interest of the chase bei ing oo ded, it excited some Surprise, that neither St. Clere nor his sister made t their appearance. The Lord Boteler commanded the horns again to sound the recheat, in hopes te call in the stragglers, and said to Fitzallen, “ Methinks St. Clere, so distin- guished for service jn war, should have been more forw ard in the chase,” Pty trow,” said Peter Lanaret, “I know the reason of the noble lord’s absence ; for when that mooncalf, Gregory, hallooed the dogs upon the knobbler, and galloped like a green hiilding, as he is, after them, I saw the Lady Emma’s palfrey follow apace after that varlet, who should be thrashed for oy €r-running, and I think her noble brother has followed her, lest she Should come to narm.—LBut here, by the rood, is Gregory, to answer for himself,” At this moment Gregory entered the circle which had been formed round the deer, out of breath, and covered with blood. He kept for some time uttering inarticulate cries of « Harrow!” and “ Well- away ! ” and other ex- clamations of di tress and terror, pointing all the while to a thicket at some distance from the spot where the deer had been killed. “By my honor,” said the Baron, ‘‘I would gladly know who has dared ] Ly to array the poor knave thus: and I trust he should dearly abye his out- reculdance, were he the best, save one. in England.’’ ‘ Gregory, who had now found more breath, cried, “‘ Help! an ye be ° a i‘ . men! Save Lady Emma and _ her brother, whom they are murdering in ro } | te? his put all in motion. Lord Boteler hastily commanded a small party of his men to abide for the defence of the ladies, while he himself, Fitzalle en, and the rest, made what speed they could toward the thicket, eae by Gregory, who for that purpose was mounted behind Fabian. Pushin 1g through a narrow path, the first object they ence peer was a man of small stature lying on the ground, mastered and almost strangled by two l nstantly recognized to be those that had accompanied Gregory. A little further was an open space, where lay three bodies of dead or wounded men ; beside these, was Lady Emma, apparently lifeless, her brother and a young forester bending over and endeavoring to rec ee her. By employing the usual remedies, this was si on accomp slis hed; w W hile Lord Bote eler, astonished at such a Scene. anxiously inquired abst: Here the meaning of what he saw. and whether more danger was to be expected: ‘“¢ Wor thé present, I trust not. used the young warrior, who they now observed was slightly wounded ; ‘ but I pray you, of your nobleness, let the woods BETS be se: arched ; for we were assaulted by four of these base assassins, and I see three only on the sward,?’ The attendants now brought forward the person whom they had rescued from the dogs. and Henry, with di sgust, shame, and a astonishment, recog- nized his kinsm: an, Gaston St. Clere, his discovery he communicated in Pee sere pateaes Shia) NNT DOF RICE TT a Ss sSateen FS. alot AORN ERIS a APPENDIX. a whisper to Lord Boteler, who commanded the prisoner to be conveyed te Queenhoo-Hall, and closely guarded; meanwhile he anxiously inquired of young St. Clere about his wound. «“ A scratch, a trifle!” cried Henry; “(1am in less ‘haste to bind it than to introduce to you one, without whose aid that of the leeeh would have come too late.— Where is he ? Where is my brave deliverer ?”’ ‘* Here, most noble lord,” said Gregory, sliding from his palfrey, and stepping forward, ‘‘ ready to receive the guerdon which your bounty would heap on him.” “Truly, friend Gregory,” answered the young warrior, “thou shalt not be forgotten, for thou didst run speedily, and roar manfully for aid, with- out which, I think verily, we had not received it——But the brave forester, who eame to my rescue when these three ruffans had nigh overpowered mc, where is he? / Iivery one locked around, but though all had seen him on entering the thicket, he was not now to be found. They could only conjecture that he had retired during the confusion occasioned by the detention of Gaston. “Seek not for him,” said the Lady Emma, who had now in some degree recovered her composure ; ‘‘he will not be found of mortal, unless at his own season.” The Baron, convinced from this answer that her terror had, for the time, somewhat disturbed her reason, forbore to question her ; and Matilda and Eleanor, to whom a message had been despatched with the result of this strange adventure, arriving, they took the Lady Emma between them, and all in a body returned to the castle. The distance was, however, considerable ; and, before reaching it, they had another alarm. The prickers, who rode foremost in the troop, halted, and announced to the Lord Boteler that they perceived advancing toward them a body of armed men. The followers of the Baron were numerous, but they were arrayed for the chase, not for battle; and it was with great pleasure that he discerned, on the pennon of the advancing body of men-at- arms, instead of the cognizance of Gaston, as he had some reason to expect, the friendly bearings of Fitzosborne of Diggswell, the same young lord who was present at the May-games with Fitzallen of Marden. The knight himself advanced, sheathed in armor, and, without raising his visor, informed Lord Boteler, that, having heard of a base attempt made upon a part of his train by ruffianly assassins, he had mounted and armed a small party of his retainers, to escort them to Queenhoo-Hall. Having received and accepted an invitation to attend them thither, they prosecuted their journey in confidence and security, and arrived safe at home without any further accident. ce CHAPTER FIFTH. INVESTIGATION OF THE ADVENTURE OF THE HUNTING—A DISCOVERY— GREGORY'S MANHOOD—FATE OF GASTON ST. CLERE—CONCLUSION. SO soon as they arrived at the princely mansion of Boteler, the Lady Emma craved permission to retire to her chamber, that she might compose her spirits after the terror she had undergone. Henry St. Clere, in a few words, proceeded to explain the adventure to the curious audience. “I had no sooner seen my sister’s palfrey, in spite of her endeavors to the contrary, entering with spirit into the chase set on foot by the worshipful Gregory, than I rode after to give her assistance. So long was the chase, that when the greyhounds pulled down the knobbler, we were out of hear- ing of our bugles ; and having rewarded and coupled the dogs, I gave themTF AT 7 APPENDIX. 427 to be led by the jester, and we wandered in quest of our company whom it would seem the sport had led in a different direction. At length, passing through the thicket where you found us, I was surprised by a cross- bow bolt whizzing past mine head. I drew my sword, and rushed into the thicket, but was instantly assailed by two ruffians, while other two made toward my sister and Gregory. The poor knave fled, crying for help, pursued by my false kinsman, now your prisoner; and a designs of the other on my poor Emma (murderous, no doul >t) were prevented by the sudden apparition of a brave woodsman, who, after a short encounter, stretched the miscreant at his feet, and came to a assistance. I was already slightly wounded, and nearly overlaid with odds. The combat lasted some time, for the caitiffs were both well armed, strong, and des- perate ; at length, however, we had each mastered our antagonist, when your pce my Lord Boteler, arrived to my relief. So ends my story ; but, by my y knig ghthood, I would give an earl’s ransom for an opportunity of thank: ng the gallant forester by whose aid I live to te LE rtsee Fear not,” said I ord Boteler, “ he shall be found, if this or the four ad jacent counties hold him—And now Lord Fitzosborne will be Gleseed to doff the armor he has so kindly assumed for our sakes, and we will ill bowne ourselves for the Beeches When the hour of dinner r approached, the Lady Matilda and her cousin visited the chamber of the fair Darcy. They found her ina composed but melancholy posture. She turned the discourse upon the misfortunes of her life, and hinted, that having recov eed her brother , and seeing him look forward to the society of one who would amply repay to him the loss of hers, she had thoughts of dedic ating her remaining life to Heaven, by whose prov identi: il interference it had been so often preserved. Mz til Ida colored deeply at something in this speech, and her cousin in- veighed loudly against Ie ats resolution. ‘ Ah, mydear Lady Eleanor,”’ replied she, “‘I have to-day witnessed what I cannot but judge a super- “cc natural visitation, and to what end can it call me but-to give myself to the altar? That peasant who guided me to Baddow through the Park of Dan- bury, the same who appe ared before me at different times, and in different forms, during that eventful journey ye wan youth, whose features are im- prin - on my memory is the very individual forester who this dz ly rescued us in the fores t. I cannot be mistaken; and connecting these marvellous appearances with the spectre which I saw while at Gay Bowers, I cannot resist the conviction that Heaven has permitted my guardian angel to assume mortal shape for my re lief and protection.” Whe fair cot isins, after exchanging looks which implied a fear that her mind was wandering, answered her in soothing terms, and finally prevailed upon her to accompany them to the banqueting- hall. Here the first person they encountered was the Baron Fitzosborne of Diggswell, now divested of his armor ; at the sight of whom the Lady Emma changed color, and ex- claiming, ‘It is the same!’’ sunk senseless into the arms of Matilda ‘She is bewildered by the terrors of the day,” said Eleanor ; ‘“‘and we have done ill in obliging her to descend.” ‘And I,” saia Fitzosborne, ‘‘have done madly in presenting before her one, whose presence must recall moments the most alarming in her FEL ?s While the ladies supported Emma from the hall, Lord Boteler and St. Clere requested an explanation from Fitzosborne of the words he had used. ‘Trust me, gentle lords,” said the Baron of Diggswell, “ye shall have what ye de -mand, when I learn that Lady Emma Darcy, has not suffered from my imprude sees” At this moment Lady Matilda returning, said that her fair friend, onAPPENDIX. | her recovery, had calmly and deliberately ae that she had seen Fitz be ae osborne before, in the most dangerous crisis of her life. “J dread,’’ said she, “ a disordered mind connects all that her eye beholds with ite terrible passages that she has witnessed.” ‘¢ Nay,” sai | Fitzosborne, ‘‘if noble St. Clere can pardon the un- authorized in terest whi ch, with the purest and most honorable intentions, I have taken in his sister’s fate, it is easy for me-to explain this mysterious eee impression.” “He proceeded to say, that happening to be in the hostelry called the Griffin, ee Baddow, while upon a journey in that country, he had met with the old nurse of the Lady Emma Darcy, who, being just expelled from Gay Bowers, was in the height of her grief and indignation, and made loud and public proclamation of Lady Emma’s wrongs. From the description she gave of the beauty of her foster-child, as well as from the spirit of Ee Teispaakiera tates ay f \ ; ; ; pee 8 { chivalry, Fit zosborne became interested in her fate. This interest was i deep ly an inced, when, by a bribe to old Gaunt the Bete he procured a view of the Lady Emma as she walked near the castle of Gay Bowers. t The aged churl refused to give him access to the castles yet dropped some hints, as if he thought the | she were bi out of it. His master, he sa i ha 1 heard she had a brother in life, and since ha ¢ o : \ idy in danger, anc wished rii1s aster, ald, ) that deprived him of all chance of gaining her domains by purchase, he ——in short, Gaunt Fea they were safely separated. “If any injury,” quoth he, ‘“‘ should happen to the damsel here, it were ill for us all. tried, by an innocent stratagem, to frighten her from the castle, by intro- door, and warning her, as if by a voice from ducing a figure throug the dead, to retreat from thence; but the giglet is wilful, and is running ’ , oo > < upon her fate. Finding Gaunt, although covetous and communicative, too faithful a | servant to his wicked master to take any active steps against his commands, e applied bimself to old Ursely, whom he Py nd more fratiabie: t Fitzosborn | Through her he learned the dreadful plot Gaston had laid to rid himself of his kinswoman, and resolved to effect her ta ace But aware of the delicacv of Emma’s situation, he charged Ursely to conceal from her the interest he took in her distress, resolving to watch over her in disguise until he saw her ina place of safety. Hence the appearance he mate > be- ; fore her in various dresses during her journey, in the course of which he th was never far distant ; and he had always four stout yeomen wi Bick hear- i ing of his bugle had assistance been necessary. When she was placed in safety at the lodge, it was Fitzosborne’s intention to have prevailed upon his sisters to visit, and take her under their protection ; but he found them absent from Diggswell, having gone to attend an aged relation who lay dangerously il] in a distant county. They did not return until the day be- fore the May-games ; and the other events followed too rapidly to permit Fitzosborne to lay any plan for introducing them to Lady Emma Darcy. On the day of the chase he resolved to preserve his romantic disguise, and . attend the Lady Emma as a forester, partly to have the pleasure of being judge whether, according to an idle report in the Le se ak agtaa oe Duriahnsnaancotetes } near her, and partly to country, she favored his friend and comrade Fitzallen of Marden. ‘This last motive, it may easily be believed, he did not declare to the company. After the skirmish with the ruffians, he waited till the Baron and the hun- ters arrived, and then, still doubting the further designs of Gaston, hastened to his castle, to arm the band which had escorted them to Queenhoo-Hall. ; Fitzosborne’s story being finished, he received the thanks of all the i company, particularly of St. Clere, who felt deeply the respectful delicacy iH with which he had conducted himself towards his sister. The lady was carefully informed of her obligations to him : and itis left to the well- judging reader, whether even the raillery of Lady Eleanor made her regret429 atural means for her security, and that into a handsome, gallant, and enamourea eT, t po cr ee py oO oO ~ a rT) a, © z oO a "oS — oO 4 oO Pu 1A 1Q@1rdi4 1€ guardian angel was converte di company it { extended itself to the buttery, where - narrate; Ls f arms oe by himself in the fray ig as might have s shamed Bevis and Guy of Warwick. He g to his nar rati ive, aa d out for meat taed ion by the gigantic Gregory the jeste1 of the mort - 3: Vas, accordin meaner hands the destruction ot St. “e B yer 9 but certes Said he, “the fo. aynit yet his match: for bude ee ee ee : the foul pa nim met his match ; for, ever as 1¢ foin oe me with his brand, I parried his blows with my bauble, and closing with hi pon the third veny. threw a \ wit him upon the third veny, threw him to the ground, and made him cry recreant to an unarmed man,” et } + ? *7)7 + a =; Tush, man,” said Drawslot, 10u forgettest thy best auxiliaries, the yunds, Help and I warrant thee, that when the hee cowl, which he hat} fair plight had they not remen ome in to the rescue. Why, man, I found th and there was odd x staving and stickling to make Uheir mouths were full of the fl f | garment from their jaws. I w: t Helorannd ch Alar 1s aE ed a : ’ the groun da, thou fled’st like a frighted picket.” - juoed emt C a 7 ees : Fabian, “ why, he lies color of a spider ina a Jane was a dwarf to him.” Tasker is to be ae Sheet hath br ought them han i do for thy _ later Panareae CET lt said Peter Lanaret, ‘‘I will have one peep at this bu aving the buttery, he went to the guard-room where Gaston ] studded door of the apartment, said he believec for that after 1 g the most horrid reget ions, he had been raging, Stamp! FA a sliding board, o 1 of late peri a foot sq juare door, which covered a hole of the same size, str ed, through which the warder, without opening the door, could look in upon his prisoner. ‘y is aperture he beheld the wretched Gasto1 pel own gir lle, to an iron ring in the side of his prison. > had clambered to it by means of the table on which his food had been placed ; and in the agonies of shame and dis- appointed malice, had adopted this mode of nding himself of a wretched life. He was found yet warm, but total ly lifeless. A proper account of rtifiec a He was buried that the manner of his death was drawn up and certifiec ue in the chapel of the castle, out of res spect to his high birth; and the chaplain of Fitzallen of Marden, who said t e service upon the occasion, In preac ched, the next Sunday, an excellent sermon oo the text, Radix malo. rum est cupi eae S, which we have here transenped. ——— * * * ; Here het raanuscript, from which we have painfully transcribed, and frequently, as it were, translated this tale, for the reader’s edification, is so indistinct and detaced, that, excepting certain howbeits, nathlesses, le ye’s! etc., we can pick out little that is intelligible, saving that avarice is defined “a likourishness of heart after earthly things.” "A little further, there * MEMENTOS ERNE PENSE TT erect pees eeTocatage SAS eects. Tak Peewee Sts PUr nr est elt haere SL onesSeeker Sa ge 43° seems Mac ker, > the occasion. ‘There are Gregory upon that occasion, as, for example =— APPENDIX, to have been a gay account of Margery’s wedding with Ralph the the running at the quintain, and other rural games Ser don also fragments of a mock sermon preached by “ My dear cursed caitiffs, there-was once a king, and he wedded a young yid queen, and she had a child; and this child was sent to Solomon the { Sage, praying he would give it the same blessing* which he got from the witch of Endor when she ‘bit him by the heel. Hereof speaks the worthy Dr. Radigundus Potator : why should not mass be said for all the roasted shoe souls served up in the king’s dish on Saturday ; for true it is, that } ) St. Peter asked father Adam, as they journeyed to Camelot, an high, great, and doubtful question, ‘Adam, Adam, why eatedst thou the apple without paring : is Wi h much goodly gibberish to the same effect, which display of Gre- gory’s ready wit not only threw the whoie company into convulsions of Jaugh s r. but made such an impression on Rose, the Potter’s daughter, that it was thought it would be the Jester’s own fault if Jack was long without his Jill. Much pithy matter, concerning the bringing the bride to a bed, the lone the brid grooms points, the scramble which ensued for them, and the casting of the stocking, is also omitted from its obscurity. ‘The following song, which has been since borrowed by the worshipful author of the famous ‘* History of Fryar Bacon,” has been with lificalty deci phered. It seems to have been sung on occasion of carrying home the ui “ S BRIDAL SONG. To the tune of—‘‘ I have been a Fiddler >? And did you not hear of a mirth befell ‘The morrow sfter a wedding day, And carrying a bride at home to dwell? And away to Tewin, away, away! The quintain was set, and the garlands were made Tis pity old customs should ever decay ; And wo be to him that was horsed on a jade, For he carried no credit away, away. We met a concert of fiddle-de-dees ; We set them a cockhorse, and made them play The winning of Bullen, and Upsey-frees, And away to ‘Tewin, away, away ! There was ne’er a Jad in al! the parish That would go to the plough that day ; But on his fore-horse his wench he carries, And away to Tewin, away, away! * This tirade of gibberish is literaily taken or selected from a mock discourse prox a professed jester which occurs in an ancient mz nuscript in the Advocates’ nounced by r; Library, the same form whicl h the late ingenious Mr. Weber published the « curious comic romance of the Hunting of the Hare. It was introduced in compliance with Mr. Strutt’s pian of rendering his tale an illustration of ancient manners. A sim ilar burlesque sermon ts pronounced by the Fool in Sir David l.indesay’s Set of the ee Estates. The nonsense and vulgar burlesque of that composition illustrate the ground of Sir Andrew Agueche: k's eulogy on the exploits of the jes in ‘Twelfth Night, who, reserving his she per jests for Sir Toby, had d loubtles ss enough ok Ethe jargon of his calling to captivate the nbecility “a his Py knight, who is made to exclaim—‘‘In sooth thou wast in very zracious fooling last night, when thou spokest of Eigros re mitus, and of the vapors passing the equinoctials A Cie mbus ; ’*twas very good, i’ faith! It is entertaining to find coms inentators seeking to discover some meaning in the professional jargon of such a passage ag this.AERPENDIX The butler was quick, and the ale he did tap; The maiden did make the chamber full gay, The servants did give mea fuddling cup, And I did carry’t away, away! The smith of the town his liquor so took, That he was persuaded that the ground looked blue And I dare boldly be sworn on a book, Such smiths as he there’s but a few, A posset was made, and the women did sip, And simpering said, they could eat no more; Full many a mai was laid on the lip,— I’ll say no more, but give o’er (give o’er). But what our fair readers will chiefly regret, is the loss of three decla- rations of love : the first by St. Clere to Matilda ; which, with the lady’s answer, occupies fifteen closely-written pages of manuscript. That ‘of Fitzosborne to Emma is not much shorter ; but the amours of Fitzallen and Eleanor, being of a less romantic cast, are closed in three pages only. The three noble couples were married in Queenhoo-Hall upon the same day, being the twentieth Sunday after Easter. There is a prolix account of the marriage-feast, of which we can pick out the names of a few dishes, such as peterel, crAne, sturgeon, swan, etc. etc., with a profusion of wild. fowl and venison. We also see that a suitable song was produced by Peretto on the occasion; and that the bishop who blessed the bridal beds which received the happy couples, was no niggard of his holy water, be- stowing half-a-gallon upon each of the couches. We regret we cannot give these curiosities to the reader in detail, but we hope to expose the manu- Script to abler antiquaries, so soon as it shall be framed and glazed by the ingenious artist who rendered that service to Mr. Ireland’s Shakspeare MSS. And so (being unable to lay aside the style to which our pen is habituated), gentle reader, we bid thee heartily farewell.] NO. BET ANECDOTE OF SCHOOL DAYS We UPON WHICH MR, THOMAS SCOTT PROPOSED TO FOUND A TALE OF FICTION. Ir is well known in the South that there is little or no boxing at the scottish schools, About forty or fifty years ago, however, a far more dangerous mode of fighting, in parties or factions, was permitted in the streets of Edinburgh, to the great disgrace of the police, and danger of the parties concerned. These parties were generally formed from the quarters of the town in which the combatants resided, those of a particular square or district fighting against those of an adjoining one, _ Hence it happened that the children of the higher classes were often pitted against those of the lower, each taking their sides according to the residence of their friends. So far as I recollect, however, it was unmingled either with feelings of democracy or aristocracy, or indeed with malice or ill-will of any kind towards the opposite party. In fact, it was only a rough mode of play. Such contests were, however, maintained with great vigor, with stones, and sticks, and fisticuffs, when one party dared to charge, and the other stood their ground. Of course, mischief sometimes happened : boys are said to + Safran seniiniersnnnn scentsRakLareastoere ger eee aNesak neater? Fo 3 aiken pehis SESE 432 APPENDIX. have been killed at these Bickers, as they were called and serious accidents certainly took plac e, aS many contemporaries can bear witness. The Author’s father re ssiding in George Square, in the southern side of Edinburgh, the boys belonging to that family y, with others in the Sanate, were alr anged into a sort of company, to which a lady of distinction pre sented a handsome set of colors. Now this co ympany or regiment, ASA matter 3 course, was engaged in weekly w arfare with the boys i inhabiting the Crosscauseway, Bristo Street, the Potterrow—in short, the neighbor- ing suburbs These last were chiefly y of the lower rai nk, but hardy loons who threw stones to a hair’s-breadth, and were very rugged antagonists at close quarters. The skirmish sometimes lasted for a whole evening, until one party or the other was victorious, when, if ours were successful, we drove the enemy to their quarters, and were usually chased back by the re- inforcements of bigger lads who came to their assistance. If, on the con- trary, we were Ey -d, as was often the case, into the precincts of our square, we were in our turn su] pported by our elder brothers, domestic ser- ante and similar auxiliaries. [It followed, from our frequent opposition to each other, that, though not knowing the names of our enemies, we were yet well = quainted with their appearance, and had nick-names for the most — arkable of them. One very active and sHenice boy might pe considered as the principal lead- er in the cohort of he uburbs. He was, I suppose, thirteen or fourteen years old, finely-made - tall eibnede with long fair ee air, the very picture of a youthful Goth. T his iad. was always” first in the charge, and last in the retreat—the Achilles, at once, and Ajax , of the Crosscauseway. He was too formidable to us not to havea cognomen, and, like that of a knight of old. it was taken from the most remarkable part of - dress, being a pair of old green livery breeches, which was the princip: al part of his cloth- ing; for, like Pentapolin, according to Don pun yte’s account, Green- Breeks, as we called him, always entered the battle with bare arms, legs, and feet. It fell, that once upon a time, when the combat was at the thickest, this plebeian champion headed a sudden charge, so rapid and furious that all fled before him. He was several paces before his comrades, and had actually laid his hands on the patrician sti undard, when one of our party, whom some misjudging friend had entrusted with a cowteau de chasse, OY hanger, inspired with a zeal for the honor of the corps, worthy of Major Sturgeon himself, struck poor Green-Breeks over the head, with strength sufficient to cut him down. When this was seen, the casualty was so far beyond what had ever taken place before, that both parties fled different ways, leaving poor Green-Breeks, with his bright hair plentifully dabbled in blood, to the care of the watchman, who (honest man) took care not to know who had done the mischief. ‘The bloody hanger was flung into one of the Meadow ditches, and solemn secrecy was sworn on all hands 5 but the remorse and terror of the actor were beyond all bounds, and his appre- hensions of the most dreadful character. ‘The wounded hero was for a few days in the Infirmary, the case being only a trifling one. But though inquiry was strongly pre ssed on him, no argument could make him indi- cate the person from whom he had received the wound, though he must have been perfectly well known to him. When he recovered, and was dismissed, the Author and his brothers opened 4 communication with him, through the medium of a popular ginger-bread baker, of whom both parties were customers, in order to tender a subsidy in name of smart- money. The sum would excite ridicule were I to name it ; but sure I am, that the pockets of the noted Green-Breeks never held as ‘much money of his own. He declined the remittance, saying that he would not sell his blood ; but at the same time reprobated the idea of being an informer, whichAPPENDIX, 433 he said was clam, i.e. base or mean. With much urgency he accepted a pound of snuff for the use of some old w oman—aunt, grandmother, or the like—with whom he lived. We did not become friends, for the lickers were more agreeable to both parties than any more e pacific amusement ; but we conducted them ever after under mutual assurances of the highest consideration of each other. SHER: was the hero whom Mr, Thomas Scott proposed to carry to Canada ar nd involve i in adventures with the au es and colonists of that { ips the youthful ¢ generosity of the lad will not seem so great f others as to those whom it was the means of screen ing from severe rebuke and punishment. But it seemed, to those concerned, to. argue a nobleness of sentiment far bey _ the pitch of most minds ; and however obscurely the lad who showed such a frame of noble spirit may have lived or died, I cannot help being of nae nm, that if fortune had placed him in circumstances calling for gallantry or generosity, the man would have ful- = the promises of the boy. Long afterward, when the story was told * O< a Y to my father, he censured us severely for not telling the truth at the time, that He might have attempted to be of use ‘to the young man in entering on life. But our alarms for the consequence of the draw n sword, and the icted with such a weapon, were far too predominant at the time pitch of generosity. Perhaps I ought not to have inserted this school- boy tale; but besides the strong impression made by the incident at the time, the whole accom- animents of the story are matters to me of solemn and s ad recollection. ] Of all the little band who were concerned in those Juv enile ‘Spor rts or brawls, [ can scarce recolleet a sin zle survivor. Some left the ranks of mimic war to die in the active service of their country. Many sought distant lands to return no more. Others, d lspemsedit in dif ferent paths of life, ‘my dim eyes now seek for in vain.” Of five brothers, all heal thy and promising, in a degree far beyond one whose infancy was visited by personal infirmity, and whose health after this period seemed long rery precarious, I am, neverthe- less, the only survivor. The best loved. and the best deserv ing to be loved, who had destined this incident to be the foundation of literary composition, died “ before his day ” in a distant and forei ign land ; and trifles assume an importance not their own when connected with those who have been loved ae lost. be Pest aa raaeit ee 4 F | i SPR SE noe Tet ts Sera ster itAPPENDIX. TO INTRODUCTION (1829), p. xxiv. THE mutual protection afforded by Waverley and Talbot to each other, Hh upon which the whole plot depends, is founded upon one of these anecdotes 1 | which soften the features even of civil war ; and as it is equally honorable to the memory of both parties, we have no hesitation to give their names at te length. When the Highlanders, on the morning of the battle of Preston, [, 1745, made their memorable attack on Sir John Cope’s army, a battery of four field-pieces was stormed and carried by the Camerons and the Stewarts of Appine. The late Alexander Stewart of Invernahyle was one of the foremost in the charge, and observing an officer of the King’s forces, who, scorning to join the flight of all around, remained with his sword in his hand. as if determined to the very last to defend the post assigned to him, Bee | the Highland gentleman commanded him to surrender, and received for re- i ply a thrust, which he caught in his target. The officer was now defence- less, and the battle-axe of a gigantic Highlander (the miller of Invernahyle’s mill) was uplifted to dash his brains out, when Mr. Stewart with difficulty prevailed on him’ to yield. He took charge of the enemy’s property, pro- tected his person, and finally obtained him liberty on his parole. ‘The officer proved to be Colonel Whitefoord, an Ayrshire gentleman of high character and influence, and warmly attached to the House of Hanover ; yet such was the confidence existing between these two honorable men, though of different political principles, that while the civil war was raging, and straggling officers from the Highland army were executed without mercy, Invernahyle hesitated not to pay his late captive a visit as he re- ae turned to the Highlands to raise fresh recruits, on which occasion he spent a day or two in Ayrshire among Colonel Whitefoord’s Whig friends, as pleasantly and good-humoredly as if all had been at peace around him. After the battle of Culloden had ruined the hopes of Charles Edward, and dispersed his proscribed adherents, it was Colonel Whitefoord’s turn to strain every nerve to obtain Mr. Stewart’s pardon. He went to the Lord Justice-Clerk, to the Lord Advocate, and to all the officers of state, and each application was answered by the production of a list, in which Inver: nahyle (as the good old gentleman was wont to express it) appeared ‘© marked with the sign of the beast!” as a subject unfit for favor or pardon. At length Colonel Whitefoord applied to the Duke of Cumberland in From him also he received a positive refusal. He then limited his request, for the present, to a protection for Stewart’s house, wife, chil- dren, and property. This was also refused by the Duke; on which Colo- nel Whitefoord, taking his commission from his bosom, laid it on the table before His Royal Highness with much emotion, and asked permission to \ retire from the service of a sovereign who did not know how to spare a van- quished enemy. ‘The Duke was struck, and even affected. He bade the Colonel take up his commission, and granted the protection he required. [t was issued just in time to save the house, corn, and cattle at Invernahyle from the troops who were engaged in laying waste what it was the fashion person.APPENDIX, 435 to call “ the country of the enemy.” A small encampment of soldiers was formed on Invernahyle’s property, which they spared while plundering the country around, and searching in every direction for the leaders of the in- surrection, and for Stewart in particular. He was much nearer them than they suspected; for, hidden in a cave (like the Baron of Bradwardine), he lay for many days so near the English sentinels, that he could hear their muster-roil called. His food was brought to him by one of his daughters, a child of eight years old, whom Mrs, Stewart was under the necessity of entrusting with this commission ; for her own motions, and those of all her elder inmates, were Closely watched. With ingenuity beyond her years, the child used to stray about among the soldiers, who were rather kind to her, and thus seize the moment when she was unobserved, and steal into the thicket, where she deposited whatever small store of provisions she had in charge at some marked spot where her father might find it, Invernahvle supported life for several weeks by means of these precarious supplies ; and as he had been wounded in the battle of Culloden, the hardships which he endured were aggravated by great bodily pain. After the soldiers had removed their quarters, he had another remarkable escape. As he now ventured to his own house at night, and left itin the morning, he was espied during the dawn by a party of the enemy, who fired at and pursued him, The fugitive being fortunate enough to escape their search, they returned to the house, and charged the family with harboring one of the prescribed traitors. An old woman had presence of mind enough to maintain that the man they had seen was the shepherd. ‘* Why did he not stop when we called to him?” said the soldier.— He is as deaf, poor man, as a peat-stack,’’ answered the ready-witted domestic.—< Let him be sent for, directly.”’ The real shepherd accordingly was brought from the hill, and as there was time to tutor him by the way, he was as deaf when he made his appearance as was necessary to sustain his character. Invernahyle was afterward pardoned under the Act of Indemnity. The Author knew him well, and has often heard these circumstances from his own mouth. He was a noble specimen of the old Highlander, far descended, gallant, courteous, and brave, even to chivalry. He had been out, I believe, in 1715 and 1745; was an active partaker in all the stirring scenes which passed in the Highlands betwixt these memorable eras; and, I have heard, was remarkable, among other exploits, for having fought a duel with the broadsword with the celebrated Rob Roy MacGregor, at the Clachan of Balquhidder. Invernahyle chanced to be in Edinburgh when Paul Jones came into the Firth of Forth, and though then an old man, I saw him in arms, and heard him exult (to use his own words) in the prospect of “ drawing his claymore once more before he died.” In fact, on that memorable eccasion, when the capital of Scotland was menaced by three trifling sloops or brigs, scarce fit to have sacked a fishing village, hé was the only man who seemed to propose a plan of resistance. He offered to the magistrates, if broadswords and dirks could be obtained, to find as many Highlanders among the lower classes as would cut off any boat’s crew who might be sent into a town full of narrow and winning passages, in which they were likely to disperse in quest of plunder. I know not if his plan was attended to ; I rather think it seemed too hazardous to the constituted authorities, who might not, even at that time, desire to see arms in Highland hands. A steady and power- ful west wind settled the matter, by sweeping Paul Jones and his vessels out cf the Firth. If there is something degrading in this recollection, it is not unpleasant te compare it with those of the last war, when Edinburgh, beside regular forces and militia, furnished a volunteer brigade of cavalry,* infantry, and artillery, to the amount of six thousand men and upward, which was in aren srewry. SESNERIRS LEANN Seer asuiaris Not may ms Pee eine .outuabisneehabasae tater: oe i cetiabnmmmmen tne APPENDIX, 436 readiness to meet and repel aforce of a far more formidable description than was commanded by the adventurous American. Time and circum- stances changed the character of nations and the fate of cities; and it is some pride toa Scotchman to reflect, that the independent and manly character of a country willing to entrust its own protection to the arms of its children, after having been obscured for half-a-century has, during the course of his own lifetime, recovered its lustre. ; * (The Author was quarter-master of the Edinburgh Volunteer Light Horse.) NOTE TO GENERAL PREFACE, p, xxii. THE PUBLICATION OF WAVERLEY. From Lockhart’s Alemoirs of Scoté. [‘‘ There appeared in The Scots Magazine for February rst, 1884, and announcement, that ‘ Waverley; or, ‘tis Sixty Years Since, a novel, in 3 vols. r2mo,’ would be published in March. And before Scott came into he close of the Christmas vacation, on the r2thof January Edinburgh, at t Mr. Erskine had perused the greater part of the first volume, and expressed 1 on 4) his decided opinion that Waverley would prove the most popular of all his friend’s writings. The MS. was forthwith copied by John Ballantyne, and sent to press.” Ina letter to his friend 4: B. S. Morritt of Rokeby, dated July 9, 1814, Sir Walter says :— ‘‘Now, to go from one important subject to another, I must account for my own laziness, which I do by referring you to a small anonymous sort of a novel, in three volumes, Waverley, which you will receive by the mail of this day. It was a very old attempt of mine to embody some traits of those characters and manners peculiar to Scotland, the last remnants of which vanished during my own youth, so that few or no traces now remain. I had written great part of the first volume, and sketched other passages, when I mislaid the MS., and only found it by the merest accident as I was rummaging the drawers of an old cabinet ; and I took t ] he fancy of finish- ing it, which I did so fast, that the last two volumes were written in three weeks, Again, in a subsequent note, he adds— **As to Waverley, I will play Sir Fretful for once, and assure you that T left the story to flag in the first volume on purpose; the second and third have rather more bustle and interest. I wished (with what success Heaven knows) to avoid the ordinary error of novel writers, whose first volume is usually their best. But since it has served to amuse Mrs. Morritt and you wsgue ab initio, Ihave no doubt you will tolerate it even unto the end.” ; The above statement respecting the time occupied in the composition of the two Jast volumes is born out by the following annecdote, told by his future son-in-law, J. G. Lockhart:— “ Happening to pass through Edinburgh in June 1814, I dined one day with William Menzies (afterward Judge at the Cape of Good Hope), whose residence was then in George Street, situated very near to and within sight of the back windows of Scott’s house in North Castle Street. It wasa party of very young persons, most of them, like Menzies and myself, destined far ”APPENDIX, the Bar of Scot] and, all ga manhood, with little e remembrance of tl ‘When my Companion’s worthy father three e bottles go round, left the juveniles to themselves hot, we adjourned to a libr ary which had one wards, After car< ousing here for an ] ne on over the aspect of my friend, diately op] posite to my self, and said something x th being unwell. ‘No’ said he, ‘I shall be well c ‘let me si ‘it where you are, and take my chair; nd in sight of me here, which has often bothe won't lets ne fi ll my gl: n accordingly, and he pointec 1 out to me this hand which, on Belshazzar’s wall. dj isturbed his hour of hj € said, ‘I have been watching it—it page after page is finished and thrown on that Heap of MS., and still ; on unwearied—and so it will be till candles knows how lon g after that, of it when Iam not at my Bots 3.’—* Some stupid, probably, ’ exclaimed mys or some other giddy youth ‘No, boys,’ said our host, ‘ a ib ll know what I This was the hand that, in the evenings of th two last volumes of Wave rley.”—From the Me I. G. Lockhart.] (AUTHOR’S DEDICATION—ABBOTSFORD, 1829.) To ‘THe Kinc’s Most Gr Acious Majzsry. SIRE—The Author of t his Collection of Works of Fj for them y r Majesty’s a st Patronage were it not tha at the perusal h some insta to have succeede 2d in amusing hours of rel aero nm, Or relieving those of ] m : t 1 ) he = | Hunt at Glennaquoich, 128, 132. bute approached by Balmawhapple 1M averley, 216. MAGINATIONS of Waverley, 18. nnocents, 44. nns, Scottish, note on, 395 o d’Elicona niente, 124. omicers, note on, 404, rving, Joh Nn, Vill. d ish sn poten in En; gland, 404. Syme , Author’s acquaintance with, “380, ft the Needle, 227, inet, Old, ake kept by the nobility, 44. ypson, eos b, shelters W averley, 310, 333: quoich, rr2z,_ 113. waterfall, 1x8, razr. Meeting with ng 128. M Ave grace, Declines \ At Hol iy aaa. fs bya Highlander, 273. Rose, and opinion Making Fergus’s NCUREIT described by Brad wardine, 48, Kind gallows of Crieff, note on, 399. Farlane’s, 403. fall, 401. ym he me, 130. rary at Waverley-Honour, 136 ibulero bullen a la, ‘ Athole hunt, zr e at dinner, 400. tly ambitious, 73, inn, and quarrel in, 53-54. emorated by Gunn, 128, I 330. MaccomsB ICH, Evan Dhu, emb ret to Tully- anet, the wit h, 68. | Veolan about the cattle, 82. In Edinburgh, :ealogical stories narrated to Waverley 28. Warns Waverley of pssasminatien, 304. Offers to die for his c hief, ifted, and his y eey ers, 190. Sur- | Mac-Farlane’s lantern, note oe 403. r the oe ulanders, Mac-Ivor, Fergus, ro o-105. Compared with by De onald Bean, | his sister, 112. His song at the waterfall 123. Incites Waverley to rebellion, 14% is Castle, note on, 396. 147. Meets Waverley at Holyrood, 217. Glenaladale, where Prince Charles landed,| Re jected in his suit, 284. Quarrels with | Wave rle Y, 300-306. Sees the ‘‘ Bodach Glas,” 313. Made prisoner at Clifton, 316. RN § | 5 . : : | Glennaquoich House, and entertainments at, | 105-107. | Condemns d to deaths 365- 367. Green-Breeks, 432. | Mac -Ivor, Flora. See Flora. Maclearie. See Luckie e. Hair to thee, thou holy herb! 131. | Macwheeble, Bailie, 49. In Edinburgh, 229. Hanover, House of, Mac-Ivor’s declama-| On the battlefield, 264. Immersed in his tion, 142. | papers, 349-350. Reads the assignation of Hie away, over bat nk, over brae, 61. Mac- Murrough ‘tl he Bard, rro. Highland chief and his tail, 84. Mac-Vicar’s prayer for Prince Charles, 272. discipline, note on, 401. Manners, change in, chiefly external, 3. fling or reel at Glennaquoich, 154. Matrimony described by Flora, 125, 172. Helots am the Highlanders, 243. | Tully-Veolan, 383. i i 441 WRAR RSE REAR eet eee Re ener a TT ees442 Melville, Major, of Cairnvreckan, 173, 181. Military education, 33 Mirkwood Mere, sonnet, 24 Morrison Fynes, his tr avels in Scotland, 400. Morton, minister of C airnvreckan, 172. Visits Waverley in confinement, 187. Mucklewrath, the smith of C airnvreckan, 168. Murray, William, formerly Manager of Theatre Royal, ‘dinburgh, 112. My heart’s in the His eniands SHsds My master ! 97. NairNE, Miss, note on, 407+ Hewsne pe temp. Waverley, 6. Nosebag, Mrs., 32: Notes to W averley, author’s apology for, Xxil. Oatu upon the dirk, note on, 329. Oggam hierog lyphic, 158. O THA y of the desert, hail! 123. O vous qui buvez, a tasse p leine, 123. Pau. Jonss in Firth of Forth, 435. Pedl a that joins Gilfillan, 197. Pembroke the tutor, his interview with the bookseller, 30. Detter of ten folio pages, 135. Inthe Priest’s Hole, 377. Picara Justina Diaz, history of, ro2. Pinkie House, near Musselburgh, 268. Polonaise dress worn by Scotch boys, 130 Pork abhorred by the Scotch, 108. Prestonpans battle-field, 249-258. Prince Charles at Holyrood, 217. Separates the combatants, 307. His alacrity at Pres- tonpans, 405. Defence of, by the author, note, 407. QurENHOoO, HALL, edited by the author of Waverley, 12, 422. Racuet, Aunt, 17, 32- Letter from, inquir- ing about oe 138. Rank and ancestry, 48. Ravelston garden, 40. Reading desultory, 13. Rhymer, Thomas the, 414. Robertson, Rev. Dr., 172. Rob Roy, note on, 398. Romance, characters requisite to make in- teresting, 3. Romeo and Juliet, opinions on, 290. Rose Bradwardine, 44. Apartment at Tully- Veolan, 6s, 66, 71, 72, 73. Described by ora, 125. Letter to Waverley, 155. At Hol yrood, 238. Her interest in Waver- L » 2 ley, 281, 289. Assists him when a prisoner at Cairnvreckan. 349. Rubrick the clergyman, his conscience, 49. Rubrick of the Duchran, 362. Ruffin. See Bean, Donald. St. JOHNSTONE’s tippet, 213. ste " Swithin’s chair, sonnet, 66. Saunderson, Alex., butler at Tully-Veolan, 2y 47° School-days, anecdote of author’s, 431. INDEX. Scotland, effects of the Jacobite rebellion upon, 388. Scctt, Thos., soppOee author of ‘* Waver- ey,’’ xx. His tale of fiction, 431. eooacnaa persons, QI. Sidier Dhu, 98. Siddons, Mrs. Henry, 112. Skene-occle or, Highlan d knife. 164. Society, dislike oles: Spontoon, Col. Talbot’s servant, 327. Stag’s horn, wound from, 130, Steakraid, 126, Stewart, governor of Doune Castle, 210. Stewart of se note ony 434- Stirling Castle, defied by Balmawhapple, 214 Strutt, Joseph, posthumous works, Xll. Stubbs, Cecilia, flirtation with, 20. Stirrup cup, note on, 396. Superstitions, surgery inthe Highlands, 131, Taxzot, Colonel, Waverley’s prisoner, 263. Character and opinions of, 278. Receives ill-tidings from home, 293. Gets leave to return home from Prince Charles, 295. Re- ceives Waverley into his house in Lon- don, 326. Letter to Waverley with pardon for kita and Bradwardine, 356. At Tully- Veolan, festivities, 381. Protection of by W averley, note on, 434. Tartans distinctive of clans, 2o1- Taylor’s hunt in the braes of Mar, 128. There is mist on the mountain, 121. Thieves, Highland geztlemen, 96. Thomas the ‘Rhymer, fra; ement of a romance, 414, 418. Three things useless to a Highlander, 116, Tinchel, a mode of driving the deer, 129. Titus Livius, attachment to, 393. To an eae 165. Trimmel the bookseller, 30. Tully-Veolan, village, 35. Manor-house, and garden, 38, 40. Creagh on, from the High- Jands, 75. Revisited by Waverley, de sola« tion, 337- Restored, festivities at, 381. Upepa, Francisco, a hair in his pen, 192 Unction, extreme, Donald Bean’s idea of oa, VENISON of the roe, 60. Vich Ian Vohr. See Mac- Tror, Fergus. Von Eulen, journal of 421. WakeEn, lords and ladies gay, 423. W ashing scene at Tully-Veolan, 41. W eer at Glennaquoich, trg. Note on | W nverley? ” authorship and origin of, v. vii., xi., xvii., xiv., 436+ Revision of ‘the, Novels, lil. W averley, Edward’s first interview with his uncle, 9. Education at the hall, 11. Choice ofa profe ssion, 19. Military e duc ation, 33- Reception of, at Tully-V eolan, 45. Jour- ney to Glennaquoich, 84. Health drunk by Mac-Ivor, 109. Emotions toward Flora, 120. His loyalty incited by the bard, 123. re aget OT SO ana Loss of his seal, 126. Wounded in the stagINDEX. hunt, and conveved to Tomanrait, 130-133. Returns to Glennaquoich (letters from home), 138. Ordered to return to his regi- it, 139. Undoes the sable ‘ cockade;”’ t meeting with Flora at the water- 5 “Inquired after’? by the sol- diers at Tully-Veolan, 155 naquoich, 155. Detained Cairnvreckan, 167. Examined befor jor Melville, 173. scuec I 199. Night adventure, Doune Castle, 209. L escorted by Balmawhap by Mac-Ivor to Pr Assumes the Repulsed by the march bot’s ey e missing letters and the t against him, 274. His courtships in Edinburgh, 2 Changes his affections, 208. Quarrel with Mac-Ivor, rated from the Highlanders Ce ple, mce , as Clifton, ae Journey to London, 300, | 443 Return to Scotland, 334. Receives explan< ations of past events, 347. An accepted lover, 362. Leaves for Carlisle to intercede for Mac-Ivor, 364. Returns to Waverley. Honour, 376 Nuptials at Tully-Veolan, 379. Waverley, Sir Everard, his will and courtship 7, 8. His political susceptibilities 22. Part- ing advice to his nephew, 27. Letter to his nephew, 138. Waverley, Richard, estrangement from his brother, 4. Political intrigues and fall, 135. Death of, 322. Whisky among the Highlanders, Q2e Whiteford, Colonel, note on Ags Wilibert of Waverley, the crusader, 19. Williams, Ned, caught sweethearting, 318. Witchcraft in Scotland, 68. Wogan, Captain, 148. Sung by Flora, 164. Youne Men will love thee more fair and more fast, 69. . | | A pererster rs oot Mer aaty- ak Aisi ys as SE 4 § ] fSr Be pocureesy g y ay (es Bs Be Za tr Stas 98 SEOs eran Wee tiers eve si rl LSet eeneens PME eri Soo| WTA 1 > EG 1 WUE Vp Vs ay TEN, ) i 4 J My SIR HENRY LEE RECEIVING THE WARRANT. SMubhinestastencatie! = NERA ssasesankiToeEa E3 zRE eg eT SS a 4 p ce x 4 FY ay beTHE busy period of the great Civil War was one in which the character and genius of different parties were most brilliantly dis- played, and accordingly, the incidents which took place on either side were of a striking and extraordinary character, and afforded ample foundation for fictitious composition. The Author had in some measure attempted such in ‘‘ Peveril of the Peak ; 2) but -the scene was in a remote part of the kingdom, and mingled with other national differences, which left him still at liberty to glean another harvest out of so ample a store. In these circumstances, some wonderful adventures which hap pened at Woodstock in the year 1649, occurred to him as some thing he had long ago read of, although he was unable to tell where and of which the hint appeared sufficient, although, doubtless, it might have been much better handled if the Author had not, in the lapse of time, lost everything like an accurate recollection of the real story. [t was not until about this period, 1 thor, being called upon to write this introduction, obtained a ge eral account of what really happened upon the marvellous occasic in question, in a work termed ‘‘ The Every-day Book,” published by Mr. Hone,* and full of curious antiquarian research, the object being to give a variety of original information concerning man- ners illustrated by curious instances, rarely to be found elsewhere. Among other matter, Mr. Hone quotes an article from the Aritish Mi ine for 1747, in the following words, and which is probably the document which the Author of Woodstock had formerly pe- * [Vol, ii., p. 582, London, 1827.]a aasashacene oa ee ae Fa iv INTRODGECTION: rused, although he was unable to refer to the source of his informa- tion. The tract is entitled, ‘‘ The Genuine History of the Good Devil of Woodstock, Cane in the world, in the year 1649, and never accounted for or at all understood to this time.’ The teller of this ‘‘ genuine history” proceeds verbatim as follows : ; ‘© Some original papers having lately fallen into my hands, under the name of ‘Authentic Memoirs of the Memorable Joseph Collins of Oxford, commonly known by the name of Funny Joe, and now intended for the press,’ I was extremely delighted to find in them a circumstantial and unquestionable account of the most famous of all invisible agents, so well known in the year 1649, under the name of the Good Devil of Woodstock, and even adored by the people of that place, for the vexation and distress it occasioned some people they were not much pleased with. As this famous story, though related by a thousand people, and attested in all its circumstances, beyond all possibility of doubt, by people of rank, learning, and reputation, of Oxford and the adjacent towns, has never yet been generally accounted for, or at all understood, and is perfectly explained, in a manner that can admit of no doubt, in these papers, I could not refuse my readers the pleasure it gave me in reading.” Gra ae) Fi f no doubt that. in the ve Gin a Sa be Chere 1s, therefore, no doubt that, in the year 1049, a number of incidents, supposed to be supernatural, took place at the King’s palace of Woodstock, which the Commissioners of Parliament were then and there endeavoring to dilapidate and destroy. The account of this by the Commissioners themselves, or under their as relation sixth of ‘‘Satan’s Invisible World Discovered,” by George Sinclair, Professor of Philosophy in Glasgow,* an approved i€s. It was the object of neither of the great political parties of that day to discredit this narrative, which gave great satisfaction both 2 te the impious desecration of the King’s furniture and apartments, so that the gers of the cause of royalty ; while the friends of the Parliament, on the athe? 1and, imputed to the malice of the fiend the obstruc- At the risk of prolonging a curious quotation, I include a page or two from Mr. Hone’s *‘ Every-day Book.” manor-house, October 13th, and took up their residence in the King’s own rooms. His Majesty’s bed-chamber they made their was the place where they sat for dispatch of business. His Majesty’s dining-room they made their woodyard, and stowed it 1 authority, was repeatedly published, and, in particular, is inserted collector of such tal to the cavaliers and roundheads; the former conceiving that the license given to the demons was in consequence of citizens of ne \dstock almost adored the supposed spirits, as aven- tion of the pious work, as they jadged that which they had in hand. ‘The honorable the Commissioners arrived at Woodstock kitchen, the council-hall their pantry, and the presence-chamber with no ofl er wood but that of the famous Royal Oak from the * [Originally published at Edinburgh, 1685, 12mo. |LINTRODUCTYT. ON. Vv High Park, which, that n othing might be | King about it, they had dug up by tl fagots for their firing, eft with the name of the 1€ roots, and bundled up into Jctober 16th. Sei his day they fir st sat for the dispatch of oe vate there entere d a large ), which made a terrible howling, over- f their chairs, and doing some other damage, went under the bed, and there gna wed ‘the cords; The door ae while continued constantly shut, when, after some two or thre hours, Giles Sharp, their sec cretary, looking 1 inder the bed, dee ceived that the creature was y: unished, and that a plate of meat that the servants had hid there was untouc hed, and showing them oh the midst of their first deh black dog {as they tho sught urned tad, or thre ero to their honors. che ey were all convinced there could be no real¢ dog concerned in the c; es ae =e Giles also deposed on oath th at, to his certain k movicdee: there was not. ~ October 17th.—As they were this day sitting at dinner in a lower room, they heard pla inly the noise of persons walking over- head, though they well ky new the doors were all a and there could be none hare Presently after they heard also all the wood of the King’s oak brou; ght by al arcels from the di ning-room, and thrown with great violence into the presence a as also the chairs, stele) ables, and other furniture, forcil oly hurled about the room, their Own papers of the minutes ] of their transactions torn, and the Paws Fs broken. When all this had some time ceased, the said Gil es proposed to enter first into these rooms, and, in presence of the Comn nissioners, of whom h r C pots bet ~ 1€ received the key, he opened the door a id entered the room, their honors follow- ing him. He there foun: issn wood strewed about the room, the chairs tossed about add sii as co n, the papers torn, and the ink-glass broken over them all they had heard, yet no footsteps. ap- peared of any person whatever being there, nor had the doors ever been oes to admit or let out any persons since their honors were last the It was therefore voted, sem. con., that the person who did this ace could have entered no other way than at the key-hole of the said door: ‘In the night following a Sam other of the Commissioners’ se CL n ‘day, the said Giles, and two ints, as they were in bed in the same room with their honors. i a their bed’s feet lifted up so much higher than their heads, that they expected,to have their necks broken, and then they were let fall at once with such vio- lence as sho k them up from the bed to a good distance ; and this was repeated many times, their honors bej Ing amazed spectators Of its duvithe morning the bedsteads were found cracked and broken, and the said Giles and ] his fellows declared they were sore to the bones with the tossit ng and jolting of the beds. ‘* October roth.—As they were all in bed together, the candles were all blown out together with a sulphurous smell, and instantly many trenchers of w ood were h urled about the room ; and one of them, putting his head above the clothes, had not less than six throw n at hin 1, which wounded him very grievously. In the morn- ing the trenchers were all found lying about the room, and were o nts n— 7 p : = , : pepbethbbhaed hohe tikhe washietanre eee PPR oraeotan uate vi INTRODUCTION. observed to be the same they had eaten on the day before, none being found remaining in the pantry. ‘’ October 20th.—This night the candles were put out as be- fore; the curtains of the bed in which their honors lay were drawn to and fro many times with great violence ; their honors received many cruel blows, and were much bruised beside, with eight great pewter dishes and three dozen wooden trenchers, which were thrown on the bed, and afterward heard rolling about the room. ‘‘Many times also this night they heard the forcible falling of many fagots at their bedside, but in the morning no fagots were found there, no dishes or trenchers were there seen either; and the aforesaid Giles attests that, by their different arranging in the pantry, they had assuredly been taken thence, and after put there again. ‘¢ October 21st.—The keeper of their ordinary and his bitch lay with them: This night they had no disturbance. “ October 22.—Candles put out as before. They had the said bitch with them again, but were not by that protected ; the bitch set up a very piteous cry; the clothes of their beds were all pulled off, and the pricks, without any wind, were thrown off the chimney tops into the midst. ‘¢ October 24.—The candles put out as before. They thought all the wood of the King’s Oak was violently thrown down by their bedsides ; they counted sixty-four fagots that fell with great vio- lence, and some hit and shook the bed—but in the morning none were found there, nor the door of the room opened in which the said fagots were. ‘© October 25.—The candles put out as before. The curtains of the bed in the drawing-room were many times forcibly drawn ; the wood thrown out as before ; a terrible crack like thunder was heard : and one of the servants, running to see if his master was not ‘killed, found, at. his return, ,three dozen trenchers laid smoothly upon his bed under the quilt. “ October 26.—The beds were shaken as before, the windows seemed all broken to pieces, and glass fell in vast quantities all about the room. In the morning they found the windows all whole, but the floor strewed with broken glass, which they gathered and jaid by. “October 29.—At midnight candles went out as before, some- thing walked majestically through the room and opened and shut the window; great stones were thrown violently into the room, some whereof fell on the beds, others on the floor; and about a quarter after one, a noise was heard as of forty cannon discharged together, and again repeated at about eight minutes distance. This alarmed and raised all the neighborhood, who, coming into their honors’ room, gathered up the great stones, four score in number, many of them like common pebbles and bowlders, and laid them by, where they are to be seen to this day, at a corner of the adjoining field. This noise, like the discharge of cannon, was heard throughout the country for sixteen miles round. DuringINTRODUCTION. vii these noises, which were heard in both rooms toge ther, both the Commissioners and_ their servants gave one another over for lost, and cried out for help; and Giles Sharp, snatching up a sword, had well-nigh killed one of their honors, taking him. for the spirit as he came in his shirt into the room. While they were together the noise was continued, and part of the tilting of the house and all the windows of an upper room were taken away with it. ** October 30. —Something walked into the chamber, treading like a bear ; it walked many times about, then threw the warming pan violently upon the floor, and so bruised it that it was spoiled. u ast quantities of glass were now thrown about the room, and ast numbers of great stones and horses’ bones were thrown in. These were all found in the morning, and the floors, beds, and valls were all much damaged | by the violence they were thrown in. - November 1.-_C andles were placed in all parts of the room, and a great fire made. At midn ight, the candles all yet burning, a noise like the burst of a cannon was heard in the room, and the burning billets were tossed all over the room and about the beds ; and had not their honors called in Giles and his fellows, the house had assuredly been burnt. An hour after the candles went out, as usual, the clack of many cannon was heard, and many pailfuls of green stinking water were throw non their honors in bed ; great stones were also thrown in as before, the bed curtains and bed- steads torn and broken; the windows were now all really broken, and the whole nei hborhood alarmed with the noises : nay, the very rabbit-stealers that were abroad that night in the warren were so frightened at the dismal thunde ‘ring, that they fled for fear, and left their ferrets behind them. ‘One of their honors this night spoke, and in the name of God sked what it was, and why it disturbed them so? No answer was to this, but the noise ceased for a while, when the spirit came « gain, and, as they all agreed, brou ght with it seven devils worse than itself. One of = Serv ants now lighted a large candle and set it in the door between the two chambers, to see what passed; and as he* wate ied it, he plainly saw a hoof striking the candle and candlestick into the mi iddle of the room, and afterward making three scrapes over the snuff of the candle e, to scrape it out. Upon this, the same person was so bold as to draw a sword; but he had scarce got it out, when he perceived another invisible hand had hold of it too, and pulled with him for it, and at last prevail- ing, struck him so violently on the head with the pommel that he fell down for dead with the blow. At this instant was heard an- other burst like the discharge of the broadside of a ship of war, and at about a minute or two’s distance each, no less than nine- teen more such. These shook the house so violently, that they e ex- pected every moment it would fall upon their heads. The neig bors on this were all alarm and, running to the house, joined in prayer and psalm-singing, during which the noise con- * Probably this part was also played by Sharp, who was the regular ghost- seer of the party. ae ER eeevill INTRODUCTION. ee tinued in the other rooms, and the discharge of cannon without, though nobody was there.” Dr. Plot concludes his relation of this memorable event * with observing that, though tricks have often been played in affairs of this kind, many of these things are not reconcilable with juggling ; , such as, Ist, The loud noises beyond the power of man to make, without instruments which were not there; 2d, The tearing and breaking of the beds ; 3d, The throwing about the fire ; 4th, The hoof treading out the candle ; and 5th, The striving for the sword, | and the blow the man received from the pommel of it. Ae To show how great men are sometimes deceived, we may recur | to a tract, entitled ‘*‘ The Secret History of the Good Devil of Woodstock,” in which we find it, under the author’s own hand, that | he, Joseph Collins, commonly called Funny Joe, was himself this very devil; that, under the feigned name of Giles Sharp, he hired himself as a servant to the Commissioners ; that by the help of two friends, an unknown trapdoor in the ceiling of the bed- chamber, and a pound of gunpowder, he played all these extraor- dinary tricks by himself; that his fellow-servants, whom he had ia iia introduced on purpose to assist him, had lifted up their own beds, and that the candles were contrived, by a common trick of gun- powder, to be extinguished at a certain time. The dog who began the farce was, as Joe swore, no dog at all, but truly a bitch, who had shortly before whelped in that room, and made all this disturbance in seeking for her puppies; and which, when she had served his purpose, he (Joe Sharp, or Collins) let out and then looked for. The story of the hoof and sword he himself bore witness to, and was never suspected as to the truth of them, though mere fictions. By the trap-door his friends let down stones, Ht fagots, glass, water, etc., which they either left there or drew up Lt again, as best suited his purpose ; and by this way let themselves in ; and out, without opening the doors or going through the keyholes ; i and all the noises described, he declares, he made by placing quantities of white gunpowder over pieces of burning charcoal, on plates of tin, which, as they melted, exploded with a violent noise. [am very happy in having an opportunity of setting history right about these remarkable events, and would not have the reader disbelieve my author’s account of them, from his naming either white gunpowder exploding when melted, or his making the earth about the pot take fire of its own accord; since, however improb- able these accounts may appear to some readers, and whatever se- crets they might be in Joe’s time, they are now well known in chem- istry. As to the last, there needs only to mix an equal quantity of iron filings, finely powdered, and powder of pure brimstone, and make them into a paste with fair water. The paste, when it hath lain together about twenty-six hours, will of itself take fire, and burn all the sulphur away witha blue flame and a bad smell. For the others, what he calls white gunpowder is plainly the thunder- ing powder called by our chemists pulvis fulminans. It is com- posed of three parts of saltpetre, two parts of pearl ashes or salt of * In his Natural History of Oxfordshire. Stes Sseirere teetartar, and one part of flour of brimstone, mixed together and beat to a fine powder ; a small quantity of this held on the point of a knife over a candle will not go off till it melt, and then it gives a re- port like that of a pistol; and this he might easily dispose of in larger quantities, so as to make it explode of itself, while he, the said Joe, was with his masters. Such is the explanation of the ghostly adventures of Wood- Stock, as transferred by Mr. Hone from the pages of the old tract, termed ‘‘ The Authentic Memoirs of the Memorable Joseph Collins of Oxford,” whose courage and loyalty were the only wizards which conjured up those strange and surprising apparitions and works of Spirits which passed as unquestionable in the eyes of the Parlia- mentary Commissioners, of Dr. Plot, and other authors of credit; The pulvis fulminans, the secret principle he made use of, is now known to every apothecary’s apprentice. If my memory be not treacherous, the actor of these wonders made use of his skill in fireworks upon the following remarkable Occasion: ‘I'he Commissioners had not. in their zeal for the pub- lic service, overlooked their own private interests, and a deed was drawn up upon parchment, recording the share and nature of the advantages which they privately agreed to concede to each other ; at the same time they were, it seems, loath to intrust to any one of their number the keeping of a document in which al] were equally concerned. They hid the written agreement within a flower-pot, in which a Shrub concealed it from the eyes of any chance spectator. But the rumor of the apparitions having gone abroad, curiosity drew many of the neighbors to Woodstock, and some in particular, to whom the knowledge of this agreement would have afforded matter of scandal. As the Commissioners received these guests in the saloon where the flower-pot was placed, a match was suddenly set to some fireworks placed there by Sharp, the secretary. The flower-pot burst to pieces with the concussion, or was prepared so as to explode of itself, and the contract of the Commissioners, bear- ing testimony to their private roguery, was thrown into the midst of the visitors assembled. If I have recollected this incident ac- curately—for it is more than forty years since I perused the tract —it is probable that in omitting it from the novel I may also have passed over, from want of memory, other matters which might have made an essential addition to the story. Nothing, indeed, is more certain than that incidents which are real preserve an in- finite advantage in works of this nature over such as are ficti- tious. The tree, however, must remain where it has fallen. Having occasion to be in London in October, 1831, I made some researches in the British Museum, and in that rich collection, with the kind assistance of the Keepers, who manage it with so much credit to themselves and advantage to the public, I recovered two original pamphlets, which contain a full account of the phe- nomena at Woodstock in 1649.* The first is a satirical poem, published in that year, which plainly shows that the legend was cur- * See Appendix. INTRODUCTION. ix SSE Senet so ra Si 3 Peers 3} s Bren yt en nt te eR u + Cs Ree Ceex INTRODUCTION. WY rent among the people in the very shape in which it was afterward Have ea made public.* I have not found the explanation of Joe Collins, Ha which, as mentioned by Mr. Hone, resolves the whole into con- Vie federacy. It might, however, be recovered by a stricter search ih than I had leisure for. In the meantime, it may be observed that neither the name of Joe Collins, nor Sharp, occurs among the dramatis persone given in these tracts, published when he might have been endangered by anything which directed suspicion toward him, at least in 1649, and perhaps might have exposed him to danger even in 1660, from the malice of a powerful though de- feated faction. {ih }) ist August 1832. * [This is also referred to in a letter from Liddell to Aubrey, in Miscel- lanies on Several Curious Subjects, 1714, p. 13.] +{[Norkr.—It may be unnecessay to remind the reader that Woodstock was written by the Author during his financial difficulties, and under painful embarrassments. “Jt is no wonder,” says Mr. Lockhart, ‘‘that the book which it was known he had been writing during this crisis of distress, should have been expected with solicitude. Shall we find him, asked thousands, to have been Bia | master truly of his genius in the moment of this ordeal? Shall we trace any- thing of his own experiences in the construction of his imaginary personages and events ? ‘‘T know not how others interpreted various passages in Woodstock, but there were not a few that carried a deep meaning for such of Scott’s own friends as were acquainted with, not his pecuniary misfortune alone, but the drooping health of his wife, and the consolation afforded him by the dutiful devotion of his daughter Anne, in whose character and demeanor a change had occurred exactly similar to that ascribed in Chapter XIII. to poor Alice Lee: ‘A light joyous air, with something of a humorous expression, which seemed to be looking for amusement, had vanished before the touch of affliction, and a calm melancholy supplied its place, which seemed on the watch to administer comfort to others.’ In several mo¢toes, and other scraps of verse, the curious reader will also find similar traces of the facts and feel- ings recorded in the Author's diary which he kept at this time. i ‘As to the novel itself, none can pretend to class it in the very high- | est rank of his works, since we feel throughout the effects of the funda- mental error, likened by Mr. Senior to that of the writer who should Jay his scene at Rome immediately after the battle of Philippi, and introduce Brutus as the survivor, with Cicero as his companion in victory. Yet even this censor is forced to allow that Woodstock displays certain excellencies, not exemplified in all the Author's fictions, and which attest, more remarkably than any others could have done, the complete self-possession of the mind when composing it. “ Moreover there is one character of considerable importance which this reviewer does not allude to. If he had happened to have the slightest tinct- ure of Sir Walter’s fondness for dogs, he would not have failed to say some- thing of the elaborate and affectionate portraiture of old Maida, under the name of Bevis.’’]PREFACE—(1826), IT is not my purpose to inform my readers how the manuscripts of that eminent antiquary, the Rey. J. A. Rochecliffe, DIDy came into my possession. There are many ways in which such things happen, and it is enough to say they were rescued from an unworthy fate, and that they were honestly come by. As for the authenticity of the anecdotes which I have gleaned from the writ- ings of this excellent person, and put together with my Own un- rivalled facility, the name of Docter Rochecliffe will warrant ac- curacy, wherever that name happens to be known. With his history the reading part of the world are y quainted ; and we might refer the tyro to honest Anthony a Wood, who looked up to him as one of the pillars of High Church, and bestows on him-an exemplary character in the “ Athenee Ox- onienses,” although the Doctor was educated at Cambridge, Eng- land’s other eye. It is well known that Doctor Rochecliffe early obtained prefer- ment in the Church, on account of the spirited share which he took in the controversy with the Puritans ; and that his work, en- titled, ‘‘ Malleus Hzeresis,”’ was considered as a knockdown blow by all except those who received it. It was that work which made him, at the early age of thirty, Rector of Woodstock, and which afterward secured him a place in the Catalogue of the celebrated Century White,*—and worse than being shown up by that fanatic among the catalogues of scandalous and malignant priests admit- ted into benefices by the prelates, his opinions occasioned the loss of his living of Woodstock by the ascendency of Presbytery. He was chaplain, during most part of the Civil War, to Sir Henry Lee’s regiment, levied for the service of King Charles; and it was said he engaged more than once personally in the field. At least it is certain that Dr. Rochecliffe was repeatedly in great danger, as will appear from more passages than one in the follow- ing history, which speaks of his own exploits, like Cesar, in the third person. I suspect, however, some Presbyterian commenta- tor has been guilty of interpolating two or three passages. The manuscript was long in possession of the Everards, a distinguished family of that persuasion. u During the Usurpation, Doctor Rochecliffe was constantly en- gaged in one or other of the premature attempts at a restoration ell ace * [See footnote to Peveril of the Peak, DD: 26: : i It is hardly necessary to say, unless to some readers of very literal ca- pacity, that Dr. Rochecliffe and his manuscripts are alike apocryphal. CSTE Crs ge RRNA Erte rehire SRE MOwet ty tt STS yrer et Ayer eri Cn eeeEEE = ~ ~ ee x PREFACE, of monarchy; and was counted, for his audacity, presence of mind, and depth fe one of the greatest undertakers for ‘ the King in that busy time; with this trifling drawback, that the plots in which he busied himself were almost constantly detected. Nay, it was suspected that Cromwell himself sometimes contrived to suggest to him the rae ies in which he engaged, by which means the wily Protector made experiments on the fidelity of doubtful friends, and became well acquainted with the plots of de- clared enemies, which he thought it more easy to disconcert and disappoint than to punish severely. Upon the Restoration, Doctor Rochecliffe regained his living : of Woodstock, with other Church preferment, and gave up po- th R lemics and political intrigues for philosophy. He was one of the constituent ees of the Royal Society, and was the person through whom eens required of that learned body solution of the curious problem, ‘‘ Why, if a vessel is filled brimful of water, and a large live fish plunged into the water, nevertheless it shall not overflow the pitcher?” Doctor Rochecliffe’s exposition of this phenomenon was the most eciemae is and instructive of four that were given in; and it is certain » Doctor must have gained the Bei | honor of the day, but for the eh racy of a plain, dull, country gentleman, who insisted that the experiment should be, in the first place, publicly tried. When this was done, the event showed it would have been rather rash to have adopted the facts exclusively on the royal authority; as the fish, however curiously inserted into his native element, splashed the water over the hall, and de- stroyed the credit of four ingénious essayists, besides a large Tur- key carpet. Doctor Rochecliffe, it would seem, died about 1685, leaving many papers behind him of various kinds, and, above all, many valuable anecdotes of secret history, from which the following Memoirs have been extracted, on which we intend to say only a Ns few words by way of illustration. | The existence of Rosamond’s Labyrinth, mentioned in these i pages, is attested by Drayton in the reign of Queen Elizabeth. ‘Rosamond’s Labyrinth, whose ruins, together with her Well, being paved with square stones in the bottom, and also her Tower, from which the Labyrinth did run, are yet remaining, being vaults arched and walled with stone and brick, almost inextricably wound within one another, by which, if at any time her lodging were laid about by the Queen, she might easily avoid peril imminent, and, if need be, by secret issues take the air abroad, many furlongs about Woodstock in Oxfordshire.” It is highly probable that a singular piece of phantasmagoria, which was certainly played off upon the Commissioners of the Long Parliament who were sent down to dispark and destroy | Woodstock, after the death of Charles I., was conducted by means : of the secret passages and recesses in the ancient Labyrinth of nA * Drayton's England's Historical Epistles, Note A, on the Epistle, Rosa- ~< mond to King Henry. ay SRR easement meh meainenenrcne.REFACE. Rosamond, rouhd which SUCC ting-seat or Lodge. There is a curious account of the disturbance given to those Honorable Commissioners, inserted } y Doctor Plot in his “‘ Natur: ul =e Otony of Oxfordshire.” “But as 1 have not the book at hand, I can only allude to the work of the celebrated Glanville upon Witches, wie has extracted it as a highly accredited narrative of supernatural dealing The beds of the Co1 mmissioners, and their servants, were Raised up till they were almost inverted , and then let down again so sudde nly, as to menace them with} oroken bones. Unusual and horrible noises dis sturbed those scien intromit- ters with royal Property. The devil, on one occasion, brought them a warming-pan ; on another. pelted them with stones and horses’ bones. Tubs of water were emptied on them in their sleep ; and so man y other pranks of the same nature played at their e: xpense, that they broke up house ‘keeping, and left Heir in- -essive Monarchs had erected a Hun- g, tended spoliation only half completed. The goo d sense of Doc- tor Plot suspected that these feats were € wrought by conspiracy and confederation, which Glanville of course endeavor all his might ; for it could scarce be expected that he, who believed in SO Convenient a solution as that of supernatural agenc y, would consent to relinquish the service of a key, which will answer any lock, however intricate. Ss to refute with Nevertheless, it was afterward discovered that Doctor Plot was perfectly AER and that the only demon who wrought all these marvels was a disguised royalist—a fellow called Trusty Joe, or some such name, fo1 nerly in the service of Kee sper of the Park, but who engag di n feat of the Commissioners, on purpose to sub- ject them to his persecution. I think I have seen some account of the real state of the tr: unsaction, ar a of the machinery by which the wizard eoehen his wonders ; but whether in a book, ora pam- phlet, I am uncertain. I emiceabee one passage particularly to this purpose. The Commissioners having agreed to retain some articles out of the public account, in order to be divided a nong themselves, had entere¢ d into an indenture for ascertaining their share in the peculati which they hid in a bow-pot for securit V'. Now, when an Seen of divines, aided by the most strict relig- ious characters in the neighborhood of Woodstock. were assembled to conjure down the sup »posed demon, Trusty Joe had contrived a firework, which he let off in the midst-of the exorcism, and which destroyed the bow-pot; and, to the shame and 1 confusion of the Commissi loners, Sined their secret indenture into the midst of the assembled ghost-seers, who became thus ac quainted with their se- cret schemes of peculation. It is, however, to little purpose for me to strain my memory about ancient and imperfect recollections concernir > the particu- lars of these ees disturbances at W sages: Sciice Doctor Rochecliff e's papers give such a much more accuraten arrative than could be obtained aah any account in existence before their pub- lication. Indeed, J m ight have gone much more fully into this part of my subject, for the materials aie ample; but to tell the xili eee penet et eet reer 7Detail Soeteacaee ites a 4 i # 4 a i # / kk R Te Xiv PREFACE. reader a secret, some friendly critics were of opinion they made the story hang on hand : and thus I was prevailed on to be more concise on the subject than I might otherwise have been. The impatient reader, perhaps, is by this time accusing me of keeping the sun from him with acandle. Were the sunshine as bright, however, as itis likely to prove ; and the flambeau, or link, a dozen of times as smoky, my friend must remain in the inferior atmosphere a minute longer, while I disclaim the idea of poaching on another’smanor. Hawks, we say in Scotland, ought not to pick out hawks’ eyes, or tire upon each other’s quarry ; and, therefore, if 1 had known that, in its date and its characters, this tale was likely to interfere with that recently published by a distinguished contemporary, I should unquestionably have left Dr. Rochecliffe’s manuscript in peace for the present season. But before I was aware of this circumstance, this little book was half through the press ; and | had only the alternative of avoiding any intentional imitation, by delaying a perusal of the contemporary work in ques- tion. Some accidental collision there must be, when works of a similar character are finished on the same general system of his- torical manners, and the same historical personages are introduced. Of course, if such have occurred, I shall be probably the sufferer. But my intentions have been at least innocent, since I look on it as one of the advantages attending the conclusion of ‘‘ Woodstock,” that the finishing of my own task will permit me to have the pleasure of reading ‘‘Brambletye House,” from which I have hitherto conscientiously abstained.* + [Brambletye House, or Cavaliers and Roundheads, a historical novel by Horace Smith, which appeared in 1826. ]Some were for gospel ministers, And some for red-coat seculars, As men most fit ¢? hold forth the word, And wield the one and th’ other sword. BUTLER’s Hudzbras. THERE is a handsome parish church in the town of Wood. Stock,—I am told so. at least, for I never saw it, having scarce time, when at the place, to view the magnificence of Blenheim, its painted halls and t: -stried bowers, and then return in due season to dine in hall with my learned friend, the provost of —— ; being one of those occasions on which a man wrongs himself extremely, if he lets his curiosity interfere with his punctuality. I had the church accurately described to me, with a view to this work ; but, as I have some re: son to doubt whether my informant had ever seen the inside of it himself, shall be content to say that it is now a handsome edifice, most part of which was rebuilt forty or fifty years since. although it still contains some arches of the old chantry, founded, it is said, by inp Jolin. “Tt is. to this moc ancient part of the building that my story reféfs. On a morning in the end of September, or beginning of October, in the year 1652, being a day appointed for a solemn thanksgiving for the decisive victory at Worcester, a respect- able audience was assembled in the old chantry, or chapel of2 WOODSTOCK. . ine King John. The condition of the church and character of the | audience both bore witness to the rage of civil war, and the peculiar spirit of the times. i sacred edifice showed many marks of dil: pid The windows, once filled with stained . glass, had been dashed to pieces with pikes and muskets, as matters of and pertaining to idolatry. The carving on the ading-desk was damaged, and two fair screens of beautiful scu culptured oak had been destro ee for the same pithy and c Jlusive reason. The high altar had been removed, and a rilded railing, which was once in it, was broken down and carried off. The effigies of several tombs were mutilated, and now lay scattered about the church, Spel dar © Torn from their destined niche—unworthy meed Of knightly counsel or heroic deed !, The autumn wind piped through eunpEY aisles, in which the remains of stakes and trevisses of ro ugh-hewn timber, as well as a qui untity of scattered hay and trample -d straw, seemed to intimate that the hallowed precincts had been, upon some late emergency, made the quarters of a oe or horse.* The audience, like the building, was abated in splendor. None of the ancient and abil Ray re during peaceful times, were now to be seen in their carved galleries, with hands shadowing their brows, while composing their minds to pray where ce ir fathers had prayed, and after the same mode of wor- ship. ‘The eye of the yeoman and peasant sought in vain the tall Hl form of old Sir Henry Lee of Ditchley, aS, wrapped i in his laced cloak, and with be sf and whiskers duly composed, he moved ly slowly through the aisles, followe dbythe pdithful nasty f, or blood- hound, which in old time had saved his master by his fidelity, and which regularly followed | nw tochurch. Bevis, indeed, fell under the proverb which avers, “ He is a good dog which goes to church ; ” for, bating an occasional temptation to warble along with the accord, he Phapetg himself as decorously as any of the congregation, and return 1ed as much edified, perhaps, as most of them. Thed: tisels of Woodstock looked as vainly for the laced cloaks, jingling spurs, slashed boots, and tall plumes, of the young cavaliers of this and other high-born houses, moving . through the streets and the churc hyard with the careless ease, which indicates perhaps rather an overweenigg degree of self- confidence, yet shows graceful when mingled with good humor * [Little remains now of this ancient church, it being rebuilt in 1785, | except on the southern side, where a portion of the old structure, with a i Norman doorway it still preserved. ] RIT eee cere Viti ee ~good gowns—their d: yes,”’—where were they it now, who church, used to divide men’s thou: € § But, ah! Alice Lee—so sweet So gentle, DM So condescending in thy loveliness— [thus proceeds a contem- porary annalist, whose mant uscript we have deciphered] iS Tay story to turn upon thy fallen fortunes? and \ rather to the period When, in the very dismountine fro 4 —why av. Not m your palfrey, you attracted as many eyes as if an angel had de- scent ded, as many blessings as if the benignant ‘ o being had _ ht with ooad tidinencl. AG lear Se come fra ight with good tidings! No creature wert thou of an ] ae 7 presi Pe fie age 1 a augiee: 4 : 1] } ee idle rOMancers Imacinatlon—no Deng tantastically bedizened with inconsistent perfections -—thy merits made me love thee » > r > 114 } a 1 ell—and for fault show amid thy good ighboring countries, See age VC ONE. OF tWO that Be ’ VT TY OF \¢] mer of fill a ka DAG Lede we) ae boca alata ble < ) pre ut SOMe Gr LHe Notables ; ; ag tn Utlel 10Se 127 skill ; in used tn Geo et aS aoe A yeas a pat be sue Fe Lg es UL CILIZeN Ss. Ca ki ied ULES EE Bibles and a+ +L, +A i> anid au be NECK. an eit memorandum-books at their girdles. instead of knife or sword.* U This respectable, but le ast numerous pal were such dee ent persons as had ac of the audience -resbyterian form of faith, renouncing the liturgy and hierarchy of the Church of England, and living under the tuition of the Rev. Nehemiah Holdenough, much famed for the length and strength of his powers of predication. With these grave seniors sat their goodly dames in ruff and gorget, like the portraits which in ES of painting are designed “ wife of a burgomaster ; ” and their pretty daughters, whose study, like that of Chaucer’s physician lw in tl le, but who were, on the 1, Was not always in the Bib contrary, when a glance could escape the vigilance of their honored mothers, inattentive them selves, and the cause of in- attention in ot hers. But, besides these dignified persons, there were in the church * This custom among the Puritans is mentioned often in old plays, and ] among others in the Widow of Watling Street, o Soar preter a SEwOwe Lh Perec at yn ~ eR t a ae arene2m Rs Seren SS 4 WOODSTOCK. a numerous collection of the lower orders, some brought thithei by curiosity, but many of them unwashed artificers, bewildered in the theological discussions of the time, and of as many vari- ous sects as there are colors in the rainbow. ‘The presumption of these learned Thebans being in exact proportion to their ignorance, the last was total and the first boundless. Their behavior in the church was anything but reverential or edifying. Most of them affected a cynical contempt for all that was only held sacred by human sanction—the church was to these men but a steeple-house, the clergyman, an ordinary person ; her ordinances, dry bran and sapless pottage,* unfitted for the spiritualized palates of the saints, and the prayer, an address to Heaven, to which each acceded or not as in his too critical judgment he conceived fit. mm The elder amongst them sat or lay on the benches, with their high-steeple crowned hats pulled over their severe and knitted brows, waiting for the Presbyterian parson, as mastifis sit in dumb expectation of the bull that is to be brought to the stake. The younger mixed, some of them, a bolder license of manners with their heresies; they gazed round on the women, yawned, coughed and whispered, ate apples, and cracked nuts, as if in the gallery of a theatre ere the piece commences. Besides all these, the congregation contained a few soldiers, some in corselets and steel caps, some in buff, and others in red coats. These men of war had their bandoleers, with am- munition, slung round them, and rested on their pikes and muskets. They, too, had their peculiar doctrines on the most difficult points of religion, and united the extravagances of enthusiasm with the most determined courage and resolution in the field. The burghers of Woodstock looked on these military saints with no small degree of awe; for though not often sullied with deeds of plunder or cruelty, they had the power of both absolutely in their hands, and the peaceful citizen had no alter- native, save submission, to whatever the ill-regulated and en- thusiastic imaginations of their martial guides might suggest. After some time spent in waiting for him, Mr. Holdenough began to walk up the aisles of the chapel, not with the slow and dignified carriage with which the old Rector was of yore wont to maintain the dignity of the surplice, but with a hasty step, like one who arrives too late at an appointment, and bustles forward to make the best use of his time. He was a tall thin man, with an adust complexion, and the vivacity of his * See a curious vindication of this indecent simile here for the Common Prayer, in Note A.WOODSTOCK. 5 eye indicated some e irascibility of temperament. is dress was Vee. - - “frown, not black, and over his other vestments he wore, in honor of Calvin, a Geneva cloak of a blue color, which fel] pac aag from his shoulders as he posted on to the pulpit. ns grizzled hair was cut as short as shears could perform the feat. ‘and. oe with a blacl tack silk skull-cap, which stuck so close to his head, that the two ears expanded from under it as if they had been intended as h: andles, by which to lift the whol person. Moreover, the worthy divine wore spectacles, and a long grizzled peaked beard, and he carried in his hand a small pocket-bible with silver clasps. Upon arriving at the pulpit, he paused a moment to take breath, then began to ascend the steps by two ata ame: But his course was arrested ] by : strong hand, which seized his cloak. It was th: at of one who had detache¢ d himself from the group of solk diery. Hewasa ee man of middle stature, with a quick eye, and a counte nance, which, though plain, had yet an expression that fixed the attention. His dress though not strictly military, pening of that character. He wore lat rge hose made of calves-_le: ather, and a tuck, as it was then called, or rapier ; of tremendous le ength, balanced on the other side by a ester The belt was morocco, garnished with pistols. The minister, thus interc epted in his duty, faced round upon he party who had seized him. and demanded, in no gentle tone he meaning of the interruption, — “ Friend,” - quoth the intruder, “is it thy purpose to hold forth to these good people ?” t l ‘AY, Marry is it,” said the cle rgyman, “and such is my bounden duty. Woe to meifI pre: ich not the gospel—Prithee, frie nd, let me not in My Jabor 7 ‘ Nay,” said the man of warlike mien, “ lam myself minded to hold forth; therefore, do thou desist, or if thou wilt ao by mine advice, remain and fr uctify with these poor goslings, to whom I am presently about to shake forth the crumbs of com- bors ible doctrine.” _ Give place, thou man of Satan,” said the priest, waxing wroth ; “respect mine order—my cloth.’ “T see no more to respect in the cut of thy Cloak, or in the cloth of which it is fashioned,” said the other, “than thou didst in the Bishop’s rochets—they were black and white, thou art blue and brow n. Sleeping dogs every one of you, lying down, loving to slumber—shepherds that st: irve the flock but will not watch i it, each looking to his own gain—hum.”’ scenes of this indecent kind was so common at that time, that no one thought of interfering ; the e congregation looked on Wiehe bite rg Tea Rh BNO ERESNERS6 WOODSTOCK. in silence, the better class scandalized, and the lower orders, some laughing, a 1d others backing the soldier or minister as their fancy d ietated. Meantime “the struggle waxed fiercer ; Mr. Holdenough clamored for assistance. ‘¢ Master Mayor of Woodstock,” he exclaimed, “ wilt thou be among those wicked magistrates who bear the sword in vain ?—Citizens, will you not help your pastor ?—Worthy Alder- men, will you see me strangled on the pulpit stairs by this man But lo, I will overcome him, and cast his of buff and Belial ?— ee a cords from me.” ea As Holdenough spok e, he struggled to ascend the pulpit ' stairs, holding hard on the banisters. His tormentor held fast by the skirts of the cl ool , which went nigh to the choking of the wearer, until, as he spoke the words last mentioned, in a half-strangled voice, Mr. Holdenough dexterously slipped the string which tied it round his” a eck, so that the garment sud- denly gave way; the soldier fell backward down che steps, and the liberated divine aewlde into the pulpit, and began to give forth a psalm of, triumph over his prostrate adversary. But a ‘reat hubbub in the church marred his exultation, and although he and his faithful clerk continued to sing the hymn of victory, heir notes were only heard by fits, like the whistle of a curlew during a gale of wind. The cause of the tumult was as follows :—The Mayor was a zealous Presbyterian, and witnessed the intrusion of the soldier with great indignation from the very beginning, though he 1esitated to interfere with an armed man while on his legs and capable of resistance. But no sooner did he behold the ‘cham- pion of independency sprawling on his back, with the divine’s | Geneva cloak fluttering in his hands, than the magistrate rushed forward, exclaiming that such insolence was not to be endured, and ordered his constables to seize the prostrate champion, procl: rab: in the magnanimity of wrath, “I will commit every redcoat of the m all—I will commit him were he Noll Cromwell himself ! ’ The worthy Mayor’s indignation had overmastered his -eason when he made this mistimed vaunt; for three soldiers, who had hitherto stood motionless like statues, made each a stride in advance, which placed them betwixt the municipal officers and the soldier, who was in the act of rising; then making at once the movement of resting arms according to the manual as then prac ticed, their musket- buts rang on the church | pavement, wi ithin an inch of the gouty toes of “Master Mayor. The energetic magistrate, whose efforts in favor of order were thus checked, cast one glance on his supporters, but that was Q "0 oo. otWOODSTOCK. ‘ é enc ugh to show him that force was not on his side. All had shrunk back on hearing that ominous clatter of stone and iron. He was obliged to descend to expostulation., ‘What do you mean, my masters ?” said hes “issit like a decent and Ged- fearing soldiery y, who have niohee such things for the land as have never before been heard of, to brawl and ou in the church, or to aid, abet , and comfort a eee fellow, who hath, upon a solemn thanksgiving, excluded the m ninister from his own pulpit 2’ “We have nought to do with thy church, as thou call’st ie said he who, by a small feather in front of his morion, appeared to be the corporal of the party ;—“‘ we see not why men of gifts should not be heard within these citadels of superstition, as well as the voic e of the men of crape of old, and the men of cloak now. W herefore, we will pluck } yon Jack Presbyter out of his wooden sentinel-box, and our own watehman shall r elieve the guard, and mount thereon. ond cry aloud and spare not.’ ‘“ Nay, gentlemen,” said the Ma ayor, “‘if such be your pur- pose, we have not the means to withstand you, Pein as you sce, peaceful and: quiet men—But let me fi rst speak with this worthy minister, Nehemiah Holdenough, to persuade hi im to yield up his place for the time without further scandal.” The peace-making May or then interrupted the quavering of Holdenough and the clerk. and prayed both to retire, else there would, he said, be certainly strife, ‘ Strife,” replied the Exesbys terian divine, with scorn: “no fear of strife among men that dare not tes tify against this open p srofanati tion of the C hurch, and daring d lisp lay of heresy. Would your neighbors of Ban bury hon : . brook ed such an insult 2?” 4 Come, come, Me Hold enough,” said the J Mayor, “ put us not to mutiny and cry Clubs. I tel] you once more, we are not men of war or blood.’ An ‘Not more than may be drawn by the point of a needle,” said the preacher, scornfully,—‘ Ye tailors of Woodstock !—for what is a glover but a tailor working on kidskin?—I forsake you, in scorn of your faint hearts and ria ‘ble hands, and will seek me elsewhere a flock which will not fly from their shep- herd at the braying of the first wild ass a5 ich cometh from out the great desert. a So saying, the aggrieved divine departed from his pulpit, and shaking the dust from his shoes, left the church as hastily as he had entered it, though with a different reason for his speed. The citizens saw his retreat with sorrow, and not with- out a compunctious feeling, as if conscious that they were not playing the most courageous part in the world. The Mayor Seat era tmr et UTE TEN ELST Ree eerie? Ctra %ps Mabbmeoectbdsana oes cies Nee eee Bites tees r Ea 8 WOODSTOCK. himself and several others left the church, to follow and ap- pease him. The independent orator, late prostrate, was now triumphant, and, inducting himself into ene pulpit without further ceremony, he pull ed a Bible from his pocket, and selected his text from the forty-fifth Se —‘ Gird thy sword upon thy thigh, O most mighty, with thy glory and thy majesty: and in thy majesty ride prosper’ yusly.’’—Upon this theme, he commenced one of those wild -declamations common at the period, in which men were accustomed to wrest and Dae the language of Scrip ture, by adapting it to modern events.* ‘The language which, in its literal Ae ae was applied to King David, and typically referred to the coming of the Messiah, was, in the opinion of the military orator, most properly to be interpreted of Oliver Cromwell, the victorious general of the infant Commonwealth, which was never dest ned to come of ase. = ‘Gird "on thy sword!” exclaimed the preacher, emphatically; ‘‘and was not that a pretty bit of steel as ever dangled from a corselet, or rung against a steel saddle? ay? ye prick up your ears now ye cutlers of Woodstock, as if ye Tee know something of a good f fox broadsword—Did you anos , | trow ?—was the steel quenched with water from dowantaan s well, or the blade blest by the old cuckoldy priest of Godstow ? You would have us think, I warrant me, that you wrought it and welded it, grinded and polished it, and all the while it never came on a Woodstock stithy! You were all too busy making whittles for the lazy crape-men of Oxford, bouncing priests, whose eyes were so closed up an fat, that they could not see Destruction till she had them by the throat. But I can tell you where the sword was forged, and tempered, and welded, and grinded, and pol- ished. When you were, as I said before, making whittles for false priests, and daggers for dissolute G—d d—n me cavaliers, fo cut the people of E ngland’s throat with—it was forged at Long Marston Moor, where blows went faster than ever rung hammer on anvil—and it was tempered at Naseby, in the best blood of the cavaliers—and it was welded in Ireland against the walls of Drogheda—and it was grinded on Scottish lives at Dunbar—and now of late it was polished i in Worcester, till it shines as bright as the sun in the middle heav en, and there is no light in Ene cland that shall come nigh unto it.’ Here the m ilitary part of the congregation raised a hum of approbation, which, being a sound like the “hear, hear,” of the British House of Commons, was calculated to heighten the * Note A. 300k of Common Prayer.WOODSTOCK. 9 enthusiasm of the orator, by intimating the Sympathy of the audience. “ And then,” resumed the preacher, rising in energy as he found that his audience partook in these feelings, “what Saith the text ?Ride on Prosperously—do not stop—do not call a halt—do not quit the saddle—pursue the scattered fliers— sound the trumpet—not a levant or a flourish, but a point of wat—sound, boot and saddle—to horse and away—a charge !|— follow after the young Man !—what part have we in him ?— Slay, take, destroy, divide the spoil! Blessed art thou, Oliver, on account of thine honor—thy cause is clear, thy call is un- doubted—never has defeat come near thy leading-staff, nor disaster attended thy banner. Ride on, flower of England’s soldiers ! ride on, chosen leaders of God’s champions! gird up the loins of thy resolution, and be steadfast to the mark of thy high calling!” Another deep and stern hum, echoed by the ancient em- bow’d arches of the old chantry, gave him an Opportunity of an instant’s repose ; when the people of Woodstock heard him, and not without anxiety, turn the stream of his oratory into another channel. “ But, wherefore, ye people of Woodstock, do I say these things to you, who claim no portion in our David, no interest in England’s son of Jesse ?—You, who were fighting as well as your might could (and it was not very formidable) for the late Man, under that old bloodthirsty papist, Sir Jacob Aston ~_are you not now plotting, or ready to plot, for the restoring, as ye Call it, of the young Man, the unclean son of the slaugh- tered tryrant—the fugitive after whom the true hearts of Eng- land are now following, that they may take and slay him ?— ‘Why should your rider turn his bridie our way ?’ say you in your, hearts; ‘we will none of him ; 1f we may help ourselves, we will rather turn us to wallow in the mire of monarchy with, the sow that was washed but newly.’ Come, men of Wood- stock, I will ask, and do you answer me. Hunger ye still after the flesh-pots of the monks of Godstow? and ye will say, Nay ;—but wherefore, except that the pots are cracked and broken, and the fire is extinguished wherewith thy oven used to boil? And again, I ask, drink ye still of the well of the fornications of the fair Rosamond ’—ye will say, Nay,—but wherefore ? ” ee ‘ere the orator, ere he could answer the question in his own Way, was surprised by the following reply, very pithily pro- nounced by one of the congregation :—‘ Because you, and the like of you, have left us no brandy to mix with it.” All eyes turned to the audacious speaker, who stood beside esr. ee ee TS ~ SS ae SRT CeBites san ies oe ee 5G WOODSTOCK. one of the thick sturdy Saxon pillars, which he himself some- what resembled, ee e short of stature, but very strongly made, a squat broad Li ohn sort of figure, leaning on a quarter- staff, an id wearing a a jerkin, w hich, though now sorely stained and discolored, had once been of the Lincoln.green, a and showed, remnants of having been a - ere was an of air careless good-humored aud acity — ‘the fello eh and though under military restraint, there were some of! the cit Pai s who could rving’ ete ‘WwW ell sa a Joceline Joliffe ] L > 5 \ “ Jolly Toceline, call ye him ’ proceede 2S the } pb with- out showing male confusion or displea: sgh at the interruption. —‘ J will make him Joceline of the ‘le if he interrupts me again. One of your ark-keepers, I warrant, that can never Dp forget they have borne C. R. upon their badges and bugle horns, eve 1as a dog ie his owner’s name on his~ collar—a pretty emblem for Christian men! But the brute beast hath the better of him.—the brute weareth his own coat, and the caitiff thrall wears his master’s. I have seen such a wag make a rope’s end wag ere now.—Where was I?—Oh, rebuking you for your ba kslidings, men of Woodstock , then, ye will say ye have renounced Popery, and ye have renounced Prelacy and then ys oan vour mouth like Pharisees, as ye are; and who but you for purity of religion! But, I tell you, ye are but like Tehu the son of Nimshi, who broke down the house of saal, yet de parted not from the sins of Jerob« oam. Even soye eat not fish of Friday with the blinded oe sts, nor ee on the 2cth day of December, like the slothful Prelatists ; but ye will gorge on k-posset each night in the year with your blind Presbyterian g b si in guide, and ye will speak evil of dignities, and revile the Commonwealth; and ye will glorify yourselves park of Woodstock, and say, ‘Was it not e in first of any other in England, and that by Henry son of William the Conqueror?’ And ye have a princely fade thera and call the same a Royal Lodge; and ye have an oak which ye call the King’s Oak ; and ye steal and eat the venison of the park, and ye say, ‘This is the k ing’s venison, we will wash it down with a cup to the king’s health—better we eat tt than those solfadnesded Commonwealth knaves.’ But listen unto ne and take warning. For these things come we to contro versy with you. And our name shall be a cannon-shot, before which your Lodge, in the pleasantness whereof ye take pastime shall be blown into ruins: and we will be as a wedge to split asunder the King’s Oak — billets to heat a brown baker's oven; and we w il] dispark your park, and slay your deer, and eat them ourselves, neither shall you have any portion thereof,WOODSTOCK. : ¥t whether in neck or haunch. Ye shall not haft a tenpenny knife with the horns thereof, neither shall Ve2CUL a, pair (of breeches out of the hide, for all ye be cutlers and glovers ; and ye shall have no con per OT su pport neither from the aes tered traitor Henry Lee, w d himself Ranger of Wood- stock, nor from any on hi: ‘Shale for they are coming hither who shall be called Mahar-shalal-hash- baz, because he “maketh haste to the spoil.’ Here ended this wild eilusion, the latter part of which fell heavy on the souls of the poor citizens of Woodstock, as tend- ing to confirm a report of an unelleasias nature which had been lately circulated. The communication with London was in- deed slow, and the news which it transmitted were u rcertain ; no less uncertain were the times themselves, and the rumors which were circulated. exaggerated by the hopes and fears of sO many various factions, But she general stream of report, SO faras Woodstock was concerned, had of late run unit ‘ormly in formed, that the one direction. Day after day they had aa in fatal fiat of pee yor ent had Bones out, for selling the park of Woodstock, destri oyl cli ISp: arking its forest, and eras- it ine, as faras they c ould be eras ect, all traces of its ancient fame. Many of the citizens were li ikely to be sufferers on this occa- sion, as several of them enjoye d, erther me susleranee or r right, various convenient privilege, of the like, in the royal chase; and + ai the inhabit: ants bt the little borough were hurt to ‘thi ik, that the scenery of the place was to be destroyed, its edifices ruined, and its honors rent away. This is a patriotic sensation often found in sae places, which ancient distinetions and pee ners hae recollections of former days, render so different from towns of recent date. The natives of Woodstock felt it in the fullest force. ‘They had trembled at the anticipated calamity; but now, when it was announced by the appearance of those dark, stern, and at the same time omnip- otent soldiers—now that they heard it proclaimed by the mouth of one of their military preachers—they considered eae Fat as inevitable. The causes ee disagre -ement among thet selves were for the time forgotten, as the congregation, He 1 “Ansebe without psalmody or benedict LOM, went slowly and mournfully homeward, each to his own place of abode. BX Prataay Ser eS TON ESTES EST OTL Sys agente eat evel cbalWOODSTOCK. CHAPTER SECOND. Come forth, old man—Thy daughter’s side Is now the fitting place for thee 3; When time hath quell’d the oak’s bold pride, The youthful tendril yet may hide The ruins of the parent tree. | WHEN the sermon was ended, the military orator wiped his { brow ; for, notwithstanding the coolness of the weather, he was heated with the vehemence of his speechand action. He then descended from the pulpit, and spoke a word or two to the corporal who commanded the party of soldiers, who, replying by a sober nod of intelligence, drew his men together, and marched them in order to their quarters in the town. The preacher himself, as if nothing extraordinary had hap- pened, left the church and sauntered through the streets of Woodstock, with the air of a stranger who was viewing the town, without seeming to observe that he was himself in his turn anxiously surveyed by the citizens, whose furtive yet fre- quent glances seemed to regard him as something alike sus- [| pected and dreadful, yet on no account to be provoked. He heeded them not, but stalked on in the manner affected by the distinguished fanatics of the day; astiff solemn pace, a severe and at the same time a contemplative look, like that of a man tt discomposed at the interruptions which earthly objects forced Ht upon him, obliging him by their intrusion to withdraw his 4 thoughts for an instant from celestial things. Innocent pleas- ‘| ures of what kind soever they held in suspicion and contempt, and innocent mirth they abominated. It was, however, a cast of mind that formed men for great and manly actions, as it adopted principle, and that of an unselfish character, for the ruling motive, instead of the gratification of passion. Some of these men were indeed hypocrites, using the cloak of religion only as a covering for their ambition ; but many really pos- sessed the devotional character, and the severe republican virtue, which others only affected. By far the greater number hovered between these extremes, felt to a certain extent the power of religion, and complied with the times in affecting a great deal. The individual, whose pretensions to sanctity, written as they ! were upon his brow and gait, have given rise to the above digression, reached at length the extremity of the principal street, which terminates upon the park of Woodstock. A F aBRigesccscseeces eet Ror ~WOODSTOCK. 13 battlemented portal of Gothic appearance defended the entrance to the avenue. It was of mixed architecture, but on the whole, though composed of the styles of the different ages when it had received additions, had a striking and imposing effect. An im- mense gate composed of rails of hammered iron, with many a flourish and scroll, displaying as its uppermost ornament the ill- fated cypher of C. R.. was. now decayed, being partly wasted with rust, partly by violence. The stranger paused, as if uncertain whether he should de- mand or essay entrance. He looked through the grating down an avenue skirted by majestic oaks, which led onward with a gentle curve, as if into the depth of some ample and ancient forest. The wicket of the large iron gate being left unwittingly open, the soldier was tempted to enter, yet with some hesitation, as he that intrudes upon ground which he conjectures may be prohibited—indeed his manner showed more reverence for the scene than could have been expected from his condition and character. He slackened his stately and consequential pace, and at length stood still, and looked around him. Not far from the gate, he saw rising from the trees one or two ancient and venerable turrets, bearing each its own vane of rare device glittering in the autumn sun, These indicated the ancient hunting seat, or Lodge, as it was called, which had, since the time of Henry II., been occasionally the residence of the English monarchs, when it pleases them to visit the woods of Oxford, which then so abounded with game, that, according to old Fuller, huntsmen and falconers were nowhere better pleased. The situation which the Lodge occupied was a piece of flat ground, now planted with sycamores, not far from the entrance to that magnificent spot where the spectator first stops to gaze upon Blenheim, to think of Marlborough’s victories, and to applaud or criticise the cumbrous magnificence of Van- brugh’s style. There, too, paused our military preacher, but with other thoughts, and for other purpose, than to admire the scene around him. It was not long afterward when he beheld two persons, a male and afemale, approaching slowly, and so deeply engaged in their own conversation that they did not raise their eyes to observe that there stood a stranger in the path before them. The soldier took advantage of their state of abstraction, and, desirous at once to watch their motions, and avoid their observation, he glided beneath one of the huge trees which skirted the path, and whose boughs, sweeping the ground on every side, ensured him against discovery, unless in case of an actual search.Bait kmeoahisssh ibaa ee . a Ratios : , UNS oe 14 WOODSTOCK. In the meantime, the gentleman and lady continued to ac- vance, directing their course to a rustic seat, which still enjoyed the sunbeams, and was placed adjacent to the tree where the stranger was concealed. The man was elderly, yet seemed bent more by sorrow and infirmity than by the weight of years, He. wore a mourning cloak, over a dress of the same melancholy color, cut in that picturesque form which Vandyck has rendered immortal. But although the dress was handsome, it was put on and worn with a carelessness which showed the mind of the wearer ill at ease. His aged, yet still handsome countenance, had the same air of consequence which distinguished his dress and his gait. A striking part of his appearance was a long white beard, which descended far over the breast of his slashed doublet, and looked singular from its contrast in color with his habit. The young lady, by whom this venerable gentleman seemed to he in some degree supported as they walked arm m arm, was a slight and sylphlike form, with a person so delicately made, and so beautiful in countenance that it seemed the earth on which she walked was too grossly massive a support for a creat- ure so aérial. But mortal beauty must share human sorrows. The eyes of the beautiful being showed tokens of tears; her color was heightened as she listened to her aged companion ; and it was plain, from his melancholy yet displeased look, that the conversation was as distressing to himself as to her. When they sat down on the bench we have mentioned, the gentleman’s discourse could be distinctly overheard by the eavesdropping soldier, but the answers of the young lady reached his ear rather less distinctly. “Tt is not to be endured!” said the old man passionately ; “it would stir up a paralytic wretch to start up a soldier. My people have been thinned, I grant you, or have fallen off from me in these times—I owe them no grudge for it, poor knaves ; what should they do waiting on me when the pantry has no bread and the buttery no ale? But we have still about us some rugged foresters of the old Woodstock breed—old as my- self most of them—what of that? old wood seldom warps in the wetting ;—I will hold out the old house, and it will not be the first time that I have held it against ten times the strength that we hear of now.” “ Alas! my dear father !”—said the young lady, in a tone which seemed to intimate his proposal of defence to be alto- gether desperate “And why alas?” said the gentleman, angrily; “is itWOODSTOCK. 15 because I shut my door against a score or two of these blood- PB) hypocrites ?” ‘But their Masters €an as eas sily senda regiment or an army if they will,’ replied the lady; “and what good would your present defence do, excepting to €xasperate them to your utter destruction ? ” * Be it se,’ Alice,” replied her father; “I have lived my time, and beyond it. I have outlived the kindest and most princelike of masters. What do I do on the earth since the dismal thirtieth of ] anuary? ‘The parricide of that day was a signal to all true servants of Charles Stewart to avenge his death, or die as soon after as they could find a worthy oppor- tunity.” “ ‘Do not speak thus, sir,” said Alice Lee: ‘it does not be- come your Bravity a nd your worth to throw away that life which may yet be of service to your king and country,—it will not and cannot acs s be thus. E neland will not Ic ong endure the rulers which these bad ee have assigned her. In the mean- while—[here a few words escaped the listener’s ears|—and _be- ware of that impatience, which makes bad worse.” ‘Worse ?” exclaimed the impatient oldman, “What can be worse? Is it not the worst already? Will not these people expel us from the only shelter we have left—dilapidate what remains of royal p sroperty under my charge—make the palace of princes into a den of thieves, and then wipe their mouths and thank God, as if th 1ey had done an alms-deed?” “Still,” said his daughter, “ There is hope behind, and I trust the King is ere this out of their reac fae e have reason to think well of my brother Albert’s safety.” ‘Ay, Albert! there again,” said the old man, in a tone of reproach; “had it not been for thy entreaties I had gone to Worcester myself; but I must needs lie here like a worthless hound when the hunt is up, when who knows what service [I might have shown? An old man’s head is sometimes useful when his arm is but little worth. But you and Albert were so desirous that he should go alone—and now who can say what has become of him?” “Nay, nay, father,” said Alice, “we have good hope that Albert escaped from that fatal day; young Abney saw him a mile from the field.” ‘‘ Young Abney lied, I believe,” said the father, in the same humor of contradiction——Young Abney’ s tongue seems quicker than his hand, but far slower than his horse’s heels when he leaves the roundheads behind him. I would rather Albert’s tts SS een ts ARR LUMAR SRSTWOODSTOCK. dead body were laid between Charles and Cromwell, than hear he fled as early as young Abney.” “My dearest father,” said the young lady, weeping as she i spoke, ‘what can I say to comfort you?” we | ‘‘Comfort me, say’st thou, girl ? I am sick of comfort—an | honorable death, with the ruins of Woodstock for my monument, were the only comfort to old Henry Lee. Yes, by the memory of my fathers! I will make good the Lodge against these re- beliious robbers.” ‘‘Vet be ruled, dearest father,” said the maiden, ‘‘ and sub- mit to that which we cannot gainsay. My uncle Everard ”’ Hi Here the old man caught at her unfinished words. ‘ Thy ial uncle Everard, wench! Well, get on.—What of thy precious : and loving uncle Everard ?”’ ‘Nothing, sir,” she said, “if the subject displeases you.” ‘“‘Displeases me?” he replied, “‘ why should it displease me ? or if it did, why shouldst thou, or any one, affect to care about it? What is it that hath happened of late years—what is it can be thought to happen that astrologer can guess at, which can give pleasure to us?” “Fate,” she replied, “‘may have in store the joyful restora- tion of our banished Prince.” | “Too late for my time, Alice,” said the knight; “if there be such a white page in the heavenly book, it will not be turned until long after my day.—But I see thou wouldst escape me.— In a word, what of thy uncle Everard?” “Nay, sir,” said Alice, ‘‘ God knows I would rather be silent forever, than speak what might, as you would take it, add to your present distemperature.” ‘“‘Distemperature !” said her father; ‘‘ Oh, thou art a sweet- lipped physician, and wouldst, I warrant me, drop naught but sweet balm, and honey, and oil, on my distemperature—if that is the phrase for an old man’s ailment, when he is well-nigh heart-broken.—Once more, what of thy uncle Everard?” His last words were uttered in a high and peevish tone of voice; and Alice Lee answered her father in a trembling and submissive tone. ‘“T only meant to say, sir, that I am well assured that my uncle Everard, when we quit this place ” “That is to say, when we are kicked out of it by crop-eared | canting villains like, himself.—But on with thy bountiful uncle— what will he do ?—will he give us the remains of his worshipful iw and economical housekeeping, the fragments of a thrice-sacked | capon twice a-week, and a plentiful fast on the other five days? | —Will he give us beds beside his half-starved nags, and put haesaabigainheiichannass etna .WOODSTOCK. 17 them under a short allowance of straw, that his sister’s husband —that I should have called my deceased angel by such a name! —and his sister’s daughter, may not sleep on the stones? Or will he send us a noble each, with a warning to make it last, for he had never known the réady-penny so hard to come by? , Or what else will your uncle Everard do for us? Getusa furlough to beg? Why, I can do that without him.” “You misconstrue him much,” answered Alice, with more Spirit than she had hitherto displayed; “and would you but question your own heart, you would acknowledge—I speak with reverence—that your tongue utters what your better judgment would disown. My uncle Everard is neither a miser nor a hypo- crite—neither so fond of the goods of this world that he would not supply our distresses amply, nor so wedded to fanatical opinions as to exclude charity for other sects beside his own.” “Ay, ay, the Church of England is a sect with him, I doubt not, and perhaps with thee too, Alice,” said the knight. “What isa Muggletonian, or ¢ Ranter, or a Brownist, but a sectary ? and thy phrase places them all, with Jack Pres yter himself, on the same footing with our learned prelate and religious clergy! Such is the cant of the day thou livest in, and why shouldst thou not talk like one of the wise virgins and psalm-singing sisters, since, though thou hast a profane old cavalier for a father, thou art own niece to pious uncle Everard ? ” “ If you speak thus, my dear father,” said Alice, “what can T answer you?) Hear me but one patient word, and I shall have discharged my uncle Everard’s commission.” ‘Oh, it is a commission, then? Surely, I suspected so much from the beginning—nay, have some sharp guess touching the ambassador also.—Come, madam, the mediator, do your errand, and you shall have no reason to complain of my patience.” “Then, sir,” replied his daughter, “‘ my uncle Everard desires you would be courteous to the commissioners, who come here to sequestrate the parks and the property; or, at least heed- fully to abstain from giving them obstacles or Opposition : it can, he says, do no good, even on your own principles, and it will give a pretext for proceeding against you as one in the worst degree of malignity, which he thinks may otherwise be prevented. Nay, he has good hope, that if you follow his counsel, the committee may, through the interest he possesses, be inclined to remove the sequestration of your estate on a moderate fine. Thus says my uncle; and having communi- cated his advice, I have no occasion to urge your patience with further argument.” “It is well thou dost not, Alice,” answered Sir Henry Lee,Rete Po Pataca eee — 18 WOODSTOCK. in atone of suppressed anger ; ‘‘for, by the blessed Rood, thou hast well-nigh led me into the heresy of thinking thee no daughter of mine,—Ah! my beloved companion, who art now far from the sorrows and cares of this weary world, couldst thou have thought that the daughter thou didst clasp to thy bosom, would, like the wicked wife of Job,-become a temptress to her father in the hour of affliction, and recommend to him to make his conscience truckle to his interest, and to beg back at the bloody hands of his master’s, and perhaps his son’s murderers, a wretched remnant of the royal property he has been robbed of !—Why, wench, if [ must beg, think’st thou I will sue to those who have made me a mendicant? No, I will never show my gray beard, worn in sorrow for my sovereign’s death, to move the compassion of some proud sequestrator, who perhaps was one of the parricides. No. If Henry Lee must sue for food, it shall be of some sound loyalist like himself, who, having but half a loaf remaining, will not nevertheless refuse to share it with him. For his daughter, she may wander her own way, which leads her to a refuge with her wealthy roundhead kinsfolk: but let her no more call him father, whose honest indigence she has refused to share ! x “ You do me injustice, sir,” answered the young lady, with a voice animated yet faltering, ‘¢ cruel injustice. God knows, your way is my way, though it lead to ruin and beggary ; and while you tread it, my arm shall support you while you will accept an aid so feeble.” “Thou word’st me girl,” answered the old cavalier, “ thou yord’st me, as Will Shakspeare says—thou speakest of lending me thy arm; but thy secret thought is thyself to hang upon Markham Everard’s.” “My father, my father,” answered Alice, in a tone of deep erief, “what can thus have altered your clear judgment and kindly heart !—Accursed be these civil commotions; not only do they destroy men’s bodies, but they pervert their souls ; and the brave, the noble, the generous, become suspicious, harsh, and mean! Why upbraid me with Markham Everard? Have I seen or spoken to him since you forbid him my company, with terms less kind—I will speak it truly—than was due even to the relationship betwixt you? Why think I would sacrifice to that young man my duty to you? Know, that were I capable of such criminal weakness, Markham Everard were the first to despise me for it.” She put her handkerchief to her eyes, but she could not hide her sobs, nor conceal the distress they intimated. The oldman was moved.WOODSTOCK. 19 “TY cannot tell,” he said, “ what to think of it, Thou seem’st sincere, and wert ever a good and kindly daughter—how thou hast let that rebel youth creep into thy heart I wot not; per- haps it is a punishment on me, who thought the loyalty of my hous e was like undefiled ermine. Yet here is a damned spot, and on the fairest gem of all—my own dear Alice, But do not weep—we have enough to vex us. Where is it that Shaks- peare hath it :— ‘Gentle daughter, Give even W ay unto my rough affairs; Put you not on the temper of the times, Nor be, like them, to Percy troubl esome.’ , “I am glad,” answered the young lady, “ to hear you quote your favorite again, sir. Ou little jars are ever well-nigh \ ended when spake spa ane comes in play = ‘‘ His book was the ch osest companion of my blessed master,”’ said Sir Henry ee ; “after the Bible (with reverence for Pe Bae m together) he felt more comfort in it than in any 2 > . . 5 Other; and as | have shared his disease, why, it is natural I sh Albeit, I pretend not to my master’s and rustically brought up to arms and hunting.” ‘You have seen Shakspeare yourself, sir?” said the young art in ne the dark peeoases ; for I am but a rude man, 1] SX ; 64 Silly wench,” replied the knight, “he died when I was a mere child—thou hast heard me say so twenty times; but thou wouldst lead the old man away from the tender subject, Well, though I am not blind, I can shut my eyes and follow. Ben 8 ons« 0 I knew, and could tell thee many a tale of our ea at the Mermaid, where, if there was much wine, there was much wit also. We did not sit blowing tobacco in each other’s faces, and turning.up the whites of our eyes as we turned up the bottom of the wine-pot. Old Ben adopted me as one of his sons in the muses. I have shown you, have I not, the verses, ‘To my much beloved son, the worshipful Sir 4 woe ; cepted Henry Lee of Ditchley, Knight and Baronet ! on nf = SES “ay . do not remember them at present, sir,’”’ replied Alice. 66 [ ‘¢T fear ye lie, wench,” said her father; “but no matter— thou canst not get any more fooling out of me just now. The Evil Spirit hath left Saul for the present. We are now to : a Te Sty SFA think what is to be done about leaving Woodstock—or defend P 19 ly dearest father,” said Alice, ‘‘can you still nourish a 9 moment’s hope of making good the place? ing y att SSS Base ere see rit ODES T TTS IST oTjardin gies os yi dsbbaaene ee eee utthtim saath acne: oor WOODSTOCK. ‘I know not, wench,” replied Sir Henry; “I would fain have a parting blow with them, ’tis certain—and who knows where a blessing may alight? But then, my poor knaves that must take part with me in so hopeless a quarrel—that thought hampers me I confess.” “Oh, let it do so, sir,’ replied Alice; ‘there are soldiers in the town, and there are three regiments at Oxford!” “Ah, poor Oxford !” exclaimed Sir Henry, whose vacillat ing state of mind was turned by a word to any new oe that was suggested,—“ Seat of learning and loyalty ! these rude soldiers are unfit inmates for thy learned halls and poetical bowers ; but thy pure and brilliant lamp shall defy the foul breath of a thousand churls, were they to blow at it like Boreas. ‘The burning bush shall not be consumed, even by the heat of. this persecution.” “True, sir,”’ said Alice, “and it may not be useless to recollect, that any stirring of ihe royalists at this unpropiti- ous moment will make them deal yet more harshly with the University, which they ome as being at the bottom of every thing which moves for the King in these parts.” “Tt is true, wench,” replied the knight; “and small cause would make the villains sequestrate the poor remains which the civil wars have left to the colleges. That, and the risk of my i) oe poor fellows—Well! thou hast disarmed me, girl. I will be as patient and calm as a martyr.” “Pray God you keep your word, sir!” replied his daughter ; “but you are ever so much moved at the sight of any of these men, that. —— “Would you make a child of me, Alice?” said Sir Henry. ‘“Why, know you not that I can look upon a viper, or a toad, ora bunch of engendering adders, without any worse feeling than a little disgust? and though a roundhead, and especially a red-coat, are in my opinion more poisonous than vipers, more loathsome than toads, more hateful than knotted adders, yet can I overcome my nature so far, that should one of them ap- pear at this moment, thyself should see how civilly I would entreat him.” As he spoke, the military preacher abandoned his leafy screen, and ; stalking forward, stood unexpectedly before the o ld cavalier, who stared at him, as if he had thought his expres- sions had actually raised a devil. “Who art thou?” at length said Sir Henry, ina raised and angry voice, while his d: wughter clung to his arm in terror, little confident that her father’s pacific resolutions would abide the shock of this unwelcome apparition,WOODSTOCK. a “Tam one,” replied the soldier, “who neither fear nor shame to call myself a poor day-laborer in the great work Ss Eng and —utiph ce Ay, a simple and sincere upholder of th good old cause.’ _ And what the devil do you seek here?” said the old knight, fiercely. “The welcome due to the steward of the Lords Commis- sioners, ” answered the soldier. “ Welc ome art thou as salt would be to sore eyes)’ ‘said the cavalier; “but who be your Commissioners, man ?? ” The S\ ee with little courtesy held out a scroll, which Sir Flenry took from him betwixt his finger and thumb, as if it were a letter from a pest-house: and held it at as much distance from his eyes, as his purpose of reading it would permit. He then read aloud, and as he named the parties one by one, he added a short commentary on each name, addressed, ind leed, to Alice, but in such a tone that showed he cared not for its being heard | by the soldier. » Desborough—the ploughman Desborough—as groveling a clown as is in England—a fellow that would be best at home, like an ancient Scythian, under the tilt of a wagon—d—him. ffarrison—a_ bloody-minded, ranting enthusiast, who read the Bible to such purpose, that he never lacked a text to justify a COS ae mene him too. Lletson—a true-blue Commonvwealth’s man, one of Hariison’s Rota Club, with his noddle full of new- fangled notions about government, the clearest object of which is to establish the tail upon the head: a fellow who leaves you the statutes and law of old England, to prate of Rome and Greece—sees the Areopagus in Westminster Fall, and takes old Noll for a Roman cor nsul——Adad, he is like to prove a dictator amongst them instead. Never mind—d—n Bleston too,” f Friend, ” said the soldier, “ I would wi lingly be civil, but it consists not with my duty to hear these godly men, in w hose service I am, spoken of after this irreverent and unbecoming shit And albeit I know that you malignants think you have a right to make free with that damnation, which you seem to us€ as your own portion, yet it is superfluous to invoke it against others, who have better hopes in their thoughts, and better words in their mouths.” “Thou art but a canting varlet,” replied the knight ; “and yet thou art right in some sense—for it is superfluous to curse men who already are damned as black as the smoke of hell itself.” ‘I prithee forbear,” continued the soldier, “ for manners’ seat DAIS CEEUEC EES ETTR TSP Ne eee eeeFRR ccs nce crate eee . =— 7 x a a - Ae as aT 22 WOODSTOCK. sake, if not for conscience—grisly oaths suit ill with gray beards,” “‘ Nay, that is truth, if the devil spoke it.” said the knight ; “and I thank Heaven I can follow good counsel, though old Nick gives it. And so, friend, touc hing these same Commis- sioners, bear them this message ; that Sir Henry Lee is keeper of Woodstock Park, with right of waif and stray, vert and veni- son, as complete as any of them have to their estate—that is, if they possess any estate but what they have gained by plunder: ing honest men. Nevertheless, he will give place to those who have made their mi ght with right, and will not expose the lives of good and true men, where the odds are so much against them. And he protests that he makes this surrender, neither as acknowledging of these so termed Commissioners, nor as for his own individual part fearing their force, but purely to avoid the loss of English blood, of which so much hath been spilt in these late times.” “Tt is well spoken,” said the steward of the Commissioners ; ‘Cand therefore, | pray you, let us walk together into the house, that thou may’st deliver up unto me the vessels, and gold and silver ornaments, belonping unto the Egyptian Pharoah, who committec 1 them to thy keepi ing,” ‘What vessels?” excl: con the fiery old knight; ‘and be- b l longing to whom? Unbaptized dog, speak civil of the Martyr in my presence, or I w ‘ll do a deed misbecoming of me on that caitiff corpse of thine !’’—-And shaking his daughter from his DS right arm, the old man laid his hand on his rapier. His antagonist, on the contrary, kept his temper completely, and waiving his hand to add impression to his speech, said, with a calmness whic h aggravated Sir Henry’s wrath, “ Nay, good friend, I prithee be still, and brawl not—it becomes not gray hairs and feeble arms to rail and rant like drunkards. Put me not to use the carnal weapon in mine own defence, but listen to the voice of reason. Seest thou not that the Lord hath decided this great controversy in favor of us and ours, against thee and thine? Wherefore, render up thy steward- ship peacefully, and deliver up to me the chattels of the Man, Charles Stewart.” “Patience is a good nag, but she will bolt,” said the knight, unable longer to rein in his wrath. He plucked his sheathed rapier from his side, struck the soldier a sevete blow with it, and instantly drawing it, and throwing the scabbard over the trees, placed himself in a posture of defence, with his sword’s point within half-a-yard of the steward’s body. The latter stepped back with activity, threw his long cloak from hisWOODSTOCK. 23 shoulders, and drawing his long tuck, stood upon his guard. / he swords clashed smartly together, while Alice, in her terror, Screamed wildly for assistance. But the combat was of short duration. ‘The old cavalier had attacked a man as cunning of fence as he himself, or a | ittle more so, and possessing all the strength and activity of which time had deprived Sir Henry, and the calmness which the other had lost in his passion. They had scarce exchanged three passes ere the sword of the knight flew up in the air, as if it had gone in search of the scabbard and burning with shame and anger, Sir Henry stood disarmed, at the mercy of his antagonist. The republican showed no pur- pose of abusing his victory ; nor did he, either during the com- bat, or after the victory was won, in any respect alter the sour and grave composure which reigned upon his countenance—a combat of life and death seemed to him a thing as familiar, and as little to be feared, as an ordinary bout with foils. ‘Thou art delivered into my hands,” he said, “and by the c aw of arms I might smite thee under the fifth rib, even as Asa- el was struck dead by Abner, the son of Ner, as he followed 1e chase on the hills of Ammah, that lieth before Giah, in the way of the wilderness of Gibeon : but far be it from me to spill thy remaining drops of blood. True itis, thou art the captive of my sword and of my spear: nevertheless, seeing that there may bea turning from thine evil ways, and a returning to those which are good, if the Lord enlarge thy date for re pentance and amendment, wherefore should it be shortened by a poor sinful mortal who is, spe king truly, but thy fellow- worm ?”’ Sir Henry Lee remained still confused, and unable to an- swer, when there arrived a fourth person, whom the cries of Alice had summoned to the spot. ‘his was Joceline Joliffe, one of the underkeepers of the walk, who seeing how matters stood, brandished his quarterstaff, a weapon from which he never parted, and having made it describe the figure of eight in a flourish through the air, would have brought it down with a vengeance upon the head of the steward, had not Sir Henry interposed. ‘We must trail bats now, Joceline—our time of shoulder- ing them is past. It skills not striving against the stream—the devil rules the roost, and makes our slaves our tutors.” At this moment another auxiliary rushed out of the thicket to the knight’s assistance. It wasa large wolf-dog, in strength a mastiff, in form and almost in fleetness a greyhound, Bevis was the noblest of his kind which ever pulled down a stag, tawny-colored like.a lion, with a black muzzle and black feet, ] h t] Beate TR Aron TES EEE NNT SLUA TSN AtTSSion ee just edged with a line of white tractable as he was strong and bold. rush upon the soldier, if using all his sagacity to be, toward whom, though of so he was enjoined forbearance. for he laid aside WOODSTOCK. round the the words; *' Peace, Henry, converted the lion into a lamb, and, instead of pulling the soldier down, he walked round and round, and snuffed, as Just as he was toes. He was 2s about tc Bevis!” from Sit discover who* the stranger could questionable an appearance. Apparently he was satisfied, his doubtful and threatening demonstrations, lowered his ears, smoothed down his bristles, and wagged his tail. Sir Henry, who h ad great respect for favorite, said in a low voice to Alice, “ and counsels submission. this to punish the pride, ever the sagacity of his 3evis is of thy opinion, There is the finger of Heaven in the fault of our house.—Friend,”’ he continued, addressing the soldier, ‘‘ thou hast given the finishing touch to fortune have tinctly shown me a lesson, been unable ft uly to teach me. which ten years of constant mis- ‘Lhow- Hast dis- the folly of thinking that a good cause can strengthen a- weak arm. I could almost turn infidel, God forgive me for the thought, but and believe that Heaven’s blessing goes ever with the longest sword; but it will not be always thus. God knows his tim e.—Reach me my Toledo, Joceline, yonder it les ; and the scabbard, see where it hangs on the tree.—Do qa Dae at my cloak, Alice, and look frightened ; again, I ray thee.—For thee, good fellox will make w ay for thy masters without dagen dispute or cere- mony. Jocel ine Joliffe is nearer thy degree so miserably shall be in no hurry to po bs me to bright steel 7, I thank thee, and than I am, and will make surrender to thee of the Lodge and household stuff. —Withhold nothing, Joliffe—let them have never cross the threshold again—but where t I would trouble no one in Woodstock—hum—ay—it shall be so. Alice and I, Joceline, will go down to oy hut by Rosamond’s well ; we will borrow the shelter of thy roof least ; thou wilt give us welcome, wilt thou not >—How now— a Poaled 4 brow ?’ all. For me, I will o rest for a night? for one night, at Joceline certainly looked embarrassed, directed first a glance to Alice, then looked to heaven four quarters , then to earth, and last to the of the horizon, and then murmured out, “ Cer- tainly—without /question—might he but run down to put the house in order.’ “ Order enough—ordere nough—for those that may soon be elad of clean straw in a barn, ‘9 « ee the knight ; “ but if thou hae an ill-will to harbor any obnoxious or malignant persons,WOODSTOCK. 26 as the phrase goes, never shame to speak it out, man: °Tis true, I took thee up when thou wert but a, rageed Robin,* make a keeper of thee, and so forth. What of that? Sailors think no letter of the wind than when it forw ards them on the voyage—thy betters turn with the tide, why should not such a poor knave as thou?” “God pardon your honor for your harsh judgment,” said Joliffe. “The hut is yours, such as it is, and should be were it a king’s palace, as I wish it were even for your honor’s sake, and Mistress atc -e’s—only I could wish your honor would condescend to let me step down before, in case any neighbor be there -——OI—or—]Just to put matters something | into order for Mistress Alice and your honor—just to make things something seemly and shapely.” “Not a whit necessary,” said the knight, while Alice had much trouble in c ncealing haere agitation. ‘If thy matters are unseemly, they are fitter for a defeated knight—if they are un- shi upely, why, t he liker to the rest of a world, which is all un- shaped. Go thou wit 1 that man.—What is thy ame, friend ?” “Joseph Tomkins js my name in the flesh,” said the steward, sé Men call me Honest Joe, and trusty Tomkins.” ‘If thou hast deserved such names, considering what trade thou hast driven, thou art 4 jewel indeed,” said the knight ; “yet if thou hast not, never blush for the matter, Joseph, for if thou art not in truth honest, thou hast all the better chance to keep the frame of it—the title and the thing itself have long walke separate ways. Farewell to thee,—and farewell to fair Woodstock i” So saying, the old kni ight turned round, and pulli ing his daughter’s arm through his own, they walked onward into the forest, in the same manner in which they were introduced to the reader. * The keeper’s followers in the New Forest are called in popular language ragged Robins.WOODSTOCK. CHAP TER ‘T HERD: Now ye wild blades, that make loose in your stage, To vapor forth the acts of this sad age, Stout Edgehill fight, the Newberries and the West, And northern clashes, where you still fought best ; Your strange escapes, your dangers void of fear, Wher 7 bullets flew bet tween the head and ear, Whether you fought by Damme or the Spirit, Hh i Of con I speak. qt LEGEND OF CAPTAIN JONES. jJosepuH Tomkins and Joliffe the keeper remained for some time in silence, as they stood together looking along the path in which the figures of the knight of Ditchley and pretty Mis- tress Alice had disappeared behind the trees. They then gazed on each other in doubt, as men who scarce knew whether they stood on hostile or on friendly terms together, and were at a loss how to open a conversation. ‘They heard the knight’s whistle summon Bevis ; but though the good iid turned his head and pricked his ear at the sound, yet he did not obey the call, but continued to snuff around Joseph Tomkin’s cloak. ‘Thou art a rare one, I fear me,” said the keeper looking to his new acquaintance. ‘‘} have heard of men who have charms to steal both dogs and deer.’ “Trouble not thyself about my qualities, friend,” said n ty Joseph Tomkins, ‘but bethink thee of ee thy master’s it bidding.” i Joceline did not immediately answer, but at length, as if in | sign of truce, stuck the end of his quarterstaff upright in the ground, and leant upon it as he said gruffly,—‘“ So, my tough old knight and you were at drawn bilbo, by way of afternoon service, sir preacher—Well for you I came not up till the blades were done jingling, or I had rung even-song upon your Dee. The Independent smiled grimly, as he replied, “‘ Nay, friend, it is well for thyself, for never should sexton have been better paid for the knell he tolled. . Nevertheless, why should there be war betwixt us, or my hand be against thine? Thou art but a poor knave, doing thy master’s order, nor have I any ‘ desire that my own blood or thine should be shed touching this matter.—Thou art, I understand, to give me peaceful pos- session of the Palace of Woodstock, so called—though there is now no palace in England, no, nor shall be in the days that es Sa GAA LTA | ener terres nore.“ WOODSTOCK. 24 come after, until we shall enter the palace of the New Jeru- salem, and the reign of the Saints shall commence on earth.” ees. well begdn already, friend Tomkins,” said the keeper ; “you are little short of being kings alr eady upon the matter as it now stands: and for your Jerusalem I wot not, but Woodstock is a pretty nest-ege to begin with.—W ell, will you shog-—will you ‘ou—will you take acm: and livery — You heard my orders.” : ‘“Umph—I know not,” said Tomkins. I must beware of ambuscades, and I am alone Ce Moreover, it is the High Thanskgiving appointed by Parliament, and owned to by the army—also the old man and ‘te young woman may want to recover some of their clothes and personal property, and I would not that they were baulked on my account. Wherefore, if nen wilt deliver me possession to-morrow morning, it shall . in personal presence of my own followers, and of the ~~ UW oO Co 3 aby terian man the M ayor, so that the transfer may be made Before witnesses ; whereas, were there none with us but thou to deliver, and I to take possession, the men of Belial] might say, Go to, Trusty Tomkins hath been an Edomite —Honest Joe hath been as an Ismaelite, rising up early and dividing the spoil with them that served the Man—-yea, they that wore beards and green jerkins, as in remembrance of the Man and of his Soverl wed Jocel line fixed his keen dark eyes upon the soldier as he spoke, as if in design to discover whether there was fair play in his mind or not. He then applied his five fingers to scratch a large shock head of hair, as if that operation was necessary to enable him to come to a conclusion. “ This -is all fair sounding, brother, 7 Said he ; “but I tell you plainly, there are some silver mugs, and platters, and flagons, and so forth, in yonder house, which have survived the general sweep that sent all our plate to the smelti ng-pot, to put our knight’s troop on horseback. Now, if thou takest not these off my hand, I may come to trouble, yee it may be thought I have minished their numbers.—Whereas, I being as honest a fellow ”* _— As ever Shale. venison,” said Tomkins—“ nay, 1 do owe thee an interruption.” “Go to, then,” replied the keeper; “if a stag may have come to mischance in my walk, it was no way in the course of dishonesty, but merely y to keep my old dame’s pan from rust- ing; but for silver porringers, tankards , and such like, I would as soon have drunk the melted silve ‘ as stolen the vessel made out of it, So that I would not wish blame or suspicion fell on me in this matter. And, therefore, if you will have the 1me LX€ ee Spot MET ster rit ytazes ssBimini Se WOODSTOCK. things rendered even now,—-why so—and if not, hold me blameless.” ‘“ Ay, truly ?”’ said Tomkins; “‘and who is to hold me blame- less, if they should see cause to think anything minished ? Not the right worshipful Commissioners, to whom the property of the estate is as their own; therefore, as thou say’st, we must walk warily in the matter. To lock up the house and leave it, were but the work of simple ones. What say’st thou to spend the night there, and then nothing can be touched without the knowledge of. us both?” ‘“Why, concerning that,” answered the keeper, ‘I should be at my hut to make matters somewhat conformable for the old knight and Mistress Alice, for my old dame Joan is some- thing dunny, and will scarce know how to manage—and yet, to speak the truth, by the mass I would rather not see Sir Henry to-night, since what has happened to-day hath roused his spleen, and it is a peradventure he may have met something at the hut which will scarce tend to cool it.” “It is a pity,” said Tomkins, “that, being a gentleman of such grave and goodly presence, he should be such a maligant cavalier, and that he should, like the rest of that generation of vipers, have clothed himself with curses as with a garment.” ‘*‘ Which is as much as to say, the tough old knight hatha habit of swearing,” said the keeper, grinning at a pun, which has been repeated since his time; “ but who can help it ? it comes of use and wont. Were you now, in your bodily self, to light suddenly on a Maypole, with all the blithe morris-dancers prancing around it to the merry pipe and tabor, with bells jingling, ribbons fluttering, lads frisking and laughing, lasses leaping till you might see where the scarlet garter fastened the ight blue hose, I think some feeling, resembling either natural ] 1g sociality, or old use and wont, would get the better, friend, even of thy gravity, and thou wouldst fling thy cuckoldy steeple- hat one way, and that bloodthirsty long sword another, and trip like the noodles of Hogs-Norton, when the pigs play on the organ.” 1 ; I The Independent turned fiercely round on the keeper, and replied, “ How now, Mr. Green Jerkin ? what language is this to one whose hand is at the plough? J advise thee to put curb on thy tongue, lest thy ribs pay the forfeit.” “Nay, do not take the high tone with me, brother,” an- swered Joceline ; “ remember thou hast not the old knight of sixty- five to deal with, but a fellow as bitter and prompt as thyself—it may be a little more so—younger, at all events—and prithee, why shouldst thou take such umbrage at a Maypole ? I wouid thouWOODSTOCK. 29 hadst known one Phil Hazeldine of these parts—He was the best morris-dancer betwixt Oxford and Burford.” ‘The more shame to him, ” answered the Independent ; pend [ trust he has seen the error of his ways, and made him. self (as, if aman of action. he easily might) fit for better com- pany than wood-hunters, deer- stealers, Maid Marions, swash- bucklers, deboshed revelers, bloodly brawlers, maskers s, and mummers, lewd me n and light women, fools and fiddlers , and carnal self-pleasers of ev ery descrip tion.’ SW. on, ” replied the keeper, ~ you are out of breath in time; for here we stand before the famous Maypole of Woodstock.” They paused in an open space of meadow-land, beautifully shirted by large oaks and sycamores, one of which, as king of the forest, stood a little detached from the rest, as if scorning the vicinity of any rival. It was scathed and gnarled in the branches, but the immense trunk still showed to what gigantic size the monarch of the forest Can attain in the groves of merry Eng gland, ‘That is called the King’s Oak,” said 1 Joceline ; “ the oldest men of Woodstock know not how old it is ; they say Henry used to sit under it with fair Rosamond, and see the lasses dance, and the lads of the village run races, and wrestle for belts or bonnets. ‘I nothing doubt it, friend,” said Tomkins ; “ a tyrant and a harlot were fitting patron and patroness for such v ities”? “Thou mayst say thy say, friend,” replied the keener, so thou lettest me s: ry mine. ‘There stands the Maypole, as thou seest, half 4 flig] ht-shot from the King’s Oak, in the midst of the meadow. The King gave ten shillings from the customs of Woodstock to make a new one yearly, besides a tree fitted for the purpose on of the forest. Now it is w arped, and with ered, and twisted, like a wasted brier-rod. The green, too, used to be close-shav ed, and rolled till it was smooth as a velvet mantle —now it is rough and overgrown,’ “Well, well, friend loceli ine,’ said the Independent, “ but where was the edification of all this?—what use of doctrine could be derived from a pipe and tabor? or was there ever aught like wisdom in a bagpi Mp e 7 “You may ask better scholars that,” said Joceline ; “ but methinks men cannot be al Vays grave, and with the hat over their brow. A young maiden will laugh as a tender flower will blow—ay, and a lad will like her the better for it ; just as the same blithe S Spring that makes the young birds whistle e, bids the blithe fawns skip. There have come worse days since the jolly old times have gone by :—I tell thee, that in the holidays VU 1 Byseuct i otreriteasy ths SSCS Da STE ST ESN GTIGS stSeater ee NI Ps PER See WOODSTOCK. which you, Mr. Longsword, have put down, I have seen this ereensw ard alive wi ith merr y maidens and manly fellows. The sood old rector himself thought it was no sinto come fora while and look on, and his goodly cassock and scarf kept us all in good order, and taught us to limit our mirth within the bounds of discretion. We might, it may be, crack a ce or pledge a friendly cup a turn too often, but it was in mirth and good neighborhood—Ay, and if there was a bout at single-stick, or a bell yful of boxing, it was all for love and kindness ; and better a few dry blows in drink, than the bloody doings we have had in sober earnest, since the presbyter’s cap got above the bishop’s mitre, and we exchanged our goodly rectors and learned doctors, whose sermons were all bolstered up with as much Greek and Latin as might have confounded the devil him- self, for weavers and cobblers, and such other pulpit volun- teers, as—as we heard this morning—It will out.” “Well, friend,” said the Inde -pendent, with patience scarcely to have been expected, “ I quarrel not with thee for nauseat ing my doctrine. If thine ear is so much tickled with tabor tunes and morris tripping, truly it is not likely thou shouldst find pleasant savor in more wholesome and sober food. But let us to the Lodge, that we may go about our business there be- fore the sun sets.” “Troth, and that may be advisable for more reasons than one,” said the keeper; ‘“‘for there have been tales about the Lodge which have made men afeard to harbor there after nightfall.” “ Were not yon old knight, and yonder damsel his daughter, wont to dwell there?” said the Independent. ‘‘ My informa- tion said so.”’ ce ”) said Joceline ; “and while they kept a t well enough; for nothing banishes fear ood ale. But afterthe best of our men went to the wars, and were slain at Naseby fight, they who were left found the Lodge more lonesome, and the old knight has been much deserted of his servants :—marry, it might be, that he has lacked silver of late to oe) groom and lackey.” ‘“‘ A potential reason for the diminution of a household,” said the soldier. ‘Right, sir, even so,” replied the keeper. ‘‘ They spoke of steps in the great gallery, heard by dead of the night, and voices that whispered at noon in the matted chambers ; and the servants pretended that these things scared them away ; but, in my poor judgment, when Martinmas and Whitsunt ide came round with- out a penny-fee, the old blue-bottles of serving-men began toVOODSTOCK. 3E hink o creepi ing elsewhere before-the frost chilled th ne de vil so fri chtful as that which dir 3 in the pocket where ther is no cross to keep him out,” ‘ You were reduc ed, then, to a petty household ? ” said the Indep endent. “ Ay, marry were we,” said Joceline : “ but we kept some half- score together, what with blue-bottles in the Lodge, what with steen caterpillars of the chase, like him who is yours to command ; we stuck ean ne we found a call to take morning’s ride somewhe or other, “To the n of Worcester,” said the soldier, “‘ where you were crushed like vermin and pa ner worms, as you are,” You may say your ple e,”’ replied the keeper. 777] never contradict aman who has got 4 head under his belt, Our bi — are at the wall, or you would not io 2 here.” i i,’ said the Independent, thou riskest nothing and trust in me. I can be Jon camarado to a ave striven with him even to the going we are in front of the Lodge.’ They stood accordit ely in front of the old Gothic builc ding, irrecul: arly ¢ onstruc sted and at different times, as the humor of the Eneglis s ledt to taste the pleasures of Wood- ote Ch: ise, “a C ake suc ht provements for their own accommodation, as the incr uxury of each age required. The aie lest part of the structure ad been named by tradition Fair Rosamond’s Tower : it was a small turret of great height, with narrow windows. ada walls of massive thickness. The Tower had no opening to the ground, or means lescending, a great part of the lower portion bei solid mason-work. It was traditi esis Said to h: een accessible only by a sort of small drawbridge, whi ight be dropped at pleasure from a little portal near the summit of the ti irret, to the battlements of another tower of the same co nstruction, but twenty feet lowe and containing only a winc ling staircase, called in Woodstock Love’s Ladder ; because it is said. that by ascending this staircase to the top of the town, and than making use of the drawbridge, Henry obtai ined access to the chamber of his paramour. This tradition sie been keenly impugned by Dr. Rochecliffe, the former rector of Woods tock, who insisted that what was called Rosamond’s aren was merely an interior keep, or citadel, to oe the lord or warden of the castle might retreat, when other points of safety failed him : and either protract his defence, or, at "thie worst, stipulate for reasonable terms of surrender, The people of Woods stock, jealous of their ancient traditions, did not relish this new mode of explaining them away ; and it isWOODSTOCK. 32 ie even said that the Mayor, we have already introduced, became Presbyterian, in revenge of the doubts cast by the fociar upon this important subject, rather choosing to give up the Liturgy than his fixed belief in Rosamond’s Tow er aad Love’s Ladder. The rest of the Lodge was of considerable extent, and of different ages ; comprehending a nest of little courts, surrounded by buildings which corresponded with each other, sometimes within-doors, some etimes by crossing the courts, and frequently in both ways. The different heights of the buildings announced . ij that they ee only be connected by the usual variety of ye) staircases, which exercised the limbs of our ancestors in the | sixteenth and earlier centuries, and seem sometimes to have been contrived for no other purpose. The varied and multiplied fronts of this irregular building were, as Dr. Rochecliffe was wont to say, an absolute banquet to the architectural antiquary, as they certainly contained speci- mens of every style which existed, from the pure Norman of Henry of Anjou, down to the composite, half Gothic, half classical architecture of Elizabeth and her successor. Accord- ingly, the rector was himself as much enamoured of Woodstock as ever was Henry of Fair Rosamond ; and as his intimacy with Sir Henry Lee permitted him entrance at all times to the Royal Lodge, he used to spend whole days in wandering about the antique apartments, examining, measuring, studying, and finding out excellent reasons for architectural peculiarities, which probably only owed their existence to the freakish fancy of a Gothic artist. But the old antiquary had been expelled from his living by the intolerance and troubles of the times, and his successor, Nehemiah Holdenough, would have con- sidered an elaborated investigation of the profane sculpture and architecture of blinded and bloodthirsty papists, together with the history of the dissolute amours of old Norman mon- archs, as little better than a bowing down before the calves of Bethel, and a drinking of the cup of abominations.—We return to the course of our story. “There is,” said the Independent Tomkins, after he had carefully perused the front of the building, “‘many a rare moment of olden wickedness about this miscalled Royal Lodge; verily, I shall rejoice much to see the same destroyec 1, yea, burned to ashes, and the ashes thrown into the brook uu Kedron, or any other brook, that the land may be cleansed from the memory thereof, neither remember the inquity with i which their fathers have sinned.” The keeper heard him with secret indignation, and began to consider nah himself, whether, as they stood but one to one, reer es Sidra ae eeWOODSTOCK. 33 and without chance of speedy interference, he was not called upon, by his official duty, to castigate the rebel who used lan- Suage so defamatory. But he fortunately recollected that the strife must be a doubtful one—that the adv antage of arms was against him—and that, in especial, even if he should succeed in the combat, it would be at the risk of severe retaliation. It must be owned, too, that there was something about the Independent so dark and mysterious, so grim and grave, that the more open spirit of the keeper felt oppressed, and, if not overawed, at least kept in doubt concerning him; and he thought it wisest, as well as safest, for his master ar id fumsele to avoid all subjects of dispute, and know better with x vhom he was dealing, before he made either friend or enemy of him. The great gate of the Lodge was strongly bolted, but the wicket opened on Joceline’s rai sing the latch. There was a short passage of ten feet, which had been formerly closed by a portcullis at the inner end, while three loopholes opened on either side, through which any once intruder might be an- noyed, who, having Surprised the first gate, must be thus ex- posed to a severe fire before he could force the second. But the machinery of the portcullis was damaged, and it now re- mained a fixture, brandishing its jaw, well furnished with iron fangs. but incapable of dropping it across the path of in- vasion. The way, therefore, lay open to the tibule of the Lodge. One end of thi ment was entirely occupied by a ealle1 times served to accommodate the ieee and minstrels. There was a clumsy staircase at either side of It, composed of entire logs of a foot square; and in each angle of the ascent was placed, by way of sentinel, the figure of a Norman foot- ier, having an open casque on his head, which displayed features as stern as the painter’s genius could devise. Their arms were buff-jackets, or shirts of mail, round bucklers. with spikes in the centre, and buskins which adorned and defended the feet and ankles, but left the knees bare. These wooden warders held great swords or maces in their hands, like military 17 reat hall or Cue ves- long and dusky apart- y, which had in ancient Koo o oO S euards on dutv. Many an empty hook and br alone and the walls of the gloomy apartment, marked the spots from which arms, long preserved as trophies, had been, in the pressure of the Ss, once more taken down, to do service i - field, like veterans whom extremity of danger recalls to battle. 3. other rusty fastenings were still displayed the hunting trophies of the monarchs to whom the Lodge belonged, and of Teeter) PYnar es LOAD tue tb diee seems aei Varna Lbaanasacaeinins sete WOODSTOCK. silvan knights to whose care it had been from time to time con fided. At the nether end of the hall, a huge, heavy, stone-wrought chimney-piece projected itself ten feet from the wall, adorned with many a cipher, and many a scutcheon of the Royal House of England. In its present state, it yawned like the arched mouth of a funeral vault, or pesners might be compared to the crater of an extinguished voleai But the sable complexion of the massive stone-work, and A iol aes it, showed that the time had been when it sent its huge fires blazing up the huge chim- ney, besides panes many a volume of smoke over the heads of the jovial guests, whose royalty or pee did not render them sensitive enough to quarrel with such sl ight inconvenience. On these occasions it was the tradition of the house, that two cart- loads of wood was the regular aM »wance for the fire between noon and curfew, and the andirons, or dogs, as they were termed, constructed for retainin es the blazing firewood on the hearth, were wrought in the shape of lions of such gigantic size as might well warrant the legend. There were long seats of stone within the chimney, where in despite of the tremen- dous heat, monarchs were sometimes said to have taken their tation, and amused themselves with broiling the wsdles, or dowscts of the deer, Bpon the glowing embers, with their own royal hands, when happy the courtier who was invited to taste the royal cookery. ty. adition was here also ready with her record, to show what merry jibes, such as might be exchanged between prince and peer, had flown about at the jolly banquet which followed the Michaelmas hunt. She could tell, too, ex- actly, whe hose, and knew most of the odd tricks he had put upon little Winkin, the tailor of Woodstock. Most of this rude revelry belonged to the Plantagenet times When the House of Tudor acceded to the throne, they were more chary of their royal presence, and feasted in halls and chambers far within, abandoning the outmost hall to the yeomen of the guard, who mounted their watch there, and passed away the night with wassail and mirth, exchanged sometimes for frightful tales of apparitions and sorceries, which made some of those grow pale, in whose ears the trumpet of a French foeman would have sounded as jollily as a summons to the woodland chase. Jeceline pointed out the peculiarities of the place to his gloc omy companion more briefly then we have detailed them to the reader. The Independent seemed to listen with some in terest at first, but flinging it suddenly aside, he said in a solemn Qa re King Stephen sat when he darned his own princelyWOOD 4 ‘ish, Bal bylon, as le is a wande rér, l a wilde rhess—ye aoe desert of s thirst and famine.” There is |] : _unle ss the good must care fo “bat in Vhither lead these en ** That to the ri called the state -apartments, ! eaeantcal thou speak beware the proclam ‘ =. Es >) 17m, ‘ 7 ce dost I meant no h: tion make a bolts and bu whatever ma} ved with bless l of broad p ieces for th S fri en a: i Sa else one those besott bestowing of alms is OpDpresslo cf diSposl to D : CAaGe: Ol ns . thes Stewart : * And him, an 9 fore d bluff } them all. ; there, I suj awelt 6c No, 19 erence for—for overence, at all—Besides indifferent order, since of replied Joceline rey things wl apartment lies by that passage to the left ther goes yonder ‘And whi ) upward and downward? ” Upward,” replied the k “e ments used for various purposes, of sleeping, and other accom- to the which, at this time of the evening, you cannot see modation. Downward, th > castle, without lights Ee thy ike to be enc ou rh knight’s creature not harsher nement suppose, SPOCK. ichadnezzar hath a waste pl LCE in which there master Nel and thou sh: e Du 1 Salk ult | It, it,” said Joce- somewhat fuller than said the Inde- done, comforts,’’ when our duties are ds to what are ir sixteen hun- a voice of bles >= sing, ati 5 with But yet, > was fol- nie is Zc the Piace + 1 ~ + TOPOTMS Ge ata bee t Ppapists, \ and washings ha ve S AWG re of his ae James, before had too much no Lee thought worth oO ten aay, aTre 6é Si t Lich now hit eems both to lead eeper, “it leads to many apart- offices, and vaul kitchen, ofFan cacn eas Se eee 36 WOODSTOCK. ‘We will to the apartments of your knight, then,” said the Independent. “ Is there fitting accommodation there?” ‘“ Such as has served a person of condition, whose lodging is now worse appointed,” answered the honest keeper, his bile rising so fast that he added, in a muttering and inaudible tone, ‘‘ so it may well serve a crop-eared knave like thee.” He acted as the usher, however, and led on toward the ranger’s apartments. This suite opened by a short passage from the hall, secured at time of need by two oaken doors, which could be fastened by large bars of the same, that were drawn out of the wall, and entered into square holes, contrived for their reception on the other side of the portal. At the end of this passage, a small anteroom re- ceived them, into which opened the sitting apartment of the good knight—which, in the style of the times, might have been termed a fair summer parlor—lighted by two oriel windows, so placed as to command each of them a separate avenue, leading distant and deep into the forest. The principal ornament of the apart: ment, besides two or three family portraits of less interest, was ll full-length picture, that hung above the chimney-piece, -h, like that in the hall, was of a heavy stone-work, orna- a ta whic mented with carved scutcheons, emblazoned with various devices. The portrait was that of a man about fifty years of age, in com- plete plate armor, and painted in the harsh and dry manner of Holbein—probably, indeed, the work of that artist, as the dates corresponded. ‘The formal and the marked angles, points, and projections of the armor, were a good subject for the harsh pencil of that early school. The face of the knight was, from the fading of the colors, pale and dim, like that of some being from the other world, yet the lines expressed forcibly pride and exultation. He pointed with his leading-staff, or truncheon, to the back- eround, where, in such perspective as the artist possessed, were depicted the remains of a burning church, or monastery, and four or five soldiers, in red cassocks, bearing away in triumph what seemed a blazing font or laver. . Above their heads might be traced in scroll, ‘* Lee Victor sic volutt.” “Right opposite to the picture, hung, in a niche in the wall, a complete set of tilting armor, the black and gold colors and ornaments of which ex- actly corresponded with those exhibited in the portrait. ‘The picture was one of those which, from something marked in the features and expression, attract the observation even of those who are ignorant of art. The Independent looked at it until a smile passed transiently over his clouded brow. Whether he smiled-to see the grim old cavalier employed in desecrating l¢WOODSTOCK. 37 a religious house—(an pee palen much conforming to the prac- tice of his own eae vether he smiled in cont tempt of the old painter’s harsh and dry mode of w orking—or whether the sight of this romans ble portrait revived some other ide eas, the under- keeper could not decide. The smile passed aw ay in an instant, as the soldier looked to the oriel windows. The recesses within them raised a step or two from the wall. In one was placed a walnut-tree reading desk, and a huge stuffed arm- chair, covered with Spanish le ather. A little cabinet stood beside, with some of its shuttles and drawers open, displaying hawks’ bells, dog-whistles, instruments for trim- ming falcons’ feathers, bridle -bits of various constructions, and other trifles connected with silvan sport. The other little recess was differently furnished. There lay some articles of needlework on a small tab ole, besides a lute, with a book having some airs written down in it, and a frame for working em broidery, Some tapestry was displayed around the recess, with more attention to ornament than was visible in the rest of the apartment; the arrangement of a few bow-pots, with such flowers as the fac ling season afforded, showed also the superintendence of female taste. Tomkins cast an eye of careless regard upon these subjects of female occupation, then stepped into the further window, and began to turn-the leaves of a folio, which lay open on the read- ing-desk, apparently with some interest. Joceline, who had determined to watch his motions without interfering with them, was standing at some distance in dejected silence when a door behind the tapestry suddenly opened, and a pretty village maid tripped out with a napkin in her hand, as if she had been about some household duty. ‘“ How now, Sir Impudence ?” she said to Joceline, in a smart tone; “what do you here prowling about the apartments when the master is not to home?” But instead of the answer which perhaps she expected, Joce- line Joliffe cast a mournful glance toward the soldier in the oriel window, as if to make what he said fully intelligible, and eae with a dejected appearance and voice, “ Alack, my pretty Phoebe, there come those here that have more right or might than any of us, and will use little ceremony in coming when they will, and staying while they please.” He darted another glance at Tomkins, who still seemed busy with the book before him, then sidled close to the astonished girl, who had continued looki ing alternately at the keeper and at the stranger, as if she had been unable to understand the words38 WOODSTOCK. of the first, or to comprehend the meaning of the second being Present. “Go,” whispered Joliffe, approaching his mouth so near her cheek, that is breath waved the curls of her hair; “go my dearest Phcehe, trip it as fast as a fawn down to my I dee ==! will soon be there, and ”’ ‘Your lodge, indeed!” said Phcebe; “you are very bold, for a poor killbuck that never fris a dun deer— Your lodge, indeec think.” “‘ Hush, hush ! Phcebe—there is no time for jesting. Down to my hut, I say, like a deer, for the knight and Mrs. Alice are both there, and I fear will not return hither again.—All’s a girl—and our evil days are come at last with a ven- eance—we are fairly at bay ae fairly hunted down.” } V7 y refAOTre cave ehtened any thing before save 1!—I am like to go there, I 2 ~ Can this be, Joceline?” said the poor girl, turning to the keeper, with an expression of sy ht in her countenance, which she had hitherto averted in rural coquetry. “ As sure, my dearest Phoebe, as ’—— The rest of the asseveration was lost in Phcebe’s ear, so closely did the keeper’s lips approach it ; and if they approached so very near as to touch her cheek, grief, like impatience, hath its privileges, and poor Phoebe had enough of serious alarm to prevent her from demurring upon such a trifle. Pp But no trifle was the ap pro: ich of Joceline’s lips to Pheebe’s pretty though sunburnt cheek, in the estimation of the Inde- pendent, who, a little bef re the object of Joceline’s vigilance, had been more lately in his turn the <= observer of the keeper’s demeanor, so soon as the interview betwixt Phcebe and him had become so interesting. And when he remarked the close- ness of Joceline’s argument, he raised his voice to a pitch of harshness that would have rivaled that of an ungreased and rusty saw, and which at once made Joceline and Pheebe spring six feet apart, each in contrary directions, and if Cupid was of the party must have sent him out at the window like a wild duck flying from a culverin. Instant ly throwing himself into the attitude of a preacher and a reprover of vice, “‘ Hownow !”’ he exel: auneth “ shameless and im ipudent as you are !—What— chambering and wantoning in our very presence !—H ow—would you play your pranks before the steward of the Commissioners of the High Court of Parliament, as ye would m a booth at the fulsome fair, or amidst the trappings and tracings of a profane dancing school, where the scoundrel minstrels make their un- godly weapons to squeak, ‘ Kiss and be kind, the fiddler’s blind ? -But here,” he said, dealing a perilous thump upon the vol-WOODSTOCK. 39 ‘“* Here is the King and | high priest of those vice S and '—Here is he, whom men of fol ly profanely call this !—Here is he, whom princes chose for their cabinet- H is he, whom x for tl binet naids of honor take for their bed-fellow !— cher of fine words, foppery and folly— thump upon the si anne seam oh! 1e, , at was ‘th 1e Brot folio—beloved of tl 3s and Condel*—it was the editig scatiiiade on thee, William rhate’er of such lawless idleness and im- led the land since thy day!” heavy accusation,” said Joceline, the bold whose temper could not be long overawed : is Our master’s old favorite. W ill of Stratford, very buss that has been snatched since James’s lous reckoning truly—but I wonder who is spon- ls and 2 S did before his day?” said 4 me, j ae mple for id: +; rnished with thor in the flesh, he uld you be drunk, uld you plunge in rence, as with the book is the well- overrun the land deniers, murder- t, haunting unclean Away with him, ‘with his wicked -d bones! ~~ n we passedS tratford, Wal ; but that our march ay le was after you with his cavaliers, incorrigible Joceline. o -rince J Hemming and Condell, 1623.40 WOODSTOCK. “T say,” continued the zealous trooper, raising his voice and extending his arm—“ but that our march was by command hasty, and that we turned not aside in our riding, closing our ranks each one upon the other as becomes men of war, I had torn on that day the bones of that preceptor of vice and de- bauchery from the grave, and given them to the next dunghill, { would have made his memory.a scoff and a hissing!” “That is the bitterest thing he has said yet,” observed the keeper. ‘ Poor Will would have lked the hissing worse than alli the Tesh “Will the gentleman say any more?” inquired Phcebe in a whisper. ‘‘ Lack-a-day, he talks brave words, if one knew but what they meant. But itis a mercy our good knight did not see him ruffle the book at that rate—Mercy on us, there would certainly have been bloodshed.—But oh, the father—see how he is twisting his face about !—Is he ill of the colic, think’st thou, Joceline? Or, may I offer him a glass of strong waters?” ‘“ Hark thee hither, wench!” said the keeper, “he is but loading his blunderbuss for another volley ; and while he turns up his eyes, and twists about his face, and clenches his fist, and shuffles and tramples with his feet in that fashion, he is bound to take no notice of anything. I would be sworn to cut his purse, if he had one, from his side, without his feel- ieeat,”’ ‘La! Joceline,” said Phoebe; ‘and if he abides here in this turn of times, I dare say the gentleman will be easily served.” “ Care not thou about that,” said Joliffe ; “ but tell me softly and hastily what is in the pantry?” ‘Small housekeeping enough,” said Pheebe ; “a cold capon and some comfits and the great standing venison pasty, with plenty of spice—a manchet or two besides, and that is all.” “Well, it will serve for a pinch—wrap thy cloak round thy comely body—get a basket and a brace of trenchers and towels, they are heinously impoverished down yonder—carry down the capon and the manchets—the pasty must abide with this same soldier and me, and the pie-crust will serve us for bread.” “Rarely,” said Phoebe ; “I made the paste myself—it is as thick as the walls of Fair Rosamond’s Tower.” “Which two pairs of jaws would be long in gnawing through, work hard as they might,” said the keeper. “ But what liquor is there?” “Only a bottle of Alicant, and one of sack, with the stone jug of strong waters,” answered Phoebe,WOODSTOCK. AY ‘Put the wine-flasks into thy basket,” said Joceline, “the knight must not lack his evening draught—and down with thee to the hut like a lapwing. There is enough for supper, and to-morrow is a new day.—Ha! by heaven I thought yonder man’s eye watched us—No—he only rolled it round him in a brown study—Deep enough doubtless, as they all are.—But d—n him, he must be bottomless if | cannot sound him before the night’s out.—Hie thee away, Phoebe.” But Phoebe was arural coquette, and, aware that Joceline’s situation gave him no advantage of avenging the challenge in a fitting way, she whispered in his ear, “Do you think our knight’s friend, Shakspeare, really found out all these naughty devices the gentleman spoke of ?” Off she darted while she spoke, while Joliffe menaced future vengeance with his finger, as he muttered, “Go thy way, Phoebe Mayflower, the lightest-footed and lightest-hearted wench that ever tripped the sod in Woodstock Park !—After her, Bevis, and bring her safe to your master at the hut.” The large grayhound arose like a human servitor who had received an order, and followed Phebe through the hall, first licking her hand to make her sensible of his presence, and then putting himself to a slow trot, so as best to accommodate him- self to the light pace of her whom he convoyed, whom Jfoceline | < had not extolled for her activity without due reason. While : ¢ Pheebe and |] the Lodge. The Independent now seemed to start as if from a reverie. “Is the young woman gone?” said he. “Ay, marry is she,” said the keeper = “ance th your wor- ship hath further commands, you must rest contented with male attendance.” ~ Commands—-umph—I think the damsel might have tar ried for another exhortation,” said the soldier—* truly, I pro- fess my mind was much inclined toward her for her edifica- tion.” “Oh, sir,” replied Joliffe, “ she will be at church next Sun- day, and if your military reverence is pleased again to hold forth amongst us, she will have use of the doctrine with the rest. But young maidens of these parts hear no private homi- lies.—And what is now your pleasure? Will you look at the other rooms, and at the few plate articles which have been lett? “Umph—no,” said the Independent—“ It wears late, and gets dark—thou hast the means of giving us beds, friend! ” » Better you never slept in,” replied the keeper. er guardian thread the forest glades, we return to ©SMG GR At eee SLiitoaakist A Aes eee WOODSTOCK. fire, and a light, and some small pittance £ of creature-comforts tor refreshment of the outward man a3 continued the soldier. ‘And wood for a “Without doubt,” replied the keeper, displaying a prudent anxiety to Baan this important personage, In afew minutes a great standir ng Cc: andlestick was placed on an oaken table. The mighty venison pasty, adorned with parsley, was placed on the board on a clean napkin; the stone bottle of strong waters, with a black- jack full of ale, formed comfortable appendages; and to thi af meal sat down in social E le k nanner the soldier, accupying a great elbow-chair, and the At a ee ee ter Toes ommod: ation Li TY Ai k ce ee te el : o : a Ct Of a StO Gie Atle Opposite Sslae O£ the { ible, Thus PBS iat employed, our history leaves them for the present. Yon path of f greensward Winds round by sparry grot and gay pavilion ; There is no flint to gail thy paadct | foot, rhere’s ready shelter from each breeze or shower.— =p 4 : ; But duty guides not that way—see her stand, With wand entwined with amaranth, near yon cliffs, Oft where she leads thy blood must mark thy fo ytsteps, Oft where she leads thy hea l must bear t storm, And thy shrunk form endure hx it, cold and hunger ; But sne will guide tnee up to ne l © f) ; I ; Which he who gains seems native of the sky Whi thly s he stretch’d b feet ] Diminish’d, shrunk, and valueles Iu reader cannot have forgotten that after his scuffle with the € Commonwealth soldier, Sir Henry Lee, with his daughter Alice, had de >parted to take refuge in the hut of the stou keeper li iff Re ks ON os ere Bea ad la ilked slow. as betore, for the old snignt was at once oppressed by p ‘rceiving these last vestiges of e hands of republicans. and by the recollec- tion of his recent defi at. At tim es he paused, and with his arms folded on his bosom, recalled - the circumstances attending his expuaion trom a house so long his home. Tt seemed to him that, like the ch: ampions of romance of whom he had sometimes read, he himse lt was retiring from the post which it was his ated by a Paynim knight, for whom the ad- } y 1 duty to guard, gee a ie venture had ia reserved by fate, Alice had her own painfulWOODSTOCK. 5 - 43 subjects of recollection, not had the tenor of her last conversa- tion with her father been so pleasant as to make her anxious to renew it until his temper should be more composed ; for Al , 1} it] ba with a1 nm, and much love to is dai ohter, age ant : si i . Lol Ss L . YY 8 7 misfortunes, which of late ca 1 oiven ft h ) ] ter Lett a 1ad given to the good knicht’: 7 1 excellent dispos u l ame thicker and thicker passions a wayward irritability unknown to his better days. His daughter, anc one or two a is decayed fortunes, and pitied him even e referred to an ize. Ne Sard. -\ tee and that fellow rather than that his savacity saw y ht himself obliged to remained with Toc ine, Henry: “he leaves me ‘There is a feel ng in it 1s called, of dumb from misfortune. The very k from the herd; ; ad ul on him and worry DUC hat may be true of the more irrational kind of animals among each other,” said Alice, “for their whole life is well nigh a warfare: but the d ¢ leaves his own race to attach himself to ours: forsakes. for his master, the company, food, and pleasure of his own l; and surely the fidelity of such a ; . ¥ 1 C been in particular, ought not to be lichtly suspected.’ [ am not anery with the dog, Alice; I am only sorry,” re- plied her father. “TI have read in faithful chronicles that when Richard II. and Henry of Bolingbroke were at Berkeley Castle, 1. dog of the same kind deserted the Ki ¢, Whom he had always 1ttended upon, and attached himself ti Nenry, whom he then saw for the first time. Richard foretold, from the desertion of his favorite, his approaching deposition. The dog was after- ward kept at Woodstock, and Bevis is said to be of his breed, | which was heedfully kept up. What I might foretell of mischief from his desertion, I cannot guess, but my mind assures me it )C ides no 9 OG. * The story occurs, I think, in Froissart’s Chronicles BYttnanasieatthbl ven ermcan id aame tebbaiéalinits44 WOODSTOCK. There was a distant rustling among the withered leaves, a bouncing or g all ping sound on the path, and the favorite dog instantly j: yined his master. “Come into court, old knave,” said Alice, cheerfully, ‘and defend thy character, which is Sells nigh endangered by this absence.” But the dog only paid her courtesy by gamboling around them, and instantly plunged b back again as fast as he could scamper. “ How now, knave?” said the knight; “thou art too well trained, surely, to take up the chase without orders.” A minute more showed them Phoebe Mayflower approaching, her light pace so little impeded by the burden which she bore, that she joined her master and young mistress just as they arrived -the keeper’s hut, which was the boundary of their journey. pee who had shot eon to pay his compliments to Sir Henry, his master, had returned again to his immediate duty, the escorting Phoebe and her cargo of provisions. ‘The whole party stood presently assembled before the fe of the keeper’s hut. In pote times a substantial stone habitation, fit for the yeoman-keeper of a royal walk had adorned this place. A fair Spring § en out near the spot, and once traversed yards Ane courts, ‘attached to well-built and convenient kennels and mews. But in some of the skirmishes which were common during ihe civil wars, this little silvan dwelling had been attacked and defended, stormed and burnt. A neighboring squire, of the Parliament side of the question, took advantage of Sir Henry Lee’s absence, who was then in Charles’s camp, and of the decay of the royal cause, and had, without scruple, carried off the hewn stones, and such building materials as the fire left unconsumed, and repaired his own manor-house with them. The yeoman-keeper, therefore, our friend Jocel ine, had con- structed, for his own accommodation, and that of the ‘old woman he calle d his dame, a wattled hut, such as his own labor, with that of a neighbor or two, had erected in the course of a few days. The walls were plastered with clay, white-washed, and covered with vines and other creeping plants ; the roof was neatly aes and the whole, though merely a hut, had, by the neat-handed Joliffe, been so ‘arranged as not to disgrace the condition of the dweller. The knight advanced to the entrance; but the ingenuity of the architect, for want of a better lock to the door, which itself was but of wattles curiously twisted, had contrived a mode of securing the latch on the inside with a pin, which prevented it frem rising; and in this manner it was at Bey fastened. Conceiving that this was some precaution of Joliffe’s old house- 9)WOODSTOCK. abe of whose deafness they were all aware, Sir Henry raised his voice to demand admittance, but in vain. Irritated at this delay, he pressed the door at once with foot and hand in a way whic f the frail barrier was unable to resist ; it gave way accord- ingly, and the ee thus forcibly entered the kitchen, or out- ward apartment, of his servant. In the midst of the floor, and with a posture w hich indicated embarrassment, stood a youthful stranger in a riding-suit. os This may be my last act of authority here,” said the knight, seizing the stranger by the collar, “ but I am still Ranger of Woodstock for this night at least—Who or what art thou?” The stranger aap ed the riding-mantle in which his face was muffled, and at the same time fell on one knee. “Your poor kinsman, Markham Everard,” he said, ‘‘ who came hither for your sake, although he fears you will scarce make him welcome for his own.” Sir Henry started back, but recovered himself in an instant, as one who recollected that he had a part of dignity to perform. He stood erect, therefore, and replied, with considerable assumption of stately ceremony : ‘Fair kinsman, it pleases me that you are come to Wood- stock upon the very first night that, for many years which have passed, is likely to promise you a worthy or a welcome re- ception.” “Now God grant it be so, that I rightly hear and duly understand you,” said the young man ; while Alice, though she was silent, kept her looks fixed on her father’s face, as if desir- ous to know whether his meaning was kind toward his nephew, which her knowledge of his character inclined her greatly to doubt. The knight meanwhile darted a sardonic look, first on his nephew, then on his daughter, and proceeded—“‘I need not, I presume, inform Mr. Markham Everard, that it cannot be our purpose to entertain him, or even to offer him a seat, in this poor hut.” “T will attend you most willingly to the Lodge,” said the young gentleman. “I had, indeed, judged you were already there for the ev ening, and feared to intrude upon you. —_ But if you would permit me, my dearest uncle, to escort my kins- woman and you back to the Lodge, believe me, amongst all which you have so often done of good and kind, you never conferred benefit that will be so dearly prized.” “ You mistake me greatly, Mr. Markham Everard,” replied the knight. “It is not our purpose to return to the Lodge to-night, nor, by Our Lady, to-morrow neither. I meant but 7 ) RE ae cai eel eee ne CE os a arene eeNt i a ~ 46 WOODSTOCK. to intimate to you in all courtesy, that at Woodstock Heder you will find those for whom you are fitting society, and wh doubtless, will afford you a willing welcome; which £, sig, in this my present retreat, do not presume to offer to a person of your consequence “ For Heaven's sake,” said the young man, turning to Alice, tell me how I am to understand language so mysterious.” \lice, to prevent his i aeese the restrained anger of her father, eum pedir herself to answer, though it was with diff- culty, “‘ We are exp elie -d from the Lox ige by. soldiers.” ““ Expelled—by s ldiers!” e3 «claimed Everard, in surprise— there is no legal warrant for this.” “None at all,” answered the knight, in the same tone of cutting irony which he had all along used, “and yet as lawful a warrant, as for aught that has been wrought in E ngland this twelvemonth and more. You are, I think, or were, an Inns-of- 66 Court-man—marry, sir, your enjoyment of your profession is ike that lease which a prodigal wishes to have of a wea thy widow. You have already survived. the law which you studied, and its expiry doubtless has not been without a legacy—some decent pickings, some merciful increases, as the phrase goes as Ie You have deserved it two w agesHee wore buff and bandoleer, as well as wielded pen and ink—lI have not heard if you held forth too.” “Think of me and speak of me as harshly as you will, sir,’ said Everard, submissively. ‘‘I have but, in this evil time, guided myself by my conscience, and my father’s. commands.” “QO; an you talk of conscience,” said. the old knight, “I must have mine eye upon you, as Hamlet says. Never yet did Puritan cheat so grossly as when he was appeali ing to his con- science; and as for thy father ?——_ He was about to proceed in a tone of the same invective, when the young man inte ne him, by saying, in a firm tone, 6. Sir Henry Lee, you have ever 1 oa thought noble—Say a me what you will, but speak not of my fé ther what the ear of a son should not endure, and which yet his arm cannot resent. To do me such wrong is to insult an unarmed mz in, or to beat a captive Sir Henry paused, as if struck by the remark. “Thou hast spoken truth in that, Mark, wert thou the blackest Puritan whom hell ever vomited, to distract an unhappy country,” “Be that as you will to think it,” replied Everard ; “ but let me not leave you to the shelter of this wretched hovel. The night is drawing to storm—let me but conduct you to the Lodge, and expel those intruders, who can, as yet at least, haveWOODSTOCK. 47 no warrant for what they do. TI will not linger a moment. be- hind them, save just to deliver my father’s message.—Grant me f k but this much, or the love you once bore me!” ae Wess shire answere d his uncle firmly, but sorrowfully, “thou speekest truth—I did love thee once. The bright-haired boy whom [| taught to ride, to shoot, to hint -whtose: hours of Nappiness were spent with me, wherever those of graver labors were employed—f did love that bov——av. and ] am weak enough to love even the memory of what he was.——But he is cone, oe —he is gone; and in his room I only behold an avowed and determined rebel to his relicion and to his king—a rebel more detestable on account of his succe ss, the more infamous through tino plundered wealth with which he hopes to gild his villany.—But I am poor, thou think’st, and should hold mv peace, lest men say, ‘ Speak, sirrah, when you should.’—Know, indigent and plundered as I am, I feel myself | L 1 dishonored in holding even but this much talk with the tool of usurping rebelsi—-Go' to: the Lodge, if thou wilt—vonder lies the way—but think not that, to regain my dwe pond there, or all the L Ever possessed in my wealthiest days, I would willingly pany thee three steps on the greensward. If I must ‘be Bom noe it shall be only when thy red-coats have tied my } I vehind me, and 1ou mayst be my fellow-traveler wilt, but not sooner.” Alice, who suffered cruelly during this d well aware that further areument wot uld only kindle the knight’s resentment still more hi hly, ventured at last, in an anxiety, to nake a sign to her cousin to break off the interview, and to retire, since her father commanded his absence in a manner so peremptory. Unhay a she was observed by Sir Henry, who, concluding that what he saw was evidence of a private under- standing betwixt the cousins, his wrath acquired new fuel, and it required the utmost exertion of vel-bonmabn d and recollec- tion of all ty, to enable him to veil his real fu mde the same ironical manner which he had adopted at the beginning of th is angry interview. If thou art afraid,” he said, “ to trace our forest glades by night, respected stranger, to whom I am perhaps bound to do honor as my successor in the charge of these w calles here seems to be a modest damsel, who will be most willing to wait on thee, and be thy bow-bearer.—Only, for her mother’s sake, let there pass some slight form of marriage between you—Ye need no license or priest in these happy days, but may be buckled like beggars in a ditch, with a hedge for a church-roof, and a tinke I bound my legs beneath my horse’s belly. r then, I grant ide if thou Y 2 eee and was =) that was due to his own digni ry al 1 u casts dened tubbaseadas 2 NeiyanasunabiiivanerncissWBbiee so eae r a 48 WOODSTOCK. for a priest. I crave pardon of you for making such an officious and simple request—perhaps you are a Ranter—or one of the family of Love, or hold marriage rites as unnecessary, as Knip- perdoling, or Jack of Leyden ? ” “¢ For mercy’s sake, forbear such dreadful jesting, my father! and do you, Markham, begone, in God’s name, and leave us to our fate—your presence makes my father rave.” ‘“ Jesting! ” said Sir Henry, ‘‘ I was never more serious— Raving !—I was never more composed—I could never brook that falsehood should approach me—I would no more bear by my side a dishonored daughter than a dishonored sword; and this unhappy day hath shown that both can fail.” “ Sir Henry,” said young Everard, “ load not your soul with a heavy crime, which be assured you do, in treating your daughter thus unjustly. It is long now since you denied her to me, when we were poor and you were powerful. I acquiesced in your prohibition of all suit and intercourse. God knoweth what I suffered—but I acquiesed. Neither is it to renew my suit that I now come hither, and have, I do acknowledge, sought speech of her—not for her own sake only, but for yours also. Destruction hovers over you, ready to close her pinions to stoop, and her talons to clutch—Yes, sir, look contemptuous as you will, such is the case ; and it is to protect both you and her that [am ere,’ “Vou refuse then my free pift,” said Sm Elenry Lee; perhaps you think it loaded with too hard conditions ? ” ‘¢ Shame, shame on you, Sir Henry;” said Everard, waxing warm in turn; ‘“‘ have your political prejudices so utterly warped every feeling of a father, that you can speak with bitter mockery and scorn of what concerns your own daughter’s honor ?—Hold up your head, fair Alice, and tell your father he has forgotten nature in his fantastic spirit of loyalty —Know, Sir Henry, that though I would prefer your daughter’s hand to ever blessing which Heaven could bestow on me, I would not accept it—my conscience would not permit me to do so— when I knew it must withdraw her from her duty to you.” “Your conscience is over scrupulous, young man ;—carry it to some dissenting rabbi, and he who takes all that comes to net, will teach thee it is sinning against our mercies to refuse any good thing that is freely offered to us.” ‘When it is freely offered and kindly offered—not when the offer is made in irony and insult—Fare thee well, Alice—if aught could make me desire to profit by thy father’s wild wish to cast thee from him in a moment of unworthy suspicion, it would be that, while indulging in such sentiments, Sir Henry 74 orWOODSTOCK. 49 Lee is tyrannically oppressing the creature, who of all others is most de ependent on his kindness—who of all others will most feel his severity, and whom, of all others, he is most bound to cherish and support.” “ Do not fear forme, Mr. Everard,” exclaimed Alice, arous- ed from her timidity by a dread of the consequences not un- likely to ensue, where civil war sets relations, as well as fellow- citizens, in opposition to each other.—‘ Oh, begone, I conjure you, Pee es ! Nothing stands betwixt me and my father’s kind- ness, but these unhappy family divisions—but your ill-timed presence here—for Heaven’s sake, leave us!” “Soh, mistress !”” answered the hot old cavalier, ‘‘ you play lady paramount already ; and who but you !—you would dictate to our train, I warrant, like Goneril and Regan! But I tell thee, no man shall leave my house—and, humble as it is, this is now my house—while he has aught to say to me that is to be a as this young man now speaks, with a bent brow anda lo y tone—Spe ak out, sir, and say your worst ! ” “Fear not my temper, Mrs. Alice,” said Everard, with equal firmness and placidity of manner; “and you Sir Henry, do not think that if I speak firmly, I mean therefore to speak in anger or officiously. You have taxed me with much, and, were I guided by the wiid spirit of romantic chivalry, much which, even from so neara relative, I ought not, as being by birth, and in the world’s estimation, a “gentleman to pass over with- out reply. Is it your pleasure to give me patient hearing ?” “If you stand on your defence,” answered the stout old knight, ‘“‘ God forbid that you should not challenge a patient ay, though your pleading were two parts disloyalty this has already lasted hearing and one blasphemy—Only, be | but too long.” “ T will, Sir Henry,” replied the young man; “yet it is hard to crowd into a few sentences the defence of a life which, though short, has been a busy one—too busy, your indignant gesture would assert. But I deny it; I have drawn my sword neither hastily, nor without due consideration, for a people whose rights have been tr ampled on, and whose consciences have been O oppressed —F rown not, sir—such is not your view of the con- test, but such is mine. For my religious principles, at which you have scoffed, believe me, that though they depend not on set forms, they are no less sincere than your own, and thus far purer—e excuse the word—that they are unmingled with the bloodthirsty dictates of a barbarous age, which you and others have called the code of chivalrous honor. Not my own natural disposition, but the better doctrine which my creed has taught, ENIDN NLT Pr rt rere erty a soc aR achiakat) pe at50 WOODSTOCK. enables: me to bear your harsh revilings without answering in 4 similar tone of wrath and reproach. You may carry insult i extremity against me at your pleasure—not on ac count of ou lationship: alone, but because I am bound in char ity t £8 entiads eas CE his3: Sir Henry, is much from one of our howe: But, with forbearance far more than this requires, I can rit at your hands the gift, which most of all things under heaven, I should desire to obtain, because duty calls upon her to ausiata and comfort you, and because it were sin t > permit you, in your blindness, to spurn your comforter fice your-side.— Farewell, sir—not in anger—but in pi ity—We may meet in a better time, Ww hen y« ur heart and your principles shall master the unha appy prejudices by which they are now overclouded.—Farewell_—~ farewell, Alice ! ”’ The last words were rep eat d twice, and in a tone of fee! ling and passionate grief, which differed utterly ym the steac ly anc d almost severe tone in which he had addre neat Si He enry Lee. eos - 2 : : A Ac 5 r LTA f rie turned and left the hut so soon as he had uttered these last words ; and as if ashamed of the tenderness which had mingled with his accents, the young Commonwealth’s-man turned and walked sternly anid resolvedly forth into the mo onlight, which now was spreading its broad light and autumnal shadows over the woodland. SO Soon: as he departed, Alice, who had been during the whole scene in the utmost te error that nee father might have en Burried, by his natural heat of tem per, from violence of language into violence of action, si ete ab n upon a settle twiste dont of willow bous BBs; like most of hatte few mov- ables, and endeavored to conceal the tears wit! sh ade compani ed the thanks she rendered in bod ken accents to Heaven. that , not- withstanding the near all lance and relationship of the parties some fatal deed had not closed an interview so Oe and so angry. Phoebe Mayflower blubbered heart ily for ompany, though she understood but littie of what had d passed ; just, in- deed, enough to enable her afterward to re dozen particular friends, that her old mravER, Sir Henry, had been perilous at igry, and almost fought with youne Master Eve.- ard, because he h 1 1 well ( ort to some half- -nig¢h carried away her young mistress. —“ And what could oe have done better ?” said Phaebe, “ seeing the old man cy id nothing left either for Mrs, Alice or himself ; and as for \ doves ae E verard arate our young lady, oh! they had o a J spoken die ia ing things to each other as are not to be found in the history of Areal us and Parthenia,* w ho, as the story-book *[“The most pleasant and delightful history of Argatus and Parthenia” was a chap-book very popular in the seventeenth century.]WOODSTOCK. 51 tells, were the truest pair of lovers in all Arcadia, and Oxford: se 3 di OD anne Old Goody Jellycot had popped her scarlet hood into the 1 more than once while the 7 1€ was proceeding ; but, as the worthy dame was parcel bli ena more than parcel aeat, know! heuel ledge was excluded by two oF 1cipal entrances ; and n ae instinct, that ’ chose J Joceline’s hut for the scene af their dispute was as great a mystery as the “ a tL Oo ; retained on his memory NA os 7 : ] Lier, ANE a ah eae g Bae Mark,” he said, “mark this, Alice—the devil can quote Scrip > for his purpose. Why, this young fanatic cousin of thine, with no more beard than I have seen ona clown playing Maid Marion on May-day, when the villace barber had : = aved E o I him in too great a hurry, shall match any bea fo P Ose rlar . a : : ] ee ‘ i L & with a ae ready mounted from the Slee. and the : 4 hat not e lf iz Tay & & Wnole. cait- ‘ C whi kin in each of them,—but let 3 boots | S 2 - tha . oe woe pe see +4 — is um Wear on the one side of his head acastor, with a plume be- fitting his quality ; give him a good Toledo by his side, with a me deel mol an Sle : to Ge a a a broidered felt and an | hilt, instead of the ton of iron ee A ea Be : black AANCTEW Frerrara ; put mouth—and, blood and wounds! contained in that RE peste a few smart words in his ! madam, Says 1s) Prithee, truce wit] “and tell me if you sober reason?” 1 this nOBREDEE Wildr: Bee said Everard, are sober enough to hear a few words of “ Pshaw ! man, I did but crack a brace of quarts with yon- der puritanic, roundheaded soldiers, up yonder at the town: and rat me but I passed myself for the best man of ane party Fy twanged my nose,-and turned up my eyes, as I took my can— Pah! the very wine tasted of hypocrisy. I think the rogue corporal smoked something at last—as for the common fellows, never stir, but ¢heyp ; | y asked me to say grace over another quart ! ? “This is just what I wished to speak with you about, Wild- ‘ake,”’ said Markham—“ You hold me, I am sure, for your { s Inn— irithous, and, to sum up the whole with a puri- tanic touch, Davi id and Jonathan, all in one breath. Not even politics, the wedge that rends families and friendships asunder, as iron rives oa 1ave been able to split us.” athe ss King r £O Nott “True as steel. Chums. at College and at Lincoln’: we have been Nisus and Euryalus, Theseus and P Orestes and Pylades: 1 answered Markham: “and when you followed the ingham, and I enrolled under K’ssex, we swore, at our parting, that whichever side was victorious, he of us who adhered to it should protect his less fortunate comrade.” ‘* Surely cordingly? Di d- you not save me from han ging? and am I not indebted to you for the bread I eat?” £ “I have but done that which, had the times been otherwise, Z , man ae ; and have you not protected me ac- Facer aT TED ros ta my . Cy eee Nr6 WOODSTOCK. S you, my dear Wildrake, would, I am sure, have done for me. But, as I said, that is just what I wished to speak to you about. Why render the task of protecting you more difficult than it must necessarily be at any rate? Why thrust thyself into the com- pany of soldiers, or such like where thou art sure to be warmed into betraying thyself? Why come hallooing and whooping out cavalier ditties, like a drunken trooper of Prince Rupert, or one of Wilmot’s swaggering body-guards?”’ ‘“‘ Because I may have been both one and t’other in my day, for aught that you know,” replied Wildrake. “‘ But, oddsfish ! is it necessary I should always be reminding you, that our obli- gation of mutual protection, our league of offensive and defen- sive, as I may call it, was to be carried into effect without reference to the politics or religion of the party protected, or the least obligation on him to conform to those of his friend ?” “True,” said Everard , “‘ but with this most necessary qual- ification, that the party should submit to such outward con- formity to the times as should make it more easy and safe for his friend to be of service to him. Now, you are perpetually breaking forth, to the hazard of your own safety and my credit.” “TI tell you, Mark, and I would tell your namesake the apostle, that you are hard onme. You have practiced sobriety and hypocrisy from your hanging sleeves till your Geneva cas- sock—from the cradle to this day,—and it is a thing of nature to you; and you are surprised that a rough, rattling, honest fellow, accustomed to speak truth all his life, and especially when he found it at the bottom of a flask, cannot be so perfect a prig as thyself—Zooks! there is no equality betwixt us—A trained diver might as well, because he can retain his breath for ten minutes without inconvenience, upbraid a poor devil for being like to burst in twenty seconds, at the bottom of ten fathoms water—And, after all, considering the guise is so new to me, I think I bear myself indifferently well—try me !” ‘Are there any more news from Worcester fight ?’’ asked Everard, in a tone so serious that it imposed on his companion, who replied in his genuine cnaracter— ‘‘ Worse !—d——n me, worse an hundred times than reported —totally broken. Noll hath certainly sold himself to the devil, and his lease will have an end one day—that is all our present comfort.” “What! and would this be your answer to the first redcoat who asked the question ? ” said Everard. ‘* Methinks you would and a speedy passport to the next corps de garde.” “Nay, nay,’ answered Wildrake, “I thought you asked me In your own person.——Lack-a-day! a great mercy-—a glorify- oO >WOODS TO CIE SY ing mercy—a crow ning mercy—a vouchsafing—an uplifting-— I profess the malignants are scattered from Dan to Beersheba —sml eee hip and thigh, even until the going down of the Sunil “Hear you aught of Colonel Thornhaugh’s wounds?” ‘Ele 1s deack % answered Wildrake, “that’s one comfort— the roundheaded rascal !—Nay, hold! it was but a trip of the tongue—I meant, the sweet godly 7 youth.” And hear you aught of the young man, King of Scotland, as they call him?” said Everard. ‘Nothing, but that he is hunted like a partridge on the mountains, “May God deliver him, and confound his enemies! —Zoons; Mark Everard, I can fool it no longer. Do you not ren 1ember, that at the Lincoln’s-Inn gambols—though you did not mingle much in them, I think—I used always to play as well as any of them when it came to the action, but they could never get me to rehearse conformably. It’s the same at this day. I hear your voice, and I answer to it in the true tone of my heart; but when I am in the company of your snuffling friends, you have seen me act my part indifferent well.” “But indifferent, indeed,” replied Everard; “ however, there is little call on you to do aught, save to be modest and silent. Speak little, and lay aside, if you can, your big oaths and swaggering looks—set your hat even on your brows.” «Ay. that is the curse! I have been always noted for the jaunty manner in which I wear my castor—Hard when a man’s merits become his enemies!” ‘You must remember you are my clerk.” Secretary,” answered Wildrake; “let it be secretary if you love me.” “It must be clerk, and nothing else—plain clerk—and remember to be civil and obedient,” replied Everard. ‘But you should not lay on your commands with so much ostentatious superiority, Master Markham Everard. Remem- ber I am your senior of three years’ standing. Confound me, if I know how to take it!” “Was ever such a fantastic wronghead !—For my sake, if not for thine own, bend thy freakish fol y to listen to reason. Think that I have incurred both risk and shame on thy ac- count.” “Nay, thou art a right good fellow, Mark,” replied the cavalier; “and for thy sake I will do much—but remember to cough and cry hem! when thou seest me like to break bounds. And now, tell me whither we are bound for the night.” “fo Woodstock Lodge, to look after my uncle’s property,” , Tyson ee ee ees) Sys UIE TE aT TarasSige ree ee ee WOODSTOCK. 58 answered Markham Everard; “I am informed that soldiers have taken possession—Yet how could that be if thou foundest the party drinking in Woodstock? ” “There was a kind of commissary, or steward, or some such rogue had gone down to the Lodge,” replied Wildrake eed had a peep at him.” “indeed 4 7 re Everard. " Ay, verily,” said Wildrake, “to speak your own language. Why, as I passed through the pz ark in quest of you, scarce half- an-hour since, I saw a light in the LodgeStep this w ay, you will see it yourself.” “In the north-west angle?” returned Everard. “TItis from a window in what they call Victor Lee’s apartment.” “Well,” resumed Wildrake, “I> had been long one of Lundsford’ Seavs bit f means. SBesides, pretty cousin, I could.” s lads, and well used to patroling duty—So, rat me, leave a light in my rear, without knowing what it Mark, thou hadst said so much to me of thy thought I might as well have a Peep, Inf do you antonness! But * Thoughtless, incorrigible man! to pel dangers XPOse yourself and your friends, in mere w £0 On,’ “By this fair moonshine, I believe thou art jealous, Mark / J ; Everard !” replied his Bay companion; ‘‘ there is no occasion : for, in any case, I, who was to see the lac steeled by y, was ty J) honor against the charms of my friend’s Chloe—Then the so could make no comparisons to thy lady was not to see me, disadvantage, thou knowest—Lastly, as it fell out, neither of us saw the other at all.” “Of that Iam well aware. Mrs. Alice left the Lodge long before sunset, and never returned. wi hat didst thou see to in- troduce with such preface ?”’ —a “Nay, no great matter,” replied Wildrake upon a sort of buttress (for I mewed in any “only, getting can climb like any cat that ever gutter), and holding on by the vines and creepers which grew around, I obtained a station where ] could see into the inside of that same parlor thou spokest of just now. “€nd what saw’st thou there? ” once more Everard. demanded “ Nay, no great matter, as I said before,” replied the cay lier; “for in these times it is no new thing to see churls carousing in royal or noble chambets. I saw two rascallions engaged 1 In emptying a solemn stoup of strong waters, and de- spatching a huge venison pasty, w hich greasy mess, for theirWOODSTOCK. 59 convenience, they had placed on a lady’s work-table—One of them was tryin vail ain on. a-lute.? ‘The profane villains!” exclaimed Everard, “it was ¢ = “ Well said, comrade—I am glad your phlegm can be moved. I did but throw in these incidents e tl 1e lute and the table, to try if it was po pale to get a spark of human spirit out of you, besanctified a you are,” ‘What like were the men?” said vor ing Everard. ‘The one a slouch-hatted, long-cloz ake .d, sour-faced fanatic, like the rest of you, whom I took to be the stewa ae Or com- ke n the town; the other was a short cnife at his vate and a long quar- ; e him—a black-haired knave, with white teeth and a merry countenance—one of the under- rangers or 0w-bearers of these walks, I fancy.” missary | heard ] sturdy fellow, with a wood-k terstaff lying ‘“‘’They must fe been Desborough’ s favorite, trusty Tom- kins,” said Everard, “and Joceline Joliffe, the keeper. Tom- on the outside: the fanatic fellow took out a pistol—as ] 4 Peet req Tete a ca rine ac » YE lave always such texts In readiness hanging beside the now’st ee oo eee his hunt- oth to a roar and a Brin—thou must oO fat Siac aS TS] 3 bday Sale ittle clasped Bible, thou Y gf he es j 1 x pole— £ eared: them aboon—I learned the trick from a French player, who could twist his jaws into a pair of nut- crackers di ] { gyass, and ran. oi and eee | FORRES, myself sweetly on the , keeping the dark side of the righ persuaded they hought I was an kinsman, the devil, come among them un- i? sO ppingly Wildrake,” “Thou art most fearfully rash, said his come anion; “we are now bound for the house—what if they hould remember thee ? ” ROS ea nant OECr TTS aes Rea TsPraha eee ehheee eth eset ata reaents Re ae ee Zz 6 WOODSTOCK. “Why, it is no treason, is it? No one has paid for peep- ing since Tom of Coventry’s days; and if he came in fora reckoning, belike it was for a better treat than mine. But EuSt me, “they will no more know me than a man who had only seen your friend Noll at a conventicle of saints, would know the same Oliver on horseback, and charging with his lobster- tailed squadron ; or the same Noll cracking a jest and a bottle with wicked Waller the poet.” “Hush! not a word of Oliver, as thou dost value thyself and me, If is-il jesting with the rock you may split on.—But here is th 1€ gate—we will disturb these honest gentlemen’s re- creations.’ As he spoke, he applied the large and ponderous knocker to the hall-door. “ Rat-tat-tat-too!”’ said Wildrake; “there is a fine alarm to you cuckolds and roundheads.” He then half- mimicked, half-sung, the march so called :— *“Cuckolds, come dig euehal ds, come dig ; Ss? Round about cuckolds, come dance to my jig!” “By Heaven! this passes Midsummer frenzy,” said Ever- ard, turning angrily to him. ‘Not a bit, not a bit,” replied Wildrake : “ it is but a slight expectoration, just like what one makes bet fore beginning a long speech. I will be grave for an hour together, now I have got that point of war out of m y head.” As he spoke, steps were heard in the hall, and the wicket of the great door was partly opened, but secured with a chain in Case of accidents. The visage of Tomkins, and that of Joceline beneath it, appeared at the chink, illuminated by the lamp which the latter held in his hand, and Tomkins demanded the meaning of this alarm. “I demand instant admittance !”? said Everard. “ Joliffe, you know me well ?” ‘I do sir,” replied Joceline, “and could admit you with all muy heart ; ‘but, alas } ‘sir, you see I am not key-keeper—Here is the gentleman whose warrant I must walk by—The Lord help me, mae times are such as they be!” “* And wi nen that gentleman, who I think may be Master Desborough’s valet ?——_ : “ His honor’s unworthy secretary, an it please you,” intet- posed Tomkins; while Wildrake whispered in Everard’s ear, ~ I will be no longer secretary. Mark, thou wert quite right— the clerk must be the more gentlemanly c alling.’ “And if you are Master Desborough’s secret ary, | presumeWOODSTOCK. 6x you know me and my condition well enough,” said Everard, addressing the Independent, “not to hesitate to admit me and my a attendant to a night’s quarters in the Lodge? ‘‘ Surely not, surely not,” said the Independent—“ that i 1S; 1 your worship thinks you would be better accommodated here than up at the house of entertainment in the town, which men unprofitably call St. George’s Inn. peor is but confined ac- commodation here, your honor—and we have been frayed out of our lives already by the visitation of peta his fiery dart is now quenched.” “This may be all well in its place, Sir Secretary,” said Everard: “and you may find a corner for it when you are next tempted to play the preacher. But I will take it for no apology for keeping me here in the cold harvest wind; and if not pres- ently received, and suitably too, I will report you to your master for insolence in your office.’ The secretary of Desborough did not dare offer further op- position ; for it is well known that Desborough himself only held his consequence as a kinsman of Cromwell - and the Lord General, who was well-nigh paramount already, was known to be strongly favorable both to the elder and younger Everard. It is true, they were Presbyterians and he an Independent ; and that though sharing those feelings of correct mot rality and more devoted religious feeling, by which, with few exceptions, the Parliamentary party were distinguished, the Everards were not disposed to carry these attributes to the extreme of enthus- lasm, practiced by so many others at the time. Yet it was well known that whatever might be Cromwell’s own religious creed, he was not uniformly bounded by it in the choice of his favor- ites, but extended his countenance to those who could serve him, even although, according to the phrase of the time, they came out of the darkness of Egypt. The character of the elder Everard stood very high for wisdom and sagacity ; besides, being of a good family and competent fortune, his adherence would lend a dignity to any side he might espouse. Then his son had been a distinguished and successful soldier, remarkable for the discipline he maintained among his men, the bravery which he showed in the time of action, and the humanity with which he was always ready to qualify the consequences of vic- tory. Such men were not to be neglected, when many signs combined to show that a parties in the state, who had ‘suc- cessfully accomplished t e deposition and death of the King, were speedily to oe among themselves about the division of the s poils. The two Everards were therefore much es by C ae ell, and their influence with him was supposed to be MEINEDTRES Ie ENBe ey Se steer’ y gece eee St oe a Hal L 62 WOODSTOCK. SO great, that trusty Master Secretar expose himself to risk, by contendi such a trifle as a nigh a Ss lodging, oceline was active on his. bide tion lights were obtained— more wood ue: on the fire—and the two newly arrived strangers were introduced into Victor Lee’s ae as it was called, from the picture over the chimney-piece, which we have already describec i It was several minutes ere Colonel Ever- ard could recover his_general stoicism of deportment, so strongly was he impresse sd | by finding himself in the apartment, under whose roof he had passed so many of the hap] of his life. There was the cabinet with on h ce ling gs of y Tomkins cared not to ing with Colonel Everard for siest hours which he had seen opened delight when a Henry Lee deigned to give him instructions in fishing, and to exhibit hooks and lines, toge ther with ie the materials for making the artificia] fly, then little known. There hung the ancient family p picture, which from some odd mysterious expressions of his uncle relating to it, had become to his boyhood, nz ty, his early youth, a sub. ject of curiosit y and of fear. Te remembered how, when left alone in the apartment, the searching eyes of the old ways bent upon his, in whateve placed himself, and how his chi at a phenomenon, for wl With these came of his early walrior t part of the room he dish imagination was perturbed 1ich he could not account. a thousand dearer and warmer recollections attachment to his pretty cousin Alice, sdhet he assisted her at her lessons, brought water for her flowers, or accompanied her while she sung; and he remembered that while her father looked at them with a good- humored an careless smile, he had o nce heard him mutter, “ And if it shoulc hy, it might be best for both,” and the theories of happiness he had reared on these words. All these visions had been dispelled by the trumpet of war, which called Sir Henry Lee and pense lf te © opposite sides; and the transactions of this very day had show n, that even Everard’s success as a soldier anda statesman se emed absolutely to prohibit the chance of their bei ng revived, He was waked out of this unpleasing reverie by tl proach of Joceline, who, being possibly a seasoned toper, had made the additional] arrangements with more expedition and accuracy, then could have been expected from a person en- gaged as he had been since night-fall, He now wished to know the Colonel’s directions for the night. ; : is seemed al ] 1 J a turn out so—vy 1€ ap- “ Would he eat anything ? ” “ No.”WOODSTOCK. “ Did his honor choose to accept Sir Henry Lee’s bed, which was ready prepared ? ” Yess ‘ That of Mistress Alice Lee should be prepared for the Secretary.” On pain of thine ears—No,” replied Everard, ‘* Where then was the worthy Secretary to be quartered? ‘in the dog-kennel, if you list,” replied Colonel Everard ; “ but,” added he, stepping to the sleeping apartment of Alice, which opened from the parlor, locking it, and taking out the key, “no one shall profane this chamber.” “Had his honor any other commands for the night ?” ‘‘ None, save to clear the As of yonder man. My clerk will remain with me—I have orders which must be. writ- ten out. Yet stay—Thou gavest my letter this morning to Mistre Ss Alice??? eldids” Tell me, good Joceline, what she said when she received we” “She seemed much concerned, sir she wept a little—but indeed she seemed very much distressed ‘ And what message did she send to me ?” ** None, may it please your Hoop eecne began to say, ‘ Tell my cousin Everard that I will communicate my uncle’s kind purpose to my father, if I can get fittin ng opportunity—but that [ greatly fear ’—and there checked herself, as it were, and said. ‘I will write to my cousin; and as it may be late ere I have an opportunity of speaking with my father, do thou come for my answer after service.’—So I went to church myself, to while away the time; but when I returned to the Chase, I ae this man had summoned my master to surrender, and, right or wrong, I must put him in possession of the Lodge. I oe fain have given your honor a hint that the old knight and 1 young mistress were like to take you on the form, but I dea not mend the matter “ Thou hast done well, good fellow, and I will remember thee.—And now, my aa ” he said, advancing to the brace of clerks or secretaries, who had in the meanw hile sat quietly down beside the stone bottle, and made up acquaintance over a glass of its contents—‘‘ Let me remind you, that the night wears late.” There is something cries tinkle tinkle, in the bottle Fete said Wildrake, in reply. “Hem! hem! hem!” coughed the Colonel of the Parlia- ment service; and if his lips did not curse his companion’s 39 Bee TUS ASNT ees ; and indeed I think thata ithe Sete ee Sse eco eScaeceA tae aa La 64 WOODSTOCK. imprudence, I will not answer for what arose in his heart —“ Well!” he said, observing that Wildrake had filled his own glass and Tomkins’s, “take that parting glass and begone.” “Would you not be pleased to hear first,’” said Wildrake, “ how this honest gentleman saw the devil to-night look through a pane of yonder window, and how he thinks he had a mighty strong resemblance to your worship’s humble slave and varlet scribbler? Would you but hear this, sir, and just sip a glass of this very recommendable strong waters ?” “I will drink none, sir,” said Colonel Everard sternly ; “and I have to tell you, that you have drunken a glass too much al- ready.—Mr. Tomkins, sir, I wish you good night.” ‘A word in season at parting,” said Tomkins, standing up behind the long leathern back of a chair, hemming and snuffling as if preparing for an exhortation, PaEXCUse, “me, jee replied Markham < Everard sternly ; “you are not now sufficiently yourself to guide the devotion of offers.’ ‘“Woe be to them that reject! * said the Secretary of the Commissioners, stalking out of the room—the rest was lost in shutting the door, or suppressed for fear of offence. ‘And now, fool Wildrake, begone to thy bed—yonder it les,” pointing to the knight’s apartment. “What, thou hast secured the lady’s for thyself? I saw thee put the key in thy pocket.” ‘I would not—indeed I could not sleep in that apartment —I can sleep nowhere-—but I will watch in this arm-chair.—] have made him place wood for repairing the fire.—Good, now go to bed thyself, and sleep off thy liquor.” ‘Liquor!—I laugh thee to scorn, Mark—thou art a mill sop, and the son of a milkso low can do in the way of c i p, and know’st not what a good fel- rushing an honest cup.” “ The whole vices of his faction are in this poor fellow indi- vidually,” said the Colonel to himself Be , eying his protégé askance, as the other retreated into t] 1e bedroom with no very steady pace— He is reckless, intemperate, dissolute ;—and if I can- not get him safely shipped for France, he will certainly be both his own ruin and mine.—Yet. withal, he is kind, brave and gen- erous, and would have kept the faith with me which he now ex- pects from me; and in what consists the merit of our truth, if we observe not our plighted word when we have promised, to our hurt? I will take the liberty, however, to secure mysel against further interruption on his part.” So saying, he locked the d sleeping-room, to which the oor of communication betwixt the cavalier had retreated, and the par-WOODSTOCK. lor ;—and then, after pacing the floor thoughtfully, returned to his seat, trimmed the lamp, and drew out a number of letters.— “ I will read these over once more,” he said, “ that, if possible, the thought of public affairs may expel the keen sense of per- sonal sorrow. Gracious Providence, where is this toend? We have sacrified the peace of our families, the warmest wishes of our young hearts, to right the country in which we were born, and to free her from oppression : yet it appears, that every step we have made toward liberty, has but brought us in view of new and more terrific perils, as he who travels in a mountainous region, is, by every step which elevates him higher, placed in a situation of more imminent hazard.” He read long and attentively various tedious and embar- rassed letters, in which the writers, placing before him the glory of God and the freedom and liberties of England, as their su- preme ends, could not, by all the ambagitory expressions they made use of, prevent the shrewd eye of Markham Everard from seeing, that self-interest and views. of ambition were the prin- cipal moving springs at the bottom of their plots. CHAPTER SIF EH: Sleep steals on us even like his brother Death— We know not when it comes—we know it must come— We may affect to scorn and to contemn it, For ’tis the highest pride of human misery To say it knows not of an opiate ; Yet the reft parent, the despairing lover, Even the poor wretch who waits for execution, Feels this oblivion, against which he thought His woes had arm’d his senses, steal upon him, And through the fenceless citadel—the body— Surprise that haughty garrison—the mind. HERBERT. COLONEL EVERARD experienced the truth contained in the verses of the quaint old bard whom we have quoted above. Amid private grief and anxiety for a country long a prey to civil war, and not likely to fall soon under any fixed or well-established form of government, Everard and his father had, like many others, turned their eyes to General Cromwell, as the person whose valor had made him the darling of the army, whose strong sagacity had hitherto predominated over the high talents by which he had been assailed in Parliament, as well as over his REESSRERT SERENE REIT FRC FEES MISUSE RSTOPe et ee 66 WOODSTOCK. enemies in the ce d, and yee was ace in the situation to settle the eae b of f eouernmioar, T he ee and son were both reputed 8 stand high i in the General’s favor. But Markham Everard was conscious of some particulars, which induced him to doubt Sr oacs Cromwell actually, and at heart, bore either to his father or to himself that good-will which w as generally believed. He knew him for a profound politician, who could veil for any length of time his real sentiments of men and things, until they could be displayed without prejudice.to his interest. And he moreover knew that the aaa was not likely to forget the opposition which the Presbyterian party had offered to what Oliver called the Great Matter—th btrlad namely, and execution of the King. In this opposition, his father and he had a concurred, nor had the arguments, nor even the half-ex xpressed threats of Cromwell, induced them to flinch from that course, fat less to permit their names to be introduced into the commission nominated to sit in judgment on that memorable occasion. This hesitation had occasioned some temporary coldness between the General and the Everards, father and son, {But as the latter remained in the army, and bore arms under Crom- well, both in Scotland, and finally at Worcester, his services very frequently called e forth the approbation of his commander. After the fight at Worcester, in particular, he was among the number of those officers on whom Olivet r, rather considering the actual and practical extent of his own power, than the name under which he exercis d it, was with difficulty withheld from imposing the dignity of Knights-Bannerets at his own will and pleasure. It therefore seemed that all recollection of former disagreement was obliterated, and that the Everards had regained their former stronghold in the General’s affections. There were, indeed, several who doubted this, and who endeay- ored to bring over this distinguished young officer to some other of the parties which divided i infant Commonwealth. But to these proposals he turned a deafear. Enough of blood, he said, had been spilled—it was time that the mars should nave repose under a firm] y-estal sufficient to protect pr roperty the return of GE aia lished government, o f strength , and of lenity Seen to encourage ity. This he thought, could only be accomplished by means of Cromwell. and the greater part of England was of the same opinion. It is true, that, in thus submitting to the domination of a successful soldier, those who did so forgot the principles upon which they had drawn the sword against the late King, But in revolutions, stern and high principles are often obliged to give way to the current ofWOODS ee crcl ‘ed for points of metap y terminated, upon y, as, after man omit on mere securit Colonel Everard, therefore, afforded Cromwell of evils, ral’s wisdom and valor being and he was sensible, ( his attachment as lu gratitude for it upon the sam In the meanw thile, make trial « Woodstock, i tOr hi WEY 7 EG eve by and was ger to keep terms. 7 aS ‘and his daughte Stas cg: ; : ‘ . himself in the ma connected with their inte 1 } ULE Er = immed Lalrsy Colo ight in arranging his which he thou t exhorted him, > eftate > SUaAtG, 1 by Het ad placing himself sral and established governn q an: ERY in which the nz ing a 5, and ehowed how om this topic I ove As i Ot the state, he or violence. Fr imstances ; and in many a Cane; hysical right, they the THEFE a long : siege felt t was only under ae idea, that, amid a choice the least was likely to ensue from a placed at the head of er himself Fi Was tO int 6GIest, and revolving 1a€as aI i z ] He! ral view O 1 the various factions whic this m1 LOGIE 64 wars have have been a > hope of obtaining general a garrison is often glad lI nb, the sup where life ane lh 1av ort which he Gene the state; r ae ee nb oe was likely to cons a and measure hi nan of the im} nites scale, erfect, elled him to stration of dispose but ae iths d eferred blow on his ae the mode he ole " reneral ercourse, Cr one es iately ¥Y SEVETE remained. request fr t to have his v Iie cao The ve tie state of vritten opinior part oO -ommon- to to €al lier the ¢ ‘ceptable Providence, free P arliamer ; some form of oe the EL totally Biok en Cc yndit ) ch now convulsec bloodshed priety of a uci be without b proP paebRabess tar guacstuonaastor) Nulla ahovcansieresna shes soboea ca un hanSanaa rss » of es WOODSTOCK. keeping up the becoming state of the Executive Government, in whose hands soever it should be lodged, and thus showed Crom- well, as the future Stadtholder, or Consul, or Lieutenant-Generai of Great Britain and Ireland, a prospect of demesne and resi- dences becoming his dignity. Then he naturally passed to the disparking and destroying of the royal residences of England, made a woeful picture of the demolition which impended over Woodstock, and interceded for the preservation of that beauti- ful seat, as a matter of personal favor, in which he found him- self deeply interested. Colonel Everard, when he had finished his letter, did not find himself greatly risen in his own opinion. In the course of his political conduct, he had till this hour avoided mixing up personal motives with his public grounds of action, and yet he now felt himself making such acomposition. But he comforted himself, or at least silenced this unpleasing recollection, with the consideration, that the weal of Britain, studied under the aspect of the times, absolutely required that Cromwell should be at the head of the government; and that the interest of Sir Henry Lee, or rather his safety and his existence, no less em- phatically demanded the preservation of Woodstock, and his residence there. Was it a fault of his, that the same road should lead to both these ends, or that his private interest, and that of the country, should happen to mix in the same letter ? He hardened himself, therefore, to the act, made up and ad- dressed his packet to the Lord-General, and then sealed it with his seal of arms. This done he lay back in the chair; and, in spite of his expectations to the contrary, fell asleep in the course of his reflections, anxious and harassing as they were, and did not awaken until the cold gray light of ‘dawn was peeping through the eastern oriel. He started at first, rousing himself with the sensation of one who awakes in a place unknown to him; but the localities instantly forced themselves on his recollection. The lamp burning dimly in the socket, the wood fire almost extinguished in its own white embers, the gloomy picture over the chimney- piece, the sealed packet on the table—all reminded him of the events of yesterday, and his deliberations of the succeeding night. ~ There is no help for ig? he said: “4-anuse -be Cromwell or anarchy. And probably the sense that his title, as head of the Executive Government, is derived merely from popular con- sent, may check the too natural proneness of power to render itself arbitrary. If he govern by Parliaments, and with regard to the privileges of the subject, wherefore not Oliver as well asWOODSTOCK. 69 Charles ? But I must take measures for having this conveyed safely to the hands of this future sovereign prince. It will be well to take the first word of influence with him since there must be many who willnot hesitate to recommend counsels more violent and precipitate.” He determined to intrust the important packet to the charge of Wildrake, whose rashness was never so distinguished, as when by any chance he was left idle and unemployed ; besides, even if his faith had not been otherwise unimpeachable, the obliga- tions which he owed to his friend Everard must have rendered it such. These conclusions passed through Colonel Everard’s mind, e as, collecting the remains of wood in the chimney, he gathered c t hem into a hearty blaze, to remove the uncomfortable feeling of chillness which pervaded his limbs; and by the time he was a little more warm, again sunk into a slumber, which was only dispelled by the beams of morning peeping into his apartment. He arose, roused himself, walked up and down the room, and looked from the large oriel window on the nearest objects, which were the untrimmed hedges and neglected walks of a certain wilderness, as it is called in ancient treatises on garden- ing, which, kept of yore well ordered, and in all the pride of the topiary art, presented a succession of yew-trees cut into fantas- tic forms, of close alleys, and of open walks, filling about two or three acres of ground on that side of the Lodge, and forming a boundary between its immediate precincts and the open Park. [ts enclosure was now broken down in many places, and the hinds with their fawns fed free and unstartled up to the very windows of the silvan palace. This had been a favorite scene of Markham’s sports when a boy. He could still distinguish, though now grown out of shape, the verdant battlements of a Gothic castle, all created by the gardener’s shears, at which he was accustomed to shoot his arrows; or, stalking before it like the Knight-errants of whom he read. was wont to blow his horn, and bid defiance to the supposed giant or Paynim knight, by whom it was gar- risoned. He remembered how he used to train his cousin, though several years younger than himself, to bear a part in these revels of his boyish fancy, and to play the character of an elfin page, or a fairy, or an enchanted princess. He remem- bered, too, many particulars of their later acquaintance, from which he had been almost necessarily ied to the conclusion, that from an early period their parents had entertained some idea that there might be a well-fitted match betwixt his fair cousin and himself. A thousands visions, formed in so bright a prospect, Oras saat anon STUNTS Ss 3 aePPM eee oes mweneee 70 WOODSTOCK. had vanished along with it, but now returned like shadows, to remind him of all he had lost—and for what ?—“ For the sake ot England,” his proud consciousness replied,—* Of England, in danger of becon ung the prey at once of bigotry and ty ranny.” And 1 he strengthened himself with the re collection. “Tf J] have sacrificed my private happiness, it is that my country may enjoy liberty of conscience, and personal freedom ; which, under a weak ae and usurping statesman, she was but too likely to have lost.” But the busy fie nd in his breast would not be re pulsed by the bold answer. “Has th y resistance,” it demanded, “ availed thy country, Markham one erard > Lies not England, after so much inoue hed, and so much mise ry, aslow be ‘neath the sword of a fortunate soldier. as formerly under the sceptre of an en- croaching prince ; re Parliament, o what remains of them fitted to contend with a epte Yr, mast ey his soldiers’ hearts, as b rae subtle as he is imt penetr a le j in his designs? T his ae eral who holds the ar my, and by that the fate of the nation in his hand, will he la ty down his power because philosophy would pronounce it his duty to become a subject ?” He ‘a red not answer that his kno vledg eof Cromwell autho- rized him to ex pect any such act of teiedec st Yet still he con- sidered that in times of such infinite diffi culty , that must be est government, however ee desirable i ae itself. which should most speedily restore peace to the land. and s stop the wounds which the conte: iding parties were daily inflicting on each other. He im agined that Cromwe ll was the only author- ity under i = ady government could be forme Z and therefore had a iched himself to his fortune, though not with- out considerable az a: recurring doubts, how far serving the views of this Impenetr able and mysterious General was con- sistent with th ¢ principles under which he had assumed arms. 1 While the se think Ing Ss passed in his mind, Everard looked upon the ps icket W thich layo n the table addressed temic Lord-General, and which he had made w p before sleep. times, when he remembered its purport, and in what degree he must stand committed with tha personage, and bound to Sup- port his plans of agerandizement t, when once that communica- tion was in Oliver € romwell’s possession. “Yet it must be so,” he said « at last, with a deep sigh. “ Among the contendi ng parties, he is the strongest—the wisest and most mode rate—and, ambitious though he be, perhaps not the most dangerous, Some one must be trusted with power to preserve anc d enforce gene ral order, and who can possess or wield such power like him that is head of the victorious armies of He hesitated severa] ryWOODSTOCK. 71 ‘ngland? Come what willin future, peace and the restoration of law ought to be our first and most pressing object. This remnant of a parliament cannot keep their ground against the army, by mere appeal to the sanetion of opinion. Ift they design to reduce the soldiery, it must be by actual warfare, ‘and the land has been too long steeped in blood. But Cromwell may, and I trust will, make a moderate accommodation with them, on grounds by which peace may be preserved ; and it is to this which we must look and trust fora settlement of the kingdom, alas! and for the chance of protecting my obstinate kinsman from the consequences of his honest though absurd _per- tinacity.”’ Silencing some internal feelings of doubt and reluctance by such reasoning as Markham Everard continued in his lution to unite himself with Cromwell in the struggle which was evidently approaching betwixt the civil and military author- itles; not as the course which, if at perfect liberty, he would have preferred adopting, k s the best choice between two dangerous ‘emities to which the times had reduced ues He could not help trembling, however, when he recollected th his father, though hitherto the admirer of Cromwell, as the 1m- plement by whom so many marvels had been wroughtin England, might not jb disposed to unite with ee is interest against that of the Long P sl conte ut, of which he had been, till partly laid aside by continued indisposition, an active and leading member. This doubt also he was obliged to swallow, or Aimigle as he might; but consoled himself with the ready argument, that it vas impossible his father could see matters in another light than that in which they occu red to himself. CHAPTER SEVE DETERMINED at le ee to despatch his packet to the Gene without delay, Color rel erard ac eae the door of apartment, in which, as was evident from the heavy breathi within, the prisoner Wildrake enjoyed a deep slumber, unde1 the influence of liquor at once.and of fatigue. In turning the key, the bolt, which was rather rusty, made a resistance so noisv, as partly to attract the sleeper’s attention, though not to awake him. Everard stood by his bedside, as he heard him mutter, ‘Is it morning already, jailer ?—-Why, you dog, an you had but a cast of humanity in you, you would qualify your viliahietnabiadniahicabhaier ate teeth eee es pa 42 WOODSTOCK. hews with a Cup of sack ;—h and sorrow’s dry.” “Up, Wildrake up, thou ill-omened dreamer,” said friend, shaking him by the collar, * Hands off!” answered the sleeper.—* JI can cl der without help, I trow.”——He then opening his eyes, stared around hj Mark, is it only thou? I thought it was all over with me— fetters were struck from my legs—rope drawn around my gullet —irons knocked off my hands—hempen cravat tucked on—all peadly for a dance in the open element upon slight footing.” "Truce with thy folly, Wildrake ; Sure the devil of drink, to whom thou hast, I thin] k, sold thyself ”’ Hoye) hogshe ‘ad of sack, e ¢ interrupte d Wildrake ; “ the bar- gain was made in a cellar in the Vj niry.” ~T amas mad as thou art, to trust anything to the Markham ; “I scarce belj leve thou hast tl “What should aj] me ?” said Wild anging is sorry work, my masters— his imb a Jad- Sat up in the bed, and aim, and exclaimed, “Zounds! * Said WW: SEWUSES yeu rake—“ ] trust I have not tasted liquor in my sl se Saving that I dreamed of drinking small Be er with Old Nol] Foi: own brewing, But do not look so glum, man—I am a same Roger * Wildrake that lever was- as wild as a malla rd, but as true as a game-cock. I am thine deeds—wer 27ctus own chum, man—bound to thee by thy ki ind ; and where is the thing thou wilt encyicto—there is Latin foy “ag Charge me with, that ] will not, or dare not, execute, were it to rapier, after he had breakfasted Si pick the devil’s teeth with my upon roundheads? “You will drive me mad.” about to intrust all I have most . ry rN fs te 1 leaicse agement, your conduct and language are those of a mere Bed- lamite. Last night I made allowanc ce for thy drunken fury ; but who can endure thy morning said Everard.“ When I am valuable on earth to vour man- § madness ?—it is unsafe for thyself and me, Wildrake—it js unkind—I might say un- grateful.” “ Nay, do not say that, my friend,” some show of feel] ing; and do not judge of me with a seve erity that cannot apply to such as I am. W € who have lost our all in these sad jars, w a are compelled to shift for our living, not from day to day, but from meal to m eal—we whose only hiding place is the jail, aH prospect of final repose is the gallows,— what canst thou €xpect from us. Be to bear such a lot with a ligt ht heart, since we should break down under it with a heavy One?” said the Cavalier, with This was spoken in a tone of feeling which found a respond-WOODSTOCK. 72 ing string in Everard’s bosom. He took his friend’s hand, and pressed it kindly. ‘‘ Nay, if I seemed harsh to thee, Wil drake, I profess it was for thine own sake more than mine. I know thou h ast at the bottom of thy levity as deep a principle of honor and feeling as ever governed a human heart. But thou art thoughtless— thou art rash—and I protest to thee, that wert thou to betray thyself in this matter, in which I trust thee, the evil conse- quences to myself would not aff lict me more than the thought of putting thee into such danger.’ ‘ Nay, if you take it on that tone, Mark,” said the cavalier, making an effort to laugh, evidently that he might conceal a tendency to a different emotion, “thou wilt make children of us both—babes and sucklings, by the hilt of this bilbo.—Come, trust me; I can be cautious when time requires it—no man ever saw me drink when an alert was expected—and not one poor pint of wine will I taste until I have managed this matter for thee. Well, I am thy secretary—clerk—I[ had forgot—and carry thy desps Fe to Cromwell, taking good heed not to be surprised or choused out of my lump of loyalty [striking his finger on the packet], and I am to deliver it to the most loyal h ands to which it is most humbly addressed— Adzooks, Mark, think of it a moment longer—Surely thou wilt not carry thy perverseness so far as to strike in with this bloody-minded rebel ?—Bid me give him three inches of my dudgeon- dagger, and [ will do it much more willingly than present him with ‘thy packet.” “Go to,” replied Everard, “this is beyond our bargain. If you will help me, itis well; if not, let me lose no time in debat- ing with thee, since I think every moment an age till the packet is in the General’s possession. It is the only way left me to obtain some protection, and a place of refuge, for my uncle and his daughter.” “That being the case,” said the cavalier, “I will not spare the spur. My nag up yonder at the town will be ready for the road in a trice, and thou may’st reckon on my being with Old Noll—thy General, I mean—in as short time as man and horse may consume betwixt Woodstock and Windsor, where I think I shall for the present find thy friend keeping possession where he has slain.” ‘Hush, not a word of that. Since we parted last night, I have shaped thee a path which will suit thee better than to assume the decency of language and of outward manner, of which thou hast so little. I have acquainted the General that thou hast been by bad example and bad education ” SOS eT Henan TORRE SY SENSShiai LAAT eae | EI ae 74 WOODSTOCK. ¢ ‘Which is to be interpreted by contraries, I hope,” said Wildrake ; “for sure I have been as well born and bred up as any lad of Leicestershire might desire “Now, I prithee, hush—thou hast, I say, by bad example become at one time a oe and mixed in the party of the late King. But seeing what things were wrought in the nation by the General, thou hast come to a clearness touching his calling to bea great implement in the settlement of these dis- tracted kingdoms. This account of thee will not only lead him to pass over some of ay ECCEé -ntricities, should they break out pite of thee, but will also give thee an interest with him as being more especially att: vee .d to his own person.” ‘ Doubtless,” said Wildrake, “as every fisher loves best the trouts pis ire of his own tickling.” " It is likely, I think, he will send thee hither with letter to me,” said the Colonel, “ enabling me to put a stop to the proceedings of these sequestrators,.and to give poor old Siz Henry Lee permission to linger out his days among the oaks he loves to look upon. I hz ve made > this my request to General Cromwell, and I think my father’s friends ship and my own may stretch so far on his reg: ard without risk of cr acking, es pecially standing matters as they now do—thou dost understand ?’ ~ Entirely well,” said the cavalier ; “stretch, quotha !—] would rather stretch a rope than hold commerce with the old King-killing ruffian. But I have said I will be guided by thee, Markham, and rat me but I will.” ‘Be cautious, then,” said Everard. “ mark well what he does and sayS—more especially what he does : for Oliver is one of those whose mind is better ] known by his actions than by his words; and stay—I warrant thee thou wert setting « off without a cre in thy purse ? Too true, Mark,” said Wildrake: “ the last noble melted last night amo ig yonder blackguard troopers of yours.” “Well, Re oer’ replied the Colonel, “that is easily mended.’ So saying, he slipped his purse into his friend’s hand. “Bi ut art thou not an inconsiderate ib headers fellow, to set forth, as thou wert about to do, without anything to bear thy charges ; what couldst thou have done?’ ‘ Faith, I never thought of that; I must have cried Stand, I suppose, to the first pursy townsman or greasy grazier that ] met o’ the heath—it is manv a good fellow’s shift in these bad times.” ~ Go to,” said Everard: “ be cautious—use none of youl loose acquaintance—rule your tongue—beware of the wine-pot —for there is little danger if thou couldst only but keep thyselfWOODSTOCK. 1 sober—Be moderate in speech, and forbear oaths or vaunting.” “Tn short, metamorphose myself into such a prig thou art, Mark.—Well,” said Wildrake, “so far as outside will go, I think I can make a Hope-on-High-Bomby * as well as thou canst, Ah! those were merry days when he saw Mills present Bomby at the Fortune playhouse, Mark, ere I had lost my laced cloak and the jewel in my ear, or thou hadst gotten the wrinkle on thy brow, and the puritanic twist of thy mustache! ” “ They were like most worldly pleasures, Wildrake,” replied Everard, “sweet in the mouth and bitter in digestion—But away with thee ; and when thou bring’st back my answer, thou wilt find me either here or at Saint George’s Inn, at the little borough.—Good luck to thee.—Be thou cautious how thou bearest thyself.” The Colonel remained in deep meditation.—* I think,” he said, “I have not pledged myself too far to the General. A breach between him and the Parliament seems inevitable, and would throw England back into civil war, of which all men are wearied. He may dislike my messenger—yet that I do not greatly fear. He knows I would choose such as I can myself depend on, and hath dealt enough with the stricter sort to be i > aware that there are among them, as well as elsewhere, men who can hide two faces under one hood.” CHAPTER FIGHTH. For there in lofty air was seen to stand The stern Protector of the conquer’d land; Drawn in that look with which he wept and swore, Turn’d out the members, and made fast the door, Ridding the house of every knave and drone, Forced—though it grieved his soul—to rule alone. : THE FRANK COURTSHIP.—CRABBE. Lravinc Colonel Everard to his meditations, we follow the jolly cavalier, his companion, who, before mounting at the George, did not fail to treat himself to his morning draught of eggs and muscadine, to enable him to face the harvest wind. ~~ Although he had suffered himself to be sunk in the extrava- gant license which was practiced by the cavaliers, as 1 to oppose their conduct in every point to the preciseness of their enemies, yet Wildrake, well born and well educated, and * A puritanic character in one of Beaumont and Fletcher’s plays. ewer tie rt RTE RCEee a . See aati Shai eee ALLL Ee . 76 WOODSTOCK. endowed with good natural Parts, and a heart which even debauchery, and the wild ] ife of a roaring cavalier, had not been able entirely to corrupt, moved on his present embassy with a strange mixture of feelings, such as perhaps he had never in his life before experienced Ais feelings as a loyalist led him to detest Cromwell, whom in other circumstances he would scarce have wished to Seg, except in a field of battle, where he could have had the pleasure to exchange pistol-shots with him, But with this hatred there was mixed a certain degree of fear. Always victorious where- ever he fought, the remarkable Person whom Wildrake was now approaching had acquired that influence over the minds of his enemies, which constant SUCCESS 1S so apt to inspire—they dreaded while they hated him—and joined to these feelings was a restless meddling Curiosity, which made a particular feature in Wildrake’s character, who, having long had little business of his Own, and caring nothing about that which he had, was easily attracted by the desire of seeing whatever was curious or interesting around him, “I should like to see the old “were it but to say that I had seen him,” He reached Windsor in the afternoon, and fe] the strongest inclination tot old haunts, when he had rascal after all,” he said, t on his arrival ake up his residence at some of his occasionally frequented that fair town In gayer days. But, resisting all temptations of this kind, he went courageously to the principal inn, from which its ancient emblem, the Garter, had long disappeared, The master, too, whom Wildrake, experienced in his knowledge of landlords and hostelries, had remembered a dashing Mine Host of Queen Bess’s school, had now sobered down to the temper of the times, shook his head when he spoke of the Parliament, wielded his spigot with the gravity of a priest conducting a sacrifice, wished England a happy issue out of all her afflictions, and greatly lauded his Excellency the Lord-General. Wildrake also remarked that his wine was better than it was wont to be, the Puritans having an excellent gift at detecting every fallacy in that matter ; and that his measures were less and his charges larger—circumstances which he was induced to attend to, by mine host talking a good deal about his conscience. He was told by this important personage, that the Lord- General received frankly all sorts of persons; and_ that he might obtain access to him next morning, at eight o’clock. for the trouble of presenting himself at the Castle-gate, and announcing himself as the bearer of despatches to his Ex- cellency,WOODSTOCK. To the Castle the disguised cavalier repaired at the hour ointed. Admittance was freely permitted to him by the red-coated soldier, who with austere looks, and his musket on his shoulder, mounted guard at the external gate of that noble building. Wildrake passed through the underward or court, gazing as he passed upon the beautiful Chapel, which had but lately received, in darkness and silence, the unhonored remains of the slaughtered King of England. Rough as Wildrake was, the recollection of this circumstance affected him so strongly, that he had nearly turned back in a sort of horror, rather than face the dark and daring man, to whom, amongst all the actors in that melancholy affair, its tragic conclusion was chiefly to be imputed. But he felt the necessity of subdu- ing all sentiments of this nature, and compelled himself to pro- ceed in a negotiation intrusted to his conduct by one to whom he was so much obliged as Colonel Everard. At the ascent, which passed by the Round Tower, he looked to the ensign-staff, from which the banner df England was wont to float. It was gone, with all its rich emb lazonry, its gorgeous quarterings, and splendid embroidery; and in its room waved that of the commonwealth, the cross of Saint George, in its colors of blue and red, not yet intersected by the diagonal cross of Scotland, which was soon after assumed, as if in evidence of England’s conquest over her ancient enemy. This change of ensigns increased the train of his gloomy reflections, in w ‘hich ; although contrary to his wont, he became so deeply wrapped, that the first thing which recalled him to himself, was the challenge from the sentinel, accompanied with a stroke of the butt of his mus- ket on the pavement, with an emphasis which made Wildrake start. “Whither away, and who are you?” “The bearer of a packet,’ answered Wildrake, “to the worshipful the Lord-General.” “Stand till I call the officer of the guard.” The corporal made his appearance, distinguished above those of his command by a double quantity of band round his neck, a double height of steeple-crowned hat, a larger allowance of cloak, and a treble proportion of sour gravity of aspect, It might be read on his countenance, that he was one of those resolute enthusiasts to whom Oliver owed his conquests, whose religious zeal made them even more than a match for the high- spirited and high-born cavali ers, that exhausted their valor in defence of their sovereign’s person and crown. He looked with grave solemnity at Wildrake, as if he was making in hisdees er 78 WOODSTOCK. own inind an inventory of his features and dress; and having fully perused them, he required “to know his phone, ‘A “ My business, ” said Wi ildrake, as firmly as he could—for the close inv estigation of this man had given him some un pleas: ant nervous sensations—“ my business is with your Poor @ With his Excellency the Lord-General, thou wouldst say?” replied the corporal. ‘“ Thy s speech, my friend, savors too. little of the reverence due to his E xcellency.” “D-—n his Excellency!’ was at the ee of the cavalier ; but prudence kept guard, and permitted not the offensive words to escape the barrier. He only bowed, and was silent. “* Follow me,” said the starched f figure whom he adc lressed : and Wildrake followed him accordingly into the guard- house, which exhibited an interior characteristic of the times, and very different from what such military stations present at the present day. By the fire sat two or three musketeers, listening to one who was expounding some religious mystery to them. He be- gan half beneath his breath, but in tones of great volubility, which tones, as he approached the conclusion, became sharp and eager, as challenging either instant answer or silent ac- quiescence. The audience seemed to the speaker with inmmov- able features, only answ ering him with clouds of tobacco- smoke, which they rolled from under their thick mustaches. On a bench lay a soldier on his face: whether asleep, or in a fit of contemplation, it was impossible to decide. In the midst of the floor stood an officer, as he seemed by his embroidered-shoulder belt and scarf round his waist, otherwise very plainly attired, who was engaged in drilling a stout bumpkin, lately enlisted, to the manual, as it was then used. The motions and words of com- mand were twenty at the very least; and until they were regu- larly brought to an end, the corporal did not permit Wildrake either to sit down or move forw ard. beyond the threshold of the guard-house. So he had to listen in. succession to—Poise your musket—Rest your musket—Cock your musket—-Handle your primers—-and many other foreotten words. of discipline, until at length the words, “ Order your musket,” ended the drill fox the time. “Thy name, friend?” said the officer to. the recruit, when the lesson was over. “Ephraim,” answered the fellow, with an affected twang fhrough the nose. “ And what besides Ephraim ? ” “Ephraim Cobb, from the godly city of Gloucester, where IWOODSTOCK, 79 have dwelt for seven years, serving apprentice to a praiseworthy cordwainer.” “It is. a goodly craft,” answered the officer ; “ but casting in thy lot with ours, doubt not that thou shalt be set beyond thine awl, and thy last to boot.” ‘ A grim smile of the speaker accompanied this poor attempt at a pun; and then turning round to the corporal, who stood two paces off, with the face of one who seemed desirous of speaking, said, ‘“‘ How now, corporal, what tidings ?” ‘“‘Hfere is one with a packet, an it please your Excellency,” said the corporal—“ Surely my spirit doth not rejoice in him, eeing I esteem him a wolf in sheep’s clothing.” By these words Wildrake learned that he was in the actual presence of the remarkable person to whom he was commis- sioned ; and he paused to consider in what manner he ought to address him. °* The figure of Oliver Cromwell was, as is generally known, in no way prepossessing. He was of middle stature, strong and coarsely made, with harsh and severe features, indicative, however, of much natural sagacity and depth of thought. His eyes were gray and piercing; his nose too large in proportion to his other features, and of a reddish hue. His manner of speaking, when he had the purpose to make himseif distinctly understood, was energetic and forcible, though neither graceful nor eloquent. No man could on such oceasion put his meaning into fewer and more decisive words. 3ut when, as it often happened, he had a mind to play the orator, for the benefit of people’s ears, without enlightening their understanding, Cromwell was wont to invest his meaning, or that which seemed to be his meaning, in such a mist of words, surrounding it with so many exclusions and exceptions, and fortifying it with such a labyrinth of parentheses, that though one of the most shrewd men in England, he was, per: haps, the most unintelligible speaker that ever perplexed an audience. It has been long since said by the historian, that a collection of the Protector’s speeches would make, with a few exceptions, the most nonsensical book in the world; but he ought to have added, that nothing could be more nervous, con- cise, and intelligible, than what he really intended should be understood. It was also remarked of Cromwell, that though born of a cood family, both by father and mother, and although he had the usual opportunities of education and breeding connected with such an advantage, the fanatic democratic ruler could never acquire, or else disdained to practice, the courtesies Res aa Cae Peermncentstn cotaeS 80 WOODSTOCK. usually exercised among the € higher classes in their intercourse with each other. His demeanor was so blunt as sometimes might be termed clownish , yet there was in his language and manner a force and energy corresponding to his “character which impressed awe, if it did not impose respect ; and there were even times when that dark and subtle spirit expanded itself, so as almost to conciliate affection. The turn for humor, which displayed itself by fits, was broad, and of a low, and sometimes practical ch varacter, Something there was in his disposition congenial to that of his countrymen ; a contempt of folly, a hatred of affect: ition, and a dislike of ceremony, which, joined to the strong intrinsic qualities of sense and ‘ courage, made him in many respects not an unfit representative of the democracy of E ngland. His religion must always be a subject of much doubt, and probably of doubt which he himself could hardéy have cleared up. Unquestionably there was a time in his life when he was sincerely enthusiastic, and° when his natural temper, shghtly subject to hypochondria, was Strangely agitated by the same fanaticism which influenced so many persons of the time. On the other hand, there were periods during his political career, when we certainly do him no injustice in ch larging him with hypocritical affectation. We shall prob aah y judge him, A others of the same age, most truly, if we suppose that their religious professions were partly in Anenael in their own breast, partly assumed in compliance with their own interest. And So ingenious is the human heart in deceiving itself as well as others, that it is probable neither Cromwell himself, nor those making similar pretensions to distinguished piety, could exactly have fixed the point at which their enthusiasm terminated and their hypocrisy commenced ; or rather, it was a point not fixed in itself, but fluctuating with the state of healt h, of good or bad fortune, of high or low spirits, affe ecting the individual at the period, Such was the celebrated person, who, turning round on Wild- rake, and scanning his countenance ines y; seemed so little satisfied with what he be held, that he instinctively hitched for- ward his belt, so as to bring the handle of his tuck-sword within his reach. But yet, folc ling his arms in his cloak, as if upon second thoughts laying aside suspicion, or thinking pre- caution beneath him. he asked the cavalier what he was, and whence he came ? “A poor gentleman, sir »—that is, amy dond?—— W drake “last from Woodstock.’ “And what may your tidings be, sir gentleman?” answered saidWOODSTOCK. Cromwell, with an emphasis. “ Truly I have seen those most willing to take upon them that title, bear themselves somewhat short of wise men, and good men, and true men, with all their gentility; yet gentleman was a good title in old England, when men remembered what it was construed to mean.” “You say truly, sir,” replied Wildrake, suppressing, with aifficulty, some of his usual wild expletives; “ formerly gentle- men were found in gentlemen’s places, but now the world is so changed that you shall find the broidered belt has changed place with the under spur-leather.” “Say’st thou me?” said the General; “I profess thou art a bold companion, that can bandy words so wantonly ;—thou ring’st somewhat too loud to be good metal, methinks. And, once again, what are thy tidings with me?” “This packet,” said Wildrake, ‘‘ commended to your hands by Colonel Markham Everard.” ‘“ Alas, I must have mistaken thee,” answered Cromwell, mollified at the mention of a man’s name whom he had great desire to make his own; “forgive us, good friend, for such, we doubt not, thou art. Sit thee down, and commune with thy- self, as thou may’st, until we have examined the contents of thy packet. Let him be looked to, and have what he lacks.” So saying, the General left the guard-house, where Wildrake took his seat in the corner, and awaited with patience the issue of his mission. : The soldiers now thought themselves obliged to treat him with more consideration, and offered him a pipe of Trinidado, and a black jack filled with October. But the look of Crom- well, and the dangerous situation in which he might be placed by the least chance of detection, induced Wildrake to decline these hospitable offers, and stretching back in his chair, and affecting slumber, he escaped notice or conversation, until a sort of aid-de-camp, or military officer in attendance, came to summon him to Cromwell’s presence. By this person he was guided to a postern-gate, through which he entered the body of the Castle, and penetrating through many private passages and staircases, he at length was introduced into a small cabinet, or parlor, in which was much rich furniture, some bearing the royal cipher displayed, but all confused and disarranged, together with several paint- ings in massive frames, having their faces turned towards the wall, as if they had been taken down for the purpose of being removed. In this scene of disorder, the victorious general of the Commonwealth was seated in a large easy-chair, covered withDade eee ee a ce WOODSTOCK. damask, and deeply embroidered, the splendor of which made a strong contrast with the plain, and even homely character of his apparel ; although in look and action he seemed like one who felt that the seat which might have in former days held a prince, was not too much distinguished for his own fortunes and ambition. Wildrake stood before him, nor did he ask him to sit down. “Pearson,” said Cromwell, addressing himself to the officer in attendance, “wait in the gallery, but be within call.” Pearson bowed, and was retiring. “Who are in the gallery besides ?” “Worthy Mr. Gordon, the chaplain, was holding forth but now to Colonel Overton, and four captains of your Excellency’s regiment.” ““We would have it so,” said the General ; “we would not there were any corner in our dwelling where the hungry soul might not meet with manna. Was the good man carried on- vard in his discourse ? ” ‘“Mightily borne through,” said Pearson ; “and he was touching the rightful claims which the army, and especially your Excellency, hath acquired by becoming the instruments in the great work ;—not instruments to be broken asunder and cast away when the day of their service is over. but to be pre- served, and held precious, and prized for their honorable and faithful labors, for which ~they have fought and marched. and fasted, and prayed, and suffered cold and sorrow ; while others, who would now gladly see them disbanded, and broken, and cashiered, eat of the fat, and drink of the strong.” “ Ah, good man!” said Cromwell, “and did he touch upon this so feelingly! TI could say something—but not now. Be- gone, Pearson, to the gallery. Let not our friends lay aside their swords, but watch as well as pray.” Pearson retired: and the Everard in his hand, | Wildrake, as if consid him. When he did speak, it was. at first, in one of those am- biguous discourses which we have already described, and by which it was very difficult for any one to understand his mean- ing, if, indeed, he knew it himself. We shall be as concise in oul statement, as our desire to give the very words of a man so extraordinary will permit. “This letter,” he said, “you have | master, or patron, Markl E honorable gentleman as General, holding the letter of ooked again for a long while fixedly at ering in what strain he should address Drought us from your 1am Everard ; truly an excellent and ever bore a sword upon his thigh, andWOODSTOCK. one who hath ever distinguished himself in the great work of delivering these three poor and unhappy nations. Answer me not; I len 10w what thou wouldst say.—And this letter he hath sent to me by thee, his clerk, or secretary, in whom he hath confidence, and in tone he prays me to have trust, that there may be a careful messenger between us. And lastly, he hath sent thee to me—Do not answer—I know what- thou wouldst say,—to me, who, albeit I am of that small consideration, that it would be too much honor for me even to bear a halberd in this great and victorious army of England, am nevertheless ex alted to the rank of holding the guidance and the leading-sta off thereof. Nay, do not answer, my uhh know what thou wouldst say. Now, when commu 2 , our dis- h, in respect to w Hats i 1ave aa a three-fold argu 7 master; secondly, our office; thirdly and lastly, as it eo aaa this good and worthy Everard, oy he hath played f these unhappy bufletings, not ft, but holding ee in his eye the y, truly, a faithful, honorable gen- ell call me friend; and truly I am -vertheless, in this vale must be governed less by our private respe than by those higher principles and points ‘eupon the good Colone Mele Everard hak: ever his purpose, as pu ; alk act as becometh a Englishmen and worthy 5S as for W oodstock, it is a great thing which the en should be taken from the spoil of of the men of Moab, and especially g ae whose hand hath been ever when he mig i find room to raise it; I say, he hath a great thing, both in respect of himself and me. for we of this poor but godly army of England, are holden, by those of the Parliament, as men who should render in spoil for . sharer of it ourselves; even as the buck, which no part of their own food, off from the carcass with whips, like those punishment for their forwardness, not reward vices. Yet I speak not this so much in respect of this grant of Woodstock, in regard that, perhaps, their Lord- ships ot the Council, and also the Committeemen of this Par. iament, may graciously think they have given me a portion in 1e matter, in relation that my kinsman Desborough hath an seat a = PRs ahSci Nuinaigualibisshantackierahe ieee nets 84 WOODSTOCK. interest allowed him therein ; which interest, as he hath well de. served it for his true and faithful service to these unhappy and devoted countries, so it would ill become me to diminish the same to his prejudice, unless it were upon great and public respects. ‘T’hus thou seest how it stands with me, my honest friend, and in what mind I stand touching thy master’s request to me; which yet I do not say that I can altogether or uncon- ditionally grant or refuse, but only tell my simple thoughts with regard thereto. Thou understandest me, I doubt not ? ” Now, Roger Wildrake, with all the -attention he had been able to pay to the Lord-General’s speech, had got so much confused among the various clauses of the harangue, that his brain was bewildered, like that of a country clown when he chances to get himself involved among a crowd of carriages, and cannot stir a step to get out of the way of one of them without being in danger of being ridden over by the others. The General saw his look of perplexity, and began a new oration, to the same purpose as before ; spoke of his love for his kind friend the Colonel—his regard for his pious and godly kinsman, Master Desborough—the great importance of the Palace and Park of Woodstock—the determination of the Par- liament that it should he confiscated, and he produce brought into the coffers of the state—his own deep veneration for the authority of Parliament, and his no less deep sense of the in- justice done to the army—how it was his wish and will that all matters should be settled in an amicable and friendly manne, without self-seeking, debate, or strife, betwixt those who ha‘ been the hands acting, and such as had been the heads govern- ing, in that great national cause—how he was willing, truly willing, to contribute to this work, by laying down, not his com- mission only, but his life also, if it were requested of him, or could be granted with safety to the poor soldiers, to whom, silly poor men, he was bound to be asa father, seeing that they had followed him with the duty and affection of children. And here he arrived at another dead pause, leaving Wild- rake as uncertain as before, whether it was or was not his pur- pose to grant Colonel Everard the powers he had asked for the protection of Woodstock against the parliamentary Commis- sioners. Internally he began to entertain hopes that the jus- tice of Heaven, or the effects of remorse, had confounded the regicide’s understanding. But no—he could see nothing but Sagacity in that steady stern eye, which, while the tongue poured forth its periphrastic language in such profusion, seemed to watch with severe accuracy the effect which his oratory pro- duced on the listener,= td <4 a a) a aa AY b S oS Gi — > 3 ico oO I x ~ an 4 = =| D = S = a oO CO ~ rm ~ ~ cn = > ee | °i 4 4 i # a ulWOODSTOCK, 85 ‘‘ Egad,” thought the cavalier to himself, becoming a litile familiar with the situation in which he was placed, and rather impatient of a conversation which led to no visible conclusion or termination, “If Noll were the devil himself, as he is the devil’s darling, I will not be thus nose-led by him. J’ll e’en brusque it a little, if he goes on at this rate, and try if I can bring him to a more intelligible mode of speaking.” Entertaining this bold purpose, but half afraid to execute it, Wildrake lay by for an opportunity of making the attempt, while Cromwell was apparently unable to express his own meaning. He was already beginning a third panegyric upon Colonel Everard, wilth sundry varied expressions of his own wish to oblige him, when Wildrake took the opportunity to strike in, on the General’s making one of his oratorical pauses. ~ So please you,” he said bluntly, “your worship has al- ready spoken on two topics of your discourse, your own worthi- ness, and that of my master, Colonel Everard. But, to enable me to do mine errand, it would be necessary to bestow a few words on the third head.” “The third ?” said Cromwell. “ Ay,” said Wildrake, “ which, in your honor’s subdivision of your discourse, touched on my unworthy self. What am I to do—what portion am I to have in this matter ? ” Oliver started at once from the tone of voice he had hitherto used, and which somewhat resembled the purring of a domestic cat, into the growl of the tiger when about to spring.‘ Thy portion, jail-bird!” he exclaimed, “the gallows—thou shalt hang as high as Haman, if thou betray counsel i, Buea he added softening his voice, “keep it like a true man, and my favor will be the making of thee. Come hither—thou art bold, [ see, though somewhat saucy. Thou hast been a malignant— so writes my worthy friend Colonel Everard ; but thou hast now given up that falling cause. I tell thee, friend, not all that the Parliament or the army could do would have pulled down the Stewarts out of their-high places, saving that Heaven had a controversy with them. Well, it is a sweet and comely thing to buckle on one’s armor in behalf of Heaven’s cause; otherwise truly, for mine own part, these men might have re- mained upon the throne even unto this day. Neither do I blame any for aiding them, until these successive great judg- ments have overwhelmed them and their house. I am not a bloody man, having in me the feeling of human frailty ; but, friend, whosoever putteth his hand to the plough, in the great actings which are now on foot in these nations, had best be- ware that he do not look back ; for, rely upon my simple word, SsRTs Sih pesnabiauakstinababbactionaMeskies toes etre BS es - WOODSTOCK. 86 that if you fail me, I will not spare on you one foot’s length of the gallows of Haman. Let me therefore know, at a word, if the leaven of thy malignancy is altogether drubbed out of lies 2” ‘Your honorable lordship,” said the cavalier, shrugging up his shoulders, ‘‘ has done that for most of us, so far aS cudgel: ing to some tune can perform it.” ““Say’st thou?” said the General, with a grim smile on his lip, which seemed to intimate that he was not quite inaccessible to flattery ; “‘ yea, ny thou dost not-he in that—we have been an instrument. Neither are we, as I have already hinted, so severely bent against those who have striven against us as malignants, as others may be. ‘The parliament-men best know their own interest and their own pleasure; but, to my poor thinking, it is full time to close these jars, and to allow men oe all kinds the means of doing service to their country; and we think it will be thy fault if thou art not employed to good pur- pose for the state and thyself, on condition thou puttest away the old man entirely from thee, and givest thy earnest attention to what I have to tell thee.” “Your lordship need not doubt my attention,” said the cavalier. And the republican General, after another pausé, as one who gave his confidence not without hesitation, proceeded to explain his views with a distinctness which he seldom used, yet not without his being a little biassed now and then, by his long habits of circumlocution, which indeed he never laid entirely aside, save in the ield of battle. Thou seest,” he said, “ my friend, how things stand with me, The Parliament, I care not who knows it, love me not—- still less do the Council of State, by whom they manage the ex- ecutive government of the kingdom. I cannot tell why they nourish suspicion against me, unless it is because I will not de- liver this poor innocent army, which has followed me in so many military actions, to be now pulled asunder, broken piecemeal and reduced, so that they i have protected the state at the expense of their blood, will not have, perchance, the means of feeding themselves by their labor; which methinks, were hard measure, since it is taking from Esau his birthright, even with- out giving hiin a poor mess of . tage.’ “ Risau is likely to help himself, [ think,” replied Wildrake ‘Truly, thou say’st Wisely,” replied the General; * it is ill starving an armed man if there is food to be had for taking— nevertheless, far be it from me to encotirage rebellion, or want of due subordination to these our rulers, I would only petition, 99 { ] SAWOODSTOCK. 85 In a due and becoming, a sweet and harmonious manner, that they would listen to our conditions, and consider our necessities. But, sir, looking on me, and estimating me so little as they do, you must think that it would be a provocation in me toward the Council of State, as well as the Parliame: nt, if, simply to gratify your worthy master, I were to act contrary to their purpose, or deny currency to the commission under their authority, which is as yet the highest in the State—and lone may it be so for nas to carry on the sequestration which they intend. And would it not also be said, that I was lending my self to the malignant interest, affording this den of the bloodthirsty and lascivious tyrants of yore, to be in this our day a place of refuge to that old and inveterate Amalel kite, Sir Henry Lee, to keep possession of the place in which he hath so long glorified him- self? ‘Truly it would be a perilous matter.” ‘Am I then to report,” said Wildrake, “and it please you, that you cannot stead Colonel Everard in this matter ?” ‘ Unconditionally, ay —but, taken conditionally, the answer may be otherwise,”’—answered Cromwell. “I see thou art 10t able to fathom my ions and therefore I will partly un- fold it to thee.—But take notice, that, should thy tongue betray my counsel, save in so far as carrying it to thy eee by all the blood which has been shed in these wild times, thou shalt die : a thousand deaths in one.” ‘Do not fear me, sir,” said Wildrake, whose natural bold- ness and carelessness of character was for the present time borne down and quelled, like that of falcons in the presence of the eagle. ‘Hear me, then,” said Cromwell, “and let no syllable es- cape thee. Knowest thou not the young Lee, whom they call Albert, a tna enant like his father, and one who went up with the young Man to that last ruffle which we had with him at Worcester—May we be grateful for the victory ! ‘“T know there is such a young gentleman as Albert Lee,” said Wildrake. And knowst thou not—I speak not by way of prying into the good Colonel’s secrets, but only as it behoves me to know something of the matter, that I may best judge how I am to serve him—-Know est thou not that thy master, Markham Everard, is a suitor after the sister of this same malignant, a daughter of the old Keeper, called Sir Henry Lee ?” “ All this I have heard,” said Wildrake, “nor can I deny that I believe in it.” “Well, then, go to.—When the young man Charles Stewart fled from the field of Worcester, and was by sharp chase and a. as eer Serene rns Ne e 3WOODSTOCK. 88 pursuit compelled to separate himself from his followers, I know by sure intelligence that this Albert Lee was one of the last whe remained with him, if not indeed the very last.” “Tt was devilish like him,” said the cavalier, without suffi- ciently weighing his expressions, considering in what presence they were to be uttered—“ And I’ll uphold him with my rapier, to be a true chip of the old block!” ‘“‘ Ha, swearest thou?” said the General. ‘“‘Is this thy re formation ?”’ ‘‘J never swear, so please you,” replied Wildrake, recol- lecting himself, “except there is some mention of malignants and cavaliers in my hearing; and then the old habit returns, and I swear like one of Goring’s troopers.” ‘Out upon thee,” said the General; ‘‘ what can it avail thee to practice a profanity so horrible to the ears of others, and which brings no emolument to him who uses it ?”’ “There are, doubtless, more profitable sins in the world than the barren and unprofitable vice of swearing,” was the answer which rose to the lips of the cavalier; but that was exchanged for a profession of regret for having given offence. The truth was, the discourse began to take a turn which ren- dered it more interesting than ever to Wildrake, who therefore determined not to lose the opportunity for obtaining possession of the secret that seemed to be suspended on Cromwell’s lips; and that could only be through means of keeping guard upon his own. “What sort of a house is Woodstock?” said the General abruptly. “An old mansion,” said Wildrake, in reply; “‘ and, so far as I could judge by a single night’s lodgings, having abundance of backstairs, also subterranean passages, and all the communi- cations under ground, which are common in old raven-nests of the sort.” “And places for concealing priests, unquestionably,” said Cromwell. ‘It is seldom that such ancient houses lack secret stalls wherein to mew up these calves of Bethel.” “Your Honor’s Excellency,” said Wildrake, “‘ may swear to that.”’ ‘ T swear not at all,” replied the General, dryly.—‘“‘ But what think’st thou, good fellow ?—I will ask thee a blunt question— Where will those two Worcester fugitives that thou wottest of be more likely to take shelter—and that they must be sheltered somewhere I well know—that in this same old palace, with all the corners and concealment whereof young Albert hath been acquainted ever since his earliest infancy ?” ) ; 33WOODSTOCK. Se 9 “Truly,” said Wildrake, making an effort to answer the question with seeming indifference, “while the possibility of such an event, and its consequences, flashed fe earfully upon his mina, —* Truly I should be of your Honor’ S opinion, but that I think the company, who, by the commission of -arliament, have occu- pied Woodstock, are ‘likely to frighten them thence, asa cat scares doves from a pigeon-house. The neighborhood, with reverence, eo : eases Desborough and Harrison, will suit ill with fugi- es from Worcester fiel is “thought as oe and so, indeed, would I have it,” answered the General. ‘ Long may it be ere our names shall be aught but a terror to our enemies. But in this matter, if thou art an active plotter for thy master’s interest, thou might’st, I should think, work out something favorable to his present object.” ‘‘ My brain is too poor to reach the depth of your honorable purpose,” said Wildrake. - Listen, then, and let it be to profit,” answered Cromwell. Assuredly the conquest at Worcester was a great and crown- ing mercy; yet might we seem to be but small in our thankful- ness for the same, did we not do what in us lies toward the ultimate improvement and final conclusion of the great work which has .been thus prosperous in our hands, professing, in pure humility and singleness of heart, that we do not, in any way, deserve our instrumentality to be remembered, nay, would rather pray and entreat, that our name and fortunes were for- gotten, than that the great work were in itself incomplete Nevertheless, truly, placed as we now are, it concerns us more nearly than otl hers,—th at is, if so poor creatures should at all speak of themselves as concerned, whether more or less, with these changes which have been wrought around,—not, I say, by ourselves, or our own power, but by the destiny to which we were called, fulfilling the same with all meekness and humility, —I say it concerns us nearly that all things should be done in conformity with the great work which hath been wrought, and is yet working, in these lands. Such is my plain and simple meaning. Neverthless, it is much to be desired that this young man, this King of Scots, as he called himself—this Charles Stewart—should not oe forth from the nation, where his arrival has wrought so much disturbance and bloodshed.” ‘“‘T have no doubt,” said the cavalier, looking down, “ that your lordship’s wisdom hath directed all things as they may best lead toward such a consummation ; and I pray your pains may be pi iid as they deserve.” cs % thank thee, friend,” said Cromwell, with much humility ;SN Witiuies Soci eae cee ny WOODSTOCK. ‘* doubtless we shall meet our reward, being in the hands of a good paymaster, who never passeth Saturday night. But under- Sand me, friend—I desire no more than my own share in the good work. I would heartily do what poor kindness I can to your worthy master, and even to you in your degree as I do not converse with ordinary men, that our presence may be forgotten like an every-day’s occurrence. We speak to men like thee for their reward or their punishment ; and I trust it will be the former which thou in thine office wilt merit at my hand.” “ Your honor,” to command.” “True ; men’s mindsare likened to those of my degree by fear and reverence,” said the General ; “ but enough of that, desiring, as I do, no other dependency on my special person than is alike to us all upon that which is above us. But I would desire to cast this golden ball into your master’s lap. He hath served against this Charles Stewart and his father. But heisa kinsman near to the old knight, Lee, and stands well affected toward his daughter. Zou also wilt keep a watch, my friend —that ruffling look of thine, will procure thee the confidence of said Wildrake, ‘‘ speaks like one accustomed every malignant, and the prey cannot eds ch this cover, as though to shelter, like a eoney in the rocks, but thou wilt be sensible of his presence.” “T make a shift-to comprehend your Excellency,” said the cavalier ; “ and I thank you heartily for the good opinion you have put upon me, and which, I pray, | may have some hand- some opportunity of deserving, that | may show my gratitude by the event. But still, with reverence, your Excellency’s scheme seems unlikely, while Woodstock remains in possession of the sequestrators. Both the old knight and his son, and far more such a fugitive as your honor hinted at, will take special care not sa ee h it till they are removed.” is for that I have been dealing with thee thus long,” said the General—*‘ I told thee that I was something unwill- ing, upon slight occasion, to dispossess the sequestrators by my own proper warrant, although having, perhaps, sufficient authority in the state both to do so, and to despise the murmurs of those who blame me. In brief, I would be loath to tamper with my privileges, and make experiment between their strength, and the ] f the commission granted by others, without pressing need, or at least great prospect of advantage. So, if thy Colonel will aeons: for his love of the Republic, to find the means of preventing its worst and nearest danger, which must needs occu manish the escape of this young Man, =) lesmd pamabe a, DOWEITS ¢WOODSTOCK. gi and will do his endeavor to stay him, in case his flight should lead him to Woodstock, which I hold very likely, I will give thee an order to these sequestrators, to evacuate the palace instantly ; and to the next troop of my regiment, which lies at Oxford, to turn them out by the shoulders, if they make any scruples—ay, even, for example’s sake, if they drag Des- borough out foremost, though he be wedded to my sister.” ‘So please you, sir,’ said Wildrake, “ and with your most powerful warrant, I trust I might expel the commissioners, even without the aid of your most warlike and devout troopers.” “ That is what I am least anxious about,” replied the Gene- ral; “J should like to see the best of them sit after I had nodded to them to begone—always excepting the worshipful House, in whose name our commissions run ; but who, assome think, will be done with politics ere it-be time to renew them. Therefore, what chiefly concerns me to know, is, whether thy ! ll embrace a traffick which hath such a fair promise of profit with it. I am well convinced that, with a. scout like thee, who hast been in the cavaliers’ quarters, and canst, I should guess, resume thy drinking, ruffianly, health-quaffing manners whenever thou hast a mind, he must discover where this Stewart hath ensconced himself. Either the young Lee will visit the old one in person, or he will write to him, or hold communication with him by letter. At all events, Markham Everard and thou must have an eye in every hair of your head.” While he spoke, a flush passed over his brow, he rose from his chair, and paced the apartment in agitation. “ Woe to you, if you suffer the young adverturer to escape me !—-you had better be in the deepest dungeon in Europe, than breathe the air of England, should you but dream of playing me false. I have spoken freely to thee, fellow—more freely than is my wont—the time required it. But, to share my confidence is -~ping a watch over powder-magazine, the least and most insignificant spark blows thee to ashes. ‘Tell your master what I said—but not how I said it—Fie, that I should have been betrayed into this distemperature of passion !—begone, sirrah Pearson shall bring thee sealed order—Yet, stay—thou hast something to ask.” “ T would know,” said Wildrake, to whom the visible anx- iety of the General gave some confidence, “ what is the figure of this young gallant, in case I should find him?” “A tall, rawboned, swarthy lad, they say he has shot up into. Here is his picture by a good hand, some time since.” He turned round one of the portraits which stood with its face like keePy, spp cOconi gas clubansastion anes ST eT g2 WOODSTOCK. against the wall, but it proved not to be that of Charles the Second, but of his The first motio unhappy father. n of Cromwell indicated a purpose of hastily replacing the picture, and it seemed as if an effort was neces- sary to repress his disinclination to look upon it. But he did repress it, and placing the picture against the wall, withdrew slowly and sternly, as if, in defiance of his own feelings, he was determined to gain a place from which to see it to advantage. It was well for Wi Idrake that his dangerous companion had not turned an eye on him, for zs blood also kindled when he saw the portrait of his master in the hands of the chief author of his death. Being a fierce and desperate man, he commanded his passion with great difficulty ; and if, on its first violence, he had been provided with a suitable weapon, it is possible Cromwell would never have ascended higher in his bold ascent toward supreme power. But this natural and sudden flash of indignation, which rushed through the veins of an ordinary man like Wildrake ; was presently subdued, when confronted with the strong yet stifled emotion displayed by so powerful a character as Crom- well. As the cavalier looked on his dark and bold countenance agitated by inward and indescribable feelings, he found his own violence of spirit die away and lose itself in fear and wonder. So true it is, that as greater lights swallow up and extinguish the display of those and overruling min a brook > which are less, so men of great, capacious, ds, bear aside and subdue, in their climax of passion, the more feeble wills and passions of others as t > when a river joins ; the smaller stream. Wildrake stood he fiercer torrent shoulders aside a silent, inactive, and almost a terrified spectator, while Cromwell, assuming a firm sternness of eye and manner, as one strong internal feel proceeded, in brief firm voice, to comn words seemed less who compels himself to look on what some ing renders painful and disgustful to him, and interrupted expressions, but yet with a 1ent on the portrait of the late King. His addressed to Wildrake, than to be the spon- taneous unburdening of his own bosom, swelling under recollec- tion of the past and anticipation of the future. ‘* That Flemish —what a power he and destroy—still t painter,” he said—* that Antonio Vandyck has ! Steel may mutilate, warriors may waste he King stands uninjured by time ; and our grandchildren, while they read his history, may look on his image, and compare the melancholy features with the woeful tale-—It was a ster calm pride of that n necessity—it was an awful deed! The eye might have ruled worlds of crouching oWOODSTOCK. 93 Frenchmen, or ae Italians, or formal Spaniards; but its glances only roused the native courage of the stern Englishman. 2 lay not on poor sinful man, whose breath is in his nostrils, the blame that he falls, when Heaven never gave him strength of nerves to stand! The weak rider is thrown by his unruly horse, and trampled to death—the strongest man, the best cava- springs to the empty ee: and uses bit and spur till the y steed knows its master. ho blames him, who, mounted , rides triumphantly oo the people ce for having suc- ceeded, where the unskilful and feeble fell and died ? Verily he hath his reward; then, what is that piece of painted canvas tome more than others? No; let him show to others the reproaches of that cold calm face, that proud yet complaining eye : Those who have aeree on higher respects have no cause to start’ at painted shadows. Not wealth “nor power brought me from my ybscurity. ‘The oppressed consciences, the inj iured liberties of an oa were the banner that I followed.” ae raised his voice so high, as if pleading in his own defence before some tribunal, that Pearson, the officer in attendance, looked into the apartment; and observing his master, with his eyes kindling, his arms extended, his foot advanced, and his voice raised, like a generalin the act of commanding the advance of his army, he instantly withdrew. ‘“‘ It was other than selfish regards that drew me forth to action,’ continued Cromwell, “ and I dare the world—ay, living or dead I challenge—to assert that I armed for a private cause, or as a means of enlarging my fortunes. Neither was there a trooper in the regiment who came there with less of personal evil vil to yonder unhappy 7—— At this moment the door of the apartment opened, and a sentlewoman entered, who, from her resemblance to the Gen- eral, although her features were soft and feminine, might be immediately recognized as his daughter. She walked up to Cromwell, gent tly but firmly passed her arm through his, and. said to . him, in. a) .persuasive “tone, “Father, ) this as not well—you have promised me this should not happen.” The General hung down his head, like one who was either ashamed of the passion to which he had given way, or of the influence which was exercised over him. He yielded, however, to the affectionate impulse, and left the apart- ment, without again turning his head toward the portrait which had so much affected him, or looking toward Wiid- rake, who remained fixed in astonishment.ee ee WOODSTOCK. CHAPTER NINTH. Doctor.—Go to, go to,—You have known what you should not. MACBETH, WILDRAKE was left in the c real as we have said, aston- ished and alone. It was often noised about. that Crom- well, the deep and sagacious sash sinh the calm and in- trepid commander, he who had overcome such difficulties and ascended to such heights, that he seemed already to bestride the land which he had conquered, had, like many other men of great genius, a constitutional taint of mel- ancholy, which sometimes displayed itself both in words and actions, and had been first observed in that sudden and striking cHange » When, abandoning entirely the disso- lute freaks of his youth, he embraced a very strict course of religious observances, which, upon some occasions, he seemed to consider as bringing him into more near and close contact with the spiritual world. This extraordinary man is said sometimes, during that period of his life, to have given way to. spiritual delusions, or, as he himself conceived them, prophetic inspirations of Aas eran- deur, and of strange, deep, and mysterious agencies, in which he was in future to be engaged, in the same man- ner as his younger years had been marked by fits of ex- uberant and excessive frolic and debaucheries. Something of this kind seemed to explain the which he had now manifested. With wonder at what he had witnessed, Wildrake felt some anxiety on his own account. Though not the most reflecting of mortals, he had sense enough to know that it is dangerous to be a witness of the infirmities of men high in power; and he was left so long by himself, as induced him to entertain some secret doubts whether the General might not be tempted to take means of confin- Ing or removing a witness who had seen him lowered, as it seemed, by the suggestions of his own conscience, beneath that lofty fight which, in general, he affected to sustain above the rest of the sublu inary world. In this, however, he wronged Cromwell, who was free either from an extreme degree of jealous suspicion, or from anything which approached toward bloodthirstiness. Pearson appeared, after a lapse of about an hour, and, inti- mating to Wildrake that he was to follow, conducted him into ebullition of passionWOODSTOCK. 95 a distant apartment, in which he found the General seated on alow couch. His Ties was in the ape but remained at some distance, apparently busied with some female needle- work, and scarce turned her head as Pearson and Wildrake entered. At a sign from the Lord General, Wildrake approached him as before. ‘ Comrade,” he said, “‘ your old friends the cava- liers look on me as their enemy, and conduct themselves toward me as if they desired to make me such. I profess they are laboring to their own prejudice; for I regard and have ever r ded them as honest and honorable fools, who were silly enough to run their necks into nooses and their heads against stone walls, that a man called Stewart, and ‘over them. Fools! are there no hat would sound as well as Charles title beside them? Why, the word ed lamp, that throws the same bright vilding upon any combination of the alphabet, and yet you must shed your blood for a name! But thou, for thy part, shalt have no wrong from me. Here is an order, well warranted, to clear the Lodge at Woodstock, and aban- don it to thy master’s keeping, or those whom he shall appoint. He will have his uncle and pretty cousin with him, doubtless. Fare thee well—think on what I told thee. They say beauty is a loadstone to yonder long lad thou dost wot of ; but I reckon he has other stars at present to direct his course than bright eyes and fair hair. Be it as it may, thou knowest my purpose—peer out, peer out; keep a constant and careful look-out on every ragged patch that w anders by hedge-row or lane—these are days when a beggar’s cloak may cover a ae S ransom. ‘There are some broad Portug: something strange to thy Saat h, I ween. Once more, think on what thou hast heard, an he added in a lower and more impressive tone Of Voice, 7 “forget what thou hast seen. My service to thy master;—and yet once again, remember—and forget.’ —Wildrake made his obeisance, and, returning to his inn, left Windsor with all possible speed. It was afternoon in the same day when the cavalier rejoined his roundhead friend, who was ae expecting him at the inn in Woodstock appointed for their rendezvous. “ Where hast thou been ?—what hast thou seen ?—what strange uncertainty is in thy looks >—and why dost thou not answer me?” “ Because,” said Wildrake, laying aside his riding-cloak and rapier, ‘ ‘you ask so many questions at once. A man has buteS eet ee 96 WOODSTOCK, one tongue to answer with, and mine is well-nigh glued to th roof of my mouth.’ “Will drink unloosen it ?” said the Colonel; “ though, I dare i thou hast tried that spell at every ale pholse on the road. all for what thou wouldst have, maa only be quick.”’ ‘ ea Everard,” answered W ildrake, “T have not tasted so much as a cup of cold water this day.” 8 ben thou art out of humor for that reason,” said the Colonel; “salve thy sore with brandy, if thou wil , but leave being so fantastic and unlike to thyself, -as thou eee in this silent mood.” “Colonel Everard,” replied the cavalier very gravely, “Iam an altered man.” “I think thou dost alter,” said Everard, “every day in the year, and every hour of the day. Gone good now, tell me, hast thou seen the General, and got his warrant for clearing out the sequestrators from Woodstock ? ” “I have seen the devil,” said Wildrake, “and hay e, as thou say’st, got a warrant from him.” ‘Give it me hastily,” said Everard, catching at the packet. ‘Forgive me, Mark,” said Wildrake; “if thou knewest the purpose with which this deed is gzanted—if thou knewest— what it is not my purpose to tell thee—what manner of aye are founded on thy accepting it, I have that opinion of thee, Mark Everard, that thou wouldst as soon take a red-hot horse- shoe from th e anvil with thy bare hand, as receive into it this slip of paper.” “Come, come,” said Everard, “ this comes of some of vour exalted ideas of loyalty, which, excellent within certain bounds, drive us mad when enogaree 4 up to some heights. Do not think, since I must needs spe ak plainly with thee, that I see without sorrow the downfall of our ancient monarchy, and the substitution of another form of government in its stead; but ought my regret for the past to prevent my apatnescins and aiding in such measures as are li kely to se ttle the future? The royal c cause is ruined, hadst thou and ever ry cavalier in E1 nel and sworn the contrary ; dined, not to rise again—for many a day at least. The Parliament, so often draughted and drained of those who were courageous enough to maintain their own free- dom of opinion, is now reduced to a handful of statesmen, who have lost the respect of the people from the length of time dur- ing which they have held the sat ia d ‘hey cannot stand long unless they were to reduce the army ; and the army, late servants, are now masters, and will refuse to be reduced. They know their strength, and that they may be management of affairsWOODSTOCK. 97 an army subsisting on pay and free quarters throughout Ene- land as long as they will. I tell thee, Wildrake, unless we look to the only man who can rule and manage them, we may expect military law throughout the land; and I, for mine own part, look for any preservation of our privileges that may be vouch- safed to us, only through the wisdom and forbearance of Crom- well. Now, you have my secret. You are aware that lam not doing the best I would, but the best I can. I wish—not so ardently as thou, perhaps—yet I do wish that the King could have been restored on good terms of composition, safe for us and for himself. And now, good Wildrake, rebel as thou think- est me, make me-no worse a rebel than an unwilling one. God knows, I never laid aside love and reverence to the King, even in drawing my sword against his ill advisers.” ‘Ah, plague on you,” said Wildrake, “ that is the very cant of it—that’s what you all say. All of you fought against the King in pure love and loyalty, and not otherwise. However, [ see your drift, and I own that I like it better than I expected. The army is your bear now, and old Noll is your bearward ; and you are like a country constable, who makes interest with the bearward that he may prevent him from letting bruin loose. Well, there may come a day when the sun will shine on our side of the fence, and thereon shall you, and all the good fair- weather folks who love > stronger party, come a common cause with us.” Without much attending to what his friend said, Colonel Everard carefully studied the warrant of Cromwell. “It is bolder and more peremptory than I expected,” he said. ‘‘The General must feel himself strong, when he cpposes his own authority so directly to that of the Council of State and the Parliament.” “You will not hesitate to act upon it?” said Wildrake. “That I certainly will not,’ answered Everard ; “‘ but I must wait till I have the assistance of the Mayor, who, I think, will eladly see these fellows ejected from the Lodge. I must not go altogether upon military authority, if possible.” Then, stepping to the door of the apartment, he despatched a servant of the house in quest of the Chief Magistrate, desiring he should be made acquainted that Colonel Everard desired to see him with as little loss of time as possible. ‘You are sure he will come, like a dog at a whistle U Oo ec 1d make Oo 3 Wildrake. ‘The word captain, or colonel, makes the fa trot in these days, when one sword is worth fifty corporation charters. But there are dragoons yonder, as well as the grim- faced knave whom I frightened the other evening when | : said 11 LTBRETT SR oimaaere eee 98 WOODSTOCK. showed my face in at the window. ‘Think’st thou the knaves will show rough play?” “The General’s warrant will wei igh more with them than a dozen acts of Parliament,” said Everard.—‘“ But it is time thou eatest, if thou hast in truth ridden from Windsor hither without aoe q oo pais AEX 2) g “I care not about it,” said Wildrake: “TI tell thee, your General gave me a breakfast which, I think, will serve me one while, if 1 am ever able to digest it. By the mass, it lay so heavy on my conscience, that I carried it to church to sé ce ides} could digest it there with my other sins. But not a whit.” “’To church !—to the door of the church, thou meanest,’ said Everard. “I know thy way—thou art ever wont to pull thy hat off reverently at the threshold; but for crossing it, that day seldom comes.” “Well,” replied Wildrake, “and if I do pull off my castor and Ree is it not seemly to sho yw the same respects in a church which we offer in a palace? It is a dainty matter, is it not, to see “one Anabaptists, and ay nists, and the rest of you, gather to asermon with as little ceremony as hogs toa trough! But here comes food, and now for a grace, if I can remember one.”’ Everard was too much interested about the fate of his uncle and his fair cousin, and the Prospeet of restoring them to their quiet home, under the protection of that formidable truncheon which was already regarded as the leading staff of England, to remark, thats certainly a great alteration had taken place in the manners and outward behavior at least of his companion. His demeanor frequently evinced a sort of struggle betwixt old habits of indulgence, and some newly formed resolutions of abstinence ; and i was ane ludicrous to see how often the hand of the neophyte directed itself naturally to a large black leathern jack, whi Ht contain a two double flagons of strong ale, and how often, diverted from its purpose by the better reflections of the reformed toper, it seized, instead, upon a large ewer of salubrious and pure water. It was not difficult to see that the task of sobriety was not yet become easy, and that, if it had the recommendation of the intellectual portion of the party who had resolved upon it, the outward man yielded a reluctant and restive compliance. But honest Wildrake had been dreadfully frightened at the course proposed to him by Cromwell, and, with a feeling, not peculiar to the. Gat tholi Gre ligion, had forme d a solemn resolution within his own mind, tl iat, if he came off safe and with honor from this dangerous interview, he would show his sense of Heaven’s favor, OWOODSTOCK. 99 by renouncing some of the sins which most easily beset him, ao ve ven thos Ek 4 os : 2 4 3 z Ee and especially that of intemperance, to which, like many of his wild compeers, he was too much A eaS ] r -]11t4 01 Tr NAT XAT< 9 O VAT Se io his resolution or vow, was partly prudential as well as relig- for i 1ous ; for it occurred to him as ve ee e, that some matters of a diffi ‘licate nature mig ht be thrown into his hands t the pr during the conduct of which it would be fitting oy some better oracle than that of uae Bottel, c: E y Rabelais. In full compliance with thi prudent lination, he touched neither the ale nor the brandy whi ed before him, and declined peremp- torily the s ch his friend would have garnished the board. 2 evert ry re the trenchers and napki ns, together with the large black > which we have already mentioned, and was one or two ste ‘ 9s on his way to the door, the sinewy arm of the cavalier, which seemed to elongate itself urpos the folds of the sress of the retirmg Gany- e black jack, conveyed it to the - lips, ) 7 - a 2c i+ oe ta es hatnanc (AS Le "CRXtCN Cie € ar peyond cet), a oe th pi 10. ee Baath in efortl th the aspiration, “ T j c poor creatures of clay—one niodlbet sip mu St ust be permit sa to our frailty.’ So murmuring he glued the huge flagon to his lips, and as the head was slowly and gradually i nclined backward, in pro- portion as the right hand elevated the bottom of the pitcher, Everard had great doubts whether the drinker and the c cup were likely to part until the whole contents of the latter had been transferred to the person of the former. Roger Wildrake aa however, when, by a moderate computation, he had wallowed at one draught about a quart and a a c H hen replaced it on the salver, fetched a long breath to 4 refresh he lungs, bade the boy oat him gone W ith the rest of the liquors, in a tone which oe some dread of his con- stancy, and then, turning to his friend Everard, he expatiated in praise of moderation, observing that the mouthful which he i a : had just taken had been of more service to him ia if he had 14 remained quaffng healths at table for four hours together. His friend made no ae but could not help being privately of opinion that Wildrake’s temperance had done as much execu- tion on the tankard in his single draught, as some more moder- ate topers might have effected if they had sat sipping for an evening. But the subject was changed by es entrance of the landlord, who came to announce to his honor Colonel Ev erard, that the worshipful Mayor of Woodstock, with the Rev. Master Holdenough, was come to wait upon him.Se srhetaahieinieeiabbiaatianahtee aa WOODSTOCK, CHART ita a. Here we have one head Upon two bodies—your two-headed bullock Is but an ass to such a prodigy. These two have but one meaning, thought, and counsel $ And, when the single noddle has spoke out, The four legs scrape assent to it. OLD PLAY. In the goodly form of the honest Mayor, there was a bus tling mixture of importance and embarrassment, like the deport- ment of a man who was conscious that he had an important part to act, if he could but exactly discover what that part was. But both were mingled with much pleasure at seeing Everard, and he frequently repeated his welcomes and all-hails before he could be brought to attend to what that gentleman said in reply. ‘Good, worthy Colonel, you are indeed a desirable sight to Woodstock at all times, being, as I may say, almost our towns- man, as you have dwelt so much and so long at the palace. Truly, the matter begins almost to pass my wit, though I have transacted the affairs of this borough for many a long day; and you are come to my assistance like, hike ’”—— “ Tanguam Deus ex machina, as the Ethnic poet hath it,” said Master Holdenough, ‘although I do not often quote from such books.—Indeed, Master Markham Everard,—or worthy Colonel, as I ought rather to say—you are simply the most welcome man who has come to Woodstock since the days of old King Harry.” ““T had some business with you, my good friend,” said the Colonel, addressing the Mayor; “I shall be glad if it should so happen at the same time, that I may find occasion to pleas- ure you or your worthy pastor.” ‘“‘No question you can do so, good sir;”’ interposed Master Holdenough ; *‘ you have the heart, sir, and you have the hand; and we are much in want of good counsel, and that from a man of action. I am aware, worthy Colonel, that you and your worthy father have ever borne yourselves in these turmoils like men of a truly Christian and moderate spirit, striving to pour oil into the wounds of the land, which some would rub with vitriol and pepper; and we know you are faithful children of that church which we have reformed from its papistical and prelati- cal tenets.WOODSTOCK. Ior the piety and lear ning of many of your teachers ; But I am also for liberty of conscience to all men. I aeHther side with sec- taries, nor do I desire to see them the objects of suppression by violence.” : “Sir, sir,” said the presbyterian, hastily “ all this hath a fair sound ; but I would you should think what a fine country and church we are like to have of it, amidst the errors, blasphemies, and schisms, which are daily introduced into the church and kingdom of England, so that worthy Master Edwards, in his rangrena, declareth, that our native country is about to be come the very sink and cesspool of all schisms, heresies, blas- phemies, and confusions, as the army of Hannibal was said to be the refuse of all nations—Co/uvies omnium gentium.—Believe me, worthy Colonel, that they of the Honor able House view all this over fone and with the winking connivance of old Eli. These instructors, the schismatics, shoulder the Orthodox min- isters out of their oe thrust themselves into families, and break up the peace thereof, stealing away men’s hearts from the established faith.’ “My good Master Holdenough ,’ replied the Colonel, in- terrupt ing the zealous pres icher, “ there is ground of sorrow for all these unh appy discords ; and I hold with you that the fiery oirits of the present time have raised men’s minds at once »0ve sober-minded and sincere religion, and above decorum and common-sense. But there is no help save patience. En- thusiasm is a stream that may foam off in its own time, where- as it is sure to bear down every barrier which is directly Op- posed to it—But what are these schismatical proceedings to our present purpose?” ‘““Why, partly this, sir,” said Holdenough, ‘although per- haps you may make less of it than I should have thought before we met.—I was myself—I, Nehemiah Holdenough [he added consequently], was forcibly expelled from my own pulpit, even as a man should have been thrust out of his own house, by an alien, and an intruder—a wolf, who was not at the trouble even to put on sheep’s cl pee ae came in his native wolfish attire of buff and bandoleer, and held forth in my stead to the people, who are to me asa flock to the lawful shepherd. It is too true, sir—Master Mayor saw it and strove to take such order to prevent it as man muaks though,” turning to the Mayor, “I ma k still you might have striven a little more Good now, good Master Holdenough, a6 not let us go back on that ee aid the Mayor. “Guy of Warwickor Bevis of Hampton, might do something with this generation ; “My good and reverend friend,” said ets TI respect ~SAL ee Re eat nine as WOODSTOCK but truly, they are too many and too strong for the Mayor of Woodstock.” “I think Master Mayor speaks very good sense,” said the Colonel; “if the Independents are not allowed to preach, I fear me they will not fight ;—then if you were to have another rising GE cavalier. 7 ‘There are worse folks may rise than cavaliers,” said Hold- enough. ‘“‘ How, sir?’ replied Colonel Everard. ‘‘ Let me remind you, Master Holdenough, that this is no safe language in the present state of the nation.” “Sl say,;said. the Presbyterian... © a vere are worse folk may rise than cavaliers ; and I will prove what I say. The devil is worse than the worst cavalier that ever drank ahealth, or swore an oath—and the devil has arisen at Woodstock Lodge.” “Ay, truly hath he,” said the Mayor, “ bodily and visibly, in figure and form—An awful time we live in!” ‘“Gentlemen, I really know not how I am to understand you,” said Everard. ‘““Why, it was even about the devil we came to speak to you,” said the Mayor; “but the worthy minister is always so hot upon the sectaries ’ ‘Which are the devil’s brats, and nearly akin to him,” said Master Holdenough. ‘ But true it is, that the growth of these oOo 1 sects has brought up the Evil One even upon the face of the earth, to look after his own interest, where he finds it most thriving.” ‘Master Holdenough,” said the Colonel, “if you speak figuratively, I have already ee ou that I have neither the means nor the skill sufficient to temper these religious heats. But if you design-to say there has been an actual apparition of the devil, I presume to think that you, with your doctrine and your learning, would be a fitter match for him than a soldier like me.” ‘ True, sir; and I have that confidence in the commission which I hold, that I would take the cee 1 against the foul fiend without a moment’s delay,” said Hol denpngh + Sut the place in which he hath of late appeared, being Woodstock, is filled with those dangerous and impious Pea of whom I have been but now compl: ining $ and though, confident in my own resources, I dare venture in disputation with their Great Master himself ; yet, without your protection, most worthy Colonel, I see not that | may with prudence trust myself with the tossing and goring ox Desborough, or the bk ody and devouring bear Harrison, or the cold and poisonous snake Bletson—all of whomWOODSTOCK. 103 are now at the lodge, doing license and taking spoil as they think meet; and, as all men say, the devil has come to make ’ a fourth with them.” ‘In good truth, worthy and noble sir,” said the Mayor, “it is even as Master Hold lenough says—our priv ileges are declared void, our cattle seized in the very pastures. They talk of cut- ting down and disparking the fair Chase, which has been so i er the pleasure of so many kings, and making Woodstock of s little note as any paltry village. I assure you we heard of your arrival balks joy, and wondered at your keeping yourself so close in your or We know no one save your father or you, that are like to stand the poor burgesses’ friend in this extremity, since almost al the gentry around are malignants, and under sequestration. We trust, therefore, you will make strong intercession in our behalf.” : “Certainly, Master Mayor,” said the Colonel, who saw him- self with pleasure anticipated; “it was my very purpose to 1 in this matter; and I didb ut keep myself alone be furnished with some autho1 ‘ity on the Lord- LOr jo) e l } a! have interferex until I should General.” ‘“* Powers from the Lord-General !” said the Hs thrusting the clergyman with his elbow—*“ Dost thou hear that? >—W hat cock will fight that cock? We shall carry it now over their necks, and Woodstock shall be brave Woo dstock still!” “Keep thine elbow from my side, friend,” said Holdenough, annoyed by the action which the Mayor hz ed suited to his words; ‘and may the roe send that Cromwell prove not as sharp to the people of Eng ee as ai bones against my person! Yet I approve that we shc use his authority to stop the course of these men’s pr i “Let us set out, then,” said Colonel Everard: “ ou I trust we shall find the gentlemen reasonable and obe dien a 1 uld deecaiies The functionaries, laic and clerical, assented wi a nfuehi joy and the Colonel require d and eet Wildrake’s assistance in l putting on hi ipier, as if he had been the dependent whose part he acted. The pasiien contrived, however, while doing him these menial offices, to give his friend a shrewd pinch, in order to maintain the footing of secret equality be- twixt them. The Colonel was saluted, as they passed through the streets, by many of the anxious inhabitants, who seemed to consider his intervention as affording the only chance of saving their fine Park, and the rights of the corporation, as well as of individuals, from ruin and confiscation. As they entered the Park, the Colonel asked his companions, us cloak andr: rayStages tere eee ee or WOODSTOCK. ‘‘ What is this you say of apparitions being seen amongst them ?” “Why, Colonel,” said the clergyman, “ you know vourself that Woodstock was always haunted?” ‘“‘T have lived therein many a day,” said the Colonel; “and I know that I never saw the least sign of it, although idle people spoke of the house as they do of all old mansions, and gave the apartments ghosts and spectres to fill up the places of as many of the deceased great as had ever dwelt there.” “Nay, but, good Colonel,” said the clergyman, “I trust you have not reached the prevailing sin of the times, and become indifferent to the testimony in favor of apparitions, which appears so conclusive to all but atheists, and advocates for witches ?” ‘““T would not absolutely disbelieve what is so generally affirmed,” said the Colonel; ‘‘ but my reason leads me to doubt most of the stories which I have heard of this sort, and my own experience never went to confirm any of them.” ‘“Ay, but trust me,” said Holdenough, “‘ there was always a demon of one or the other species about this Woodstock. Not a man or woman in the town but has heard stories of appari- tions in the forest, or about the old castle. Sometimes it is a pack of hounds, that sweep along, and the whoops and halloos of the huntsmen, and the winding of horns and the galloping of horse, which is heard as if first more distant, and then close around you—and then anon it is a solitary huntsman, who asks if you can tell him which way the stag has gone. He is always dressed in green; but the fashion of his clothes is some five hundred years old. ‘This is what we call Demon Meridianum— the noonday spectre.” ‘“My worthy and reverend sir,” said the Colonel, “I have lived at Woodstock many seasons, and have traversed the Chase at all hours. ‘Trust me, what you hear from the villagers is the growth of their idle folly and superstition.” “Colonel,” replied Holdenough, “a negative proves nothing, What signifies, craving your pardon, that you have not seen anything, be it earthly or be it of the other world, to detract from the evidence of a score of people who have >—And besides, there is the Demon Nocturnum—the being that walketh by night; he has been among these Independents and schismatics last night. Ay, Colonel, you may stare ; but it is even so—they may try whether he will mend their gifts, as they profanely call them, of exposition and prayer. No, sir, I trow, to master the foul fiend there goeth some competent knowledge of theology,WOODSTOCK. 105 aad an acquaintance of the humane letters, ay, and a regular clerical education and clerical calling.” ‘I do not in the least doubt,” said the Colonel, “the efficacy of your qualifications to lay the devil ; but still I think some odd mistake has occasioned this confusion amongst them, if there has any such in reality existed. Desborou gh isa block- head, to be sure; and Harrison is fanatic enough to b anything. But there eis Bletson, on the other hand, who be not hing.- —W hat do you know of this matter, good Mas May or?? “In sooth, and it was Master Bletson who gave the first alarm,” replied the magistrate ; ‘or at least the first distinct one. You see, sir, I was in bed with my wife, and no one else; and I was as fast asleep ) as a man can desire to be at two hours after midnight, when, behold you, they came knocking at my bedroom door, to tell me there was an alarm in Woodstock, and that the bell of the Lodge was ringing a at that dead hour of the uight as hard as ever it rung when it called the court to dinner,” ‘Well, but the cause of this alarm?” said the Colonel. ‘You shall hear, worthy Colonel, you shall hear,” answered the Mayor, waving his hand with dignity ; for he was one of those persons who will not be hurried out of their own pace. “So Mrs. Mayor would have persuaded me, in her love and affection, poor wretch, that to rise at such an hour out of my own warm bed, was like to bring on my old complaint the lum- bago, and that I should send the people to Alderman Dutton.— Alderman Devil, Mrs. Mayor, said I ;—I beg your reverence’s pardon for u sing such a phr ase—Do you think I am going to lie a-bed when the town is on fire, and t ‘the cavaliers up, and the devil to pay ?—I beg your pardon again, parson—But here we are before the gate of the Palace ; will it not please you to enter +? ‘I would first hear the end of your story,” said the Colonel ; That is, Master Mayor, if it happens to have an end.” a Everything hath an end,” “said the Mayor, “and ‘tha which we call-a pudding hath two.—Your worship will forgive me for being facetious. Where was I ?—Oh, I jumped out of bed, and put on my red plush breeches, with the blue nether stocks, for I always make a point of being dressed suitably to my dignity, night and day, summer and winter, Colonel Everard : 2° . . and I took the Constable along with me, in case the alarm should be raised by night-walkers or thieves, and called up worthy Master Holdenough out of his bed, in case it should turn cut to be the devil. And so I thought I was provided for the worst, and so away we came; and, by and by, the soldiers who care eve lie ul . Ran ., :VED TAN A Spbiisestearacatee! ea Se ree LOCKS 506 WOODS ame to town with Master Tompkins, who had been called ta arms, came marching down to Woodstock as fast as their feet would carry them; so I gave our people a sign to let them pass us, and outrnarch us, as it were, and this for a twofold reason.’ “‘T will be satisfied,” interrupted the Colonel, “‘ with one good reason. You desired the red-coats should have the first of the fray?” “True, sir, very true ;—and also that they should have the last of it, in respect that fighting 1s their especial business. However, we came on at a slow pace, ag men who are deter- mined to do their duty without fear or favor, when suddenly we way up the avenue toward the town, when sixof our constables and assistants fled at once, as be an apparition called the White Woman of Les es + ¢ + saw something white haste « CONEEIVINe Woodstock. " 1 or ss . 1 ‘‘ Look you there, Colonel,’”’ said Master Holdenough lemons of more mids: than one, which told VOU: THEFe: Were a oy ° pee : pee sek haunt tHe ancIe Alt SCENES Ol royal qdepau ~he “Ty anc ih opr ce } vour own or A M { Mavor?” said it hope you stood your own ground, aster IVLayvor : SAIC y—that is, I did not, strictly speak- ing, keep my ground ; but the town-clerk and 1] Rete aIeEG <5 honor, and too! post behind worthy Master Holdenough, who, with the spirit of \ ] 1 ] a es e i a Bs FOLTE Aes d, (5O1ONCL ana wit! 1LOUL CONLUS1ON OY dISsi a lion, threw himself in the way of the supposed spectre, and 1 atin as might have scared the devil himself, and RHEL plain ste discovered that it was no devil at all, nor white woman, neither woman of any color, but sletson, a member of the House of Commons, and one of the commissioners sent hither upon this unhappy sequestration of the Wood, Chase, and Lodge ot Woodstock.”’ ‘‘ And this was all you saw of the demon ?” said the Colone! “Truly, yes,’’ answered the Mayor ; “‘ and 4 poieen no wish to see more. However, we conveyed Master Bletson, as in dut\ ] attacked it with such a siserary of I VT Ps 1 worshipful Master |] bound, back to the Lodge, and he was ever maunderi ng by the way how that he met a party of scarlet devils incarnate march- ing down to the Lodge ; but, to my poor thinking, it mu ist t have been the Ind ependent dragoons who had just passed u And more incarnate devils I would never wis! said Wildrake, who so suddenly heard, showed how much the Mayor’s nerves were still alarmed, for he started and jumped aside with an alacrity of which no one would at first sight suppose a man of his portly dignity to have been capable, Everard imposed silence on his ee ), tO. SCE: 1 remain silent no longer. Fils voice, 1 JWOODSTOCK. intrusive attendant : and. de sirous to hear the conclusion of tl a strange story, requested the Mayor to tell him how the matte Shs and whether they stopped the supposed spectre. ] S peab oe ery), oe F * ‘Truly y, worthy sir,” said the Mayor, “ Master Hol Idenough was quite venturous upon confronting, as it were, the devil, and compelling him to aj ypear under the real form of Master Joshua ae EA : J letson, member of Bae for the borough of Littlefaith. : “Ff Fett Micke A 4 a G6 th, Mastet Mayor,” said the divine, ““I were strangely ignorant of my own commission and its cnnenn ee if I were to value opposing myself to Satan, or any Independent in his likeness, all of whom, in the name of Him I sery re, L alo , and trample under my feet; and because Master Mayor is something tec defy, spit at V5 OPVLC a bh edious, I will briefly nkogm your honor that we saw little of the = nemy that ni ight, ¢ save what Bletson said in the first feeling of his terrors, cna save what we might collect from hee heendeed oi a eres of the Honorable Colonel Desborough and Major Gene ral Harrison.”’ ‘And what plight were they in, I pray you?” demanded 1 z ‘ , % ] i Vhy, worthy sir, every one might see with half an eye ] et a S e us 4 that they had been engaged in a fight wherein they had not been hon es with perfect victory ; seeing that General Taso = 2 3 ea weg 1a ee ET as Roe larrison was stalkir 1g up and down the parlor, with his drawn self, his doublet unbuttoned, IS garters aa and like to throw him 1 1 down as he now and then t 1 A eA sears. inl qownl aS Ne now anc iy fLOcd 10M the 7, iat Cl gapin and Sree ; | ning like amad oo, And yonder sat t Desborough with a dry noattlea of sacl jefore hin ic] L > hz ee eae rt eel 1 ie h pottle of sack before him, which he had just emptied, and which, thouoch + 1 ala st J urhich he trn 1 had A restored hir though the element in which he trusted, had not restored him > tad J Ge oe 2) ough to speak, or courage enough to look over his shoulder. He had a Bibl ble in his hand, forsooth, as if it would uinst the Evil One ; but I peered ove L good gentleman held the bottom of the page uppermost. It was as if one of ce musketeers, T noble and valued sir, were to present the butt of his piece at ie ] } enemy instead of the muzzle—ha, ha, ha ! it was a sight to judge of schismatics by ; both in point of head, and in point of 1 a - ] : ix kG heart, in point of skill, and in point of courage.—Oh ! then was the time to see the true character of an aut pastor of souls over those unhappy men, who leap into the folc without due and legal authority, and will, forsooth, preach, teach, and st : and blasphemously term the doctrine of the Church saltless porridge and dry chips ! ” S “T have no doubt you were ready to meet the danger, SReNNpe Des etna Rees keeneties eet a eters owe 108 WOODSTOCK. reverend sir: but I would fain know of what nature it was, and from w hence it was to be apprehended Pe ‘© Was it for me to make such inquiry ?” said the clergyman, triump shantly. <“ Is it for a brave soldier to number his enemies, or inquire from what quarter they are to come 2 No, sir, I was there with match lighted, bullet in my mouth, and my harque- buss shouldered, to encounter as many devils as hell could pour in, were they countless as motes in the sunbeam, and although they came from all points of the compass. ‘The Papists talk of the tempt ation of St. Anthony—psh aw ! let them double all the myriads which the brain of a crazy Dutch painter h 1ath invented and you will find a poor Presbyterian div one at least,—who, not in his own strength, but his netic S, will receive the assault in such sort, that far from returning against him as against yonder poor hound, day after day, and night after night, he will at once pack them off as with a ven- geance to the uttermost parts of Assyria!” “Still,” said the Colonel, “I pray to know whether you saw anything upon which to exercise your pious learning ?”’ “Saw?” answered the divine; ‘‘no, truly, I saw nothing, nor did I look for anything. ‘Thieves will not attack well- armed travelers, nor will devils or evil spirits come against one who bears in his bosom the word of truth in the very language in which it was first dictated, No, sir; they shun a divine who can understand the holy text, as a crow is said to keep wide of a gun loaded with hailshot.” They had walked a little way back upon their road to give time for this conversation; and the Colonel, perceiving it was about to lead to no satisfactory explanation of the real cause of alarm on the preceding night, turned around, and, observing it was time they should go to the Lodge, began to move in that direction with his three e€ companions. It had now became dark, and the towers of Woodstock arose high above the umbrageous shroud which the forest spread around the ancient and venerable mansion, From one of the highest turrets, which could still be distinguished as it rose against the clear blue sky, there gleamed a light like that of a candle within the building. The Mayor stopped short, and catching fast hold of the divine, and then of Colonel Everard, exclaimed, in a trembling and hasty, but suppressed tone, ‘Do you see yonder light?” ‘Ay, marry do ly’ said Colonel Everard: ‘‘and what does that matter ?—a light in a garret-room of such an old mansion ° as Woodstock is no subject of wonder, I trow.”WOODSTOCK. 109 ‘ But a light from Rosamond’s Tower is surely so,” said the Mayor. “True,” said the Colonel, something surprised, when, after a careful examination, he satisfied himself that the worthy magistrate’s conjecture was right. “‘ That is indeed Rosamond’s Tower ; and as the drawbridge by which it was accessible has been destroyed for centuries, it is hard to say what chance could have lighted a lamp in such an inaccessible place.” “That light burns with no earthly fuel,” said the Mayor; “neither from whale nor olive oil, nor bees-wax, nor mutton- suet either. I dealt in these commodities, Colonel, before I went into my present line; and I can assure you I could dis- tinguish the sort of light they give, one from another, at a greater distance than yonder turret—Look you, that is no earthly flame.—See you not something blue and reddish upon the edges ?—that bodes full well where it comes from.—Colo- nel, in my opinion we had better go back to sup at the town, and leave the devil and the red-coats to settle their matters to- gether for to-night; and then, when we come back the next morning, we will have a pull with the party that chances to keep afield.” “You will do as you please, Master Mayor,” said Everard, but my duty requires me that I should see the Commissioners to-night.” ‘‘ And mine requires me to see the Foul Fiend,” said Master Holdenough, “‘if he dare make himself visible to me. I won- der not that, knowing who is approaching, he betakes himself to the very citadel, the inner and the last defences of this an- cient and haunted mansion. He is dainty, I warrant you, and must dwell where is a relish of luxury and murder about the walls of his chamber. In yonder turret sinned Rosamond, and in yonder turret she suffered; and there she sits, or more likely, the Enemy in her shape, as I have heard: true men of Woodstock tell. I wait on you, good Colonel—Master Mayor will do as he pleases. The strong man hath fortified himself in his dwelling-house, but, lo, there cometh another stronger than he.” ‘For me,” said the Mayor, ‘‘ who am as unlearned as I am unwarlike, I will not engage either with the Powers of the Earth, or the Prince of the Powers of the Air, and I would we were again at Woodstock !—and hark ye, good fellow,” slapping Wildrake on the shoulder,‘‘ I will bestow on thee a shilling wet and a shilling dry if thou wilt go back with me.” “ Gadzookers, Master Mayor,” said Wildrake, neither flat- tered by the magistrate’s familiarity of address, nor captivated 1g 5 J 4ee eee TIO WOODSTOCK. by his munificence—“ I wonder who the devil made you and me fellows? and, besides, do you think I would go b ack to Wood- stock with your worship ful cod’s-head, when, by good manage- ment, I may get a peep of fair Rosamond, and see whether she was that choice and incomparable piece of ware, which the world has been told of by rhymers and ballad-makers ? ” ‘Speak less hghtly and wantonly, friend,” said the divine ; ‘we are to resist the devil that he may flee from us, and not te tamper with him, or enter into his counsels, or traffic with the merchandise of his great Vanity Fair.” “Mind what the good man says, Wildrake,” said the Colonel; ‘and take heed another time how thou dost suffer thy wit to outrun discretion.” “IT am beholden to the reverend gentleman for his advice,’ answered Wildrake, upon whose tongue it was difficult to impose any curb whatever, even when his own safety rendered it most desirable. “ But, gadzookers, let him have had what experi- ence he will in fight ing with the devil, he never saw one so black as I had a tussle with—not a hundred years ago,” ‘“ How, friend,” said the clergymen, who understood every- thing literally when apparitions were mentioned, “ have you had so late a visitation of Satan? Believe me, then, that I wonder vhy thou darest toe ntertain his name so often and so lightly, as I see thou dost use it in thy ordinary discourse. But when and where didst thou see the Evil O Everard hastily interposed, lest by something yet more strongly alluding to Cromwell, his imprudent squire should, in mere wantonness, betray his interview with the General. ‘‘The young man raves,” he said, “ of a dream which he had the other night when he and [ slept together in Victor Lee’s chamber, be- long’ ing to the Ranger’s apartments at the Lodge. ‘Thanks for help at a pinch, good patron,” said Wil nee; whispering into Everard’s ear, who in vain endeavored to shake him off—“ a fib never failed a fanatic.” “You also spoke something too lightly of these matters, considering the work which we have in hand, worthy Colonel, said the Presbyterian divine. ‘‘ Believe me, the young man thy servant was more likely to see visions than to dream merely idle dreams in that apartment; for I have always heard, that, next to Rosamond’s Tower, in which, as I said, she played the wanton, and was afterward poisoned by Queen Eleanor, Victor Lee’s chamber was the place in the Lodge of Woodstock more peculiarly the haunt of evil spirits—I pray you, young man, tell me this dream or vision of yours.” “With all my heart, sir,” said Wildrake—then addressingWOODSTOCK. his patron, who began to interfere, he said, lush, ‘siz; ] have had the discourse for an hour, and why should not I hold forth in my turn? But this darkness, if you keep me silent oe longs pod pol turn Independent vahonce and stand up in you despite for the freedom of private judgment.—And SO, rev nied sir, I was Ghee of a carnal diver tisement called a bull-bait- ing; and methought they were ve bie: g dogs at head, as merrily as e’er I saw them at Tutb n nN > ss tbury bul il- Tunning ; and me- thought I heard some one say, there was the devil Come ta have a sight of the bull-ring. Well, Id thought that, gadswoon S, l would fae a peep at his Infernal Majesty. So ie looked, and there was a butcher in greasy woolen, with his steel by hi h e 1S side ; but he was none of 1 the devil. eee there was a drunken he keg with his mouth full of oaths, and his stomach full of emptiness, and a gold-laced waistcoat in a very dilapidated con- dition, and a ragged hat, with a piece of a feather in it ; and he was none of the devil neither. And here was a mille: his hands dusty with meal, and every atom of it stolen . and there was was a init ner, his green apron stained with wine, and every drop of it sophisticated - ba neither was the old gentle- man | ated for to be detected among these artisans of j iniquity. ne ‘as igth, sir, 1 saw a grave person wit h cropped hi alr, a pair of loneis| L projecting ears, a eel as broad as asl obbering bib ler his chin, abe own coat surmounted by a Geneva cloak, and I had old Nicholas at once in his genuine paraphernalia, ‘Shame, shame!” said Colonel Everard. “ What! behave thus to an old gentleman and a divine!” Nay let him proceed,” said the minister, with perfect equanimity ; “if thy friend, or secretary, is gibing, I must a AVE less patience than becomes my profession, if I coulc 1 not bear an idle jest, and forgive him who makes it, Or if, on the other @ Li hand, the enemy has really presented himself to the young man in such a guise as cs intimates, wherefore should we be surprised that he who can take upon him the form of an angel « of light, should be able to assume that of a frail and peccable mortal, whose spiritual calling and profession ought, indeed, to induce him to make his life an example to others ; but whose conduct, nevertheless, such is the imperfection of our unassisted nature, sometimes rather presents us with a w arning of what we should shun |? ‘Now, by the mass, honest on cae! mean reverend sir— I crave you a thousand pardons,” said W drat ke, eee by the quietness and patience of the presiyter rebuke. By SE. George, if quiet patience will do it, ibe art fit to play aeS oe on ee Rae Fe eeen et ea ch abaearneneaes 5 ETRE TT at aa “ae 112 WOODSTOCK. game at foils with the devil himself, and I would be contented to hold stakes.” - As he concluded an apology, which was certainly not un- called for, and seemed to be received in perfectly good part, they approached so close to the exterior door of the Lodge, that they were challenged with the emphatic Stand, by a senti- nel who mounted guard there. Colonel Everard replied, 4 friend; and the sentinel, repeating his command, “Stand, friend,” proceeded to call the corporal of the guard. ‘The cor- poral came forth, and at the same time turned out his guard. Colonel Everard gave his name and designation, as well as those of his companions, on which the corporal said;**! ie doubted not there would be orders for his instant admission ; but, in the first place, Master Tomkins must be consulted, that he might learn their honors’ mind.” “How, sir!” said the Colonel, “do you, knowing who I am, presume to keep me on the outside of your post Eve “Not if your honor pleases to enter,” said the corporal, “and undertakes to be my warranty ; but such are the orders of my post.” “Nay, then, do your duty,” said the Colonel ; “ but are the cavaliers up, or what is the matter, that you keep so close and strict a watch ?”’ The fellow gave no distinct answer, but muttered between his mustaches something about the Enemy, and the roaring Lion, who goeth about seeking whom he may devour. Pres- ently afterward Tomkins appeared, followed by two servants bearing lights in great standing brass candlesticks. They marched before Colonel Everard and his party, keeping as close to each other as two cloves of the same orange, and starting from time to time; and shouldering as they passed through sundry intricate passages, they led up a large and ample wooden staircase, the banisters, rail, and lining of which were executed in black oak, and finally into a long saloon, or parlor, where there was a prodigious fire, and about twelve candles of the largest size distributed in sconces against the wall. There were seated the Commissioners, who now held in their power the ancient mansion and royal domain of Wood- stock,WOODSTOCK. CHAPTER J ELEV ENEEE : : Vhe bloody bear, an independent beast, Unlick’d to forms, in groans his hate express’d— * * * Next him the buffoon ape, as atheists use, Mimick’d all sects, and had his own to choose. HIND AND PANTHER. THE strong light in the parlor which we have described served to enable Everard easily to recognize his acquaintances, Des- borough, Harrison, and Bletson, who had assembled round an oak table of large dimensions, placed near the blazing chim- ney, on which were arranged wine and ale, and materials for smoking, then the general indulgence of the time. There was a species of movable cupboard set betwixt the table and the door, calculated originally for a display of plate upon prand occasions, but at present only used as a, sereen: which purpose it served so effectually, that, ere he had coasted around it, Everard heard the following fragment of what Desborough was saying, in his strong coarse voice : —‘' Sent him to. share with us, I’se warrant ye—lIt was always his Excellency my brother-in-law’s way—if he made a treat for five friends, he would invite more than the table could hold—I have known him ask three men to eat two ESP: ‘Hush, hush,’ said Bletson; and the servants, making their appearance from behind the tall cupboard, announced Colonel Everard. It may not be uninteresting to the reader to have a description of the party into which he now entere Desborough was a stout, bull-necked man, of middle-size, with heavy vulgar features, erizzled bushy ey ebrows, and wall- eyes. The flourish of his powerful relative’s fortunes had burst forth in the finery of his dress, which was much more ornamented than was usual among the Roundheads. There was embroidery on his cloak, and lace upon his Peas his hat displayed a feather with a golden clasp, and all his eer were those of a “cavalier, or follower of the court, rather than the plain dress of a parliamen- tarian officer. But, Heaven knows, there was little of court- like grace or dignity in the person or demeanor of theSees Wiese os NOTRE 114 WOODSTOCK. individual who became his fine suit as the hog on the sign-post does his gilded armor. Itwas not that he was positively deformed or misshaped, for, taken in det: ul, the figure was well enough. But his coe Secnied to act upon dif erent and con- tradicto ry principles. They were not, as the play says, in a concatenation accordingly ;—the right hand moved as if it were upon bad terms with the left, and the legs showed an inclina- tion to foot it in different and Opposite directions. In short, to use an extravagant comparison, the members of Colonel Desborough seemed rather to resemble the disputatious represen- tatives of a federative congress, than the well-ordere -d union of the orders of the state, in a firm and well-compacted monarchy, where each holds his own place, and all obey the dictates of a common head. General Harrison, the second of the Comissioners, was a tall, thin, middle-age: d man, who had risen into his high situa- tion in the army, and his intimac y with Cromwell, by his daunt- less courage in the fie id, and the popularity he had acquired by his exalted enthusiasm amon: ost fe m i itary saints, sectaries, and Ind e] endents, who con posed the streneth of the existing army. Harrison was of mean extraction. and bred up tohis father’s employment of a butcher. Nevertheless. his appearance, though coat ‘se, Was not vulgar, like that of Desborough, who had so much the advantage of him in birth and education. He hada masculine height and strength of f figure, was well made, and in his manner announced a rot igh 1 military character, which might be feared, but could not easi ly become the obj ect of contempt or ridicule. His aquiline nose and dark black eyes set off to me advantage a countenance otherwise irre cular, and the wild exitlineh lasm that sometimes sparkled in them as he dilated on his opinions to others, and often seemed to slumber under his long da rk aos ashes as he mused upon them himself, : gave some- thing strikingly wild, and even nob le, to his aspect. He was one of the “chiet leaders of those who were called Fifth-Mon- archy men, who, going even beyond the general fanaticism of the age, presumptu ously interprete d the Book of the Revelations after their own fancies, considered that the second Advent of the Messiah, and the Millennium, or reign of the Saints upon earth, was close at hand, and that they themselves, illuminated, as they believed, with the power of foreseeing these approaching rents, were the chosen th sfrufhenis for the establishment of as New Reign, or Fifth Mon: irchy, as it was called, and were fated also to win ie honors, whether trial. When this spirit of enthusiasm, which operated like a _par- elestial or terres-WOODSTOCK. 1rs tial insanity, was not immedi: itely affecting H Tarrison’s mind, he was a shrewd worldly man, and a good solc die ; one w ee missed no opportunity of mending his fortune, and who, in expecting the exaltati on of the Fifth Monarchy, was, in the meanwhile. ready instrument for the establishment of the Lord-General’s Supremacy. Whether it was owing to his early occupation, and habits of indifference to pain or bloodshed acquired in the shambles, to natural d isposition and want of feeling, or, finally, a to the awakened character of his ent husiasm, w hich made him look upon those who opposed him as opposing the Divine will, and therefore merit ing no favor or mercy, is not easy to Say after a victory, or the successful storm ‘of was one of the most cruel and pitiless men in Cromwell’s army; always urging some misapplied text to authorize the continued execution of the fugitives, and some- times even putting to death those RO had surrendered them- selves prisoners. It was said. that at times the recollection of some of these cruelties troubled his conscience, and d listurbed the dreams of beatification in which his tear S| indulged. but all agreed, that a town, Harrison When Everard entered the apartment, this true TeRIese snta- tive of the fanatical soldiers of the day, who filled those ranks and regiments which C romwell had poli Sinai ’ kept on foot, while he procured reduction of those in which the Pres] byterian interest predominated, was seated a little apart from the others, egs crossed, and stretched out at length toward th e & S head resting on his elbow, and turned upward, as if study- ing, withthe most profound gravity, the half-seen carving of Bletson remains to be mentioned, who, in personand figure was diametrically a ferent from the other two. There was neither foppery nor slovenliness in his exterior, nor had he any marks of Aaa service or rank about his person. A small walking rapier seemed merely worn as a badge of his rank as a gentleman, without his hand hav ing the least purpose of becom: ing acquainted with the hilt, or his eye with the blade. His countenance was thinand acute, marked with lines which thought rather than age had traced upon it; and a habitual sneer on his countenance, even when he least wished to express contempt on his features, seemed to assure the individual ade dressed, that in Bletson he conversed with a person of intellect far superior to his own. ‘This was a triumph of intellect only, however; for on all occasions of difference respecting speculative opinions, and indeed on all controversies whatsoever, Bletson avoided the ultimate vatzo of blows and knocks. : peaceful gentleman had found himself obliged to Ree eran oer rearsPeer eta Gal as py TOT ae se ai t % al r6 WOODSTOCK. serve personally in the Parliamentary army at the commence- ment of the Civil War, till happening unluckily to come in contact with the fiery Prince Rupert, his retreat was judged so precipitate, that it required all the shelter his friends could afford, to keep him free of an impeachment or a court-martial. But as Bletson spoke well, and with great effect, in the House of Commons, which was his natural sphere, and was on that ac- count high in the estimation of his party, his behavior at Edge- hill was passed over, and he continued to take an active share in all the political events of that bustling period, though he faced not again the actual front of war. Bletson’s theoretical politics had long inclined him to espouse the opinions of Harrington and others, who adopted the vision- ary idea of establishing a pure democratical republic in so ex- tensive a country as Britain. This was a rash theory, where there is such an infinite difference betwixt ranks, habits, educa- tion, and morals—where there is such an immense disproportion betwixt the wealth of individuals—and where a large portion of the inhabitants consist of the inferior classes of the large towns and manufacturing districts—men unfitted to bear that share in the direction of a state, which must be exercised by the mem- bers of a republic in the proper sense of the word. Accordingly, as soon as the experiment was made, it became obvious that no such form of government could be adopted with the smallest chance of stability ; and the question came only to be, whether the remnant, or, as it was vulgarly called, the Rump of the Long Parliament, now reduced by the seclusion of so many of the members to a few scores of persons, should continue, in spite of their unpopularity, to rule the affairs of Britain? Whether they should cast all loose by dissolving themselves, and issuing writs to convoke a new Parliament, the composition of which no one could answer for, any more than for the measures they might take when assembled? Or lastly, Whether Cromwell, as actually happened, was not to throw the sword into the balance, and boldly possess himself of that power which the remnant of the Parliament were unable to hold, and yet afraid to resign ? Such being the state of parties, the Council of State, in dis- tributing the good things in their gift, endeavored to soothe and gratify the army, as a beggar flings crusts to a growling mastiff. In this view Desborough had been created a Commis- sioner in the Woodstock matter to gratify Cromwell, Harrison to soothe the fierce Fifth-Monarchy men, and Bletson as a sin- cere republican, and one of their own leaven. But if they supposed Bletson had the least intention of becoming a martyr to his republicanism, or submitting to anyWOODSTOCK. 117 serious loss on account of it, they much mistook the man. He entertained their principles sIncerely, and not the less that they were found impracticable ; for the miscarriage of his e experiment no more converts the political speculator, than the explosion of a retort undeceives an alchymist. But Bletson was quite pre- pared to submit to Cromwell, or any one else who might be possessed of the actual authority. He was a re eady subje ect in practice to the powers existing, and made little difference be- twixt various kinds of government, holding in theory all to be nearly equal in imperfecti on, sO soon as they diverged from the model of Harrington’s Oceana. Cromwell had already been tampering with him, like wax between his fingers and thumb, and which he was ready shortly to seal with, smiling at the same time to himself when he beheld the Council of State giving reward to Bletson, as their faithful adherent, while he himself was secure of his allegiance, how soon soever the expected change of government should take place. But Bletson was still more attached to his metaphysical than his political creed, and carried his doctrines of the perfectibility of mankind as far as he did those respecting the conceivab E perfection of a model of government; and as in the one cas he declared against all power which did not emanate from fe people themselves, so, in his moral speculations, he was unwilling to refer any of the phenomena of nature to afinal cause. When pushed, indeed, very hard, Bletson was compelled to mutter some inarticulate and unintelligible doctrines concerning an Animus mundi, or Creative Power in the works of Nature, by which she orginally called into existence, and still continues to preserve, her works. ‘To this power, he said, some of the purest metaphysicians rendered a certain degree of homage ; nor was he himself inclined absolutely to censure those, who, by the institution of holidays, choral dances, songs, and harmless feasts and libations, might be disposed to celebrate the ereat goddess Nature; at least dancing, singing, “eaeneS: and sporting, being comfortable things to both young and old, they might as well sport, dance, and feast, in honor of such appointed holidays, as under any other pretext. But then this moderate show of re- ligion was to be practiced under such exceptions as are ad- mitted by the Highgate oath; and no one was to be compelled to dance, drink, sing, or feast whose taste did not happen to in- cline them to such divertisements ; nor was any one to be obliged to worship the creative power, whether under the name of the Animus Mundi, or any other whatsoever. ‘The interference of the Diety in the affairs of mankind he entirely disowned, having proved to his own satisfaction that the idea originated entirelyWOODSTOCK. 118 in priestcraft. In short, with the shadowy metaphysical excep- tien aforesaid, Mr. Joshua Bletson of Darlington, member for Littlefaith, came as near the predicament of an atheist, as it is perhaps ane ole for a man to do. But we say this with a necessary salvo; for we have known many like Bletson, whose curtains have been shrewdly shaken by superstition, though their fears were unsanctioned by any religious faith. The devils, we are assured, believe and tremble, while on earth there are many, who, in worse plight than even the natural children of perdition, tremble without believing, and fear even while they blaspheme. It follows, of course, that pence 2 could be treated with more scorn by Mr. Bletson, than the debates about Prelacy and Presbytery, about Apereirats ad [Independency, about Quakers and Anabaptist , Muggletonians and Brownists, and all the various sects with aie the Civil War had commenced, and by which its dissensions were still continued. “It was,” he said, “as if beasts of burden should quarrel amongst them- ae the fashion of their halters and pack-saddles, in- ‘mbracing a favorable opportunity of throwing them 1er witty and pithy remarks he used to make when ace suited ; for instance, at the club called the Rota, ee by St, John, and established by Harrington, for the free disc uss101 of political and religious subjects. time and p But when Bletson was out of this academy, or stronghold of philosophy, he was very cautious how he carried his contempt of the gener: 1] prejudic >in favor of religion and Christianity further than an in iplie ‘d objection orasneer. If he had an epnatiahy of talking in private with an ingenious and intelli- gent youth, he sometimes attempted to make a proselyte, and Showed much address in bribing the vanity of inexperience, by suggesting that a mind like his ought to spurn the prejudices impressed upon it in childhood; and when assuming the /atus clavus of reason, assuring him that such as he. laying aside the budla of juvenile incapacity, as Bletson called it, should proceed to examine and decide for himself. It frequently happened, that the youth was induced to adopt the doctrines in whole, or in part, of the sage who had seen his natural genius, and who had urged him to exert it in examining, detecting, and declar- ing for himself; and thus flattery gave ] which could not have been gained by allt or artful sophistry of the infidel. These attempts to axial the influence of what was called free-thinking and philosophy, were carried on, as we have hinted, with a caution dictated by the timidity of the philosopher’s dis: roselytes to infidelity, 1e powerful eloquenceWOODSTOCK. 11g position. He was conscious his doctrines w ere suspected, and his proceedings watched, by the two principal sects of Prelat- Ists and Presbyterians, who, however inimical to each other. were still more hostile ee one wie was an oppenene not only to a church establishment of any kind, but to eve ry denomination Christianity. He found it more easy to shroud himself nds were for a general ted toleration, and whose ering in all respects see ee was by some -d into such wild errors, as to get totally beyond the bounds Ty species of C hristianity, and approach 4a ry near to in- itself, as extremes of each find are said to approach ier. Bletson mixeda good deal a among those sectaries : and such was his confidence in his own lo: gic and address, that he is supposed to have entertained hoy pes of bringing to his opinions in time the enthusiastic Vane, as well as the no less en- thusiastic Harrison, provided I he could but get the ] their visions of a Fiftl » T ¢ \ Aner » T ~ xr} ‘ TY « y the Independents, whose dem Or conscience, or an unlimi 1X de 3 fi 1 Monarchy, and maddie hone fented with a reign of P hilosophers s in England for th period of thei r lives, instead of he reign of the Sa the Millennium. ct unt Such was the similar Bru 9 into which Everard was now in- troduced ; showing in their various Opinions, upon how mz any devious coasts kuman nature may make shi pwreck, when she has once let go her-hold on the liga 1 her to lean upon ; the acute self-conceit and work 1 of Bletson—the rash and ignorant conclusions of the fierce an underbred oe leading them into the GPR OE ie extremes h nfidelity, while Desborough, constitutionally hing about religion at all: nd while the others were active in making sail on different but equally erroneous courses, he might be said to perish like a vessel, which springs a leak and founders in the roadstead. It was 1 of enthusiasm and i stupid, pane not wonderful to tetold what a strange variety of mistakes and errors, on the part of the King and his Ministers, on the part of the Parliament and their ] ee on the part of the allied kingdoms of Scotland and England toward each other, had combined to rear up men of such dangerous opinions and inter- ested characters among the arbiters of the destiny of Britain. [hose who argue for party’s sake, will see all the faults on the one side, without deigning to look at those on the other; those who study history for instruction, will perceive that noth- ing but the want of concession on either side, and the deadly height to which the animosity of the King’s and Parliament parties had arisen, could have so totally overthrown the well- ySales Seteiassoe ee eee 120 WOODSTOCK. poised balance of the English constitution. But we hasten to quit political reflections, the rather that ours, we believe, will please neither Whig nor Tory. CHAPTER DWELE TH, Three form a College—and you give us four. Let him bring his share with him. BEAUMONT AND FLETCHER. Mr. BLetTson arose and paid his respects to Colonel Ever- ard, with the ease and courtesy of a gentleman of the time ; though on every account grieved at his intrusion, as a religious man who held his free-thinking principles in detestation, and would effectually prevent his conversion of Harrison, and even of Desborough, if anything could be moulded out of sucha clod, to the worship of the Anzmus Mundi. Moreover, Bletson knew Everard to be a man of steady probity, and by no means disposed to close with a scheme on which he had successfully sounded the other two, and which was calculated to assure the Commissioners of some little private indemnification for the trouble they were to give themselves in the public business. The philosopher was yet less pleased, when he saw the magis- trate and the pastor who had met him in his flight of the pre- ceding evening, when he had been seen, arma non bene relicta, with cloak and doublet left behind him. The presence of Colonel Everard was as unpleasing to Des- borough as to Bletson; but the former having no philosophy in him, nor an idea that it was possible for any man to resist helping himself out of untold money, was chiefly embarrassed by the thought, that the plunder which they might be able to achieve out of their trust, might, by this unwelcome addition to their number, be divided into four parts instead of three ; and this reflection added to the natural awkwardness with which he grumbled forth a sort of welcome, addressed to Everard. As for Harrison, he remained like one on higher thoughts intent ; his posture unmoved, his eyes fixed on the ceiling as before, and in no way indicating the least consciousness that the company had been more than doubled around him. Meantime, Everard took his place at the table, as a man who assumed his own right, and pointed to his companions to sit down nearer the foot of the board. Wildrake so far mis- understood his signals, as to sit down above the Mayor ; buat,WOODSTOCK. bo i21 rallying his recollection at a look took his place lower, w histling, however, as he went, a sound at which the company stared, as at a freedom highly unbecoming, To complete his indecorum, he seized upon a pipe, and filling it from a large tobacco-box, was soon immersed in a cloud of his own raising ; from which a hand shortly after seized on the black-jack of ale, withd sanctuary, and, after a potential draught, replaced it upon the table, its owner beginning to renew the cloud which his inter- mitted exercise of the tube | had almost allowed to subside, Nobody made any observation on his conduct, out of respect, probably, to ee Everard, who bit his lip, but continued silent ; aware that censure might extract some escapade more unequivocally sie iracteristic of a cavalier, from his refractory companion. As silence seemed awkward, ‘and the others made no advances to break it, beyond the ordinary salutation, Colonel Everard at length said, “J presume, centlemen, that you are somewhat surprised at my atrival here, and thus intruding my- self into your meeting?’ 1g “Why the dickens Pi we be surprised, Colonel ?” said Desborough; “we know his Exc ellency, my _ brother-in-law Noll’s—I mean my Edta? Cromwell’s way, of ov erquartering his men in the towns he marches through. Thou hast obtaine da shi are in our commi ssion 2? ‘And in that,” said Bletson, smiling and bowing, “the Lord- General has given us the most acceptab le colleague that could have been added to out number. No doubt your authority for joining with us must be under warrant of the Council of State ?” “Of that, gentlemen,” said the Colonel, “I will presently advise you.”—He took out his warrant accordingly, and was about to communicate the contents ; when observing that there were three or four half- empty flasks upon the table, that Desbor- ough looked more stupid than usual, and that the philosopher’s eyes were reeling in his head, notwithstanding the temperance of Bletson’s usual habits, he concluded that they had been fortifying themselves against the horrors of the haunted man- sion, by | laying in a store of what is called Dutch courage, and therefore prudently y resolvéd to postpone his more important business with them till the cooler hour of morning. He, there- fore, instead of presenting the General’s warrant superseding their commission, contented himself with rep olying,—“ My busi- ness has, of course, some reference to your proceedings here. But here is—excuse my curiosity—a reverend gentleman,” pointing to Holdenough, “who has told me that you are so strangely from his patron, he rose and emerged, rew it within the vaporyate eee bibnocuaaEasaeee ese AB WOODSTOCK. embarrassed here, as to require both the civil and spiritual authority to enable you to keep possession of Woodstock. “‘ Before we go into that matter,” said Bletson, blushing up to the eyes at the recollection of his own fears, so manifestly displayed, yet so inconsistent with his principles, “1 should like to know who this other stranger is, who has come with the worthy magistrate, and the no less worthy Presbyterian ?”’ “ Meaning me?” said Wildrake, laying his pipe aside; ‘‘Gadzooks, the time hath been that I could have answered the question with a better title; but at. present I am only his honor’s poor clerk, or secretary, whichever is the current phrase.” ‘“‘?Fore George, my lively b lade, thou art a frank fellow of thy tattle,” said Desborough. “There is my secretary Tom- kins, whom men sillily enough call Fibbet, and the honorable Lieutenant-General Harrison’s secretary Bibbet, who are now at supper below stairs, that dnrst not for their ears speak a phrase above their breath in the presence of their betters, unless to answer a question.” “ Yes, Colonal Everard,” said the philosop her, , with his quiet smile, glad, apparently, to divert the conversatioi 1 from the to opic of last night’s alarm, and recollections which humbled his self- love and self-satisfaction ,—‘‘ yes; and when Master Fibbet and Master Bibbet do speak, their affirmations are as much ina common mould of mutual attestation, as their names would accord in the verses of a poet. If Master Fibbet happens to tell a fiction, Master Bibbet swears it as truth. If Master Bibbet chances to have gotten drunk in the fear of the Lord, Master Fibbet swears he is sober. I have called my own secre- tary Gibbet, though his name chances to be only Gibeon, a worthy Israelite at your service, but as pure ayouth as ever picked a lamb-bone at Paschal. But I call him Gibbet, merely to make up the holy trefoil with another rhyme. This squire of thine, Colonel Everard, looks’as if he might be worthy to be coupled with the rest of the fraternity.” “Not I, truly,” said the cavalier; “Ill be coupled with no Jew that was ever whelped, and no Jewess either.” “Scorn not for that, young man,” said the philosopher; “the Jews are, in point of religion, the elder brethren, you know.” “The Jews older than the Christians?” said Desborough, “fore George, they will have thee be fore the General Assembly, Bletson, if thou venturest to say so. Wildrake laughed without ceremony at the gn of Desborough, and was joined by a sniggling s ignorance ie fromWOODSTOCK. 123 ehind the cupboard, which, when inquired int proved to be produced by the serving men. These cane timorous as their nesiars, when they were suppose ed to have left the room had only withdrawn to their present place of concealment. 9 She now, ye rogues,” said Bletson, angrily; “do you not know your duty better?” ond Cie O LA g§ your worthy honor’s pardon,” said one of the men, “ but we dared not go down stairs ae a light.” ‘A light, ye cowardly poltroons?” said the philosopher : ‘ what—to show which of you looks palest when a rat squeaks? —but take a candlestick aud begone, you cowardly Aen the devils you are so much afraid of must be but paltry kites, if they hawk at such bats as you are.” The servants, without replying, took up one of the candle- sticks, and prepared to retreat. Trusty Tomkins at the head of the troop, when suddenly, as they arrived at the door of the parlor, which had been left half Open, it was shut violently, The three terrified domestics tumbled back into the middle of the room, as if a shot had been discharged in their face, and all who were at the table started to their feet. Colonel Everard was incapable of a moment’s fear, even if anything frightiul had been seen: but he remained stationary, to see what his companions would do, and to get at the bottom, if epessibky of the cause of their cae upon an occasion so he phi ulpsopher seemed to think that Ae was the person chiefly concerned to show manhood on the occasion. He walked to ae door accordingly, murmuring at the cow- ardice of the servants; but at such a snail’s pace, that it seemed he would most willingly have been anticipated by any one whom his reproaches had roused to exertion. “ Cowardly block- pees Hi ” he said at last, seizing hold of the handle of the door, but without turning it effectual lly round—‘ dare you not open a door? eee till fumbling with’ the lock)—“ dare you not go downa aise without a light? Here, bring me the candle, you cowardly villains !—By Heaven, something sighs on the ontside! ” As he sp 0ke, he let -go the handle of the parlor door, and stepped back a pace or two into the apartment, with cheeks as pale » as the band he wore. ‘Leus adjutor meus!” said the Presbyterian clergyman, rising from his seat, ‘Give place, sir,” ad dressing Bletson : “it woul 1 seem I know more of this matter than thou, and I bless Heaven I am armed for the conflict.” Bold as a grenadier about to mount a breach, yet with the same belief in the existence of a great danger to be encoun-WOODSTOCK. 124 ne tered, as well as the same reliance on the goodness of his cause, the worthy man stepped before the philosophical Bletson, and taking a light from a sconce in one hand, quietly opened the door with the other, and standing in the threshold, said, “‘ Here is nothing!” “ And who expected to see anything,” said Bletson, “ except- ing those terrified oafs, who take fright at every puff of wind that whistles through the passages of this old dungeon ! a ‘Mark you, Master Tomkins,” said one of the waiting-men in a whisper to the steward,—‘ See how boldly the minister i pressed forward before all of them. Ah! Mr. Tomkins, our i parson is the real commissioned officer of the church—your lay- preachers are no better than a parcel of club-men and volun- teers. “Follow me, those who list,’”’ said Master Holdenough, “ or go before me those who choose, | will walk through the habita- ble places of this house before I leave it, and satisfy myself A whether Satan hath really mingled himself among these dreary ae dens of ancient wickedness, or whether, like the wicked of | whom holy David speaketh, we are afraid, and flee when no one et pursueth.” i Harrison, who had heard these words, sprung from his seat, | and drawing his sword, exclaimed, “ Were there as many fiends in the house as there are hairs on my head, upon this cause I | will charge them up to their very trenches be So saying, he brandished his weapon, and pressed to the head of the column, where he moved side by side with the minister. The Mayor of Woodstock next joined the body, thinking himself safer perhaps in the company of his pastor; and the whole train moved forward in close order, accompanied by the servants bearing lights, to search the Lodge for some cause of that panic with which they seemed to be suddenly seized. “Nay, take me with you, my friends,” said Colonel Ever- ard, who had looked on in surprise, and was now about to follow the party, when Bletson laid hold on his cloak, and begged him to remain. “Vou see, my good Colonel,” he said, affecting a courage which his shaking voice belied, “here are only you and I and honest Desborough left behind in garrison, while all the others 1 are absent on a sally. We must not hazard the whole troops | , in one sortie——_that were unmilitary—Ha, ha, ha!” “Tn the name of Heaven, what means all this?” said Everard. “I heard a foolish tale about apparitions as ] came this way, and now I find you all half mad with fear, and cannot get a word of sense among so many ofwyou * Be, ENE ne THIS canis NER Pr a oPWOODSTOCK. Colonel Desborough—fie, Master Bletson—try to compose yourselves, and let me know in Heaven’s name the cause of all this disturbance. One would be apt to think your brains were turned.” ‘And so mine well may,” said Desborough, “ay, and over- turned too, since my bed last night was turned upside down, and I was placed for ten minutes heels uppermost, and head downmost, like a bullock going to be shod.” “ What means this nonsense, Master Bletson ?—Desborough must have had the nightmare.” “No, faith, Colonel: the goblins, or whatever else they were, had been favorable to honest Des] »orough, for they re- posed the whole of his person on that part of his body which —Hark, did you not hear something ?—is the central point of Bray ity, nan 1ely, his head.” ‘Did you see anything to alarm you?” said the Colonel. “ Nothing, ” said Bletson; “but we heard hellish noise as all our people did; and : believing little of ghosts and apparitions, concluded the cavaliers were > taking us at advan- tage : so, remembering R: oe rough’s fate, I e’en jumped the vindow, and ran to Woodstock, to call the soldiers to the rescue of Harrison and Desborough.” And did you not first go to see what the danger was?” “ Ah, my good friend, you forget that I laid oS n my com- mission at the time of the s elf-denyi ing ordinan It would have been quite inconsistent with my duties as a Pale ament- man to be brawling amidst a set of ruffians. without any military authority. No—when the Parliament commanded me _ to sheathe my sword, Colonel, I have too much veneration for their authority to be found again with it drawn in my hand.” “But the Parliament,” said Desborough, hastily, “ did not command you to use your heels when your hands could have saved a man from choking. Odds dickens ! you might have oR per when you saw my bed canted heels uppermost, and me half stifled in the bed-clothe ‘s—you might, I say, have stopped and lent a hand to put it to rights, instead of jumping out of the window, like a new-shorn ae, so soon as you had run across my room.” ‘Nay, worshipful Master Desborough,” said Bletson, wink- ing on Everard, to show that he was playing on his thick-skulled colleacue, ‘““how could I tell your particular mode of reposing? —there are many tastes—I have known men who slept by choice ona slope or angle of forty-five.” ‘Yes, but did ever aman sleep standing on his head except miracle?” said Desborough. by 4 Tyfpipss ee aasstinnen m . Poort tts etsSe Dusaabisha blabla bess eee eeee ete 136 WOODSTOCK. ““Now, as to miracles’’—said the philosopher, confident in the presence of Everard, besides that an opportunity of scoffing at religion really in some degree diverted his fear—‘ I leave these out of the question, seeing that the evidence-on such subjects seems as little qualified to carry conviction as a horse-hair to land a leviathan.” A loud clap of thunder, or a noise as formidable, rang through the Lodge as the scoffer nad ended, which struck him pale and motionless, and made Desborough throw himself on his knees, and repeat exclamations and prayers in much admired confusion, “There must be contrivance here,” exclaimed Everard; and snatching one of the candles from a sconce, he rushed out of the apartment, little heeding the entreaties of the philoso- pher, who, in the extremity of his distress, conjured him by the Animus Mundi to remain to the assistance of a distressed philosopher endangered by witches, and a Parliament-man as- saulted by ruffians. As for Desborough, he only gaped like a clown in a pantomime ; and, doubtful whether to follow or stop, his natural indolence prevailed, and he sat still. When on the landing-place of the stairs, Everard paused a moment to consider which was the best course to take. He heard the voices of men talking fast and loud, like people who wish to drown their fears, in the lower story; and aware that nothing could be discovered by those whose inquiries were con- ducted in a manner so noisy, he resolved to proceed in a different direction, and examine the second floor, which he had now gained. He had known every corner, both of the inhabited and un- inhabited part of the mansion, and availed himself of the can- dle to traverse two or three intricate passages, which he was afraid he might not remember with sufficient accuracy. ‘This movement conveyed him to a sort of @é/-de-beuf, an octagon vestibule, or small hall, from which various rooms opened, Amongst these doors, Everard selected that which led to a very long, narrow, and dilapidated gallery, built in the time of Henry VIITL., and which, running along the whole south-west side of the building, communicated at different points with the rest of the mansion. This he thought was likely to be the post occupied by those who proposed to act the sprites upon the occasion ; especially as its length and shape gave him some idea that it was a spot where the bold thunder might in many ways be imitated. Determined to ascertain the truth, if possible, he placed his light on a table in the vestibule, and applied himself to openWOODSTOCK. the door into the gallery. At this point he found himself strongly opposed either by a bolt drawn, or, as he rather con- ceived, by somebody from within resisting his attempt. He was induced to believe the latter, because the resistance slack- ened and was renewed, like that of human strength, instead of presenting the permanent oposition of an inanimate obstacle. ugh Everard was a strong and active young man, he exhaust- 5 > ~ VLIVe hiichi Lu pe =) ed his strength in the vain attempt to open the door, ; and having paused to take breath, was about to renew his efforts with foot and shoulder, and to call at the same time for assistance, when, to his surprise, on again attempting the door more gently, in order to ascertain if possible where thx as of t opposing yy stacle was situated, he found it give way to a very slight in npuls some impedi men fell broken to the eround, and the door ee wide open.—The gust of wind occasioned by the sudden open- rd was left in long side-row D> ing of the door, blew out the candle, and Everar darkness, save where the moonshine, which the of latticed windows dimmed, could imperfectly force its way into the gallery, which lay in The melancholy and doubtful twilig it was increased by a quantity of creeping plants on the outside, which since all had + ¥ Y ( 1a D been neglecte din these ancient halls, now comple tely overgrown, had in some instances greatly diminished, and in others almost quite choked up, the space of the lattices, extending between t] ¥ stone shaftwork which divided the windows, both lengthways and across, On the other side there we windows at all, and the ; r paintings, chiefly port a j f the apartment had been adorned. Most of the pictures had been removed, yet the empty frames of some, and the tattered remnants of others, were still visible along the extent of the waste gallery; the look of which was so desolate, and it appeared so well adapted for mischief, supposing there were enemies near him, that Everard could not help pausing at the entrance, and recom. mending himself to God, ere, drawing his sword, he advanced into the apartment, treading as ligh tly as possible, and keeping in the shadow as much as he could. Markham Everard was by no means superstitious, but he had the usual predanty of the times; and though he did not yield easily to tales of supernatural visitations, yet he could not help thinking he was in the ve ry situation, where, if such things were ever permitted, they might be expected to take plaee, while his own ro and acne pace, his drawn weapon, and extended arms, being the very attitude and action of doubt aud suspicion, aad to increase in his mind the gloomy feel- Sor it Su aS RONOwer tr sr etre S) rateerr ergy sree:128 WOODSTOCK. 5 are constantly associated. Under such unpleasant impressions, and conscious of the neighborhood of something unfriendly, Colonel Everard had already advanced about half along the gallery, when he heard some one sigh very near him, and A low soft voice pronounce his name. “Here Iam,” he replied, while his heart beat thick and short. ‘‘ Who calls on Markham Everard ?” Another sigh was the only answer. “ Speak,” said the C olonel, “ whoever-or whatsoever you are, and tell with w what intent and purpose you are lurking in these apartments ? ings of which they are the usual indications, and with which they ‘With a better intent than yours,” returned the soft voice. “Than mine!” answered Everard in great surprise. ‘‘ Who are you that dare judge of my intents?” ‘“ What or who are you, Markham Everard, who wander by moonlight through these deserted halls of royalty, where none should be but those who mourn their downfall, or are sworn to avenre att? “It is—and yet it cannot be,” said Everard: “ yet it is, and must be. Alice Lee, the devil or you speaks. Answer me, I conjure you !-speak openly—on what dangerous scheme are you en gaged ? where is your father? why are you here ?— wherefore do you run so deadly a venture ?—Speak, I conjure you, Alice Lee! ” “She whom you call on is at the distance of miles from this SP ot. What if her Genius speaks when she is absent ?—what the soul of an ancestress of hers and yours were now address- oe you ?—what if ?””—_—_ “Nay,” answered Everard, “but what if the dearest of human beings has caught a touch of her father’s enthusiasm ! —what if she is exposing her person to danger, her reputation to scandal, by traversing in disguise and darkness a house filled with armed men? Speak to me, my fair cousin, in your Own person. I am furnished with powers to protect my uncle, Sir Henry—to protect you too, dearest Alice, even against the consequences of this visionary and wild attempt. Speak—I see where you are, and, with all my respect, I cannot submit to be thus practiced upon. Trust me—trust your cousin Mark- ham with your hand, and believe that he will die or place you in honorable safety.” As he spoke, he exercised his eyes as keenly as possible to detect where the speaker stood: and it seemed to him, that about three yards from him there was a shadowy form, of which he could not discern even the outline, placed as it wasWOODSTOCK. 129 within the deep and prolonged shadow thrown by a space of wall intervening betwixt two windows, upon that side of the room from which the light was admitted. He endeavored to calculate, as well as he could, the distance betwixt himself and the object which he watched, under the impression, that if, by even using a slight degree of compulsion, he could detach his beloved Alice from the confederacy into which he supposed her father’s zeal for the cause of royalty had engaged her, he would be rendering them both the most essential favor, He could not indeed but conclude, that however successfully the plot which he conceived to be in agitation had proceeded against the timid Bletson, the stupid Desborough, and the crazy Harrison, there was little doubt that at length their arti- fices must necessarily bring shame and danger on those en- gaged in it. It must also be remembered, that Everard’s affection to his cousin, although of the most respectful and devoted character, partook less of the distant veneration which a lover of those days entertained for the lady whom he worshiped with humble diffidence, than of the fond and familiar feelings which a brother entertains toward a younger sister, whom he thinks himself entitled to guide, advise, and even in some degree to control. So kindly and intimate had been their intercourse, that he had little more hesitation in endeavoring to arrest her progress in the dangerous course in which she seemed to be engaged, even at the risk of giving her momentary offence, than he would have had in snatching her from a torrent or con- flagration, at the chance of hurting her by the violence of his grasp. All this passed through his mind in the course ofa single minute; and he resolved at all events to detain her on the spot, and compel, if possible, an explanation from her, With this purpose, Everard again conjured his cousin, in the name of Heaven, to give up this idle and dangerous mum- mery; and, lending an accurate ear to her answer, endeavored from the sound to calculate as nearly as possible the distance between them. “Tam not she for whom you take me,” said the voice ; “and dearer regards than aught connected with her life or death, bid me warn you to keep aloof, and leave this place.” ‘“ Not till I have convinced you of your childish folly,” said the Colonel, springing forward, and endeavoring to catch hold of her who spoke to him. But no female form was within his grasp. On the contrary, he was met by a shock which could come from no woman’s arm, and which was rude enough to stretch him on his back on the floor. At the same time heSe a ee eco 130 WOODSTOCK. felt the point of a sword at his throat, and his hands so com- pletely mastered, that not the slightest defence remained to him. ‘A cry for assistance,” said a voice near him, but not that which he had hitherto heard, ‘will be stifled in your blood !— No harm is meant you—be wise and be silent.” The fear of death, which Everard had often braved in the field of battle, became more intense as he felt himself in the hands of unknown assassins, and totally devoid of all means of defence. The sharp point of the sword pricked his bare throat, and the foot of him who held it was upon his breast. He felt as if a single thrust would put an end to life, and all the feverish joys and sorrows which agitate us so strangely, and from which we are yet so reluctant to part. Large drops of perspiration stood upon his forehead—his heart throb bed, as if it would burst from its confinement in the bosom—he expe- rienced the agony which fear imposes on the brave man, acute in proportion to that hie pain inflicts when it subdues the robust and healthy. “Cousin Alice,”—he attempted to speak, and the sword’s point pressed his throat yet more closely,— Cousin, let me not be murdered in a manner so fearful!” “I tell you,” replied the voice, “that you speak to one who is not here ; but your life is not aimed at, provided you swear, on your faith as a Christian and your honor as a gentleman, that you will conceal what has happened, whether from the people below, or from any other person. On this condition you may rise ; and if you seek her, you will find Alice Lee at Joceline’s cottage in the forest.” “Since I may not help myself otherwise,” said Everard, “I swear, as I have a sense of religion and honor, I will say nothing of this violence, nor make any search after those who are con- cerned in it,” ‘For that we care nothing,” saidthe voice. ‘Thou hast an example how well thou mayst catch mischief on thy own part; but we are in case to defy thee. Rise and begone.” The foot, the sword’s-point, were withdrawn, and Everard, was about to start up hastily, when the voice, in the same soft- ness of tone which distinguished it at first, said, ““No haste— cold and bare stBel is yet around thee. Now—now—now— [the words dying away as at a distance -|—thou art free. Be secret and be safe Markham Everard arose, and in rising embarrassed his feet with his own sword, which he had dropped when spr inging forward, as he supposed, to lay hold of his fair cousin. HeWOODSTOCK. snatched it up in haste, and as his hand clasped the hilt, his courage, which had given way under the apprehension of in- stant death, began to return; he considered, with almost his usual composure, what was to be done next. Deeply affronted at the disgrace which he had sustained, he questioned for an instant whether he ought to keep his extorted promise, or should not rather summon assistance, and make haste to dis- cover and seize those who had been recently engaged in such violence on his person. J] would, had had his life in their power—he had pledged his word in ransom of it—and what was re, he coulc livest him- self of the ic ant, at least, if not an actor, in the confederacy which had thus baffled him. ut these persons, be they who they RO .¢ +e This prepossession determined his conduct ; for, though angry at supposing she must have been accessory to his personal ill- treatment, he could not in any event think of an instant search through the mansion, which might have compromised her safety or that of his uncle. “ But I will to the hut.” he said—*‘ I will : PX RA Lie REPRO ate eo Cha 2, a instantly to the hut, ascertain her share in this wild and dan- rer 1 . f lararwand L, j as : ee ; a4 9 gerous conrederacy and snatcn her trom ruin, it it be possible. ] } oe 7 fe 7 7 i As under the influence of the resolution which he had rOTrmed. tverara PTODPCa TIS Way ba K tp OUL NTC VAanery and a. Fgh see PE a Pe a hs Tie BE fee regainea LIS VCSuUpurc. 7 heard his name called by bart. well- Bee es Ci ARTS Aud t KATE 28 ] PAL. 4 ee Known voice ol Wildrake. * What—ho !—holla Colonel arian seg Nino Geka Pe Seale 4a ee lease mai rard—Mark POVCL ATP IS Uae a5 mic Cv Ss mouth— 1 cs eg > ] «pals eee Spar eee eer Be k—where are you ?—l tches are keeping their hellish +] . ; he : ae 92 yatn here, AS | (nink— V € re: WA E OPT hare te a; . KON ab. Aue bac: LETTE. Here} answ i £VeTara Cedase your Dpawiin? ¢ oOo i ur tic IGlE anG ct INi¢ | +\4 What “ 1 i A oe 5 you peen sr ne saliaq— V\ ( Bletson and the brute Desborough terrified out of their lives. and Harrison ravine mad. 1 ainee tha daw will oy rig and t1arrison faving Mad, pecause the Gevil Will not pe Civil 1 : c 1 ow 73 “se ~ 1; 7 Pe 3 €nougen to rise to heht him in single @7zeédo. Saw or heard you nothing as you came along? Everard. said ‘‘ Nothing,” said his friend “ excepting that when I first en- tered this cursed ruinous labyrinth, the light was struck out of my hand, as if by a switch, which obli bliged me to return for another.” must come by ; h ao tantly Wildrake p 1 ‘ a he lust come by a horse instantly, Wiudrake, and another it be possible.” ‘We can take two of those belonging to the troopers,” an- swered Wildrake. ‘ But for what purpose should we run away, time in the evening ?—Is the house falling? ” pecan like rats, at this si} as er sans on oS Sei St Seti hee ERENT A eles Merete. ‘, ’Fre ee pe 132 WOODSTOCK. ‘“‘T cannot answer you,” said the Colonel, pushing forward into a room where there was some remains of furniture. Here the cavalier took a more strict view of his person, and exclaimed in wonder, ‘‘ What the devil have you been fighting with, Markham, that has bedizened you after this sorry fashion ?”’ “ Fighting !”’ exelaimed Everard. “Yes,” replied his trusty attendant, “I say fighting. Look at yourself in the mirror.” “He did, and saw he was covered with dust and blood. The latter proceeded from a scratch which he had received in the throat, as he struggled to extricate himself. With unaffected alarm, Wildrake undid his friend’s collar, and with eager haste proceeded to examine the wound, his hands trembling and his eyes glistening with apprehension for’ his benefactor’s life. When, in spite of Everard’s opposition, he had examined the hurt, and found it trifling, he resumed the natural wildness of hfs character, perhaps the more readily that he had felt shame in departing from it, into one which expressed more of feeling than he would be thought to possess. “If that be the devil’s work, Mark,” said he, “the foul fiend’s claws are not nigh so formidable as they are repre- sented ; but no one shall say that your blood has been shed unrevenged, while Roger Wildrake was by your side. Where left you this same imp? I will back to the field of fight, con- front him with my rapier, and were his nails tenpenny nails, and his teeth as long as those of a harrow, he shall render me reason for the injury he has done you.” ‘“ Madness—madness!”’ exclaimed Everard ; “I had this trifling hurt by a fall—a basin and towel will wipe it away. Meanwhile, if you will ever do me a kindness, get the troop: horses—command them for the service of the public, in the name of his Excellency the General. I will but wash, and join you in an instant before the gate,” ‘Well, I will serve you, Everard, as a mute serves the Grand Signior, without knowing the why or wherefore. But will you go without seeing these people below ?”’ “Without seeing any one,” said Everard : “lose no time, for God’s sake.” He found out the non-commissioned officer, and demanded the horses in a tone cf authority, to which the corporal yielded undisputed obedience, as one well aware of Colonel Everard’s military rank and consequence. So all was in a minute or two ready for the expedition.WOODSTOCK. CHAPTER THIRTEENTH. She kneel’d, and saint-like Cast her eyes to heaven, and pray’d devoutly. KinGc HEnry VIII. COLONEL EVERARD’s departure at that late hour, for so it was then thought, of seven in the evening, excited much s ul: the outer chamber or hall, for no one doubted that his sudden departure was owing to his having, as they expressed it, ‘seen > ¢ PEG I ition. ‘There was a gathering of menials and dependents in £ something,” and all desired to know how a man of such ac- knowledged courage as Everard looked under the awe of a recent apparition. But he gave them no time to make comments: for, striding through the hall wrapped in his riding suit, he threw himself on horseback, and rode furiously through the Chase, toward the hut of the keeper Joliffe. : i It was the disposition of Markham Everard to be hot. keen, earnest, impatient, and decisive to a degree of precipitation. The acquired habits which education had taught, and which the strong moral and religious discipline of his sect had greatly strengthened, were-such as to enable him to conceal, as well as to check, this constitutional violence, and to place him upon his guard against indulging it. But when in the high tide of violent excitation, the natural impetuosity of the young sol- dier’s temper was sometimes apt to overcome these artificial les, and then, like a torrent foaming over a wier, it be- came more furious, as if in revenge for the constrained calm which it had been for some time obliged to assume. In these instances he was accustomed to see only that point to which his thoughts were bent, and to move straight toward it, whether a moral object, or the storming of a breach, without either cal- culating, or even appearing to see, the difficulties which were before him. At present, his ruling and impelling motive was to detach his beloved cousin, if possible, from the dangerous and discredit- able machinations in which he suspected her to have engaged, or, on the other hand, to discover that she really had no con- cern with these stratagems. He should know how to judge o that in some measure, he thought, by finding her present or ab- sent at the hut, toward which he was now galloping. He had read, indeed, in some ballad or minstrel’s tale, of a singular de- 1 ew ODSTac Cera \144 WOODSTOCK. ception practiced on a jealous old man, by means of a subtet ranean communication between his house and that of a neigh- bor, which the lady in question made use of to present herself in the two places alternately, with such ee and so much ad: dress, that, after repeated experiments, the dotard was deceived into the opinion, that his wife, and the lady who was so ery like her, and to whom his neighbor paid so much attention, were two different persons. But in the present case there was no room for such a deception; the distance was too great, and as he took by much the nearest way from the castle, and rode full ae -d. it would be impossible, cnew, for his cousin, who was a im orous horsewoman, even by daylight, to have got < 1 Her father might indeed be displeased at his interference ; but what title had he to be so ?—Was not Alice Lee the ee relation of his blood, the dearest object of his heart, and would he now abstain from an effort to save her from the conseqiiences illy and wild ye leg acy, because the old knight’s spleen might be awakened by Everard’s making his appearance at their ling his commands? )} He would endute the old man’s harsh language, as he endured the blast of the autumn wind, which was howling around him, and swing- ing the crashing branches of the trees under which he passed, but could not oppose, or even oe his journey. If he found not Alice, as he had reason to believe she would be absent, to Sir Henry Lee himself he would elas og what he had witnessed. However she might have become accessory to the juggling tricks performed at Woodstock, he could not but think it was without her father’s knowledge, so severe a judge was the hui knight of female propriety, and so strict an assertor | ling contrary to No. female decorum. He would tak e the same opportunity, he thought, of stating to him oi ell-grounded hopes he enter the Lodge might be prolonged, and from t oe royal mansion and domains, by other means than those of the absurd species of intimidation 1 seemed to be resorted to, to scare them from thence. ll this seemed to be Soungeh within the line of his duty as a relative, that it was not until he halted at the door of the ranger’s hut, and threw his bridle into Wildrake’s hand, that tained, that his dwelling at 1 | the sequestrators removed - Ev erard recollected the fiery, high, and unbending character of - Henry Lee, and felt, even whe his fish ces! were on the bic a rai ‘tance to intrude himself upon the presence of the irritable old k ae But there was no time for hesitation. Bevis, who had already bayed more Sean once from within the Lodge, was growingWOODSTOGK 135 impatient, and Everard had but just time to bid Wildrake hold the horses until he should send Joceline to his assistance, when old Joan unpinned the door, to demand who was without at that time of the night. To have attempted anything like an explanation with poor dame Joan, would have been quite hopeless; the Colonel, therefore, put her gently aside, and shaking himself loose from the hold she had laid on his cloak, entered the kitchen of Joceline’s dwelling. Bevis, who had advanced to support Joan in her opposition, humbled his lion- port, with that wonderful instinct which makes his race re- member so long those with whom they have been familia ar, and acknowledged his master’s relative, by doing homage in his fashion, with his head and tail. Colonel Everard, more uncertain in his purpose every moment as the necessity of its execution drew near, stole over the floor like one who treads in a sick chamber, = opening the door of the interior apartment with a slow and trembling hand, as he would have withdrawn the curtains of a 1s friend, he saw, within, the scene which we are about to describe. Sir Henry Lee sat ina wicker arm-chair by the ae He was wrapped in a cloak, and his limbs extended on a stool, a were suffering from gout or indisposition. His long wh ; flowing over the dark-colored garment, gave » him more the appearance of a-hermit than of an aged ne or man of quality; and that character was increased by the deep and devout attention with which he | man, whose dilapidated dress showed still something of the clerical habit, and who, with a low, but full and deep voice, was reading the Evening Service according to the Church of England. Alice Lee kneeled at the feet of her father, and made the responses with a voice that might have suited the choir of ane and a modest and serious devotion, which ly of hertone. ‘The face of the OR CRONE suited the m oday ) clergyman wi uk id have been good-looking, had it not been dis left eye and a part FAG 1 1} istened to a respectable old ¥ 1 1 L figure »d with a black patch which covered the of his face, Hi ol not the features eh were visible been marked with the traces of care sa sufferin: When Colonel Everard entered, the cle rgyman raised his finger, as cautioning him to forbear disturbing the div ine service of the evening, and pointed to a seat; to which, struck deeply with the scene he had witnessed, the intruder stole with as light a step as possible, and knelt devoutly down as one of the little congregation. Everard had been bred by his father what was called a Puritan; Ree ere Seen tt et a136 WOODSTOCK. a member of a sect who, in the primitive sense of the word, were eens that did not «¢ except against the doctrines of the Church of England, or even in all respects against its hierarchy, but ch iefly dissented from it on the subject of certain ceremonies habits, and forms of ritual, which were insisted upon by the celebrated and unfortunate Laud with ill-timed tena cle But even if, from the habits of his father’s house, Everard’s opinions had been diametri cally opposed to the doctrines of the English Church, he must have been reconciled by them to th eregula arity with which the services were performed -in his uncle’s family at Woodstock, who, during fia blossoms of his fortunes, gener- ally had a chaplain residing in the Lodge for that special pur- pose. Yet deep as was the habitual veneration with which he heard the impressive > services of the Church, Everard’s eyes could not help straying toward Alice, and his thoughts w andering to the purpose of his presence there. She seemed to have recognised him at once, for there was a deeper glow than usual upon her cheek, her fingers trembled as they turned the leaves of her prayer-book, and her voice, lately as firm as it was melodious, faltered when she repeated the responses. It appeared to Everard, as far as he faecillid collect by the stolen glances which he directed toward her, that the character of her beauty, as well as of her outward appearance, had changed with her fortunes. The beautiful and high-born young lady had now approached as nearly as possible to the brown se dress of an ordinary village maiden ; but what she had lost in gayety of appearance, she had gained seemed in eee Her beautiful light- brown tresses, now folded around her head, and only curled where nature had so arranged them, gave her an air of Pee lic- ity, which did not exist when her head-dress showed the skill of a curious tire-woman. A light joyous air, with something of a humorous expression, which seemed to be looking for amusement, had vanished before the touch of affliction. and a calm melancholy supplied its place, which seemed on the watch to administer comfort to others. Perhaps the former arch, though innocent expression of countenance, was uppermost in her lover’s recollection, when he concluded that Alice had acted a part in the disturbance which had taken place at the Lodge. It is certain that when he now looked upon her, it was with shame for having nourished such a suspicion, and the resolution to believe rather that the devil had imitated her voice, than that a creature who seemed so much above the feel- ings of this world, and so nearly allied to the purity of the next,WOODSTOCK. 137 should have had the indelicacy to mingle in such manceuvres as he himself and others had been subjected to. These thoughts shot through his mind, in spite of the im- propriety of indulging them at such a moment. The service now approached the close, and a good deal to Colonel Everard’s surprise, as well as confusion, the officiating priest, in firm and audible tone, and with every attribute of dignity, prayed to the Almighty to bless and preserve “Our Sovere eign Lord, King Charles, the lawful and undoubted King of these ‘tealms,” The petition (in those days most dangerous) was pronounced with full, raised, and distinct articulation, as if the priest ohallentea all who heard him to dissent, if they dared.” If the republican officer did not assent to the petition, he thought at least it was no time to protest against it. The service was concluded in the usual manncr, and the little congregation arose. It now included Wildrake, who had entered during the latter prayer, and was the first of the party to speak, running up to the priest, and shaking him by the hand most heartily, swearing at the same time that he truly ee to see him. “he good clergyman returned the pressure with smile, observing that he should have believed his assev efation without an oath. Inthe meanwhile, Colonel Everard, approach- ing his uncle’s seat, made a deep inclination of respect, first to Sir Henry Lee, and then to Alice, whose color now spread trom her cheek to her brow and bosom. ‘“‘T have to crave your excuse,” said the Colonel with hesita- tion, “for having chosen for my visit, which I dare not hope will be very agreeable at any time, a season most peculiarly un- suitable ‘So far from it, nephew,” answered Sir Henry, with much more mildness of manner than Everard had dared to expect, ‘that your visits at other times would be much more welcome, had we the fortune te see you often at our hours of worship.” “‘T hope the time will soon come, sir, when Englishmen of all sects and denominations,” replied ui, ‘¢ will be free in conscience to worship in common the great Father, w hom they all after their manner call by that affectionate name.’ ‘““T hope so too, nephew,” said the old man in the same un- altered tone; “and we will not at present dispute, whether you would have the Church of England coalesce with the Conventicle, or the Conventicle conform to the Church. It was, I ween, not to settle jarring creeds, that you have honcred our poor dwell- ing, anar to say the truth, we dared scarce have expected to see you again, so coarse was our last welcome.” “ ¥ should be happy to believe,” said Colonel Everard, hesi13 8 WOODSTOCK. tating, “ that—that—-in short my presence was not now so up welcome here as on that occasion.” ‘‘ Nephew,” said Sir Henry, “I will be frank with you. When you were last here, I thought you had stolen from me a precious pearl, which at one time it would have been my pride and happiness to have bestowed on you ; but which, being such as you have been of late, J would bury in the depths of the earth rather than give to your keeping. This somewhat chafed, honest Will says, ‘ the rash humor which my mother gave me.’ I thought I was robbed, and I thought I saw the robber before me, I am mistaken—I am not robbed ; and the attempt with- out the deed I can pardon.” “I would not willingly seek offence in your words, sir,” said Colonel Everard, when their general purport sounds kind ; but I can protest before Heaven, that my views and wishes toward you and your family are as void of selfish ] hopes and selfish ends, as they are fraught with love to you and to yours.” “ Let us hear them, man ; we are not much accustomed to good wishes now-a-days ; and their very rarity will make them welcome, a ‘I would willingly, Sir Henry, since you might not chose me to give youa more affectionate name, convert those wishes into somethii ng effectual for your comfort. Your fate, as th (@e world now sta1 nds, is bad, and, I fear, like to be worse.” ** Worse than I re ie cannot be. Nephew, I do not shrink before my changes of fortune. I shall wear coarser clothes,—-I shall feed on more ordinary food,—men will not doff their cap to me as they were wont, \ _ I was the great and the wealthy. What of that ? Old He iry Lee loved his honor better than | his ne his faith better tl an his land and lordship. Have I not seen the zoth of January ? I am neither philomath nor astrologer ; but old Will teaches me, that when green leaves fall winter is at hand, and that darkness will come when the sun sets.” * Bethink you, sir,” said Colonel Everard, “ if, without any submission asked, any oath taken, any engagement imposed, express or tacit, excepting that you are not to excite disturbances in the pub slic peace, you can be restored to your residence in the Lodge, and your usual fortunes and perquisites there—I have great reason to hope this may be permitted, if not expressly, at least on sufferance.” “Yes, I understand you, I am to be treated like the royal coin, marked with the ensign of the Rump to make it pass cur- rent, although I am too old to have the royal insignia grinded off from me. Kinsman, I will have none of this. I have livedWOODSTOCK. 139 8 the Te o@ee te ses t the Lodge too long ; and let me tell you, I had left it in scorn long since, but for the orders of one whom I may yet live to do ke servic@ to: I will ta ee from the usurpers, be th name Rump or Cromwell—be they one devil or legion rill not take from them an “ola cap to cover my gray fairsoe3 east cloak to protect my frail lin ibs from the colc 1 They shall not a the y have, by a unwilling bounty, made Abraham rich— I will i ive, as T will the Loyal Lee ? ‘May I hope vote: will think of it, SIT ; and that you will, perhaps, considering what slight submission is asked, give me a better answer ?” “Sir. if I retract my opinion, which is not my wont, you shall near of it—And now, cousin, have you more tosay ? We keep that worthy clergyman in the outer room.” “ Something I had to say—something touching my cousin Alice,” said Everard, with embarrassment ; “ but I fear that the prejudices of both are so strong against me” ‘Sir, I dare turn my daughter Joose to you—I will go join the good doctor in dame Joan’s apartment. I am not “unwill: ing that you shome | know that the girl hath, in all reasonable sort, the exercise of her free will.’ He tihitew: and left the cousins together. Colonel Everard adva nced to Alice, and was about to take her PELs She drew back, took the seat which her father had occupied, and pointed out to him one at some distance. Are we then so much estranged, my dearest Alice ?” he said. “ We will speak of that presently,” she replied. “In the first place, let me ask the cause of your visit here at so late an 39 hour. “Vou heard,” said By erard, “ what I stated to your father?” “ T did ; but that seems to have been only part of your errand—something tiered seemed to be which applied partic- ularly to me.” “Tt was a fancy—a strange mistake,” answered Ev erard. ‘¢ May I ask if you have Dees abroad this evening?’ “Certainly not,” she replied. “I heve small temptation to wander from my present ee poor as it is; and whilst here, have important duties to discharge. But why does Colonel iver ae ask so strange a question ?’ ‘ell me in turn, why your cousin Markham has lost the name of friendship and kindred and even of some nearer feel- ing, and then I will answer you, Alice, “Tt is soon answered,” she said. ‘When you drew your sword against my father’s ‘cause—almost against his persc on—I x Coe aD a os \SSR Aeon RENTER RGR reread rer Sasa 140 WOODSTOCK. studied, more than I should have done, tc find excuse for you. I knew, that is, I thought I knew, your high feelings of public duty—I knew the opinions in which you had been brought up ; and I said, I will not, even for this, cast him off—he opposes his King because he is loyal to his country. You endeavored to avert the great and concluding tragedy of the 30th of January; and it confirmed me in my opinion, that Markham Everard might be misled, but could not be base or selfish.” ‘And what has changed your opinion, Alice? or who dare,” said Everard, reddening, “ attach such epithets to the name of Markham Everard?” + Lam.mo subject,” she said, “for exercising your valor, Colonel Everard, nor do I mean to offend. But you will find enough of others who will avow, that Colonel Everard is truck- ling to the usurper Cromwell, and that all his fair pretexts of forwarding his country’s liberties, are but a screen for driving a bargain with the successful encroacher, and obtaining the best terms he can for himself and his family.” ‘““ For myself—Never ! ” ‘“ But for your family you have—Yes, I am well assured that you have pointed out to the military tyrant the way in which he and his satraps may master the government. Do you think my father or I would accept an asylum purchased at the price of England’s liberty, and your honor?” “Gracious Heaven, Alice, what is this? Youaccuse me of pursuing the very course which so lately had your appro- bation!” ‘When you spoke with authority of your father, and recom- mended our submission to the existing government, such as it was, | own I thought—that my father’s gray head might, with- out dishonor, have remained under the roof where it had so long been sheltered. But did your father sanction your be- coming the adviser of yonder ambitious soldier to a new course of innovation, and his abettor in the establishment of a new species of tyranny?—It is one thing to submit to oppression, another to be the agent of tyrants—And oh, Markham—their bloodhound! ” “How! bloodhound ?—what mean you ?—I own it is true I could see with content the wounds of this bleeding country stanched, even at the expense of beholding Cromwell, after his matchless rise, take a yet further step to power—but to be his bloodhound! What is your meaning?” “It is false, then ?—I thought I could swear it had been false.” “What, in the name of God, is it you ask?”WOODSTOCK. 1At “Tt is false that you are engaged to betray the young King of Scotland ?” : “Betray him! J betray him, or any fugitive? Never! I would we were well out of England—I would lend him my aid to escape, were he in the house at this instant; and think in acting so I did his enemies good coes by pre eventing the soiling themselves with his blood—but betray him, never !” ‘I knew it—I was sure it was impossible. Oh, be yet more honest ; disengage yourself from yonder gloomy and ambitious soldier! Shun him and his schemes, which are formed in in- justice, and can only be realized in yet more blood !” ‘‘ Believe me,” replied Everard, “that I choose the line of policy best befitting the times.” ‘Choose that,” she said, “which best befits duty, Mark- thich best befits truth and honor. Do your duty, and let Providence decide the rest.—Farewell! we tempt my father’s patience too far—you know his temper—farewell, Markham.” She extended her hand, which he pressed to his lips, and left the apartment. A silent bow to his uncle, and a sign to Wildrake, whom he found in the kitchen of the cabin, were the only tokens of recognition exhibited, and leaving the hut, he was soon mounted, and, with his companion, advanced on his return to the Lodge y¢ Sian CHAPTER FOURTEENTH. Deeds are done on earth Which have their punishment ere the earth closes _ Depp the perpetrators. Be it the working s Of the remorse- stirr’d fancy, or the vision, Distinct and real, of unearthly being, All age S os itness, that beside the couch Of the fel pharm: » oft stalks the ghost Of him he slew, and shows the shadowy wound. ~ OLD PEAY. EVERARD h at come to Joceline’s hut as fast as horse could bear him, and with the same impetuosity of purpose as of spe ed. He saw no ee in the course to be pursued, and felt in his own imagination the strongest right to direct, and even reprove, his cousin, beloved as she was, on acount of the dangerous machinations with which she appeared to have connected her- self. He returned slowly, and in a very different mood. ? Muerreusert ce srs suBa eee ee et aT eat 5 AORTA re WOODSTOCK. Not only had Alice, prudent as beautiful, appeared com- pletely free from the weakness of conduct which seemed to zive him some authority over her, but her views of policy, if less practicable, were so much more direct and noble than his own, as led him to question whether he had not compromised him- self too rashly with Cromwell, even although the state of the country was <0 Sia divided and torn by faction, that the promotion of the General to the possession of the executive gov ernment seeme ip the only chance of escaping a renewal of the Civil War. The more exalted and purer sentiments of Alice towered him in his own eyes; and though unshaken in his pinion, that it were better the vessel should be steered by a ope iaving no good title to the office, than that she should ‘akers, he felt that he was not espousing the y and disinterested side of the question. on, immersed in these unpleasant contempla rably lessened in his own esteem by what had rake, who rode by his side, and was no friend began to enter into conversation. “ I have cing, Mark,” said he, “ thatif you and I had been called to the bar—as, by the by, has been in danger of happen- ay ing to me in more senses than one—I say, had we become bar- risters, I would have had the better oiled tongue of the two— the fairer art of persuasion.” thee u sé any, save to induce an usurer to lend thee money, or 3 ‘Perhaps so,” replied Everard, “ though I never heard | : ] : : a TavVeIner to abate a TeCKOnING, “And yet this day, or rather night, I could have, as I think, r made a conquest which baffled you.” Indeed ?” Why, look you,” said Wildrake, ‘it was a main object vith you to induce Mistress Ali ‘e Lee—By Heaven, she is an Exquisite creature—l] : approve of your taste, Mark—] Say, you desire to persuade her, and the stout old Trojan her father, to consent toreturn to the Lodge, and live there quietly, and under connivance, like said the Col nel, becoming attentive. <> gentle folk, instead of lodging in a hut oO 2 Ce ’ y oT ” hi mal ‘fit to harbor a Tom of Bedlam. Thou art right ; such, indeed, was a great part of mj object in this visit,” answered Everard. ‘ But perhaps you also expected to visit there yourself, and so keep watch over pretty Mistress Lee—eh ?” ‘I never entertained so selfish a thou ight,’’ said Everard ; “and if this nocturnal disturbance at the mansion were plained and ended, I would instantly take my departure.’ ‘Your friend Noll would expect something more from you,” CxWOODSTOCK. said Wildrake ; “ he would expect, in case the knight’s reputa- tion for loyalty should draw any of our poor exiles and wanderers about the Lodge, that you should be on the watch and ready to snap them. In a word, as far as, I can understand his long- winded speeches, he would have Woodstock a trap, your uncle ae his ptetty daugh iter the bait of toasted cheese—craving your yhloe’s pardon fot the comparison—you the spring-fall which ee d bar their escape, Be Lords hip himself being the great erimalkin to w ae they are to be given over to be devoure ed.” ‘“ Dared Cromwell mention this to thee in express terms | re said Everard, pulling up his horse, and stopping in the midst of the road. “ Nay, not in express terms, which I do not believe he ever used imhis life: you might as well expect a drunken man to eo straight forw: ‘rd: but he insinuated as much to me, and indicated that you might deserve well of him—Gadzo, the damnable proposal sti ‘ks in my throat—by betraying our noble and rightful King [here he pulled off his hat], whom God grant | € in health and wealth long to reign, as the worthy clergyman says, though I fear just now his } VLaj esty is both sick and sorry, and never a penny im his pouch to boot.” This tallies with what Alice hinted,” said Le: Everard: “‘ but how could she know it? didst thou give her any hint of such a thine 2 “JT!” replied the cavalier, “I, who never saw Mistress Alice in my life till to-nicht, and then only for an instant— zooks, man, how is that possible?” ‘True,” replied Everard, and seemed lost in thought. At length he spoke—‘ I should call Cromwell to account for his bad opinion of me; for, even though not seriously expressed, but, as ; am convinced it was with the sole view of proving you and perhaps myself, it was, nevertheless, a misconstruc- tion to be resented.” «Pib carry 2 cartel for you with all my heart and soul,” said Wildrake : “and turn out with his godlin ess’s eae t eood will as I ever drank a glass of caGas a Pshaw,” replied Everard, “those in his high place figh no sl side combats. But tell me, Roger W ildrake, didst thou thyse lf think me capable of the falsehood and tre sachery implied in such a message >? 71 ie -xclaimed Wildrake. ‘“ Markham Everard, you have 1 been my aay friend, my constant benefactor. When Col. chester was reduced, you saved me from the gallows, and since that thou hast twenty times saved me from starv ing. But, by ‘ Heaven, if I thought you capable of such villainy as your Ripe eee RSTRNT x % _ 3 Cama AE . ?See SP tit ee 144 WOODSTOCK. General recommended, — by yonder blue sky, and all the works of creation which it bends over, I would stab you with my own hand ! ” «Death, rephed Everard, “1 should’ indeed deserve, but not from you, perhaps; but fortunately, I cannot if I would, be guilty of the treachery you would punish. Know that I had this day secret notice, and from Cromwell himself, that the young Man has escaped by sea from Bristol.’ “Now, God Al mighty be blessed, who protected him through so many dangers!” exclaimed Wildrake. ‘* Huzza !—- Up hearts, cavaliers !—Hey for cavaliers—God bless King Charles ! -—Moon and stars, catch my hat!” and he threw it up as high as he could into the air. The celestial bodies which he invoked did not receive the present despatched to them; but, as the case of Sir Henry Lee’s scabbard, an old gnarled oak became a second time the receptacle of a waif and stray of ao en- thusiasm. Wildrake looked rather foolish at the circums ance, and his friend took the opportunity of admonishing him. ‘Art thou not ashamed to bear thee so like a schoolboy? ” ‘‘Why,” -said Wildrake,” I have but sent a Puritan’s hat upon a loyal errand. I laugh to think how many of the school- boys thou talk’st of will be cheated into climbing the pollard next year, expecting to find the nest of some unknown bird in yonder unmeasured margin of felt. - Hush now, for God’s sake, and let us speak calmly,” said Everard. ‘‘ Charles has escaped, and I am glad of it. I would willingly have seen him on his father’s throne by composition but not by the force of the Scottish army, and the incensed and vengeful loyalists.” ‘“ Master Markham Everard,” began the cavalier, interrupting ai ‘““Nay, hush, dear Wildrake,” said Everard: “let us not lispute a point on which we cannot agree, and give me leave o go on.—I say, since, the young Man has escaped, Cromwell’s offensive and injurious stipulation falls to the ground; and I see not why my uncle and his family should not again enter their own house, under the same terms of connivance as many other royalists. What may be incumbent on me is different. nor can I determine my course until J] have an interview with the General, which, I think, will end in his confessing that he threw in this offensive proposal to sound us both. It is much in his manner; for he is blunt, and never sees or feels the punctilious honor which the gallants of the day stretch to such delicacy.” “Tl acquit him of having any punctilio about him,” said 4 4 T LWOODSTOCK. 146 Wildrake, «“ on touching honor or hone esty. Now, to come back to where we started, Supposing you were not to reside In person at the Lodge, and to forbear even visiting there, unless on invitation, when such a thing can be brought about, I tell you frankly, I think your uncle “and his ¢ daughter might be induced to come back to the Lodge, and reside ere as usual. At least the clergyman, that w orthy old cock, gave me to hope as much.” ‘He had been hasty in bestowing his confidence,” said Everard. True,” replied Wildrake ; “he confided in me at once ; for he instantly saw my regard for the Church. I th ank Heaven I never passed a clergyman in his canonicals without pulling my hat off—(and thou knowest, the most desperate duel I ever fought was with young Grayless of the Inner Temple, for taking the wall of the ‘Reverend Dr. Bunce)—Ah, I can gain a chap- lain’s ear instantly. Gadzooks, they know whom they have to trust to in such a one as I.” “ Dost thou think, then,” said Colonel Everard, “ or rather does this clergyman think, that if they were secure of intrusion from me, the family would return to the Lodge, supposing the intruding Commissioners gone, and this nocturnal disturbance explainec d and ended 2 ” ea old Knight,” ash ae upon by the Doctor to return, if he is secure against intrusion. As for disturbances, the aout ae boy, so far as I can learn in two minutes’ conversation, laughs at all this turmoil as the work of mere imagination, the consequence of the remorse of their own evil consciences ; and says that goblin or devil was never heard of at Woodstock, until it became the residence of such men as they, who have now usurped the possession. “There is more than imagination in it,” said Everard. “TI have personal reason to know there is some conspiracy carry- ing on, to render the house untenable by the Commissioners. I acquit my uncle of accession to such a silly trick; but J must see it ended ere I can agree to his and my cousin’s residing where such a confederacy exists; for they are likely to be con- sidered as the contrivers of such pranks be the actual agent who he may.” “ With reference to your better acquaintance with the gentle- men, Everard, I should rather suspect the old father of Puri- tans (I beg your pardon again) has something to do with the business ; and if so, Lucifer will never look near the true old Knight’s beard, nor abide a glance of yonder maiden’s innocent Wildrake, “ may be wrought - ements SPT Serene Le Ssee Patt Sot ee Se acne 146 WOODSTOCK. blue eyes. I will uphold them as sate as pure gold in a miser’s Chest ““ Sawest thou aught thyself, which makes thee think thus ? ” “Not a quill of the devil’s pinion saw I,” replied Wildrake. ‘“’ He supposes himself too secure of an old cavalier, who must steal, hang, or drown, in the long run, so he gives himself no trouble to look after the assured booty. But I heard the serv- ing-fellows prate of what they had seen and heard ; and though their tales were confused enough, yet if there was any truth among them at all, I should say the devil-must have been in the dance.—But, holla! here comes some one upon us.—Stand, friend—who art thou?” “A poor day-laborer in the great work of England—Joseph Tompkins by name—Secretary to a godly and well-endowed leader in this poor Christian army of England, called General Harrison.” “What news, Master Tomkins?” said Everard; “ and why are you on the road at this late hour ?”’ ‘“‘T speak to the worthy Colonel Everard, as I judge?” said Tomkins ; “and I truly am glad of meeting your honor. Heaven knows I need such assistance as yours.—Oh, worthy Master Everard !—Here has been a sounding of trumpets, and a breaking of vials, and a pouring forth, and ” “ Prithee, tell me in brief what is the matter——-where is thy master—ahd in a word, what has happened ?” “My master is close by, parading it in the little meadow, beside the hugeous oak, which is called by the name of the late Man; ride-but two steps forward, and you may see him walking swiftly to and fro, anvancing all the while the naked weapon.” Upon proceeding as directed, but with as little noise as pos- sible, they descried a man, whom of course they concluded must be Harrison, walking to and fro beneath the King’s oak, as a sentinel nnder arms, but with more wildness of demeanor. The tramp of the horses did not escape his ear, and they heard him call out, as if at the head of the brigade—‘ Lower pikes against cavalry !—Here comes Prince Rupert—Stand fast, and you shall turn them aside, as a bull would toss a cur-dog.— Lower your pikes still, my hearts, the end secured against your foot—down on your right knee, front rank—spare not for the spoiling of your blue aprons.—Ha—Zerobabel—ay, that is the word !” ‘“TIn the name of Heaven, about whom or what is he talk- ing ?” said Everard ; “ wherefore does he go about with his weapon drawn ?”y r/ O ? ./71 ny z ‘ Truly, sir, when aught disturbs my master, General Har rison, he is something rapt in the spirit, and conceives that he is cc ymmanding a reserve of pikes at the great battle of Armaged- don—and for his w eapon, alack, worthy sir, wherefore s hould he keep Sheffield steel in calves’ leather, when there are fiends to be combated—incarnate fiends on earth, and raging infernal fiends under the earth ?”’ his is intolerable,” said Everard. “ Listen to me, Tom- kins. Thou art now in ae pulpit, and I desire none ‘of thy preaching language. I know thou canst speak intelligibly when thou art so minded. 1ember, I may serve or harm thee and as you hop e or fear anything on my part, answer straight- ) forward—What has happened to drive out thy master to the wild wood at this time of night?” Forsooth, worthy and honored sir, I will speak with the precision I may. ‘True it is, and of verity, that the breath of 1 ich is i ; nostrils, goeth forth and returneth ’’- “ Hark you, sir,” said Colonel Everard, ‘ take care where you ramble in your correspondence with me. You have heard how at the great battle of Edoumans n Scotland, the General! him- self held a pistol to the id of Lieutenant Hewcreed, threat- ening to shoot him a the brain if he did not give up hold- ing forth, and put his squadron in line to the front. Take care, si” Verily the Lieutenant then charged with an even and un- broken order,” said Tompkins, “and bore a thousand plaids and banneits over the beach before him into the sea. Neither shall I pretermit or postpone your honor’s commands, but 9 speedily obey them, and that without delay ‘Go to, fellow; thou knowest what I would have,” said Everard; ‘‘speak at once—I know thou canst if thou wilt. Trusty Tomkins is better known than he thinks for.” areas sir,” said Tomkins, in a much less periphrastic ‘I will obey your worship at far as the spirit will permit. Truly, it was not an hour since, when my worshipful master at table with Master Bibbet and myself, not to mention the worshipful Master Bletson and C olonel Desborough, and behold ee was a violent knocking at the gate, as of one in haste. Now, of a certainty, so much had our household been harassed with cies and spirits, and other objects of sound and sight, that the sentinels could not be brought to abide upon their posts out doors, and it was only by a provision of beef and strong liquors that we were able to maintain a guard of oe men ‘in the hall, who nevertheless ventured not to ong he d lest they sponta be surprised with some of the goblins ¢ 1 7 - OCiNne & oo eae me Cae Perret Se nernees 4 7ST RaINLsaL SALAS eee eee pases jf TREAT et eae 148 WOODSTOCK. eee their 1maginations were overwhelmed. And they heard the knocking, “which increased until it seemed that the door was well-nigh ‘about to be beaten down. Worthy Master Bibbet was a little overcome with liquor, (as is his fashion, good man, about this time of the evening), not that he is in the least given to ebriety, but simply, that since the Scottish cam- paign he hath had a perpetual ague, which obliges him so to nourish his frame against the damps of the night ; wherefore, as it is well known to your honor that I discharge the office of a faithful servant, as well to Major-General Harrison, and the other Commissioners, as to my just and lawful master Colonel Desborough” “YT know all that.—And now that thou art trusted by both, [ pray to Heaven thou mayst merit the trust,” said Colonel Everard. ‘And devoutly do I pray,” said Tomkins, “ that your wor- shipful prayers may be answered with favor; for certainly to be, and to be called and entitled, Honest Joe, and ‘Trusty Tomkins, is to me more than ever would be an Earl’s title, were such things to be granted anew in this regenerated gov- ernment.” ee go on—go on—or if thou dalliest much longer, I will make bold to dispute the article of your honesty. T like short tales, sir, and doubt what is told with a long unnecessary train of words,” “Well, good sir, be not hasty. As I said before, the doors rattled till you would have thought the knocl king was reiterated in every room of the Palace, The bell rung out for company, though we could not find that any one tolled the clapper, and the guards let off their firelocks, merely because they knew not what better to do, So, Master Bibbet being, as I said, unsus- ceptible of his duty, I went down with my poor rapier to the door, and demanded who was there ; and I was answered in a voice, which, I must say, was much like another voice, that it was one wanting Major-General Harrison. So, as it was then late, I answered mildly, that General Harrison was betaking himself to his rest, and that any who wished to speak to him must return on the morrow morning, for that after nightfall the door of the Palace, being in the room of a garrison, would be opened to no one. So the voice replied, and bid me open directly, without which he would blow the folding leaves of the door into the middle of the hall. And therewithal the noise recommenced, that we thought the house would have fallen; and I was in some measure constrained to open the door, even like a besieged garrison which can hold out no longer.”WOODSTOCK. 149 - by my honor, and it was stoutly done of you, I must say,” said W ildrake, who had been listening with much interest. [ am a bold dare- devil enough, yet w hen. I had two inches of oak plank between the actual fiend and me, hang him that would demolish the barrier between us, say I—I would as soon, when aboard, bore a hole in the ship, and let in the waves ; for you know we always compare the devil to the deep sea.” “ Prithee, peace, Wildrake,” said Everard, “and let him go on with his history.—Well, and what saw’st thou when the door was opened ?—the great Devil with his horns and claws thou wilt say, no doubt.’ ‘No, sir, I will say nothing but what is true. When I un- did the door, one man stood there, and he, to seeming, a man of no extraordinary appearance. He was wrapped in a taffeta cloak, of a scarlet color, and with a red lining. He seemed as if he might ie been in his time a very handsome man, but ng « a paleness and sorrow in his face—a long ng hair he wore, even after the abomination of 1d the fuaieeine as learned Master Prynne well-termed it, of love locks—a jewel in his ear—a blue scarf over his shoulder, like a military commander for the King, and a hat with a white plume, bearing a peculiar hatband.” Some unhappy officer of cavaliers, of whom so many are in hiding, and seeking shelter through the country,’ ’ briefly re plied Everard. True, worthy sir—right as a judicious exposition. Sut there was something about this man Gf he was a man) whom I, for one, could not look upon without trembling; nor the musketeers, who were in the hall, without betraying much alarm, and swallowing, as they themselves will aver, the very bullets which they had in their mouths for loading their cara- bines and muskets. Nay, the wolf and deer dogs, that are the fiercest of their kind, fled from this visitor, and crept into holes and corners, moaning and wailing in a low and broken tone. He came into the middle of the hall, and still he seemed no more than an ordinary man, only somewhat fantastically dressed in a doublet of black velvet pinked upon scarlet satin under his cloak, a jewel in his ear, with large roses in his shoes, ee a kerchief in his hand, which he sometimes pressed against his left side. ‘Gaaceds Heavens!” said Wildrake, coming close up to Everard, and whispering in his ear, with accents which terror rendered tremulous (a mood of mind most unusual to the daring man, who seemed now overcome by it)—“it must have been poor Dick Robison the player, in the very dress in which love lock and ie )1 an tne cavaliers, Re D SS X, _Be eee - 150 WOODSTOCK. I have seen him play Philaster—ay, and drunk a jolly bottle with him after it at the Mermaid! I remember how many frolic we had together, and all his little fantastic fashions, He served for his old master, Charles, in Mohun’s troop, and was murdered by this butcher’s dog, as I have heard, after surrender, at the battle of Naseby-field.” “Hush! I have heard of the deed,” said Everard ; ‘for God’s sake hear the man to an end.—Did this visitor speak to thee, my friend?” “ Ves, sir, ina pleasing tone of voice, but somewhat fanci- ful in the articulation, and like one who is speaking to an audience as from a bar or a pulpit, more than in the voice of ordinary men on ordinary matters. He desired to see Major-General Harrison.” ‘He did !—and you,” said Everard, infected by the spirit of the time, which, as is well known, leaned to credulity upon all matters of supernatural agency,—“ what did you do?” ‘““I went up to the parlor, and related that such a person inquired for him. He started when I told him, and eagerly ead to know the man’s Breses but no sooner did I mention his dress, and the jewel in his ear, that he said, ‘Begone! tell him I will not dat him to speech of me. Say that I defy him, and will make my defiance good at the great battle in the valley of Armageddon, when the voice of the angel shall call at fowls which fly under the face of heaven to feed on the flesh of the captain and the soldier, the war-horse and his rider. Say to the Evil One, I have power to appeal our con- fict even till that day, and that in the front of that fearful day he will again meet with Harrison.’ I went back with this answer to the stranger, and his face was writhed into such a deadly frown as a mere human brow hath seldom worn. ‘ Re- turn to him,’ he said, ‘and say it is My HOUR, and that if he come not instantly down to speak with me, I will mount the stairs to him. Say that I commanp him to descend by the token, th at, on the field of Naseby, he did not the work negli- gently,” ; éT have heard,” whispered Wildrake—who felt more and more strongly the contagion of superstition—* that these words were blasphemously used by Harrison when he shot my poor mend Dick,” ‘What happened next?” said Everard. “See that thou speakest t the truth. As gospel unexpounded by a steeple-man,” said the Inde- pendent; “yet truly it is but little I have to say. I saw my master come down, with a blank. vet resolved air; and when a lWOODSTOCK. Crt 1, . eds ee ne entered the hall and saw the stranger, he made a pause. ihe other waved on him as if to follow, and walked out at the portal. My w ane patron seemed as if he were about to fol- low, yet again paused, when this visitant, be he man or fiend, re-entered, hee said, ‘Obey thy doom. ‘ By pathless march, by greenwood tree, It is thy weird to follow me— To follow me through the ghastly moonlight— To follow me through the shadows of n ight— l’o follow me, comrade, stil] art thou bound ; I conjure thee by the unstanch’d ead — I conjure thee by the last words I s spoke, When the body slept and the ie Hees In the very last pangs of the deadly stroke ! ’ So saying, he stalked out, and my master followed him into the ee. J £ 5, = > owed also at a distance. But when I came up, my master was alone, and | bearing himself as you now behold him.” wood.—TI foll “"Thou hast had a wonderful memory, friend,” said the Colonel. coldly, “‘ to remember these rhymes ina single recita- tion—there seems somethi Ing of pr actice in all this cA ee. recitati ion, my honored sir,” exclaimed the Inde- pendent—“‘alack, the rhyme is seldom out of my poor master’s mouth, when, as uscnues haps, he is less triumphant in his - tlac vu714 Na fA+ rit at ae ae 7 Ak +4 _ Soe wrestles with Satan. But it was the first time I ever heard it uttered by another; and, to say truth, he ever seems to repeat as a child after his pedagogue, and as it was not indited by his own head, as the Psalmist saith.” “Tt js lar.” said Cis sin Sular;r, Sala 1 i it unwillingly, Everard ;—“ JI have heard and read s of the slaughtered have strange power over the yut I am astonished to Bats it insisted upon that there Lulat the SpE it: Iaver- | SIa2yerE: put may be truth in such tales. ger Wildrake—what art thou atraid of, man ?—why dost choi anit thy place thus?” ‘ Fear? it is nof Oe ak is hate, deac dly hate.—I see the murderer of poor Dick before me, and—see, he throws himself into a ‘posture of fence—Sa—sa—say’st thou, brood of a butcher’s mastiff ? thou shalt not want an antagonist.” Ere any word could stop him, Wildrake threw aside his cloz ikl ide his sword, and almost with a single bound cleared the distance betwixt him and Harrison, and crossed swords with the latter, as he stood brandishing his weapon, as if in immediate expectation of an assailant. Accordingly, the Re- publican General was not for an instant taken at unawares, but the moment the swords clashed, he shouted, “Ha! I feel thee Cee aes Te Y 2 ‘ %TG 2 WOODSTOCK. now, thou hast come in body at last—Welcome ! welcome !- the sword of the Lord and of Gideon !” Part tl 1em, part them,” cried Everard, as he and Tomkins, at first astonis shed at the suddenness of the affray, hastened to interfere. Everard, seizing on the cavalier, drew him forcibly backward, and Tomkins contrived, with risk and c difficulty, to master Harrison’s sword, while the General exclaimed, Eha | two to one—two to one !—thus fight demons.” Wildrake, on his side, swore a dreadful oath, and added, ‘ Markham, you have canceled every obligation I owed -_you—they are all out of sight—gone, d—n me! ‘You have indeed acquitted these obligations rarely;” said Everard. “Who knows how this affair shall be explained and answered ?” “‘T will answer it with my life,” said Wildrake. ‘“¢Good now, be silent,” said Tomkins, ‘‘ and let me manage. It shall be so ordered that the good General shall never know that he hath encountered with a mortal man; only let that man of Moab put his sword into the scabbard’s rest, and be si” ‘“ Wildrake, let me entreat thee to sheathe thy sword,” said Everard, “else, on my life, thou must turn against me.” ‘“‘ No, fore George, not so mad as that neither, but I’ll have another day with him.” bus another day!” exclaimed Harrison, whose eye had still remained fixed on the spot where he found such palpable resistance. ‘‘ Yes, I know thee well; day by day, week by week, thou makest the same idle request, for thou knowest that my heart quivers at thy voice. But my hand trembles not when opposed to thine—the spirit is willing to the combat, if the flesh be weak when opposed to that which is not of the flesh.” ** Now, peace all, for Heaven’s sake,’—said the steward Tomkins ; then added, addressing his master, ‘‘ There is no one here, if-it ‘please your Excellence, but Tomkins and the worthy Colonel Everard.” General Harrison, as sometimes happens in cases of partial insanity (that is, supposing his to have been a case of mental delusion), though firmly and entirely persuaded of the truth of his own visions, yet was not willing to speak on the subject to those who, he knew would regard them as im: uginary. Upon this occasion, he assumed the appearance of perfect ease and composure, after the violent agitation he had just manifested, in a manner which showed how anxious he was to disguise hisWOODSTOCK. real feelings from Everard, whom he considered as unlikely to participate them. He saluted the Colonel with profound ceremony, and talked of the fineness of the e evening, which had summoned him forth of the Lodge, to take a turn in the Park, and enjoy the favor- able weather. He then took Everard by the arm, and walked back with him toward the Lodge, W ildrake and Tomkins following close bel hind and leading the horses. Everard, de- sirous to gain some light on these mysterious incidents, eng ored to come on the subject more than once, by a mode of interrogation, which Harrison (for madmen are very often unwilling to enter on ca subject of their mental delusion) parried with some skill, or addressed himself for aid to his stew- ard ‘Tomkins, who was in the habit of being vou icher for his master upon all occasions, which led to Desborough’s ingenious nickname of Fibbet. “And wherefore had you your sword drawn, my worthy General,” said Everard, “when you were only on an evening walk of pleasure ? ” “Truly, excellent Colonel, these are times when men must watch with their loins girded, and their lights burning, and their weapons drawn. The day draweth nigh, believe me or not as you will, that men must watch lest they be found naked and unarmed, when the seven trumpets sh a sound, Boot and saddle ; and the pipes of Jezer shall strike up, Horse and away. “True, good general; but methot icht i saw you making passes, €ven now, as if you were geen ng,” said Everard. ““T am of a strange fantasy, friend Everard,” answered Har- rison ; “‘and when I- walk alone, and happen, as but now, to have my weapon drawn, I sometimes, for exercise sake, will practice a thrust against such atree as that. It is a silly pride men have in the use of weapons. I have been accounted a master of fence, and a @ fousty przes when I was unregener- ated, and before I was 2d to do my part in the great work, entering asa trooper a our victorious general’s first reg iment of horse.” “ But methought,” said Everard, ‘‘I heard a weapon clash with yours ?” ‘How? a weapon clash with my sword ?—How could that be, Tomkins?” ‘ Truly, sir,” said Tomkins, “it must have been a bough of the ie they | 1ave them of all kinds here, and your honor may have pushed against one of them, which the Brazilians call iron- : wood, a block of which ee struck with a hammer, saith Purchas, in his pilgrimage, ringeth like an anvil,’ “ * R 7 = gun eS see) yannanaatiabbbeiastencssaeednaseentsthiihe)Soa Se aie en laah £5 ARI IE ret roae 154 WOODSTOCK. “ Truly, it may be so,” said Harrison ; “ for those rulers who are gone, assen ibled in this their abode of pleasure many strange trees and plants, though they gathered not of the fruit of that tree which beareth twelve manner of fruits, or of those leaves which are for the healing of the nations.” Everard pursued his investigation; for he was struck with the manner in which Harrison evaded his questions, and the dexterity with which he threw his transcendental and fanatical notions, like a sort of veil, over the darker visions excited by remorse and conscious guilt. “* But,” said he, ‘tif J may trust my eyes and ears, I cannot but still think that you had a real antagonist.—Nay, I am sure I saw a fellow, in a dark-colored je rkin, retreat through the wood.” “Did you?” said Harrison, with a tone of surprise, while his voice faltered in spite of him—‘ Who could he be >—Tom- kins, did you see the fellow Colonel Everard talks of with the napkin in his hand—the bloody napkin which he always pressed to his side? ”’ This last expression, in which Harrison gave a mark different from that which Everard — assigned, but corresponding to Tomkins’s original description of the supposed spectre, had more effect on Everard in c afirminie the steward’s story, than anything he had witnessed or heard. ‘The voucher answered the draft upon him as promptly as usual, that he had seen la l such a fellow glide past them into the thicket—that he dared to say he was some anit. for he had heard they were become very audacic “Look ye there now, Master Everard,” said Harrison, hurry- ing from the subject—“ not time now that we should lay aside our controversies, and join hand in hand to repairing the breaches of our Zion? Happy and contented were J, my ex- cellent friend, to be a treader of mortar, or a bearer of a hod, upon this occasion, under our great leader, with whom Provi- dence has gone forth in this great national controversy; and truly, so devoutly do I hold by our excellent and victorious General Oliver, whom Heaven | long preserve—that were he to command me, J should not scruple to pluck forth of his high place, the man whom they call Speaker, even as I lent a poor hand to pluck down the man whom they called King. Wherefore, as I know your judgment hol leth with mine on this matter, let me urge unto you lovingly, re we may act as brethren, and build up the breaches, and re-establish the bul watks of our English Zion, whereby we a ill be doubtless chosen as pillars and buttresses, under our excellent Lord-WOODSTOCK. General, for supporting and sustaining the same, and endowed with proper revenues and incomes, both s spiritual and temporal, to serve as a pedestal, on which we may stand, seeing that otherwise our foundation will be on the loose sand.—Never- theless,”’ continued he, his mind again diverging from his views of temporal ambition, into his Visions of the Fifth Monarchy, these things are but vanity in respect of the opening of the book which is sealed ; for all things approach speedily toward lightning and thundering, and un nlo¢ osing a the great dragon ha rn ) r > J from the bottomless pit, wherein he is chained.” With this mingled strain of earthly Si and fanatical prediction, Harrison so overpoweé ered Colonel Everard, as to leave oT no time to urge him further on the particular cir- > cumstan¢ of his nocturnal skirmish, concerning which it is lain he h: ta no desire to be interrogated. ‘They now reached ot hy he Lodge of Woodstock. CHAPTER PIPTEEN TPH, Now the wasted brands do glow, While the screech-owl, sounding loud, Puts the wretch that hes in woe, In remembrance of a shroud. Now it is the time of night That the graves all g g wide, Every one lets out its sprite In the church-way paths to glide. MIDSUMMER NIGHT’s DREAM. BeEForE the gate of the palace, the guards were now doubled. Everard demanded the reason of this from the Corporal, whom he found in the hall with his soldiers, sitting or soon around a great fire, maintaine -d at the expense of the carved chairs and benches, with fragments of which it was furnished. f Why, Pahige’ answered the man, “the corps-de-garde, a your worship says, will be harassed to pieces by such ee ; nevertheless, fear hath sone abroad among us, and no man will mount cuard alone. We have drawn in, however, one or two of our outposts from Banbury and elsewhere, and we are to have a relief from Oxford to-morrow.” Everard continued minute inquiries concerning the sentinels that were posted within as well as without the Lodge; and found that, as they had been stationed under the eye of Harrison himself, the rules of prudent discipline had been - " Cs eee oo \e >Noe Ue 156 WOODSTOCK. exactly observed in the distribution of the posts. There re- mained nothing therefore for Colonel Everard to do, but, remembering his own adventure of the evening, to recommend that an additional sentinel should be placed, with a companion if judged indispensable, in that vestibule, or anteroom, from which the long gallery where he had met with the rencontre, and other suites of apartments, diverged. The corporal respect: fully promised all obedience to his orders. The serving-men being called, appeared also in double force. Everard demanded to know whether the Commissioners hdd gone to bed, or whether he could get speech with them ? “They are in their bedroom, forsooth,” replied one of the fellows; ‘but I think they be not yet undressed.” ‘What! ” said Everard, ‘are Colonel Desborough and Master Bletson both in the same sleeping apartment? ” ‘Their honors have so chosenit,” and the man; “and their honors’ secretaries remain upon guard all night.” ‘Tt is the fashion to double guards all over the house,” said Wildrake. ‘ Had I a glimpse of a tolerably good-looking house- maid now, I should know how to fall into fashion.” “Peace, fool!” said Everard—‘“ And where are the Mayor and Master Holdenough ?” “The Mayor is returned to the borough on horseback, be- hind the trooper who goes to Oxford for the reinforcement ; and the man of the steeple-house hath quartered himself in the chamber which Colonel Desborough had last night, being that in which he is most likely to meet the your honor under- stands. ‘The Lord pity us, we are a harassed family !” ‘¢ And where be General Harrison’s knaves,” said Tomkins, “that they do not marshal him to his apartment? ” ‘“FTere—here—here, Master Tomkins,” said three fellows, pressing forward, with the same consternation on their faces which seemed to pervade the whole inhabitants of Woodstock. “Away with you, then,” said Tomkins ;—‘‘ speak not to his worship—you see he is not in the humor.” “Indeed,” observed Colonel Everard, ‘ he looks singularly wan—his features seemed writhen as by a palsy stroke; and though he was talking so fast while we came along, he hath not opened his mouth since we came to the light.” ‘Tt is his manner after such visitations,” said Tomkins.— ‘Give his honor your arms, Zedekiah and Jonathan, to lead him off—I will follow instantly.—You, Nicodemus, tarry to wait upon me—it is not well walking alone in this mansion.” o ‘¢ Master Tomkins,” said Everard, ‘‘I have heard of youWOODSTOCK. : roy often as a sharp, intelligent man—tell me fairly, are you in earnest afraid of anything supernatural h: aunting this house ? ” ‘I would be loath to run the ch lance, sir,” said Tomkins, very gravely ; “by looking on my worshipful master, you may form a guess how the living look after ey have spoken with the dead.” He bowed low, and took his ] Jeave. Everard pro- ceeded to the chamber which the two remaining Commissoners had, for comfort’s sake, chosen to inhabit in company. They were prep aring for bed as he went into their apartment. Both started as the door opened—both re joiced when they saw it was nly Everard who entered. “Hark ye hither,” said Bletson, pulling him aside ; “ sawest thou ever ass equal to D esborough ?—the fellow is as big as an ox, and as timorous as a sheep. He has insisted on my sleep- ing here, to protect him. Shall we have a merry night on’t ha ? We will, if thou wilt take the third bed, which was prepared for SEO Re But he is gone out, like a mooncalf, to look for the valley Armageddon in the Park of Woodstock.” ee al Harrison has returned with me but now,” said Everard. ‘* Nay but, as I shall live, he comes not into our apartment,” said Desborough, overhearing his answer. “No man that has been supping, for aught I know, with the Devil, has a right to sleep among Christian folk.” ‘* He does not propose so,” said Everard ; “he slee ps, as I understand, apart—and alone.” “ Not quite alone, I dare say,” said Desborough ; “for Har- rison hath a sort of attraction: for goblins—they fly round him like moths about a candle: But, I prithee, good Everard, do hou stay with us. I know not how it is, but although thou last noGtyy re ligion always in thy mouth, nor speakest many hard words about it, like Harrison—nor makest long preach- ments, hie a certain most honorable relation of mine who shall be nameless, yet somehow I feel myself safer in thy company than with any of them. As for this Bletson, he is such a mere DiesP Dente that I fear the Devil will carry him away ere morning.” . Di id you ever hear such a paltry coward ?” said Bletson, apart to Everard. “Do tarry, however, mine honored Colonel —I know your zeal to assist the distressed, and you see Des- borough is in that predicament, that he will require near him more than one good example to prevent him thinking of ghosts und fiends.” “I am sorry I cannot oblige you, gentlemen,” said Everard ; “but I have settled my mind to sleep in Victor Lee’s apartment,eee es AERA See tts a re 158 WOODSTOCK. so I wish you good night; and if you would repose with out disturbance, I would advise that you commend your- selves, during the watches of the night, to Him unto whom night is even as mid-day. J had intended have spoken to with you this evening on the subject of my being here ; but I will defer a conférence till to-morrow, when, I think, I will be able to show you excellent reasons for leaving Woodstock.” “We have seen plenty such already,” said Desborough ; ‘for one, I came here to serve the estate, ‘with some moderate advantage doubtless to myself for my trouble ; but if lam ‘set upon my head again to-night, as I was the night before, I would not stay longer to gain a king’s crown; for I am sure +] my neck would be unfitted to bear the weight of it.” “Good night,” exclaimed Everard; and was about to go, when Bletson ae pressed close, and whispered to him, “Hark thee, Colonel—you know my friendship for thee—I do 4 implore thee to leave the door of thy apartment open, that if thou meetest with any disturbance, I may hear thee call, and be with thee upon the very instant. Do this, dear Everard, my fears for thee will keep me awake else ; for I know that, notwithstanding your excellent sense, you entertain some of those superstitious ideas which we suck in with our mother’s milk, and which constitute the ground of our fears in situations like the present; therefore leave thy door open, if you love me, that you may have ready assistance from me in case of Teed.) ‘“My master,” said Wildrake, “ trusts, first, in his Bible, sir, and then in his good sword. He has no idea that the Devil can be bs iffled by the charm of two men lying in one room, still less that the foul fiend can be argued out of exist- ence by the Nu llifid lians of the Rota.” Everard ime his imprudent friend by the collar, and dragged him off as he was speaking, keeping fast hold of him till they were both in the chamber of Victor Lee, where they had slept on a former occasion. Even then he continue sdto hold wil drake, until the servant had arranged the lights, and was dismissed from the room; then letting him go, addressed him with the upbraiding question, “ Art thou not a prudent and sagacious person, who in times like these seek’st every oppor- tunity to argue yourself into a broil, or embroil yourself in an argument. Out on you!” “Ay, out on me, indeed,” said the cavalier; for a poor tame-spirited creature, that submits to be bandied about in this manner, by a man who is neither better born nor better bred than myself, I tell thee, Mark, you make an a 1 i ¢ FOUT...ONn meis WOODSTOCK. 159 unfair use of your advantages over me. Why will you not let me go from you, and live eh die after my own fashion ?”’ ‘Because before we had been a week separate, I should hear of your dying after the fashion of a dog. Come, my good friend, what ma ie €ss was it in thee to fall foul on ‘Harrison. and ‘hen to enter into useless argument with Bletson ?” “Why, we are in the Devil’s house, I think, and I would willingly give the landlord his due wherever I travel. To have sent him Harrison, or Bletson now, just as a lunch to stop his appetite, till Crom” “Hush ! stone walls have ears,” said Eve rard, looking around him: * ae stands thy night-drink. Look to thy arms, for we must be as careful as if the Avenger of Blood were behind us. Yonder is thy bed—and I, as thou seest, shave one pre- pared in the parlor. The door only divides us.” ‘Which I will leave open, in case thou shouldst holla for assistance, as yonder Nullifidian hath it.—But how hast thou got all this so well put in order, good patron?” “I gave the steward Tomkins notice of my purpose to sleep here. . “A strange fellow that,” said Wildrake, “and, as I judge, has taken measure of every one’s foot—all seems to pass through his hands.” “He is, I have understood,” replied Everard, “one of the men formed by the times—has a ready gift of preaching and expounding, which kee ps him in high terms with the Indepen- dents ; and recommends himself to the more moderate people by his intelligence and activity.” “ Has his sincerity ever been doubted ?” said Wildrake. “Never, that I heard of,” said the Colonel; “on the con- trary, he has been familiarly called Honest Joe, and Trusty Tomkins. For my part, I believe his sincerity has always kept pace with his interest.—But come, finish thy cup, and to ed —What, all emptied at one draught?” “ Adzookers, yes—my vow forbids me to make two on’t; but, never fear—the ni ightcap will only warm my brain, not clog it. So, man or devil, give me notice if you are disturbed, and rely on me ina twinkling.” So saying, the cavalier re- treated into his separate apartment, and Colonel Everard, tak- ing off the most cumbrous part of his dress, lay down in his hose and doublet, and composed himself to rest. He was awakened from sleep by a slow and solemn strain of music, which died away as at a distance. He started up, and felt for his arms which he found close beside him. His temporary bed being without curtains, he could look around ROR RCTS:160 WOODSTOCK. him without difficulty ; but as there remained in the chimney only a few red embers of the fire which he had arranged before he went to sleep, it was impossible he could discern anything. He felt, therefore, in spite of his natural courage, that undefined and thrilling species of tremor which attends a sense that dan- ger is near, and an uncertainty concerning its cause and character. Reluctant as he was to yield belief to supernatural occurrences, we have already said he was not absolutely in- credulous; as perhaps, even in this more sceptical age, there are many fewer complete and absolute infidels on this particular than give themselves out for such. Uncertain whether he had not dreamed of these sounds which seemed yet in his ears, he was unwilling to risk the raillery of his friend by summoning him to his assistance. He sat up, therefore, in his bed, not without experiencing that nervous agitation to which brave men as well as cowards are subject; with this difference, that the one sinks under it like the vine under the hail-storm and the other collects his energies to shake it off, as the cedar of Lebanon is said to elevate its boughs to disperse the snow which accumulates upon them. The story of Harrison, in his own absolute despite, and not- withstanding a secret suspicion which he had of trick or con- nivance, returned on his mind at this dead and solitary hour. Harrison, he remembered, had described the vision by a cir- cumstance of its appearance different from that which his own remark had been calculated to suggest to the mind of the visionary ;—that bloody napkin, always pressed to the side, was then a circumstance present either to his bodily eye, or to that of his agitated imagination. Did, then, the murdered revisit the living haunts of those who had forced them from the stage with all their sins unaccounted for? And if they did, might not the same permission authorize other visitations of a similar nature, to warn—to instruct—to punish? Rash are they, was his conclusion, and credulous, who receive as truth every tale of the kind; but no less rash may it be, to limit the power of the Creator over the works which he has made, and to suppose that, by the permission of the Author of Nature, the laws of Nature may not, in peculiar cases, and for high purposes be temporarily suspended. While these thoughts passed through Everard’s mind feel- ings unknown to him, even when he stood first on the rough and perilous edge of battle, gained ground upon him. He feared he knew not what; and where an opén and discernible peril would have drawn out his courage, the absolute uncer- tainty of his situation increased his sense of the danger. HeWOODSTOCK GA felt an almost irresistible desire to spring from his bed and heap fuel on the dying embers, expecting by the blaze to see some strange sight in his chamber, He was also strongly tempted to awaken Wildrake; but shame, stronger than fear itself, checked these impulses. What! should it be thought that Markham Everard, held one of the best soldiers who had drawn a sword in this sad war—Markham Everard, who had obtained such distinguished rank in the army of the Parliament though so young in years, was afraid of remaining by himself in a twilight room at midnight : e “Ti never oat be said. This was, however, no charm for this unpleasant current of thought. There rushed on his mind the various traditions of Victor Lee’s chamber, which, though he had often despised them as vague, unauthenticated, and inconsistent rumors, engendered by ancient superstition, and transmitted from gene- ration to generation by loquacious credulity, had something in them, which did not tend to allay the present unpleasant state of his nerves. Then, when he recollected the events of that very afternoon, the weapon pressed against his throat, and the strong arm which threw him backward on the floor—if the remembrance served to contradict the idea of flitting phantoms, and unreal daggers, it certainly induced him to believe that there was in some part of this extensive mansion a party of cavaliers, or malignants, harbored, who might arise in the night, overpower the guards, and execute upon them all, but on Harrison in particular, as one of the regicide judges, that ven- geance, which was so eagerly thirsted for by the attached fol- lowers of the slaughtered monarch. He endeavored to console himself on this sub ject by the number and position of the guards, yet still was dissatisfied with himself for not having taken yet more exact precautions, and for keeping an extorted promise of silence, which might consign so many of his party to the danger of assassination. These thoughts, connected with his military duties, awakened another train of reflections. He bethought himself, that all he could now do, was to visit the sentries, and assertain that they were awake, alert, on the watch, and so situated, that in time of need they might be cae to support each ona This better befits me,” he thought, “than to be here like child, frightening myself with the old woman’s legend, which I have laughed at “whe na boy. What although old Victor Lee was a sacrilegious man, as common report goes, and brewed ale in the font which he brought from the ancient palace ot Holyrood, while church and building were in flames? And what althouyh his eldest son was when a child scalded to death oO Ss O 4 % \ be rm (a isSe alee 162 in the same vessel ? ished since his time ? WOODSTOCK. How many churches have been demol- How many fonts desecrated? So many indeed, that, were the vengeance of Heaven to visit such ag- gressions in a supernatural manner, no corner in England, no, not the most petty parish church, but would have its apparition. —Tush, these are idle fancies, unworthy, especially, to be en- tertained by those educated to believe that sanctity resides in the intention and the act, not in the buildings or fonts, or the 9) form of worship As thus he called together the articles of his Calvinistic creed, the bell of the great clock (a token seldom silent in such narratives) tolled three, and was immediately followed by the hoarse call of the sentinels through vault and gallery, up stairs and beneath, challenging and answering each other with the \ll’s Well.” ‘Their voices mingled with the deep boom of the bell, yet ceased before that was silent, and when they had died away, the tingling echo of the prolonged udible. Ere yet that last distant tingling had finally subsided into silence, it seemed as if it again was awakened ; and Everard could hardly judge at first whether a new echo had taken up the falling cadence, or whether some other and separate sound was disturbing anew the silence to which the deep knell had, as its voice ceased, consigned the usual watchword, “‘ { knell was scarcely a ancient mansion and the woods around it. But the doubt was soon cleared up. which had mingled with the dying echoes of t at first to prolong strain of melody, t 5 ie and afterward to Oo The musical tones he knell, seemed survive them. A wild ginning at a distance, and growing louder as it advanced, seemed to pass from room to room, from cabinet to gallery, from hall to bower, through the deserted and dis- honored ruins of the ancient residence of so many sovereigns; and, as it approached no soldier gave alarm, nor did any of the numerous guests of various degrees, who spent an unpleasant and terrified night in that ancient mansion, seem to dare to an- nounce to each other the inexplicable cause of apprehension. Everard’s excited state of mind did not permit him to be so passive. ‘The sounds approached, so nigh, that it seemed they were performing, in tl o?) 1e very next apartment, a solemn service for the dead, when he gave the alarm, by calling loudly to his trusty attendant and friend Wildrake, who slumbered in the next chamber with only a door betwixt them, and even that ajar, Wildrake—Wildrake !—Up—up! alarm ? ”’ There was now no answer from Wildrake, though the must Dost thou not hear theWOODSTOCK. cal sounds, which now rung through the apartment, as if the performers had actually been within its precincts, would have been sufficient to awaken a sleeping person, even without the shout of his comrade and patron. “ Alarm !—Roger Wildrake—alarm !” again called Everard, getting out of bed, and grasping his weapons—“Get a light, and cry alarm!” There was no answer. His voice died away as the sound of the music seemed also to die; and the same soft sweet voice, which still to his thinking resembled that of Alice Lee, was heard in his apartment, and, as he thought, at no distance from him. “Your comrade will not answer,” said the low soft voice. “Those only hear the alarm whose consciences feel the call!” “ Aoain this mummery!” said Everard. “J am_ better armed than I was of late; and but for the sound of that voice, the speaker had bought his trifling dear.” t was singular, we may observe in passing, that the instant the distinct sounds of the human voice were heard by Everard, all idea of supernatural interference was at an end, and the charm by which he had been formerly fettered appeared to be broken : so much is the influence of imaginary or superstitious yendent (so far as respects strong judgments at least) t is vague or ambiguous; and so readily do distinct J terror de] upon wha \ tones, and express ideas, bring such judgments back to the current of ordinary life. The voice returned answer, as ad- dressing his thoughts as well as his words. “ We laugh at the weapons thou thinkest should terrify us Over the guardians of Woodstock they have no power. Fire, if thou wilt, and try the effect of thy weapons. But know, it is not our purpose to harm thee—thou art of a falcon breed, and noble in thy disposition, though, unreclaimed and ill- nurtured, thou hauntest with kites and carrion crows. Wing thy flight from hence on the morrow, for if thou tarriest with the bats, owls, vultures and ravens, which have thought to nestle here, thou wilt inevitably share their fate. Away, then, that these halls may be swept and garnished for the reception of those who have a better right to inhabit them.” Everard answered in a raised voice.—‘‘ Once more I warn you, think not to defy me in vain. Iam no child to be fright- ened by goblins’ tales: and no coward, armed as I am, to be alarmed by the threats of a banditti. If I give youa moment’s induleence, it is for the sake of dear and misguided friends, who may be concerned with this dangerous gambol. Know, I can bring a troop of soldiers round the castle, who will searchae a ernie SRA 164 WOODSTOCK. its most inward recesses for the author of this audacious frolic, and if that search should fail, it will cost but a few barrels of gunpowder to make the mansion a heap of ruins, and bury under them the authors of such an ill-judged pastime.” “You speak proudly, Sir Colonel,” said another voice, similar to that harsher and stronger tone by which he had been addressed in the gallery; “try your courage in this direction.” “You should not dare me twice,” said Colonel Everard, ‘“‘had I a glimpse of light to take aim by.” As he spoke, a sudden gleam of hght was thrown wih a orilliancy which almost dazzled the speaker, showing distinctly a form somewhat resembling that of Victor Lee, as represented in his picture, holding in one hand a lady completely veiled, and in the other his leading-staff, or truncheon. Both figures were animated, and, as it appeared, standing within six feet of him. ‘““'Were it not for the woman,” said Everard, “I would not be thus mortally dared.” “Spare not for the female form, but do your worst,” replied the same voice. . ‘1 defy you.’ ‘“‘ Repeat your defiance when IJ have counted thrice,” said Everard, ‘‘and take the punishment of your insolence. Once —I have cocked my pistol—Twice—I never missed my aim— By all that is sacred, I fire if you do not withdraw. When I pronounce the next number, I will shoot you dead where you stand. I am yet unwilling to shed blood—lI give you another chance of flight—once—twice—THRICE ! ” Everard aimed at the bosom, and discharged his pistel. The figure waved its arm in an attitude of scorn; and a loud laugh arose, during which the light, as gradually growing weaker, danced and glimmered upon the apparition of the aged knight, and then disappeared. Everard’s life-blood ran cold to his heart—‘‘ Had he been of human mould,” he thought, “ the bullet must have pierced him—but I have neither will nor power to fight with supernatural beings.” The feeling of oppression was now so strong as to be actu- ally sickening. He groped his way, however, to the fireside, and flung on the embers, which were yet gleaming, a handful of dry fuel. It presently blazed, and afforded him light to see the room in every direction. He looked cautiously, almost timidly, around, and half expected some horrible phantom to become visible, But he saw nothing save the old furniture, the reading desk, and other articles, which had been left in the same state as when Sir Henry Lee departed. He felt an uncontrolable desire, mingled with much repugnance, to look at the portraitWOODSTOCK. 165 of the ancient knight, which the form he had seen so strongly resembled. He hesitated betwixt the opposing feelings, but at length snatched, with desperate resolution, the taper which he had extinguished, and relighted it ere the blaze of the fuel had again died away. He held it up to the ancient portrait of Victor Lee, and gazed on it with eager curiosity, not unmingled with fear. Almost the childish terrors of his earlier days returned, and he thought the severe pale eye of the ancient warrior followed his, and menaced him with its displeasure. And although he quickly argued himself out of such an absurd belief, yet the mixed feelings of his mind were expressed in words that seemed half addressed to the ancient portrait. “ Soul of my mother’s ancestor,” he said, “be it for weal or for woe, by designing men, or by supernatural beings, that these ancient halls are disturbed, I am resolved to leave them on the morrow.” ‘I rejoice to hear it, with all my soul,” said a voice behind him. He turned, saw a tall figure in white, with a sort of turban upon its head, and dropping the candle in the exertion, instantly grappled with it. ‘“ Thou at least are palpable,” he said. “ Palpable ?” answered he whom he grasped so strongly— “ ?Sdeath, methinks you might know this without the risk of choking me; and if you loose me not, 1’ll show you that two can play at the game of wrestling.” “ Roger Wildrake !” said Everard, letting the the cavalier loose, and stepping back. “Roger Wildrake ? ay, truly. Did you take me for Roger Bacon, come to help you to raise the devil ?—for the place smells of sulphur consumedly.” “Tt is the pistol I fired—Did you not hear it?” “Why, yes, it was the first thing waked me—for that night- cap which I pulled on made me sleep like a dormouse—Pshaw, I feel my brains giddy with it yet.” “And wherefore came you not on the instant ?—I never needed help more.” “T came as fast as I could,” answered Wildrake ; “but it was some time ere I got my senses collected, for I was dream-— ing of that cursed field at Naseby—and then the door of my room was shut, and hard to open, till I played the locksmith with my foot.” “ How! it was open when I went to bed,” said Everard. “Tt was locked when I came out of bed, though,” saidene Ss 7 166 WOODSTOCK. Wildrake, “‘and I marvel you heard me not when I forced it open.” ‘““My mind was occupied otherwise,” said Everard. “Well,” said Wildrake, “but what has happened ?—Here am I bolt upright, and ready to fight, if this yawning fit will give me Jeave—Mother Redcap’s mightiest is weaker than I drank last night by a bushel to a barleycorn—I have quaffed the very elixir of malt—Ha—yaw.” “And some opiate besides, I should think,” said Edward. “Very like—very like—less than the pistol-shot would not waken me; even me, who, with an ordinary grace-cup, sleep as lightly as a maiden on the first of May, when she watches for the earliest beam to gather dew. But what are you about to do next?” ‘“ Nothing,” answered Everard. ‘Nothing ?” said Wildrake in surprise. “I speak it,” said Colonel Everard, “ less for your informa- tion, than for that of others who may hear me, that I will leave the Lodge this morning, and, if it is possible, remove the Com- missioners.” “ Hark,” said Wildrake, “do you not hear some noise like the distant sound of the applause of a theatre? The goblins of the place rejoice in your departure.” “I shall leave Woodstock,” said Everard, “to the occupa- tion of my uncle Sir Henry Lee and his family, if they choose to resume it; not that I am frightened into this as a concession to the series of artifices which have been played off on this oc- casion, but solely because such was my intention from the be- ginning. But let me warn,” (he added, raising his voice) “ let me warn the parties concerned in this combination, that though it may pass off successfully on a fool like Desborough, a _ vis- ionary like Harrison, a coward like Bletson ”»——— Here a voice distinctly spoke, as standing near them—“ or a wise, moderate, and resolute person like Colonel Everard.” ‘“ By Heaven, the voice came from the picture,” said Wild- rake, drawing his sword; “I will pink his plaited armor for him.” ‘Offer no violence,” said Everard, startled at the interrup- tion, but resuming with firmness what he was saying—‘ Let those engaged be aware, that however this string of artifices may be immediately successful, it must, when closely looked into, be attended with punishment of all concerned—the total demolition of Woodstock, and the irremediable downfall of the family of Lee. Let all concerned think of this, and desist in time.”WOODSTOCK. 167 He paused, and almost expected a reply, but none such came. “It isa very odd thing,” said Wildrake; “but yaw-ha—my brain cannot compass it just now; it whirls round like a toast in a bowl of muscadine; I must sit down—ha-yaw—and dis- cuss it at leisure—Gramercy, good elbow-chair.” So saying, he threw himself, or rather sank gradually down on a large easy-chair, which had been often pressed by the weight of stout Sir Henry Lee, and in an instant was sound asleep. Everard was far from feeling the same inclination for slumber, yet his mind was relieved of the apprehension of any further visitation that night; for he considered his treaty to evacuate Woodstock as made known to, and accepted in all probability, by those whom the intrusion of the Commissioners had induced to take such singular measures for expelling them. His opinion, which had for a time bent toward a belief in something super- natural in the disturbances, had now returned to the more rational mode of accounting for them by dexterous combina- tion, for which such a mansion as Woodstock afforded so many facilities. He heaped the earth with fuel, lighted the candle, and examining poor Wildrake’s situation, adjusted him as easily in the chair as he could, the cavalier stirring his limbs no more than an infant. His situation went far, in his patron’s opinion, to infer trick and confederacy, for ghosts have no occasion to drug men’s possets. He threw himself on the bed, and while he thought these strange circumstances over, a sweet and low strain of music stole through the chamber, the words “ Good night—good night—good night,” thrice repeated, each time in a softer and more distant tone, seeming to assure him that the goblins and he were at truce, if not at peace, and that he had no more disturbance to expect that night. Hehad scarcely the courage to call out a “ good night ;” for, after all his conviction of the existence of a trick, it was so well performed as to bring with it a feeling of fear, just like what an audience experience during the performance of a tragic scene, which they know to be unreal, and which yet affects their passions by its near approach to nature. Sleep overtook him at last, and left him not till broad daylight on the ensuing morning. et PTO ~ | | ‘ E | | 4 cigSS Sone chars ebdi eat abekhar aiken ee Shs akA SERS Sees WOODSTOCK. CHAPTER SIXTEENTH, And yonder shines Aurora’s harbinger, At whose approach ghosts, wandering here and there, Troop home to churchyard. MIDSUMMER NIGHT’S DREAM. WitH the fresh air and the rising of morning, every feeling of the preceding nighthad passed away from Colonel Everard’s mind, excepting wonder how the effects which he had witnessed could be produced. He examined the whole room, sounding bolt, floor, and wainscot with his knuckles and cane, but was unable to discern any secret passages ; while the door, secured by a strong cross-bolt, and the lock besides, remained as firm as when he had fastened it on the preceding evening. The apparition resembling Victor Lee next called his attention. Ridiculous stories had been often circulated, of this figure, or one exactly resembling it, having been met with by night among the waste apartments and corridors of the old palace ; and Markham Everard had often heard such in his childhood. He was angry to recollect his own deficiency of courage, and the thrill which he felt on the preceding night, when, by con- federacy doubtless, such an object was placed before his eyes. “Surely,” he said, “ this fit of childish folly could not make me miss my aim—more likely that the bullet had been with- drawn clandestinely from the pistol.” He examined that which was undischarged—he found the bullet in it. He investigated the apartment opposite to the point at which he had fired, and, at five feet from the floor in a direct line between the bed-side and the place where the appearances had been seen, a pistol-ball had recently buried itself in the wainscot. He had little doubt, therefore, that he had fired in a just direction; and indeed, to have arrived at the place where it was lodged, the bullet must have passed through the appearance at which he aimed, and proceeded point blank to the wall beyond. This was mysterious, and in- duced him to doubt whether the art of witchcraft or conjuration had not been called in to assist the machinations of those daring conspirators, who, being themselves mortal, might, nevertheless, according to the universal creed of the times, have invoked and obtained assistance from the inhabitants of another world. His next investigation respected the picture of Victor LeeWOODSTOCK. 169 itself. He examined it minutely as he stood on the floor before it, and compared its pale, shadowy, faintly-traced outlines, its faded colors, the stern repose of the eye, and death-like pallid- ness of the countenance, with its different aspect on the preced- ing night, when illuminated by the artificial light which fell full upon it, while it left every other purt of the room in comparative darkness. The features seemed then to have an unnatural glow, while the rising and falling of the flame in the chimney gave the head and limbs something which resembled the appearance of actual motion. Now, seen by day, it was a mere picture of the hard and ancient school of Holbein; last night, it seemed for the moment somethingmore. Determined to get to the bottom of this contrivance if possible, Everard, by the assistance of a table and chair, examined the portrait still more closely, and endeavored to ascertain the existence of any private spring, by which it might be slipt aside,—a contrivance not unfrequent in ancient buildings, which usually abounded with means of access and escape, communicated to none but the lords of the castle, or their immediate confidants. But the panel on which Victor Lee was painted was firmly fixed in the wainscoting of the apartment, of which it made a part, and the Colonel satis- fied himself that it could not have been used for the purpose which he had suspected. He next roused his faithful squire, Wildrake, who, not- withstanding his deep share of the “blessedness of sleep,” had scarce even yet got rid of the effects of the grace-cup of the preceding evening. “It was the reward,” according to his own view of the matter, “ of histemperance; one single draught having made him sleep more late and more sound than a matter of half-a-dozen or from thence to a dozen pulls, would have done, when he was guilty of the enormity of rere-suppers,* and of drinking deep after them.” “Had your temperate draught,” said Everard, “been but a thought more strongly seasoned, Wildrake, thou hadst slept so sound that the last trump only could have waked thee.” ‘And then,’ answered Wildrake, “I should have waked with a headache, Mark; for I see my modest sip has not ex- empted me from that epilogue.—But let us go forth, and see how the night, which we have passed so strangely, has been * Rere-suppers (quasi arriere) belonged to a species of luxury introduced in the jolly days of King James’s extravagance, and continued through the subsequent reign. The supper took place at an early hour, six or seven o’clock at the latest-the rere supper was a postliminary banquet, a “ors d@auvre, which made its appearance at ten or eleven, and served as an apology for prolonging the entertainment till midnight.WOODSTOCK. 170 spent by the rest of them. I suspect they are all right willing to evacuate Woodstock, unless they have either rested better than we, or at least been more lucky in lodgings.” “Tn that case, I will despatch thee down to Joceline’s hut, to negotiate the re-entrance of Sir Henry Lee and his family inio their old ap oartments, where, my interest with the General being joined with the indifferent repute of the place itself, I think they have little chance of being disturbed either by the present, or by any new Commissioners.” “But how are they to defend themselve S against the fiends, my gallant Colonel?” said Wildrake. “Methinks had I an interest in yonder pretty girl, such as thou dost boast, I should be loath to expose her to the terrors of a residence at Wood- stock, where these devils—I be -g their pardon, for I suppose bey hear every word we say these metry goblins—make such gay work £ from twilight till morning.” My dear Wildrake,” said i C Okipbet, “IT, as well as you, lee it sewn that our speech may be overheard; but I care not, and will speak my mind plainly. I trust Sir Henry and Alice are not engaged in this s ily plot ; I cannot reconcile it with the pride of the one, the modes sty of the other, or the good sense of both, that any motive could engage them in so strange a conjunction. But the fiends are all of your own political persuasion, Wildrake, all true-blue cavaliers ; and I am convince o that Sir Henry and Alice Lee, though they be unconnected with them, have not the sli ehtest cause to be apprehensive of their goblin machinations. Besides, Sir Henry and Joceline must know every corner about the place : it will be far more difficult to play off any ghostly machinery upon him than upon strangers. But let us to our toilet, and when water and brush have done their work, we will inquire what is next to be done.” “Nay, that wretched puritan’s earb of mine is hardly worth brushing,” said Wildrake; “and but for this hundredweight of rusty iron, with w — ie hast bedizened me, I look more like a bankrupt Quaker than anything else. But Pi make you as spruce as ever was a canting rogue of your party.’ So saying, and humming at the same time the cavalier tyne,— *** Though for a time we see Whiteh: all With cobwebs h tung around the wall, Yet Heaven sha!] make amends for all, When the King shall enjoy his own again.’ ?— “Thou forgettest who are without,” said Colonel Everard. “ No—I remember who are e within,” replied his friend, “JWOODSTOCK. only sing to my merry goblins, who will like me all the better for it. Tush, man, the devils are my Jonos socios, and when I see them, I will warrant they prove such roaring boys as I knew when I served under Lunford and Goring, fellows with long nails that nothing escaped, bottomless stomachs, that nothing filled—mad_ for ‘pillaging, ranting, drinking, and fighting,— sleeping rough on the trenches, and d ying s stubbornly in their boots. ‘Ah ! hose merry days are e gone. Well, it is the fashion to make a grave face on’t among cavaliers, and specially the parsons that have lost their tithe-pigs ; but I was fitted for the element of the times, and never did or can desire merrier days than I had during that same barbarous, bloody, and unnatural rebellion.” “Thou wert ever a wild sea-bird, Roger, even according to your name; like the gale better than the calm, the boisterous ocean better than the smooth lake, and your rough, wile 1 strug- gle against the wind, than daily food, ease, and quiet.” ‘Pshaw! a fig for your smooth lake, and your old woman to feed me with brewer’s grains, and the poor drake obliged to come swattering wherever she whistles! Everard, I like to feel the wind rustling against my pinions,—now diving, now on the crest of the wave, now in ocean, now in sky—that is the wild- drake’s joy, my grave one! And i in the Civil War so it went with us—down in one county, up in another, beaten to-day, victorious to-morrow—now starving in some barren leaguer— now reveling in a Presbyterian’s pantry—his cellars, his plate- chest, his old judicial thumb-ring, his pretty serving wench, all at command !” “* Hush, friend,” said Everard ; ‘‘ Remember I hold that per- suasion.” “More the pity, Mark, more the pity,” said Wildrake ; “ but as vou say, it is needless talking of it. Let us e’en go and see how your Presbyterian pastor, Mr. Holdenough, 7 nas fared, and whether he has proved more able to foil the foul fiend than have you his disciple and auditor.” ' They left the apartment accordingly, and were overwhelmed with the various incoherent accounts of sentinels and others, all of whom had seen or heard something extraordinary in the course of the night. It is needless to describe particularly the various rumors which each contributed to the common stock, with the greater alacrity that in such cases there seems always to be a sort of disgrace in not having seen or suffered as much as others. The most moderate of the narrators only talked of sounds like the mewing of a cat, or the growling of a dog, especially ) \ — a172 WOODSTOCK. the squeaking of a pig. They heard also as if it had been nails driven and saws used, and the clashing of fetters, and the rust- ling of silk gowns, and the notes of music, and in short all sorts of sounds, which have nothing to do with each other. Others swore they had smelt savors of various kinds, chiefly bitumi- nous, indicating a Satanic derivation; others did not indeed swear, but protested, to visions of men in armor, horses with- out heads, asses with horns, and cows with six legs, not to mention black figures, whose cloven hoofs gave plain informa- tion what realm they belonged to. . But these strongly-attested cases of nocturnal disturbances among the sentinels had been so general as to prevent alarm and succor on any particular point, so that those who were on duty called in vain on the corps-de-garde, who were trembling on their own post; and an alert enemy might have done com- plete execution an the whole garrison. But amid this general alerte, no violence appeared to be meant, and annoyance, not injury, seemed to have been the goblins’ object, excepting in the case of one poor fellow, a trooper, who had followed Harri- son in half his battles, and now was sentinel in that very vesti- bule upon which Everard had recommended them to mount a guard. He had presented his carabine at something which came suddenly upon him, when it was wrested out of his hands, and he himself knocked down with the butt-end of it. His broken head, and the drenched bed of Desborough, upon whom a tub of ditch-water had been emptied during his sleep, were the only pieces of real evidences to attest the disturbances of the night. The reports from Harrison’s department were, as delivered by the grave Master Tomkins, that truly the General had passed the night undisturbed, though there was still on him a deep sleep, and a folding of the hands to slumber; from which Everard argued that the machinators had esteemed Harison’s part of the reckoning sufficiently paid off on the previous eve- ning. He then proceeded to the apartment doubly garrisoned by the worshipful Desborough and the philosophical Bletson. They were both up and dressing themslves; the former open- mouthed in his feelings of fear and suffering. Indeed, no sooner had Everard entered, than the ducked and dismayed Colonel made a dismal complaint of how he had spent the night, and murmured not a little against his worshipful kins- man for imposing a task upon him which inferred so much annoyance. “Could not his Excellency, my kinsman Noll,’ he said,WOODSTOCK. 173 “have given his poor relative and brother-in-law a sop some: where else than out of this Woodstock, which seems to be the devil’s own porridge-pot ? I cannot sup broth with the devil; I have no long spoon—not I: Could he not have quartered me in some quiet corner, and given this haunted place to some of his preachers and prayers, who know the Bible as well as the muster-roll? whereas I know the four hoofs af a clean-going nag, or the points of a team of oxen, better than all the books of Moses. But I will give it over at once and forever ; hopes of earthly gain shall never make me run the risk of being car- ried away bodily by the devil, besides being set upon my head one whole night, and soused with ditch water the next—No, no; I am too wise for that.” Master Bletson had a different part to act. He complained of no personal annoyances; on the contrary, he declared he should have slept as well as ever he did in his life, but for the abominable disturbances around him, of men calling to arms every half-hour, when so much as a cat trotted by one of their posts—He would rather, he said, “ have slept among a whole sabaoth of witches, if such creatures could be found.” Then you think there are no such things as apparitions, Master Bletson? ”’ said Everard. ‘ I used to be sceptical on the subject; but, on my life, to-night has been a strange one.” ‘“ Dreams, dreams, dreams, my simple Colonel,” said Bletson, though his pale face and shaking limbs belied the assumed courage with which he spoke. “ Old Chaucer, sir, hath told us the real moral on’t—He was anold frequenter of the for- est of Woodstock, here ” ‘¢ Chaser?’ said Desborough ; “ some huntsman, belike, by his name. Does he walk like Hearne at Windsor?” “Chaucer,” said Bletson, ‘‘ my dear Desborough, is one of those wonderful fellows, as Colonel Everard knows, who live many a hundred years after they are buried, and whose words haunt our ears after their bones are long mouldered in the dust.” “ Ay, ay! well !’answered Desborough, to whom this descrip- tion of the old poet was unintelligible—* I for one desire his room rather than his company ; one of your conjurors, I warrant. But what says he to the matter?” “ Only a slight spell, which I will take the freedom to re- peat to Colonel Everard,” “ said Bletson ; ‘“ but which would be as bad as Greek to thee, Desborough, Old Geoffrey lays the whole blame of our nocturnal disturbance on superfluity ot humors. Raper hres st aan “MiWOODSTOCK. ‘ Which causen folke to dred in their dreams Of arrowes, and of fire with red gleams, Right as the humor of Melancholy Causeth many a man in sleep to cry For fear of great bulls and bears. black, | And others that black devils will them take,’ ” While he was thus declaiming, Everard observed a book stick ing out from beneath the pillow of the bed lately occupied by the honorable member. “Is that Chaucer?” he said, making to the volume nite | 1 would like to look at the passage’’ ey “ Chaucer?” said Bletson, hastening to interfere + * ne+- i that is Lucretius, my darling Lucretius. I cannot let you see tH it; I have some private marks.” But by this time Everard had the book in his hand. “ Lucre- tius?,”” he said; ‘no, Master Bletson—this is not Lucretius, but a fitter comforter in dread or in danger—Why should you be ashamed of it ? Only, Bletson, instead of resting your head if you can but anchor your heart upon this volume, it may serve you in better stead than Lucretius or Chaucer either.” i ‘““ Why, what book is it?” said Blestson, his pale cheek | coloring with the shame of detection. “Oh! the Bible!” i throwing it down contemptuously; “ some book of my fellow ; \ Gibeon’s; these Jews have been always superstiitous—ever since Juvenal’s. time,thou knowest— > ‘Qualiacunque voles Judzi somnia vendunt, | | He left me the old book for a spell, I. warrant you; for ’tis a ri well-meaning fool.” . ‘‘ He would scarce have left the New Testament as well as . the Qld,” said Everard. “ Come, my dear Bletson, do not be ashamed of the wisest thing you ever did. in your life, suppos- Hy ing you took your Bible in an hour of apprehension, with a , | view to profit by the contents.” Bletson’s vanity was so much galled that it overcame his constitutional cowardice. His little thin fingers quivered for eagerness, his neck and cheeks were as red as scarlet, and his articulation was as thick and vehement as—in short, as if he had been no philosopher. “Master Everard,” he said, “ you are a man of the sword, bah sir; and, sir, you seem to suppose yourself entitled to say what- ever comes into your mind with respect to civilians, sir. But I would have you remember, sir, that there are bounds beyond which human patience may be urged, sir—and jests which noWOODSTOCK. 75 man of honor will endure, sir—and, therefore, I expect an apol- ogy for your present language, Colonel Everard, and this un- mannerly jesting, sir—or you may chance to hear from me in a way that will not please you.” Everard could not help smiling at this explosion of valor, engendered by irritated self-love. ‘Look you, Master Bletson,” he said, “I have been a sol- dier, that is true, but I was never a bloody-minded one; and, as a Christian, [ am unwilling to enlarge the kingdom of dark- ness by sending a new vassal thither before his time. If Heaven gives you time to repent, I see no reason why my hand should deprive you of it, which, were we to have a ren- contre, would be your fate in the thrust of a sword, or the pull- ing of a trigger—I therefore prefer to apologize; and I call Desborough, if he has recovered his wits, to bear evidence that I do apologize for having suspected you, who are com- pletely the slave of your own vanity, of any tendency, however slight, toward grace or good sense. And I further apologize for the time that I have wasted in endeavoring to wash an Ethiopian white, or in recommending rational inquiries to a self-willed atheist.” Bletson, overjoyed at the turn the matter had taken—for the defiance was scarce out of his mouth ere he began to trem- ble for the consequences—answered with great eagerness and servility of manner,—‘“ Nay, dearest Colonel, say no more of it—an apology is all that is necessary among men of honor— it neither leaves dishonor with him who asks it, nor infers degradation on him who makes it.” ‘Not such an apology as I have made, I trust,” said the Colonel. “No, no—not in the least,” answered Bletson—“ one apol- ogy serves me just as well as another, and Desborough will bear witness you have made one, and that is all there can be said on the subject.” ‘Master Desborough and you,” rejoined the Colonel, “ will take care how the matter is reported, I dare say; and I only recommend to both, that, if mentioned at all, it may be told correctly.” “ Nay, nay, we will not mention it at all,” said Bletson ; “ we will forget it from this moment. Only, never suppose me capable of superstitious weakness. Had I been afraid of an apparent and real danger—why such fear is natural to man— and I will not deny that the mood of mind may have happened to me as well as others. But to be thought capable of resort- ing to spells, and sleeping with books under my pillow to se- »? Nae SeenNoe ehieee Seal acath bask y amaknroents aes Me iene 176 WOODSTOCK. cure myself against ghosts,—on my word, it was enough to provoke one to quarrel, for the moment, with his very best friend.—And now, Colonel, what is to be done, and how is our duty to be executed at this accursed place? If I should get such a wetting as Desborough’s, why, I should die of catarrh, though you see it hurts him no more than a bucket of water thrown over a post-horse. You are; I presume, a brother in our commission,—how are you of opinion we should proceed ?” “ Why, in good time here comes Harrison,” said Everard, “and I will lay my commission from the Lord-General before you all; which, as you see, Colonel Desborough, commands you to desist from acting on your present authority, and inti- mates his pleasure accordingly, that you withdraw from this place,” Desborough took the paper and examined the signature.— “Tt is Noll’s signature sure enough,” said he, dropping his under jaw; “ only, every time of late he has made the Oliver as large as a giant, while the Cromwe/l creeps after like a dwarf, as if the surname were like to disappear one of these days altogether. But is his Excellency, our kinsman, Noll Cromwell (since he has the surname yet) so unreasonable as to think his relations and friends are to be set upon their heads till they have the crick in their neck—drenched as if they had been plunged in a horse-pond—frightened, day and night, by all sort of devils, witches, and fairies, and get not a penny of smart-money? Adzooks (forgive me for swearing), if that’s the case I had better home to my farm, and mind team and herd, than dangle after such a thankless person, though I Aave wived his sister. She was poor enough when I took her, for high as Noll holds his head now.” ‘“‘Tt is not my purpose,” said Bletson, “ to stir debate in this honorable meeting; and no one will doubt the veneration and attachment which I bear to our noble General, whom the current of events, and his own matchless qualities of courage and con- stancy, have raised so high in these deplorable days.—If I were to term him a direct and immediate emanation of the Azzmus Mundi itselfi—something which Nature had produced in her proudest hour, while exerting herself, as is her law, for the preservation of the creatures to whom she has given existence —I should scarce exhaust the ideas which I entertain of him. Always protesting, that I am by no means to be held as admit- ting, but merely as granting for the sake of argument, the pos- sible existence of that species of emanation, or exhalation, from the Animus Mundi, of which I have made mention. I appeal to you, Colonel Desborough, who are his Excellency’s relationWOODSTOCK. 177 —to you, Colonel Everard, who hold the dearer title of his friend, whether I have overrated my zeal in his behalf ? ” Everard bowed at this pause, but Desborough gave a more complete authentication. “ Nay, I can bear witness to that. I have seen when you were willing to tie his points or brush his cloak, or the like—and to be treated thus ungratefully—and gudgeoned of the opportunities which had been given you ”’—— = Tt is not for that,” said Bletson, waving his hand gracefully. “You do me wrong, Master Desborough—you do indeed, kind sir—although I know you meant it not—No, sir,—no partial consideration of private interest prevailed on me to undertake this charge. It was conferred on me by the Parliament of England, in whose name this war commenced, and by the Council of State, who are the conservators of England’s liberty. And the chance and serene hope of serving the country, the confidence that I—and you, Master Desborough—and you, worthy General Harrison—superior, as I am, to all selfish considerations—to which Iam sure you also, good Colonel Everard, would be superior, had you been named in this Commission, as I would to Heaven you had—I say, the hope of serving the country, with the aid of such respectable associates, one and all of them — as well as you, Colonel Everard, supposing you to have been of the number, induced me to accept of this opportunity, whereby I might, gratuitously, with your assistance, render so much advantage to our dear mother the Commonwealth of England.—Such was my hope—my trust—my confidence. And now comes my Lord-General’s warrant to dissolve the authority by which we are entitled to act. Gentlemen, I ask this honorable meeting (with all respect to his Excellency), whether his com- mission be paramount to that from which he himself directly holds Azs commission ? No one will say so. I ask whether he has climbed into the seat Irom which the late Man descended, or hath a great seal, or means to proceed by prerogative in such a case ? I cannot see reason to believe it, and therefore I must resist such doctrine. I am in your judgment, my brave and honorable colleagues ; but, touching my own poor opinion, I feel myself under the unhappy necessity of proceeding in our commission, as if the interruption had not taken place ; with this addition, that the Board of Sequestrators should sit, by day, at this same Lodge of Woodstock, but that, to reconcile the minds of weak brethren, who may be afflicted by supersti- tious rumors, as well as to avoid any practice on our persons by the malignants, who, Iam convinced, are busy in this neigh- borhood, we should remove our sittings after sunset to the George Inn, in the neighboring borough.” S Se ee at ow Gos Sere aes PT % \178 WOODSTOCK. “Good Master Bletson,” replied Colonel Everard, “ it is not for me to reply to you ; but you may know in what characters this army of England and their General write their authority. I fear me the annotation on this precept of the General, will be expressed by the march of a troop of horse from Oxford to see it executed. I believe there are orders out for that effects and you know, by late experience, that the soldier will ebey his General equally against King and Parliament.” “That obedience is conditional,” said Harrison, starting fiercely up. “ Know’st thou not, Markham Everard, that [ have followed the man Cromwell as close as the bull-dog follows his master ?—and so I will yet ;—but I am no spaniel, either to be beaten, or to have the food I have earned snatched from me, as if I were a vile cur, whose wages are a whipping, and free leave to wear my own skin. I looked, amongst the three of us, that we might honestly, and piously, and with advantage to the Commonwealth, have gained out of this commission threé;-or’ it may be five thousand pounds. And does Cromwell imagine I will part with it for a rough word ? No man goeth a warfare on his own charges. He that serves the altar, must live by the altar—and the saints must have means to provide them with good harness and fresh horses against the unsealing and the pouring forth. Does Cromwell think I am so much of a tame tiger as to permit him to rend from meat pleasure the miserable dole he hath thrown me? Of a surety I will resist ; and the men who are here, being chiefly of my own regiment—men who wait and who expect, with lamps burning and loins girded, and each one his weapon bound upon his thigh, will aid me to make this house good against every assault—ay, even against Crom- vell himself, until the latter coming—Selah! Selah!” “And IJ,” said Desborough, “ will levy troo your out-quarters, not choosing at present to cl garrison 7? === ps and protect ose myself up in “And I,” said Bletson, “will do my part, and hie me to town and lay the matter before Parl for that effect.” Everard was little moved by all these threats. The only formidable one, indeed, was that of Harrison, whose enthusiasm, joined with his courage, and obstinacy, and character among the fanatics of his own principles, made him a dangerous enemy. Before trying any arguments with the refractory Major-General, Everard endeavored to moderate his feelings, and threw some- thing in about the late disturbances. “Talk not to me of supernatural disturbances, young man— talk not to me of enemies in the body or out of the body. Am lament, arising in my placeWOODSTOCK. 179 I not the champion chosen and commissioned to encounter and to Ps the Great Dragon, and the Beast which cometh out of the sea? Am I not to command the left wing, and two regi- ments of the centre, when the saints shall encounter with the countless legions of Gog and Magog? I tell thee that my name is written on the sea of glass “mingled with fire, and that I will keep this place of W oodstock against all mortal men, and against all devils, whether in field or chamber, in the forest or in the meac low, even till the Saints reign in the fulness of their glory.’ Everard saw it was then time to produce two or three lines under Cromwell’s hand, which he had received from the General, subseqt ently to the communication through Wildrake. The information t hey contained was calculated to allay the dis- appoint ment of the Commissioners. This document assigned as the reason of eRicevuline the Woodstock Commission, that he should probably propose to the Parliament to require the assistance of General Harrison, Colonel Desborough, and Mas- ter Bletson, the honorable member of Littlefaith, in a much greater matter, namely, the disposing of the royal property, and disparking of the King’s forest at Windsor. So soon as this idea was started, all parties picked up their ears; and their drooping, and gloomy, and vindictive looks began to give place to courteous smiles, and to a cheerfulness, which laughed in their eyes, and turned their mustaches upward. Colonel Desborough acquitted his right honorable and excellent cousin and kinsman of all species of unkindness ; Master Bletson discovered, that the interest of the state was trebly concerned in the good administration of Windsor more than in that of Woodstock. As for Harrison, he exclaimed, without disguise or hesitation, that the gleaning of the grapes of Windsor was better than the vintage of Woodstock. Thus speaking, the glance of his dark eye expressed as much triumph in the proposed earthly advantage, as if it had not been, accord- ing to his vain persuasion, to be shortly exchanged for his share in the general reign of the Millennium. His delight, in short, resembled the joy of an eagle, who preys upon a lamb in the evening with not less relish, because she descries in the dis- tant landscape a hundred thousand men about to join the battle with daybreak, and to give her an endless feast on the hearts and lifeblood of the valiant. Yet though all agreed that they would be obedient to the General’s pleasure in this matter, Bletson proposed, as a pre- cautionary measure, in which all agreed, that they should take up their abode for some time in the town of Woodstock, to wait180 WOODSTOCK. for their new commissions respecting Windsor ; and this upon the prudential consideration, that it was best not to slip one knot until another was first tied. Each commissioner, therefore, wrote to Oliver individually, stating, in his own way, the depth and height, length and breadth, of his attachment to him. Each expressed himself resolved to obey the General’s injunctions to the uttermost ; but with the same scrupulous devotion to the Parliament, each found himself ata loss how to lay down the commission intrusted to them by that body, and therefore felt bound in conscience to take up his residence at the borough of Woodstock, that he might not seem to abandon the charge committed to them, until they should be called to administrate the weightier matter of Windsor, to which they expressed their willingness instantly to devote themselves, according to his Excellency’s pleasure. This was the general style of their letters, varied by the characteristic flourishes of the writers. Desborough, for ex- ample, said something about the religious duty of providing for one’s own household, only he blundered the text. Bletson wrote long and big words about the political obligation incum- bent on every member of the community, on every person, to sacrifice his time and talents to the service of his country ; while Harrison talked of the littleness of present affairs, in comparison of the approaching tremendous change of all things beneath the sun. But although the garnishing of the various epistles was different, the result came to the same, that they were determined at least to keep sight of Woodstock, until they were well assured of some better and more profitable com- mission. Everard also wrote a letter in the most grateful terms to Cromwell, which would probably have been less warm had he known more distinctly than his follower chose to tell him, the expectation under which the wily’General had granted his re- quest. He acquainted his Excellency with his purpose of con- tinuing at Woodstock, partly to assure himself of the motions of the three commissioners, and to watch whether they did not again enter upon the execution of the trust, which they had for the present renounced,—and partly to see that some extraordi- nary circumstances, which had taken place in the Lodge, and which would doubtless transpire, were not followed by any ex- plosion to the disturbance of the public peace. He knew (as he expressed himself) that his Excellency was so much the friend of order, that he would rather disturbances or insurrec- tions were prevented than punished: and he conjured the General to repose confidence in his exertions for the publicWOODSTOCK. 181 service by every mode within his power; not aware, it will be observed, in what peculiar sense his general pledge might be interpreted. These letters, being made up into a packet, were forwarded to Windsor by a trooper, detached on that errand. CHAPTER SEVENTEENTH. We do that in our zeal, Our calmer moments are afraid to answer. ANONYMOUS, WHILE the Commissioners were preparing to remove them- selves from the Lodge to the inn at the borough of Woodstock, with all that state and bustle which attend the movements of great persons, and especially of such to whom greatness is not entirely familiar, Everard held some colloquy with the Presby- terian clergyman, Master Holdenough, who had issued from the apartment which he had occupied, as it were in defiance of the spirits by whom the mansion was supposed to be disturbed, and whose pale cheek, and pensive brow, gave token that he had not passed the night more comfortably than the other inmates of the Lodge of Woodstock. Colonel Everard, having offered to procure the reverend gentleman some refreshment, received this reply :—“ This day shall I not taste food, saving that which we are assured of as sufficient for our sustenance, where it is promised that our bread shall be given us, and our water shall be sure. Not that I fast, in the papistical opinion that it adds to those merits, which are but an accumulation of filthy rags ; but because I hold it needful that no grosser sustenance, should this day cloud my understanding, or render less pure and vivid the thanks I owe to Heaven for a most wonderful preservation.” “Master Holdenough,” said Everard, “you are, I know, both a good man and a bold one, and I saw you last night cour- ageously go upon your sacred duty, when soldiers, and tried ones, seemed considerably alarmed.” “Too courageous—too venturous,’’ was Master Holden- ough’s reply, the boldness of whose aspect seemed completely to have died away. ‘“* We are frail creatures, Master Everard, and frailest when we think ourselves strongest. Oh, Colonel Everard,” he added, after a pause, and as if the confidence was partly involuntary, “I have seen that which I shall never survive ! ” Mebowere tre rs etl Nye R GT Scere aes WOODSTOCK: “You surprise me, reverend sir,” said Everard ;—“ may I] request you will speak more plainly ? Ihave heard some stories of this wild night, nay, have witnessed strange things myself ; but, methinks, I would be much interested in knowing the na- ture of your disturbance.” “Sir,” said the clergyman, “ you are a discreet gentleman ; and though I would not willingly that these heretics, schisma- tics, Brownists, Muggletonians, Anabaptists, and so forth, had such an opportunity of triumph, as my defeat in this matter would have afforded them, yet with you, who have been ever a faithful follower of our Church, and are pledged to the good cause by the great National League and Covenant, surely I would be more open. Sit we down, therefore, and let me call for a glass of pure water, for as yet I feel some bodily falter- ing; though, I thank Heaven, I am in mind resolute and com- posed asa merely mortal man may after such a vision.—They say, worthy Colonel, that looking on such things foretells, or causes, speedy death—I know not if it be true; but if so, I only depart like the tired sentinel when his officer releases him from his post; and glad shall I be to close these wearied eyes against the sight, and shut these harassed ears against the croaking, as of frogs, of Antinomiansj’and Pelagians, and So- cinians, and Arminians, and Arians, and Nullifidians, which have come up into our England, like those filthy reptiles into the house of Pharaoh.” Here one of the servants, who had been summoned, en- tered with a cup of water, gazing at the same time in the face of the clergyman, as if his stupid gray eyes were endeavoring to read what tragic tale was written on his brow; and shaking his empty skull as he left the room, with the air of one who was proud of having discovered that all was not exactly right, though he could not so well guess what was wrong. Colonel Everard invited the good man to take some re- freshment more genial than the pure element, but he declined: ‘I am in some sort a champion,” he said; “and though I have been foiled in the late controversy with the Enemy, still I have my trumpet to give the alarm, and my sharp sword to smite withal; therefore, like the Nazarites of old, I will eat nothing that cometh of the vine, neither drink wine nor strong drink, until these my days of combat shall have passed away.” Kindly and respectfully the Colonel anew pressed Master Holdenough to communicate the events that had befallen him on the preceding night; and the good clergyman proceeded as follows, with that little characteristical touch of vanity in his narrative, which naturally arose out of the part he had playedWOODSTOCK. 183 in the world, and the influence which he had exercised over the minds of others. “I was a young man at the University of Cambridge,” he said, “when I was particularly bound in friend- ship to a fellow-student, perhaps because we were esteemed (though it is vain to mention it) the most hopeful scholars at our college; and so equally advanced, that it was difficult, perhaps, to say which was the greater proficient in his studies, Only our tutor, Master Purefoy, used to say, that if my comrade had the advantage of me in gifts, I had the better of him in grace ; for he was attached to the profane learning of the clas- sics, always unprofitable, often impious and impure; and I had light enough to turn my studies into the sacred tongues. Also we differed in our opinions touching the Church of England, for he held Arminian opinions, with Laud, and those who would connect our ecclesiastical establishment with the civil, and make the Church dependent on the breath of an earthly man. In fine, he favored Prelacy both in essentials and ceremonial; and although we parted with tears and embraces, it was to follow very different courses. He obtained a living, and became a great controversial writer in behalf of the Bishops and of the Court. I also, as is well known to you, to the best of my poor abilities, sharpened my pen in the cause of the poor oppressed people, whose tender consciences rejected the rites and cere- monies more befitting a papistical than a reformed Church, and which, according to the blinded policy of the Court, were enforced by pains. and penalties. Then came the Civil War, and I—called thereunto by my conscience, and nothing fear- ing or suspecting what miserable consequences have chanced through the rise of these Independents—consented to lend my countenance and labor to the great work, by becoming chap- fain to Colonel Harrison’s regiment. Not that I mingled with carnal weapons in the field—which Heaven forbid that a min- ister of the altar should—but I preached, exhorted, and, in time of need, was a surgeon, as well to the wounds of the body as of the soul. Now, it fell, toward the end of the war, that a party of malignants had seized on a strong house in the shire of Shrewsbury, situated on a small island, advanced into a lake, and accessible only by a small and narrow causeway. From thence they made excursions, and vexed the country; and high time it was to suppress them, so that a part of our regiment went to reduce them; and I was requested to go, for they were few in number to take in so strong a place, and the Colonel judged that my exhortations would make them do valiantly. And so, contrary to my wont, I went forth with them, even to the field, where there was valiantNt Tw ee ee ee ~= oz ae 184 WOODSTOCK. fighting on both sides. Nevertheless, the malignants shooting their wall-pieces at us, had so much the advantage, that, after bursting their gates witha salvo of our cannon, Colonel Har- rison ordered his men to advance on the causeway, and try to carry the place by storm. Natheless, although our men did valiantly, advancing in good order, yet being galled on every side by the fire, they at length fell into disorder, and were re- treating with much loss, Harrison himself valiantly bringing up the rear, and defending them as he could against the enemy, who sallied forth in pursuit of them, to-smite them hip and thigh. Now, Colonel Everard, I am a man of quick and vehement temper by nature, though better teaching than the old law hath made me mild and patient as you now see me. I could not bear to see our Israelites flying before the Philistines, so I rushed upon the causeway, with the Bible in one hand, and a halberd, which I had caught up, in the other, and turned back the foremost fugitives, by threatening to strike them down, pointing out to them at the same time a priest in his cassock, as they call it, who was among the malignants, and asking them whether they would not do as much fora true servant of Heaven, as the uncircumcised would for a priest of Baal. My words and strokes prevailed; they turned at once, and shouting out, Down with Baal and his worshipers! they charged the malig- nants so unexpectedly home, that they not only drove them back into their house of garrison, but entered it with them, as the phrase is, pell-mell. I also was there, partly hurried on by the crowd, partly to prevail on our enraged soldiers to give quarters ; for it grieved my heart to see Christians and Englishmen hashed down with swords and gunstocks, like curs in the street, when there is an alarm of mad dogs. In this way, the soldiers fight- ing and slaughtering, and I calling to them to stay their hand, we gained the very roof of the building, which was in part leaded, and to which, as a last tower of refuge, those of the cavaliers, who yet escaped, had retired. I was myself, ] may say, forced up the narrow winding staircase by our soldiers, who rushed on like dogs of chase upon their prey; and when extri- cated from the passage, I found myself in the midst of a horrid scene. The scattered defenders were, some resisting with the fury of despair; some on their knees, imploring for compas- sion in words and tones to break a man’s heart when he thinks on them; some were Calling on God for mercy ; and it was time, for man had none. They were stricken down, thrust through, flung from the battlements into the lake; and the wild cries of the victors, mingled with groans, shrieks, and clamors, of the vanquished, made a sound so horrible, that only death can eraseWOODSTOCK. 133 it from my memory. And the men who butchered their fellow- creatures thus, were neither pagans from distant savage lands, nor ruffans, the refuse and offscourings of our own people. They were in calm blood reasonable, nay, religious men, main- taining a fair repute, both heavenward and earthward. Oh Master Everard, your trade of war should be feared and avoided, since it converts such men into wolves toward their fellow- creatures 12 “Tt is a stern necessity,” said Everard, looking down, “ and as such alone is justifiable. But proceed, reverend sir; I see not how this storm, an incident but e’en too frequent on both sides during the late war, connects with the affair of last might.” ‘You shall hear anon,” said Mr. Holdenough; then paused as one who makes an effort to compose himself before continu- ing a relation, the tenor of which agitated him with much violence.—“ In this infernal tumult,” he resumed,—“ for surely nothing on earth could so much resemble hell, as when men go thus loose in mortal malice on their fellow-creatures,—I saw the same priest whom I had distinguished on the causeway, with one or two other malignants, pressed into a corner by the assailants, and defending themselves to the last, as those who had no hope.—I saw him—I knew him—Oh, Colone Everard !” He grasped Everard’s hand with his own left hand, and pressed the palm of his right te his face and forehead, sobbing aloud. “Tt was your college companion?” said Everard, anticipat: ing the catastrophy. “Mine ancient—mine only friend—with whom I had spent the happy days of youth !—I rushed forward—I struggled—l ae But my eagerness left me neither voice nor lan- guage—all was drowned in the wretched cry which I had my a raised—Down with the priest of Baal—Slay Mattan— slay him were he between the altars !—Forced over the battle- ments, but struggling for life, I could see him cling to one of those projections which were formed to carry the water from the leads, but they hacked at his arms and hands. I heard the heavy fall into 1 the bottomless abyss below. Excuse me—I cannot go on.’ “He may have escaped.” “Oh! no, no, no—the tower was four stories in height. Even those who threw themselves into the lake from the lower windows, to escape by swimming, had no safety ; for mounted troopers on the shore caught the same bloodthirsty humor ne Pree ern ESS 7 iQR TA aneminanmmtr ais nase eee seers ans 136 WOODSTOCK. which had seized the ae party, galloped around the margin of the lake, and shot those who were struggling for life in the water, or cut them down as they strove to get to land. They were all cut off and destroyed. = On may the ‘blood shed on that day remain silent !—Oh! that the earth may receive it in her recesses!—Oh! that it may be mingled forever with the dark waters of that lake, so that it may never cry for vengeance against those w need anger was fierce, and who slaughtered in their wrath !—And, oh! may the erring man be forgiven who came into their assembly, and lent ie voice to encourage their cruelty !—Oh ! Albany, my brother, my brother, I have lamented for thee even as David for Jonathan’ eer The good man sobbed a loud, and so much did Colonel Everard sympathize with his emotions, that he forbore to press him upon the subject of his own curiosity until the full tide of remorseful passion had for the time abated. It w as, however, fierce and agitating, the more so, per rhaps, that indulgence in strong mental feeling of any kind was foreign to the severe and ascetic character of ‘the man, and was therefore the more over- powering when it had at once surmounted all restraints. Large tears flowed down the tre embling features of his thin and usually stern, or at least austere countenance ; he eagerly returned the compression of Everard’s hand, as if thankful for the sympathy which the caress implied. Presently after, Master Holdenough wiped his eyes, with- drew his hand gently from that of Ever rard, shaking it ‘kindly as they parted, and proceeded with more composure: “ Forgive me this burst of passionate feeling, worthy Colonel. I am con- scious it little becomes a man of my cloth, who should be the bearer of consolation to others, to give way in mine own person to an extremity of grief, weak at least. if indeed it is not sinful ; for what are me, that we should weep and murmur touching that which is permitted? But Albany was to me as a brother. The happiest days of my life, ere my call to mingle myself in the strife of the land had awakened me to my duties, were spent in his company. I—but I will make the rest of my story short.—‘ Here he drew his chair close to that of E ‘verard, and spoke in asolemn and mysterious tone of voice, almost lowered to a whisper—‘ I saw him last night.” “Saw him—saw whom?” said Eve rard. ‘Can you mean the person whom” ‘“ Whom I saw so ruthlessly slaughtered,” said the clergy- man—* My ancient college f1 riend—Josepl 1 Albany. . Note B, Dr. Michael Hudson.HMOLDENOUGH RALLYING THE PARLIAMENTARY SOLDIERS. ERE ‘a i 4 i i A iWOODSTOCK. 187 ‘““Master Holdenough, your cloth and your characte: alike must prevent your jesting on such a subject as this.” ‘“ Jesting!”’ answered Holdenough ; “ I would as soon jest on my deathbed—as soon jest upon the Bible.” “But you must have been deceived,” answered Everard, hastily ; ‘‘ this tragical story necessarily often returns to your mind, and in moments when the imagination overcomes the evidence of the outward senses, your fancy must have presented to you an unreal appearance. Nothing more lkely, when the mind is on ae stretch after something supernatural, than that the imagination should supply the place with a chimera, while the over ated feelings render it difficult to dispel the delu- sion.” “Colonel Everard,” replied Holdenough, with austerity, ‘in discharge of my duty I must not fear the face of man; and, therefore, I tell you plainly, as I have done before with more observance, that when you bring your carna! learning and judgment, as it is but too much your nature to do, to investigate the hidden things of another world, you might as well measure with the palm of your hand the waters of the Isis. Indeed, good sir, youerrin this, and give men too much pretence to confound your honorable name with witch-advocates, free- thinkers, and atheists, even with such as this man Bletson, who, if the discipline of the church had its hand stre sngthened, as it was in the beginning of the great conflict, would have been long ere now cast out of the pale, and delivered over to the punishment of the flesh, that his spirit might, if possible, be yet saved.” “ You mistake, Master Holdenough,” said Colonel Everard ; “1 do not deny the existence of such preternatural visitations, because I cannot, and dare not, raise the voice of my own opinion against the testimony of ages, supported by such learned men as yourself, Nevertheless, though I grant the possibility of such things, I have scarce yet heard of an instance in my days so well fortified by evidence, that I could at once and dis- tinctly say, ‘This must have h appened by supernatural agency, and not otherwise.’ ” ‘‘ Hear, then, what I have to a ’? said the divine, “ on the faith of a man, a Christian, and, what is more, a servant of our Holy Church: and, therefore, though unworthy, an elder and a teacher among Christians. Thad taken my post yester even- ing in the half-furnished apaMens, wherein hangs a huge mirror, which might have served Goliath of Gath to have ad- mired himself in, when aoiten from head to foot in his brazen armor. I the rather chose this place, because they informed x JeDa ST errs at ae ae ae 188 WOODSTOCK. me it was the nearest habitable room to the gallery in which they say you had been yourself assailed that evening by the Evil One.—Was it so, I pray you?” “By some one with no good intentions I was assailed in that apartment. So far” said Colonel Everard, “you were correctly informed.” ‘Well, I chose my post as well as I might, even as a re- solved general approaches his camp, and casts up his mound as nearly as he can to the besieged city. And, of a truth, Colonel Everard, if I felt some sensation of bodilyfear—for even Elias, and the prophets, who commanded the elements, had a portion in our frail nature, much more such a poor sinful being as myself—yet was my hope and my courage high; and I thought of the texts which I might use, not in the wicked sense of periapts, or spells, as the blinded papists employ them, together with the sign of the cross, and other fruitless forms, but as nourishing and supporting that true trust and confidence in the blessed promises, being the true shield of faith wherewith the fiery darts of Satan may be withstood and quenched. And thus armed and prepared, I sat me down to read, at the same time to write, that I might compel my mind to attend to those subjects which became the situation in which I was placed, as preventing any unlicensed excursion of the fancy, and leaving no room for my imagination to brood over idle fears. So I methodized, and wrote down what I thought meet for the time, and peradventure some hungry souls may yet profit by the food which I then prepared.” ‘‘Tt was wisely and worthily done, good and reverend sir,” replied Colonel Everard. ‘I pray you to proceed.” “While I was thus employed, sir, and had been upon the matter for about three hours, not yielding to weariness, a strange thrilling came over my senses, and the large and old- fashioned apartment seemed to wax larger, more gloomy, and more cavernous, while the air of the night grew more cold and chill. JI know not if it was that the fire began to decay, or whether there cometh before such things as were then about ta happen, a breath and atmosphere, as it were, of terror, as Job saith in a well-known passage, ‘ Fear came upon me, and trem- bling, which made my bones to shake;’ and there was a tingling noise in my ears, and a dizziness in my brain, so that I felt like those who call for aid when there is no danger, and was even prompted to flee, when I saw no one to pursue. It was then that something seemed to pass behind me, casting a reflection on the great mirror before which I had placed my writing-table, and which I saw by assistance of the large stand-WOODSTOCK. ing light which was then in front of the glass. And I looked up, and saw in the glass distinctly the appearance of a man— as sure as these words issue from my mouth, it was no other than the same Joseph Albany—the companion of my youth— he whom I had seen precipitated down the battlements of Clidesthrough Castle into the deep lake below !”’ “What did you do?” “It suddenly rushed on my mind,” said the divine, “that the stoical philosopher Athenodorus had eluded the horrors of such a vision by patiently pursuing his studies; and it shot at the same time across my mind, that I, a Christian divine, and a Steward of the Mysteries, had less reason to fear evil, and better matter on which to employ my thoughts, than was pos- sessed by a Heathen, who was blinded even by his own wisdom. So, instead of betraying any alarm, or even turning my head around, I pursued my writing, but with a beating heart, I admit, and with a throbbing hand.” “Tf you could write at all,” said the Colonel, “ with such an impression on your mind, you may take the head of the English army for dauntless resolution.” “Our courage is not our own, Colonel,” said the divine, “and not as ours should it be vaunted of. And again, when you speak of this strange vision as an impression on my fancy, and not a reality obvious to my senses, let me tell you once more, your worldly wisdom is but foolishness touching the things that are not worldly.” “Did you not look again upon the mirror?” said the Colonel. “T did, when I had copied out the comfortable text, ‘Thou shalt tread down Satan under thy feet.’ ” ‘‘ And what did you then see?” “The reflection of the same Joseph Albany,” said Hold- enough, “passing slowly as from behind my chair—the same in member and lineament that I had known him in his youth, ex- cepting that his cheek had the marks of the more advanced age at which he died, and was very pale.” “What did you then?” “ IT turned from the glass, and plainly saw the figure which had made the reflection in the mirror retreating toward the door, not fast, nor slow, but with a gliding steady pace. It turned again when near the door, and again showed me its pale, ehastly countenance, before it disappeared. But how it left the room, whether by the door, or otherwise, my spirits were too much hurried to remark exactly ; nor have I been able, by any effort of recollection, distinctly to remember.”190 WOODSTOCK. This is a strange, and, as coming from you, a most excel- lently well-attested apparition,” answered Everard. “ And yet, Master Holdenough, if the other world has been actually dis- played, as you apprehend, and I will not dispute the possibility, assure yourself there are also wicked men concerned in these machinations. I myself have undergone some rencontres with visitants who possessed _ bodily strength, and wore, I am sure, earthly weapons.” “Oh! doubtless, doubtless,” replied Master Holdenough ; “ Beelzebub loves to charge with horse and foot mingled, as was the fashion of the old Scottish general, Davie Leslie. He has his devils in the body as well as his devils disembodied, and uses the one to support and back the other.” “ It may be as you say, reverend sir,” answered the Colonel. —“ But what do you advise in this case? ” “For that I must consult with my brethren,’ said the divine; ‘and if there be but left in our borders five ministers of the true kirk, we will charge Satan in full body, and you shall see whether we have not power over him to resist till he shall flee from us. these strange and But failing that ghostly armament against unearthly enemies, truly I would recommend, that as a house of witchcraft and abomination, this polluted den of ancien. tyranny and prostitution should be totally con- sumed by fire, lest Satan, establishing his head-quarters so much to his mind, should find a garrison and a fastness from which he might sally forth to infest the whole neighborhood. Certain it is, that I would recommend to no Christian soul to inhabit the mansion; and, if deserted, it would become a place for wizards to play their pranks, and witches to establish their Sabbath, and those who, like Demas. go about after the wealth of this world, seeking for gold and silver, to practice spells and charms to the prejudice of the souls of the covetous. Trust me, therefore, it were better that it were spoiled and broken down, not leaving one stone upon another.” “I say nay to that, my good friend,” said the Colonel | “for the Lord-General hath permitted, by his license, my mother’s brother, Sir Henry Lee, and his family, to return into the house of his fathers, being indeed the only roof under which he hath any chance of obtaining shelter for his gray hairs.” “And was this done by your advice, Markham Everard ? ” said the divine, austerely, “ Certainly it was,” returned the Colonel.—* And wherefore should I not exert mine influence to obtain a place of refuge for the brother of my mother?” “ Now, us sure as thy soul liveth,’”’ answered the Presbyter,WOODSTOCK. 191 “T had believed this from no tongue but thine own. ‘Tell me, was it not this very Sir Henry Lee, who, by the force of his buffcoats and his green-jerkins, enforced the papist Laud’s order to remove the altar to the eastern end of the church at Wood- stock ?—and did not he swear by his beard, that he would hang in the very street of Woodstock whoever should deny to drink the King’s health ?—and is not his hand red with the blood of the saints ?—and hath there been a ruffler in the field for pre- lacy and high prerogative more unmitigable or fiercer ? ” ‘“ All this may have been as you say, good Master Hold- enough,” answered the Colonel ; “but my uncle is now old and feeble, and hath scarce a single follower remaining, and his daughter is a being whom to look upon would make the sternest weep for pity; a being who’ ““ Who is de ne to Everard,” said Holdenough, “ than his good name, his faith 1 to his friends, his ee to his religion ;— this is no time to speak with sugared lip The paths in which you tread are dangerous. You are sHnvde to raise the papisti- cal candlestick which He: aven in its justice remov ed out of its place—to bring back to this ca ill of sorceries those very sinners who are bewitched wit us the I will not permit the land to be abused by their witchcrafts th ey shall not come hither.” He spoke this with vehe smence, and striking his stick against the ground ; the Colonel, very much dissat Ge began to ex- press himself haughtily in return. “ You ad better consider your power to acc¢ mplish your threats, a tee Holdenough,” he said, ‘“‘ before you urge them so peremptorily.’ And have I not the power to bind and to loose ?”’ said the clergyman. “Tt is a power little available, save over those of your own Church,” said Everard, ie a tone something me Take heed—take he > said the divine, who, though a excellent, was, aS we hav Boh sewhere seen, an irritable man.— ‘¢Do not insult me; but fi 1k honorably of the messenger, for ine HS of Him whose commission he carries. I say, am bound to discharge my duty, were it to the dis pleasing of my twin brother.” ‘T can see nought your office has to do in the matter, ”” said Colonel. Everard ; “ and i, on my Sl de, give e you warning not to attempt to meddle beyond your commission.’ ‘Right—you hold me already to be as submissive as one of your grenad diers,” replied the clergyman, his acute features trembling with a sense of indignity, so as even to agitate his gray hair; “but beware, sir, I am not so power: less as you sup- pose. I will invoke every true Christian in Woodstock to gird A Ce Ree ont er eee ~ % Soe ee etee 192 WOODSTOCK. up his loins, and resist the restoration of prelacy, oppression, and malignancy within our borders. I will stir up the wrath of the righteous against the oppressor—the Ishmaelite—the Edomite—and against his race, and against those who support him and encourage him to rear up his horn. I will call aloud, and spare not, and arouse the many whose love hath waxed cold, and the multitude who care for none of these things. There shall be a remnant to listen to me: and I will take the stick of Joseph, which was in the hand of Ephraim, and ge down to cleanse this place of witches and sorcerers, and of en- chantments, and will cry and exhort, saying—Will you plead for Baal ?—will you serve him? Nay, take the prophets of Baal —let not a man escape !” “Master Holdenough, Master Holdenough,” said Colonel Everard, with much impatience, “ by the tale yourself told me, you have exhorted upon that text once too often already.” The old man struck his palm forcibly against his forehead, and fell back into a chair as these words were uttered, as sud- denly, and as much without power of resistance, as if the Colo- nel had fired a pistol through his head. Instantly regretting the reproach which he had suffered to escape him in his im- patience, Everard hastened to apologize, and to offer every con- ciliatory excuse, however inconsistent, which occurred to him on the moment. But the old man was to deeply affected—he rejected his hand, lent no ear to what he said, and finally started up, saying sternly, “‘ You have abused my confidence, sir —abused it vilely, to turn it into my own reproach : had I been a man of the sword, you dared not—But enjoy your triumph, sir, over an old man, and your father’s friend—strike at the wound his imprudent confidence showed you.” “ Nay, my worthy and excellent friend,” said the Colo- nel “Friend!” answered the: old man, starting up—We are foes, sir—foes now, and forever!” So saying, and starting from the seat into which he had rather fallen than thrown himself, he ran out of the room with a precipitation of step which he was apt to use upon occasions of irritable feeling, and which was certainly more eager than dignified, especially as he muttered while he ran, and seemed as if he were keeping up his own passion, by recounting over and over the offence which he had received ~ Soh!” said Colonel Everard, “and there was not strife enough between mine uncle and the people of Woodstock already, I must but needs increase it, by chafing this irritable and quick-tempered old man, eager as I knew him to be in hisWOODSTOCK. 193 ideas of church-government, and stiff in his prejudices respect: ing all who dissent from him! The mob of Woodstock will rise; for though he would not get a score of them to. stand by him in any honest or intelligible purpose, yet let him cry havoc and destruction, and I will warrant he has followers enow. And my uncle is equally wild and unpersuadable. For the value of all the estate he ever had, he would not allow a score of troopers to be quartered in the house for defence ; and if he be alone, or has but Joceline to stand by him, fie will be as sure to fire upon those who come to attack the Lodge, as if he had a hundred men in garrison; and then what can chance but danger and bloodshed ?”’ This progress of melancholy anticipation was interrupted by the return of Master Holdenough, who, hurrying into the room with the same precipitate pace at which he had left it, ran straight up to the Colonel, and said, “Take my hand, Markham —take my hand hastily ; for the old Adam is w hispering at my fee art, that it is a disgrace to hold it extended so long.’ “ Most heartily do I receive your hand, my v enerable friend, 7 said Everard, “ and I trust in sign of renew ed amity.” fe Surely, surely, said the divine, shaking his hand kindly “thou hast, it is true, spoken bitterly, but thou hast Salen truth in good time; and I think —though your words were severe—with a good and kindly purpose. Verily, and of a truth, it were sinful in me again to be hasty in provoking violence, remembering that which you have upbraided me with ”’ ¢ ome » me, good Master Holdnough,” said Colonel Ever- ard, “it was a hasty word; 1 meant not in serious earnest to upbraia? o ‘Peace, I pray you, peace,” said the divine; “ I say, the allusion to th at which you have most justly upbraid ed me with —though the charge aroused the gall of the old man within me, the inward tempter being ever on the watch to bring us to his lure—ought, instead of being resented, to have been ac- knowledged by me as a favor, for. so are the wounds of a friend termed faithful. And surely I, who have by one unhappy ex hortation to battle and strife sent the living to the dead—and I fear brought back even the dead among the living—should now study peace and good- will, and reconciliation of difference, leaving punishment to the Great Being whose laws a are broken, and vengeance to Him who hath said, I will repay it.’ The old man’s mortified features lighted up with a humble confidence as he made this acknowl ledement; and Colonel Everard, who knew the constitutional infirmities, and the early x bn 5 er c 2 \, ,P >, SapRURAMaNeS eames SULA A SASS Se ASL SeR aS naS a 194 WOODSTOCK. prejudices of professional consequence and exclusive party opin- lon, which he must have subdued ere arriving at such a tone of candor, hastened to express his admiration of his Christian char- ity, mingled with reproaches on himself for having so deeply injured his feelings. “Think not of it—think not of it, excellent young man,” said Holdenough; “we have both erred—lI in suffering my zeal to outrun my charity, you perhaps in pressing hard on an old and peevish man, who had so lately poured out his sufferings inte your friendly bosom. Be it all forgotten. Let your friends, if they are not deterred by what has happened at this manor of Woodstock, resume their habitations as soon as they will. If they can protect themselves against the powers of the air, be- lieve me, that if I can prevent it by aught in my power, they shall have no annoyance from earthly neighbors; and assure yourself, good sir, that my voice is still worth something with the worthy Mayor and the good Aldermen, and the better sort of housekeepers up yonder in the town, although the lower classes are blown about with every wind of doctrine. And yet further, be assured, Colonel, that should your mother’s brother, or any of his family, learn that they have taken up a rash bargain in returning to this unhappy and unhallowed house, or should they find any qualms in their own hearts and consciences which require a ghostly comforter, Nehemiah Holdenough will be as much at their command by night or day, as if they had been bred up within the holy pale of the church in which he is an unwor- thy minister ; and neither the awe of what is fearful to be seen within these walls, nor his knowledge of their blinded and carnal state, as bred up under a prelatic dispensation, shall pre- vent him doing what lies in his poor abilities for their pre tection and edification.” ‘I feel all the force of your kindness, reverend sit,’ said Colonel Everard, “ but I do-not think it likely that my uncle will give you trouble on either score. He is a man much accus- tomed to be his own protector in temporal danger, and in spiritual doubts to trust to his own prayers and those of his Church?? ‘I trust I have not been superfluous in offering mine assist ance,” said the old man, something jealous that his proffered spiritual aid had been held rather intrusive. “I ask pardon if that is the case, I humbly ask pardon—I would not willingly be superfluous.” The Colonel hastened to appease this new alarm of the watchful jealousy of his consequence, which, joined witha naturalWOODSTOCK. 19s heat of temper which he could not always subdue, were the good man’s only faults. They had regained their former friendly footing, when Roger Wildrake returned from the hut of Joceline, and whispered his master that his embassy had been successful. The Colonel then addressed the divine, and informed him, that as the Com- nissioners had already given up Woodstock, and as his uncle, Sir Henry Lee, proposed to return to the Lodge about noon, he would, if his reverence pleased, attend him up to the bor ough, “Will you not tarry,” said the reverend man, with some- thing like inquisitive apprehension in his voice, “ to welcome your relatives upon their return to this their house ? ” “No, my good friend,’’ said Colonel Everard; “ the part which I have taken in these unhappy broils, perhaps also the mode of worship in which I have been educated, have so prej- udiced me in mine uncle’s opinion, that I must be for some time a stranger to his house and family.” “Indeed! I rejoice to hear it with all my heart and soul said the divine. ‘Excuse my frankness—I do indeed rejoice ; I had thought—no matter what I had thought; I would not again give offence. But truly, though the maiden hath a pleas- ant feature, and he, as all men say, is in human things unex- ceptionable, yet,—but I give you pain—in sooth, I will say no more unless you ask my sincere and unprejudiced advice, which you shall command, but which I will not press on you super- duously. Wend we to the borough together—the pleasant solitude of the forest may dispose us to open our hearts to each 22, ) other,” They did walk up to the little town in company, and, some- what to Master Holdenough’s surprise, the Colonel, though thev talked on various subjects, did not request of him any chostly advice on the subject of his love to his fair cousin, ns while, greatly beyond the expectation of the soldier, the clergy- man kept his word, and in his own phrase, was not so supet™ fluous as to offer upon so delicate a point his unasked counsel. pr ab SerenoFy saa ores Ne aaa Seen eee TEN SRLS ceca g WOODSTOCK. CHAPTER EIGHTEENTH. Then are the harpies gone—Yet ere we perch Where such foul birds have roosted, let us cleanse The foul obscenity they’ve left behind them. AGAMEMNON. THE embassy of Wildrake had been successful, chiefly through the mediation of the Episcopal divine, whom we for- merly found acting in the character of a chaplain to the family, and whose voice had great influence on many accounts with its master. A little before high noon, Sir Henry Lee, with his small household, were again in unchallenged possession of their old apartments at the Lodge of Woodstock; and the combined ex- ertions of Joceline Joliffe, of Phoebe, and of old Joan, were em- ployed in putting to rights what the late intruders had left in great disorder. Sir Henry Lee had, like all persons of quality of that period, a love of order amounting to precision, and felt, like a fine lady whose dress has been disordered in a crowd, insulted and humiliated by the rude confusion into which his household goods had been thrown, and impatient till his mansion was purified from all marks of intrusion. _ In his anger he uttered more orders than the limited number of his domestics were likely to find time or hands to execute. ‘The villains have left such sulphureous steams behind them, too,” said the old knight, “as if old Davie Leslie and the whole Scottish army had quartered among them.” “It may be near as bad,” said Joceline, “for men say, for certain, it was the devil came down bodily among them, and made them troop off.” “Then,” said the knight, “is the Prince of Darkness a gentleman, as old Will Shakspeare says. He never interferes with those of his own coat, for the Lees have been here, father and son, these five hundred years, without disquiet ; and no sooner came these misbegotten churls, than he plays his own part among them.” “Well, one thing he and they have left us,” said Joliffe, ‘which we may thank them for ; and that is, such a well-filled larder and buttery as has been seldom seen in Woodstock Lodge this many a day : carcasses of mutton, large rounds of beef, barrels of confectioners’ ware, pipes and runlets of sack,WOODSTOCK. 197 muscadine, ale, and what not. We shall havea royal time on’t through half the winter: and Joan must get to salting and pickling presently.” “ Out, villain!” said the knight; “are we to feed on the frag- ments of such scum of the earth as these? Cast them forth instantly! Nay,” checking himself, “ that were a sin ; but give them to the poor, or see them sent to their owners. And, hark ye, I will none of their strong liquors. I would rather drink like a hermit all my life, than seem to pledge such scoundrels as these in their leavings, like a miserable drawer, who drains off the ends of the bottles after the guests have paid their reckon- ing, and gone off. And hark ye, I will taste no water from the cistern out of which these slaves have been serving them- selves—fetch me down a pitcher from Rosamond’s spring.” Alice heard this injunction, and well guessing there was enough for the other members of the family to do, she quietly took a small pitcher, and flinging a cloak around her, walked out in person to procure Sir Henry the water which he desired. Meantime, Joceline said, with some hesitation, “that a man still remained, belonging to a party of these strangers, who was directing about the removal of some trunks and mails which belonged to the Commissioners, and who could receive his honor’s commands about the provisions.” “Let him come hither.” (The dialogue was held in the hall.) ‘Why do you hesitate and drumble in that manner ?”’ “ Only, sir,” said Joceline, “ only perhaps your honer might not wish to see him, being the same who, not long since : He paused. “Sent my rapier a-hawking through the firmament, thou wouldst say? Why, when did I take spleen at a man for standing his ground against me ? Roundhead as he is, man, I like him the better of that, not the worse. I hunger and thirst to have another turn with him. I have thought on his passado ever since, and I believe, were it to try again, I know a feat would control it. Fetch him directly.” Trusty Tomkins was presently ushered in, bearing himself with an iron gravity, which neither the terrors of the preceding night, nor the dignified demeanor of the high-born personage before whom he stood, were able for an instant to overcome. “ How now, good fellow?” said Sir Henry ; “ T would fain see something more of thy fence, which baffled me the other evening ; but truly, I think the light was somewhat too faint for my old eyes. ‘Take a foil, man—l walk here in the hall, as Hamlet says; and ’tis the breathing-time of day with me. Take a foil, then, in thy hand.”' nt Satta aaaoe tas keane ee eee eerie or F saieiiiate ine teatiatahsiubabiadenaet eee eae ~ : 4 198 WOODSTOCK. “Since it is your worship’s desire,” said the steward, letting fall his long cloak, and taking the foil in his hand. | Now; said the Imesh, eu your fitness speaks, mine is teady. Methinks the very stepping on the same old pavement hath charmed away the gout which threatened me. tread as firm as a game-cock.” They began the play with great spirit; and whether the old knight really fought more coolly with the blunt than with the sharp weapon, or whether the steward gave him some grains of advantage in this merely sportive encounter, it is certain Sir Henry had the better in the assault. Hig success put him into excellent humor. There,” said he, “I found your trick—nay, you cheat me not twice the same way. There was a very palpable hit. Why had I had but light enough the other night—But it skills not speaking of it—Here we leave off. I must not fight, as we unwise Cavaliers did with you roundhead rascals, beating you so often that we taught you to beat us at last. And good now, tell me why you are leaving your larder so full here? Do you think I or my family can use broken victuals? What, have you no better employment for your rounds of sequestrated beef than to leave them behind you when you shift your quarters ?” ‘So please your honor,” said Tomkins, “it may be. that you desire not the flesh of beeves, of rams, or of goats. Never- theless, when you know that the provisions were provided and paid for out of your own rents and stock at Ditchley, seques- trated to the use of the state more than a year since, it may be you will have less scruple to use them for your own behoof,”’ “ Rest assured that I shall,” said Sir Henry; “and glad you have helped me to a share of mine own. Certainly I was an ass to suspect your masters of subsisting, save at honest men’s expense,” aa Sa “ And as for the rumps of beeves,” with the same solemnity, “there is a rump at Westminster, which will stand us of the army much hacking and hewing yet, ere it is discussed to our mind.” Sir Henry paused, as if to consider wl of this innuendo; for he was not a hension. But having at length caught the meaning of it, he burst into an explosion of louder laughter than Joceline had seen him indulge in for a good while, “ Right, knave,” he said, “I taste thy jest—It is the very moral of the puppet-show. Faustus raised the devil, as the Parliament raised the army, and then, as the devil flies away with Faustus, so will the army fly away with the Parliament. continued Tomkins, 1at was the meaning person of very quick appre-WOODSTOCK. 199 or the rump, as you call’st it, or sitting part of the so-called Parliament. And then, look you, friend, the very devil of all hath my willing consent to fly away with the army in its turn, from the highest general down to the lowest drum-boy. Nay, sever look fierce for the matter; remember there is daylight enough now for a game at sharps.” v URHUBLY Tomkins appeared to think it best to suppress his displeasure ; and observing that the wains were ready to trans- port the Commissioner's property to the borough, took a grave leave of Sir Henry Lee. Meantime the old man continued to pace his recovered hall, rubbing his hands, and evincing greater signs of glee than he had shown since the fatal 30th of January. “Here we are again in the old frank, Joliffe ; well victualed too. How the knave solved my point of conscience !—the dullest of them is a special casuist where the question concerns profit. Look out if there are not some of our own ragged regiment lurking about, to whom a bellyful would be a God- send, Joceline. Then his fence, Joceline, though the fellow foils well, very sufficient well. But thou saw’st how I dealt with him when I had fitting light, Joceline.” “ Ay, and so your honor did,” said Joceline. “ You taught him to know the Duke of Norfolk from Saunders Gardner. ll warrant him he will not wish to come under your honor’s thumb again.” “Why, I am waxing old,” said Sir Henry; “ but skill will not rust through age, though sinews must stiffen. But my age is like a lusty winter, as old Will says, frosty but kindly ; and what if, old as we are, we live to see better days yet! Lf pro- mise thee, Joceline, I love this jarring betwixt the rogues of the board and the rogues of the sword. When thieves quarrel, true men have a chance of coming by their own.” Thus triumphed the old cavalier, in the treble glory of having recovered his dwelling,—regained, as he thought, his character as a man of fence, and finally, discovered some pros: pect of a change of times, in which he was not without hopes that something might turn up for the royal interest. Meanwhile, Alice, with a prouder and a lighter heart than had danced in her bosom for several days, went forth with a gayety to which she of late had been a stranger, to corr tribute her assistance to the regulation and supply of the house- hold, by bringing the fresh water wanted from Fair Rosamond’s well. Perhaps she remembered, that when she was but a girl, her cousin Markham used, among others, to make her perform thatSee WOODSTOCK. duty, as presenting the character of some captive Trojan princess, condemned by her situation to draw the waters from some Grecian spring, for the use of the proud victor. At any rate, she certainly joyed to see her father reinstated in his ancient habitation ; and the joy was not the less sincere, that she knew their return to Woodstock had been procured by means of her cousin, and that, even in her father’s prejudiced eyes, Everard had been in some degree exculpated of the accu- sations the old knight had brought against him; and that if a reconciliation had not yet taken place, the preliminaries had been established on which such a desirable conclusion might easily be founded. It was like the commencement of a bridge ; when the foundation is securely laid, and the piers raised above the influence of the torrent, the throwing of the arches may be accomplished in a subsequent season. The doubtful fate of her only brother might have clouded even this momentary gleam of sunshine; but Alice had been bred up during the close and frequent contest of civil war, and had acquired the habit of hoping in behalf of those dear to her, until hope was lost. In the present case, all reports seemed to assure her of her brother’s safety. Besides these causes for gayety, Alice Lee had the pleasing feeling that she was restored to the habitation and the haunts of her childhood, from which she had not departed without much pain, the more felt, perhaps, because suppressed, in order to avoid irritating her father’s sense of his misfortune. Finally, she enjoyed for the instant the gleam of self-satisfaction by which we see the young and well-disposed so often animated, when they can be, in common phrase, helpful to those whom they love, and perform at the moment of need some of those little domestic tasks, which age receives with so much pleasure from the duti- ful hands of youth. So that, altogether, as she hasted through the remains and vestiges of a wilderness already mentioned, and from thence about a bow-shot into the Park, to bring a pitcher of water from Rosamond’s spring, Alice Lee, her features enlivened and her complexion a little raised by the exercise had, for the moment, regained the gay and brilliant vivacity of expres- sion which had been the characteristic of her beauty in her earlier and happier days. This fountain of old memory had been once adorned with architectural ornaments of the style of the sixteenth century, chiefly relating to ancient mythology. All these were now wasted and overthrown, and existed only as moss-covered ruins, while the living spring continued to furnish its daily treasures, unrivaled in purity, though the quantity was small gushingWOODSTOCK. 201 out amid disjointed stones, and bubbling through fragments of ancient scu!pture. With a light step and laughing brow the young Lady of Lee was approaching the fountain usually so solitary, when she paused on beholding some one seated beside it. She proceeded, however, with confidence, though with a step something less gay, when she observed that the person was a female; some menial perhaps from the town, whom a fanciful mistress occa- sionally despatched for the water of a spring, supposed to be peculiarly pure, or some aged woman, who made a little trade by carrying it to the better sort of families, and selling it for a trifle. ‘There was no cause, therefore, for apprehension. Yet the terrors of the times were so great, that Alice did not see a stranger even of her own sex without some apprehen- sion. Denaturalized women had as usual followed the camps of both armies during the Civil War; who on the one side with open profligacy and profanity, on the other with the fraudful tone of fanaticism or hypocrisy, exercised nearly in like degree their talents for murder or plunder. But it was broad daylight, the distance from the Lodge was but trifling, and though a little alarmed at seeing a stranger where she expected deep solitude, the daughter of the haughty old Knight had too much of the lion about her, to fear without some determined and decided cause. Alice walked, therefore, gravely on toward the fount, and composed her looks as she took a hasty glance of the female who was seated there, and addressed herself to her task of filling her pitcher. The woman, whose presence had surprised and somewha startled Alice Lee, was a person of the lower rank, whose red cloak, russet kirtle, handkerchief trimmed with Coventry blue, and a coarse steeple hat, could not indicate at best anything higher than the wife of a small farmer, or, perhaps, the help- mate of a bailiff or hind. It was well if she proved nothing worse. Her clothes, indeed, were of good materials ; but, what the female eye discerns with half a glance, they were indifferently adjusted and put on. ‘This looked as if they did not belong to the person by whom they were worn, but were articles of which she had become the mistress by some accident, if not by some successful robbery. Her size, too, as did not escape Alice, even in the short perusal she afforded the stranger, was unusual; her features swarthy and singularly harsh, and her manner altogether unpropitious. ‘The young lady almost wished, as she stooped to fill her pitcher, that she had rather turned back, and sent Joceline on the errand; but repentance LORONC a, = caelA WOODSTOCK. was too late now, and she had only to disguise as well she could her unpleasant feelings, “The blessings of this bright day to one as bright as it is,” said the stranger, with no unfriendly, though a harsh voice. “ I thank you,” said Alice in reply ; and continued to J her pitcher busily, by assistance of an iron bow] which remained still chained to one of the stones beside the fountain. ‘* Perhaps, my pretty maiden, if you would accept my help, your work would be sooner done,” said the stranger, “ I thank you,” said Alice ; “but, had-I needed assistance, [ could have brought those with me who had rendered it,” ‘‘ I do not doubt of that, my pretty maiden,” answered the female ; “ there are too many lads in Woodstock with eyes in their heads—No doubt you could have brought with you any one of them who looked on you, if you.had listed ? ” Alice replied not a syllable, for she did not like the freedom used by the speaker, and was desirous to break off the conver- sation, “ Are you offended, my pretty mistress ? ” said the stranger: ‘* that was far from my purpose.—I will put my question other- wise—Are the good dames of Woodstock so careless of their pretty daughters as to let the flower of them all wander about the wild chase without a mother, or a somebody to prevent the fox from running away with the lamb ?—that carelessness, methinks, shows small kindness.” ~ Content yourself, good woman, I am not far from protection and assistance,” said Alice, who liked less and less the effrontery of her new acquaintance. “ Alas! my pretty maiden,” said the stranger, patting with her large and hard hand the head which Alice had kept bended down toward the water which she was laving, “it would be difficult to hear such a pipe as yours at the town of Woodstocl scream as loud as you would.” i hg 3 Alice shook the woman’s hand angrily off, took up her pit- cher, though not above half full, and as she saw the stranger ris€é at the same time, said, 10t without fear, doubtless, but with a natural feeling of resentment and dignity, “I have no reason to make my cries heard as far as Woodstock ; were there occasion for my crying for help at all, it is nearer at hand,” She spoke not without a warrant : for, at the moment, broke through the bushes, and stood by her side, the noble hound Bevis ; fixing on the stranger his eyes that gleamed fire, rais- ing every hair on his gallant mane as upright as the bristles of a wild boar when hard pressed, grinning till a case of teeth, which would have matched those of any wolf in Russia, wereWOODSTOCK. 203 display ed in full array, and, without either barking or springing, ee by his low determined growl, to await ‘but the signal or dashing at the female, whom he plainly considered as a sus- sides person. But the stranger was undaunted. “My pretty maiden,’ she said, “ you have indeed a formidable guardian there where cockneys or bumpkins are concerned ; but we who have been at the wars know spells for taming such furious dragons; and therefore let not your four-footed protector go loose on me, for he is a noble animal, and nothing but self-defence would induce me to do him injury.” So saying, she drew a pistol from her bosom, and cocked pei ointing it toward the dog, as if appre- hensive that he would spring upon her. “ Hold, woman, hold!” said Alice Lee; “the dog will not a you no harm.—Down, Bevis, couch down.—And ere you at- tempt to hurt him, know he is the favorite hound of Sir Henry Lee of Ditchley, the keeper of W oodstock Park, who would severely revenge any injury offered to him.” ‘And you, pretty one, are the old knight’s housekeeper, doubtless! I have often heard the Lees have good taste.’ “T am his daughter, good Ww oman.’ “His daughter !—I wz yet it is true, nothing less perfe sct could answer t the ee rion which all the world has given of Mistress Alice Lee. I trust that my folly has given my young mistress no offence, and that she will allow me, in token of reconcili ation, to fill her pitcher, and carry it as far as she will permit.’ “As you will, Bas mother: but I am about to return in- stantly to the Lodge, to which, in these times, I cannot admit strangers. You can 1 follows me no further than the verge of the wi Iderness, and I am already too long from home 5 I will send some one to meet and relieve you of ‘the pitcher.” So saying she turned her back, with a feeling of terror which she could hardly accot ae t for, and began to Ww ralk quickly tow ard the Lodge, tl hinking thus to get rid of her troublesome acquaintance. But she reckoned without her host ; for in a moment her new companion was by her side, not running indeed, but walk- ing with prodigious long unwomanly str ides, which soon broug “ht her up with the hurried ‘and timid ste eps of the frightened maiden. But her manner was more respectful than formerly, though her voice sounded remarkably harsh and disagreeable, and her whole appearance suggested an undefined, yet irresistible feel- ing ee apprehension. “Pardon a stranger, lovely Mistress Alice,” said her perse- cutor, ‘‘that was not capable ‘of distinguishing between a lady204 WOODSTOCK. of your high quality and a peasant wench, and who spoke to you with a degree of freedom, ill befitting your rank, certainly, and condition, and which, I fear, has given you offence.” “ No offence whatever,” replied Alice ; “ but, good woman, [am near home, and can excuse your further company.—You are unknown to me.” “But it follows not,” said the stranger, that your fortunes may not be known to me, fair Mistress Alice. Look on my swarthy brow—England breeds none such—and in the lands from which I come, the sun which blackens our complexion, pours, to make amends, rays of knowledge into our brains, which are denied to those of your lukewarm climate. Let me look upon your pretty hand—l[attempting to possess herself of it], —and I promise you, you shall hear what will please you.” “I hear what does zot please me,’’ said Alice, with dignity . “you must carry your tricks of fortune-telling and palmistry to the women of the village—We of the gentry hold them to be either imposture or unlawful knowl adore.” “Yet you would fain hear of a a certain Colonel, I warrant you, whom certain unhaj j py circumstances have separated from his family ; you would give better than silver if I could assure you that you would see him in a day or two—ay, perhaps, s 27 sooner, “I know nothing of what you speak, good woman; if you want alms, there is a piece of silver—it is all I have in my purse. “It were pity that I should take it,” said the female; “and yet give it me—for the princess in the fairy tale must ever deserve, by her generosity, the bounty of the benevolent fairy, before she is rewarded by her protection.” “Take it—take it—give me my pitcher,” said Alice, “and begone,—yonder comes one of my father’s servants.—What, ho !—Joceline—Joceline ! ” The old fortune-teller hastily dropped something into the pitcher as she restored it to Alice Lee, and, plying her long limbs, disappeared speedily under cover of the wood. Bevis turned, and backed, and showed some inclination to harass the retreat of this suspicious person, yet, as if uncertain, ran toward Joliffe, and fawned on him, as to demand his advice and encouragement. Joceline pacified the animal, and, coming up to his young lady, asked her with surprise what was the matter, and whether she had been frightened? Alice made light of her alarm, for which, indeed, she could not have assigned any very competent reason, for the manners of the woman, though bold and intrusive, were not menacing. SheWOODSTOCK. 206 only said she had met a fortune-teller by Rosamond’s Well, and had had some difficulty in shaking her off. “ Ah, the gypsy thief,” said Joceline, “ how well she scented there was food in the pantry !—they have noses like ravens these strollers. Look you, Mistress Alice, you shall not see a raven, or a carrion-crow, in all the blue sky for a mile round you; but let a sheep drop suddenly down on the greensward. and before the poor creature’s dead you shall see a dozen of such guests croaking, as if inviting each other to the banquet. —Just so it is with these sturdy beggars. You will see few enough of them when there’s nothing to give, but when hough’s in the pot, they will have share OnAt « “You are §o proud of your fresh supply of provender,” said Alice, “that you suspect all of a design on’t. I do not think this woman will venture near your kitchen, Joceline.”’ “Tt will be best for her health,” said Joceline, “Jest I give her a ducking for digestion —But give me the pitcher, Mistress Alice——meeter I bear it than you.—How now ? what jingles at the bottom? have you lifted the pebbles as well as the water ?”’ “T think the woman dropped something into the pitcher,” said Alice. “ Nay, we must look to that, for it is like to be a charm, and we have enough of the devil’s ware about Woodstock already— we will not spare for the water—I can run back and fill the Pitcner Etc poured out the water upon the grass, and at the bottom of the pitcher was found a gold ring, in which was set a ruby, apparently of some value. “Nay, if this be not enchantment, I know not what is, 4 Sala Joceline. “ Truly, Mistress Alice, I think you had better throw away this gimcrack. Such gifts from such hands are a kind of press-money which the devil uses for enlisting his regiment of witches; and if they take but so much as a bean from him, they become his bond slaves for life—Ay, you look at the gew- gaw, but to-morrow you will find a lead ring, and a common pebble in its stead.” “ Nay, Joceline, I think it will be better to find out that dark-complexioned woman, and return to her what seems of some value. 90, cause inquiry to be made, and be sure you return her ring. It seems too valuable to be destroyed.” “Umph! that is always the way with women,” murmured Toceline. ‘“ You will never get the best of them, but she is willing to save a bit of finery—Well, Mistress Alice, I trust that you are too young and too pretty to be enlisted in a regr ment of witches.”206 WOODSTOCK. “I shall not be afraid of it till you turn conjuror,” said Alice; “so hasten to the well, where you are like still to find the woman, and let her know that Alice Lee desires none of her gifts, any more than she did of her society.” So saying, the young lady pursued her way to the Lodge, while Joceline went down to Rosamond’s Well to execute her commission. But the fortune-teller, or whoever she might be, was nowhere to be found ; neither, finding that to be the case, did Joceline give himself much trouble in tracking her further, “If this ring, which I dare say the jade stole somewhere,” said the under-keeper to himself, “be worth a few nobles, it is better in honest hands th an in that of vagabonds. My master has aright to all waifs and Strays, and certainly such a ring, in possession of a &ypsy, must be a waif. So I shall confiscate it without scruple, and apply the produce to the support of Sir Henry’s household, which is like to be poor enough. Thank Heaven, my military experience has taught me how to carry hooks at my finger-ends—that is trooper’s law. Yet, hang it, after all, I had best take it to Mark Everard, and ask his advice —I hold him now to be your learned counselor in law where Mistress Alice’s affairs are concerned, and my learned Doctor, who shall be nameless, for such as concern Church and State and Sir Henry Lee—And [’ll give them leave to give mine umbles to the kites and ravens if they find me conferring my confidence where it is not safe.” ptt — teenie ets CHAPTER NINETEENTH. Being skilless in these parts, which, to Unguided and unfriended Rough and inhospitable. a Stranger, , often prove TWELFTH NIGHT. THERE was a little attempt at preparation, now that the dinner hour was arrived, which showed that, in the opinion of his few but faithful domestics. the good knight had returned in triumph to his home. The great tankard, exhibiting in bas-rel Michael subduing the Arch-enem and Joceline and Phebe dutifull the chair of Sir Henry, the other to wait upon her young mis- tress, and both to make out, by formal and regular observance, the want of a more numerous train. ief the figure of y, was placed on the table, y attended ; the one behindWOODSTOCK. ‘“‘ A health to King Charles!” said the old knight, handing the massive tankard to his daughter; “drink it, my love, though it be rebel ale which they have left us. J will pledge thee; for the toast will excuse the liquor, had Noll himself brewed it.” The young lady touched the goblet with her lips, and re- turned it to her father, who took a copious draught. “ T will not say blessing on their hearts,” said he ; ” though I must own they drank good ale.” ‘‘ No wonder, sir; they come lightly by the malt, and need not spare it,” said Joceline. ““Say’st thou?” said the knight; “thou shalt finish the tankard thyself for that very jest’s sake.” Nor was his follower slow in doing reason to the royal pledge. He bowed and replaced the tankard, saying, after a triumphant glance at the sculpture, “Iha a gibe with that same red-coat about the Saint Michael just now.” é “ Red-coat—ha! what red-coat?” said the hasty old man. “Do any of these knaves still lurk bout Woodstock ?—Quoit him down stairs instantly, Joceline—Know we not Galloway nags ?” “So please you, he is in some charge here, and will speedily be gone.—It is he—he who had a rencontre with your honor in the wood.” : “ Ay, but I paid him off for it in the hall, as you yourself saw.—lI was never in better fence in my life, Joceline. That same steward fellow is not so utterly black-hearted a rogue as the most of them, Joceline. He fences well—excellent well. I will have thee try a bout in the hail with him to-morrow, though I think he will bé too hard for thee. I know thy streneth to an inch.” He might say this with some truth; for it was Joceline’s fashion, when called on, as sometimes happened, to fence with his patron, just to put forth as much of his strenght and skill as obliged the knight to contend hard for the victory, which, in the long run, he always contrived to yield up to him, lke a discreet serving-man. “ And what said this roundheaded steward of our great Saint Michael’s standing cup?” “ Marry, he scoffed at our good saint, and said he was little better than one of the golden calves of Bethel. But I told him he should not talk so, until one of their own roundheaded saints had given the devil as complete a cross-buttock as Saint Michael had given him, as ’tis carved upon the cup there. I trow that made him silent enough. And then he would know ~ -_ 5 tS RT : Rite isis Re cee a elaine ~ ‘208 WOODSTOCK. whether your honor and Mistress Alice, not to mention old Joan and myself, since it is your honor’s pleasure I should take my bed here, were not afraid to sleep in a house that had been so much disturbed. But I told him we feared no fiends or goblins, having the prayers of the Church read every evening.” ‘ Joceline,” said Alice, interrupting him, ‘wert thou mad? You know at what risk to ourselves and the good doctor the performance of that duty takes place.” “Oh, mistress Alice,’ ’ said Joceline, a little abashed, “you may be sure I spoke not a word of the doctor—No, no—I did not let him into the secret that we had such a reverend ch lap- Jain.—I think I know the length of this man’s foot. We have had a jollification or so toge »ther. He is hand and glove with me, for as great a fanatic as he is.’ Trust: him snot téo“far;’? said - the knight, ‘Nay, I fear thou_hast been imprudent already, and that it will be unsafe for the good man to come here after nightfall, as is proposed. These Independents have noses like bloodhounds, and can smell out a lvelist under any disguise. " “= Tt your bonor thinks SO, said Joceline, “I’ll watch for the doctor with good will, and } sting him into the Lodge by the old condemned postern, and so up to this apartment ; ‘and sure this mati ‘l’omkins would never presume to come hither; and the ee may have a bed in Woodstock Lodge, and he never the wiser: or, if you honor does not think that safe, I can cut his throat for you, and I would not mind it a pin. : “God forbid!” said the knight. “He is under our roof, and a guest, though not an invited one.—Go, Joceline ; it shall be thy penance, for having given thy tongue too much license, to watch for the good doctor, and to take care of his safety while he continues with us. An October night or two in the forest would finish the good man.’ ( lets more likely to finish our October than our October is to finish him,” said the keeper, and withdrew under the en- couraging smile of his patron. He whistled Bevis along with him to share in his watch; and having received exact information where the clergyman was most likely to be found, assured his master that he would give the most pointed attention to his safety. When the attendants had withdrawn, having previously removed the remains of the meal, the old knight, leaning back in his chair, encouraged pleasanter visions than had of late passed through his imagina- tion, until by degrees he was surprised by actual slumber ; while his daughter, not venturing to move but on tip toe, took )WOODSTOCK. 209 some needle-work, and bringing it close to the old man’s side, employed her fingers on this task, bending her eyes from time to time on her parent, with the affectionate zeal, if not the effective power, of a guardian angel. At length, as the light faded away, and night came on, she was about to order candles to be brought. But remembering how indifferent a couch Joceline’s cottage had afforded, she could not think of interrupt- ing the first sound and refreshing sleep which her father had en: joyed, in all probability, for the last two nights and days. She herself had no other amusement, as she sat facing one of the great oriel windows, the same by which Wildrake had on a former occasion looked in upon Tompkins and Joceline while at their compotations, than watching the clouds, which a lazy wind sometimes chased from the broad disk of the harvest- moon, sometimes permitted to accumulate, and exclude her brightness. There is, | know not why, something peculiarly easing to the imagination in contemplating the Queen of ight, when she is wadig, as the expression goes, among the vapors, which she has not the power to dispel, and which on their side are unable entirely to quench her lustre. It is the striking image of patient virtue, calmly pursuing her path & through good report and bad report, having that excellence in herself which ought to command all admiration, but bedimmed in the eyes of the world, by suffering, by misfortune, by calumny. As some such reflections, perhaps, were passing through Alice’s imagination, she became sensible, to her surprise and alarm, that some one had clambered up upon the window, and was loking into the room. The idea of supernatural fear did not in the slishtest degree agitate Alice. She was too much accustomed io the place and situation ; for folk do not see spectres in the seenes with which they have been familiar from infancy. But dangers from marauders in a disturbed country was a more formidable subject of apprehension, and the thought armed Alice, who was naturally high-spirited, with such desperate courage, that she snatched a pistol from the wall, on which some firearms hung, and while she screamed to her fathet to awake, had the presence of mind to present it at the intruder. She did so more readily, because she imagined she recognized in the visage, which she partially saw, the features of the woman whom she had met with at Rosamond Well’s, and which had appeared to her peculiarly harsh and suspicious. Her father at the same time seized his sword and came forward while the person at the window, alarmed at these demonstra: tions, and endeavoring to descend, missed footing, as hadee Tree eee 210 WOODSTOCK. Cavaliero Wildrake before, and went down to the earth with no small noise. Nor was the reception on the bosom of our com mon mother either soft or safe ; for, by a most terrific bark and growl, they heard that Bevis had come up and seized on the party, ere he or she could gain their feet, “ Hold fast, but worry not,’ thou art the queen of wenches ! and secure the rascal.” ‘‘ For God’s sake, no, my dearest father!” Alice exclaimed ; “ Joceline will be up immedi lately —Hark !—J hear him.” There was indeed a bustle e below, and more than one light danced too and fro in confusion, while those who bore them called to each other, yet suppressing their voices as they spoke, as men who would only be heard by those they addressed. The individual who had fallen under the power of Bevis was most impatient in his situation, and called with least precaution— ee Here, Lee ores ales the dog off, else I must shoot him,” ’ said the old knight,—“ Alice, Stand fast here fill I run down “Tf thou dost,’ said Sir Henry from the window, “I blow thy brains out on the spot. Thieves, Joceline, thieves ! come up and secure this ruffiz in—Bevis, hold on! ” * Back Bevis ; down, sir. * i ontcll Joceline. “TT am coming, I am coming, Sir Henry—Saint Michael, I shall 20 distracted.” A terrible t thought sud denly cccurre ato Alice : ‘could Joceline have become unfaithful. that he was calling Bevis off the villain, instead of encouraging the trusty dog to secure him? Her father, meantime, moved ‘perhaps by some suspicion of the same kind, hastily stepped aside out of the moonlight, and pulled Alice close to him, so as to be invisible from “without, yet so placed as to hear what should pass. ‘The scuffle between Bevis and his prisoner seemed to be ended by Joceline’s inter- ference, and there was close whispering for an instant, as of people i in consultation. ‘All is quiet, ie said one voice : “I will up and_pre- pare the way for you.” And immediately a form presented itself on the outside of the window, esa open the lattice, and sprung into the parlor. But almost ere his step was upon the floor, certainly efis he had obtained any secure footing, the old knight, who stood ready with his rapier drawn, made a des- p€rate pass, which bore the intruder to the ground, Joceline, who clambered up next with a-vdark lantern in his hand, uirered 4 dreadful exclamation, when he saw what had hap- poued, crying out, “Lord in heav ren, he has slain his own son! ” “No, no—I tell you no,’ 2id the fallen young man, who was indeed young Albert Lee, fie only son of the old knight;7 o nm m = ss) & ° b ee & > © o m 4 & & SIR HENRY FAINTING AT Ai) Mc /, Uy v a) “ U4 —LAZS,-§ i i Hy § } iWOODSTOCK. | ois “T am not hurt. No noise, on your lives ; get lights instantly.” At the same time, he started from the floor as quickly as he could, under the embarrassment of a cloak and ‘doublet skewered as it were together by the rapier of the old knight, whose pass, most fortunately, had been diverted from the body of Albert by the interruption of his cloak, the blade passing right across his back, piercing the clothes, while the hilt, coming against his side with the whole force of the lounge, had borne him to the ground. Joceline all the while enjoined silence to every one, under the strictest conjurgations. ‘Silence, as you would long live on earth—silence as ye would have a place in heaven; be but silent for a few minutes—all our lives depend on it.” Meantime he procured lights with inexpressible despatch, and they then beheld that Sir Henry, on hearing the fatal words had sunk back on one of the large chairs, without either motion, color, or sign of life. “OQ brother, how could you come in this manner?” said Alice. Ask no questions—Good God! for what am I reserved !” He gazed on his father as he spoke, who, with clay-cold features rigidly fixed, and his arms extended in the most absolute helplessless, looked rather the image of death upon a monument, than a being in whom existence was only sus- pended. ‘Was my life spared,” said Albert, raising his hands with a wild gesture to Heaven, “only to witness such a sight as this?” “ We suffer what Heaven permits, young man; we endure our lives while Heaven continues them. Let me approach.” The same clergyman who had read the prayers at Joceline’s hut, now came forward. “ Get water.” he said, instantly.”? And the helpful hand and light foot of Alice, with the ready-witted tenderness which never stagnates in vain lamentations while there is any room for hope, provided with incredible celerity all that the clergyman called for. “Tt is but a swoon,” he said, on feeling Sir Henry’s palm; ‘‘a swoon produced from the instant and unexpected shock. Rouse thee up, Albert ; I promise thee it will be nothing save a syncope—A cup, my dearest Alice, and a ribbon or a ban- dage. I must take some blood—some aromatics, too, if they = ’ can be had, my good Alice.’ But while Alice procured the cup and bandage, stripped her father’s sleeve, and seemed by intuition even to anticipate every direction of the reverend doctor, her brother, hearing no word, and seeing no sign of comfort, stood with both:hands claspedTe aan ea ee oa a DED WOODSTOCK. and elevated into the air, 4 monument of speechless despair, Every feature in his face seemed to express the thought, ‘ Here lies my father’s corpse, and it is I whose rashness has slain him !” But when a few drops of blood began to follow the lancet— at first falling singly, and then trickling in a freer stream— when, in consequence of the application of cold water to the temples, and aromatics to the nostrils, the old man sighed feebly, and made an effort to move his limbs, Albert Lee changed his posture, at once to throw himself at the feet of the clergyman, and kiss, if he would have permitted him, his shoes, and the hem of his raiment. “Rise, foolish youth,” said the good man, with a reproving tone ; “must it be always thus with you? Kneel to Heaven, not to the feeblest of its agents. You have been saved once again from great danger; would you deserve Heaven’s bounty, re- member you have been preserved for other purposes than you now think on. Begone, you and Joceline—you have a duty to discharge ; and be assured it will go better with your father’s recovery that he see you not for a few minutes. Down—down to the wilderness, and bring in your attendant.” “Thanks, thanks, a thousand thanks,” answered Albert Lee; and springing through the lattice, he disappeared as un- expectedly as he had entered. At the same time Joceline fol- lowed him, and by the same road. Alice, whose fears for her father were now something abated, upon this new movement among the persons of the scene could not resist appealing to her venerable assistant. ‘Good doctor, answer me but one question. Was my brother Albert here just now, or have I dreamed all that has happened for these ten minutes past? Methinks, but for your presence, I could sup- pose the whole had passed in my sleep; that horrible thrust— that deathlike, corpselike old man—that soldier in mute. de- spair ; I must indeed have dreamed.” “If you have dreamed, my sweet Alice,” said the doctor, “I wish every sick-nurse had your property, since you have been attending to our patient ‘better during your sleep than most of these old dormice can do when they are most awake. But your dream came through the gate of horn, my pretty darl ing, which you must remind me to explain to you at leisure, Albert has really been here and will be here again,’ “Albert !” repeated Sir Henry ; “who names my son?” “Tt is I, my kind patron,” said the doctor. “ permit me to bind your arm.” “My wound ?—with all my heart, doctor,’’ said Sir Henry,WOODSTOCK, 213 raising himself, and gathering his recollection by degrees. “I knew of old thou wert body-curer as well as soul-curer, and served my regiment for surgeon as well as chaplain.—But where is the rascal I killed >—I never made a fairer stramagon in my life. The shell of my rapier struck against his ribs. So, dead he must be, or my right hand has forgot its cunning.” ‘““ Nobody was slain,” and the doctor; “ we must thank God tor that, since there were none but friends to slay. Here isa good cloak and doublet though, wounded in fashion which will require some skill in tailor-craft to cure. But I was your last antagonist, and took a little blood from you, merely to prepare you for the pleasure and surprise of seeing your son, who, though hunted pretty close, as you may believe, hath made his way from Worcester hither, where, with Joceline’s assistance, we will care well enough for his safety. It was even for this reason that I pressed you to accept of your nephew’s proposal to return to the old Lodge, where a hundred men might be con- cealed, though a thousand ‘were making search to discover them. Never such a place for hide-and-seek, as I shall make good when I can find means to publish my Wonders of Wood- stock.” “ But, my son, my dear son,” said the knight; “ shall I not then instantly see him? and wherefore did you not forewarn me of this joyful event?” “ Because I was uncertain of his motions,” said the doctor, “and rather thought he was bound for the sea-side, and that it would be best to tell you of his fate when he was safe on board, and in full sail for France. We had appointed to let you know all when I came hither to-night to join you. But there is a red- coat in the house whom we care not to trust further than we could not help. We dared not, therefore, venture in by the hall; and so, prowling round the building, Albert informed us, that an old prank of his when a boy consisted in entering by this window. A lad who was with us would needs make the experiment, as there seemed to be no light in the chamber, and the moonlight without made us liable to be detected. His foot Slipped, and our friend Bevis came upon us.” “In good truth, you acted simply,” said Sir Henry, “to attack a garrison without a summons. But all this is nothing to my son, Albert—where is he ?—let me see him.” “But, Sir Henry, wait,” said the doctor, “ till your restored strength” “A plague of my restored strength, man !° answered the knight, as his old spirit began to awaken in him.—‘“ Dost not remember that I lay on Edgehill-field all night bleeding like a 1!» Pee Poniing under great ad In Common. the pressure of mental began to subside; and Sir Henry, sti son by the hand, resumed t} he usually practiced, said, “and tl rebels.’’ the die was thrown, anc 214 WOODSTOCK. bullock from five several wounds, and wore my armor within six weeks? and you talk to me of the few drops of blood that follow such a scratch as a cat’s claw might have made ! ” ‘Nay, if you feel so courageous,”’ said the doctor, “T will fetch your son—he is not far distant.” So saying, he left the remain, in case any Sy return. It was fortunate, perhaps, tl recollect the precise nature of and effectually as the shock of t suspended his faculties. Sometl being certain he had done mischief with that stramatcon, as he called it; but his mind did not recur to that danger as having been incurred by his son. Alice, glad to see that her father appeared to have forgotten a circumstance so fearful (as men often forget the blow, or other sudden cause, which has thrown them into a swoon), readily excused herself from throwing much light on the matter, by pleading the general confusion. And ina few minutes, Albert cut off all further inquiry, by entering the room, followed | y the doctor, and throwing himself alternately into the arms of his father and of his sister. apartment, making a sign to Alice to mptoms of her father’s weakness should iat Sir Henry never seemed to the alarm, which had at once, he thunderbolt, for the moment ng he said more than once of CHAPTER TWENTIET ee Phe boy is—hark ye, sirrah—w] 2at’s your name ?— Oh, Jacob—ay, I recollect—the same, CRABBE, THE affectionate relatives were united as those who, meet- versity, feel still the happiness of sharing it They embraced again and again, and gave way to 10S expansions of the heart, which at once express and relieve. agitation. At length the tide of emotion ll holding his recovered 1€ Command of his feelings which “So you have seen the last of our battles, Albert,” he 1€ King’s colors have fallen forever before the “ It is but even so,”’ said the young man—“ the |] ast cast of l, alas! lost at Worcester ; and Crom.WOODSTOCK. ars we well's fortune carried it there, as it has wherever he has shown himself.” ‘**Well—it can but be for a time—it can but be for a time,” answered his father; “the devil is potent, they say, in raising and gratifying favorites, but he can grant but short leases.— And the King o—the King, Albert—the King—in my ear—close, close L 2 “Our last news were confident that he had escaped from Bristol.’ ‘Thank God for that—thank God for that!” said the knight, “Where didst thou leave him?” ‘“Our men were almost all cut to pieces at the bridge,” Albert replied; ‘but I followed his Majesty with about five hundred other officers and gentlemen, who were resolved to die around him, until, as our numbers and appearance drew the whole pursuit after us, it pleased his Majesty to dismiss us, with many thanks and words of comfort to us in general, and some kind expressions to most of us in special. He sent his royal greeting to you, sir, in particular, and said more than be- comes me to repeat.” ‘Nay, I will hear it every word, boy,” said Sir Henry; “is not the certainty that thou hast discharged thy duty, and that King Charles owns it, enough to console me for all we have lost and suffered, and wouldst thou stint me of it from a false shame-facedness ?—I will have it out of thee, were it drawn from thee with cords !”’ . ‘‘ It shall need no such compulsion,” said the young man— ‘‘ It was his Majesty’s pleasure tu bid me tell Sir Henry Lee, in his name, that if his son could not go before his father in the race of loyalty, he was at least following him closely, and would soon move side by side. “ Said he so?” answered the knight—‘ Old Victor Lee will look down with pride on thee, A Albert !—But I forget—you must be weary and hungry.” “Even so, sir,” said Albert; “‘ but these are things which of late I have been in the habit of enduring for safety’s sake.” ‘¢ Joceline !—what ho, Joceline !” The under-keeper entered, and received orders to get sup- per prepared directly. ‘““ My son and Dr. Rochecliffe are half starving,” said the knight. ‘“‘ And there is a lad, too, below,” said Joceline ; Sa pave, he says, of Colonel Albert’s, whose bel ly rings cupboard too, and that to no common tune; for I think he could eat a horse, as the Yorkshireman says, behind the saddle. He had better 1?Scare APTA OTR ShibeeeasaALeL aaa NESSES Sasa NENA 5 216 WOODSTOCK. eat at the sideboard ; for he has devoured a whole loaf of bread and butter, as fast as Phoebe could cut it, and it has not staid his stomach for a minute—and truly I think you had bet- ter keep him under your own eyes, for the steward beneath might ask him troublesome questions if he went below—and then he is impatient as all your gentlemen pages are, and is saucy among the women.” “ Whom is it he talks of ?—what page hast thou got, Albert, that bears himself so ill?” said Sir Henry. “The son of a dear friend, a noble lord of Scotland, who followed the great Montrose’s banner—afterward joined the King in Scotland, and came with him as far as Worcester, He , and conjured mé to was wounded the day before the battle take this youth under my charge, which I did, something un- willingly ; but I could not refuse a father, perhaps on his death- bed, pleading for the safety of an only son,” ** Thou hadst deserved an hal Sir Henry; “ the smallest tree and it pleases me to think tl tally prostrate, but it ma ter hadst thou hesitated,” said can always give some shelter,— 1e old stock of Lee is not so to- y yet be a refuge for the distressed. Hetch the youth in -—he 4s. of noble blood, and these are no times of ceremony—he shall sit with us at the same table, page though he be; and if you have not schooled him handsomely in his manners, he may not be the worse of some lessons from me.” “ You will excuse his national drawling accent, sir?” said Albert, “ though I know you like it not.” ““ T have small cause, Albert,” answered the ] cause.—Who stirred up these disunions ?——the Scots. Who stengthened the hands of Parliament, when their cause was well nigh ruined ?—the Scots again. Who delivered up the King, their countryman, who had flung himself upon their protect‘on ?—the Scots again. But this lad’s father, you say, has fought on the part of the noble Montrose; and such a man as the great Marquis may make amends for the degeneracy of a whole nation.’ ‘ Nay, father,” said Albert, “ and this lad is uncouth and wa thing wilful, yet tl knight—“ small I must add, that though yward, and, as you will see, some- 1¢ King has nota more zealous friend in England; and. when occasion offered, he fought stoutly, too, in his defence—JI marvel he comes not.” > ie hath taken the bath,” said Joceline, “ and nothing less would serve than that ] 1e Should have it immediately—the supper, he said, might be got ready in the meantime: and he commands all about him as jf he were in his father’s old castle,WOODSTOCK. 217 where he might have called long enough, I warrant, without any one to hear him.” “Indeed?” said Sir Henry, “ this must be a forward chick of the game to crow so early——What is his name?” “ His name ?—it escapes me every hour, it is so hard a one,” said Albert—* Kerneguy is his name—Louis Kerneguy ; his father was Lord Killstewers, of Kincardineshire.” “Kerneguy, and Killstewers, and Kin—what d’ye call it? —* Truly? said the knight, “these northern men’s names and titles smack of their origin—they sound like a north-west wind, rumbling and roaring among heather and rocks.” ‘“ Itis but the asperities of the Celtic and Saxon dialects,” said Dr. Rochecliffe, “which, according to Verstegan, still linger in those northern parts of the island.—But peace—here comes supper, and Master Louis Kerneguy.” Supper entered accordingly, borne in by Joceline and Phcebe and after it, leaning on a huge knotty stick, and having his nose in the air like a questing hound—for his attention was apparently more fixed on the good provisions that went before him, than anything else—came Master Kerneguy, and seated himself, without much ceremony, at the lower end of the table. He was a tall, rawboned lad, with a shock head of hair, fiery red, like many of his country, while the harshness of his na- tional features was increased by the contrast of his complexion, turned almost black by the exposure to all sorts of weather, which, in that skulking and rambling mode of life, the fugitive royalists had been obliged to encounter. His address was by no means prepossessing, being a mixture of awkwardness and forwardness, and showing in a remarkable degree how a want of easy address may be consistent with an admirable stock of assurance. His face intimated having received some recent scratches, and the care of Dr. Rochecliffe had decorated it with a number of patches, which even enhanced its natural plain- ness. Yet the eyes were brilliant and expressive, and, amid his ugliness—for it amounted to that degree of irregularity— the face was not deficient in some lines which expressed both sagacity and resolution. The dress of Albert himself was far beneath his quality, as the son of Sir Henry Lee, and commander of a regiment in the royal service; but that of his page was still more dilapidated. A disastrous green jerkin, which had been changed toa hun- dred hues by sun and rain, so that the original could scarce be discovered, huge clouterly shoes, leathern breeches—such as were worn by hedgers—coarse gray worsted stockings, were the iC oe Peatver rere nen Merete yt218 WOODSTOCK. attire of the honorable youth, whose limping gait, while it added to the ungainliness of his manner, showed, at the same time, the extent of his sufferings, His appearance bordered so much upon what is vulgarly called the queer, that i with Alice it would have évattad some sense of ridicule, had not compassion been predominant. The grace was said, and the young squire of Ditchley, as well as Dr. Rochecliffe, made an excellent figure at a meal, the like of which, in quality and abundance, did. not seem to have lately fallen to their share. But their feats were child’s-play to those of the Scottish youth. Far from betra aying any symptoms of the bread and butter with which he had attempted to close the orifice of his stomach, his epee appeared to have been sharpened by a nine- -days’ fast; and the knight was disposed to think that the very genius of Eanttnié himself, come forth from his native regions of | the north, was in tl with a Visit, While. as if afraid of losing Master Kerneguy never looked a single word to any at table. “T am glad to see that you have brougl for our count try fare, young gentleman.” sa, id Sir Henry, “Bread of gude! sir, ” said the page, “an yell find flesh, I’se find appetite conformi Ing, one day o’ the year. But. the truth is, sir, that the appeteezement has been coming on for three days or four, and the meat in this Southland of yours has been scarce, and hard to come by ; so, sir, ’m making up for lost time, as the piper of Sligo ; said, when he ate a hail side 0’ mutton,’ 1ecactiof honoring him a moment’s exertion, either to right or left, or spoke it a good appetite ‘You have been cou ntry-bre¢ who, like others of his time. hel ticht over the rising generation ; youth of Scotland whom I have court in former days; they had less appetite, and more— more ’’—As he sought the qualifying phrase, which might sup- ply the place of “ good manners,” his guest closed the sentence in his ow n way—‘“ And more meat, it may be—the better luck theirs.’ l, young man,” said the knight, l the reins of ¢ discipline rather ‘at least, to judge from the seen at his late Maj Jesty’s Sir Henry stared and was silent. His son seemed to think it time to inter rpose—“ My dear father,” he said, “think how Many years have run since the Thirty-eight, when the Scottish troubles first began, and I am sure that you wil not wonder that, while the Barons of Scotland have been, for other, perpetual lly in the field, at home must h one cause or the education and Alice echoed, “ For God’s sake, no violence Ly ‘“No unnecessary violence atleast,” said the good knight; ‘for if the time demands it, I will have it seen that | am master of my own house.” Joceline Joliffe nodded assent to all parties, and went on tiptoe to cba ange one or two other mysterious symbols and knocks, ere he opened the-doorn sit may be here remarked, that this species of secret association, with its signals of union, existed among the more dissolute and desperate class of cav aliers, men h abituated to the dissipated life which they had been accustomed to in an ill-disciplined army, where everything like order and regularity was too apt to be accounted a badge > of puritanism. These were the “roar- ing boys”? who met in at lee alehouses, and when they had by any chance obtained a little money or a little credit, deter- mined to create a counter-revolution by declaring their sittings permanent, and proclaimed, in the words of one of their choicest ditties, — “We'll drink till we bring In triumph adh the king. ? The leaders and gentry, of a higher description and more regular morals, did not indeed partake such excesses, but they still kept their eye upon a class of persons, who, from courage and desperation, were capable of serving on an advantageous occasion the fallen cause of royalty ; and recorded the lodges and blind taverns at which they met, as wholesale merchants know the houses of call of the mechanics whom they may have occasion to employ, and can tell where they may find them when need requires. It is scarce necessary to add, that among the lower class, and sometimes even among the higher, there were men found capable of betraying the “projects and con- Spiracies of their associates, whether well or indifferently com- bined, to the governors of the state. Cromwell, in particular, had gained some correspondents of this kind of the highest rank, and of the most undoubted character, among the Toy- alists, who, if they made scruple of impeaching or betraying in: dividuals who confided in rene had no hesitation in giving theWOODSTOCK. 221 government such general information as served to enable him to disappoint the purposes of any plot or conspiracy. _ . Tofreturn to ours story. 71a much shorter time than we have spent in reminding the reader of these historical particu- lars, Joliffe had made his mystic communication; and being duly answered as by one of the initiated, he undid the door, and there entered our old friend Roger Wildrake, roundhead in dress, as his safety and his dependence on Colonel Everard compelled him to be, but that dress worn in a most cavalier: like manney, and forming a stronger contrast than usual with the demeanor and language of the wearer, to which it was never very congenial. His puritanic hat, the emblem of that of Ralpho in the prints to Hudibras, or, as he called it, his felt umbrella, was set most knowingly on one side of the head, as if it had been a Spanish hat and feather ; his straight square-caped sad-colored cloak was flung gayly upon one shoulder, as if it had been of three-piled taffeta, lined with crimsen silk ; and he paraded his huge calf-skin boots, as if they had been silken hose and Spanish leather shoes, with roses on the instep. In short, the airs which he gave himself, of a most thorough-paced wild gak lant and cavalier, joined to a glistening of self-satisfaction in his eye, and an inimitable swagger in his gait, which completely announced his thoughtless, conceited, and reckless character, formed a most ridiculous contrast to his gravity of attire. It could not, on the other hand, be denied, that in spite of the touch of ridicule which attached to his character, and the loose morality which he had learned in the dissipation of town pleasures, and afterward in the disorderly life of a soldier, Wild- rake had points about him both to make him feared and respect- ed. He was handsome, even in spite of his air of debauched effrontery ; a man of the most decided courage, though his vaunting rendered it sometimes doubtful; and entertained a sincere sense of his political principles, such 4s they were, though he was often so imprudent in asserting and boasting of them, as, joined with his dependence on Colonel Everard, in- duced prudent men to doubt his sincerity. Such as he was, however, he entered the parlor of Victor Lee, where his presence was anything but desirable to the par- ties present, with a jaunty step, and a consciousness of deserv- ing the best possible reception. This assurance was greatly aided by circumstances which rendered it obvious, that if the jocund cavalier had limited himself to one draught of liquor that evening, in terms of his vow of temperance, it must have been a very deep and long one. a B ; e S . - rr 8 aSeacze Macey HIERN SINTHStes..g cock GN TERRA ioens ee : . ee 222 WOODSTOCK. “Save ye, gentlemen, save ye.—Save you, good Sir Henry Lee, though I have scarce the honor to be known to you.u— Save you, worthy doctor, anda speedy resurrection to the fallen Church of England.” ‘You are welcome, sir,” said Sir Henry Lee, whose feelings of hospitality, and of the fraternal reception due to a royalist sufferer, induced him to tolerate this intrusion more than he might have done otherwise. “Tf you have fought or suffered for the King, sir, it is an excuse for joining us, and command- ing our services in anything in our power—although at present we are a family-party.—But I think I saw you in waiting upon Master Markham Everard, who calls himself Colonel Everard. —If your message is from him, you may wish to see me in private ?” ‘Not at all Sir Henry, not at all.—It is true, as my ill hap will have it, that being on the stormy side of the hedge—like all honest men—you understand me, Sir Henry—I am glad, as it were, to cain something from my old friend and comrade’s countenance—not by truckling or disowning my principles, sir —I defy such practice ;—but, in short, by doing him any kindness in my power when he is pleased to callon me. Sol] came down here with a message from him to that old round- headed son of a —— (I beg the young lady’s pardon from the crown of her head down to the very toes of her slipper)—And So, sir, chancing as I was stumbling out there ia the dark, I heard you give a toast, sir, which warmed my hecrt, sir, and ever will, sir, till death chills it;—and so I made bold to let you know there was an honest man within hearing.’ Such was the self-introduction of Master Wildrake, to which the knight replied, by a.!ing him to sit down, and take a glass of sack to his Majesty’s glorious restoration, Wildrake, at this hint, squeezed in without ceremony beside the young Scotsman, and not only pledged his landlord’s toast but seconded its im- port, by volunteering a verse or two of his favorite loyal ditty, The Kineshall enjoy his own again.” The heartiness which he threw into his song opened still further the heart of the old knight, though Albert and Alice looked at each other with looks resentful of the intrusion, and desirous to put an end to it. The honorable Master Kerneguy either possessed that happy indifference of temper which does not deign to notice such cir- cumstances, or he was able to assume the appearance of it to perfection, as he sat sipping sack, and cracking walnuts, without testifying the least sense that an addition had been made to the party. Wildrake, who liked the liquor and the company,WOODSTOCK. 224 showed no unwillingness to repay his landlord, by being at the expense of the conversation. “You talk of fighting and suffering, Sir Henry Lee. Lord help us, we have all had our share. All the world knows what Sir Henry Lee has done from Edgefield downward, wherever a loyal sword was drawn, or a loyal flag fluttered. Ah, God help us ! I have done something too. My name is Roger Wildrake of Squattleseamere, Lincoln; not that you are ever like to have heard it before, but I was captain in Lunsford’s light- horse, and afterward with Goring. I was a child-eater, sir—a babe-bolter.” ‘“‘T have heard of your regiment’s exploits, sir; and perhaps you may find I have seen some of them, if we should spend ten minutes together. And I think I have heard of your name too. I beg to drink your health, Captain Wildrake of Squattle- seamere, Lincolnshire.’ “‘Sir Henry, I drink yours in this pint bumper. and ee my knee; and I would do as much for that young gentleman ’ (looking at Albert)—‘ and the squire of the green cassock too, holding it for green, as the colors are not to my eyes altogether clear and listingui shable.’ [t was a re markable part of what is called by theatrical folk the by-play - this scene, that Albert was conversing apart with Dr. Rochecliffe in whis] pers, even more than the divine seemed desirous of encourag ing’; yet, to whatever their private conver- sation referred, it did not deprive the young Colonel of the power of listening to what was going forward in the party at large, and interfering from time to time, like a watch-dog, who can distinguish the slightest a alarm, even when employ ed in the 2 engrossing process of taking his food. “ Captain Wildrake,” said Albert, “‘ we have no objection—I mean, my friend and I—to be communicative on proper occa- sions ; but you, sir, who are so old a sufferer, must needs know, that at such casu: al meetings as this men do not mention their homes unless they are > specially wanted. It is a point of con- science, sir, to be able to say, if your principal, Captain Everard, or Colonel Everard, if he be a Colonel, should examine you upon oath, I did not know who the persons were whom I heard drink such and such toasts.” “Faith, I have a better way of it, worthy sir,” answered Wildrake ; “‘I never can, for the life of me, remember that there were any such and such toasts drunk at all. It’sastrange ift of forgetfulness I have: a Well, sir,” replied the younger Lee; ‘“ but we, who have 0Gre ret ratte => oir, J thank you for your courage—Sir, I am glad to see 224 WOODSTOCK, unhappily more tenacious memories, would willingly abide by the more general rule.” “Oh, sir,” answered Wildrake, “with all my heart. I in- trude on no man’s confidence, d—n me—and I only spoke for civility’s sake, having the purpose of drinking your health in a good fashion.” —(Then he broke forth into melody) — ‘“ Then let the health go round, a-round, a-round, a-round, Then let the health go round ; For though your stocking be of silk, Your knee shall kiss the ground, a-ground, a-ground, a-ground, Your knee shall kiss the ground,’ ” “Urge it no further,” said Sir Flenry, addressing his son ; ““ Master Wildrake is one of the old school—one of the tantivy boys ; and we must bear a little, for if they drink hard they fought well. I will never forget how a party came up and rescued us clerks of Oxford, as they called the regiment I belonged to, out of a cursed embroglio during the attack on Brentford. I tell you we were enclosed with the cockneys’ pikes both front and rear, and we should have come off but ill had not Lunsford’s light-horse, the babe-eaters as they called them, charged up to the pike s point, and brought us off.” “I am glad you thought on that, Sir Henry,” said Wildrake ; “and do you remember what the officer of Lunsford’s said ? ” » I think I do,” said Sir Henry smiling, “Well, then, d.d not he call out, when the women were coming down, howling like sirens as they were—‘ Have none of you a plump child that you could give us to break our fast upon ?’” “Truth itself!” said the knight; “anda great fat woman stepped forward with a baby, and offered it to the suppesed cannibal,” All at the table, Master Kerneguy excepted, who seemed to think that good food of any kind required no apology, held up their hands in token of amazement, SAY, Said Wildrake,. “the: a-hem!—I. crave -the lady’s pardon again, from tip of top-knot to hem of farthingale— but the cursed creature proved to be a parish nurse, who had been paid for the child half-a-year in advance. Gad, I took the babe out of the bitch-wolf’s hand, and I have contrived, though God knows I have lived in « skeldering sort of way myself, to breed up bold Breakfast, as I call him, ever since, It was paying dear for a jest, though,’ “Sir, I honor you for your humanity,” said the old knight,WOODSTOCK. oat you here,” oa the good knight, his eyes watering almost to overflowing. ue you were the wild officer who cut us out of the toils - oh, s , had you but stopped when I called on you, and allowed us to clear the streets of Brentford with our musketeers, we would have been at London Stone that day! 3ut your good will w as the same.’ f « Ay, truly was it,” said W aed who now sat triumphant and glorious in his easy-chair; ‘ and here is to all the brave hearts, sir, that fought and fell in that same storm of Brentford. We drove all before us like chaff, till the shops, where they sold strong waters, and other temptations, brought us up. Gad, sir, we, the babe-eaters, had too many acquaintances in Brentford, and our stout Prince Rupert was ever better at making way than fine off. Gad, sir, for my own poor share, I did but go into the house of a poor widow lady, who maintained a ch arge of daughters, and whom I had known of old, to get my horse fed, a morsel of meat, and so forth, when these cockney pikes of the artillery ground, as you very well call them, rallied, and came in with their armed heads, as boldly as so many Cotswold rams. I sprang down stairs, got to my but, egad, I fancy all my troop had widows and orphan maidens to comfort as well as I, for only five of us got together. We cut our way through successfully ; and, Gad, gentlemen, I carried my little Breakfast on the pommel before me; and there was such a hallooing and screeching, as if the whole town thought I was to kill, roast, and eat the poor child, so soon as I got to quarters. But devil a cockney charged up to my bonny bay, poor lass, to rescue little cake-breac d;t hey only cried haro, and out upon me.” “ Alas! alas!” said the knight,’ we made ourselves seem worse than we were; and we were too bad to deserve God’s blessing even in a good cause. But itis needless to look back —we did not deserve victories when God gave them, for we never improved them like good soldiers, or like Christian men ; and so we gave these canting scoundrels the advantage of us, for they assumed, out of mere hypocrisy, the discipline and orderly behavior which we who drew our swords in a better cause, ought to have practiced out of true principle. But here is my ‘hand, Captain. I have often wished to see the honest fellow who charged up so smartly in our behalf, and I rever- ence you for the care you took of the poor child. I am glad this dilapidated place has still some hospitality to offer you, ie we ee treat you to roasted babes or stewed suck lings— +h, Captain?” oe By Sir Henry, the scandal was sore against us on that score. I remember Lacy, who was an old play-actor, and aee ne 22 WOODSTOCK. lieutenant im ours, made drollery on it in a play which was sometimes acted at Oxford, when our hearts were something up, called, I think, the Old Troop.”* So saying, and feeling more familiar as his merits were known, he hitched his chair up against that of the Scottish lad, who was seated next him, and who, in shifting his place, was awkward enough to disturb, in his turn, Alice Lee, who sat opposite, and, a little offended, or at least embarrassed, drew her chair away from the table. ‘“‘T crave pardon,” said the honorable Master Kerneguy ; “but, sir,” to Master Wildrake, “ye hae e’en garr’d me hurt the young lady’s shank.” “‘T crave your pardon, sir, and much more that of the fair lady, as is reasonable ; though, rat me, sir, if it was I set your chair a trundling in that way. Zooks, sir, I have brought with me no plague, nor pestilence, nor other infectious disorder, that ye should have started away as if I had been a leper, and dis- composed the lady, which I would have prevented with my hfe, sir. Sir, if ye be northern born, as your tongue bespeaks, egad, it was I ran the risk in drawing near you; so there was small reason for you to bolt.” “Master Wildrake,” said Albert, interfering, “‘ this young gentleman is a stranger as well as you, under protection of Sir Henry’s hospitality, and it cannot be agreeable for my father to see disputes arise among his guests. You may mistake the young gentleman’s quality from his present appearance—this is the Honorable Master Louis Kerneguy, sir, son of my Lord Killstewers of Kincardineshire, one who has fought for the King, young as he is.” ‘No dispute shall rise through me, sir—none through me,” said Wildrake ; ‘“‘ your exposition sufficeth, sir—Master Louis Girnigo, son of my Lord Killsteer, in Gringardenshire, I am your humble slave, sir, and drink your health, in token that I honor you, and all true Scots who draw their Andrew Ferraras on the right side, sir.” ““T’se beholden to you, and thank you, sir,” said the young man, with some haughtiness of manner, which hardly corre- sponded with his rusticity ; ‘and I wuss your health in a ceevil way.” Most judicious persons would have here dropped the con- versation; but it was one of Wildrake’s marked peculiarities, that he could never let matters stand when they were well. He continued to plague the shy, proud, and awkward lad with his ’ * Note C. Cannibalism imputed to the Cavaliers.WOODSTOCK. observations, * You aor your national dialect pretty strongly, Master Girnigo,” said he, ‘‘ but I think not quite the language of th ie eallants that I fae known among the Scottish cavaliers —I kne 1ew, for example, some of the Gordons, and others of good repute, who always put an ffor the wh, as faat ‘for what, Jan for when, and the like.” Albert Lee here interposed, ve aid that che oe of Scotland, like those of England, ad ere different modes of pronunciation. “Vou are very right, sir,’ said Wildrake. ‘I reckon myself, now, a pretty good speaker of their cursed jargon—no offence, young gentleman ; and yet, \ when I took a turn with some of Montrose’ s folk, in the South Hielands, as they call their beastly wilderness (no offence again), I anced to be by myself, and to lose my way, when I said to a shepherd-fellow, making my mouth as wide, and my voice as broad as I could, where am J ganging tiii?—confound me if the fellow could answer me, unless, indeed, he was sulky, as the bumpkins will be now and 2 ? mag 4 : then to the gent he sword. This was familiarly spoken, and though partly addressed to Albert, was still more directed to his immediate neighbor, the young Scotsman, who se emed from bashfulness, or some othe reason, rather shy of Bis timacy. To one or two personal touches from Wildrake’s aie administered during his last speech, by way of practical appeal to him in part! icular, he only answered, ‘Misut ider: standing xs were to be expected ee men CONVETSE in nation: il dee ¢ alects.’ ] Caen BR eet Wildrake, now considerably than he ought to have ate 1 : = Beet teed cs e been in civil company, caught at the phrase, and repeated 1t :— “ Misunderstanding, TEE TEE nde rseuaine sir?-I do not know how I am to construe that, sir; but to judge from the information of these scratches on your honorable visnomy, I uld augur that you had been of late at misunderstanding with the cat, sir?” “ Vou are mistaken, then, friend, for it was with t answered the Scotsman, dryly, and cast a look tow: ard Albert. ‘We had some trouble with the watch-c dogs in enterin s SO late in the evening,” said Albert, in explanation, “and this youth had a fall among some rubbish, by which he came by these scratches.’ ‘And now, dear Sir Henry,” said Dr. Roch ecliffe, ‘* allow us to remind you of your gout, and our fee: journey. I doit ‘ather 1 ties my good friend your son has been, during the supper, putting questions to me aside, which had at a 1 I sy 2 ENG do wg, by i . ene - ‘ . Rewer tat Str esoFMA aens eee FEaSAEA MRAM a8 WOODSTOCK. much better be reserved till to-morrow—May we therefore ask permission to retire to our night’s rest ?” “These private committees in a merry meeting,” said Wildrake, “are a solecism in breeding. They always put me in mind ‘of the cursed committees at Westminster.—But shall we to roost before we rouse the night-owl with a catch ?” “Aha, canst thou quote Shakspeare?”’ said Sir Henry, pleased at discovering a new good qual whose military services were otherwise but just able to coun- terbalance the intrusive freedom of his conversation, “ In the name of merry Will,” he continued,—whom I never saw, though I have seen many of his comrades, as Alleyn, Hemmings, and so on——we will have a single catch, and one rose about, and then to bed.” After the usual discussion about the choice of the song, and the parts which each was to bear, they united their voices in trolling a loyal glee, which was popular among the party at the time, and in fact believed to be composed by no less a person than Dr. Rochecliffe himself. ity in his acquaintance, GLEE FOR KING CHARLES Bring the bowl which you boast, Though he wanders through dangers, Fill it up to the brim : Unaided, unknown, ’Tis to him we love most, Dependent on strangers, And to all who love him, Estranged from his own ; Brave gallants, stand up, Though ’tis under our breath, And avaunt, ye base carles ! Amidst forfeits and perils, Were there death in the cup, Here’s to honor and faith, Here’s a health to King Charles ' And a health to King Charles ! Let such honors abound As the time can afford, The knee on the ground, And the hand on the sword : But the time shall come round, When, ’mid Lords, Dukes, and Earls, The loud trumpets shall sound Here’s a health to King Charles ! After this display of loyalty, anda final | took leave of each other for the night. old acquaintance Wildrake a bed for the the matter somewhat in this fashion: ‘¢ Why, to speak truth, my patron will expect me at the borough—but then he is used to my staying out of doors a-nights. Then there’s the devil, that they say haunts Woodstock : but with the blessing of this reverend Doctor, | defy him and all his works—I saw him not ibation, the party Sir Henry offered his evening, who weighedWOODSTOCK. 229 when I slept here twice before, and I am sure if he was absent then, he has not come back with Sir Henry Lee aad his family. so I accept your courtesy, Sir Henry, and I thank you, as a cavalier of Lunsford should thank one of the fighting clerks of Oxon, God" bless the Hing) « fcare nee who hears it, and confusion to Noll and his nose!” Off he went accordingly with a bottle-swagger, guided by Joceline, to whom Albert, in the meantime, had whispered to be sure to quarter him fat enough from the rest of the family. Young Lee then saluted his sister, and, with the formality of those times, asked and received his father’s blessing with an affectionate embrace. His page seemed desirous to imitate one part of his example, but was repelled by Alice, who only replied to his offered salute with a courtesy. He next bowed his head in an awkward fashion to her father, who wished him a good night. “Iam glad to see, young man,” he said, ‘‘ that you have at least learned the reverence due to age. It should always be paid, sir; because in doing so you render that honor to others which you will expect yourself to receive when you approach the close of your life. More will I speak with you at leisure, onggour duties as a page, which office in former days used to be ye very school of chivalry ; whereas of late, by the disorderly times, it has become lttle better than a school of wild and disordered license ; which made rare Ben Jonson exclaim”’ “ Nay, father,” said Albert, interposing, “ you must consider this day’s fatigue, and the poor lad is almost asleep on his legs __to-morrow he will listen with more profit to your kind admo- nitions.—And you, Louis, remember at least one part of your luty—take the candles and light us—here Joceline comes to show us the way. Once more, good night, good Dr. Rochecliffe °C ” . —good night, all CH APTER TWENTY-FIRST. Groom. ail, noble prince ! King Richard. Thanks, noble peer The cheapest of us is a groat too dear. RrcHarp IT, ALBert and his page were ushered by Joceline to what was called the Spanish Chamber, a huge old scrambling bedroom, rather in a dilapidated condition, but furnished with a large standing-bed for the master, and a truckle-bed for the domestic, ayanaaretabninsaNg on eeaen en eae en WOODSTOCK, 230 S was common at a much later period in old English houses, where the gentlemen often required the assistance of a sroom of the chambers to help him to bed, if the hospitality had been exuberant. ‘The walls were covered with hangings of cordovan leather, a with gold, and representing firhts between the Spaniards and \ Moriscoes, bull- feasts, and other sports peculiar to the Peninsula, from which it took its name of the Spanish Chamber. These hangings were in some places entirely torn down, in others defaced and hanging in tatters. But Albert stopped 1 ot to make observations, anxious, it seemed, to get Joceline out of the room ; which he achieved by hastily answer- ing his offers of fresh fuel, and more liquor, in the negative and returning, with equal conciseness, the under-kee per’s aia wishes for the evening. He at length retired, somew hat unwill- ingly, and as if he thought that his young master might have bestowed a few more words upon a faithful old retainer after so long absence. Joliffe was no sooner gone, than, before a single word was spoken between Albert Lee and his page, the former hastened to the door, examined lock, latch, and bolt, and made them fast, with the most scrupulous attention. He superadded to these precautions that of a long screw-bolt, which he brought out of his pocket, and which he screwed on to the staple in such a manner as to render it impossible to withdraw it, or open the door oe by breaking it down. The page held a light to bim during the operation, which his master went through with much exactness and dext terity. But when Albert arose from his knee, mn which he had rested during the accomplishment of this task, the manner of the companions was on the sudden entirely changed toward each other. The honorable Master Kerneguy, from a cubbish lout of a raw Scotchman, seemed to have ac- quired at once all the grace and ease of motion and manner, which could be given by an acquaintance of the earliest and most familiar kind with the best company of the time. He gave the light he held to Albert with the easy indiffer- Bnce of a superior, who rather graces than troubles his depend: ant by giving him some slight service to perform. Albert, with the greatest appearance of deference, assumed in his turn the character of torch-bearer, and lighted his page across the cham- ber, without turning his back upon him ashe did so. He then set the light on the table by the bedside, and approaching the young man with deep reverence, received from him the soiled green jacket, with the same profound respect as if he had been a first lord of the bedchamber, or other officer of the household of the highest distinction, disrobing his Sovereign of the MantleWOODSTOCK. 231 of the Garter. The person to whom this ceremony was ad- dressed endured it for a minute or two with profound gravity, then bursting out a-laughing, exclaimed to Albert, “What a devil means all this formality ?—thou complimentest with these miserable rags as if they were silks and sables, and with poor Louis Kerneguy as if he were the King of Great Britain !’ “ And if your Majesty’s commands, and the circumstances of the time, have made me for a moment seem to forget that you are my sovereign, surely I may be permitted to render my homage as such while you are in your own royal palace of Woodstock ? “Truly,” replied the disguised Monarch, “the sovereign and the palace are not ill-matched ;—these tattered hangings and my ragged jerkin suit each other admirably.— Z/is W ‘oodstock ! this the bower where the royal Norman reveled with the fair Rosamond Clifford !—Why, it is a place of assignation for owls!” Then, suddenly recollecting himself, with his natural BOUTESy; he added, as if fearing he might have hurt Albert’s feelings—‘ But the more obscure and retired, it is the fitter for our purpose, Lee; and if it does seem to bea roost for owls, as there is no denying, why we know it has nevertheless brought up eagles. He threw himself as he spoke upon a chair, and indolently but gracefully, received the kind offices of Albert, who undid G the coarse buttonings of the leathern gamashes which defended his legs, and spoke to him the whilst :—‘“ What a fine specimen of the olden times is your father, Sir Henry ! It is strange I should not have seen him before ; but I heard my father often speak of him as being among the flower of our real old Eng- lish gentry. By the mode in which he began to school me, 1 can guess you h rad a tight taskmaster of him, Albert—I w arrant you never wore hat in his presence, ebi ny “T never cocked it at least in his presence, please your Majesty, as I have seen some youngsters do,” answered AAEM; ‘indeed, if I had, it must have been a stout beaver to have saved me from a broken head.” “ Oh, I doubt it not,” replied the King ; “a fine old gentle- man—but with that, methinks, in his ¢ sountenance, that assures you he w ould not hate the c hild in sparing the rod.—Hark ye, Albert—Suppose the same glorious Restoration come round— which, if drinking to its arriv al can hasten it, should not be far distant,—for in “that particular our adherents never neglect their duty,—suppose it come, therefore, and that thy father, as must be of course, becomes an Earl and one of the Privy f ye ¥ sibeeae =v EAE Eas Sree eee er eer trot ae 2eehyaapananabbiesa seemsKy - . RetiSanastitenian nasser ee PSRs Lineeaniokanetaasiaaiaenssoneesseeees) miey these waceess <3 23 | WOODSTOCK. Council, oddsfish, man, I shall be as much afraid of him ag ever was my grandfather Henri Quatre of old Sully.—Imagine there was such a trinket now about the Court as the Fair Rosamond, or La Belle Gabrielle, what a work there would be of pages, and grooms of the chamber, to get the pretty rogue clandestinely shuffled out by the backstairs, like a prohibited commodity, when the step of the Earl of Woodstock was heard in the antechamber!” "Tam glad to see your Majesty so merry after your fatigu- ing journey.” “The fatigue was nothing, man,” said Charles; “a kind welcome and a good meal made amends for all that, But they must have suspected thee of bringing a wolf from the braes of Badenoch along with you, instead of a two-legged being, with no more than the usual allowance of mortal stowage for provi- sions. I was really ashamed of my appetite; but thou know- est I had eat nothing for twenty-four hours save the raw egg you stole for me from the old woman’s hen-roost-—I tell thee I blushed to show myself so ravenous before that high-bred and respectable old gentleman your father, and the very pretty girl your sister—or cousin, is she?” ‘She is my sister,” said Albert Lee, dryly, and added, in the same breath, ‘ Your Majesty’s appetite suited well enough with the character of a raw northern lad.—Would your Majesty now please to retire to rest?” ‘Not for a minute or two,” said the King, retaining his seat. “Why, man I have scarce had my tongue unchained to-day ; and to talk with that northern twang, and besides the fatigue of being obliged to speak every word in character,—Gad, it’s like walking as the galley-slaves do on the Continent, with a twenty-four pound shot chained to their legs—they may drag it along, but they cannot move with comfort. And, by the way, thou art slack in paying me my well-deserved tribute of compli- ments on my counterfeiting.—Did I not play Louis Kerneguy as round as a ring?” ( “If your Majesty asks my serious opinion, perhaps I may be forgiven if I say your dialect was somewhat too coarse for Scottish youth of |} too churlish, ful—that genuine.” a uigh birth, and your behavior perhaps a little I thought too—though I pretend not to be skil- some of your Scottish sounded as if it were not “Not genuine ?—there is no pleasing thee, Albert.—Why, who should speak genuine Scottish but myself ?.Was I not their King fora matter of ten months? and if I did not get knowledge of their language, I wonder what else I got by it. Did not eastWOODSTOCK. 233 country, and south country, and west country, and Highlands, caw, croak, and shriek about me, as the deep guttural, the broad drawl, and the high sharp yelp ‘redone “by turns ?—Odds- fish, man, have I not been speeched at by their orators, ad- dressed by their senators, rebuked by their ‘kirkmen? Have I not sat on the cutty-stool, mon [again assuming the northern dialect], and thought it grace of w orthy Mas John Gillespie, that I was permitted to do penance in mine own privy chamber, instead of the face of the congregation? and wilt thou tell me, after all, that I cannot speak Scotch enough to baffle an Oxon Knight and his family?” May it please your Majesty,—I began by saying I was no judge of the Scottish language. ‘“‘ Pshaw—it is mere envy; just so you said at Norton’s that I was too courteous and civil for a young Dee you think me too rude. ‘“‘ And there is a medium, if one could find it,” said Albert, defending his opinion in the same tone in which the King at- tacked him; “‘so this morning, when you were in the woman’s dress, you raised your petticoats rather unbecomingly high, as you waded through the first little stream; and when I told you of it, to mend the matter, yow draggled through the next without raising them at all.” “O, the devil take the woman’s dress!” said Charles; “I hope I shall never be driven to that disguise again. Why, my ugly face was enough to put gowns, caps, and kirtles, out of fashion forever—the very dogs fled from me—Had I passed any hamlet that had but five huts in it, I could not have escaped the cucking-stool.—I was a libel on womanhood. These leathern conveniences are none of the gayest, but they are propria gue maribus; and right glad am I to be repossessed of them. I can tell you too, my friend, I shall resume all my masculine privileges with my proper habiliments; and as you say I have been too coarse to night, I will behave myself h ke a courtier to Mistress Alice to-morrow. I made a sort of acquaintance with her already, when I seemed to be of the same sex with herself, and found out there are other Colonels in the wind besides you, Colonel Albert Lee.” “May it please your Majesty,” said Albert—and then stopped short, from the difficulty of finding words to express the un- pleasant nature of his feelings. They could not escape Charles ; but he proceeded without scruple. ‘I pique myself on seeing as far into the hearts of young ladies as most folk, though God knows they are sometimes too deep for the wisest of us. But I mentioned to your sister in my character of fortune-teller,—: Bates ae onl ee SSnaheees ahdbeckaheengntey wabunoes a 234 WOODSTOCK. thinking, poor simple man, that a country girl must have no one but her brother to dream about,—that she was anxious about a certain Colonel. I had hit the theme, but not the person ; for I alluded to you, Albert ; and I presume the blush was too deep ever to be given to a brother. So up she got, and away she flew from me like a lapwing. I can excuse her—for, look- ing at myself in the well, I think if I had met such a creature as I seemed, I should have called fire and fagot against it.—Now, what think you, Albert—who can this Colonel be, that more than rivals you in your sister’s affection >” Albert, who well knew that the King’s mode of thinking, where the fair sex was concerned, was far more gay than delicate, endeavored to put a stop to the present topic by a grave answer. ‘‘ His sister,” he said, “‘had been in some measure educated with the son of her maternal uncle, Markham Everard; but as his father and he himself had adopted the cause of the round- heads, the families had in consequence been at variance ; and any projects which might have been formerly entertained were of course long since dismissed on all sides.” “You are wrong, Albert, you are wrong,” said the King, pitilessly pursuing his jest. ‘ You Colonels, whether you wear blue or orange sashes, are too pretty fellows to be dismissed so easily, when once you have acquired an interest. But Mistress Alice, so pretty, and who wishes the restor ‘tion of the King with such a look and accent, as if she were an angel whose prayers must needs bring it down, must not be allowed to retain any thoughts of a canting roundhead—What say you—will you give me leave to take her to task about it ?—After all, I am the party most concerned in maintaining true allegiance among my sub- jects; andif I gain the pretty maiden’s good will, that of the sweetheart will soon follow. This was jolly King Edward’s way —Edward the Fourth, you know. The king-making Earl of Warwick—the Cromwell of his day—dethroned him more than once; but he had the hearts of the merry dames of London, and the purses and veins of the cockneys bled freely, till they brought him home again. How say you ?—shall I shake off my northern slough, and speak with Alice in my own character, showing what education and manners have done for me, to make the best amends they can for an ugly face ?” “May it please your Majesty,” said Albert, in an altered and embarrassed tone, “I did not expect 7? ée Here he stopped, not able to find words adequate at the same time to express his sentiments, and respectful enough to the King, while in his father’s house, and under his own protection.WOODSTOCK. & And what is it that Master Lee does not expect?” said Charles with marked gravity on his part. Again Albert attempted a reply, but advanced no further than, “ I would hope, if it please your Majesty,—when he again stopped short, his deep and hereditary respect for his sovereign, and his sense of the hospitality due to his misfortunes, prevent- ing his giving utterance to his irritated feelings. « And what does Colonel Albert Lee hope?” said Charles in the same dry and cold manner -n which he had before spoken.— “No answet ?——Now, J Aope that Colonel Lee does not see in a silly jest anything offensive to the honor of his family, since methinks that were an indifferent compliment to his sister, his father, and himself, not to mention Charles Stewart, whom he calls his King ; and / expect, that I shall not be so hardly con- strued, as to be supposed capable of forgetting that Mistress Alice Lee is the daughter of my faithful subject and host, and the sister of my guide and preserver.—Come, come, Albert,” he added, changing at once to his naturally frank and unceremo- nious manner, ‘ you forget how long I have been abroad, where men, women, and children, talk gallantry morning, noon, and serious thought than just to pass away the and 1 forgot, too, that you at of the old-fashioned English school, a son after Sir Henry’s own heart, and don’t understand raillery upon such subjects.—But Task your pardon, Albert, sincerely, if I have really hurt you.” So saying, he extended his hand to Colonel Lee, who, feeling he had been rather too hasty in construing the K nse, kissed it with reverence, and attempted an i night, with no more time ; ing’s jest in an un pleasant se apology. “ Not a worc good-natured Prince, Ix Swe Fay = i—not a word,” said the raising his penitent adherent as he attempted to knee understand each other. You are somewhat afraid of the gay reputation which I acquired in Scotland; but I assure you, I will be as stupid as you or your cousin Colonel could desire, in presence of Mistress Alice Lee, and only bestow my gallantry, should I have any to throw away, upon the pretty little waiting- maid who attended at supper—unless you should have mono- polized her ear for your own benefit, Colonel Albert ? iH “Jt is monoplized, sure enough, though not by me, if it please your Majesty, but by Joceline J oliffe. the under-keeper, whom we must not disoblige, as we have trusted him so far al- ready, and may h ave occasion to repose evel entire confidence ‘in him. I half think he suspects who Louis Kerneguy may 10 reality be.” , : rye 2799 “Vou are an engrossil odstock, a Sek, your avederts of Wo; : es ais ant beoaassemires Seinen een FR Sesame ond aT ‘ x 236 WOODSTOCK. said the King, laughing. “Now, if Ihada fancy, as a French- man would not fail to have in such a case, to make pretty speeches to the deaf old woman I saw in the kitchen, as a pis- aller, dare say I should be told that Aer ear was engrossed for Dr. Rochecliffe’s sole use ?” “I marvel at your Majesty’s good spirits,” said Albert, “that, after a day of danger, fatigue, and accidents, you should feel the power of amusing yourself thus.” “ That is to say, the groom of the chamber wishes his Maj- esty would go to sleep?—Well, one,word or two on more serious business, and I have done—I have been completely directed by you and Rochecliffe—I have changed my disguise from female to male upon the instant, and altered my desti- nation from Hampshire to take shelter here—Do you still hold it the wiser course ? ” ‘I have great confidence in Dr, Rochecliffe,” replied Albert, ‘whose acquaintance with the scattered royalists enables him to gain the most accurate intelligence. His pride in the extent of his correspondence, and tl 1e€ complication of his plots and schemes for your Majesty’s service is indeed the very food he lives upon ; but his Sagacity is equal to his vanity. besides, the utmost faith in Joliffe. would say nothing; yet I would not, without reason, extend the knowledge of your Majesty’s person further than it is indis- pensably necessary.” “Is it handsome in me,” said Charles, pausing, “ to with hold my full confidence from Sir Henry Lee?” “Your Majesty heard of his almost death-swoon of last night—what would agitate him most deeply must not be hastily communicated.” I repose, Of my father and sister J “ True; but are we safe from a visit of the red-coats—they have them in Woodstock as well as in Oxford?” said Charles, ‘** Dr. Rochecliffe Says, not unwisely,” answered Lee, “ that it is best sitting near the fire when the chimney smokes; and that Woodstock, so lately in possession of the sequestrators, and still in the vicinity of the soldiers, will be less suspected, and more carelessly searched, than more distant corners which might seem to promise more safety. Besides,” he added, *“* Roche- cliffe is in possession of curious and important news concerning the state of matters at Woodstock, highly favorable to your Majesty’s being concealed in the palace for two or three days, till shipping is provided, The Parliament, or usurping Council of State, had sent down sequestrators, whom their own: evi] conscience, assisted, perhaps, by the tricks of some daring cav: aliers, had frightened out of the Lodge, without much desireWOODSTOCK. 237 to come backagain. Then the more formidable usurper, Crom- well, had granted a warrant of possession to Colonel Everard, who had only used it for the purpose of repossessing his uncle in the Lodge, and who kept watch in person at the little bor- ough, to see that Sir Henry was not disturbed.” “What! Mistress Alice’s Colonel?” said the King—*“ that sounds alarming -—for grant that he keeps the other fellows at bay, think you aot, Master Albert, he will have an hundred errands a-day to bring him here in person?” ‘Dr. Rochecliffe says,” answered Lee, “the treaty between Sir Henry and his nephew binds. the latter not to approach the Lodge, unless invited ; ;—indeed, it was not without great diffi- culty, and strongly arguing the good consequences it might produce to your Maj esty’s cause, “th at my father could be pre- vailed on to occupy W oodstock at all: but be assured he will be in no hurry to send an invitation to the Colonel.” ‘““And be you assured that the Colonel will come without waiting for one,” said Charles. “ Folk cannot judge rightly where sisters are concerned—they are too familiar with the mag- net to judge of its powers and attraction—Everard will be here, as if drawn by cart-ropes—fetters, not to talk of promises, will not hold him—and then, methinks, we are in some danger.” ‘““T hope sae said Albert. “In the first place, I know Markham is a slave to his word ; besides, were any chance to bring him here, I think I could pass your SLANE upon him vithout difficulty, as Louis Kerneguy. Then, although my cousin and I have not been on good terms for these some years, 1 believe him incapable of betra aying your Majesty; and lastly, if I saw the least oe of - 1, T would, were he ten times the son of my mother’s sister, run my sword through his body, ere he had time to execute his purpose.” “There is but another question,” said Charles, ‘‘ and I will release you, Albert :—You seem to think yourself secure from search. It may be so; but, in any other country, this tale of eoblins which is flying anor would bring down priests and ministers of justice to examine the reality of the story, and mobs of idle eoale to satisfy their curiosity.” ‘Respecting the first, sir, we hope and understand that Colonel Everard’s influence will prevent any immediate inquiry, for the sake of preserving undisturbed the peace of his uncle’s family ; and as for any one coming without some sort of autho- rity, the whole neighbors have so much love and fear of my father and are, besides, so horribly alarmed about the goblins of Woodstock, aha fear will silence curiosity.” “On the whole, then,” said Charles, ‘‘the chances of safety .Maa sere erin set ahaa eee eee va WOODSTOCK. seem to be in favor of the plan we have adopted, which is all I can hope for in a condition where absolute safety is out of the question. ‘The Bishop recommended Dr. Rochecliffe as one of the most ingenious, boldest, and most loyal sons of the Church of England; you, Albert Lee, have marked your fidelity by a hundred proofs. ‘To you and your local knowledge I sub- mit myself.—And now prepare our arms—alive I will not be taken ; yet I will not believe that a son of the King of England, and heir of her throne, could be destined to danger in his own palace, and under the guard of the loyal Lees.” Albert Lee laid pistols and swords in readiness by the King’s bed and his own; and Charles, after some slight apol- ogy, took his place in the larger and better bed, with a sigh of pleasure, as from one who had not lately enjoyed such an in- dulgence. He bid good night to his faithful attendant, who deposited himself on his truckle; and both monarch and sub- ject were soon fast asleep. CHAPTER TWENTY-SECOND. Give Sir Nicholas Threlkeld praise ; Hear it, good man, old in days, Thou tree of succor and of rest To this young bird that was distress’d; Beneath thy branches he did stay ; And he was free to sport and play, When falcons were abroad for prey. WORDSWORTH. THE fugitive Prince slept, in spite of danger, with the pro- found repose which youth and fatigue inspire. But the young cavalier, his guide and guard, spent a more restless night, start- ing from time to time, and listening; anxious, notwithstanding Dr. Rochecliffe’s assurances, to procure yet more particular knowledge concerning the state of things around them, than he had been yet able to collect. He rose early after daybreak ; but although he moved with as little noise as was possible, the slumbers of the hunted Prince were easily disturbed. He started up in his bed, and asked if there was any alarm. ‘“None, please your Majesty,” replied Lee; “ only, think- ing on the questions your Majesty was asking last night, and the various chances there are of your Majesty’s safety being endangered from unforeseen accidents, I thought of going thusWOODSTOCK. early, both to communicate with Dr. Rochecliffe, and to keep such a look-out as befits the place, where are lodged for the time the fortunes of England. I fear I must request of your Majesty, for your own gracious security, that you have the soodness to condescend to secure the door with your own hand after I go out.” “Oh, talk not to Majesty, for Heaven’s sake, dear Albert!” answered the poor King, endeavoring in vain to put on a part of his clothes, in order to traverse the room.—“ When a King’s doublet and hose are so ragged that he can no more find his way into them than he could have traveled through the forest of Deane without a guide, good faith, there should be an end of Majesty, until it chances to be better accommodated. Be- sides. there is the chance of these big words bolting out at unawares, when there are ears to hear them whom we might think dangerous.” “ Your commands shall be obeyed,” said Lee, who had now succeeded in opening the door, from which he took his depart- ure, leaving the King, who had hustled along the floor for that purpose, with his dress wofully ill arranged, to make it fast again behind him, and begging him in no case to open to any one, unless he or Rochecliffe were of the party who summoned him. Albert then set out in quest of Dr. Rochecliffe’s apartment, which was only known to himself and the faithful Joliffe, and had at different times accommodated that steady churchman with a place of concealment, when, from his bold and busy temper, which led him ‘nto the most extensive and hazardous machinations on the King’s behalf, he had been strictly sought after by the opposite party. Of late, the inquest after him had died entirely away, as he had prudently withdrawn himself from the scene of his intrigues. Since the loss of the battle of Worcester, he had been afloat again, and more active than ever ; and had, by friends and correspondents, and especially the Bishop of , been the means of directing the King’s flight toward Woodstock, although it was not until the very day of his arrival that he could promise him a safe reception at that ancient mansion. Albert Lee, though he revered both the undaunted spirit and ready resources of the bustling and intriguing churchman, felt he had not been enabled by him to answer some ob Charles’s questions yesternight, in a way so distinct as one trusted with the King’s safety ought to have done; and it was now his object to make himself personally acquainted, if possible, with the various bearings of so weighty a matter, asPsa es aniston RSS aS 240 WOODSTOCK. became a man on whom so much of the responsibility was likely to descend. Even his local knowledge was scarce adequate to find the Doctor’s secret apartment, had he not traced hi genial flavor of roasted game through divers blind passages, and up and down certain very useless stairs, through cupboards and hatchways, and so forth, to a species of sanctum sanctorum, where Joceline Joliffe was ministering to the good Doctor a solemn breakfast of wild-fowl, with a cup of small beer stirred with a sprig of Rosemary, which Dr. Rochecliffe preferred to all strong potations. Beside him sat Bevis on his tail, slobbering and looking amiable, moved by the rare smell of the breakfast, which had quite overcome his native dignity of disposition. The chamber in which the Doctor had established himself was a little octangular room, with walls of great thickness, within which were fabricated various issues, leading in different directions, and communicating with different parts of the build- ing. Around him were packages with arms, and near him one small barrel, as it seemed, of gunpowder; many papers in different parcels, and several keys for correspondence in cipher ; wo or three scrolls covered with hieroglyphics were also beside him, which Albert took for plans of nativity; and various models of machinery, in which Dr. Rochecliffe was an adept. There were also tools of various kinds, masks, cloaks, and a dark lantern, and a number of other indescribable trinkets, be- longing to the trade of a daring plotter in dangerous times, Last, there was a casket with gold and silver coin of different countries, which was left carelessly open, as if it were the least of Dr. Rochecliffe’s concern, although his habits in general announced narrow circumstances, if not actual poverty. Close by the divine’s plate lay a Bible and Prayer-book, with some proof-sheets, as they are technically called, seemingly fresh from the press. There were also within the reach of his hand a dirk, or Scottish poniard, a powder-horn, and a musketoon, or blunderbuss, with a pair of handsome pocket-pistols. In th midst of this miscellaneous collection the Doctor sat eating hi breakfast with great appetite, as little dismayed with the various implements of danger around him, as a workman is when accustomed to the perils of a gunpowder mauufactory. “Soh, young gentleman,” he said. getting up, and extending his hand, “are you come to breakfast. with me in good fellow- ship, or to spoil my meal this morning, as you did my supper last night, by asking untimely questions ? ” “Twill pick a bone with you with all my heart,” said Albert ; S way after a cS >WOODSTOCK. 2At ‘Cand if you please, Doctor, I would ask some questions which seem not quite untimely.” So saying, he sat down and assisted the Doctor in giving a very satisfactory account of a brace of wild ducks and a leash of teal. Bevis, who maintained his place with great patience and insinuation, had his share of a collop, which was also placed on the well-furnished board; for, like most high-bred dogs, he declined eating water-fowl. “Come hither, then, Albert Lee,” said the Doctor, laying down his knife and fork, and plucking the towel from his throat, so soon as Joceline was withdrawn; “thou art still the same lad thou wert when I was thy tutor—never satisfied with having got a grammar rule, but always persecuting me with questions why the rule stood so, and not otherwise—over curious after information which thou couldst not comprehend, as Bevis slobbered and whined for the duck-wing, which he could not eat.” ‘“ Thope you will find me more reasonable, Doctor,” answered Albert; “and, at the same time, that you will recollect I am not now szb_feruda, but am placed in circumstances where I am not at liberty to act upon the gse dixit of any man, unless my own judgment be convinced. I shall deserve richly to be hanged, drawn, and quartered, should any misfortune happen by my misgovernment in this business.” ‘‘ And it is therefore, Albert, that I would have thee trust the whole to me, without interfering. Thou sayest, forsooth, thou art not szb ferula ; but recollect that while you have been fighting in the field, I have been plotting in the study—that | know all the combinations of the King’s friends, ay, and all the motions of his enemies, as well as a spider knows every mesh of his web. Think of my experience, man. Not a cavalier in the land but has heard of Rochecliffe the Plotter. I have been a main limb in everything that has been attempted since forty- two—penned declarations, conducted correspondence, com- municated with chiefs, recruited followers, commissioned arms, levied money, appointed rendezvouses. I was in the Western Rising ; and before that, in the City Petition, and in Sir John Owen’s stir in Wales; in short, almost in every plot for the King since Tomkins and Challoner’s matter.” “ But were not all these plots unsuccessful?” said Albert ; “ and were not Tomkins and Challoner hanged, Doctor ?” ‘Ves, my young friend,” answered the Doctor, gravely, CaS many others have been with whom I have acted; but only because they did not follow my advice implicitly. You never heard that I was hanged myself.”Se ee staat a bo 2A? WOODSTOCK. “The time may come, Doctor,” said Albert; “ the pitcher goes oft to the well—The proverb, as my father would say, is somewhat musty. But I, too, have some confidence in my own judgment; and, much as I honor the Church, I cannot alto- gether subscribe to passive obedience. I will tell you in one word what points I must have explanation on; and it will remain with you to give it, or to return a message to the King that you will not explain your plan; in which case, if he acts by my advice, he will leave Woodstock, and resume his purpose of getting to the coast without delay.” “Well, then,” said the Doctor, “thou suspicious monster, make thy demands, and, if they be such as I can answer with- out betraying confidence, I will reply to them.” ‘In the first place, then, what is all this story about ghosts, and witchcrafts, and apparitions ? and do you consider it as safe tor his Majesty to stay in a house subject to such visitations, real or pretended ?” “You must be satisfied with my answer zz verbo sacerdotis— the circumstances you allude to will not give the least annoy- ance to Woodstock during the King’s residence. I cannot explain further; but for this I will be bound, at the risk of my neck.” “"Then,” said Lee, “ we must take Dr. Rochecliffe’s bail that the devil will keep the peace toward our Sovereign Lord the King—good. Now, there lurked about this house the greater part of yesterday, and perhaps slept here, a fellow c oe called Tomkins—a bitter Independent, and a secretary or lerk, or something or other, to the regicide dog Desborough. The man is well known—a wild ranter in religious opinions, but in private affairs far-sighted, cunning and interested, even as any rogue of them all.” ‘Be assured we will avail ourselves of his crazy fanaticism to mislead his wicked cunning ;—a child may lead a hog if it has wit to fasten a cord to the ring in its nose,” replied the Doctor. “You may be deceived,” said Albert; ‘“‘ the age has many such as this fellow, whose views of the spiritual and temporal world are so different, that they resemble the eyes of a squint- ing man; one of which, oblique and distorted, sees nothing but the end of his nose, while the other, instead of partaking the same defect, views strongly, sharply, and acutely, whatever is subjected to its scrutiny.” ‘‘ But we will put a patch on the better eye,” said the Doc tor, “and he shall only be allowed to speculate with the imper- fect optic You must know, this fellow has always seen theWOODSTOCK. 243 greatest number, and the most hideous apparitions ; he has not the courage of a cat in such matters, though stout enough when he hath temporal antagonists before him. I have placed him under the noe of Joceline Joliffe, who betwixt plying him with sack and ghost stories, would make him incapable of knowing what was “done, if you were to proclaim the King in his presence.’ ‘But why keep such a fellow here at all?” ‘¢Oh, sir, content you; he hes leaguer, as a sort of ambas- Sé sador for his worthy masters, and we are secure. from any intru- on so long as they get all the news of Woodstock from ‘Trusty Panik. " ‘‘T know Joceline’s hone a well,” said Albert; ‘and if he n assure me that he will keep a watch over this fellow, I will so fat trust in him, tHe decks not know the depth of the Es) tis true, but that my life is concerned will be quite enough to iant.—Well, then, I proceed :—what if Markham comes down on us?” “ We have his word to the contrary,” answered Rochecliffe — ‘his word of honor transmitted by his friend:—Do you think it likely he will break it ae “ T hold e m incapa ible of doing so,” answered Albert; “ and, besides, at ink Markham wou fa make no bad use of anything which 1 Bee come to his knowledge.— Yet God forbid we cohen be ee r the necessity of trusting any who ever wore the ‘Par- liament’s colors ; in a matter of such dear concernment!” “Amen!” said the Doctor.—‘“ Are your doubts silenced now?” “JT still have an objection,” said Albert, “ to yonder impu- lent rakehelly fellow, styling himself a cavalier, who pushed . himself on our company last night, and gained my father’s heart by a story of the storm at Brentford, which, I dare say, the bogee never saw.” ‘You mistake e him, dear Albert,” replied Rocl sf ee Wildrake, although till of late I only knew ee e name, is a gentleman, was bred at the Inns of Court, and spent Y 2 ” t 4 +3 1is estate in the King’s ser rvice. ‘Or rather in the devil’s service,” said Albert. ~ It is such fellows as he, who, Brier from the license of their military habits ‘nto idle debauched ruffians, infest the land with riots and robberies, brawl in hedge alehouses, and cellars where strong 7 at midnigh it, and with their deep oaths, their Ls waters are sold: hot loyalty, and their dru nken ralor, make decent men abomi- nate the very name of eaeaiey a Alas!” said the Doctor, “it is but too true; but what can. etiam aaeote ae eee ee Fs, Saas Cemarisdane setae esses Senses > ; . ca Pa Wen 2A4 WOODSTOCK you expect? When the higher and more qualified classes are broken down and mingled undistinguishably with the lower orders, they are apt to lose the most valuable marks of their quality in the general confusion of morals and manners—just as a handful of silver medals will become defaced and dis- colored if jumbled about among the vulgar copper coin. Even the prime medal of all, which we royalists would so will- ingly wear next our very hearts, has not, perhaps, entirely es. caped some deterioration—But let other tongues than speak on that subject.” : Albert Lee paused deeply after having heard these commu- nications on the part of Rochecliffe. « Doctor,” he said, “it is generally agreed, even by some who think you may occasion- ally have been a little overbusy in putting men upon danger- ous actions ”’ mine “May God forgive them wl Of me,” said the (Doctor ——" That, neverthe] in the King’s behalf tl Chis 10 entertain so false an opinion ess, you have done and suffered more lan any man of your function.” Chey do me but justice there,” said Dr. Rochecliffe— “absolute justice.” “I am therefore disposed to abid things considered Woodstock.” e by your opinion, if all » you think it safe that we should remain at ‘That is not the question,” answered the divine. “And what is the question, then?” replied the young sol- dier. ‘Whether any safer course can be pointed out. to say, that the question must be comparative as to tl of option. Absolute safety is—alas the whil question on all sides. Now. I say Woodstock guarded as at present, by far tl cealment.” I grieve 1€ point é !-—out’ of the is, fenced and 1€ most preferable place of con- “ Enough,” replied Albert; “ ] give u] as to a person whose knowledge of such important affairs, not to mention your age and experience, is more intimate and ex. tensive than mine can be,” “You do well,” answered Rochecliffe ; “and if ot] acted with the like distrust of their own knowledge, and con- fidence in competent persons, it had been better for the age. This makes Understanding bar himself up within his fortalice, and Wit betake himself to his high tower.” (Here he looked around his cell with an air of self-complacence.) “The wise man foreseeth the tempest and hideth himself.” ** Doctor,” said All ) to you the question, 1ers had ert, “let our foresight serve others farWOODSTOCK. 245 more precious than either of us. Let me ask you, if you have well considered whether our precious charge should remain in society with the family, or betake himself to some of the more hidden corners of the house ?” “ Hum!” said the Doctor, with an air of deep reflection— ‘“‘T think he will be safest as Louis Kerneguy, keeping himself close beside you” ‘J fear it will be necessary,” added Albert, “that I scout abroad a little, and show myself in some distant part of the country, lest coming here in quest of me, they should find higher game.” ‘Pray do not interrupt me—Keeping himself close beside you or your father, in or near to Victor Lee’s apartment, from which you are aware he can make a ready escape, should danger approach. ‘This occurs to me as best for the present—I hope to hear of the vessel to-day—to-morrow at furthest.” Albert Lee bid the active but opinionated man good-morrow ; a miring how this species of intrigue had become a sort of ele- ment in which the Doctor seemed to enjoy himself, notwith- standing all that the poet has said concerning the horrors which intervene betwixt the concep and execution of a conspiracy. In returning from Dr. Rochecliffe’s sanctuary, he met with Joceline, who was anxiously seeking him. “ The young Scotch gentleman,” he said, in a mysterious manner, “ has arisen from bed, and | hearing me pass, he called me into his apartment.” “ Well,” replied Albert, “I will see him presently.” “ And he asked me for fresh linen and clothes. Now, sir, he is like a man who is quite accustomed to be obeyed, so I gave him a suit which happened to be in a wardrobe in the west tower, and some of your linen to conform ; and when he was dressed he commanded me to show him to the presence of Sir Henry Lee and my young lady. I would have said something, sir, about waiting till you came back, but he pulled me good- naturedly by the hair (as, indeed he has a rare humor Of his own), and told me, he was guest to Master Albert Lee, and not his prisoner ; So, sir, though I thought you might be displeased with me for giving him the means of stirring “abroad, and per- haps being seen by those who should not see him, what could i say ¢f Y ou are a sensible fellow, Joceline, and comprehend always what is recommended to you. This youth will not be controlle d, I fear, by either of us; but we must look the close after his safety. You keep your ‘watch over that prying allen the steward ?” “Trust him to my care—on that side have no fear. ButST ne re eee eRe AAScenNCASaoneah baad 246 WOODSTOCR. ah, sir! I would we had the young Scot in his old clothes again, for the riding-suit of yours which he now wears hath set him off in other-guess fashion.” From the manner in which the faithful dependant expressed himself, Albert saw that he suspected who the Scottish page in reality was ; yet he did not think it proper to acknowledge to him a fact of such importance, secure as he was equally of his fidelity, whether explicitly trusted to the full extent, or left to his own conjectures. Full of anxious thought, he went to the apartment of Victor Lee, in which Joliffe told him he would find the party assembled. The sound of ‘laughter, as he laid his hand onthe lock of the door, almost made him Stent. so singularly did it jar with the doubtful and melancholy reflec- tions which engaged his own mind. He entered, and found his father in high good humor, laughing and conversing freely with his young charge, whose appearance was, indeed, so much changed to the better in externals, that it seemed scarce pos- sible a night’s rest, a toilet, and a suit of decent clothes, could have done so much in his favor in so short atime. It could not, however, be imputed to the mere alteration of dress, although that, no doubt, had its effect. There was nothing splendid in that which Louis Kerneguy (we continue to call him by his assumed name) now wore. It was merely a riding- suit of gray cloth, with some silver lace, in the fashion of a country gentleman of the time. But it happened to fit him very well, and to become his very dark complexion, especially as he now held up his head, and used the manners. not only of a well-behaved, but of a highly-accomplished gentleman. When he moved, his clumsy and awkward limp was exchanged fora sort of shuffle, which, as it might be the consequence of a wound in those perilous times, had rather an interesting than an un- gainly effect. At least it was as genteel an expression that the party had been over-hard traveled, as the most polite pedestrian could propose to himself, The features of the Wanderer were harsh as ever, but his red shock peruke, for such it proved, was laid aside, his sable elf- locks were trained, bya little of Joceline’s assistance, into curls, and his fine black eyes shone from among the shade of these curls, and corresponded with the animated, though not hand- some, character of the whole head. In his conversation, he had laid aside all the coarseness of dialect which he had so strongly affected on the preceding evening; and although he continued to speak a little Scotch, for the support of his character as a young gentleman of that nation, yet it was not in a degree which rendered his speech either uncouth or unin-WOODSTOCK. 247 telligible, but merely afforded a certain Doric tinge essential to the personage he represented. No person on earth could better understand the society in which he moved; exile had made him acquainted with life in all its shades and varieties—his spirits, if not uniform, were elastic—he had that species of Epicurean philosophy, which, even in the most extreme diffi- culties and dangers, can, in an interval of ease, however brief, D5 avail itself of the enjoyments of the moment—he was, in short, in youth and misfortune, as afterward in his regal condition, a good-humored but hard-hearted voluptuary—wise, save where his passions intervened—beneficent, save when prodi- gality had deprived him of the means, or prejudice of the wish, to confer benefits—his faults such as might often have drawn down hatred, but that they were mingled with so much urbanity, that the injured person felt it impossible to retain the full sense of his wrongs. Albert Lee found the party, consisting of his father, sister, and the supposed page, seated by the breakfast-table, at which he also took his place. He wasa pensive and anxious beholder of what passed, while the page, who had already completely gained the heart of the eood old cavalier, by mimicking the manner in which the Scottish divines preached in favor of Ma gude Lord Marquis of Argyle and the Solemn League and Covenant, was now endeavoring to imterest the fair Alice by such anecdotes, partly of warlike and perilous adventure, as possessed the same degree of interest for the female ear which they have had ever since Desdemona’s days. But it was not only of dangers by land and sea that the disguised page spoke ; but much more, and much oftener, on foreign revels, banquets, balls, where the pride of France, of Spain, or of the Low Countries, was exhibited in the eyes of their most eminent beauties. Alice, being a very young girl, who in consequence of the Civil War, had been almost entirely educated in the country, and often in great seclusion, it was certainly no wonder that she should listen with willing ears, and a ready smile, to what the young gentleman, their guest, and her brother’s protégé, told with so much gayety, and mingled with such a shade of dangerous adventure, and occasionally of serious reflection, as prevented the discourse from being re- garded as merely light and frivolous. In a word, Sir Henry Lee laughed, Alice smiled from time to time, and all were satisfied but Albert, who would himself, however, have been scarce able to allege a sufficient reason for his depression of spirits. The materials of breakfast were at last removed, under the OGG Rete Teron ot aStat ansstasstas ee cae eee Se peaeanisseAbeaaaieanadSial eeeerene sees naeer NeseenS . Fp Py 248 WOODSTOCK. active superintendence of the neat-handed Phoebe, who looked over her shoulder, and lingered more than once, to listen to the fluent discourse of their new guest, whom, on the preceding evening, she had, while in attendance at supper, accounted one of the most stupid inmates to whom the gates of Woodstock had been opened since the times of Fair Rosamond. Louis Kerneguy then, when they were left only four in the chamber, without the interruption of domestics, and the suc- cessive bustle occasioned by the discussion and removal of the morning meal, became apparently sensible, that his friend and ostensible patron Albert ought not altogether to be suffered to drop to leeward in the conversation, while he was himself suc- cessfully engaging the attention of those members of his family to whom he had become so recently known. He went behind his chair, therefore, and leaning on the back, said with a good- humored tone, which made his purpose entirely intelligible,— “ Hither my good friend, guide, and oatron, has heard worse news this morning than he cares to tell us, or he must have stumbled over my tattered jerkin and leathern hose, and ac- quired, by contact, the whole mass of stupidity which I threw off last night with those most dolorous garments. Cheer up, my dear Colonel Albert, if your affectionate page may presume to say so—you are in company with those whose society, dear to strangers, must be doubly so to you. Oddsfish, man, cheer up ! I have seen you gay on a biscuit and a mouthful of water- cresses—don’t let your heart fail you on Rhenish wine and venison,” ‘ Dear Louis,” said Albert, rousing himself into exertion, and somewhat ashamed of his own silence, “I have slept worse, and been astir earlier than you.” “ Be it so,” said his father; “yet I hold it no good excuse for your sullen silence. Albert, you have met your sister and me, so long separated from you, so anxious on your behalf, almost like mere strangers, and yet you are returned safe to us, and you find us well.” “Returned indeed—but for safety, my dear father, that word must be a stranger to us Worcester folk for some time. However, it is not my own safety about which I am anxious.” ‘* About whose, then, should you be anxious ?—All accounts agree that the King is safe out of the dogs’ jaws.” “ Not without some danger, though,” muttered Louis, thinking of his encounter with Bevis on the preceding evening, “No, not without danger, indeed.” echoed the knight ; “but, as old Will says,—WOODSTOCK. There’s such divinity doth hedge a king, hat treason dares not peep at what it would.’ No, no—thank God, that’s cared for; our Hope and Fortune is escaped, so all news affirm, escaped from Bristol—if I thought otherwise, Albert, I should be as sad as you are. For the rest of it, I have lurked a month in this house when discovery would have been death, and that is no longer since than after Lord Holland and the Duke of Buckingham’s rising at King- ston; and hang me, if I thought once of twisting my brow into such a tragic fold as yours, but cocked my hat at misfortune as a cavalier should.”’ ‘‘If I might put in a word,” said Louis, ‘it would be to assure Colonel Albert Lee that I verily believe the King would think his own hap, wherever he may be, much the worse that his best subjects were seized with dejection on his account.” “You answer boldly on the King’s part, young man,”’ said Sir Henry. 99 “Oh, my father was meikle about the King’s hand,” an- swered Louis, recollecting his present character. ‘“ No wonder, then, ” said Sir Henry, “‘ that you have so soon recovered your good spirits and good breeding, when you heard of his Majesty’s escape. Why, you are no more like the lad we saw last night, than the best hunter I ever had was like a dray- horse.”’ ‘Oh, there is much in rest, and food, and grooming,’’ an- swered Louis. ** You would hardly know the tired jade you dismounted from last night, when she is brought out prancing and neighing the next morning, rested, refreshed, and ready to start again—especially if the brute hath some good blood, for such pick up unco fast.” “Well, then, but since thy father was a courtier, and thou hast learned, I think, something of the trade, tell us a little, Master Kerneguy, of him we love most to hear about—the King; we are all safe was a hopeful youth ; promise of fruit ? ” and secret, you need not be afraid. He I trust his flourishing blossom now gives As the knight spoke, Louis bent his eyes on the ground, and seemed at first uncertain what to answer. 3ut, admirable at extricating himself from such dilemmas, he replied, “that he really could not presume to speak on such a subject in the presence of his patron, Colonel Albert Lee, who must be a much better judge of the character of King Charles than he could pretend to be.” Albert was accordingly next assailed by the knight, seconded by Alice, for some account of his Majesty’s character. a . “apps Rr eer t, :SRT asomremnn AER AR Utes Sereeees Seka recta naaNA panacea done nes eek eat een M renee 250 WOODSTOCK. “* T will speak but according to facts, ’ said Aibert ; “ and then I must be acquitted of partiality. If the King had not possessed enterprise and military skill, a never would have attempted the expedition to Worcester ;—had he not h: ad personal courage, he had not so long disputed the battle that Cromwell almost judged it lost. That he possesses prudence and patience, must be argued from the circumstances attending his flight ; and hat he has the love of his subjects is evident, since, neces- sarily known to many, he has been betrayed by none.” ‘For shame, Albert!” replied his sister ; “is that the way a good cavalier doles out the character of his Prince, applying an instance at every concession, like a pie measuring linen with his rod ?—Out upon you!—no wonder you were beaten, if you fought as coldly for your King as you now talk for him.” ‘“‘T did my best to trace a likeness from what I have seen and known of the original, sister Alice,” replied her brother.— ‘Tf you would have a fancy portrait, you must get an artist of more imagnation than I have to draw it for you.” ‘““T will be that artist myself,” said Alice, “and in my por- trait, our Monarch shall show all that he ought to be, having such high pretensions—all fey he must be, being so loftily descended—all that I am sure he is, and that every loyal heart in the kingdom ought to Relig: him.” ‘Well said, Alice,” quoth the old knight—“ Look thou upon this picture, and on this!—Here is our young friend shall judge. I wager my best nag—that is, I would wager him had I one left—that Alice proves the better painter of the two.— My son’s brain is still misty, I think, since his defeat—he has not got the smoke of Worcester out of it. Plague on thee !—a young man, and cast down for one beating! Had you beet banged twenty times like me, it had been time to look grave. —But come, Alice, forward; the colors are mixed on your pallet—forward with something that shall show like one of Vandyck’s living portraits, placed beside the dull dry presenta- tion there of our ancestor Victor Lee.” Alice, it must be observed, had been educated by her father in the notions of high and even exaggerated loyalty, which characterized the cavaliers, and she was really an en- thusiast in the royal cause. But, besides, she was in good spirits at her brother’s happy return, and wished to prolong the gay humor in which her father had of late scarcely ever in dulged. “Well, then,” she said, “ though I am no Apelles, I will try to paint an Alexander, such as r hope, and am determined toWOODSTOCK. believe, exists in the person of our exiled sovereign, soon I trust to be restored. And I will not go further than his own family. He shall have all the chivalrous courage, all the war- like skill, of Henry of France, his grandfather, in order to place, im on the throne: all his benevolence, love of his people patience even of unpleasing advice, sacrifice of his own wishes and pleasures to the commonweal, that, seated there, he may be blest while living, and so long remembered when dead, that for ages after it shall be thought sacrilege to breathe an asper sion against the throne which he has occupied! Long after he is dead while there remains an old man who has seen him, were the condition of that survivor no higher than a groom or a menial, his age shall be provided for at the public charge, it and his gray hairs regarded with more distinction than an earl’s coronet, because he remembers the Second Charles, the mon- arch of every heart in England !” While Alice spoke, she was hardly conscious of the presence of any one save her father and brother; for the page withdrew ircle, and there was nothing to | himself somewhat from the c e reins therefore, to her enthu- remind her of him. She gave th Stree el > “oO a need 2 2 2 ms siasm; and as the tears glittered in her eye, and her beautiful features became animated, she seemed like a descended cherub proclaiming the virtues of apatriot monarch, The person chiefly interested in her description held himself back, as we have said. and ‘concealed his own features, yet so as to pre serve a full view of the beautiful speaker. Albert Lee, conscious in whose presence this eulogium was pronounced, was much embarrassed; but his father, all whose feelings were flattered by the panegyric, was in rapture. “So much for the Kzzg, Alice,” he said; ‘and now for the man.’ “ For the man,” replied Alice, in the same tone, ‘need I wish him more than the paternal virtues of his unhappy father, of whom his worst enemies have recorded, that if moral virtues and religious faith were to be selected as the qualities which merited a crown, no man could plead the possession of them in a higher or more indisputable degree. ‘Temperate, wise and frugal, yet munificent in rewarding merit—a friend to letters and the muses, but a severe discourager of the misuse of such gifts —a worthy gentleman—a kind master—the best friend, the best father, the best Christian” Her voice began to falter, and her father’s handkerchief was already at his eyes. ” exclaimed Sir Henry; “but no more on’t—enough ; let his son but and better fortunes, UO “He was, girl, he was! more on’t, I charge ye-——no possess his virtues, with better advisers, a : « Co ae ae anna &, : *Faia POTEET 252 WOODSTOCK. and he will be all that England, in her w desire? There was a pause after this; for Alice felt as if she had spoken too frankly and too zealously for her sex and youth, Sir Henry was occupied in melancholy recollections on the fate of his late sovereign, while Kerneguy and his supposed patron felt embarrassed, perhaps from a consciousness that the rea] Charles fell far short of his ideal character, as designed in such glowing colors. In some Cases, exaggerated or unappropriate praise becomes the most severe satire. But such reflections were not of a nature to be ] cherished by the person to whom they might have been of great advantage. He assumed a tone of raillery, which is, perhaps, the readiest mode of escaping from the feelings of self-reproof. “ Every cavalier,” he said. “ should bend his knee to thank Mis- tress Alice Lee for having made such a flattering portrait of the King their master, by laying under contribution for his benefit the virtues of all his ancestors ; only there was one point he would not have expected a female painter to have passed over in silence. When she made him, in right of his grandfather and father, a muster of royal and individual excellencies, why could she not have endowed him at the same time with his mother’s personal charms? Why should not the son of Henrietta Maria, the finest woman of her day, add the recommendations of a handsome face and figure to his internal qualities? He had the same hereditary title to good looks as to mental qualifica- tions; and the picture, with such an addition would be perfect in its way—and God send it might be a resemblance ! ” ‘** l understand you, Master Kerneguy,” said Alice: “but I am no fairy, to bestow, as those do which Providence has denied. I am woman enough to have made inquiries on the subject, and I know the general report is, that the King, to have been the son of such handsome parents, is unusually hard-favored.” “Good God, sister !”’ said Albert, starting impatiently from his seat. “Why, you yourself told me so,” said Al emotion he testified; “and you said ”’ “This is intolerable,” muttered speak with Joceline without delay—Louis ” (with an imploring look to Kerneguy), “ you will surely come with me ?” “IT would with all my heart,” said Kerneguy, smiling mali- ciously ; “ but you see how I suffer still from lameness.—Nay, nay, Albert,” he whispered, resisting young Lee’s attempt to pre- vail on him to leave the room, “can you suppose I am fool armest wishes, could ee ong willingly in the nursery tales, gifts ice, surprised at the Albert; I must out toWOODSTOCK. enough to be hurt by this >—On the contrary, I have a desire of profiting by it.” ‘May God grant it!” said Lee to himself, as he left the room—“ it will be the first lecture you ever profited by ; and the devil confound the plots and plotters who made me bring you to this place!” So saying, he carried his discontent forth into the Park. CHAPTER TWENTY-THIRD. For there, they say, he daily doth frequent With unrestrained loose companions ; While he, young, wanton, and effeminate boy, Takes on the point of honor, to support So dissolute a crew. RICHARD II, Tue conversation which Albert had in vain endeavored to interrupt, flowed on in the same course after he had left the room. It entertained Louis Kerneguy; for personal vanity, or an over sensitiveness to deserved reproof, were not among the faults of his character, and were indeed incompatible with an understanding, which, combined with more strength of prin- ciple, steadiness of exertion, and self-denial, might have placed Charles high on the list of English monarchs. On the other hand, Sir Henry listened with natural delight to the noble sen- timents uttered by a being so beloved as his daughter. His own parts were rather steady than brilliant; and he had that species of imagination which is not easily excited without the action of another, as the electrical globe only scintillates when rubbed against its cushion. He was well pleased, therefore, when Kerneguy pursued the conversation, by observing that Mistress Alice Lee had not explained how the same good fairy that conferred moral qualities, could not also remove corporal blemishes.” “Vou mistake, sir,” said Alice. ‘I confer nothing. I do but attempt to paint our King such as I hope he is—such as I am sure he may be, should he himself desire to be so. - he same general report which speaks of his countenance as unpre- possessing, describes his talents as being of the first order. He has. therefore, the means of arriving at excellence, should he cultivate them sedulously and employ them usefully—should he rule his passions and be guided by his understanding. EveryFRET Aosiaunmi cana: SS eee Seca ARNO F ¥ , ar ® pal asi ate 254 WOODSTOCK. good man cannot be wise ; but it is in the power of every wise man, if he pleases, to be as eminent for virtue as for talent.” Young Kerneguy rose briskly, and took a turn through the room ; and ere the knight could make any observation on the singular vivacity in which he had indulged, he threw himself again into his chair, and said, in rather an altered tone of voice —"‘It seems, then, Mistress Alice Lee, that the good friends who have described this poor King to you, have been as un- favorable in their account of his morals as of his person?” “The truth must be better known to you, sir,” said Alice, “than it can be tome. Some rumors there have been which accuse him of a license, which, whatever allowance flatterers make for it, does not, to say the least, become the son of the Martyr—I shall be happy to have these contradicted on good authority.” “Iam surprised at your folly,” said Sir Henry Lee, “in hinting at such things, Alice; a pack of scandal, invented by the rascals who have usurped the government—a thing devised by the enemy.” “ Nay, sir,” said Kerneguy, laughing, “we must not let our zeal charge the enemy with more scandal than they actually deserve. Mistress Alice has put the question tome. I can only answer, that no one can be more devotedly attached to the King than I myself,—that I am very partial to his merits and blind to his defects; and that, in short, I would be the last man in the world to give up his cause where it was tena: ble. Nevertheless, I must confess, that if all his grandfather of Navarre’s morals have not descended to him, this poor King has somehow inherited a share of the specks that were thought to dim the lustre of that great Prince—that Charles js a little soft-hearted, or so, where beauty is concerned.—Do not blame him too severely, pretty Mistress Alice; when a man’s hard fate has driven him among thorns, it were surely hard to pre- vent him from trifling with the few roses he may find among them?” Alice, who probably thought the conversation had gone far enough, rose while Master Kernezuy was speaking, and was leaving the room before he had finished, without apparently hearing the interrogation with which he concluded. Her father approved of her departure, not thinking the turn which Kerne- guy had given to the discourse altogether fit for her presence ; and, desirous civilly to break off the conversation, ‘“‘ [ see,” he said, ‘this is about the time. when, as Will says, the household affairs will call my daughter hence; I will therefore challenge you, young gentleman, to stretch your limbs in a little exerciseWOODSTOCK. 2nc with me, either at single rapier, or rapier and poniard, back- sword, spadroon, or your national weapons of broadsword and target; for all or any of which I think we shall find imple ments in the hall.” It would be too high a distinction, Master Kerneguy said, for a poor page to be permitted to try a passage of arms with a knight so renowned as Sir Henry Lee, and he hoped to enjoy so great an honor before he left Woodstock; but at the present moment his lameness continued to give him so much pain, that he should shame himself in the attempt. Sir Henry then offered to read him a play of Shakspeare, and for this purpose turned up King Richard II. But hardly had he commenced with ** Old John of Gaunt, time honored Lancaster,”’ when the young gentleman was seized with such an uncontrol- able fit of the cramp as could only be relieved by immediate exercise. He therefore begged permission to be allowed to saunter abroad for a little while, if Sir Henry Lee considered he might venture without danger. ‘‘T can answer for the two or three of our people that are still left about the place,” said Sir Henry; “and I know my son has disposed them so as to be constantly on the watch. If you hear the bell toll at the Lodge, I advise you to come straight home by the way of the King’s Oak, which you see in yonder glade towering above the rest of the trees. We will have some one stationed there to introduce you secretly into the house.” The page listened to these cautions with the impatience of a school-boy, who, desirous of enjoying his holiday, hears with- out marking the advice of tutor or parent, about taking care not to catch cold, and so forth. The absence of Alice Lee had removed all which had rendered the interior of the Lodge agreeable, and the mercurial young page fled with precipitation from the ex- ercise and amusement which Sir Henry had proposed. He girded on his rapier, and threw his. eloak, .or: sarher that which belonged to his borrowed suit, about him, bringing up the lower part so as to muffle the face and show only the eyes over it, which was a common way of wearing them in those days, both in streets, in the country, and in public places, when men had a mind to be private, and to avoid interruption from salutations and greetings in the market- place, He hurried across the open space which divided the es Pewee tt s Sg ORT ET (spas ever rer scenesWOODSTOCK. 256 front of the Lodge from the wood, with the haste of a bird es. caped from the cage, which, though joyful at its liberation, is at the same time sensible of its need of protection and shelter. The wood seemed to afford these to the human fugitive, as it might have done to the bird in question. When under the shadow of the branches, and within the verge of the forest, covered from observation, yet with the power of surveying the irone or tie Loedve, and ‘all’ the open eround before it, the supposed Louis Kerneguy meditated on his escape. “What an infliction—to fence with a gouty old man, who knows not, I dare say, a trick of the sword which was not familiar in the days of old Vincent Saviolo! or, as a change of misery, to hear him read one of those wildernesses of scenes which the English call a play, from prologue to epilogue—from Enter the first to final Axeunt omnes—an unparalleled horror —a Det ce which would have sete a dungeon darker, and added dulness even to Woodstock Here he stopped and looked a then continued his meditations—‘“ So then, it was here that the gay old Norman secluded his pretty mistress—I warrant, without Beate seen her, that Rosamond Clifford was never half so handsome as that lovely Alice Lee. And what a soul there is in the girl’s eye! ~—with what abandonment of all respects, save that expressing the interest of the moment, she poured forth her tide of enthusiasm! Were I to be long here, in spite of prudence, and half-a-dozen very venerable obstacles besides, I should be tempted to try to reconcile her to the indifferent visage of this same hard-favored Prince.—Hard-favored ?—it is a_ kind of treason for one who pretends to so much loyality, to say so of the King’s features, and in my mind deserves punshment.— Ah, pretty Mistress Alice! many a Mistress Alice before you has made dreadful exclamations on the irregularities of mankind, and the wickedness of the age, and ended by being glad to look out for apologies for their own share in them. But then her father—the stout old cavalier— my father’s old friend—should such a thing befall, it would break his heart——Break a pud- ding’s-end—he has more sense. If I give his grandson a title to quarter the arms of England, what matter if a bar sinister is drawn across them ?—Pshaw! far from an abatement, it is a point of addition—the heralds in their next visitation will ite him higher in the roll for it. Then, if he did wince a little at nrst, does not the old traitor deserved it;—first, for his disloyal intention of punching mine anointed body black and blue with his vile foils—and secondly, his atrocious complot with WilWOODSTOCK. 257 Shakspeare, a fellow as much out of date as himself, to read me to death with five acts of a historical play, or chronicle, ‘ being the piteous Life and death of Richardthe Second ?’ Oddsfish my own life is piteous enough, as I think; and my death may match it, for aught I see coming yet. Ah, but then the brother —my friend—my guide—my guard—So far as this little pro- posed intrigue concerns him, such practicing would be thought not quite fair. But your bouncing, swaggering, rev engetul brothers exist only on the theatre. Your dire revenge, “with which a brother persecuted a poor fellow who had seduced his sister, or been seduced by her, as the case might be, as relent- lessly as if he had trodden on his toes without making an oP ue ogy, is ey out of fashion, since Dorset killed the Lord Bruce many a long year since.* Pshaw! when a King is the offender, the bravest man sacrifices nothing by pocketing a little wrong which he cannot personally resent ; ‘and in France there is not a noble house where each individual would not cock his hat an inch higher, if they could boast of such a left- handed alliance with the Grand Monarque.” Such were the thoughts which rushed through the mind of Charles, at his first quitting the Lodge of Woodstock, and plunging into the forest that surrounded it. His profligate logic, however, was not the result of his natural disposition, nor received without scruple by his sound understanding. It was a train of réasoning which he had been led to adopt from his too close intimacy with the witty and profligate youth of qual- ity by whom he had been surrounded. It arose from the evil communication with Villiers, Wilmot, Sedley, and others, whose genius was destined to corrupt that age, and the Monarch on whom its character afterward came so much to depend. Such men, bred amidst the license of civil war, and without ex- periencing t that curb which in ordinary times the authority of parents ni relations imposes upon the headlong passions of youth, were practiced in every species of vice, and could recom- mend it as well by precept as exam] yle, turning into pitiless ridicule all those nobler feelings a hice withhold men from gratifying lawless passion. The events of the King’s life had also fav ored his re ception of this Epicurean doctrine. He saw himself, with the highest claim to sympathy and assistance, coldly treat ed by the Courts which he visited, rather as a per- mitted suppliant, than an exiled Monarch. He beheld his own * This melancholy story may be found in the Guardian An intrigue of Lord Sackville, afterward Ear 1 of Dorset, was the cause of the fatal duel |which took pl ace at Bergen op-Zoom, in A ugust 1613]:Ra Tee et ree ee eee Tee SEX Nebsornea Sea on 21 Ke WOODSTOCK. rights and claims treated with scorn and indutrerence ; and, in the same proportion, he was reconciled to the hard-hearted and selfish course of dissipation, which promised him immediate in- dulgence. If this was obtained at the expense of the happi- ness of others, should he of all men be scrupulous upon the subject, since he treated others only as the world treated him ? But although the foundation of this unhappy system had been laid, the Prince was not at that early period so fully de- voted to it as he was found to have become, when a door was unexpectedly opened for his restoration. On the contrary, though the train of gay reasoning which we have above stated, as if it had found ventin uttered language, did certainly arise in his mind, as that which would have been suggested by his favorite counselors on such occasions, he recollected that what might be passed over as a peccadillo in France or the Nether- lands, or turned into a diverting novel or pasquinade by the wits of his own wandering Court, was likely to have the aspect of horrid ingratitude and infamous treachery among the Eng- lish gentry, and would inflict a deep, perhaps an incurable wound upon his interest, among the more aged and respectable part of his adherents. Then it occurred to him—for his own interest did not escape him, even in this mode of considering the subject—that he was in the power of the Lees, father and son, who were always understood to be at Teast sufficiently punctilious on the score of honor ; and if they should suspect such an affront as his imagination had conceived, they could be at no loss to find means of the most ample revenge, either by their own hands, or those of the ruling faction. “The risk of re-opening the fatal window at Whitehall, and renewing the tragedy of the Man in the Mask, were a worse penalty,” was his final reflection, “ than the old stool of the Scottish penance; and pretty though Alice Lee is, I cannot alford to intrigue at such a hazard. So, farewell, pretty maiden! unless, as sometimes has happened, thou hast a humor to throw thyself at thy King’s feet, and then I am too magnani- mous to refuse thee my protection. Yet, when I think of the pale clay-cold figure of the old man, as he lay last night ex- tended before me, and imagine the fury of Albert Lee raging with impatience, his hand on a sword which only his loyalty prevents him from plunging into his sovereign’s heart—nay, the picture is too horrible ! Charles must forever change his name to Joseph, even if he were strongly tempted ; which may Fortune in mercy prohibit ! ” To speak the truth of a prince, more unfortunate in his earlyWOODSTOCK 29 companions, and the callousness which he acquired by his juve- nile adventures and irregular mode of life, than in his natural disposition, Charles came the more readily to this wise conclu- sion, because he was by no means subject to those violent and engrossing passions, to gratify which, the world has been thought well lost. His amours, like many of the present day, were rather matters of habit and fashion, than of passion and affection ; and, in comparing himself in this respect to his erandfather, Henry IV., he did neither his ancestor nor himself perfect justice. He was, to parody the words of a bard, him- self actuated by the stormy passions which an intriguer often only stimulates,— None of those who loved so kindly, None of those who loved so blindly. An amour was with him a matter of amusement, a regular con- se ay ence, as it seemed to him, of the ordinary course of things in society. He was not at the trouble to practice seductive arts, because he had seldom found occasion to make use of them ; his high rank, and the profligacy of part of the female society with which he had mingled, rendering them unneces- sary. Added to this, he had, for the same reason, seldom been crossed by the obstinate interference of relations, or even of husbands, who had generally seemed not unwilling to suffer such matters to take their course. So that, notwithstanding his total looseness of principle, and systematic disbelief in the virtue of women, and the honor of men, as connected with the character of their female relatives, Charles was not a person to have studiously introduced disgrace into a family, where a conquest might have been violently dis- puted, attained with difficulty, and accompanied with general distress, not to mention the excitation of all fiercer passions against the author of the scandal. But the danger of the King’s society consisted in his being much of an unbeliever in the existence of such cases as were likely to be embittered by remorse on the part of the principal victim, or rendered perilous by the violent resentment of her connections or relatives. He had even already found such things treated on the Continent as matters of sedi occur: rence, subject in all cases where a man ol high influence was concerned, to an easy arrangement; and he was really, gener- ally spe aking, sceptical on the subject of severe virtue in either sex, and apt to consider it as a veil assumed by peudey in women, and hypocrisy in men, to extort a higher rew ard for their compliance. - - ~ Typeset Reeeneermer ss ts ott NM 2Dade sre reccan a ahead aaERannere Cu eS PP ae. abe WOODSTOCK, While we are discussing the character of his disposition to gallantry, the Wanderer was conducted, by the walk he had chosen, through several whimsical turns, until at last it brought him under the windows of Victor Lee’s apartment, where “he descried Alice watering and arranging some flowers placed on the oriel window, which was easily accessible by daylight, al- though at night he had found it a dangerous attempt to scale it. But not Alice only, her father also showed himself near the window, and beckoned him up. The family party seemed now more promising than before, and the fugitive Prince was weary of playing battledore and shuttlecock with his conscience, and much disposed to let matters go as chance should determine, He climbed lightly up the broken ascent, and was readily welcomed by the old knight, who hel a activity in high honor, Alice also seemed glad to see the lively and interesting young man; and by her pre sence, and the unaffected mirth with w hich she enjoyed his sallies she was animated to display those quali- ties a wit and humor, which nobody possessed in a higher degre Hi = satire delighted the old gentleman, who laughed till his yes ran over as he heard the youth, whose claims to his respect little dreamed of, amusing him with successive imitations of e Scottish Presbyterian cle srgymen, of the proud and poor Hidalgo of the North, of the fierce and overw eening pride and Celtic dialect of the mountain chief, of the slow and more pe- dantic Lowlander, with all of which his residence in Scotland had made him familar. Alice also laughed and applauded, amused herself, and delighted to see that her father was so ; and the whole party were in the highest glee, when Albert Lee entered, eager to find Louis Kerneguy, and to lead him away to a private colloquy with Dr. Rochecliffe, whose zeal. assiduity, and wonderful possession of FEamaatibn, had constituted him their master-pilot in those difficult times It is unnecessary to introduce the reader to the minute par- ticulars of their conference. The information obtained was so far favorable, that the enemy seemed to have had no intelligence of the King’s route toward the south, and remained persuaded that he had made his escape from Pe as had been reported, and as had indeed been proposed ; but the master of the vessel prepared for the King’s passage had taken the alarm, and sailed without his royal freight. His departure, however, and the suspicion of the service in which he was engaged, served to make the belief general, that the King had gone off along with him, ae m Xe Coe et Cws But though this was cheering, the Doctor had more unpleas-WOODSTOCK. ant tidings from the sea-coast, alleging great difficulties in se- curing a vessel, to which it might be fit to commit a charge so precious ; and, above all, requesting his Majesty might on no account venture to approach the shore, until he should receive advice that all the previous arrangements had been completely settled. No one was able to suggest a safer place of residence than that which he at present occupied. Colonel Everard was deemed certainly not personally unfriendly to the King; and Cromwell, as was supposed, reposed in Everard an unbounded confidence. ‘The interior presented numberless hiding-places, and secret modes of exit, known to no one but the ancient residents of the Lodge—nay, far better to Rochecliffe than to any of them ; as, when the Rector at the neighboring town, his prying disposition as an antiquary had induced him to make very many researches among the old ruins—the results of which he was believed, in some instances, to have kept to himself. To balance these conveniences, it was no doubt true, that the Parliamentary Commissioners were still at no great distance, and would be ready to resume their authority upon the first opportunity, but no one supposed such an opportunity was likely to occur; and all believed, as the influence of Cromwell and the army grew more and more predominant, that the disap- pointed Commissioners would attempt nothing in contradiction to his pleasure, but wait with patience an indemnification in some other quarter for their vacated commissions. Report, through the voice of Master Joseph Tomkins, stated, that they had determined, in the first place, to retire to Oxford, and were making preparations accordingly. This promised still further to insure the security of Woodstock. It was therefore settled that the King, under the character of Louis Kerneguy, should remain an inmate of the Lodge, until a vessel should be pro- cured for his escape, at the port which might be esteemed the safest and most convenient, . erehoe ert rr 4 | p + 4Se eet eet tesltees, ail WOODSTOCK. CHAPTER TWENTY-FOURTH. The deadliest a akes are those which, twined ’mongst flowers, Blend their bright coloring with the varied | lossoms, Their fierce eyes glittering like the spangled dew-drops; a all so like what nature has most harmless, That sportive innocence, which dreads no danger, Is poison’d unawares. ‘ OLD Puay. CHARLES (we must now give him his own name) was easily reconciled to the circumstances which rendered his residence at Woodstock advisable. No doubt he would much rather have secured his safety by making an immediate escape out of Eng- land; but he had been condemned alre eady to many uncomfort- able eerie places, and more disagreeable disguises, as well as to long and difficult journeys, during which, between pragmati- cal officers of justice belonging to the prevaili ing party, and parties of soldiers whose officers usu ally took on them to act on their own warrant, risk of discov ery had more than once become very imminent. He was glad, therefore, of comparative repose, and of comparative safety. Then it must be considered, that Charles had been entirely reconciled to the society at Woodstock since he had become better acquainted with it. He had seen, that, to interest the beautiful Alice, and procure a great deal of her company, noth- ing more was necessary than to submit to the humors, and cultivate the intimacy of the old cavalier, her father. A few bouts at fencing, in which Charles took care not to put out his more perfect skill, and youthful strength and activity—the en- durance of a few scenes from Sh: ikspeare, which the knight read with more zeal than taste—a little skill in music, in which the old man had been a proficient—the deference paid to a fey old-fashioned opinions, at which Charles laughed in his sleeve ——were all sufficient to gain for the disguised Prince an interest in Sir Henry Lee, and to conciliate in an equal degree the good-will of his lovely daughter. Never were there two young persons who could be said to commence this species of intimacy with such unequal advan- tages. Charles was a libertine who, if he did not in cold blood resolve upon prosecuting his pEeeios for Alice to a dishonorable conclusion, was at every moment liable to be provoked to attempt the strength of a virtue, in which he was no believer,WOODTOCK. Then Alice, on her part, hardly knew even what was implied by the word libertine or seducer. Her mother had died early in the commencement of the Civil War, and she had been bred up chiefly with her brother and cousin; so that she had an unfearing and unsuspicious frankness of manner, upon which Charles was not unwilling or unlikely to PH a construction favorable to his own views. Even Alice’s love for her cousin— the first sensation which awakens the most een and simple mind to feelings of shyness and restraint toward the male sex in general—had failed to excite such an alarm in her bosom. They were nearly related; and Everard, though young, Was several years her elder, and had, from her infancy, been an object of her respect as well as of her affection. When this early and chucish intim: icy ripened into youthful love, con: fessed and returned, still it differed in some shades from the passion existing between lovers originally strangers to each other, until their affections have been united in the ordinary course a Rss Their love was fonder, more familiar, more perfectly confidential ; purer, too, perhaps, and more free rom starts ‘of passionate violence or ap prehensive jealousy. Lhe possibility that anyone coul ld have at tempted to rival Everard in her affection, was a cit stance which never occur- red to Alice ; and that this si ares Sc Bee lad, whom she laughed with on account of his humor, and lat ched at for his Pp ECU aT HES, should be an object of danger or of caution, never nce entered her imagination. The sort of intimacy to which she ‘admitted Kernegu y was the same to which she would have received acompanion of her own sex, whose manners she did not always approve, but whose society she found always amusing. It was natural that the Aacee of Alice Lee’s conduct, which arose from the most perfect indifference, should pass fox something approaching to encouragement in the royal gallant’s apprehension, and that any re solution he had formed against being tempted to violate the hospitality of Woodstock, should begin to totter, as Oppo ortunities for doing so became more fré- quent. These opportunities were favored by Albert’s departure from Woodstock the very day after his art ival. It had been agreed, in full council with Charles and Rochecliffe, that he should go to visit his uncle Everard in the county of Kent, and, by show- ing himself there, obviate any cause of suspicion eee mig o ght ae from his residence at W oodstoc k, and remove any pretext for disturbing his fath r’s family on account of their harboring one who had been so lately in arms. He had also Edenatce Oree ee ss : 264 WOODSTOCK. at his own great personal risk, to visit different points on the s€a-coast, and ascertain the security of different places for viding shipping for the King’s leaving England. These circumstances were alike calculated to procure the King’s safety, and facilitate his escape. But Alice was thereby deprived of the presence of her brother, who would have been her most watchful guardian, but who had set down the King’s light talk upon a former occ asion to the gayety of his humor, and would have thought he had done his sovereign great in- justice, had he seriously suspected him-of such a breach of hospitality as a dishonorable pursuit of Alice would hz plied. ave im- There were, however, two of the household who appeared not so entirely reconciled with L or his purposes. The one was B first unfriendly rencontre, to have new guest, which no advances on the part of Charles were able tosoften. If the page was by chance left alone witl mistress, Bevis chose always to be one of tl by Alice’s chair, and growled audibl near her, Utes 4 pity,” said pro- at Woodstock, ouis Kerneguy evis, who seemed, from their kept up a pique against their 1 his young 1€ party; came close y when the gallant drew the disguised Prince, “ that your 3evis is not a bull-dog, that we might dub him a roundhead at once—He is too handsome, too noble, too aristocratic, to nourish those inhospitable prejudices against a poor houseless cavalier, am convinced the spirit of Pym or Hampden has transmi- grated into the rogue, and continues to demonstrate his hatred against royalty and all its adherents,” Alice would then reply, that Bevis was loyal in word and deed, and only partook her father’s prejudices against the Scots, which, she could not but acknowledge, were tolerably strong. “Nay, then,” said the supposed Louis, “I must find some other reason, for I cannot allow Sir Bevis’s resentment to rest upon national antipathy: So we will suppose that some gallant cavalier, who wended to the wars and never returned, has adopted this shape to look back upon the haunts he left so un- willingly, and is jealous at seeing even poor Louis Kerneguy drawing near to the lady of his lost affections.”—He approach- ed her chair as he spoke, and Bevis gave one of his deep growls, “In that case you had best keep your distance,” laughing, “for the bite of a dog, possessed by the jeaious lover cannot be very Safe.” the dialogue in the apprehend nothing more serious than the fantastic boy, certainly induced the su said Alice, ghost of a And the King carried on Same strain—which, while it led Alice to apish gallantry of a posed Louis KerneguyWOODSTOCK. to think that he had made one of those conquests which often and easily fall to the share of sovereigns. Notwithstanding the acuteness of his apprehension, he was not sufficiently aware that the Royal Road to female favor is only open to monarchs when they travel in grand costume, and that when they woo incognito, their path of courtship is liable to the same windings and obstacles which obstruct the course of private individuals. There was, besides Bevis, another member of the family, who kept a look-out upon Louis Kerneguy, and with no friendly eye. Phoebe Mayflower, though her experience extended not beyond the sphere of the village, yet knew the world much better than her mistress, and besides she was five years older. More know- ing, she was more suspicious. She thought that odd-looking Scotch boy made more up to her young mistress than was proper for his condition of life; and, moreover, that Alice gave him a little more encouragement than Parthenia would have afforded to any such Jack-a-dandy, in the absence of Argalus—for the volume treating of the loves of these celebrated Arcadians was then the favorite study of swains and damsels throughout merry England. Entertaining such suspicions, Phoebe was at a loss how to conduct herself on the occasion, and yet resolved she would not see the slightest chance of the course of Colonel Everard’s true love being obstructed, without attempting a remedy. She had a peculiar favor for Markham herself; and, moreover he was; according to her phrase, as handsome and personable a young man as was in Oxfordshire ; and this Scottish scarecrow was no more to be compared to him than chalk was to cheese. And yet she allowed that Master Girnigy had a wonderfully well-oiled tongue, and that such gallants were not to be despised. What was to be done ?—she had no facts to offer, only vague suspicion ; and was afraid to speak to her mistress, whose kindness, great as it was, did not, nevertheless, encourage familiarity. She sounded Joceline; but he was, she knew not why, so deeply interested about this unlucky lad, and held his import- ance so high, that she could make no impression on him. Go speak to the old knight, would have been to raise a general tempest. The worthy chaplain, who was at Woodstock, grand referee on all disputed matters, would have been the damsel’s most natural resource, for he was peaceful as well as moral by profession, and politic by practice. But it happened he had given Phoebe unintentional offence by speaking of her under the classical epithet of Rustica Midele, the which epithet, as she understood it not, she held herself bound to resent as contume- lious, and, declaring she was not fonder of a fdd/e than otherFs pp Goerarissaneabectan Se ee 266 WOODSTOCK. folk, had ever since shunned all intercourse with Dr. Roche cliffe which she could easily avoid. Master Tomkins was always coming and going about the house under various pretexts; but he was a roundhead, and she was too true to the cavaliers to introduce any of the enemy as parties to their internal discords; besides, he had talked to Phcebe herself in a manner which induced her to decline every- thing in the shape of familiarity with him. Lastly, Cavaliero Wildrake might have been consulted; but Phoebe had her own reasons for saying, as she did with some-emphasis, that Cava- liero Wildrake was an impudent London rake. At length she resolved to communicate her suspicions to the party having most interest in verifying or confuting them. ““T’ll let Master Markham Everard know, that there is a wasp buzzing about his honey-comb,’’ said Phoebe; “and, moreover, that I know that this young Scotch Scapegrace shifted himself out of a woman’s into a man’s dress at Goody Green’s, and gave Goody Green’s Dolly a gold piece to say nothing about it; and no more she did to any one but me, and she knows best herself whether she gave change for the gold or not—but Master Louis is a saucy jackanapes, and like enough tb: aSkig.”” Three or four days elapsed while matters continued in this condition—the disguised Prince sometimes thinking on the intrigue which Fortune seemed to have thrown in his way for his amusement, and taking advantage of such opportunities as occurred to increase his intimacy with Alice Lee; but much oftener harassing Dr. Rochecliffe with questions about the pos- sibility of escape, which the good man finding himself unable to answer, secured his leisure against royal importunity, by retreating into the various unexplored recesses of the Lodge, known perhaps only to himself, who had been for nearly a score of years employed in writing the Wonders of Woodstock. It chanced on the fourth day, that some trifling circumstance had called the knight abroad ; and he had left the young Scots- man, now familiar in the family, along with Alice, in the parlor of Victor Lee. Thus situated, he thought the time not unpro- pitious for entering upon,a strain of gallantry, of a kind which might be called experimental, such as is practiced by the Croats in skirmishing, when they keep bridle in hand, ready to attack the enemy, or canter off without coming to close quarters, as circumstances may recommend. After using for nearly ten minutes a sort of metaphysical jargon, which might, according to Alice’s pleasure, have been interpreted either into gallantry, or the language of serious pretension, and whenWOODSTOCK. he supposed her engaged in fathoming his meaning, he had the mortification to find, by a single and brief question, that he had been totally unattended to, and that Alice was think- ing on anything at the moment rather than the sense of what he had been saying. She asked him if he could tell what it was o’clock, and this with an air of real curiosity concern- ing the lapse of time, which put coquetry wholly out of the question. “T will go look at the sun-dial, Mistress Alice,” said the gallant, rising and coloring, throu oh a sense of the contempt with which he thought himself treated. “Vou will do me a pleasure, Master Kerneguy,” said Alice, without the least consciousness of the indignation she had excited. ee Louis Kerneguy left the room accordingly, not, how- ever, to procure the information required, but to vent his anger an id mortification, and to swear, with more serious purpose than He had dared to do before, that Alice shouid rue her insolence. Good-natured as he was, he was still a prince, unaccustomed to contradiction, far less to contempt, and his sell- -pride felt, for the moment, wounded to the quick. With a hasty step he plunged into the Chase, only remembering ee own safety so far as to choose the deeper and sequestered avenues, where, walk- ing on with the speedy and active step which his recovery from fatigue now permitt ed him to exercise according to his wont, he solaced his angry purposes, by devising schemes of revenge on the insolent country coquette, os which no consideration of hospitality was in future to have weight enough to save her. The irritated gallant passed “The dial-stone, aged and green,” without deigning to ask it a single question; nor could it have satisfied his curiosity if he had, ‘for no sun happened to shine at the moment. He then hastened forward, mufiling himself in his cloak, and assuming a ae and slouching gait, which diminished his apparent height. He was soon inv volved in the deep and dim alleys of the 1 wood, into which he had insensibly plunged himself, and was trav ersing it at a great rate, without having any distinct idea in what direc tion he was going, when suddenly his course was arrested, first by a loud hollo, and then y a summons to stand, accompanied by what seemed still more startling and extraordinary, the touch of a cane upon his shoulder, imposed i in a good- humored but somewhat imperious manner, Beer etre ot ae o iaS RRERR CRE dagen Se ehoors coh ornkeclho-aiehdoo wabhknoe ol aE n= 268 WOODSTOCK. There were few symptoms of recognition which would have been welcome at this moment; but the appearance of the per son who had thus arrested his course, was least of all that he could have anticipated as timely or agreeable. When he turned, on receiving the signal, he beheld himself close to a young man, nearly six feet in height, well made in joint and limb, but the gravity of whose apparel, although handsome and gentleman: like, and a sort of precision in his habit, from the cleanness and stiffness of his band to the unsullied purity of his Spanish-leather shoes, bespoke a love of order which was foreign to the im- poverished and vanquished cavaliers, and proper to the habits of those of the victorious party, who could afford to dress them- selves handsomely ; and whose rule—that is, such as regarded the higher and more respectable classes—enjoined decency and sobriety of garb and deportment. There was yet another weight against the Prince in the scale, and one still more char- acteristic of the inequality in the comparison, under which he seemed to labor. There was. strength in the muscular form of the stranger who had brought him to this involuntary parley, authority and determination in his brow, a long rapier on the left, and a poniard or dagger on the right side of his belt, and a pair of pistols stuck into it, which would have been sufficient to give the unknown the advantage (Louis Kerneguy having no weapon but his sword), even had his personal strength approached nearer than it did to that of the person by whom he was thus suddenly stopped. Bitterly regretting the thoughtless fit of passion that brought him into his present situation, but especially the want of the pistols he had left behind, and which do so much to place bodily strength and weakness upon an equal footing, Charles yet availed himself of the courage and presence of mind, in which few of his unfortunate family had for centuries been deficient. He stood firm and without motion, his cloak still wrapped round the lower part of his face, to give time for ex- planation, in case he was mistaken for some other person. This coolness produced its effect ; for the other party said, with doubt and surprise on his part, ‘‘ Joceline Joliffe, is it not ?—if I know not Joceline Joliffe, I should at least know my own cloak.” “T am not Joceline Joliffe, as you may see, sir,” said Ker- neguy, calmly, drawing himself erect to show the difference of size, and dropping the cloak from his face and person. hindeed!’’ replied the’ stranger in surprise; “then, Sim Unknown, I have to express my regret at having used my cane in intimating that I wished you to stop. From that dress, ) eeWOODSTOCK. which I certainly recognize for my own, I concluded you must be Joceline, in whose custody I had left my habit at the Lodge : “Tf it had been Joceline, sir,” replied the supposed Kerne- uy, with a perfect composure, “ methinks you should not have truck so hard.” ; The other party was obviously confused by the steady calm- ness with which he was encountered. The sense of politeness dictated, in the first place, an apology for a mistake, when he thought he had been tolerably certain of the person. Master Kerneguy was not in a situation to be punctilious ; he bowed gravely, as indicating his acceptance of the excuse offered, then turned, and walked, as he conceived, toward the Lodge ; though he had traversed the woods, which were cut with vari- ous alleys in different directions, too hastily to be certain of the real course which he wished to pursue. He was much embarrassed to find that this did not get him rid of the companion whom he had thus involuntarily acquired. Walked he slow, walked he fast, his friend in the genteel but puritanic habit, strong in person, and well armed, as we have described him, seemed determined to keep him company, and, without attempting to join, or enter into conversation, never suffered him to outstrip his surveillance for more than two or three yards. ‘The Wanderer mended his pace; but, although he was then, in his youth, as afterward in his riper age, one of the best walkers in Britain, the stranger, without advancing his pace to a run, kept fully equal to him, and his persecution became so close and constant, and inevitable, that the pride and fear of Charles were both alarmed, and he began to think that, whatever the danger might be of a single-handed rencontre he would nevertheless have a better bargain of this tall satellite if they settled the debate betwixt them in the forest, than if they drew near any place of habitation, where the man in au- thority was likely to find friends and concurrents. Betwixt anxiety, therefore, vexation, and anger, Charles faced suddenly round on his pursuer, as they reached a small narrow glade, which led to the little meadow over which pre- sided the King’s Oak, the ragged and scathed branches and gigantic trunk of which formed a vista to the little wild avenue. “Sir,” said he to his pursuer, “ you have already been guilty of one piece of impertinence toward me. You have apolo- gized ; and knowing no reason why you should distinguish me as an object of incivility, I have accepted your excuse without scruple. Is there anything remains to be settled betwixt us, which causes you to follow me in this manner? If so, I shall Q woNi SN ee een re ee ee eRe eee eee eae abit shane rates 270 WOODSTOCK. be glad to make it a subject of explanation or satisfaction, as the case may admit of. I think youcan owe me no malice ; for I never saw you before to my knowledge. If you can give any sood reason for asking it, 1 am willing to render you personal satisfaction. If your purpose is merely impertinent curiosity, I let you know that I will not suffer myself to be dogged in my private walks by any one.” “When I recognize my own cloak on another man’s shoul- ders; replied the stranger, dryly, “ methinks I have a natural right to follow and see what becomes-of it; for know, sir, though I have been mistaken as to the wearer, yet I am confi- dent I had as good a right to stretch my cane across the cloak you are muffled in, as ever had any one to brush his own gar- ments. If therefore, we are to be friends, I must ask, for in- stance, how you came by that cloak, and where you are going with it? I shall otherwise make bold to stop you, as one who has sufficient commission to do so.” “Oh, unhappy cloak,” thought the Wanderer, “ay, and thrice unhappy the idle fancy that sent me here with it wrapped around my nose, to pick quarrels and attract observa- tion, when quiet and secrecy were peculiarly essential to my safety!” ‘Tf you will allow me to guess, sir,” continued the stranger, who was no other than Markham Everard, “I will convince you that you are better known than you think for.” “‘Now, Heaven forbid!” prayed the party addressed, in silence, but with as much devotion as ever he applied to a prayer in his life. Yet even in this moment of extreme urgency his courage and composure did not fail; and he recollected it was of the utmost importance not to seem startled, and to answer so as, if possible, to lead the dangerous companion with whom he had met, to confess the extent of his actual knowledge or suspicions concerning him. “If you know me, sit,” he said, ‘and are a gentleman, as your appearance promises, you cannot be at a loss to discover to what accident you must attribute my wearing these clothes, which you say are yours.” ‘Oh, sir,” replied Colonel Everard, his wrath in no sort turned away by the mildness of the stranger’s answer—‘ we have learned our Ovid’s Metamorphoses, and we know for what purposes young men of quality travel in disguise—we know that even female attire is resorted to on certain occasions —We have heard of Vertumnus and Pomona.” The Monarch, as he weighed these words, again uttered a devout prayer, that this ill-looking affair might have no deeperWOODSTOCK. root than the jealousy of some admirer of Alice Lee, promising to himself, that, devotee as he was to the fair sex, he would make no scruple of renouncing the fairest of Eve’s daughters in order to get out of the pres sent dilemma {Sin,? the saidyo* ‘you seem to be a gentleman. I have no objection to tell you, as such, that I also am. of sit class.” “ON somewhat higher, perhaps?” said Everarc ‘A gentleman,” replied Charles, pearl 8 compre: hends all ranks entitled to armorial bearings—A duke, a lord, a prince, is no more than a gentleman ; and if in misfortune, as I am, he may be glad if that general term of courtesy is allowed him.’ ‘* Sir,” replied Everard, ‘‘I have no purpose to entrap you to any relad pldtlbaucst ae to your own safety,—nor do I hold it my business to be active in the arrest of private indi viduals, whose perverted sense of national duty may have led ‘them into errors, rather to be pitied than punished by candid men. But bi those who have brought civil war and disturbance into their native country, proceed. to carry dishonor and dis- grace foe can of families hey attempt to carry on their private debaucheries to the injury of the hospitable roofs which afford them refuge from the consequences Sof their public crimes, do you think, my lord, that we shall bear it with patience ? ” ‘If it is your purpose to quarrel with me,’ said: the ance, “speak it out at once like a gentleman. You have the advan- tage, no doubt, of arms; but it is not that odds which wil induce me to fly from a single man. If, on the other hand, you are disposed to hear reason, I tell.you in calm words, that [ neither suspect the offence to ‘which you allude, nor compre- hend why you give me the title of my Lord.” “ You deny, then, being the Lord Wilmot?” said Everard. “T may do so most safely, said the prince. “ Perhaps you rather style yourself Earl of Rochester? We heard that the issuing of some such patent by the King of Scots was a step which your ambition proposed.” ‘Neither lord nor earl am J, as sure as I have a Christian soul to be saved. My name is’ “Do not degrade yourself by unnecessary falsehood, my lord; and that to a single man, who, I promise you, will not invoke public justice to assist his own good sw ord, should he see cause to use it. Can you look at that ring and deny that you are Lord Wilmot?” He handed to the disguised Prince a ring which he took from his opponent instantly knew it for the same he his purse, and eee: Wh tater OSey S44 aa A . a ‘al X - %272 WOODSTOCK. had dropped into Alice’s pitcher at the fountain, obeying only, though imprudently, the gallantry of the moment, in giving a pretty gem to a handsome girl, whom he had accidentally frightened. “I know the ring,” he said ; “it has been in my possession. How it should prove me to be Lord Wilmot, I cannot con- ceive ; and beg to say, it bears false witness against me.” ‘You shall see the evidence,” answered Everard ; and, resuming the ring, he pressed a spring ingeniously contrived in the collet of the setting, on which the stone flew back, and showed within it the cipher of Lord Wilmot beautifully engraved in miniature, with a coronet.—‘‘ What say you now, sir fey “That probabilities are no proofs,” said the Prince; “ there is nothing here save what can be easily accounted for. I am the son of a Scottish nobleman, who was mortally wounded and made prisoner at Worcester fight. When he took leave, and bid me fly, he gave me the few valuables he possessed, and that among others. I have heard him talk of having changed rings with Lord Wilmot, on some occasion in Scotland, but I never knew the trick of the gem which you have shown me.” In this it may be necessary to say, Charles spoke very truly; nor would he have parted with it in the way he did, had he suspected it would be easily recognized. He proceeded after a minute’s pause :—“‘ Once more, sir—I have told you much that concerns my safety—if you are generous, you will let me pass, and I may do you on some future day as good service. If you mean to arrest me, you must do so here, and at your own peril, for I will neither walk further your way, nor permit you to dog me on mine. If you let me pass, I will thank you ; if not, take to your weapon.” ‘Young gentleman,” said Colonel Everard, “ whether you be actually the gay young nobleman for whom I took you, you have made me uncertain ; but, intimate as you say your family had been with him, I have little doubt that you are proficient in the school of debauchery of which Wilmot and Villiers are professors, and their hopeful Master a graduated student. Your conduct at Woodstock, where you have rewarded the hospitality of the family by meditating the most deadly wound to their honor, has proved you too apt ascholar in such an academy. I intended only to warn you on this subject—it will be your own fault if I add chastisement to admonition.” ‘“ Warn me, sir!” said the Prince, indignantly. ‘“ and chas- tisement ! This is presuming more on my patience than is con: Pees Shik Neo Lees eee aaa SG OC ST crac =WOODSTOCK. sistent with your own safety—Draw, sir,”—So saying, he laid his hand on his sword. ““ My religion,” said Everard “ forbids me to be rash in shed- ding blood—Go home, sir—be wise—consult the dictates of honor as well as prudence. Respect the honor of the House of Lee, and know there is one nearly allied to it, by whom your motions will be called to severe account.” “ Aha!” said the Prince, with a bitter laugh, “I see the whole matter now—we have our roundheaded Colonel, our puritan cousin, before us—the man of texts and morals, whom Alice Lee laughs at so heartily. If your religion, sir, prevents you from giving satisfaction, it should prevent you from offering insult to a person of honor.” The passions of both were now fully up—they drew mutually and began to fight, the Colonel relinquishing the advantage he could have obtained by the use of his firearms. A thrust of the arm, or a slip of the foot, might, at the moment, have changed the destinies of Britain, when the arrival of a third party broke off the combat. CHAPTER TWENTY-FIFTH. Stay—for the King has thrown his warder down. RicHarp II. Tur combatants whom we left engaged at the end of the last chapter, made mutual passes at each other with apparently equal skill and courage. Charles had been too often in action, and too long a party as well as a victim to civil war, to find anything new or surprising in being obliged to defend himself with bis own hands ; and Everard had been distinguished, as well for his personal bravery, as for the other properties of a commander. But the arrival of a third party prevented the tragic conclusion of a combat, in which the success of either h cause for regretting his party must have given him muc victory. It was the old knight himself, who arrived, mounted upon a forest pony, for the war and sequestration had left him no steed of a more dignified description. He thrust himself between the combatants, and commanded them on their lives to hold. So xe other had ascertained to him soon as a glance from one to tl whom he had to deal with, he demanded, ‘“* Whether the devils , eS “ % Stet uaadueaeabdiessncoman cece ia Pte Pore,thas oases eee eee aR as 244 WOODSTOCK. of Woodstock, whom folk talked about, had got possession of them both, that they were tilting at each other within the verge of the royal liberties ? Let me tell both of you,” he said, “ that while old Henry Lee is at Woodstock, the immunities of the Park shall be maintained as much as if the King were still on the throne. None shall fight duellos here, excepting the stags in their season. Put up, both of you, or I shall lug out as thirdsman and prove perhaps the worst devil of the three !— As Will says— *T’ll so maul you and your toasfing-irons That you shall think the devil has. come from hell.’ ” The combatants desisted from their encounter, but stood looking at each other sullenly, as men do in such a situation, each unwilling to seem to desire peace more than the other, and averse therefore to be the first to sheathe his sword. ‘““ Return your weapons, gentlemen, upon the spot,” said the knight yet more € peremptorily, “one and both of you, or you will h nave something to do with me, I promise you. You may be thankful times are changed. I have known them such, that your insolence might have cost each of you your right |] not redeemed with a round sum of money. Nephew, if you do not mean to alienate me forever, I command you to put up.— Master Kerneguy, you are my guest. I request of you not to do me the insult of rem: aining with your sword drawn where it is my duty to see peace observed.” oe obey you, Sir Henry,” said the King pier—“T hardly indeed know wherefore I this gentleman. 1and, if , Sheathing his ra- was assaulted by [ assure you, none respects the King’s person or privileges more th: an myself—though the devotion is some- what out of fashion.’ “We may find a place to meet, sir,” replied Everard, where neither the royal person nor privileges can be of- rence,” “‘ Faith, very hardly, sir,” said Charles, unable to suppress the rising jest—“ I mean, the King has so few followers, that the loss of the least of them might be some small damage to him; but, risking all that, I will meet you wherever there is fair field for a poor cavalier to get off in safety, if he has t luck in fight.” Sir Henry Lee’s first idea had been fixed upon the insult offered to the royal demesne; he now began to turn them to- ward the safety of his kinsman, and of the young roy alist, as he deemed him. “Gentlemen,” he said, “I must insist on this business being put to a final end, Nephew Markhan,, is heWOODSTOCK. this your return for my condescension in coming back to Wood- stock on your warrant, that you should take an opportunity to cut the throat of my guest?” “Tf you knew his purpose as well as I do,’—said Mark- ham, and then paused, conscious that he might only incense his uncle without convincing him, as anything he might say of Kerneguy’s addresses to Alice was likely to be imputed to his own jealous suspicions—he looked on the ground, therefore, and was silent. “ And you, Master Kerneguy,”’ said Sir Henry, “can you give me any reason why you seek to take the life of this young man, in whom, though unhappily forgetful of his loyalty and duty, I must yet take some interest, as my nephew by affinity?” “T was not aware the gentleman enjoyed that honor, which certainly would have protected him from my sword,” answered Kemeguy. “ But the quarrel is his: nor can I tell any reason why he fixed it upon me, unless it were the difference of our political opinions.” “Vou know the contrary,” said Everard ; “ you know that I told you you were safe from me as a fugitive royalist—and your last words showed you were at no loss to guess my COn- nection with Sir Henry. That, indeed, is of little consequence. I should debase myself did I use the relationship as a means of protection from you, or any ones! As they thus disputed, neither choosing to approach the real cause of quarrel, Sir Henry looked from the one to the other, with a peace-making countenance, exclaiming— __—_“«« Why, what an intricate impeach is this ? I think you both have drunk of Circe’s cup.’ Come, my young masters, allow an old man to mediate be tween you. I am not shortsighted in such matters—The mother of mischief is no bigger than a enat’s wing: and I have known fifty instances in my own day, when, as Will says— ‘ Gallants have been confronted hardily, In single opposition, hand to hand,’ in which, after the field was fought, no one could remember the of quarrel—Tush! a small thing will do it—the taking of the wall—or the gentle rub of the shoulder in passing each other, or a hasty word, or a misconceived gesture—come, for- cet your cause of quarrel, be what it will—you have had your breathing, and though you put up your rapiers unblooded, that was no default of yours, but by command of your elder, and Cause 4 a . Ca a Werner! . +Se 276 WOODSTOCK. one who had right to use authority. In Malta, where the duello is punctiliously well understood, the persons engaged in a single combat are bound to halt on the command of a knight, or priest, or lady, and the quarrel so interrupted is held as honorably terminated, and may not be revived.—Nephew, it is, I think, impossible that you can nourish spleen against this young gentleman for having fought for his king. Hear my honest proposal, Markham—You know I bear no malice, though I have some reason to be offended with you—Give the young man your hand in friendship, and we will back to the Lodge, all three together, and drink a cup of sack in token of reconciliation.” Markham Everard found himself unable to resist this approach toward kindness on his uncle’s part. He suspected indeed, what was partly the truth, that it was not entirely from reviving good- will, but also, that his uncle thought, by such attention, to se- cure his neutrality at least if not his assistance, for the safety of the fugitive royalist. He was sensible that he was placed in an awkward predicament; and that he might incur the suspl- cions of his own party, for holding intercourse even witha near relation, who harbored such guests. But, on the other hand, he thought his services to the Commonwealth had been of suff. cient importance to outweigh whatever envy might urge on that topic. Indeed, although the Civil War had divided families much, and in many various ways, yet when it seemed ended by the triumph of the republicans, the rage of political hatred began to relent, and the ancient ties of kindred and friendship regained at least a part of their former influence. Many reunions were formed ; and those who, like Everard, adhered to the conquer- ing party, often exerted themselves for the protection of their deserted relatives. As these things rushed through his mind, accompanied with the prospect of a renewed intercourse with Alice Lee. by means of which he might be at hand to protect her against every chance, either of injury or insult, he held out his hand to the supposed Scottish page, saying at the same time, “That for his part, he was very ready to forget the cause of quarrel, or rather, to con- sider it as arising out ofa misapprehension, and to offer Master Kerneguy such friendship as might exist between honorable men, who had embraced different sides in politics.” Unable to overcome the feeling of personal dignity, which prudence recommended to him to forget, Louis Kerneguy in return bowed low, but without accepting Everard’s proffered hand. ‘““He had no occasion,” he said, “ to make any exertions toWOODSTOCK. 277 forget the cause of quarrel, for he had never been able to com- prehend it; but as he had not shunned the gentleman’s resent- ment, so he was now willing to embrace and return any degree of his favor, with which he might be pleased to honor him,” Everard withdrew his hand with a smile, and bowed in return to the salutation of the page, whose stiff reception of his advances he imputed to the proud pettish disposition of a Scotch boy, trained up in extravagant ideas of family conse- quence and personal importance, which his acquaintance with the world had not yet been sufficient to dispel. Sir Henry Lee, delighted with the termination of the quarrel, which he supposed to be in deep deference to his own authority, and not displeased with the opportunity of renewing some ac- quaintance with his nephew, who had, notwithstanding his polit- ical demerits, a warmer interest in his affections than he was, perhaps, himself aware of, said, in a tone of consolation, ‘‘ Never be mortified, young gentlemen. I protest it went to my heart to part you, when I saw you stretching yourselves so handsomely, and in fair love of honor, without any malicious or bloodthirsty thoughts, I promise you, had it not been for my duty as Ranger here, and sworn to the office, I would rather have been your umpire than your hindrance.—But a finished quarrel is a for- gotten quarrel; and your tilting should have no further con- sequence excepting the appetite it may have given you.” So saying, he urged forward his pony, and moved in triumph toward the Lodge by the nearest alley. His feet almost touch- in the ground, the ball of his toe just resting in the stirrup,— the forepart of the thigh brought round to the saddle,—the heels turned outward, and sunk as much as possible,—his body pre- cisely erect,—the reins properly and systematically divided in his left hand, his right holding a riding-rod diagonally pointed toward the horse’s left ear,—he seemed a champion of the manege, fit to have reined Bucephalus himself. His youthful companions, who attended on either hand like equerries, could scarcely suppress a smile at the completely adjusted and syste- matic posture of the rider, contrasted with the wild and diminu- tive appearance of the pony, with its shaggy coat, and long tail and mane, and its keen eyes sparkling like red coals from amongst the mass of hair which fell over its small countenance. If the reader has the Duke of Newcastle’s book on horseman- ship (splendida moles /) he may have some idea of the figure of the good knight, if he can conceive such a figure as one of the cavaliers there represented, seated, in all the graces of his art, on a Welch or Exmoor pony, in its native savage state, without grooming or discipline of any kind; the ridicule beingPSPs Gon massana tenet eans oases ee is 278 WOODSTOCK. greatly enhanced by the disproportion of size betwixt the animal and its rider. ‘‘ Perhaps the knight saw their wonder, for the first words he said after they left the ground were, ‘ Pixie, though small, is mettlesome, gentlemen” (here he contrived that Pixie should himself corroborate the assertion, by executing a gambade),— “he is diminutive, but full of spirit ;—indeed, save that I am somewhat too large for an elfin horseman” (the knight was upward of six feet high), “I should remind myself when I mount him, of the fairy King as described by Mike Drayton :— Himself he on an earwig set, Yet scarce upon his back could get, So oft and high he did curvet, Ere he himself could settle, He made him stop, and turn, and bound, To gallop and to trot the round, He scarce could stand on any ground, He was so full of mettle. ” ““ My old friend, Pixie,” said Everard, stroking the pony’s neck, “I am glad that he has survived all these bustling days —Pixie must be above twenty years old, Sir Henry ?” “Above twenty years, certainly. Yes, nephew Markham, war is a whirlwind in a plantation, which only spares what is least worth leaving. Old Pixie and his old master have sur- vived many a tall fellow and many a great horse—neither of them good for much themselves. Yet, as Will says, an old man can do somewhat. So Pixie and I still survive.” So saying, he again contrived that Pixie. should show some remnants of activity. “ Still survive?” said the young Scot, completing the sen- tence which the good knight had left unfinished—“ ay, still survive, * To witch the world with noble horsemanship. ’ ”’ Everard colored, for he felt the irony ; but not so his uncle, whose simple vanity never permitted him to doubt the sincerity of the compliment. “Are you avised of that?” he said. “In King James’s time, indeed, I have appeared in the tilt-yard, and there you might have said— * You saw young Harry with his beaver up.’ As to seeing o/d Harry, why” Here the knight paused, and looked as a bashful man in labor of a pun—* As to old HarryWOODSTOCK. 249 —why, you might as well see the devz7. You take me, Master Kerneguy—the devil, you know, is my namesake—ha—ha— ha !—Cousin Everard, | hope your precision is not startled by an innocent jest?” He was so delighted with the applause of both his com- panions, that he recited the whole of the celebrated passage re- ferred to, and concluded with defying the present age, bundle all its wits, Donne, Cowley, Waller, and the rest of them together, to produce a poet of a tenth part of the genius of old Will. ‘“ Why, we are said to have one of his descendants among us—Sir William D’Avenant,” said Louis Kerneguy ; “‘ and many think him as clever a fellow.” “What!” exclaimed Sir Henry—‘“ Will D’Avenant, whom I knew in the North, an officer under Newcastle, when the Marquis lay before Hull?—why, he was an honest cavalier, and wrote good doggerel enough; but how came he akin to Wiil Shakspeare, I trow?” “ Why,” replied the young Scot, “by the surer side of the house, and after the old fashion, if D’Avenant speaks truth. It seems that his mother was a good-looking, laughing, buxom mistress of an inn between Stratford and London, at which Will Shakspeare often quartered as he went down to his native town; and that, out of friendship and gossipred, as we say in Scotland, Will Shakspeare became godfather to Will D’Avenant ; and not contented with this spiritual affinity, the younger Will is for establishing some claim to a natural one, alleging that his mother was a great.admirer of wit, and there were no bounds to her complaisance for men of genius.” * “Out upon the hound!” said Colonel Everard ; ‘“‘ would he purchase the reputation of descending from poet or from prince, at the expense of his mother’s good fame ?>—his nose ought to be slit.” ore “That would be difficult,” answered the disguised Prince, recollecting the peculiarity of the bard’s countenance.T “Will D’Avenant the son of Will Shakspeare!” said the knight, who had not yet recovered his surprise at the enormity of the pretension ; ‘‘ why, it reminds me of a verse in the puppet show of Phaeton, where the hero complains to his mother— *This gossiping tale is to be found in the variorum Shakspeare. D’Avenant did not much mind throwing out hints, in which he sacrificed his mother’s character to his desire of being held a descendant from the admirable Shakspeare. —o + D’ Avenant actually wanted the nose, the foundation of many a Jest of the day. - ~ i. 5 - et) a Remeeeimeen ret htST ene eae jai Ritter LP PP ¢ } oe < WOODSTOCK. ‘ Besides, by all the village boys I am sham’d ; You the Sun’s son, you rascal be d—-d !’ * I never heard such unblushing assurance in my life!—Will D’Avenant the son of the brightest and best poet that ever was, is, or will be ?—But I crave your pardon, nephew—You, I believe, tove no stage plays.” ‘“Nay, I am not altogether so precise as you would make me, uncle. 1 have loved them perhaps too well in my time, and now I condemn them not altogether, or in gross, though I, approve not their excesses and extravagances.—I cannot, even in Shakspeare, but see many things both scandalous to decency and prejudicial to good manners—many things which tend to ridicule virtue, or to recommend vice,—at least to mitigate the hideousness of its features. I cannot think these fine poems are a useful study, and especially for the youth of either sex, in which bloodshed is pointed out as the chief occupation of the men, and intrigue as the sole employment of the women.” In making these observations, Everard was simple enough to think that he was only giving his uncle an opportunity of defending a favorite opinion, without offending him by a con- tradiction which was so limited and mitigated.—But here, as on other occasions, he forgot how obstinate his uncle was in his views, whether of religion, policy, or taste, and that it would be as easy to convert him to the Presbyterian form of govern- ment, or engage him to take the abjuration oath, as to shake his belief in Shakspeare. There was another peculiarity in the good knight’s mode of arguing, which Everard, being himself of a plain and downright character, and one whose religious tenets were in some degree unfavorable tothe suppressions and simulations often used in society, could never perfectly under- stand. Sir Henry, sensible of his natural heat of temper, was wont scrupulously to guard against it, and would for some time when, in fact, much offended, conduct a debate with all the external appearance of composure, till the violence of his feel- ings would rise so high as to overcome and bear away the arti- ficial barriers opposed to it, and rush down upon the adversary with accumulating wrath. It, thus frequently happened, that, like a wily old general, he retreated in the face of his disputant in good order and by degrees, with so moderate a degree of resistance, as to draw on his antagonist’s pursuit to the spot, * We observe this couplet in Fielding’s farce of Zusmble-down-Dick founded on the same classical story. As it was current in the time of the Commonwealth, it must have reached the Author of Zom Jones by tradition —-for no one will suspect the present Author of making the anachronism,WOODSTOCK. 281 where, at length, making a sudden and unexpected attack, with horse, foot, and artillery at once, he seldom failed to confound the enemy, though he might not overthrow him. It was on this principle, therefore, that, hearing Everard’s last observation, he disguised his angry feelings, and answered, with a tone where politeness was called in to keep guard upon passion, ‘‘ That undoubtedly the Presbyterian gentry had given, through the whole of these unhappy times, such proofs of a humble, unaspiring, and ambitious desire of the public good, as entitled them to general credit for the sincerity of those very strong scruples which they entertained against works, in which the noblest sentiments of religion and virtue,—sentiments which might convert hardened sinners, and be place& with propriety in the mouths of dying saints and martyrs, happened, from the rudeness and coarse taste of the times, to be mixed with some broad jests, and similar matter, which lay not much in the way, excepting of those who painfully sought such stuff out, that they might use it in vilifying what was in itself deserving of the highest applause. But what he wished especially to know from his nephew was, whether any of those gifted men, who had expelled the learned scholars and deep divines of the Church of England from the pulpit, and now flourished in their stead, received any inspiration from the muses (if he might use so pro- fane a term without offence to Colonel Everard), or whether they were not as sottishly and brutally averse from elegant letters, as they were from humanity and common sense i Colonel Everard might have guessed by the ironical tone in which this speech was delivered, what storm was mustering within his uncle’s bosom—nay, he might have conjectured the state-of the old knight’s feelings from his emphasis on the word Colonel, by which epithet, as that which most connected his nephew with the party he hated, he never distinguished Everard, unless when his wrath was rising ; while, on the contrary, when disposed to be on good terms with him, he usually called him Kinsman, or Nephew Markham. Indeed it was under a partial sense that this was the case, and in the hope to see his cousin Alice, that the Colonel forbore making any answer to the ha- rangue of his uncle, which had concluded just as the old knight had alighted at the door of the Lodge, and was entering the hall, followed by his two attendants. Phoebe at the same time made her appearance in the hall, and received orders to bring some “ beverage” for the gentle- men. The Hebe of Woodstock failed not to recognize and welcome Everard by an almost imperceptible courtesy ; but she did not serve her interest, as she designed, when she asked the oy ry a Sein rere meena DUETS bs PS Fe RT eee SIT oy aae ra a Serer hee Eee SORE NEURAL aan TMD ASS oa 83 WOODSTOCK. knight, as a question of course, whether he commanded the at tendance of Mistress Alice. A stern /Vo, was the decided reply; and the ill-timed interference seemed to increase his previous irritation against Everard for his depreciation of Shakspeare. ‘“T would insist,” said Sir Henry, resuming the obnoxious sub- ject, “were it fit for a poor disbanded cavalier to use such a phrase toward a commander of the conquering army,—upon knowing whether the convulsion which has sent us saints and prophets without end, has not also afforded us a poet with enough both of gifts and grace to outshihe poor old Will, the oracle and idol of us blinded and carnal cavaliers ? ” “Surely, sir,’ replied Colonel Everard ; I know verses written by a friend of the Commonwealth, and those, too, of a dramatic character, which, weighed in an impartial scale, might equal even the poetry of Shakspeare, and which are free from the fustion and indelicacy with which that great bard was sometimes content to feed the coarse appetites of his barbarous audience.” “Indeed! said the knight, keeping down his wrath with difficulty. “TI should like to be acquainted with this master- piece of poetry !—May we ask the name of this distinguished person?” “It must be Vicars, or Withers, at least,” said the feigned page. “No, sir, replied Everard, nor Drummond of Hawthorn- den nor Lord Stirling neither. And yet the verses will vindicate what I say, if you will make allowance for indifferent recitation, for I am better accustomed to speak to a battalion than to those who love the muses. The speaker is a lady benighted, who, having lost her way in a pathless forest, at first expresses her- self agitated by the supernatural fears to which her situation gave rise.” ‘A play, too, and written by a roundhead author!” said Sir Henry in surprise. “ A dramatic production at least, replied his nephew ; and began to recite simply, but with feeling, the lines now so well known, but which had then obtained no celebrity, the fame of the author resting upon the basis rather of his polemical and political publications, than on the poetry doomed in after days to support the eternal structure of his immortality, “ These thoughts may startle but will not astound The virtuous mind that ever walks attended By a strong-siding champion, Conscience.’ “* My own opinion, nephew Markham, my Own opinion,” said sir Henry, with a burst of admiration: better expressed, butWOODSTOCK. 283 just what I said when the scoundrelly roundheads pretended to see ghosts at Woodstock—Go on, I prithee.” Everard proceeded :— “Oh welcome pure-eyed Faith, white-handed Hope. Thou hovering angel, girt with golden wings, And thou unblemish’d form of Chastity ! I see ye visibly, and now believe That he, the Supreme Good, to whom all things ill Are but as slavish officers of vengeance, Would send a glistering guardian, if need were, To keep my life and honor unassail’d, Was I deceived, or did a sable cloud, Turn forth her silver lining on the night?’ “The rest has escaped me,” said the reciter ; “and I marvel I have been able to remember so much.” Sir Henry Lee, who had expected some effusion very different from those classical and beautiful lines, soon changed the scornful expression of his countenance, relaxed his contorted upper lip, and stroking down his beard with his left hand, rested the forefinger of the right upon his eyebrow, in sign of profound attention. After Everard had ceased speaking, the old man sighed as at the end of astrain of sweet music. He then spoke in a gentler manner than formerly. “(Cousin Markham,” he said, “these verses flow sweetly, and sound in my ears like the well-touched warbling of a lute. But thou knowest Iam something slow of apprehending the full meaning of that which I hear for the first time. Repeat me these verses again, slowly and deliberately; for I always love to hear poetry twice, the first time for sound, and the latter time for sense.” Thus encouraged, Everard recited again the lines with more hardihood and better effect; the knight distinctly understand- ing and from his looks and motions, highly applauding them. “Yes!” he broke out, whe. Everard was again silent— “Ves, I do call that poetry—though it were even written by a Presbyterian, or a Anabaptist either. Ay, there were good and righteous people to be found even amongst the offending towns which were destroyed by fire. And certainly I have heard, though with little credence (begging your pardon, cousin Everard), that there are men among you who have seen the error of their ways in rebelling against the best and kindest of masters, and bringing it to that pass that he was murdered by a gang yet fiercer than themselves. Ay, doubtless, the gentle- ness of spirit, and the purity of mind, which dictated those beautiful lines, has long ago taught a man so amiable to say, IPARA kaeinsnisaaiubecaa ene eee are 234 WOODSTOCK. have sinned, I have sinned. Yes, I doubt not so sweet a harp has been broken, even in remorse, for the crimes he was witness to; and now he sits drooping for the shame and sorrow of England,—all his noble rhymes, as Will says ‘ Like sweet bells jangled, out of tune and harsh,’ Dost thou not think so, Master Kerneguy ?” “Not I, Sir Henry,” answered the page, somewhat mali- ciously. ‘“ What, dost not believe the author of these lines must needs be of the better file, and leaning to our persuasion ? ” “I think, Sir Henry, that the poetry qualifies the author to write a play on the subject of Dame Potiphar and her recusant lover; and as for his calling—that last metaphor of the cloud in a black coat or cloak, with silver lining, would have dubbed him a tailor with me, only that I happen to know that he is a schoolmaster by profession, and by political opinions qualified to be Poet Laureate to Cromwell ; for what Colonel Everard has repeated with such unction, is the production of no less cele- brated a person than John Milton.” “ John Milton!” exclaimed Sir Henry in astonishment— “What! John Milton, the blasphemous and bloody-minded author of the Defensio Populi Anglicani!—the advocate of the infernal High Court of Fiends; the creature aud parasite of that grand impostor, that loathsome hypocrite, that detestable monster, that prodigy of the universe, that disgrace of mankind, that landscape of iniquity, that sink of sin, and that compen- dium of baseness, Oliver Cromwell!” ‘* Even the same John Milton,” answered Charles ; “ school- master to little boys, and tailor to the clouds, which he furnishes with suits of black, lined with silver, at no other expense than that of common sense.” “Markham Everard,” said the old knight “* I will never forgive thee—never, never. Thou hast made me speak words of praise respecting one whose offal should fatten the region- kites. Speak not to me, sir, but begone! Am I, your kinsman and benefactor, a fit person to bejuggled out of my commen- dation and eulogy, and brought to bedaub such a whitened sepulchre as the sophist Milton ? ” ‘I profess,” said Everard, “ this is hard measure, Sir Henry. You pressed me—you defied me to produce poetry as good as Shakspeare’s. I only thought of the verses, not of the politics of Milton.” © yes; sir,” replied Sir Henry, “we well know your powerWOODSTOCK. 285 of making distinctions; you could make war against the King’s prerogative, without having the least design against his person. Oh, Heaven forbid! But Heaven will hear and judge you.— Set down the beverage, Phaebe”—(this was added by way of parenthesis to Phcebe, who entered with refreshment)— “ Col- onel Everard is not thirsty——You have wiped your mouths, and said you have done no evil. But though you have deceived man, yet God you cannot deceive. And you shall wipe no lips in Woodstock, either after meat or drink, I promise you.” Charged thus at once with the faults imputed to his whole religious sect and political party, Everard felt too late of what imprudence he had been guilty in giving the opening, by dis- puting his uncle’s taste in dramatic poetry. He endeavored to explain—to apologize. “IT mistook your purpose, honored sir, and thought you really desired to know something of our literature ; and in repeating what you deemed not unworthy your hearing, I pro- fess I thought I was doing you pleasure, instead of stirring your indignation.” “QO ay!” returned the knight, with unmitigated mgor of resentment—* profess—profess—Ay, that is the new phrase of asseveration, instead of the profane adoration of courtiers and cavaliers—Oh, sir, profess less and practice more—and so good day to you—Master Kerneguy, you will find beverage in my apartment.” While Phoebe stood gaping in admiration at the sudden quarrel which had arisen, Colonel Everard’s vexation and re- sentment was not a little increased by the nonchalance of the young Scotsman, who, with his hands thrust into his pockets (with a courtly affectation of the time), had thrown himself into one of the antique chairs, and, though habitually too polite to laugh aloud, and possessing that art of internal laughter by which men of the world learn to indulge their mirth without incurring quarrels, or giving direct offence, was at no particular trouble to conceal that he was exceedingly amused by the re- sult of the Colonel’s visit to Woodstock. Colonel Everard’s patience, however, had reached bounds which it was very likely to surpass; for, though differing widely in politics, there was a resemblance betwixt the temper of the uncle and nephew. “ Damnation !”? exclaimed the Colonel, in a tone which became a puritan as little as did the exclamation itself. “ Amen!” said Louis Kerneguy, but in a tone so soft and eentle, that the ejaculation seemed rather to escape him than to be designedly uttered. “Sir,” said Everard, striding toward him in that sort of Wee tts Prost ls eer one bh.Bibiiessenereessaaeuaanaeaece eee eee eee eae a st 286 WOODSTOCK. humor, when a man, full of resentment, would not unwillingly find an object on which to discharge it. “ Plait-il ?” said the page, in the most equable tone, look- Ing up in his face with the most unconscious innocence. ‘“‘T wish to know, sir,” retorted Everard, “ the meaning of that which you said just now ?” ‘Only a pouring out of the spirit, worthy sir,” returned Kerneguy—‘“a small skiff despatched to Heaven on my own account, to keep company with your holy petition just now ex- pressed.” ‘Sir, I have seen a merry gentleman’s bones broken for such a smile as you wear just now,” replied Everard. “There, look you now! ” answered the malicious page, who could not weigh even the thoughts of his safety against the enjoyment of his jest—‘“ If you had stuck to your professions, worthy sir, you must have choked by this time; but your round execration bolted like a cork from a bottle of cider, and now allows your wrath to come foaming out after it, in the honest unbaptized language of common ruffians.” “ For Heaven’s sake, Master Girnegy,” said Phoebe, “ for- bear giving the Colonel those bitter words! And do you, good Colonel Markham, scorn to take offence at his hands—he js but a boy.” “If the Colonel or you choose, Mrs. Pheebe, you shall find me a man—I think the gentleman can say something to the purpose already.—Probably he may recommend to you the part of the Lady in Comus ; and I only hope his own admiration of John Milton will not induce him to undertake the part of Sam- son Agonistes, and blow up this old house with execrations, or pull it down in wrath about our ears.” “Young man,” said the Colonel, still in a towering passion, “if you respect my principles for nothing else, be grateful to the protection which for them, you would not easily attain.” “Nay, then,” said the attendant, “I must fetch those who have more influence with you than I have,” and away tripped Phoebe ; while Kerneguy answered Everard in the same pro- voking tone of calm indifference,— : Before you menace me with a thing so formidable as your resentment, you ought to be certain whether I may not be com- pelled by circumstances to deny you the opportunity you seem to point at.” At this moment Alice, summoned no doubt by her attend- ant, entered the hall hastily. ‘“ Master Kerneguy,” she said, “ my father requests to see you in Victor Lee’s apartment.”CODSLOGK 28 207 Kerneguy arose and bowed, but seemed determined to re- main till Everard’s departure, so as to prevent any explanation betwixt the cousins “Markham,” said Alice, hurriedly—‘‘ Cousin Everard—lI have but a moment to remain here—for God’s sake do you in- stantly begone !—be cautious and patient—but do not tarry here—my father is fearfully incensed.” ‘“‘J have had my uncle’s word for that, madam,” replied Everard, ‘‘as well as his injunction to depart, which I will obey without delay. I was not aware that you would have seconde d so harsh an order quite so willingly ; but I go, madam, sensible I leave those behind whose company is more a wesepla? ; ful!” said Ali out fearful a Aol £ - + Cc > ‘“* Unjust—ungenerous—ung! 5 her words might reach ears for which they were not designed, she spoke them in a voice so feeble, that her cousin, for whom they were intended, lost the consolation they were calculated to convey. He bowed coldly to Alice, as taking leave, and said, with an air of that constrained courtesy which sometimes covers, among men of condition, the most deadly hatred, ‘“‘ I believe, Master Kerneguy, that I must make it convenient at present to suppress my own peculiar opinions on the matter which we have hinted at in our conversation, in which case I will send a gentleman who, I hope, may be able to conquer yours.” The supposed Scotsman made him a stately, and at the same time a condescending bow, said he should expect the honor of his commands, offered his hand to Mistress Alice, to conduct her back k to her father’s apartment, and took a triumph- ant leave of his rival. Everard, on ie e other hand, stung beyond hi S patien ce, and, from the grace a ae ymposed assurance of the youth’s carriage, still conceiving hi im to be either Wilmot, or some of his com- peers in rank and profligacy, returned to the town of Wood- stock, determined not to be outbearded, even though he should seek redress by means which his principles forbade him to con- sider as justifiable Peet terri rte tt raver enero:DRT wccsta tibetan al a * {Remains Ya — < WOODSTOCK. CHAPTER TWENTY-SIXTH. Boundless intemperance In nature is a tyranny—it hath been The untimely emptying of many a throne, And fall of many kings MACBETH. WHILE Colonel Everard retreated in | hig! 1 indignation from the little refection, which Sir Henry Lee had in his. good humor offered, and wit hdraw n under the circumstances of provocation which we have detailed, the good old knight, scarce recovered from his fit of passion, partook of it with his daughter and guest, and shortly after, recollecting some silvan ‘task (for, though to little efficient purpose, he still regularly attended to his duties as Ranger), he called Bevis, and went out, leaving the two Os Se together. “ Now,” said the amorous Prince to himself, “that Alice is. left without Hie lion, it remains to see whether she i is herself of a tigress breed.—So Sir Bevis has left his ch 1arge,” he said aloud; ‘“‘I thought the knights of old, those stern cuardians of which he is so fit a representative, were more rigorous in main- taining a vigilant guard.” “Bevis,” said Alice, “knows that his attendance on me is totally needless ; and, moreover, he has other duties to perform, which every true knight prefers. to dangling the whole morning by a lady’s sleeve.” “You speak treason against all true affection,” said th gallant; ‘a lady’s lightest wish should to a true knight be more binding than aught excepting the summons of his sov erelgn. [ wish, Mistress Alice, you would but intimate your slightest desire to me, and you should see how I have practiced obe- dience.7 ‘You never brought me word what o’clock it was this morn- ing,” replied the young lady, “and there I sat questioning of the wings of Time, w hen I should have remembered that gen- tlemen’s gallantry can be quite as fugitive as Time himself. How do you know what your disobec Jience may have cost me and others ? oe ling and pasty may have been burned to a cinder, for, sir, I pr ractice the old domestic rule of visiting the kitchen; or L may have missed prayers, or I may have been too late for an appointment, simp ly by the shaeipettes of Master Louis Kerneguy failing to let me know the hour of the day.”WOODSTOCK. 289 “Oh,” replied Kerneguy, “I am one of those lovers who cannot endure absence—I must be eternally at the feet of my fair enemy—such, I think, is the title with which romances ceach us to grace the fair and cruel to whom we devote our hearts and lives.—Speak for me, good lute,” he added, taking up the instrument, ‘‘and show me whether I know not my duty.” He sung, but with more taste than execution, the air of a French rondelai, to which some of the wits or sonnetteers, in his gay and roving train, had adapted English verses. An hour with thee !—When earliest day Dapples with gold the eastern gray, Oh, what can frame my mind to bear The toil and turmoil, cark and care, New griefs, which coming hours unfold, And sad remembrance of the old ?”’— One hour with thee! One hour with thee !—When burning June Waves his red flag at pitch of noon ; What shall repay the faithful swain, His labor on the sultry plain ; And more than cave and sheltering bough, Cool feverish blood, and throbbing brow ? One hour with thee! ord One hour with thee !—When sun is set, Oh! what can teach me to forget The thankless labors of the day ; The hopes, the wishes, flung away ; The increasing wants, and lessening gains, The master’s pride, who scorns my pains ?— One hour with thee ! ‘‘ Truly, there is another verse,” said the songster; “ but I sing it not to you, Mistress Alice, because some of the prudes of the court liked it not.” “T thank you, Master Louis,” answered the young lady, “both for your discretion in singing what has given me pleasure, and in forbearing what might offendime. Though a country girl, I pretend to be so far of the court mode, as to re- ceive nothing which does not pass current among the better class. there.” “T would,” answered Louis, ‘‘ that you were so well con- firmed in their creed, as to let all pass with you to which court ladies would give currency.” “And what would be the consequence?” said Alice, with perfect composure.Se Dia Nt ren nT eee teh ra cn ‘etiam erences } 290 WOODSTOCK. “Tn that case,” said Louis, embarrassed li] finds that his preparations for attack do not see fear or confusion into the enemy—‘“ give me, fair Alice, if spoke to you in. a warmer language than that of mere gallantry—if I told you how much my heart was interested in what you consider as idle jesting—if I seriously owned it was in your power to make me the happiest or the most miserable of human beings.” “ Master Kerneguy,” said Alice, with the same unshaken nonchalance, “let us understand each other. I am little acquainted with high-bred manners, and I am unwilling, I tell you plainly, to be = 4 ss 1) A M4 EIVING THE ‘ J CHARLES RE; f P j | baWOODSTOCK. 299 ‘T understand, sir,” replied Charles; ‘if this matter goes forward, be assured I will endeavor to provide you with suitable opponent.’’ bte ( ‘T shall remain greatly indeb > said Wildrake; d toy ny SI ‘and I am by no means curious about the ane of my au. Cc tagonist.—It is true I write myself esquire and gentleman, and should account myself esp cially honore d by crossing my sword with that of Sir Henry or Master Albert Lee; but sl hould that not be convenient, I will not refuse to present my im or person in Opposition to any gentleman who has served the King, which aie no as a sort of letters of nobility in itself, and, there- or account decline the duello with such a person.” I [he King is much obliged to you, sir,” said Charles, “ for the honor you do his faithful subjects.” 66 £\L See ee Ri ee 2 devised are Tar E . Oh, sir, I am scrup ab us on that point—very scrupulous.—- ) TA ae ee a 1 ee $e Le 4) When there is a aaah ad in question, I consult the Herald’s books. to see that he is entitled to bear arms, as is Master SR ore Li eit aed ot - arkham Everard, without eet ch , I promise you, I had borne But a cavalier is with me a gentleman, of See Bee foe ea ae : <7 a = : course—Be his birth ever so low, his loyalty has ennobled his condit ion.’ cos vel] ‘r.?’ said the Kine. “TI 7 bE tS WEL. Sik, Sal¢ be SIN? i his paper See ime to meet Master Everard at six to-morrow mo rning, at the tree called the King’s Oak.—I object neither to place nor time. He proffers the sword, at which, he says, we possess some equ ality lo not decline the weapon; for company, two gentlemen— [ shall endeavor to procure myself an associate, and a suitable partner for you, sir, if you incline to join in the dance.” ‘“T kiss your hand, sir, and rest yours, under a sense of obli- eatlon, < [ thank y inued the King; “I will therefore be ready at place | suitably furnished ; and I will either give your friend suc satisfaction with my sword as he V requires, or wil ch cause for not doing so as he will be cont ith. You “ill excuse me, sir,” said Wildrake, “if my mind is too dull, under the circumstances, to conceive any alternativy Ly tid 66 that can remain betwixt two men of honor in such a case, ex- cepting—sa—sa—.”’ we threw himself into a fencing posi tion, and madea pass \ ith his sheathed rapier, but not directed toward the person o! th .e King, whom he addressed. “ Excuse me, sir,” said C harles, “if I do not trouble your intellects with the consideration of a case which may not occur. —But, for example, I may plead urgent employment on the 4 A Cas a aE Peer ts ert % XPy SaaRRAaea tease ananassae Date eA aaa EA LDS AN Se } 300 WOODSTOCK. part of the public.’—This he spoke in a low and mysterious tone of voice, which Wildrake appeared perfectly to comprehend ; for he laid his forefinger on his nose with what he meant fora very intelligent and apprehensive nod. “Sir,” said he, “if you be engaged in any affair for the King, my friend shall have every reasonable degree of patience —WNay, I will fight him myself in your stead, merely to stay nis stomach, rather than you should be interrupted.—And, sir, if you can find room in your enterprise for a poor gentleman that has followed Lunsford and Goring; you have but to name day, time, and place of rendezvous; for truly, sir, I] am tired of the scald hat, cropped hair, and undertaker’s cloak, with which my friend has bedizened me, and would willingly ruffle it out once more in the King’s cause, when whether I be banged or hanged, I care not.” ‘I shall remember what you say, sir, should an opportunity occur,” said the King; “and I wish his Majesty had many such subjects.—I presume our business is now settled ? ” ‘“ When you shall have been pleased, sir, to give me a trifl- ing scrap of writing, to serve for my credentials—for such, you know, is the custom—your written cartel hath its written answer,” “That, sir, will I presently do,” said Charles, “and in good time—here are the materials.” ~ And, sir,” continued the envoy—“ Ahi! ahem !—if you have interest in the household for a cup of sack—I am a man of few words, and am somewhat hoarse with much speaking— moreover, a serious business of this kind always makes one thirsty.—Besides, sir, to part with dry lips argues malice, which God forbid should exist in such an honorable con- juncture.” “I do not boast much influence in the house, sir,” said the King ; “but if you would have the condescension to accept of this broad piece toward quenching your thirst at the George” “Sir,” said the cavalier (for the times admitted of this strange species of courtesy, nor was Wildrake a man of such peculiar delicacy as keenly to dispute the matter),—‘‘I am once again beholden to you. But I see not how it consists with my honor to accept of such accommodation, unless you were to accompany and partake ?” ‘Pardon me, sir,” replied Charles, “ my safety recommends that I remain rather private at present.” “Enough said,” Wildrake observed ; “ poor cavaliers must not stand on ceremony. I see, sir, you understand cutter’sWOODSTOCK. 301 law—when one tall feilow has coin, another must not be thirsty. I wish you, sir, a continuance of health and happiness until to-morrow, at the King’s Oak, at six o’clock.” ‘Farewell, sir,” said the King, and added, as Wildrake went down the stair whistling “ Hey for cavaliers,” to which air his iong rapier, jarring against the steps and banisters, bore no unsuitable burden—* Farewell, thou too just emblem of the state, to which war, and defeat, and despair, have reduced many a gallant gentleman.” During the rest of the day there occurred nothing peculiarly deserving of notice. Alice sedulously avoided showing toward the disguised Prince any degree of estrangement or shyness which could be discovered by her father, or by any one else. To all appearance the two young persons continued on the same footing in every respect. Yet she made the gallant himself sensible, that this apparent intimacy was assumed merely to save appearances, and in no way designed as retracting from the severity with which she had rejected his suit. The sense that this was the case, joined to his injured self-love, and his enmity against a successful rival, induced Charles early to withdraw himself to a solitary walk in the wilderness, where, like Hercules in the emblem of Cebes, divided betwixt the personifications of Virtue and of Pleasure, he listened _alter- nately to the voice of Wisdom and of passionate Folly. Prudence urged to him the importance of his own life to the future prosecution of the great object in which he had for the present miscarried—the restoration of monarchy in Eng- land, the rebuilding of the throne, the regaining the crown of his father, the avenging his death, and restoring to their for- tunes and their country the numerous exiles, who were suffering poverty and banishment on account of their attachment to his cause. Pride too, or rather a just and natural sense of dignity, displayed the unworthiness of a Prince descending to actual personal conflict with a subject of any degree, and the ridicule which would be thrown on his memory, should he lose his life for an obscure intrigue by the hand of a private gentleman. What would his sage counselors, Nicholas and Hyde—what would his kind and wise governor, the Marquis of Hertford, sav to such an act of rashness and folly? Would it not be likely to shake the allegiance of the staid and prudent persons of the royalist party, since wherefore should they expose their lives and estates to raise to the government of a kingdom a young man who could not command his own temper? To this was to be added, the consideration that even his success would add double difficulties to his escape, which already seemedFRR eeanisaansasLnnns cones Se 202 WOODSTOCK. sufficiently precarious. If, stopping short of death, he merely had the better of his antagonist, how did he know that he might not seek revenge by delivering up to government the Malignant ouis Kerneguy, whose real character could not in that case ail to be discovered ? These considerations strongly recommended to Charles that he should clear himself of the challenge without fighting; and the reservation under which he had accepted it, afforded him some opportunity of doing so. But Passion also had her arguments;.which she addressed to a temper rendered irritable by recent distress and mortifica- tion. In the first place, if he was a prince, he was also a gen- tleman, entitled to resent as such, and. obliged to give or claim the satisfaction expected on occasion of differences among gentlemen. With Englishmen, she urged, he could never lose interest by showing himself ready, instead of sheltering himself under his royal birth and pretensions, to come frankly forward and maintain what he had done or said on his own responsi- t In a free nation, it seemed as if he would rather gain than lose in the public estimation, by a conduct which could not but seem gallant and generous. Then a character for courage was far more necessary to support his pretensions than as far n any other kind of reputation ; and the lying under a challenge, without replying to it, might bring his spirit.into question. What would Villiers and Wilmot say of an intrigue, in which he had allowed himself to be shamefully baffled by acountry girl, | had failed to revenge himself on his rival? The pasqui- les which they would compose, the witty sarcasms which they would circulate on the occasion, would be harder to en- dure than the grave rebukes of Hertfort, Hyde, and Nicholas. Chis reflection, added to the stings of youthful and awakened courage, at length fixed his resolution, and he returned to Wood- stock determined to keep his appointment, come of it what might. Perhaps there mingled with his resolution a secret belief hat such a rencontre would not prove fatal. He was in the t flower of his youth, active in all his exercises, and no way in- { ] i Nac anc nat erlor to Colonel Everard, as far as the morning’s experiment ad gone, in that of self-defence. At least, such recollection might pass through his royal mind, as he hummed to himself a well-known ditty, which he had picked up during his residence in Scotland— “ A man may drink and not be drunk; A man may fight and not be slain; A man may kiss a bonnie lass, And yet be welcome back again.”WOODSTOCK. Meanwhile the busy and all-directing Dr. Rochecliffe had contrived to intimate to Alice that she must give him a private audience, and she found him by appointment in what was called the study, once filled with ancient books, which, long since con- verted into cartridges, had made more noise in the world at their final exit, than during the space which had intervened betwixt that and their first publication, The Doctor seated himself in a high-backed leathern easy-chair, and signed to Alice to fetch a stool and sit down beside him. “ Alice,” said the old man, taking her hand affectionately, “thou art a good girl, a wise girl, a virtuous girl, one of those whose price is above rubies—not that rwdzes is the proper transla- tion—but remind me to tell you of that another time. Alice, thou knowest who this Louis Kerneguy is—nay, hesitate not to me—I know everything—I am well aware of the whole matter. Thou knowest this honored house holds the fortunes of Eng- land.” Alice was about to answer. ‘“ Nay, speak not, but lis- ten to me, Alice—How does he bear himself toward you?” Alice colored with the deepest crimson. “I am a coun- try-bred girl,” she said, “and his manners are too court-like for me.” “Enough said—I know it all. Alice, he is exposed to a ereat danger to-morrow, and you must be the happy means to prevent him.” ‘‘T prevent him !—how, and in what manner 2” said Alice: in surprise. “It is my duty, as a subject, to do anything—any thing that may become my father’s daughter” “ Here she stopped considerably embarrassed “Ves,” continued the Doctor, “ to-morrow he hath made an appointment—an appointment with Markham Everard ; the hour and place are set—six in the morning, by the King’s Oak. If they meet, one will probably fall.” “Now, may God forfend they should meet,” said Alice, turning as suddenly pale as_ she had previously reddened. 9) . 7 “But harm cannot come of it; Everard will never lift his sword against the King.” “For that,” Said Dr. Rochecliffe, “I would not warrant. But if that unhappy young gentleman shall have still some reserve of the loyalty which his general conduct entirely dis- avows, it would not serve us here ; for he knows not the King, but considers him merely as a cavalier, from whom he has re- ceived injury.” “ Tet him know the truth, Doctor Rochecliffe, let him know it instantly,” said Alice; “ Ze lift hand against the King, a S =n Ret, oS e eomer ter tere t rn eenseS nantes rea Te eae ore 304, WOODSTOCK. fugitive and defenceless! He is incapable of it. “My life on the issue, he becomes most active in his preservation.” “That is the thought of a maiden, Alice,” answered the Doctor ; “ and, as I fear, of a maiden whose wisdom is misled by her affections. It were worse than treason to admit a rebel officer, the friend of the arch-traitor Cromwell, into so great a secret. I dare not answer for such rashness. Hammond was trusted by his father, and you know what came of it.” “Then let my father know. He will meet Markham, or send to him, representing the indignity done to him by attack- ing his guest.” “We dare not let your father into the sccret who Louis Kerneguy really is. I did but hint the possibility of Charles taking refuge at Woodstock, and the rapture into which Sir Henry broke out, the preparations for accommodation and defence which he began to talk of, plainly showed that the mere enthusiasm of his loyalty would have led to a risk of dis- covery. It is you, Alice, who must save the hopes of every true royalist.” “I!” answered Alice ; “ it is impossible—Why cannot my father be induced to interfere, as in behalf of his friend and guest, though he know him as no other than Louis Kerneguy ? ” ‘““ You have forgot your father’s character, my young friend,” said the Doctor ; “‘ an excellent man, and the best of Christians, till there is a clashing of swords, and then he starts up the complete martialist, as deaf to every pacific reasoning as if he were a game-cock.” ‘You forget, Doctor Rochecliffe,” said Alice, “ that this very morning, if I understand the thing aright, my father prevented them from fighting.” ‘“ Ay,” answered the Doctor, “ because he deemed himself bound to keep the peace in the Royal Park ; but it was done with such regret, Alice, that, should he find them at it again, I am clear to foretell he will only so far postpone the combat as to conduct them to some unprivileged ground, and there bid them tilt and welcome, while he regaled his eyes with a scene so pleasing. No, Alice, it is you, and you only, who can help us in this extremity.” “I see no possibility,” said she, again coloring, “ how I can be of the least use.” “You must send a note,” answered Dr. Rochecliffe, “ to the King—a note such as all women know how to write better than any man can teach them—to meet you at the precise hour of the rendezvous. He will not fail you, for I know his unhappy foible.”’WOODSTOCK. “ Doctor Rochecliffe,” said Alice, gravely,—‘‘ you have known me from infancy,—What have you seen in me to induce you to believe that I should ever follow such unbecoming counseles 7 “ And if you have known me from infancy,” retorted the Doctor, “‘ what have you seen of me that you should suspect me of giving counsel to my friend’s daughter, which it would be misbecoming in her to follow? You cannot be fool enough, I think, to suppose, that 1 mean you should carry your com- placence further than to keep him in discourse for an hour or two, till I have all in readiness for his leaving this place, from which I can frighten him by the terrors of an alleged search ?— So C. S. mounts his horse and rides off, and Mistress Alice Lee has the honor of saving him.” “Ves, at the expense of her own reputation,” said Alice, ‘and the risk of an eternal stain on my family. You say you know all. What can the King think of my appointing an assignation with him after what has passed, and how will it be possible to disabuse him respecting the purpose of my doing So PF ‘“ T will disabuse him, Alice ; I will explain the whole.” “ Doctor Rochecliffe,”’ said Alice, ‘‘ you propose what is im- possible. You can do much by your ready wit and great wisdom ; but if new-fallen snow were once sullied, not all your art could wash it white again ; and it is altogether the same with a maiden’s reputation.” “ Alice, my dearest child,” said the Doctor, bethink you that if I recommend this means of saving the life of the King, at least rescuing him from instant peril, it is because I see no other of which to avail myself. If I bid you assume, even for a moment, the semblance of what is wrong, it is but in the last extremity, and under circumstances which cannot return—I will take the surest means to prevent all evil report which can arise from what I recommend.” “ Say not so, Doctor,” said Alice ; “ better undertake to turn back the Isis than te stop the course of calumny. The King will make boast to his whole licentious court, of the ease with which, but for a sudden alarm, he could have brought off Alice Lee as a paramour—the mouth which confers honor on others will then be the means to deprive me of mine. ‘Take a fitter course, one more becoming your own character and profession. Do not lead him to fail in an engagement of honor, by holding out the prospect of another engagement equally dishonorable, whether false or true. Go to the King himself, speak to him, as the servants of God have a right to speak even to earthly" RE ee ee anne a ne Ss = ™ = be Oo stile Pos } 306 WOODSTOCK. sovereigns, Point out to him the folly and the wickedness of the course he is about to pursue—urge upon him, that he fear the sword, since wrath bringeth the punishment of the sword. Tell him, that the friends “who died for him in the field at Worcester, on the scaffolds, and on the eibbets, since that bloody day—that the remnant who are a prison, scattered, fled, and ruined on his account, deserve bette race, than that he should throw aw: Ly hi 5 life | in an idle brawl —Tell him, that it is dishonest to venture that which is not his own, dishonorable to betray the trust which brave men have reposed in his virtue and in his courage,” Doctor Rochecliffe looked on her with f him and his father’ S with a melancholy smile his eyes or 1g as he said, “‘ Alas! Alice, even I could not ple sae that just cause to him so eloquently or so impressively as thou dost But, alack! Charles would listen to neither. It is not from priests or women, he would say, that men should receive counsel in affairs of honor.” ‘Then, hear me, Doctor Rochecliffe—I will a appear at the ace of rendezvous, and I will gota the combat—do not fear that I can do what I say—at a sacrifice, indeed, but not that of my reputation. My heart may iss brokennexghie endeavored to stifle her sobs with difficulty—“ for the consequence; but not in the imagination of a man, and far less that man her sovereign, shall a thought of Alice Lee be associated with dis- honor.” She hid her face in her h: indkerehief, and burst out into unrestrained tears. ‘What means this hysterical passion ?” said Dr. Roc hecliffe, ee and somewhat alarmed by the vehemence of her grief ‘Maiden, I must have no cunebatinenes: [I must know.” ‘Exert your ingenuity, then, and discover it.”’ said Alice— for a moment put out of temper at the Doctor’s self-i oo tance—* Guess my purpose, as you can guess at every thing else. It 1S enough to have to go through my task, I will not ee the _ istress of telling it over, and that to one who pert inac ‘ous —forgive me, dear Doctor—might ‘not think my agitation on this occasion inp warranted.” ee Nay, then, my young mistress, you must be ruled,” said Rochecliffe; “and if I cannot make you explain yourself, I must see whether your father can gain so far on you. So saying, he arose somewhat displeased, and walked toward the door. * You forget what you yourself told me, Doctor Rochecliffe,” said Alice, “of the risk of communic ating this great secret to my father. “It is too true,” he said, stopping short and turning round;WOODSTOCK. 307 and I think, wench, thou art too smart for me, and I have not met many Sich. But thou, art a good girl, ‘and wilt tell me thy device of free will—it concerns my character and influ- ence with the King, that I should be fully acquainted with whatever is actum atgue tractatum, done and treated of in this matter.” “Trust your character to me, good Doctor,” said Alice, Sug ts ting to smile ; “it is of firmer. stuff than those of women, and will ee . safer in my custody than mine could have been in yours. And thus much I co yndescend—you shall see the whole scene—you shall go with me yourself, na much will a feel embolden: ed and heartened by your company. “That is something,” said the Doctor, though not altogether satisfied with this limited confidence. “Thou wert ever a clever wench, and I will trust thee ;, indeed, trust thee I find I must, whether voluntarily or no.” ‘Meet me then,” said Alice, “in the wilderness to-morrow iQ JALIUCG, frst tell me, are you well assured of time and place ?—a — ‘Assure yourself my information is ntirely accurate,” said the Doctor, resuming his air of consequence, which had been a little diminished during ~ latter part of their conference. ‘¢ May I ask,’ thre yugh what channe el you acquired such important _ {c “You may ask, unqu estionably? he answered,now completely restored to his su] premacy ; ~ but whether J will answer or not is a very different question. I conceive nel ither your reputation nor my own is iiioeebiod in your remainu 1g in ignorance on that subject. So I have my secrets as well as you, mistress ; and come of them, I fancy, are a good ida more worth knowing.” ‘Rent $0," said Alice, quietly ; “if you w ill meet me in the wilderness by the broken ct an ets past five exactly, we will co toge einen to-morrow and watch ee »m as they come to the én derirolls I svi on tee ay get the better of my present timidity, and ex plain to you ies means I design to employ to event mischief. You can perhaps think of making some pe ° ‘ s C = } =~ 2 1 fort which may re ear my interference, unbecoming and must be, al ether unnecessary. é fags i e Doctor; “if you place yourself in the first that ever had reason to com- plain of my want of condt and you may well judge you are the very aa (one except ed) whom I w ould see ae for want of counsel. At half-past five, then, at the dial in the wilderness -and God bless our undertak ing !’ Here their interview was interrupted by the sonorous voice painful as it s Nay, my child,” saic mv hands, you will be UC ly PRR rr creer eer ie .F, peRMa aL Semanisaucstahsasieansseaeseeee er ee iam ease See ; 308 WOODSTOCK. of Sir Henry Lee, which shouted their names, “ Daughter Alice Doctor Rochecliffe,” through passage and gallery. ““What do you here,” said he, entering, “sitting like two crows in a mist, when we have such rare sport below? Here is this wild crack-brained boy Louis Kerneguy, now making me laugh till my sides are fit to split, and now playing on his guitar sweetly enough to win a lark from the heavens.—Come away with you, come away. It is hard work to laugh alone.’ CHAPTER TWENTY-EIGHTH. This is the place, the centre of the grove; Here stands the oak, the monarch of the wood. JOHN Home. THE sun had risenon the broad boughs of the forest, but without the power of penetrating into its recesses, which hung rich with heavy dewdrops, and were beginning on some of the trees to exhibit the varied tints of autumn; it being the season when Nature, like a prodigal whose race is well-nigh run, seems desirous to make up in profuse gayety and variety of colors, for the short space which her splendor has then to endure. The birds were silent—and even robin red-breast, whose chirruping song was heard among the bushes near the Lodge, emboldened by the largesses with which the good old knight always encour- aged his familiarity, did not venture into the recesses of the wood, where he encountered the sparrow-hawk, and other enemies of a similar description, preferring the vicinity of the dwellings of man, from whom he, almost solely among the feathered tribes, seems to experience disinterested protection. The scene was therefore at once lovely and silent, when the good Dr. Rochecliffe, wrapped in a scarlet roquelaure, which had seen service in its day, muffling his face more from habit than necessity, and supporting Alice on his arm (she also defended by a cloak against the cold and damp of the autumn morning), glided through the tangled and long grass of the darkest alleys, almost ankle-deep in dew, toward the place appointed for the intended duel. Both so eagerly maintained the consultation in which they were engaged, that they were alike insensible of the roughness and discomforts of the road, though often obliged to force their way through brushwood and coppice, which poured down on them all the liquid pearls withWOODSTOCK. 309 which they were loaded, till the mantles they were wrapped in hung lank by their sides, and clung to their shoulders heavily charged with moisture. They stopped when they had attained a station under the coppice, and shrouded by it, from which they could see all that passed on the little esplanade before the King’s Oak, whose broad and scathed form, contorted and shattered limbs, and frowning brows, made it appear like some ancient war-worn champion, well selected to be the umpire of a field of single combat. The first person who appeared at the rendezvous was the gay cavalier Roger Wildrake. He also was wrapped in his cloak, but had discarded his puritanic beaver, and wore in its stead a Spanish hat, with a feather and gilt hatband, all of which had encountered bad weather and hard service; but to make amends for the appearance of poverty by the show of pre- tension, the castor was accurately adjusted after what was rather profanely called the d—me cut, used among the more desperate cavaliers. He advanced hastily, and exclaimed aloud —‘ First in the field afterall, by Jove, though I bilked Everard in order to have my morning draught.—It has done me much good,” he added, smacking his lips.—‘‘ Well, I suppose I should search the ground ere my principal comes up, whose Presbyterian watch trudges as slow as his Presbyterian step.” He took his rapier from under his cloak, and seemed about to search the thickets around. “J will prevent him,” whispered the doctor to Alice. “I will keep faith with you—y ou shall not come on the scene— nist dignus eee nodus—I’ll explain that another time. Vindex is feminine as well as masculine, so the quotation is defensible.— Keep you Mpsen? So saying, he stepped forward on the esplanade, and bowed to Wildrake. “Master Louis Kerneguy,” said Wildrake, pulling off his hat; but instantly discovering his error, he added, “* But no— if beg your pardon, sir—Fatter, shorter, older.—Mr. Kerneguy’s friend, I app aaes with whom I hope to have a turn by and by. not now, sir, before our Bupa pee come up? just a shack to stay the orifice of the stomach, till the dinner is served, sir? What say you?” “To open the orifice of the stomach more likely, or to give it a new one,” said the doctor. “True, sir,” said Roger, who seemed now in his element: well—that is as thereafter may be.— But come, sir, ‘you say you wear your face muffled. I grant you, it is honest men S fashion at this unhappy time; the more is the pity. But we do ‘ep Sr eee tn k. :310 WOODSTOCK. all above board—we have no traitors here. I'll get into my gears first, to encourage you, and show you that you have to deal with a gentleman, who honors the King, and is a match fit to fight with any who follow him, as doubtless you do, sir, since you are the friend of Master Louis Kerneguy.” All this while, Wildrake was busied undoing the clasps of his square-caped cloak. “‘ Off—off, ye lendings, properly call you— 9) he said, ‘‘ borrowings I should more ‘Via the curtain which shadow’d Borgia.’ ” So saying, he threw the cloak from him, and appeared in cuerpo, in a most cavalier-like doublet, of greasy crimson satin, pinked and sashed with what had been once white tiffany ; breeches of the same; and nether-stocks, or, as we now call them, stockings, darned in many places, and which, like those of Poins, had been once peach-colored. A pair of pumps, ill calculated for a walk through the dew, and a broad shoulder- belt of tarnished embroidery, completed his equipment. ‘Come, sir!” he exclaimed; ‘make haste, off with your slough—Here I stand tight and true—as loyal a lad as ever stuck rapier through a roundhead.—Come, sir, to your tools!” he continued; ‘we may have half-a-dozen thrusts before they come yet, and shame them for their tardiness.—Pshaw!”’ he exclaimed, in a most disappointed tone, when the Doctor, un- folding his cloak, showed his clerical dress; ‘Tush ! it’s but the parson after all! ” Wildrake’s respect for the Church, however, and his desire to remove one who might possibly interrupt a scene to which he looked forward with peculiar satisfaction, induced him pres- ently to assume another tone. “I beg pardon,” he said, ‘my dear Doctor—I kiss the hem of your cassock—lI do by the thundering Jove—I beg your pardon again.—But I am happy I have met with you—They are raving for your presence at the Lodge—to marry, or christen, or bury, or confess, or something very urgent.—For Heaven’s sake make haste!” “At the Lodge ?” said the Doctor; ‘ why, I left the Lodge this instant—I was there later, I am sure, than you could be, who came the Woodstock road.” “Well,” replied Wildrake, “it is at Woodstock they want you.—Rat it,did I say the Lodge ?—No, no—Woodstock— Mine host cannot be hanged—his daughter married—his bastard christened, or wife buried—without the assistance of a sealWOODSTOCK. ati clergyman—Your Holdenoughs won’t do for them.—He’s a true inan, mine host; so, as you value your function, make haste.” ‘You will pardon me, Master Wildrake,” said the Doctor— ‘IT wait for Master Louis Kerneguy.” “The devil you do!” exclaimed Wildrake. ‘Why, I al- ways knew the Scots could do nothing without their minister : but, d—n it, I never thought they put them to this use neither. But I have known jolly customers in orders, who understood to handle the sword as well as their prayer-book. You know the purpose of our meeting, Doctor. Do you come only ghostly comforter—or as a surgeon, perhaps—or do you ever take bilboa in hand ?—Sa—sa!” Here he made a fencing demonstration with his sheathed rapier. ““T have, done ; so,-sir,: on) mecessary occasion,” said’ Dr. Rochecliffe. ‘ Good sir, let this stand for a necessary one,” said Wildrake. “You know my devotion forthe Church. If a divine of your skill would do me the honor to exchange but three passes with me, I should think myself happy forever.” “Sir,” said Rochecliffe, smiling, ‘were there no other ob- jection to what you propose, I have not the means—I have no weapon. ‘““What? you want the de guoz? that is unlucky indeed. But you have a stout cane in your hand—what hinders our trying a pass (my rapier being sheathed of course) until our principals come up? My pumps are full of this frost-dew; and I shall be a toe or two out of pocket if I am to stand still all the time they are stretching themselves; for, I fancy, Doctor, you are of my opinion, that the matter will not be a fight of cock-spar- rows.” “My business here is to make it, if possible, be no fight at all,” said the divine. ‘Now, rat me, Doctor, but that is too spiteful,” said Wild- rake ; ‘‘and were it not for my respect for the Church, I could turn Presbyterian to be revenged.” ‘“‘ Stand back a little, if. you please, sir,’’ said the Doctor, ‘‘do not press forward in that direction.”—For Wildrake, in the agitation of his movements, induced by his disappointment, approached the spot where Alice remained still concealed. ‘And wherefore not, I pray you, Doctor?” said the cavalier. But on advancing a step he suddenly stopped short, and muttered to himself, with a round oath of astonishment, “A petticoat in the coppice, by all that is reverend, and at this 9 aS? a ere Ower terse re et Severe te aePSRs ana Se eet Lt eatkhaaaastvansie Nansboc bint ens Sete eat ickaaee eed 312 WOODSTOCK. hour in the morninge— Whew—ew—ew /—He Ee vent to his surprise in a long low interjectional whistle; then turning to the Doctor, with “his finger on the side of his nose, “Youre sly, Doctor, d—d sly! But why not give me a hint of your— your commodity there—your contraband Bees mo sir, Iam not a man to expose the eccentricities of the Churc Sir, said’ Dr.Rocheclites “you ‘are a he and if time served, and it were worth my while, I would chastise you. ve the Doctor, who had served long enough in the wars to have added some of the qualities of a captain of horse to those of a divine, actually raised his cane, to the infinite de light of the rake, whose respect for the Church was by no means able to subdue his love of mischief. “Nay, Doctor,” said he, “if you wield your weapon back- sword-fashion, in that way, and raise it as high as your head, I shall be through you in a twinkling.” So saying he made a pass with his sheathed 1 rapier, not precisely at the Doctor’s person, but in that direction; when Rochecliffe, changing the direction of his cane from the broadsword guard to that of t the rapier, made the cavalier’s sword spring ten yards out of his hand, with all the dexterity of my friend F rancalanza.* At this moment both the principal partiés appeared on the field. Everard exclaimed angrily to Wildrake, ‘‘is this your friend- ship? In Heaven’s name, what make you in that fool jacket, and playing the pranks ofa jack-pud¢ ling? ” while his worthy second, somewhat crestfallen, held down his head like a boy caught in roguery, and went to pick up his weapon, stretching his head, as he passed, into the Seo to obtain another glimpse, if possible, of the concealed object of his curiosity. Charles, in the meantime, still more surprised at what he beheld, called out on his part—‘‘ What! Dr. Rochecliffe be- come literally one of the Church militant, and tilting with my friend cavalier Wildrake ? May I use the freedom to ask him to withdraw, as Colonel Everard and I have some private busi- ness.to Settle? ” It was Dr. Rochecliffe’s cue, on this important occasion, to have armed himself with the authority of his sacred office, and used a tone of interference which might have overawed even a monarch, and make him feel that his monitor spoke by a war- rant higher than his own. But the indiscreet latitude he had just given to his own passion, and the levity in which he had been detected, were very unfavorable to his assuming that * [A fencing-master in EKdinburgh—1826, }WOODSTOCK. 313 superiority, to which so uncontrolable a spirit as that of Charles, wilful as a prince, and capricious as a wit, was at all likely to submit. The Doctor did, however, endeavor to rally his dignity, and replied, with the gravest, and at the same time most re- spectful, tone he could assume, that he also had business of the most urgent nature which prevented him from complying with Master Kerneguy’s wishes, and leaving that spot. “Excuse this untimely interruption,” said Charles, taking orf his hat, and bowing to Colonel Everard, ‘‘ which I will im- mediately put an end to.” Everard gravely returned his salute, and was silent. “Are you mad, Doctor Rochecliffe?” said Charles—*or are you deaf ?—or have you forgotten your mother-tongue? [| desired you to leave this place.” ‘“T am not mad,” said the divine, rousing up his resolution, and regaining the natural firmness of his voice—‘I would prevent others from being so;—I am not deaf—I would pray others to hear the voice of reason and religion ; I have not for gotten my mother-tongue—but I have come hither to speak the language of the Master of kings and princes.” “To fence with broomsticks, I should rather suppose,” said the King—‘‘ Come, Doctor Rochecliffe, this sudden fit of assumed importance befits you as little as your late frolic. You are not, I apprehend, either a Catholic priest or a Scotch Mass-John to claim devoted obedience from your hearers, but a Church-of-England-man, subject to the rules of that Com- munion—and to its HEAD.” In speaking the last words, the King lowered his voice to a low and impressive whisper. Everard observing this drew back, the natural generosity of his temper directing him to avoid overhearing private discourse, in which the safety of the speakers might be deeply concerned. They continued, however, to observe great caution in their forms of expression. “Master Kerneguy,” said the clergyman, “it is not I who assume authority or control over your wishes—God forbid ; 1 do but tell you what reason, Scripture, religion, and morality, alike prescribe for your rule of conduct.” “ And I, Doctor,” said the King, smiling, and pointing to the unlucky cane, “ will take your example rather than your precept. If a reverend clergyman will himself fight a bout at single-stick, what right can he have to interfere in gentlemen’s quarrels ?—Come, sir, remove yourself, and do not let your present obstinacy cancel former obligations.”’ “ Bethink yourself,” said the divine, —“ I can gay one word which will prevent all this.” Ore re ea)Fy, SAAR akaeretisaneeiabonantenassareeeeeenees Sees Aba ale aeRee amarsaaad SAN Sie a eethieeneercaead aa WOODSTOCK. ‘Do it,” replied the King, “ and in doing so belie the whole tenor and actions of an honorable life—abandon the principles of your Church, and become a perjured traitor and an apostate, to prevent another person from discharging his duty as a gentle- on! This were indeed kiJling your friend to preven t the risk of his running himself into danger. Let the Passive Opie: which is so often in your mouth, and no doubt in your head, put your feet for once into motion, and step aside -for ten minutes. Within that Space your assistance may be needed either as body-curer or soul-curer. “Nay, then,” said Doctor Ro eee ““T have but one argument left.” While this conversation 1 was carried on apart, Everard had almost forcibly detained by his own side his follower, Wildrake, hose greater curiosity, and lesser oe see would otherwise iave thrust him forward, to get, if f possible, into the secret. But when he saw the Doctor turn into the coppice, he whis- pered eagerly to Everard—‘ A gold Carolus to a common- ealth farthing, the Doctor has not only come to preach a & ace, but has brought the principal conditions along with W 1 { } Everard made no answer; he had already unsheathed his swords and Charles hardly saw Rochec life s back fairly turned, than he lost no time in following his example. But, ere they had done more than salute each other, or the usual courteous flourish of their weapons, Dr. Rochecliffe again stood between them, leading in his hand Alice Lee, her garments dank with dew, and her long hair heavy with moisture, and totally uncurled. Herface was extremely pa ile, but it was the paleness of desperate resolution, not of fear. There was a dead pause of astonishment —the combatants rested on their swords—and even the forward- ness of Wildrake only vented itself in half- Sepp iesded ejacula tions, as, “‘ Well done, Doctor—this beats the ‘ parson among the pease’—No less than your patron’s daughter—And Mistress Alice, whom I thought a very snowdrop, turned out a dog-violet after all—a Lindabrides, by heavens, and altogether one of our Selves 1 = Excepting these unheeded mutterings, Alice was the first to spe< i ‘ Master Everard,” she said—“ Master Kerneguy, you are surprised to see me here—Y et, why should I not tell the reason at once ? Convinced that I am, however guiltlessly, the un- happy cause of your misunderstanding, I am too much interested to prevent fatal consequences to pause upon any step which may end it.—Master Kerneguy, have my w ishes, my entreaties,WOODSTOCK. 315 my prayers—have your noble thoughts—the recollections of your own high duties, no’ weight with you in this matter? Let me entreat you to consul t reason, religion, and common sense, and return your weapon.’ “Tam obedient as an Eastern slave, madam,’ answered Charles, sheathing his sword; ‘but I assure you, the matter about which you di istress yourself is a mere trifle, which will be much better settled betwixt Colonel Everard and myself in fve minutes, than with the assistance of the whole Convoca- tion of the Church, with a female parliament to assist their reverend deliberations.—Mr. Everard, will you oblige me by walking a little further?—-We must change eround, it seems.” “famoready to attend you, sit,” said Everard, who had sheathed his sword so soon as his antagonist did SO. “T have then no interest with you, sir,’ said Alice, con- tinuing to address the King—‘ Do you not fear I should use the secret in my power to prevent this affair going to extrem- ity? Think you this gentleman, who raises his hand against you, if he knew ”——— ‘Tf he knew that I were Lord Wilmot, madam, you would say >—Accident has given him proof to that effect, with which he is already satisfied, and I think you would find it difficult to induce him to embrace a different opinion.” Alic se paused, and looked on the King with great indigna- tion, the following words dropping from her mouth by inter- vals, as if they burst forth one by one in spite of feelings that would have restrained them—‘ Cold—selfish—ungrateful—un- kind!—Woe to the land which’ Here she paused with marked emphasis, then added “which shall number thee, or such as thee, among her nobles and rulers!” Nay, fair Alice,” said Charles, whose good nature could not but feel the severity of this reproac ch, though too slightly to make all the desired impression, “you are too unjust to me -—too partial to a happier man. Do not call me unkind; I am but here to answer Mr. Everard’s summons. I could neither decline attending, nor withdraw now | am here, without Joss of honor ; nae my loss of honor would be a disgracel w vhich must extend to many—I cannot fly from Mr. Everarc too shameful. If he abides by his message, it must . decided as such affairs usually are. If he retreats or yields it up, ! will. for your sake, waive punctilio. I will not even ask an apology for the trouble it has afforded me, but let all pass as if it were the consequence of some unhappy mistake, the erounds of which shall remain on my part uninquired into.— This I wil aa for your sake, and it is much for a man of 9 an ai 6¢ ~ aShine watbicsh bhadetubbabiuabianrnabieabieetekteees ai teeeiee cheeen cha aenieeeaeaneacha ea a 316 WOODSTOCK. honor to condescend so far—You fzow that the condescension from me in particular is great indeed. Then do not call me ungenerous, or ungrateful, or unkind, since I am ready to do all, which, as a man, I can do, and more perhaps than asa man of honor I ought to do.” “Do you hear this, Markham Everard,” exclaimed Alice— “do you hear this ?—The dreadful option is left entirely at your disposal, You were wont to be temperate in passion, re- ligious, forgiving—will you, for a mere punctilio, drive on this private and unchristian broil to a murderous extremity? Be- lieve me, if you ow, contrary to all the better principles of your life, give the reins to your passions, the consequences may be such as you will rue for your lifetime, and even, if Heaven have not mercy, rue after your life is finished.” Markham Everard remained for a moment gloomily silent, with his eyes fixed on the ground. At length he looked up, and answered her—‘“ Alice, you are a soldier’s daughter—a soldier’s sister. All your relations, even including one whom you then entertained some regard for, have been made soldiers by these unhappy discords. Yet you have seen them take the field—in some instances on contrary sides, to do their duty where their principles called them, without manifesting this ex- treme degree of interest. Answer me—and your answer shall decide my conduct—Is this youth, so short while known, al- ready of more value to you than those dear connections, father, brother, and kinsman, whose departure to battle you saw with comparative indifference ?—Say ¢/zs, and it shall be enough— I leave the ground, never to see you or this country again.” “Stay, Markham, stay; and believe me when I say, that if I answer your question in the affirmative, it is because Master Kerneguy’s safety comprehends more, much more, than that of any of those you have mentioned,” “Indeed ! I did not know a coronet had been so superior in value to the crest of a private gentleman,” said Everard ; ‘yet I have heard that many women think so.” ‘You apprehend me amiss,” said Alice, perplexed between the difficulty of so expressing herself as to prevent immediate mischief, and at the same time anxious to combat the jealousy and disarm the resentment which she saw arising in the bosom of her lover. But she found no words fine enough to draw the dis- tinction, without leading to a discovery of the King’s actual character, and perhaps in consequence, to his destruction.— “Markham,” she said, “‘ have compassion on me. Press me not at this moment; believe me, the honor and happiness of my father, of my brother, and of my whole family, are interested‘ WOODSTOCK. 317 in Master Kerneguy’s safety, are inextricably concerned in this matter resting where it now does.” ‘Oh, ay—I doubt not,” said Everard ; “ the House of Lee ever looked up to nobility, and valued in their connections the fantastic loyalty of a courtier beyond the sterling and honest patriotism of a plain country gentleman. For them, the thing is in course. But on your part, you, Alice—Oh ! on your part, whom I have loved so dearly—who has suffered me to think that my affection was not unrepaid—Can the attractions of an empty title, the idle court compliments of a mere man of quality, during only a few hours, lead you to prefer a libertine lord to such a heart as mine?” “No, no—believe me, no,” said Alice, in the extremity of distress. ‘“ Put your answer, which seems so painful, in one word, and say for whoso safety it is you are thus deeply interested?” ‘For both—for both,” said Alice. ‘ That answer will not serve, Alice,’ answered Everard— “here is no room for equality. I must and will know to what I have to trust. I understand not the paltering, which makes a maiden unwilling to decide betwixt two suitors ; nor would I willingly impute to you the vanity that cannot remain contented with one lover at once.” The vehemence of Everard’s displeasure, when he supposed his own long and sincere devotion lightly forgotten, amid the addresses of a profligate courtier, awakened the spirit of Alice Lee, who, as we elsewhere said, had a portion in her temper of the lion-humor that was characteristic of her family. ‘Tf Iam thus misinterpreted,” she said—‘If I am not judged worthy of the least confidence or candid construction, hear my declaration, and my assurance, that, strange as my words may seem, they are, when truly interpreted, such as do you no wrong. I tell you—I tell all present and I tell this gentleman himself, who well knows the sense in which I speak, that his life and safety are, or ought to be, of more value to me than those of any other man in the kmgdom—nay, in the world, be that other who ‘he will.” These words she spoke in a tone so firm and decided as ad- mitted no further discussion. Charles bowed low and with gravity, but remained silent. Everard, his features agitated by fhe emotions which his pride barely enabled him to suppress, advanced to his antagonist, and said, in a tone which he vainly endeavored to make a firm one, “ Sir, you heard the lady’s dec- laration, with such feelings, doubtless of gratitude, as the case eminently demands.—As her poor kinsman, and an unworthy 4 ~ Ce a erie et rotine YN YUET SNOT ENSER PRES NY MEATE i 318 WOODSTOCK. ; suitor, sir, I presume to yield my interest in her to you; and, as I will never be the means of giving her pain, I trust you will not think I act unworthily in retracting the letter which gave you the trouble of attending this place at this hour.—Alice,” he said, turning his head toward her, “ farewell, Alice, at once, and forever!” Ihe poor young lady, whose adventitious spirit had almost deserted her, attempted to repeat the word farewell, but failing in the attempt, only accomplished a broken and imperfect sound, and would have sunk to the ground, but for Dr. Rochecliffe, who caught her as she fell. Roger Wildrake, also, who had twice or thrice put to his eyes what remained of a kerchief, in- terested by the lady’s evident distress, though unable to com- prehend the mysterious cause, hastened to assist the divine in supporting so fair a burden. Meanwhile, the disguised Prince had beheld the whole in silence, but with an agitation to which he was unwonted, and which his swarthy features, and still more his motions, began to betray. His posture was at first absolutely stationary, with his arms folded on his bosom, as one who waits to be guided by the current of events; presently after, he shifted his posi- tion, advanced and retired his foot, clenched and opened his hand, and otherwise showed symptoms that he was strongly agitated by contending feelings—was on the point, too, of of forming some sudden resolution, and yet still in uncertainty what course he should pursue. But when he saw Markham Everard, after one look of un- speakable anguish toward Alice, turning his back to depart, he broke out into his familiar ejaculation, “ Oddsfish ! this must not be.” In three strides he overtook the slowly retiring Ever- ard, tapped him smartly on the shoulder, and, as he turned round, said, with an air of command, which he well knew how to adopt at pleasure, “ One word with you, sir.” ‘At your pleasure, sir,” replied Everard ; and naturally conjecturing the purpose of his antagonist to be hostile, took hold of his rapier with the left hand and laid the right on the hilt, not displeased at the supposed call ; for anger is at least as much akin to his appointment as pity is said to be to love. ‘“Pshaw !” answered the King, “that cannot be xow— Colonel Everard, I am Cuarters STEWART!” Everard recoiled in the greatest surprise, and next exclaimed, *‘ Impossible—it cannot be! The King of Scots has escaped from Bristol—My Lord Wilmot, your talents for intrigue are well known ; but this will not pass upon me,” “The King of Scots, Master Everard,” replied Charles,WOODSTOCK. 319 ““ since you are so pleased to limit his sovereignty—at any rate, the Eldest Son of the late Sovereign of Britain—is now before you ; therefore it is impossible he could have escaped from Bristol. Doctor Rochecliffe shall be my voucher, and will tell you, moreover, that Wilmot is of a fair complexion and light hair; mine you may see, is swart as a raven.” Rochecliffe, seeing what was passing, abandoned Alice to the care of Wildrake, whose extreme delicacy in the attempts he made to bring her back to life, formed an amiable contrast to his usual wildness, and occupied him so much, that he re- mained for the moment ignorant of the disclosure in which he would have been so much interested. As for Dr. Rochecliffe, he came forward, wringing his hands in all the demonstrations of extreme anxiety, and with the usual exclamations attending such a state. “ Peace, Doctor Rochecliffe!” said the King, with such complete self-possession as indeed became a prince; “ we are in the hands, I am satisfied, of a man of honor. Master Ever- ard must be pleased in finding only a fugitive prince in the per- son in whom he thought he had discovered a successful rival. He cannot but be aware of the feelings which prevented me from taking advantage of the cover which this young lady’s devoted lovalty afforded me at the risk of her own happiness. He is the party who is to profit by my candor ; and certainly I have a right to expect that my condition, already indifferent enough, shall not be rendered worse by his becoming privy to it under such circumstances. At any rate, the avowal is made ; and it is for Colonel Everard to consider how he is to conduct himself.” “Oh, your Majesty! my Liege! my King! my royal Prince !” exclaimed Wildrake, who, at length discovering what was pass- ing, had crawled on his knees, and seizing the King’s hand, was kissing it, more like a child mumbling gingerbread, or like a lover devouring the yielded hand of his mistress, than in the manner in which such salutation pass at court—“ If my dear friend Mark Everard should prove a dog on this occasion, rely on me I will cut his throat on the spot, were I to do the same for myself the moment afterward !” “ Hush, hush, my good friend and loyal subject,” said the King, “ and compose yourself; for though I am obliged to put on the Prince for a moment, we have not privacy or safety to receive our subjects in King Cambyses’ vein.” Everard, who had stood for a time utterly confounded, awoke at length like a man from a dream. “ Sire,” he said, bowing low, and with profound deference, + ~ heer en Were “SSiiatasivasne abana esto ees cee ead ceateh ae yaakestunkasoseakekes Satie easier a 320 WOODSTOCK. “if I do not offer you the homage of a subject with knee and sword, it is because God, by whom kings reign, has denied you for the present the power of ascending your throne without rekindling civil war. For your safety being endangered by me, let not such an imagination for an instant cross your mind. Had I not respected your person—were I not bound to you for the candor with which your noble avowal has prevented the misery of my future life, your misfortunes would have rendered your person as sacred, so far as I can protect it, as it could be esteemed by the most devoted royalist in the kingdom. If your plans are soundly considered, and securely laid, think that all which is now passed is but a dream. If they are in such a state that I can aid them, saving my duty to the Common wealth, which will permit me to be privy to no schemes o! actual violence, your Majesty may command my services.” ‘““It may be I may be troublesome to you, sir,” said the King ; “ for my fortunes are not such as to permit me to re- ject even the most limited offers of assistance ; but if I can, I will dispense with applying to you. I would not willingly put any man’s compassion at war with his sense of duty on my ac- count.—Doctor, I think there will be no further tilting to-day, either with sword orcane; so we may as well return to the Lodge, and leave these”—looking at Alice and Everard—‘“ who may have more to say in explanation.” ‘“ No—no !” exclaimed Alice, who was now perfectly come to herself, and partly by her own observation, and partly from the report of Dr. Rochecliffe, comprehended all that had taken place— My cousin Everard and I have nothing to explain; he will forgive me for having riddled with him when I dared not speak plainly; and I forgive him for having read my riddle wrong. But my father has my promise—we must not corre- spond or converse for the present—I return instantly to the Lodge and he to Woodstock, unless you, sire,” bowing to the King, “command his duty otherwise. Instant to the town, Cousin Markham; and if danger should approach, give us warning.” Everard would have delayed her departure, would have excused himself for his unjust suspicion, would have said a thousand things; but she would not listen to him, saying, for all other answer,—“ Farewell, Markham, till God send better days !” “She is an angel of truth and beauty,” said Roger Wild. rake ; “and I, like a blasphemous heretic, called her a Linda- brides!* But has your Majesty, craving your pardon, no * A sort of court name for a female of no reputation—[derived from a character in an old Spanish romance],WOODSTOCK. 321 commands for poor Hodge Wildrake, who will blow out his own or any other man’s brains in England, to do your Grace a pleasure ? ” “We entreat our good friend Wildrake to do nothing hastily,” said Charles, smiling; “such brains as his are rare, and should not be rashly dispersed, as the like may not be easily collected. We recommend him to be silent and prudent —to tilt no more with loyal clergymen of the Church of Eng- land, and to get himself a new jacket with all the convenient speed, to which we beg to contribute our royal aid. When fit time comes, we hope to find other service for him.” As he spoke, he slid ten pieces into the hand of poor Wild- take, who, confounded with the excess of his loyal gratitude, blubbered like a child, and would have followed the King, had not Dr. Rochecliffe, in few words, but peremptory, insisted that he should return with his patron, promising him he should certainly be employed in assisting the King’s escape, could an opportunity be found of using his services. = Be SO See reverend sir, and you bind me to you for- ever,’’ said the cavalier; “and I conjure you not to keep malice against me on account of the foolery you wot of.” “1 have o ae n, Captain Wildrake,” said the Doctor, “for I think I had the best of it.’ “Well, then, phage I forgive you on my part; and I pray you, for Christian ch varity, let me have a finger in this good service; for as I live in hope of it, rely that I shall die of dis- appointment.” While the Doctor and soldier thus spoke together, Charles took leave of Everard (who remained uncovered while he spoke to him) with his usual grace—“ I need not bid you no longer be jealous of me,” said the King; for I presume you will scarce think of a match betwixt Alice and me, which would be too losing a one on her side. For other thous rhts, the wildest libertine “could not entertain them toward so high- minded a creature ; and believe me, that my sense of her merit did not need this last distinguished proof of her truth and loyalty. 1 saw enough of her from her answers to some idle sallies of zallantry, to know with what a lofty character she is endowed. Mr. Everard, her happiness I see depends on you, and I trust you will be the careful guardian of it. If we can take any obstacle out of the way of your joint h happiness, be assured we vill use our influence.—Farewell, sir; if we cannot be better fr iends, do not at least let us entertain harder or worse thoughts of each other than we have now.” There was something in the manner of Charles that was al po ee io “ 3 5 = oo Sa errr enemies cnrF saiaAMRRalesscaemaanist ae tsabiaaeeraisesneseeeese a eer ietelisauaitvemae usenet: tt arene : 322 WOODSTOCK. extremely pe ; something too, in his condition as a fugitive in the kingdom which was his own by inheritance, that made a direct appeal to Everard’s bosom—though in contra- diction to the dictates of that policy which he judged it his duty to pursue in the distracted circumstances of the country. a remained, as we have said, uncovered; and in his manner testified the highest expre sssion of reverence, up to the point . such might seem a symbol of allegiance. He bowed so low as almost to approach his lips to the hand of Charles—but 1e did not kiss it.—‘‘I would rescue sh person, sir,” he said, ‘with the purchase of my own life. More” He stopped short, and the King took up his sentence where it broke off— “More you cannot do,” said Charles, “to maintain an honor- able consistency—but what you have said is enough. You cannot render homage to my proffered hand as that of a sove- reign, but you will not prevent my taking yours as a friend—if you allow me to call myself so—I am sure, as a well-wisher at least.” The generous soul of Everard was touched—He took the King’s he and, and pressed it to his lips. ‘Oh! he said, “ were better times to come ””—— “Bind yourself to nothing, dear Everard,” said the good- natured Prince, partaking his emotion—‘“ We reason ill while our feelings are moved. I will recruit no man to his loss, nor will I have my fallen fortunes involve those of others, because they have humanity enough to pity my present condition. If better times come, why we will meet again, and I hope to our mutual satisfaction. If not, as your future father-in-law would say’ (a benevolent smile came over his face, and accorded not unmeetly wit h his glistening eyes),—‘ If not, this parting was well made.’ Everard turned away with a deep bow, almost choking under contending feelings; the uppermost of which was a sense of the generosity with which Charles, at his own immi- nent risk, had cleared away the darkness that seemed about to overwhelm his prospects of happiness for life—mixed with deep sense of the perils by which he was environed. He re- turned to the little town, followed by his attendant Wildrake, who turned back so often, with weeping eyes, and hands clasped and uplifted as eee ating Heaven, that Everard was obliged to remind him that his gestures might be observed by some one, and occasion suspicion. The generous conduct of the King during the closing part of this remarkable scene had not escaped Alice’s notice ; and, erasing at once from her mind all resentment of Charles’s for- ) 1 aWOODSTOCK. 323 mer conduct, and all the suspicions they had deservedly ex- cited, awakened in her bosom a sense of the natural eoodness of his disposition, which permitted her to unite regard for his person with that reverence for his high office in which she had been educated as a portion of her creed. She felt convinced, and delighted with the conviction, that his virtues were his own, his libertinism the fault of education, or rather want of education, and the corrupting advice of sycophants and flat- terers. She could not know, or perhaps did not in that mo- ment consider, that in a soil where no care is taken to eradi: cate tares, they will outgrow and smother the wholesome seed, even if the last is more natural to the soil. For, as Dr. Roche- cliffe informed her afterward for her edification,—promising, as was his custom, to explain the precise words on some future occasion, if she would put him in mind—Virtus rectorem du- cemque desiderat; Vitia sine magistro discuntur.* There was no room for such reflections at present. Con- scious of mutual sincerity, by a sort of intellectual communica- tion, through which individuals are led to understand each other better perhaps, in delicate circumstances, than by words, reserve and simulation appeared to be now banished from the intercourse between the King and Alice. With manly frank- ness, and, at the same time, with princely zondescension, he requested her, exhausted as she was, to accept of his arm on the way homeward, instead of that of Dr. Rochecliffe ; and Alice accepted of his support with modest humility, but without a shadow of mistrust or fear. It seemed as if the last halt- hour had satisfied them perfectly with the character of each other, and that each had full conviction of the purity and sin- cerity of the other’s intentions. Dr. Rochecliffe, in the meantime, had fallen some four or five paces behind; for, less light and active than Alice (who had, besides, the assistance of the King’s support), he was un- able, without effort and difficulty, to keep up with the pace of ‘harles, who then was, as we have elsewhere noticed, one of the best walkers in England, and was sometimes apt to forget \*that others were inferior to him in activity. i tht rN e ~ (as great men wil “ Dear Alice,” said the King, but as if the epithet were en- tirely fraternal, “I like your Everard much—lI would to God * The quotations of the learned doctor and antiquary were often left uninterpreted, though seldom uncommunicated, owing to his contempt for those who did not understand the learned languages, and his dislike to the labor of translation, for the benefit of ladies and of country gentlemen, That fair readers and country thanes may not on this occasion burst in ig: norance, we add the meaning of the passage in the text—' Virtue requires the aid of a governor and director ; vices are learned without a teacher.’ eee tree oton Sateen coeeers %ee etal Bee tt ny eres ates OE 324 WOODSTOCK. he were of our determination—But since that cannot be, I am sure he will prove a generous enemy.” ‘“May it please you, sire,” said Alice, modestly, but with some firmness, “ my cousin will never be your Majesty’s per- sonal enemy—and he is one of the few on whose slightest word you may rely more than on the oath of those who profess more strongly and formally. He is utterly incapable of abusing your Majesty’s most generous and voluntary confidence.” ‘On my honor, I believe so, Alice,” replied the King: “ But, oddsfish ! my girl, let Majesty sleep for the present—it concerns my safety, as I told your brother lately—Call me sir, then, which belongs alike to king, peer, knight, and gentleman—or rather, let me be wild Louis Kerneguy again.” Alice looked down, and shook her head. please your Majesty.” ‘What! Louis was a saucy companion—a naughty presuming boy—and you cannot abide him ?—Well, perhaps you are right —But we will wait for Doctor Rochecliffe ’’—he said, desirous, with good-natured delicacy, to make Alice aware that he had no purpose, of engaging her in any discussion which could recall painful ideas. ‘They paused accordingly, and again she felt relieved and grateful. ‘“‘ I cannot persuade our fair friend, Mistress Alice, Doctor,” said the King, “ that she must, in prudence, forbear using titles of respect to me, while there are such very slender means of sustaining them.” ‘“‘It is a reproach to earth and to fortune,” answered the divine, as fast as his recovered breath would permit him, “ that your most sacred Majesty’s present condition should not accord with the rendering of those honors which are your own by birth, and which, with God’s blessing on the efforts of your loyal subjects, I hope to see rendered to you as your hereditary right, by the universal voice of the three kingdoms.” “True, Doctor,” replied the King ; “but, in the meanwhile can you expound to Mistress Alice Lee two lines of Horace, which I have carried in my thick head several years, till now they have come pat to my purpose? As my canny subjects of Scotland say, If you keep a thing seven years you are sure to find a use for it at last— 7e/ephus—ay,. so it begins— ir J > ‘“* That cannot be, * Telephus et Peleus, cum pauper et exul uterque, Projicit ampullas et sesquipedalia verba? ” ‘““T will explain the passage to Mistress Alice,” said the Doctor, ‘‘ when she reminds me of it—or rather” (he added, recollecting that his ordinary dilatory answer on such occasionsWOODSTOCK. 328 ought not to be returned when the order for exposition emanated from his Sovereign), “I will repeat a poor couplet from my own translation of the poem— Heroes and kings, in exile forced to roam, Leave swelling phrase and seven-leagued words at home.” ‘¢ A most admirable version, Doctor,” said Charles ; ‘I feel all its force, and particularly the beautiful rendering of sesquipe- dalia verba into seven-leagued boots—words I mean—it reminds me, like half the things I meet with in this world, of the Contes de Commeére L’ Oye.” * Thus conversing, they reached the Lodge, and as the King went to his chamber to prepare for the breakfast summons, now impending, the idea crossed his mind, “ Wilmot, and Villiers, and Killigrew, would laugh at me, did they hear of a campaign in which neither man nor woman had been conquered—But, oddsfish! let them laugh as they will, there is something at my heart which tells me, that for once in my life I have acted well.” That day and the next were spent in tranquility, the King waiting impatiently for the intelligence which was to announce to him that a vessel was prepared somewhere on the coast. None such was yet in readiness; but he learned that the inde- fatigable Albert Lee was, at great personal risk, traversing the sea-coast from town to village, and endeavoring to find means of embarkation among the friends of the royal cause, and the correspondents of Dr. Rochecliffe. CHAPTER TWENTY-NINTH. Ruffian, let go that rude uncivil touch! Two GENTLEMEN OF VERONA. Ir is time we should give some account of the other actors in our drama, the interest due to the principal personages having for some time engrossed our attention exclusively. We are therefore to inform the reader that the lingering longings of the Commissioners, who had been driven forth of their proposed paradise of Woodstock, not by a cherub indeed, but, as they thought, by spirits of another sort, still detained * Tales of Mother Goose.FURR carernanesnarvabaeaaaeenSeie ae 326 WOODSTOCK. them in the vicinity. They had, indeed, left the little borough under pretence of indifferent accommodation. The more palpable reasons were, that they entertained some resentment against Everard, as the means of their disappointment, and had no mind to reside where their proceedings could be overlooked by him, although they took leave in terms of the utmost respect. They went, however, no further than Oxford, and remained there, as ravens, who are accustomed to witness the chase, sit upon a tree or crag at a little distance, and watch the disemboweling of the deer, expecting the relics which fall to their share. Meantime, the University and City, but especially the former, supplied them with some means of employing their various faculties to advantage, until the expected moment, when as they hoped, they should either be summoned to Windsor, or Woodstock should once more be abandoned to their discre- tion. Bleton, to pass the time, vexed the souls of such learned and pious divines and scholars as he could intrude his hateful presence upon, by sophistry, atheistical discourse, and challenges to them to impugn the most scandalous theses. Desborough, one of the most brutally ignorant men of the period, got himself nominated the head of a college, and lost no time in cutting down trees and plundering plate. As for Harrison, he preached in full uniform in Saint Mary’s Church, wearing his buff- coat, boots, and spurs, as if he were about to take the field for the fight at Armageddon. And it was hard to say whether that seat of Learning, Religion, and Loyalty, as it is called by Clarendon, was more vexed by the rapine of Desborough, the cold scepticism of Bletson, or the frantic enthusiasm of the Fifth-Monarchy Champion. Ever and anon soldiers, under pretence of relieving guarc or otherwise, went and came betwixt Woodstock and Oxford, and maintained, it may be supposed, a correspondence with Trusty Tomkins, who, though he chiefly resided in the town of Woodstock, visited the Lodge occasionally, and to whom, there- fore, they doubtless trusted for information concerning the pro- ceedings there. Indeed, this man Tomkins seemed by some secret means to have gained the confidence in part, if not in whole, of al- most every one connected with these intrigues. All closeted him, all conversed with him in private; those who had the I, means propitiated him with gifts, those who had not were liberal of promises. When he chanced to appear at Wood- stock, which always seemed as it were by accident—if he passed through the hall, the Knight was sure to ask him to takeWOODSTOCK. 327 the foils, and was equally certain to be, after less or more resist- ance, victorious in the encounter; so, in consideration of so many triumphs, the good Sir Henry almost forgave him the sins of rebellion and puritanism. Then, if his slow and formal step was heard in the passages approaching the gallery, Dr, Rochecliffe, though he never introduced him to his peculiar boudoir, was sure to meet Master Tomkins in some neutral apartment, and to engage him in long conversations, which apparently had great interest for both. Neither was the Independent’s reception below stairs less gracious than above. Joceline failed not to welcome him with the most cordial frankness ; the pasty and the flagon were put in immediate requisition, and good cheer was the general word. The means for this, it may be observed, had grown more plenty at Woodstock since the arrival of Dr. Rochecliffe, who, in quali- ty of agent for several royalists, had various sums of money at I |. By these funds it is likely that Trusty Tomkins so derived his own full advantage. ; In his occasional indulgence in what he called a fleshly frailty (and for which he said he had a privilege), which was in truth an attachment to strong liquors, and that in no moder- ate degree, his language, at other times remarkably decorous and reserved, became wild and animated. He sometimes Iked. with all the unction of an old debauchee, of former ex- oits, such as-deer-stealing, orchard-robbing, drunken gam- Is, and desperate affrays in which he had been engaged in n the earlier part of his life, sung bacchanalian and amorous ‘ities, dwelt sometimes upon adventures which drove Phoebe Mayflower from the company, and penetrated even the deaf ears of Dame Jellicot, so as to make the buttery in which he held his carousals no proper place for the poor old woman. In the middle of these wild rants, Tomkins twice or thrice suddenly ran into religious topics, and spoke mysteriously, but = — - 1 1< 7 >} WS disposa 9) cl with great animation, and a rich eloquence, on the happy and pre-eminent saints, who were saints, as he termed them, indeed ~—Men who had stormed the inner treasure-house of Heaven, and possessed themselves of its choicest jewels. All other sects he treated with the utmost contempt, as merely quarreling, as he expressed it, like hogs over a trough about husks and acorns ; under which derogatory terms he included alike the usual rites and ceremonies of public devotion, the ordinances of the estab- lished churches of Christianity, and the observances, nay, the forbearances, enjoined by every class of Christians. Scarcely hearing, and not at all understanding him, Joceline, who seemed his most frequent confidant on such occasions, generally led Oi EE —_——Where.WOODSTOCK, 333 fore else was it said, Thou shalt find her seated by the well, in the wood which is called after the ancient harlot, Rosamond ?” “Vou have found me sitting here, sure enough,” said Phoebe ; “but if you wish to keep me company, you must walk to the Lodge with me ; and you shall carry my pitcher for me, if you will be so kind. I will hear all the good things you have to say to me as we go along. But Sir Henry calls for his glass of water regularly before prayers.” “What!” exclaimed Tomkins, “hath the old man of bloody hand and perverse heart sent thee hither to do the work of a bondswoman? Verily thou shalt return enfranchised ; and for the water thou hast drawn for him, it shall be poured forth, even as David caused to be poured forth the water of the well of Bethlehem.” So saying he emptied the water pitcher, in spite of Phoebe’s exclamations and entreaties. He then replaced the vessel beneath the little conduit, and continued :—“ Know that this shall bea token tothee. The filling of that pitcher shall be hike the running of a sand-glass ; and if within the time which shall pass ere it rises to the brim, thou shalt listen to the words which I shall say to thee, then it shall be well with thee, and thy place shall be high among those who, forsaking the instruction which is as milk for babes and sucklings, eat the strong food which nourishes manhood. But if the pitcher shall overbrim with water ere thy ear shall hear and understand, thou shalt then be given as a prey, and as a bondsmaiden, unto those who shall possess the fat and the fair of the earth.” “ You frighten me, Master Tomkins,” said Phoebe, “ though I am sure you do not mean to do so. I wonder how you dare speak words so like the good words in the Bible, when you know how you laughed at your own master, and ‘all the resi of them—when you helped to play the hobgoblins at the Lodge. “ Think’st thou then, thou simple fool, that in putting that deceit upon Harrison and the rest, I exceeded my privileges ?— Nay, verily. Listen to me, foolish girl. When in former days I lived the most wild, malignant, rakehell in Oxfordshire, fre- quenting wakes and fairs, dancing around Maypoles, and show- ing my lustihood at football and cudgel-playing—Yea, when I was called, in the language of the uncircumcised, Philip Hazel- dine, and was one of the singers in the choir, and one of the ringers in the steeple, and served the priest yonder, by name Rochecliffe, I was not further from the straight road than when, after long reading, I at length found one blind guide after another, all burners of brick in Egypt. I left them one by one,rarest a ee 334 WOODSTOCK. the poor tool Harrison being the last; and by my own unas. sisted strength I have struggled forward to the broad and blessed light, whereof thou too, Phoebe; shall be partaker.” ““T thank you, Master Tomkins,” said P pede, suppressing some fear under an appearance of indifference ; “but I shall have light enough to carry home my pitcher, wor ald you but let me take it; and that is all the want of light I shall have this evening.” So saying, she stooped to take the pitcher from the fountain; but he snatched hold of her by the arm, and prevented her from accomplishing her purpose. Phoebe, however, was the daughter of a bold forester, prompt at though its of self-defence ; and “though she missed getting hold of the pitcher, she caught up instead a large pebb le, which she kept concealed in her right hand. “Stand up, foolish maiden, and listen,” said the Inde pendent, sternly ; “and know, in one word, that sin, for which a spirit of man is punished with the vengeance of Heaven, lieth not in the seni act, but in the thought of the sinner. Believe, lovely Phoebe, that to the pure all acts are sigs and that sin is in our thought, not in our actions—even as the radiance of the day is dark to a blind man, but seen and ee by him whose eyes receive it. To him who is but a novice in the things of the spirit, much is enjoined, much is prohibited; and he is fed with milk fit for babes,—for him are ordinances, pro- hibitions, and commands. But the saint is above these ordi- nances and restraints.—To him, as to the chosen child of the house, is given the pass-key to open all locks which withhold him from the enjoyment of his heart’s desire. Into such pleasant paths will I guide thee, lovely Phcebe, as shall unite in joy, in innocent freedom, pleasures, which to the unprivileged are sinful and prohibited.” “I really wish, Master Tomkins, you would let me £0 home.” said Phcebe, not comprehending the nature of his doc- trine, but disliking at once his words andhis manner. He went on, however, with the accursed and blasphemous doctrines which, in common with others of the pretended saints, he had adopted, after having long shifted from one sect to another, until he settled in the vil e belief, that sin, being of a character exclusively nua, only existed in the thoughts, and that the worst actions were permitted to those who had attained to the pitch of believing themselves above ordinance. “ Thus, my Phoebe,” he continued, endeay oring to draw her toward him, “I can offer thee more than ever was held out to a woman since Adam first took his bride by the hand, It shall be for others toWOODSTOCK. stand dry-lipped, doing penance, like papists, by abstinence, Ween the ve BEI of seta pours forth its delights. Dost thou ove money ?—TI have it, and can proc ure More am. at liberty to procure it on every hand and by every means—the earth is mine and its rik pao Do you desire poor cheated commissioner-fellows’ estates dost thou covet, | will work it out Eon thee ; for I deal wi any of them. And it is not without w power ?—which of these th a mightier spirit than arrant that I have aided the malignant Rochecliffe, and the clown Joliffe, to frighten and baffle them in the guise they did. Ask what thou wilt, Phoebe, J can give, or I can procure it for s D> into a life of delight in this world, oC 2 ee—Then enter with me vhich shall prove but an anticipation of the joys of ee ee Le ica Again the fanatical vi iia ry end eavored to pull the poor girl toward him, while she, alarmed, but nots scared out of her presence of mind, endeavored, by fai r entreaty, to prevail on him torelease her. But his features, in themselves not marked, had acquired a frightful expression, Phoebe—do not think to escape and he exclaimed, ‘ No, thou art giv en to me as 2 Eanleeeea ne hast neglected the hour of grace, and it has ided past—See, the water trickles ov er thy pitcher, which was to be a sign between us—Therefore I will urge thee no more with words, of which thou art not worthy, but treat thee as a recusant of offered grace.” ‘Master Tomkins,” said Phoebe, in an imploring tone, ‘“consider, for God’s sake, I ama fat! herless chilc fame me no injury, it would be a shame to your str engih and your manhood —I cannot understé and your fine words—I will think on them ¢ill to-morrow.” Then, in rising resentment, she added more vehemently —“ I Ww you a mischief,” ] T il not be ead rudely—st and off, or I will do sut, as he pressed upon her with a violence, of which the abject could not be mistaken, and endeavored to secure her right hand, she exclaimed, wanion to you! ’’—and struck him an the face, with the pebble which she extremity. ‘ Take it then, with a almost stunning Salcat on held ready for such an The fanatic let her go, and staggered backward, half stupef hed; while Phoebe instan atly betook herself to flight, screaming for help as she ran, but still grasping the tated to frenzy by the severe blow victorious pebble. Irri which he had received, Tomkins pursued, with every black passion in his soul, and in his face, mingled with fear lést his “all He called on Phoebe loudly to stop, any should be eau 2d. and had the brutality to menace her with one of his pistols if she continued to fly. ‘Yet she slacked not her pace for his thr eats, and he must eitherP ee eee SEY SOS RRC POET RRR NY gS i el I mp : i S i 336 WOODSTOCK. have executed them, or seen her escape to carry the tale to the Lodge, had she not unhappily stumbled over the projecting root ofafirtree. But ashe rushed upon his prey, rescue interposed in the person of Joceline Joliffe with his quarterstaff on his shoulder. “Flow now ? what means this ?” he said, stepping between Phoebe and her pursuer. Tomkins, already roused to fury, made no other answer than by discharging at Joceline the pistol which he held in his hand. The ball grazed the under-keeper’s face, who, in requital of the assault, and saying, “‘ Aha! let ash answer iron,” applied his quarterstaff with so much force to the Inde- pendent’s head, that, lighting on the left temple, the blow proved almost instantly mortal. A few convulsive struggles were accompanied with these broken words,—‘ Joceline—I am gone—but I forgive thee— Doctor Rochecliffe—I wish I had minded more—Oh !—the clergyman—the funeral service’””——As he uttered these words, indicative, it may be, of his return to a creed, which, perhaps, he had never abjured so thoroughly as he had persuaded him- self, his voice was lost in a groan, which, rattling in the throat, seemed unable to find its way to the air. These were the last symptoms of life; the clenched hands presently relaxed—the closed eyes opened, and stared on the heavens a lifeless jelly— the limbs extended themselves and stiffened. The body, which was lately animated with life, was now a lump of senseless clay —the soul, dismissed from its earthly tenement in a moment so unhallowed, was gone before the judgment-seat. ‘Oh, what have you done ?—what have you done, Joceline? ” exclaimed Phoebe ; “you have killed the man !” ‘‘ Better than he should have killed me,” answered Joceline ?” “for he was none of the blinkers that miss their mark twice running.—And yet Iam sorry for him.—Many a merry bout have we had together when he was wild Philip Hazeldine, and then he was bad enough; but since he daubed over his vices with hypocrisy, he seems to have proved worse devil than eye” ‘“Oh, Joceline, come away,” said poor Phoebe, “ and do not stand gazing on him thus ;” for the woodsman, resting on his fatal weapon, stood looking down on the corpse with the appear- ance of a man half stunned at the event. “"This comes of the ale-pitcher, she continued, in the true style of female consolation, “as I have often told you—For Heaven’s sake, come to the Lodge, and let us consult what is to be done.” “ Stay, first girl, and let me drag him out of the path ; weWOODSTOCK. 337 must not have him lie here in all men’s sight—Will you not help me, wench?” “T cannot Joceline—I would not touch a lock on him for all Woodstock.” “T must to this gear myself, then,” said Joceline, who, a soldier as well as a woodsman, still had great reluctance to the necessary task. Something in the face and broken words of the dying man had made a deep and terrific impression on nerves not easily shaken. He accomplished it, however, so far as to drag the late steward out of the open path, and bestow his body amongst the undergrowth of brambles and briers, so as not to be visible unless particularly looked after. He then returned to Phcebe, who had sat speechless all the while beneath the tree over whose roots she had stumbled. “ Come away, wench,” he said, “come away to the Lodge, and let us study how this.is to be answered for—the mishap of his being killed will strangely increase our danger. What had he sought of thee, wench, when you ran from him like a mad- woman ?—But I can guess—Phil was always a devil among the girls, and, I think, as Doctor Rochecliffe says, that since he turned saint, he took to himself seven devils worse than himself—Here is the very place where I saw him, with his sword in his hand raised against the old knight, and he a child of the parish—it was high treason at least—but, by my faith, he hath paid for it at last.” “But, oh, Joceline,” said Phoebe, “how could you take so wicked a man into your counsels, and join him in all his plots about scaring the roundhead gentlemen s “Why, look thee, wench, I thought I knew him at the first meeting, especially when Bevis, who was bred here when he was a dog-leader, would not fly at him; and when we made up our old acquaintance at the Lodge, I found he kept up a close correspondence with Doctor Rochecliffe, who was persuaded that he was a good King’s man, and held consequently good intelligence with him.—The Doctor boasts to have learned much through his means ,; I wish to Heaven he may not have been as communicative in turn.” “ Oh Joceline,” said the waiting-woman, ‘you should never have let him within the gate of the Lodge!” “No more I would, if I had known how to keep him out : but when he went so frankly into our scheme, and told me how I was to dress myself like Robinson the player, whose ghost haunted Harrison—I wish no ghost may haunt me !—when he taught me how to bear myself to terrify his lawful master, what could I think, wench? I only trust the Doctor has kept the wet Stree 4 a - mH 5 i iaaneesncssxsTne ree ee eee as 338 WOODSTOCK, great secret of all from his knowledge.—But here we are at the Lodge. Go to tl vy chamber, enc , and compose thyself. a must seek out Doctor Rocheclif ffe he is ever talking of his quick and ready invention. Here. come times, I think, that will demand it all.” Phoebe went to her chamber accordingly ; but the strength arising from the pressure of danger giving way when the dange “5 was removed, she quickly fell into a succession of hysterical fits, which re quired the constant attention of Dame Jel licot, and the less alarmed, but more judicious care of Mistress Alice, before they even ‘ab ated in their rapid recurrence. The under-keeper carried his news to the politic Doctor, who was extremely disconcerted, alarmed, nay angry with Joce- line, for having slain a person on whose communications he had accustomed himself to rely, Yet his looks declared his suspicion, whether his confidence had not been too rash uly con- ferred—a suspicion which pressed him the more > anxiously, that he was unwilli: ng to avow it, as a derogation from his character for shrewdness, on which he valued himself. Dr. Rochecliffe’s reliance, however, on the fidelity of Tom- kins, had apparently good grounds . Before the Civil Wars, as may be partly collected from what h: as been already hinted at, Tomkins, under his true name of Hazeldine, had been under the protection of the Rector of Woodstock, occasionally acted as his clerk, was a distinguished member of his choir, and, being a handy and ingenious fellow, was employed in assisting the antiquarian researches of Dr. Rochecliffe through the interior of Woodstock. When he engaged in the opposite side in the Civil Wars, he still kept up his intelligence with the divine, to whom he had afforded what seemed valuable informa- tion from time to time. His assistance had latterly been eminently useful in aiding the Doctor, with the assistance of Joceline and Pheebe, in contrivi ng and executing the various devices by which the Parli iamentary Commissioners had been expelled from Woodstock. Indeed, his services in this respect had been thought worthy of no less a reward than a present of what plate remained at the Lodge, which had been promised to the Independent accordingly. The Doctor, therefore, while admitting he might be a bad man, regretted him as a useful one, w hose death, if inquired after, was lik ely to bring additional danger on a house which danger already surrounded, and which contained a pledge so precious,WOODSTOCK. CHAPTER THIRTIETH. Cassio.—T hat thrust had been my enemy indeed, But that my coat is better than thou know’st. OTHELLO, On the dark October night succeeding the evening on which Tomkins was slain, Colonel Everard, besides his constant at- tendant Roger Wildrake, had Master Nehemiah Holdenough with him as a guest at supper. The devotions of the evening having been performed according to the Presbyterian fashion, a light entertainment and a double quart of burnt claret, were placed before his friends at nine o’clock, an hour unusually late. Master Holdenough soon engaged himself in a polemi- cal discourse against Sectaries and Independents, without being aware that his eloquence was not very interesting to his princi- pal hearer, whose ideas in the meanwhile wandered to Wood- stock and all which it contained-—-the Prince, who lay con- cealed there—his uncle—above all, Alice Lee. As for Wild- rake, after bestowing a mental curse both on Sectaries and Presbyterians, as being, in his opinion, never a barrel the better herring, he stretched out his limbs, and would probably have composed himself to rest, but that he as well as his patron had thoughts which murdered sleep. The party were waited upon by a little gypsy-looking boy, in an orange-tawny doublet, much decayed, and garnished with blue worsted lace. The rogue looked somewhat stinted in size, but active both in intelligence and in limb, as his black eyes seemed to promise by their vivacity. He was an attendant of Wildrake’s choice, who had conferred on him the om de guerre of Spitfire, and had promised him promotion so soon as his young protégé, Breakfast, was fit to succeed him in his present office. It need scarce be said that the menage was maintained entirely at the expense of Colonel Everar 1, who allowed Wild- rake to arrange the household very much according to his pleasure. ‘The page did not omit, in offering the company wine from time to time, to accommodate Wildrake with about twice the number of opportunities of refreshing himself which he con- sidered it necessary to afford to the Colonel or his reverend guest. a : : While they were thus engaged, the good divine lost in_ his own argument, and the hearers, in their private thoughts, their attention was about half-past ten arrested by a knocking at the bs oD b * . TP PAT {Sa Renter Tso SLSe ee TAREE RS Seba SLAM aM RNA aa AL See loeat akan osecie * 340 WOODSTOCK. door of the house. To those who have anxious hearts, trifles give cause of alarm. Even a thing so simple as a knock at the door may have a character which excites apprehension. ‘This was no quiet gentle tap, intimating a modest intruder ; ; no redoubled rattle, as the pompous annunciation of some vain person, neither did it re- semble the formal summons to formal business, nor the cheer- ful visit of some welcome friend. It was a single blow, solemn and stern, if not ae eae menacing in the Sond! The door was opened by some of the persons of the house; a heavy foot ascended the stair, a stout man entered the room, and dr awing the cloak from his face, said, “Markham Ev erard, Le erect thee in God’s name.” It was General Cromwell. Everard, surprised and taken at unawares, endeavored in vain to find words to express his astonishment.